summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/old
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authorpgww <pgww@lists.pglaf.org>2026-03-14 17:53:41 -0700
committerpgww <pgww@lists.pglaf.org>2026-03-14 17:53:41 -0700
commitbf304860e93597501e232bb74e8d7a04c46203cc (patch)
treedbec18de5163ed5f10aa4ad8d9ae9511dad326a7 /old
parent6680a9bc9cfcb683b2f8ab9f2c56f1ceb3f3ebe1 (diff)
erratum 21291HEADmain
Diffstat (limited to 'old')
-rw-r--r--old/1640-h.htm.2021-01-2713656
-rw-r--r--old/lilth10.txt11533
-rw-r--r--old/lilth10.zipbin202390 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/lilth11.txt11539
-rw-r--r--old/lilth11.zipbin202390 -> 0 bytes
5 files changed, 0 insertions, 36728 deletions
diff --git a/old/1640-h.htm.2021-01-27 b/old/1640-h.htm.2021-01-27
deleted file mode 100644
index 580101e..0000000
--- a/old/1640-h.htm.2021-01-27
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,13656 +0,0 @@
-<?xml version="1.0" encoding="utf-8"?>
-
-<!DOCTYPE html
- PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd" >
-
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" lang="en">
- <head>
- <title>
- Lilith, by George Macdonald
- </title>
- <style type="text/css" xml:space="preserve">
-
- body { margin:5%; background:#faebd0; text-align:justify}
- P { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: .25em; margin-bottom: .25em; }
- H1,H2,H3,H4,H5,H6 { text-align: center; margin-left: 15%; margin-right: 15%; }
- hr { width: 50%; text-align: center;}
- .foot { margin-left: 20%; margin-right: 20%; text-align: justify; text-indent: -3em; font-size: 90%; }
- blockquote {font-size: 97%; font-style: italic; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%;}
- .mynote {background-color: #DDE; color: #000; padding: .5em; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-family: sans-serif; font-size: 95%;}
- .toc { margin-left: 10%; margin-bottom: .75em;}
- .toc2 { margin-left: 20%;}
- div.fig { display:block; margin:0 auto; text-align:center; }
- div.middle { margin-left: 20%; margin-right: 20%; text-align: justify; }
- .figleft {float: left; margin-left: 0%; margin-right: 1%;}
- .figright {float: right; margin-right: 0%; margin-left: 1%;}
- .pagenum {display:inline; font-size: 70%; font-style:normal;
- margin: 0; padding: 0; position: absolute; right: 1%;
- text-align: right;}
- pre { font-style: italic; font-size: 90%; margin-left: 10%;}
-
-</style>
- </head>
- <body>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Lilith, by George MacDonald
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Title: Lilith
-
-Author: George MacDonald
-
-Release Date: October 15, 2008 [EBook #1640]
-Last Updated: October 10, 2016
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LILITH ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by John Bechard, and David Widger
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
- <p>
- <br /><br />
- </p>
- <h1>
- LILITH
- </h1>
- <p>
- <br />
- </p>
- <h2>
- By George MacDonald
- </h2>
- <p>
- <br /> <br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <br /> <br />
- </p>
- <blockquote>
- <p class="toc">
- <big><b>CONTENTS</b></big>
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /> <a href="#link2HCH0001"> CHAPTER I. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE LIBRARY
- <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0002"> CHAPTER II. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- MIRROR <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0003"> CHAPTER III. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- RAVEN <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0004"> CHAPTER IV. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;SOMEWHERE
- OR NOWHERE? <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0005"> CHAPTER V. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- OLD CHURCH <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0006"> CHAPTER VI. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- SEXTON&rsquo;S COTTAGE <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0007"> CHAPTER VII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- CEMETERY <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0008"> CHAPTER VIII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;MY
- FATHER&rsquo;S MANUSCRIPT <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0009"> CHAPTER IX. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;I
- REPENT <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0010"> CHAPTER X. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- BAD BURROW <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0011"> CHAPTER XI. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- EVIL WOOD <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0012"> CHAPTER XII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;FRIENDS
- AND FOES <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0013"> CHAPTER XIII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- LITTLE ONES <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0014"> CHAPTER XIV. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;A
- CRISIS <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0015"> CHAPTER XV. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;A
- STRANGE HOSTESS <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0016"> CHAPTER XVI. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;A
- GRUESOME DANCE <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0017"> CHAPTER XVII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;A
- GROTESQUE TRAGEDY <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0018"> CHAPTER XVIII.
- </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;DEAD OR ALIVE? <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0019">
- CHAPTER XIX. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE WHITE LEECH <br /><br /> <a
- href="#link2HCH0020"> CHAPTER XX. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;GONE!&mdash;BUT HOW?
- <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0021"> CHAPTER XXI. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- FUGITIVE MOTHER <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0022"> CHAPTER XXII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;BULIKA
- <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0023"> CHAPTER XXIII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;A
- WOMAN OF BULIKA <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0024"> CHAPTER XXIV. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- WHITE LEOPARDESS <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0025"> CHAPTER XXV. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- PRINCESS <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0026"> CHAPTER XXVI. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;A
- BATTLE ROYAL <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0027"> CHAPTER XXVII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- SILENT FOUNTAIN <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0028"> CHAPTER XXVIII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;I
- AM SILENCED <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0029"> CHAPTER XXIX. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- PERSIAN CAT <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0030"> CHAPTER XXX. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;ADAM
- EXPLAINS <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0031"> CHAPTER XXXI. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- SEXTON&rsquo;S OLD HORSE <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0032"> CHAPTER XXXII.
- </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE LOVERS AND THE BAGS <br /><br /> <a
- href="#link2HCH0033"> CHAPTER XXXIII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;LONA&rsquo;S NARRATIVE
- <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0034"> CHAPTER XXXIV. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;PREPARATION
- <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0035"> Chapter XXXV. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- LITTLE ONES IN BULIKA <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0036"> CHAPTER XXXVI.
- </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;MOTHER AND DAUGHTER <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0037">
- CHAPTER XXXVII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE SHADOW <br /><br /> <a
- href="#link2HCH0038"> CHAPTER XXXVIII. &nbsp;&nbsp;</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;TO
- THE HOUSE OF BITTERNESS <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0039"> CHAPTER
- XXXIX. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THAT NIGHT <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0040">
- CHAPTER XL. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE HOUSE OF DEATH <br /><br /> <a
- href="#link2HCH0041"> CHAPTER XLI. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;I AM SENT <br /><br />
- <a href="#link2HCH0042"> CHAPTER XLII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;I SLEEP THE SLEEP
- <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0043"> CHAPTER XLIII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- DREAMS THAT CAME <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0044"> CHAPTER XLIV. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- WAKING <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0045"> CHAPTER XLV. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- JOURNEY HOME <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0046"> CHAPTER XLVI. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- CITY <br /><br /> <a href="#link2HCH0047"> CHAPTER XLVII. </a>&nbsp;&nbsp;THE
- &ldquo;ENDLESS ENDING&rdquo; <br /><br />
- </p>
- </blockquote>
- <p>
- <br /> <br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <br /> <br />
- </p>
- <p>
- I took a walk on Spaulding&rsquo;s Farm the other afternoon. I saw the setting
- sun lighting up the opposite side of a stately pine wood. Its golden rays
- straggled into the aisles of the wood as into some noble hall. I was
- impressed as if some ancient and altogether admirable and shining family
- had settled there in that part of the land called Concord, unknown to me,&mdash;to
- whom the sun was servant,&mdash;who had not gone into society in the
- village,&mdash;who had not been called on. I saw their park, their
- pleasure-ground, beyond through the wood, in Spaulding&rsquo;s cranberry-meadow.
- The pines furnished them with gables as they grew. Their house was not
- obvious to vision; their trees grew through it. I do not know whether I
- heard the sounds of a suppressed hilarity or not. They seemed to recline
- on the sunbeams. They have sons and daughters. They are quite well. The
- farmer&rsquo;s cart-path, which leads directly through their hall, does not in
- the least put them out,&mdash;as the muddy bottom of a pool is sometimes
- seen through the reflected skies. They never heard of Spaulding, and do
- not know that he is their neighbor,&mdash;notwithstanding I heard him
- whistle as he drove his team through the house. Nothing can equal the
- serenity of their lives. Their coat of arms is simply a lichen. I saw it
- painted on the pines and oaks. Their attics were in the tops of the trees.
- They are of no politics. There was no noise of labor. I did not perceive
- that they were weaving or spinning. Yet I did detect, when the wind lulled
- and hearing was done away, the finest imaginable sweet musical hum,&mdash;as
- of a distant hive in May, which perchance was the sound of their thinking.
- They had no idle thoughts, and no one without could see their work, for
- their industry was not as in knots and excrescences embayed.
- </p>
- <p>
- But I find it difficult to remember them. They fade irrevocably out of my
- mind even now while I speak and endeavor to recall them, and recollect
- myself. It is only after a long and serious effort to recollect my best
- thoughts that I become again aware of their cohabitancy. If it were not
- for such families as this, I think I should move out of Concord.
- </p>
- <p>
- Thoreau: &ldquo;WALKING.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0001" id="link2HCH0001">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER I. THE LIBRARY
- </h2>
- <p>
- I had just finished my studies at Oxford, and was taking a brief holiday
- from work before assuming definitely the management of the estate. My
- father died when I was yet a child; my mother followed him within a year;
- and I was nearly as much alone in the world as a man might find himself.
- </p>
- <p>
- I had made little acquaintance with the history of my ancestors. Almost
- the only thing I knew concerning them was, that a notable number of them
- had been given to study. I had myself so far inherited the tendency as to
- devote a good deal of my time, though, I confess, after a somewhat
- desultory fashion, to the physical sciences. It was chiefly the wonder
- they woke that drew me. I was constantly seeing, and on the outlook to
- see, strange analogies, not only between the facts of different sciences
- of the same order, or between physical and metaphysical facts, but between
- physical hypotheses and suggestions glimmering out of the metaphysical
- dreams into which I was in the habit of falling. I was at the same time
- much given to a premature indulgence of the impulse to turn hypothesis
- into theory. Of my mental peculiarities there is no occasion to say more.
- </p>
- <p>
- The house as well as the family was of some antiquity, but no description
- of it is necessary to the understanding of my narrative. It contained a
- fine library, whose growth began before the invention of printing, and had
- continued to my own time, greatly influenced, of course, by changes of
- taste and pursuit. Nothing surely can more impress upon a man the
- transitory nature of possession than his succeeding to an ancient
- property! Like a moving panorama mine has passed from before many eyes,
- and is now slowly flitting from before my own.
- </p>
- <p>
- The library, although duly considered in many alterations of the house and
- additions to it, had nevertheless, like an encroaching state, absorbed one
- room after another until it occupied the greater part of the ground floor.
- Its chief room was large, and the walls of it were covered with books
- almost to the ceiling; the rooms into which it overflowed were of various
- sizes and shapes, and communicated in modes as various&mdash;by doors, by
- open arches, by short passages, by steps up and steps down.
- </p>
- <p>
- In the great room I mainly spent my time, reading books of science, old as
- well as new; for the history of the human mind in relation to supposed
- knowledge was what most of all interested me. Ptolemy, Dante, the two
- Bacons, and Boyle were even more to me than Darwin or Maxwell, as so much
- nearer the vanished van breaking into the dark of ignorance.
- </p>
- <p>
- In the evening of a gloomy day of August I was sitting in my usual place,
- my back to one of the windows, reading. It had rained the greater part of
- the morning and afternoon, but just as the sun was setting, the clouds
- parted in front of him, and he shone into the room. I rose and looked out
- of the window. In the centre of the great lawn the feathering top of the
- fountain column was filled with his red glory. I turned to resume my seat,
- when my eye was caught by the same glory on the one picture in the room&mdash;a
- portrait, in a sort of niche or little shrine sunk for it in the expanse
- of book-filled shelves. I knew it as the likeness of one of my ancestors,
- but had never even wondered why it hung there alone, and not in the
- gallery, or one of the great rooms, among the other family portraits. The
- direct sunlight brought out the painting wonderfully; for the first time I
- seemed to see it, and for the first time it seemed to respond to my look.
- With my eyes full of the light reflected from it, something, I cannot tell
- what, made me turn and cast a glance to the farther end of the room, when
- I saw, or seemed to see, a tall figure reaching up a hand to a bookshelf.
- The next instant, my vision apparently rectified by the comparative dusk,
- I saw no one, and concluded that my optic nerves had been momentarily
- affected from within.
- </p>
- <p>
- I resumed my reading, and would doubtless have forgotten the vague,
- evanescent impression, had it not been that, having occasion a moment
- after to consult a certain volume, I found but a gap in the row where it
- ought to have stood, and the same instant remembered that just there I had
- seen, or fancied I saw, the old man in search of a book. I looked all
- about the spot but in vain. The next morning, however, there it was, just
- where I had thought to find it! I knew of no one in the house likely to be
- interested in such a book.
- </p>
- <p>
- Three days after, another and yet odder thing took place.
- </p>
- <p>
- In one of the walls was the low, narrow door of a closet, containing some
- of the oldest and rarest of the books. It was a very thick door, with a
- projecting frame, and it had been the fancy of some ancestor to cross it
- with shallow shelves, filled with book-backs only. The harmless trick may
- be excused by the fact that the titles on the sham backs were either
- humorously original, or those of books lost beyond hope of recovery. I had
- a great liking for the masked door.
- </p>
- <p>
- To complete the illusion of it, some inventive workman apparently had
- shoved in, on the top of one of the rows, a part of a volume thin enough
- to lie between it and the bottom of the next shelf: he had cut away
- diagonally a considerable portion, and fixed the remnant with one of its
- open corners projecting beyond the book-backs. The binding of the
- mutilated volume was limp vellum, and one could open the corner far enough
- to see that it was manuscript upon parchment.
- </p>
- <p>
- Happening, as I sat reading, to raise my eyes from the page, my glance
- fell upon this door, and at once I saw that the book described, if book it
- may be called, was gone. Angrier than any worth I knew in it justified, I
- rang the bell, and the butler appeared. When I asked him if he knew what
- had befallen it, he turned pale, and assured me he did not. I could less
- easily doubt his word than my own eyes, for he had been all his life in
- the family, and a more faithful servant never lived. He left on me the
- impression, nevertheless, that he could have said something more.
- </p>
- <p>
- In the afternoon I was again reading in the library, and coming to a point
- which demanded reflection, I lowered the book and let my eyes go
- wandering. The same moment I saw the back of a slender old man, in a long,
- dark coat, shiny as from much wear, in the act of disappearing through the
- masked door into the closet beyond. I darted across the room, found the
- door shut, pulled it open, looked into the closet, which had no other
- issue, and, seeing nobody, concluded, not without uneasiness, that I had
- had a recurrence of my former illusion, and sat down again to my reading.
- </p>
- <p>
- Naturally, however, I could not help feeling a little nervous, and
- presently glancing up to assure myself that I was indeed alone, started
- again to my feet, and ran to the masked door&mdash;for there was the
- mutilated volume in its place! I laid hold of it and pulled: it was firmly
- fixed as usual!
- </p>
- <p>
- I was now utterly bewildered. I rang the bell; the butler came; I told him
- all I had seen, and he told me all he knew.
- </p>
- <p>
- He had hoped, he said, that the old gentleman was going to be forgotten;
- it was well no one but myself had seen him. He had heard a good deal about
- him when first he served in the house, but by degrees he had ceased to be
- mentioned, and he had been very careful not to allude to him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The place was haunted by an old gentleman, was it?&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- He answered that at one time everybody believed it, but the fact that I
- had never heard of it seemed to imply that the thing had come to an end
- and was forgotten.
- </p>
- <p>
- I questioned him as to what he had seen of the old gentleman.
- </p>
- <p>
- He had never seen him, he said, although he had been in the house from the
- day my father was eight years old. My grandfather would never hear a word
- on the matter, declaring that whoever alluded to it should be dismissed
- without a moment&rsquo;s warning: it was nothing but a pretext of the maids, he
- said, for running into the arms of the men! but old Sir Ralph believed in
- nothing he could not see or lay hold of. Not one of the maids ever said
- she had seen the apparition, but a footman had left the place because of
- it.
- </p>
- <p>
- An ancient woman in the village had told him a legend concerning a Mr.
- Raven, long time librarian to &ldquo;that Sir Upward whose portrait hangs there
- among the books.&rdquo; Sir Upward was a great reader, she said&mdash;not of
- such books only as were wholesome for men to read, but of strange,
- forbidden, and evil books; and in so doing, Mr. Raven, who was probably
- the devil himself, encouraged him. Suddenly they both disappeared, and Sir
- Upward was never after seen or heard of, but Mr. Raven continued to show
- himself at uncertain intervals in the library. There were some who
- believed he was not dead; but both he and the old woman held it easier to
- believe that a dead man might revisit the world he had left, than that one
- who went on living for hundreds of years should be a man at all.
- </p>
- <p>
- He had never heard that Mr. Raven meddled with anything in the house, but
- he might perhaps consider himself privileged in regard to the books. How
- the old woman had learned so much about him he could not tell; but the
- description she gave of him corresponded exactly with the figure I had
- just seen.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I hope it was but a friendly call on the part of the old gentleman!&rdquo; he
- concluded, with a troubled smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- I told him I had no objection to any number of visits from Mr. Raven, but
- it would be well he should keep to his resolution of saying nothing about
- him to the servants. Then I asked him if he had ever seen the mutilated
- volume out of its place; he answered that he never had, and had always
- thought it a fixture. With that he went to it, and gave it a pull: it
- seemed immovable.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0002" id="link2HCH0002">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER II. THE MIRROR
- </h2>
- <p>
- Nothing more happened for some days. I think it was about a week after,
- when what I have now to tell took place.
- </p>
- <p>
- I had often thought of the manuscript fragment, and repeatedly tried to
- discover some way of releasing it, but in vain: I could not find out what
- held it fast.
- </p>
- <p>
- But I had for some time intended a thorough overhauling of the books in
- the closet, its atmosphere causing me uneasiness as to their condition.
- One day the intention suddenly became a resolve, and I was in the act of
- rising from my chair to make a beginning, when I saw the old librarian
- moving from the door of the closet toward the farther end of the room. I
- ought rather to say only that I caught sight of something shadowy from
- which I received the impression of a slight, stooping man, in a shabby
- dress-coat reaching almost to his heels, the tails of which, disparting a
- little as he walked, revealed thin legs in black stockings, and large feet
- in wide, slipper-like shoes.
- </p>
- <p>
- At once I followed him: I might be following a shadow, but I never doubted
- I was following something. He went out of the library into the hall, and
- across to the foot of the great staircase, then up the stairs to the first
- floor, where lay the chief rooms. Past these rooms, I following close, he
- continued his way, through a wide corridor, to the foot of a narrower
- stair leading to the second floor. Up that he went also, and when I
- reached the top, strange as it may seem, I found myself in a region almost
- unknown to me. I never had brother or sister to incite to such romps as
- make children familiar with nook and cranny; I was a mere child when my
- guardian took me away; and I had never seen the house again until, about a
- month before, I returned to take possession.
- </p>
- <p>
- Through passage after passage we came to a door at the bottom of a winding
- wooden stair, which we ascended. Every step creaked under my foot, but I
- heard no sound from that of my guide. Somewhere in the middle of the stair
- I lost sight of him, and from the top of it the shadowy shape was nowhere
- visible. I could not even imagine I saw him. The place was full of
- shadows, but he was not one of them.
- </p>
- <p>
- I was in the main garret, with huge beams and rafters over my head, great
- spaces around me, a door here and there in sight, and long vistas whose
- gloom was thinned by a few lurking cobwebbed windows and small dusky
- skylights. I gazed with a strange mingling of awe and pleasure: the wide
- expanse of garret was my own, and unexplored!
- </p>
- <p>
- In the middle of it stood an unpainted inclosure of rough planks, the door
- of which was ajar. Thinking Mr. Raven might be there, I pushed the door,
- and entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- The small chamber was full of light, but such as dwells in places
- deserted: it had a dull, disconsolate look, as if it found itself of no
- use, and regretted having come. A few rather dim sunrays, marking their
- track through the cloud of motes that had just been stirred up, fell upon
- a tall mirror with a dusty face, old-fashioned and rather narrow&mdash;in
- appearance an ordinary glass. It had an ebony frame, on the top of which
- stood a black eagle, with outstretched wings, in his beak a golden chain,
- from whose end hung a black ball.
- </p>
- <p>
- I had been looking at rather than into the mirror, when suddenly I became
- aware that it reflected neither the chamber nor my own person. I have an
- impression of having seen the wall melt away, but what followed is enough
- to account for any uncertainty:&mdash;could I have mistaken for a mirror
- the glass that protected a wonderful picture?
- </p>
- <p>
- I saw before me a wild country, broken and heathy. Desolate hills of no
- great height, but somehow of strange appearance, occupied the middle
- distance; along the horizon stretched the tops of a far-off mountain
- range; nearest me lay a tract of moorland, flat and melancholy.
- </p>
- <p>
- Being short-sighted, I stepped closer to examine the texture of a stone in
- the immediate foreground, and in the act espied, hopping toward me with
- solemnity, a large and ancient raven, whose purply black was here and
- there softened with gray. He seemed looking for worms as he came. Nowise
- astonished at the appearance of a live creature in a picture, I took
- another step forward to see him better, stumbled over something&mdash;doubtless
- the frame of the mirror&mdash;and stood nose to beak with the bird: I was
- in the open air, on a houseless heath!
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0003" id="link2HCH0003">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER III. THE RAVEN
- </h2>
- <p>
- I turned and looked behind me: all was vague and uncertain, as when one
- cannot distinguish between fog and field, between cloud and mountain-side.
- One fact only was plain&mdash;that I saw nothing I knew. Imagining myself
- involved in a visual illusion, and that touch would correct sight, I
- stretched my arms and felt about me, walking in this direction and that,
- if haply, where I could see nothing, I might yet come in contact with
- something; but my search was vain. Instinctively then, as to the only
- living thing near me, I turned to the raven, which stood a little way off,
- regarding me with an expression at once respectful and quizzical. Then the
- absurdity of seeking counsel from such a one struck me, and I turned
- again, overwhelmed with bewilderment, not unmingled with fear. Had I
- wandered into a region where both the material and psychical relations of
- our world had ceased to hold? Might a man at any moment step beyond the
- realm of order, and become the sport of the lawless? Yet I saw the raven,
- felt the ground under my feet, and heard a sound as of wind in the lowly
- plants around me!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How DID I get here?&rdquo; I said&mdash;apparently aloud, for the question was
- immediately answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You came through the door,&rdquo; replied an odd, rather harsh voice.
- </p>
- <p>
- I looked behind, then all about me, but saw no human shape. The terror
- that madness might be at hand laid hold upon me: must I henceforth place
- no confidence either in my senses or my consciousness? The same instant I
- knew it was the raven that had spoken, for he stood looking up at me with
- an air of waiting. The sun was not shining, yet the bird seemed to cast a
- shadow, and the shadow seemed part of himself.
- </p>
- <p>
- I beg my reader to aid me in the endeavour to make myself intelligible&mdash;if
- here understanding be indeed possible between us. I was in a world, or
- call it a state of things, an economy of conditions, an idea of existence,
- so little correspondent with the ways and modes of this world&mdash;which
- we are apt to think the only world, that the best choice I can make of
- word or phrase is but an adumbration of what I would convey. I begin
- indeed to fear that I have undertaken an impossibility, undertaken to tell
- what I cannot tell because no speech at my command will fit the forms in
- my mind. Already I have set down statements I would gladly change did I
- know how to substitute a truer utterance; but as often as I try to fit the
- reality with nearer words, I find myself in danger of losing the things
- themselves, and feel like one in process of awaking from a dream, with the
- thing that seemed familiar gradually yet swiftly changing through a
- succession of forms until its very nature is no longer recognisable.
- </p>
- <p>
- I bethought me that a bird capable of addressing a man must have the right
- of a man to a civil answer; perhaps, as a bird, even a greater claim.
- </p>
- <p>
- A tendency to croak caused a certain roughness in his speech, but his
- voice was not disagreeable, and what he said, although conveying little
- enlightenment, did not sound rude.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did not come through any door,&rdquo; I rejoined.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I saw you come through it!&mdash;saw you with my own ancient eyes!&rdquo;
- asserted the raven, positively but not disrespectfully.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I never saw any door!&rdquo; I persisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course not!&rdquo; he returned; &ldquo;all the doors you had yet seen&mdash;and
- you haven&rsquo;t seen many&mdash;were doors in; here you came upon a door out!
- The strange thing to you,&rdquo; he went on thoughtfully, &ldquo;will be, that the
- more doors you go out of, the farther you get in!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oblige me by telling me where I am.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is impossible. You know nothing about whereness. The only way to
- come to know where you are is to begin to make yourself at home.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How am I to begin that where everything is so strange?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By doing something.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Anything; and the sooner you begin the better! for until you are at home,
- you will find it as difficult to get out as it is to get in.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have, unfortunately, found it too easy to get in; once out I shall not
- try again!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have stumbled in, and may, possibly, stumble out again. Whether you
- have got in UNFORTUNATELY remains to be seen.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you never go out, sir?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When I please I do, but not often, or for long. Your world is such a
- half-baked sort of place, it is at once so childish and so self-satisfied&mdash;in
- fact, it is not sufficiently developed for an old raven&mdash;at your
- service!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Am I wrong, then, in presuming that a man is superior to a bird?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is as it may be. We do not waste our intellects in generalising, but
- take man or bird as we find him.&mdash;I think it is now my turn to ask
- you a question!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have the best of rights,&rdquo; I replied, &ldquo;in the fact that you CAN do
- so!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well answered!&rdquo; he rejoined. &ldquo;Tell me, then, who you are&mdash;if you
- happen to know.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How should I help knowing? I am myself, and must know!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If you know you are yourself, you know that you are not somebody else;
- but do you know that you are yourself? Are you sure you are not your own
- father?&mdash;or, excuse me, your own fool?&mdash;Who are you, pray?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I became at once aware that I could give him no notion of who I was.
- Indeed, who was I? It would be no answer to say I was who! Then I
- understood that I did not know myself, did not know what I was, had no
- grounds on which to determine that I was one and not another. As for the
- name I went by in my own world, I had forgotten it, and did not care to
- recall it, for it meant nothing, and what it might be was plainly of no
- consequence here. I had indeed almost forgotten that there it was a custom
- for everybody to have a name! So I held my peace, and it was my wisdom;
- for what should I say to a creature such as this raven, who saw through
- accident into entity?
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look at me,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;and tell me who I am.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- As he spoke, he turned his back, and instantly I knew him. He was no
- longer a raven, but a man above the middle height with a stoop, very thin,
- and wearing a long black tail-coat. Again he turned, and I saw him a
- raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have seen you before, sir,&rdquo; I said, feeling foolish rather than
- surprised.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How can you say so from seeing me behind?&rdquo; he rejoined. &ldquo;Did you ever see
- yourself behind? You have never seen yourself at all!&mdash;Tell me now,
- then, who I am.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I humbly beg your pardon,&rdquo; I answered: &ldquo;I believe you were once the
- librarian of our house, but more WHO I do not know.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you beg my pardon?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I took you for a raven,&rdquo; I said&mdash;seeing him before me as
- plainly a raven as bird or man could look.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You did me no wrong,&rdquo; he returned. &ldquo;Calling me a raven, or thinking me
- one, you allowed me existence, which is the sum of what one can demand of
- his fellow-beings. Therefore, in return, I will give you a lesson:&mdash;No
- one can say he is himself, until first he knows that he IS, and then what
- HIMSELF is. In fact, nobody is himself, and himself is nobody. There is
- more in it than you can see now, but not more than you need to see. You
- have, I fear, got into this region too soon, but none the less you must
- get to be at home in it; for home, as you may or may not know, is the only
- place where you can go out and in. There are places you can go into, and
- places you can go out of; but the one place, if you do but find it, where
- you may go out and in both, is home.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned to walk away, and again I saw the librarian. He did not appear
- to have changed, only to have taken up his shadow. I know this seems
- nonsense, but I cannot help it.
- </p>
- <p>
- I gazed after him until I saw him no more; but whether distance hid him,
- or he disappeared among the heather, I cannot tell.
- </p>
- <p>
- Could it be that I was dead, I thought, and did not know it? Was I in what
- we used to call the world beyond the grave? and must I wander about
- seeking my place in it? How was I to find myself at home? The raven said I
- must do something: what could I do here?&mdash;And would that make me
- somebody? for now, alas, I was nobody!
- </p>
- <p>
- I took the way Mr. Raven had gone, and went slowly after him. Presently I
- saw a wood of tall slender pine-trees, and turned toward it. The odour of
- it met me on my way, and I made haste to bury myself in it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Plunged at length in its twilight glooms, I spied before me something with
- a shine, standing between two of the stems. It had no colour, but was like
- the translucent trembling of the hot air that rises, in a radiant summer
- noon, from the sun-baked ground, vibrant like the smitten chords of a
- musical instrument. What it was grew no plainer as I went nearer, and when
- I came close up, I ceased to see it, only the form and colour of the trees
- beyond seemed strangely uncertain. I would have passed between the stems,
- but received a slight shock, stumbled, and fell. When I rose, I saw before
- me the wooden wall of the garret chamber. I turned, and there was the
- mirror, on whose top the black eagle seemed but that moment to have
- perched.
- </p>
- <p>
- Terror seized me, and I fled. Outside the chamber the wide garret spaces
- had an UNCANNY look. They seemed to have long been waiting for something;
- it had come, and they were waiting again! A shudder went through me on the
- winding stair: the house had grown strange to me! something was about to
- leap upon me from behind! I darted down the spiral, struck against the
- wall and fell, rose and ran. On the next floor I lost my way, and had gone
- through several passages a second time ere I found the head of the stair.
- At the top of the great stair I had come to myself a little, and in a few
- moments I sat recovering my breath in the library.
- </p>
- <p>
- Nothing should ever again make me go up that last terrible stair! The
- garret at the top of it pervaded the whole house! It sat upon it,
- threatening to crush me out of it! The brooding brain of the building, it
- was full of mysterious dwellers, one or other of whom might any moment
- appear in the library where I sat! I was nowhere safe! I would let, I
- would sell the dreadful place, in which an aërial portal stood ever open
- to creatures whose life was other than human! I would purchase a crag in
- Switzerland, and thereon build a wooden nest of one story with never a
- garret above it, guarded by some grand old peak that would send down
- nothing worse than a few tons of whelming rock!
- </p>
- <p>
- I knew all the time that my thinking was foolish, and was even aware of a
- certain undertone of contemptuous humour in it; but suddenly it was
- checked, and I seemed again to hear the croak of the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If I know nothing of my own garret,&rdquo; I thought, &ldquo;what is there to secure
- me against my own brain? Can I tell what it is even now generating?&mdash;what
- thought it may present me the next moment, the next month, or a year away?
- What is at the heart of my brain? What is behind my THINK? Am I there at
- all?&mdash;Who, what am I?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I could no more answer the question now than when the raven put it to me
- in&mdash;at&mdash;&ldquo;Where in?&mdash;where at?&rdquo; I said, and gave myself up
- as knowing anything of myself or the universe.
- </p>
- <p>
- I started to my feet, hurried across the room to the masked door, where
- the mutilated volume, sticking out from the flat of soulless, bodiless,
- non-existent books, appeared to beckon me, went down on my knees, and
- opened it as far as its position would permit, but could see nothing. I
- got up again, lighted a taper, and peeping as into a pair of reluctant
- jaws, perceived that the manuscript was verse. Further I could not carry
- discovery. Beginnings of lines were visible on the left-hand page, and
- ends of lines on the other; but I could not, of course, get at the
- beginning and end of a single line, and was unable, in what I could read,
- to make any guess at the sense. The mere words, however, woke in me
- feelings which to describe was, from their strangeness, impossible. Some
- dreams, some poems, some musical phrases, some pictures, wake feelings
- such as one never had before, new in colour and form&mdash;spiritual
- sensations, as it were, hitherto unproved: here, some of the phrases, some
- of the senseless half-lines, some even of the individual words affected me
- in similar fashion&mdash;as with the aroma of an idea, rousing in me a
- great longing to know what the poem or poems might, even yet in their
- mutilation, hold or suggest.
- </p>
- <p>
- I copied out a few of the larger shreds attainable, and tried hard to
- complete some of the lines, but without the least success. The only thing
- I gained in the effort was so much weariness that, when I went to bed, I
- fell asleep at once and slept soundly.
- </p>
- <p>
- In the morning all that horror of the empty garret spaces had left me.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0004" id="link2HCH0004">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER IV. SOMEWHERE OR NOWHERE?
- </h2>
- <p>
- The sun was very bright, but I doubted if the day would long be fine, and
- looked into the milky sapphire I wore, to see whether the star in it was
- clear. It was even less defined than I had expected. I rose from the
- breakfast-table, and went to the window to glance at the stone again.
- There had been heavy rain in the night, and on the lawn was a thrush
- breaking his way into the shell of a snail.
- </p>
- <p>
- As I was turning my ring about to catch the response of the star to the
- sun, I spied a keen black eye gazing at me out of the milky misty blue.
- The sight startled me so that I dropped the ring, and when I picked it up
- the eye was gone from it. The same moment the sun was obscured; a dark
- vapour covered him, and in a minute or two the whole sky was clouded. The
- air had grown sultry, and a gust of wind came suddenly. A moment more and
- there was a flash of lightning, with a single sharp thunder-clap. Then the
- rain fell in torrents.
- </p>
- <p>
- I had opened the window, and stood there looking out at the precipitous
- rain, when I descried a raven walking toward me over the grass, with
- solemn gait, and utter disregard of the falling deluge. Suspecting who he
- was, I congratulated myself that I was safe on the ground-floor. At the
- same time I had a conviction that, if I were not careful, something would
- happen.
- </p>
- <p>
- He came nearer and nearer, made a profound bow, and with a sudden winged
- leap stood on the window-sill. Then he stepped over the ledge, jumped down
- into the room, and walked to the door. I thought he was on his way to the
- library, and followed him, determined, if he went up the stair, not to
- take one step after him. He turned, however, neither toward the library
- nor the stair, but to a little door that gave upon a grass-patch in a nook
- between two portions of the rambling old house. I made haste to open it
- for him. He stepped out into its creeper-covered porch, and stood looking
- at the rain, which fell like a huge thin cataract; I stood in the door
- behind him. The second flash came, and was followed by a lengthened roll
- of more distant thunder. He turned his head over his shoulder and looked
- at me, as much as to say, &ldquo;You hear that?&rdquo; then swivelled it round again,
- and anew contemplated the weather, apparently with approbation. So human
- were his pose and carriage and the way he kept turning his head, that I
- remarked almost involuntarily,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Fine weather for the worms, Mr. Raven!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he answered, in the rather croaky voice I had learned to know, &ldquo;the
- ground will be nice for them to get out and in!&mdash;It must be a grand
- time on the steppes of Uranus!&rdquo; he added, with a glance upward; &ldquo;I believe
- it is raining there too; it was, all the last week!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why should that make it a grand time?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because the animals there are all burrowers,&rdquo; he answered, &ldquo;&mdash;like
- the field-mice and the moles here.&mdash;They will be, for ages to come.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How do you know that, if I may be so bold?&rdquo; I rejoined.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;As any one would who had been there to see,&rdquo; he replied. &ldquo;It is a great
- sight, until you get used to it, when the earth gives a heave, and out
- comes a beast. You might think it a hairy elephant or a deinotherium&mdash;but
- none of the animals are the same as we have ever had here. I was almost
- frightened myself the first time I saw the dry-bog-serpent come wallowing
- out&mdash;such a head and mane! and SUCH eyes!&mdash;but the shower is
- nearly over. It will stop directly after the next thunder-clap. There it
- is!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A flash came with the words, and in about half a minute the thunder. Then
- the rain ceased.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now we should be going!&rdquo; said the raven, and stepped to the front of the
- porch.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Going where?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Going where we have to go,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;You did not surely think you
- had got home? I told you there was no going out and in at pleasure until
- you were at home!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not want to go,&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That does not make any difference&mdash;at least not much,&rdquo; he answered.
- &ldquo;This is the way!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am quite content where I am.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You think so, but you are not. Come along.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He hopped from the porch onto the grass, and turned, waiting.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will not leave the house to-day,&rdquo; I said with obstinacy.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will come into the garden!&rdquo; rejoined the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I give in so far,&rdquo; I replied, and stepped from the porch.
- </p>
- <p>
- The sun broke through the clouds, and the raindrops flashed and sparkled
- on the grass. The raven was walking over it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will wet your feet!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And mire my beak,&rdquo; he answered, immediately plunging it deep in the sod,
- and drawing out a great wriggling red worm. He threw back his head, and
- tossed it in the air. It spread great wings, gorgeous in red and black,
- and soared aloft.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tut! tut!&rdquo; I exclaimed; &ldquo;you mistake, Mr. Raven: worms are not the larvæ
- of butterflies!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never mind,&rdquo; he croaked; &ldquo;it will do for once! I&rsquo;m not a reading man at
- present, but sexton at the&mdash;at a certain graveyard&mdash;cemetery,
- more properly&mdash;in&mdash;at&mdash;no matter where!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I see! you can&rsquo;t keep your spade still: and when you have nothing to
- bury, you must dig something up! Only you should mind what it is before
- you make it fly! No creature should be allowed to forget what and where it
- came from!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why?&rdquo; said the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because it will grow proud, and cease to recognise its superiors.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- No man knows it when he is making an idiot of himself.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where DO the worms come from?&rdquo; said the raven, as if suddenly grown
- curious to know.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, from the earth, as you have just seen!&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, last!&rdquo; he replied. &ldquo;But they can&rsquo;t have come from it first&mdash;for
- that will never go back to it!&rdquo; he added, looking up.
- </p>
- <p>
- I looked up also, but could see nothing save a little dark cloud, the
- edges of which were red, as if with the light of the sunset.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Surely the sun is not going down!&rdquo; I exclaimed, struck with amazement.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, no!&rdquo; returned the raven. &ldquo;That red belongs to the worm.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You see what comes of making creatures forget their origin!&rdquo; I cried with
- some warmth.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is well, surely, if it be to rise higher and grow larger!&rdquo; he
- returned. &ldquo;But indeed I only teach them to find it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Would you have the air full of worms?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is the business of a sexton. If only the rest of the clergy
- understood it as well!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- In went his beak again through the soft turf, and out came the wriggling
- worm. He tossed it in the air, and away it flew.
- </p>
- <p>
- I looked behind me, and gave a cry of dismay: I had but that moment
- declared I would not leave the house, and already I was a stranger in the
- strange land!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What right have you to treat me so, Mr. Raven?&rdquo; I said with deep offence.
- &ldquo;Am I, or am I not, a free agent?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A man is as free as he chooses to make himself, never an atom freer,&rdquo;
- answered the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have no right to make me do things against my will!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When you have a will, you will find that no one can.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You wrong me in the very essence of my individuality!&rdquo; I persisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If you were an individual I could not, therefore now I do not. You are
- but beginning to become an individual.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- All about me was a pine-forest, in which my eyes were already searching
- deep, in the hope of discovering an unaccountable glimmer, and so finding
- my way home. But, alas! how could I any longer call that house HOME, where
- every door, every window opened into OUT, and even the garden I could not
- keep inside!
- </p>
- <p>
- I suppose I looked discomfited.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps it may comfort you,&rdquo; said the raven, &ldquo;to be told that you have
- not yet left your house, neither has your house left you. At the same time
- it cannot contain you, or you inhabit it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not understand you,&rdquo; I replied. &ldquo;Where am I?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In the region of the seven dimensions,&rdquo; he answered, with a curious noise
- in his throat, and a flutter of his tail. &ldquo;You had better follow me
- carefully now for a moment, lest you should hurt some one!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is nobody to hurt but yourself, Mr. Raven! I confess I should
- rather like to hurt you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That you see nobody is where the danger lies. But you see that large tree
- to your left, about thirty yards away?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course I do: why should I not?&rdquo; I answered testily.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ten minutes ago you did not see it, and now you do not know where it
- stands!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where do you think it stands?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why THERE, where you know it is!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is THERE?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You bother me with your silly questions!&rdquo; I cried. &ldquo;I am growing tired of
- you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That tree stands on the hearth of your kitchen, and grows nearly straight
- up its chimney,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now I KNOW you are making game of me!&rdquo; I answered, with a laugh of scorn.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Was I making game of you when you discovered me looking out of your
- star-sapphire yesterday?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That was this morning&mdash;not an hour ago!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have been widening your horizon longer than that, Mr. Vane; but never
- mind!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You mean you have been making a fool of me!&rdquo; I said, turning from him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Excuse me: no one can do that but yourself!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And I decline to do it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You mistake.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In declining to acknowledge yourself one already. You make yourself such
- by refusing what is true, and for that you will sorely punish yourself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How, again?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By believing what is not true.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then, if I walk to the other side of that tree, I shall walk through the
- kitchen fire?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Certainly. You would first, however, walk through the lady at the piano
- in the breakfast-room. That rosebush is close by her. You would give her a
- terrible start!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is no lady in the house!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed! Is not your housekeeper a lady? She is counted such in a certain
- country where all are servants, and the liveries one and multitudinous!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She cannot use the piano, anyhow!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Her niece can: she is there&mdash;a well-educated girl and a capital
- musician.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Excuse me; I cannot help it: you seem to me to be talking sheer
- nonsense!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If you could but hear the music! Those great long heads of wild hyacinth
- are inside the piano, among the strings of it, and give that peculiar
- sweetness to her playing!&mdash;Pardon me: I forgot your deafness!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Two objects,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;cannot exist in the same place at the same time!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Can they not? I did not know!&mdash;I remember now they do teach that
- with you. It is a great mistake&mdash;one of the greatest ever wiseacre
- made! No man of the universe, only a man of the world could have said so!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You a librarian, and talk such rubbish!&rdquo; I cried. &ldquo;Plainly, you did not
- read many of the books in your charge!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, yes! I went through all in your library&mdash;at the time, and came
- out at the other side not much the wiser. I was a bookworm then, but when
- I came to know it, I woke among the butterflies. To be sure I have given
- up reading for a good many years&mdash;ever since I was made sexton.&mdash;There!
- I smell Grieg&rsquo;s Wedding March in the quiver of those rose-petals!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I went to the rose-bush and listened hard, but could not hear the thinnest
- ghost of a sound; I only smelt something I had never before smelt in any
- rose. It was still rose-odour, but with a difference, caused, I suppose,
- by the Wedding March.
- </p>
- <p>
- When I looked up, there was the bird by my side.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Raven,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;forgive me for being so rude: I was irritated. Will
- you kindly show me my way home? I must go, for I have an appointment with
- my bailiff. One must not break faith with his servants!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You cannot break what was broken days ago!&rdquo; he answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do show me the way,&rdquo; I pleaded.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot,&rdquo; he returned. &ldquo;To go back, you must go through yourself, and
- that way no man can show another.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Entreaty was vain. I must accept my fate! But how was life to be lived in
- a world of which I had all the laws to learn? There would, however, be
- adventure! that held consolation; and whether I found my way home or not,
- I should at least have the rare advantage of knowing two worlds!
- </p>
- <p>
- I had never yet done anything to justify my existence; my former world was
- nothing the better for my sojourn in it: here, however, I must earn, or in
- some way find, my bread! But I reasoned that, as I was not to blame in
- being here, I might expect to be taken care of here as well as there! I
- had had nothing to do with getting into the world I had just left, and in
- it I had found myself heir to a large property! If that world, as I now
- saw, had a claim upon me because I had eaten, and could eat again, upon
- this world I had a claim because I must eat&mdash;when it would in return
- have a claim on me!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is no hurry,&rdquo; said the raven, who stood regarding me; &ldquo;we do not go
- much by the clock here. Still, the sooner one begins to do what has to be
- done, the better! I will take you to my wife.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Thank you. Let us go!&rdquo; I answered, and immediately he led the way.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0005" id="link2HCH0005">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER V. THE OLD CHURCH
- </h2>
- <p>
- I followed him deep into the pine-forest. Neither of us said much while
- yet the sacred gloom of it closed us round. We came to larger and yet
- larger trees&mdash;older, and more individual, some of them grotesque with
- age. Then the forest grew thinner.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You see that hawthorn?&rdquo; said my guide at length, pointing with his beak.
- </p>
- <p>
- I looked where the wood melted away on the edge of an open heath.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I see a gnarled old man, with a great white head,&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look again,&rdquo; he rejoined: &ldquo;it is a hawthorn.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It seems indeed an ancient hawthorn; but this is not the season for the
- hawthorn to blossom!&rdquo; I objected.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The season for the hawthorn to blossom,&rdquo; he replied, &ldquo;is when the
- hawthorn blossoms. That tree is in the ruins of the church on your
- home-farm. You were going to give some directions to the bailiff about its
- churchyard, were you not, the morning of the thunder?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I was going to tell him I wanted it turned into a wilderness of
- rose-trees, and that the plough must never come within three yards of it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen!&rdquo; said the raven, seeming to hold his breath.
- </p>
- <p>
- I listened, and heard&mdash;was it the sighing of a far-off musical wind&mdash;or
- the ghost of a music that had once been glad? Or did I indeed hear
- anything?
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They go there still,&rdquo; said the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who goes there? and where do they go?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Some of the people who used to pray there, go to the ruins still,&rdquo; he
- replied. &ldquo;But they will not go much longer, I think.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What makes them go now?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They need help from each other to get their thinking done, and their
- feelings hatched, so they talk and sing together; and then, they say, the
- big thought floats out of their hearts like a great ship out of the river
- at high water.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do they pray as well as sing?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No; they have found that each can best pray in his own silent heart.&mdash;Some
- people are always at their prayers.&mdash;Look! look! There goes one!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He pointed right up into the air. A snow-white pigeon was mounting, with
- quick and yet quicker wing-flap, the unseen spiral of an ethereal stair.
- The sunshine flashed quivering from its wings.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I see a pigeon!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course you see a pigeon,&rdquo; rejoined the raven, &ldquo;for there is the
- pigeon! I see a prayer on its way.&mdash;I wonder now what heart is that
- dove&rsquo;s mother! Some one may have come awake in my cemetery!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How can a pigeon be a prayer?&rdquo; I said. &ldquo;I understand, of course, how it
- should be a fit symbol or likeness for one; but a live pigeon to come out
- of a heart!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It MUST puzzle you! It cannot fail to do so!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A prayer is a thought, a thing spiritual!&rdquo; I pursued.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Very true! But if you understood any world besides your own, you would
- understand your own much better.&mdash;When a heart is really alive, then
- it is able to think live things. There is one heart all whose thoughts are
- strong, happy creatures, and whose very dreams are lives. When some pray,
- they lift heavy thoughts from the ground, only to drop them on it again;
- others send up their prayers in living shapes, this or that, the nearest
- likeness to each. All live things were thoughts to begin with, and are fit
- therefore to be used by those that think. When one says to the great
- Thinker:&mdash;&lsquo;Here is one of thy thoughts: I am thinking it now!&rsquo; that
- is a prayer&mdash;a word to the big heart from one of its own little
- hearts.&mdash;Look, there is another!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- This time the raven pointed his beak downward&mdash;to something at the
- foot of a block of granite. I looked, and saw a little flower. I had never
- seen one like it before, and cannot utter the feeling it woke in me by its
- gracious, trusting form, its colour, and its odour as of a new world that
- was yet the old. I can only say that it suggested an anemone, was of a
- pale rose-hue, and had a golden heart.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is a prayer-flower,&rdquo; said the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I never saw such a flower before!&rdquo; I rejoined.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is no other such. Not one prayer-flower is ever quite like
- another,&rdquo; he returned.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How do you know it a prayer-flower?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By the expression of it,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;More than that I cannot tell you.
- If you know it, you know it; if you do not, you do not.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Could you not teach me to know a prayer-flower when I see it?&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I could not. But if I could, what better would you be? you would not know
- it of YOURSELF and ITself! Why know the name of a thing when the thing
- itself you do not know? Whose work is it but your own to open your eyes?
- But indeed the business of the universe is to make such a fool of you that
- you will know yourself for one, and so begin to be wise!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But I did see that the flower was different from any flower I had ever
- seen before; therefore I knew that I must be seeing a shadow of the prayer
- in it; and a great awe came over me to think of the heart listening to the
- flower.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0006" id="link2HCH0006">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER VI. THE SEXTON&rsquo;S COTTAGE
- </h2>
- <p>
- We had been for some time walking over a rocky moorland covered with dry
- plants and mosses, when I descried a little cottage in the farthest
- distance. The sun was not yet down, but he was wrapt in a gray cloud. The
- heath looked as if it had never been warm, and the wind blew strangely
- cold, as if from some region where it was always night.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Here we are at last!&rdquo; said the raven. &ldquo;What a long way it is! In half the
- time I could have gone to Paradise and seen my cousin&mdash;him, you
- remember, who never came back to Noah! Dear! dear! it is almost winter!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Winter!&rdquo; I cried; &ldquo;it seems but half a day since we left home!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is because we have travelled so fast,&rdquo; answered the raven. &ldquo;In your
- world you cannot pull up the plumb-line you call gravitation, and let the
- world spin round under your feet! But here is my wife&rsquo;s house! She is very
- good to let me live with her, and call it the sexton&rsquo;s cottage!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But where is your churchyard&mdash;your cemetery&mdash;where you make
- your graves, I mean?&rdquo; said I, seeing nothing but the flat heath.
- </p>
- <p>
- The raven stretched his neck, held out his beak horizontally, turned it
- slowly round to all the points of the compass, and said nothing.
- </p>
- <p>
- I followed the beak with my eyes, and lo, without church or graves, all
- was a churchyard! Wherever the dreary wind swept, there was the raven&rsquo;s
- cemetery! He was sexton of all he surveyed! lord of all that was laid
- aside! I stood in the burial-ground of the universe; its compass the
- unenclosed heath, its wall the gray horizon, low and starless! I had left
- spring and summer, autumn and sunshine behind me, and come to the winter
- that waited for me! I had set out in the prime of my youth, and here I was
- already!&mdash;But I mistook. The day might well be long in that region,
- for it contained the seasons. Winter slept there, the night through, in
- his winding-sheet of ice; with childlike smile, Spring came awake in the
- dawn; at noon, Summer blazed abroad in her gorgeous beauty; with the
- slow-changing afternoon, old Autumn crept in, and died at the first breath
- of the vaporous, ghosty night.
- </p>
- <p>
- As we drew near the cottage, the clouded sun was rushing down the steepest
- slope of the west, and he sank while we were yet a few yards from the
- door. The same instant I was assailed by a cold that seemed almost a
- material presence, and I struggled across the threshold as if from the
- clutches of an icy death. A wind swelled up on the moor, and rushed at the
- door as with difficulty I closed it behind me. Then all was still, and I
- looked about me.
- </p>
- <p>
- A candle burned on a deal table in the middle of the room, and the first
- thing I saw was the lid of a coffin, as I thought, set up against the
- wall; but it opened, for it was a door, and a woman entered. She was all
- in white&mdash;as white as new-fallen snow; and her face was as white as
- her dress, but not like snow, for at once it suggested warmth. I thought
- her features were perfect, but her eyes made me forget them. The life of
- her face and her whole person was gathered and concentrated in her eyes,
- where it became light. It might have been coming death that made her face
- luminous, but the eyes had life in them for a nation&mdash;large, and dark
- with a darkness ever deepening as I gazed. A whole night-heaven lay
- condensed in each pupil; all the stars were in its blackness, and flashed;
- while round it for a horizon lay coiled an iris of the eternal twilight.
- What any eye IS, God only knows: her eyes must have been coming direct out
- of his own! the still face might be a primeval perfection; the live eyes
- were a continuous creation.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Here is Mr. Vane, wife!&rdquo; said the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He is welcome,&rdquo; she answered, in a low, rich, gentle voice. Treasures of
- immortal sound seemed to be buried in it.
- </p>
- <p>
- I gazed, and could not speak.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I knew you would be glad to see him!&rdquo; added the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- She stood in front of the door by which she had entered, and did not come
- nearer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will he sleep?&rdquo; she asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I fear not,&rdquo; he replied; &ldquo;he is neither weary nor heavy laden.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why then have you brought him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have my fears it may prove precipitate.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not quite understand you,&rdquo; I said, with an uneasy foreboding as to
- what she meant, but a vague hope of some escape. &ldquo;Surely a man must do a
- day&rsquo;s work first!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I gazed into the white face of the woman, and my heart fluttered. She
- returned my gaze in silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let me first go home,&rdquo; I resumed, &ldquo;and come again after I have found or
- made, invented, or at least discovered something!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He has not yet learned that the day begins with sleep!&rdquo; said the woman,
- turning to her husband. &ldquo;Tell him he must rest before he can do anything!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Men,&rdquo; he answered, &ldquo;think so much of having done, that they fall asleep
- upon it. They cannot empty an egg but they turn into the shell, and lie
- down!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The words drew my eyes from the woman to the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- I saw no raven, but the librarian&mdash;the same slender elderly man, in a
- rusty black coat, large in the body and long in the tails. I had seen only
- his back before; now for the first time I saw his face. It was so thin
- that it showed the shape of the bones under it, suggesting the skulls his
- last-claimed profession must have made him familiar with. But in truth I
- had never before seen a face so alive, or a look so keen or so friendly as
- that in his pale blue eyes, which yet had a haze about them as if they had
- done much weeping.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You knew I was not a raven!&rdquo; he said with a smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I knew you were Mr. Raven,&rdquo; I replied; &ldquo;but somehow I thought you a bird
- too!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What made you think me a bird?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You looked a raven, and I saw you dig worms out of the earth with your
- beak.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And then?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Toss them in the air.&rdquo; &ldquo;And then?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They grew butterflies, and flew away.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you ever see a raven do that? I told you I was a sexton!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Does a sexton toss worms in the air, and turn them into butterflies?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I never saw one do it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You saw me do it!&mdash;But I am still librarian in your house, for I
- never was dismissed, and never gave up the office. Now I am librarian here
- as well.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But you have just told me you were sexton here!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So I am. It is much the same profession. Except you are a true sexton,
- books are but dead bodies to you, and a library nothing but a catacomb!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You bewilder me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s all right!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A few moments he stood silent. The woman, moveless as a statue, stood
- silent also by the coffin-door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Upon occasion,&rdquo; said the sexton at length, &ldquo;it is more convenient to put
- one&rsquo;s bird-self in front. Every one, as you ought to know, has a
- beast-self&mdash;and a bird-self, and a stupid fish-self, ay, and a
- creeping serpent-self too&mdash;which it takes a deal of crushing to kill!
- In truth he has also a tree-self and a crystal-self, and I don&rsquo;t know how
- many selves more&mdash;all to get into harmony. You can tell what sort a
- man is by his creature that comes oftenest to the front.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned to his wife, and I considered him more closely. He was above the
- ordinary height, and stood more erect than when last I saw him. His face
- was, like his wife&rsquo;s, very pale; its nose handsomely encased the beak that
- had retired within it; its lips were very thin, and even they had no
- colour, but their curves were beautiful, and about them quivered a shadowy
- smile that had humour in it as well as love and pity.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We are in want of something to eat and drink, wife,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;we have
- come a long way!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You know, husband,&rdquo; she answered, &ldquo;we can give only to him that asks.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She turned her unchanging face and radiant eyes upon mine.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Please give me something to eat, Mrs. Raven,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;and something&mdash;what
- you will&mdash;to quench my thirst.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your thirst must be greater before you can have what will quench it,&rdquo; she
- replied; &ldquo;but what I can give you, I will gladly.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She went to a cupboard in the wall, brought from it bread and wine, and
- set them on the table.
- </p>
- <p>
- We sat down to the perfect meal; and as I ate, the bread and wine seemed
- to go deeper than the hunger and thirst. Anxiety and discomfort vanished;
- expectation took their place.
- </p>
- <p>
- I grew very sleepy, and now first felt weary.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have earned neither food nor sleep, Mrs. Raven,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;but you have
- given me the one freely, and now I hope you will give me the other, for I
- sorely need it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Sleep is too fine a thing ever to be earned,&rdquo; said the sexton; &ldquo;it must
- be given and accepted, for it is a necessity. But it would be perilous to
- use this house as a half-way hostelry&mdash;for the repose of a night,
- that is, merely.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A wild-looking little black cat jumped on his knee as he spoke. He patted
- it as one pats a child to make it go to sleep: he seemed to me patting
- down the sod upon a grave&mdash;patting it lovingly, with an inward
- lullaby.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Here is one of Mara&rsquo;s kittens!&rdquo; he said to his wife: &ldquo;will you give it
- something and put it out? she may want it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The woman took it from him gently, gave it a little piece of bread, and
- went out with it, closing the door behind her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How then am I to make use of your hospitality?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By accepting it to the full,&rdquo; he answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not understand.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In this house no one wakes of himself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because no one anywhere ever wakes of himself. You can wake yourself no
- more than you can make yourself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then perhaps you or Mrs. Raven would kindly call me!&rdquo; I said, still
- nowise understanding, but feeling afresh that vague foreboding.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We cannot.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How dare I then go to sleep?&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If you would have the rest of this house, you must not trouble yourself
- about waking. You must go to sleep heartily, altogether and outright.&rdquo; My
- soul sank within me.
- </p>
- <p>
- The sexton sat looking me in the face. His eyes seemed to say, &ldquo;Will you
- not trust me?&rdquo; I returned his gaze, and answered,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then come,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;I will show you your couch.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- As we rose, the woman came in. She took up the candle, turned to the inner
- door, and led the way. I went close behind her, and the sexton followed.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0007" id="link2HCH0007">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER VII. THE CEMETERY
- </h2>
- <p>
- The air as of an ice-house met me crossing the threshold. The door fell-to
- behind us. The sexton said something to his wife that made her turn toward
- us.&mdash;What a change had passed upon her! It was as if the splendour of
- her eyes had grown too much for them to hold, and, sinking into her
- countenance, made it flash with a loveliness like that of Beatrice in the
- white rose of the redeemed. Life itself, life eternal, immortal, streamed
- from it, an unbroken lightning. Even her hands shone with a white
- radiance, every &ldquo;pearl-shell helmet&rdquo; gleaming like a moonstone. Her beauty
- was overpowering; I was glad when she turned it from me.
- </p>
- <p>
- But the light of the candle reached such a little way, that at first I
- could see nothing of the place. Presently, however, it fell on something
- that glimmered, a little raised from the floor. Was it a bed? Could live
- thing sleep in such a mortal cold? Then surely it was no wonder it should
- not wake of itself! Beyond that appeared a fainter shine; and then I
- thought I descried uncertain gleams on every side.
- </p>
- <p>
- A few paces brought us to the first; it was a human form under a sheet,
- straight and still&mdash;whether of man or woman I could not tell, for the
- light seemed to avoid the face as we passed.
- </p>
- <p>
- I soon perceived that we were walking along an aisle of couches, on almost
- every one of which, with its head to the passage, lay something asleep or
- dead, covered with a sheet white as snow. My soul grew silent with dread.
- Through aisle after aisle we went, among couches innumerable. I could see
- only a few of them at once, but they were on all sides, vanishing, as it
- seemed, in the infinite.&mdash;Was it here lay my choice of a bed? Must I
- go to sleep among the unwaking, with no one to rouse me? Was this the
- sexton&rsquo;s library? were these his books? Truly it was no half-way house,
- this chamber of the dead!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;One of the cellars I am placed to watch!&rdquo; remarked Mr. Raven&mdash;in a
- low voice, as if fearing to disturb his silent guests. &ldquo;Much wine is set
- here to ripen!&mdash;But it is dark for a stranger!&rdquo; he added.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The moon is rising; she will soon be here,&rdquo; said his wife, and her clear
- voice, low and sweet, sounded of ancient sorrow long bidden adieu.
- </p>
- <p>
- Even as she spoke the moon looked in at an opening in the wall, and a
- thousand gleams of white responded to her shine. But not yet could I
- descry beginning or end of the couches. They stretched away and away, as
- if for all the disparted world to sleep upon. For along the far receding
- narrow ways, every couch stood by itself, and on each slept a lonely
- sleeper. I thought at first their sleep was death, but I soon saw it was
- something deeper still&mdash;a something I did not know.
- </p>
- <p>
- The moon rose higher, and shone through other openings, but I could never
- see enough of the place at once to know its shape or character; now it
- would resemble a long cathedral nave, now a huge barn made into a dwelling
- of tombs. She looked colder than any moon in the frostiest night of the
- world, and where she shone direct upon them, cast a bluish, icy gleam on
- the white sheets and the pallid countenances&mdash;but it might be the
- faces that made the moon so cold!
- </p>
- <p>
- Of such as I could see, all were alike in the brotherhood of death, all
- unlike in the character and history recorded upon them. Here lay a man who
- had died&mdash;for although this was not death, I have no other name to
- give it&mdash;in the prime of manly strength; his dark beard seemed to
- flow like a liberated stream from the glacier of his frozen countenance;
- his forehead was smooth as polished marble; a shadow of pain lingered
- about his lips, but only a shadow. On the next couch lay the form of a
- girl, passing lovely to behold. The sadness left on her face by parting
- was not yet absorbed in perfect peace, but absolute submission possessed
- the placid features, which bore no sign of wasting disease, of &ldquo;killing
- care or grief of heart&rdquo;: if pain had been there, it was long charmed
- asleep, never again to wake. Many were the beautiful that there lay very
- still&mdash;some of them mere children; but I did not see one infant. The
- most beautiful of all was a lady whose white hair, and that alone,
- suggested her old when first she fell asleep. On her stately countenance
- rested&mdash;not submission, but a right noble acquiescence, an assurance,
- firm as the foundations of the universe, that all was as it should be. On
- some faces lingered the almost obliterated scars of strife, the marrings
- of hopeless loss, the fading shadows of sorrows that had seemed
- inconsolable: the aurora of the great morning had not yet quite melted
- them away; but those faces were few, and every one that bore such brand of
- pain seemed to plead, &ldquo;Pardon me: I died only yesterday!&rdquo; or, &ldquo;Pardon me:
- I died but a century ago!&rdquo; That some had been dead for ages I knew, not
- merely by their unutterable repose, but by something for which I have
- neither word nor symbol.
- </p>
- <p>
- We came at last to three empty couches, immediately beyond which lay the
- form of a beautiful woman, a little past the prime of life. One of her
- arms was outside the sheet, and her hand lay with the palm upward, in its
- centre a dark spot. Next to her was the stalwart figure of a man of middle
- age. His arm too was outside the sheet, the strong hand almost closed, as
- if clenched on the grip of a sword. I thought he must be a king who had
- died fighting for the truth.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you hold the candle nearer, wife?&rdquo; whispered the sexton, bending
- down to examine the woman&rsquo;s hand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It heals well,&rdquo; he murmured to himself: &ldquo;the nail found in her nothing to
- hurt!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- At last I ventured to speak.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are they not dead?&rdquo; I asked softly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot answer you,&rdquo; he replied in a subdued voice. &ldquo;I almost forget
- what they mean by DEAD in the old world. If I said a person was dead, my
- wife would understand one thing, and you would imagine another.&mdash;This
- is but one of my treasure vaults,&rdquo; he went on, &ldquo;and all my guests are not
- laid in vaults: out there on the moor they lie thick as the leaves of a
- forest after the first blast of your winter&mdash;thick, let me say
- rather, as if the great white rose of heaven had shed its petals over it.
- All night the moon reads their faces, and smiles.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But why leave them in the corrupting moonlight?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Our moon,&rdquo; he answered, &ldquo;is not like yours&mdash;the old cinder of a
- burnt-out world; her beams embalm the dead, not corrupt them. You observe
- that here the sexton lays his dead on the earth; he buries very few under
- it! In your world he lays huge stones on them, as if to keep them down; I
- watch for the hour to ring the resurrection-bell, and wake those that are
- still asleep. Your sexton looks at the clock to know when to ring the
- dead-alive to church; I hearken for the cock on the spire to crow; &lsquo;AWAKE,
- THOU THAT SLEEPEST, AND ARISE FROM THE DEAD!&rsquo;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I began to conclude that the self-styled sexton was in truth an insane
- parson: the whole thing was too mad! But how was I to get away from it? I
- was helpless! In this world of the dead, the raven and his wife were the
- only living I had yet seen: whither should I turn for help? I was lost in
- a space larger than imagination; for if here two things, or any parts of
- them, could occupy the same space, why not twenty or ten thousand?&mdash;But
- I dared not think further in that direction.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You seem in your dead to see differences beyond my perception!&rdquo; I
- ventured to remark.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;None of those you see,&rdquo; he answered, &ldquo;are in truth quite dead yet, and
- some have but just begun to come alive and die. Others had begun to die,
- that is to come alive, long before they came to us; and when such are
- indeed dead, that instant they will wake and leave us. Almost every night
- some rise and go. But I will not say more, for I find my words only
- mislead you!&mdash;This is the couch that has been waiting for you,&rdquo; he
- ended, pointing to one of the three.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why just this?&rdquo; I said, beginning to tremble, and anxious by parley to
- delay.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;For reasons which one day you will be glad to know,&rdquo; he answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why not know them now?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That also you will know when you wake.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But these are all dead, and I am alive!&rdquo; I objected, shuddering.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not much,&rdquo; rejoined the sexton with a smile, &ldquo;&mdash;not nearly enough!
- Blessed be the true life that the pauses between its throbs are not
- death!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The place is too cold to let one sleep!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do these find it so?&rdquo; he returned. &ldquo;They sleep well&mdash;or will soon.
- Of cold they feel not a breath: it heals their wounds.&mdash;Do not be a
- coward, Mr. Vane. Turn your back on fear, and your face to whatever may
- come. Give yourself up to the night, and you will rest indeed. Harm will
- not come to you, but a good you cannot foreknow.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The sexton and I stood by the side of the couch, his wife, with the candle
- in her hand, at the foot of it. Her eyes were full of light, but her face
- was again of a still whiteness; it was no longer radiant.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Would they have me make of a charnel-house my bed-chamber?&rdquo; I cried
- aloud. &ldquo;I will not. I will lie abroad on the heath; it cannot be colder
- there!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have just told you that the dead are there also,
- </p>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
- &lsquo;Thick as autumnal leaves that strow the brooks
- In Vallombrosa,&rsquo;&rdquo;
- </pre>
- <p>
- said the librarian.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will NOT,&rdquo; I cried again; and in the compassing dark, the two gleamed
- out like spectres that waited on the dead; neither answered me; each stood
- still and sad, and looked at the other.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Be of good comfort; we watch the flock of the great shepherd,&rdquo; said the
- sexton to his wife.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he turned to me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Didst thou not find the air of the place pure and sweet when thou
- enteredst it?&rdquo; he asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes; but oh, so cold!&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then know,&rdquo; he returned, and his voice was stern, &ldquo;that thou who callest
- thyself alive, hast brought into this chamber the odours of death, and its
- air will not be wholesome for the sleepers until thou art gone from it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They went farther into the great chamber, and I was left alone in the
- moonlight with the dead.
- </p>
- <p>
- I turned to escape.
- </p>
- <p>
- What a long way I found it back through the dead! At first I was too angry
- to be afraid, but as I grew calm, the still shapes grew terrible. At last,
- with loud offence to the gracious silence, I ran, I fled wildly, and,
- bursting out, flung-to the door behind me. It closed with an awful
- silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- I stood in pitch-darkness. Feeling about me, I found a door, opened it,
- and was aware of the dim light of a lamp. I stood in my library, with the
- handle of the masked door in my hand.
- </p>
- <p>
- Had I come to myself out of a vision?&mdash;or lost myself by going back
- to one? Which was the real&mdash;what I now saw, or what I had just ceased
- to see? Could both be real, interpenetrating yet unmingling?
- </p>
- <p>
- I threw myself on a couch, and fell asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- In the library was one small window to the east, through which, at this
- time of the year, the first rays of the sun shone upon a mirror whence
- they were reflected on the masked door: when I woke, there they shone, and
- thither they drew my eyes. With the feeling that behind it must lie the
- boundless chamber I had left by that door, I sprang to my feet, and opened
- it. The light, like an eager hound, shot before me into the closet, and
- pounced upon the gilded edges of a large book.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What idiot,&rdquo; I cried, &ldquo;has put that book in the shelf the wrong way?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But the gilded edges, reflecting the light a second time, flung it on a
- nest of drawers in a dark corner, and I saw that one of them was half
- open.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;More meddling!&rdquo; I cried, and went to close the drawer.
- </p>
- <p>
- It contained old papers, and seemed more than full, for it would not
- close. Taking the topmost one out, I perceived that it was in my father&rsquo;s
- writing and of some length. The words on which first my eyes fell, at once
- made me eager to learn what it contained. I carried it to the library, sat
- down in one of the western windows, and read what follows.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0008" id="link2HCH0008">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER VIII. MY FATHER&rsquo;S MANUSCRIPT
- </h2>
- <p>
- I am filled with awe of what I have to write. The sun is shining golden
- above me; the sea lies blue beneath his gaze; the same world sends its
- growing things up to the sun, and its flying things into the air which I
- have breathed from my infancy; but I know the outspread splendour a
- passing show, and that at any moment it may, like the drop-scene of a
- stage, be lifted to reveal more wonderful things.
- </p>
- <p>
- Shortly after my father&rsquo;s death, I was seated one morning in the library.
- I had been, somewhat listlessly, regarding the portrait that hangs among
- the books, which I knew only as that of a distant ancestor, and wishing I
- could learn something of its original. Then I had taken a book from the
- shelves and begun to read.
- </p>
- <p>
- Glancing up from it, I saw coming toward me&mdash;not between me and the
- door, but between me and the portrait&mdash;a thin pale man in rusty
- black. He looked sharp and eager, and had a notable nose, at once
- reminding me of a certain jug my sisters used to call Mr. Crow.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Finding myself in your vicinity, Mr. Vane, I have given myself the
- pleasure of calling,&rdquo; he said, in a peculiar but not disagreeable voice.
- &ldquo;Your honoured grandfather treated me&mdash;I may say it without
- presumption&mdash;as a friend, having known me from childhood as his
- father&rsquo;s librarian.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It did not strike me at the time how old the man must be.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;May I ask where you live now, Mr. Crow?&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- He smiled an amused smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You nearly hit my name,&rdquo; he rejoined, &ldquo;which shows the family insight.
- You have seen me before, but only once, and could not then have heard it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where was that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In this very room. You were quite a child, however!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I could not be sure that I remembered him, but for a moment I fancied I
- did, and I begged him to set me right as to his name.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is such a thing as remembering without recognising the memory in
- it,&rdquo; he remarked. &ldquo;For my name&mdash;which you have near enough&mdash;it
- used to be Raven.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I had heard the name, for marvellous tales had brought it me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is very kind of you to come and see me,&rdquo; I said. &ldquo;Will you not sit
- down?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He seated himself at once.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You knew my father, then, I presume?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I knew him,&rdquo; he answered with a curious smile, &ldquo;but he did not care about
- my acquaintance, and we never met.&mdash;That gentleman, however,&rdquo; he
- added, pointing to the portrait,&mdash;&ldquo;old Sir Up&rsquo;ard, his people called
- him,&mdash;was in his day a friend of mine yet more intimate than ever
- your grandfather became.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Then at length I began to think the interview a strange one. But in truth
- it was hardly stranger that my visitor should remember Sir Upward, than
- that he should have been my great-grandfather&rsquo;s librarian!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I owe him much,&rdquo; he continued; &ldquo;for, although I had read many more books
- than he, yet, through the special direction of his studies, he was able to
- inform me of a certain relation of modes which I should never have
- discovered of myself, and could hardly have learned from any one else.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Would you mind telling me all about that?&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By no means&mdash;as much at least as I am able: there are not such
- things as wilful secrets,&rdquo; he answered&mdash;and went on.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That closet held his library&mdash;a hundred manuscripts or so, for
- printing was not then invented. One morning I sat there, working at a
- catalogue of them, when he looked in at the door, and said, &lsquo;Come.&rsquo; I laid
- down my pen and followed him&mdash;across the great hall, down a steep
- rough descent, and along an underground passage to a tower he had lately
- built, consisting of a stair and a room at the top of it. The door of this
- room had a tremendous lock, which he undid with the smallest key I ever
- saw. I had scarcely crossed the threshold after him, when, to my eyes, he
- began to dwindle, and grew less and less. All at once my vision seemed to
- come right, and I saw that he was moving swiftly away from me. In a minute
- more he was the merest speck in the distance, with the tops of blue
- mountains beyond him, clear against a sky of paler blue. I recognised the
- country, for I had gone there and come again many a time, although I had
- never known this way to it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Many years after, when the tower had long disappeared, I taught one of
- his descendants what Sir Upward had taught me; and now and then to this
- day I use your house when I want to go the nearest way home. I must indeed&mdash;without
- your leave, for which I ask your pardon&mdash;have by this time well
- established a right of way through it&mdash;not from front to back, but
- from bottom to top!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You would have me then understand, Mr. Raven,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;that you go
- through my house into another world, heedless of disparting space?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That I go through it is an incontrovertible acknowledgement of space,&rdquo;
- returned the old librarian.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Please do not quibble, Mr. Raven,&rdquo; I rejoined. &ldquo;Please to take my
- question as you know I mean it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is in your house a door, one step through which carries me into a
- world very much another than this.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A better?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not throughout; but so much another that most of its physical, and many
- of its mental laws are different from those of this world. As for moral
- laws, they must everywhere be fundamentally the same.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You try my power of belief!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You take me for a madman, probably?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You do not look like one.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A liar then?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You give me no ground to think you such.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Only you do not believe me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will go out of that door with you if you like: I believe in you enough
- to risk the attempt.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The blunder all my children make!&rdquo; he murmured. &ldquo;The only door out is the
- door in!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I began to think he must be crazy. He sat silent for a moment, his head
- resting on his hand, his elbow on the table, and his eyes on the books
- before him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A book,&rdquo; he said louder, &ldquo;is a door in, and therefore a door out.&mdash;I
- see old Sir Up&rsquo;ard,&rdquo; he went on, closing his eyes, &ldquo;and my heart swells
- with love to him:&mdash;what world is he in?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The world of your heart!&rdquo; I replied; &ldquo;&mdash;that is, the idea of him is
- there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is one world then at least on which your hall-door does not open?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I grant you so much; but the things in that world are not things to have
- and to hold.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Think a little farther,&rdquo; he rejoined: &ldquo;did anything ever become yours,
- except by getting into that world?&mdash;The thought is beyond you,
- however, at present!&mdash;I tell you there are more worlds, and more
- doors to them, than you will think of in many years!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He rose, left the library, crossed the hall, and went straight up to the
- garret, familiar evidently with every turn. I followed, studying his back.
- His hair hung down long and dark, straight and glossy. His coat was wide
- and reached to his heels. His shoes seemed too large for him.
- </p>
- <p>
- In the garret a light came through at the edges of the great roofing
- slabs, and showed us parts where was no flooring, and we must step from
- joist to joist: in the middle of one of these spaces rose a partition,
- with a door: through it I followed Mr. Raven into a small, obscure
- chamber, whose top contracted as it rose, and went slanting through the
- roof.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is the door I spoke of,&rdquo; he said, pointing to an oblong mirror that
- stood on the floor and leaned against the wall. I went in front of it, and
- saw our figures dimly reflected in its dusty face. There was something
- about it that made me uneasy. It looked old-fashioned and neglected, but,
- notwithstanding its ordinary seeming, the eagle, perched with outstretched
- wings on the top, appeared threatful.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;As a mirror,&rdquo; said the librarian, &ldquo;it has grown dingy with age; but that
- is no matter: its clearness depends on the light.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Light!&rdquo; I rejoined; &ldquo;there is no light here!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He did not answer me, but began to pull at a little chain on the opposite
- wall. I heard a creaking: the top of the chamber was turning slowly round.
- He ceased pulling, looked at his watch, and began to pull again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We arrive almost to the moment!&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;it is on the very stroke of
- noon!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The top went creaking and revolving for a minute or so. Then he pulled two
- other chains, now this, now that, and returned to the first. A moment more
- and the chamber grew much clearer: a patch of sunlight had fallen upon a
- mirror on the wall opposite that against which the other leaned, and on
- the dust I saw the path of the reflected rays to the mirror on the ground.
- But from the latter none were returned; they seemed to go clean through;
- there was nowhere in the chamber a second patch of light!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where are the sunrays gone?&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That I cannot tell,&rdquo; returned Mr. Raven; &ldquo;&mdash;back, perhaps, to where
- they came from first. They now belong, I fancy, to a sense not yet
- developed in us.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He then talked of the relations of mind to matter, and of senses to
- qualities, in a way I could only a little understand, whence he went on to
- yet stranger things which I could not at all comprehend. He spoke much
- about dimensions, telling me that there were many more than three, some of
- them concerned with powers which were indeed in us, but of which as yet we
- knew absolutely nothing. His words, however, I confess, took little more
- hold of me than the light did of the mirror, for I thought he hardly knew
- what he was saying.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly I was aware that our forms had gone from the mirror, which seemed
- full of a white mist. As I gazed I saw, growing gradually visible beyond
- the mist, the tops of a range of mountains, which became clearer and
- clearer. Soon the mist vanished entirely, uncovering the face of a wide
- heath, on which, at some distance, was the figure of a man moving swiftly
- away. I turned to address my companion; he was no longer by my side. I
- looked again at the form in the mirror, and recognised the wide coat
- flying, the black hair lifting in a wind that did not touch me. I rushed
- in terror from the place.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0009" id="link2HCH0009">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER IX. I REPENT
- </h2>
- <p>
- I laid the manuscript down, consoled to find that my father had had a peep
- into that mysterious world, and that he knew Mr. Raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then I remembered that I had never heard the cause or any circumstance of
- my father&rsquo;s death, and began to believe that he must at last have followed
- Mr. Raven, and not come back; whereupon I speedily grew ashamed of my
- flight. What wondrous facts might I not by this time have gathered
- concerning life and death, and wide regions beyond ordinary perception!
- Assuredly the Ravens were good people, and a night in their house would
- nowise have hurt me! They were doubtless strange, but it was faculty in
- which the one was peculiar, and beauty in which the other was marvellous!
- And I had not believed in them! had treated them as unworthy of my
- confidence, as harbouring a design against me! The more I thought of my
- behaviour to them, the more disgusted I became with myself. Why should I
- have feared such dead? To share their holy rest was an honour of which I
- had proved myself unworthy! What harm could that sleeping king, that lady
- with the wound in her palm, have done me? I fell a longing after the sweet
- and stately stillness of their two countenances, and wept. Weeping I threw
- myself on a couch, and suddenly fell asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- As suddenly I woke, feeling as if some one had called me. The house was
- still as an empty church. A blackbird was singing on the lawn. I said to
- myself, &ldquo;I will go and tell them I am ashamed, and will do whatever they
- would have me do!&rdquo; I rose, and went straight up the stairs to the garret.
- </p>
- <p>
- The wooden chamber was just as when first I saw it, the mirror dimly
- reflecting everything before it. It was nearly noon, and the sun would be
- a little higher than when first I came: I must raise the hood a little,
- and adjust the mirrors accordingly! If I had but been in time to see Mr.
- Raven do it!
- </p>
- <p>
- I pulled the chains, and let the light fall on the first mirror. I turned
- then to the other: there were the shapes of the former vision&mdash;distinguishable
- indeed, but tremulous like a landscape in a pool ruffled by &ldquo;a small
- pipling wind!&rdquo; I touched the glass; it was impermeable.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suspecting polarisation as the thing required, I shifted and shifted the
- mirrors, changing their relation, until at last, in a great degree, so far
- as I was concerned, by chance, things came right between them, and I saw
- the mountains blue and steady and clear. I stepped forward, and my feet
- were among the heather.
- </p>
- <p>
- All I knew of the way to the cottage was that we had gone through a
- pine-forest. I passed through many thickets and several small fir-woods,
- continually fancying afresh that I recognised something of the country;
- but I had come upon no forest, and now the sun was near the horizon, and
- the air had begun to grow chill with the coming winter, when, to my
- delight, I saw a little black object coming toward me: it was indeed the
- raven!
- </p>
- <p>
- I hastened to meet him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I beg your pardon, sir, for my rudeness last night,&rdquo; I said. &ldquo;Will you
- take me with you now? I heartily confess I do not deserve it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; he returned, and looked up. Then, after a brief pause, &ldquo;My wife does
- not expect you to-night,&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;She regrets that we at all encouraged
- your staying last week.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Take me to her that I may tell her how sorry I am,&rdquo; I begged humbly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is of no use,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;Your night was not come then, or you
- would not have left us. It is not come now, and I cannot show you the way.
- The dead were rejoicing under their daisies&mdash;they all lie among the
- roots of the flowers of heaven&mdash;at the thought of your delight when
- the winter should be past, and the morning with its birds come: ere you
- left them, they shivered in their beds. When the spring of the universe
- arrives,&mdash;but that cannot be for ages yet! how many, I do not know&mdash;and
- do not care to know.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me one thing, I beg of you, Mr. Raven: is my father with you? Have
- you seen him since he left the world?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes; he is with us, fast asleep. That was he you saw with his arm on the
- coverlet, his hand half closed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why did you not tell me? That I should have been so near him, and not
- know!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And turn your back on him!&rdquo; corrected the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I would have lain down at once had I known!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I doubt it. Had you been ready to lie down, you would have known him!&mdash;Old
- Sir Up&rsquo;ard,&rdquo; he went on, &ldquo;and your twice great-grandfather, both are up
- and away long ago. Your great-grandfather has been with us for many a
- year; I think he will soon begin to stir. You saw him last night, though
- of course you did not know him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why OF COURSE?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because he is so much nearer waking than you. No one who will not sleep
- can ever wake.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not at all understand you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You turned away, and would not understand!&rdquo; I held my peace.&mdash;But if
- I did not say something, he would go!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And my grandfather&mdash;is he also with you?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No; he is still in the Evil Wood, fighting the dead.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is the Evil Wood, that I may find him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will not find him; but you will hardly miss the wood. It is the place
- where those who will not sleep, wake up at night, to kill their dead and
- bury them.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot understand you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Naturally not. Neither do I understand you; I can read neither your heart
- nor your face. When my wife and I do not understand our children, it is
- because there is not enough of them to be understood. God alone can
- understand foolishness.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then,&rdquo; I said, feeling naked and very worthless, &ldquo;will you be so good as
- show me the nearest way home? There are more ways than one, I know, for I
- have gone by two already.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There are indeed many ways.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me, please, how to recognise the nearest.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot,&rdquo; answered the raven; &ldquo;you and I use the same words with
- different meanings. We are often unable to tell people what they NEED to
- know, because they WANT to know something else, and would therefore only
- misunderstand what we said. Home is ever so far away in the palm of your
- hand, and how to get there it is of no use to tell you. But you will get
- there; you must get there; you have to get there. Everybody who is not at
- home, has to go home. You thought you were at home where I found you: if
- that had been your home, you could not have left it. Nobody can leave
- home. And nobody ever was or ever will be at home without having gone
- there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Enigma treading on enigma!&rdquo; I exclaimed. &ldquo;I did not come here to be asked
- riddles.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No; but you came, and found the riddles waiting for you! Indeed you are
- yourself the only riddle. What you call riddles are truths, and seem
- riddles because you are not true.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Worse and worse!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And you MUST answer the riddles!&rdquo; he continued. &ldquo;They will go on asking
- themselves until you understand yourself. The universe is a riddle trying
- to get out, and you are holding your door hard against it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you not in pity tell me what I am to do&mdash;where I must go?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How should I tell YOUR to-do, or the way to it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If I am not to go home, at least direct me to some of my kind.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not know of any. The beings most like you are in that direction.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He pointed with his beak. I could see nothing but the setting sun, which
- blinded me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well,&rdquo; I said bitterly, &ldquo;I cannot help feeling hardly treated&mdash;taken
- from my home, abandoned in a strange world, and refused instruction as to
- where I am to go or what I am to do!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You forget,&rdquo; said the raven, &ldquo;that, when I brought you and you declined
- my hospitality, you reached what you call home in safety: now you are come
- of yourself! Good night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned and walked slowly away, with his beak toward the ground. I stood
- dazed. It was true I had come of myself, but had I not come with intent of
- atonement? My heart was sore, and in my brain was neither quest nor
- purpose, hope nor desire. I gazed after the raven, and would have followed
- him, but felt it useless.
- </p>
- <p>
- All at once he pounced on a spot, throwing the whole weight of his body on
- his bill, and for some moments dug vigorously. Then with a flutter of his
- wings he threw back his head, and something shot from his bill, cast high
- in the air. That moment the sun set, and the air at once grew very dusk,
- but the something opened into a soft radiance, and came pulsing toward me
- like a fire-fly, but with a much larger and a yellower light. It flew over
- my head. I turned and followed it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Here I interrupt my narrative to remark that it involves a constant
- struggle to say what cannot be said with even an approach to precision,
- the things recorded being, in their nature and in that of the creatures
- concerned in them, so inexpressibly different from any possible events of
- this economy, that I can present them only by giving, in the forms and
- language of life in this world, the modes in which they affected me&mdash;not
- the things themselves, but the feelings they woke in me. Even this much,
- however, I do with a continuous and abiding sense of failure, finding it
- impossible to present more than one phase of a multitudinously complicated
- significance, or one concentric sphere of a graduated embodiment. A single
- thing would sometimes seem to be and mean many things, with an uncertain
- identity at the heart of them, which kept constantly altering their look.
- I am indeed often driven to set down what I know to be but a clumsy and
- doubtful representation of the mere feeling aimed at, none of the
- communicating media of this world being fit to convey it, in its peculiar
- strangeness, with even an approach to clearness or certainty. Even to one
- who knew the region better than myself, I should have no assurance of
- transmitting the reality of my experience in it. While without a doubt,
- for instance, that I was actually regarding a scene of activity, I might
- be, at the same moment, in my consciousness aware that I was perusing a
- metaphysical argument.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0010" id="link2HCH0010">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER X. THE BAD BURROW
- </h2>
- <p>
- As the air grew black and the winter closed swiftly around me, the
- fluttering fire blazed out more luminous, and arresting its flight,
- hovered waiting. So soon as I came under its radiance, it flew slowly on,
- lingering now and then above spots where the ground was rocky. Every time
- I looked up, it seemed to have grown larger, and at length gave me an
- attendant shadow. Plainly a bird-butterfly, it flew with a certain
- swallowy double. Its wings were very large, nearly square, and flashed all
- the colours of the rainbow. Wondering at their splendour, I became so
- absorbed in their beauty that I stumbled over a low rock, and lay stunned.
- When I came to myself, the creature was hovering over my head, radiating
- the whole chord of light, with multitudinous gradations and some kinds of
- colour I had never before seen. I rose and went on, but, unable to take my
- eyes off the shining thing to look to my steps, I struck my foot against a
- stone. Fearing then another fall, I sat down to watch the little glory,
- and a great longing awoke in me to have it in my hand. To my unspeakable
- delight, it began to sink toward me. Slowly at first, then swiftly it
- sank, growing larger as it came nearer. I felt as if the treasure of the
- universe were giving itself to me&mdash;put out my hand, and had it. But
- the instant I took it, its light went out; all was dark as pitch; a dead
- book with boards outspread lay cold and heavy in my hand. I threw it in
- the air&mdash;only to hear it fall among the heather. Burying my face in
- my hands, I sat in motionless misery.
- </p>
- <p>
- But the cold grew so bitter that, fearing to be frozen, I got up. The
- moment I was on my feet, a faint sense of light awoke in me. &ldquo;Is it coming
- to life?&rdquo; I cried, and a great pang of hope shot through me. Alas, no! it
- was the edge of a moon peering up keen and sharp over a level horizon! She
- brought me light&mdash;but no guidance! SHE would not hover over me, would
- not wait on my faltering steps! She could but offer me an ignorant choice!
- </p>
- <p>
- With a full face she rose, and I began to see a little about me. Westward
- of her, and not far from me, a range of low hills broke the horizon-line:
- I set out for it.
- </p>
- <p>
- But what a night I had to pass ere I reached it! The moon seemed to know
- something, for she stared at me oddly. Her look was indeed icy-cold, but
- full of interest, or at least curiosity. She was not the same moon I had
- known on the earth; her face was strange to me, and her light yet
- stranger. Perhaps it came from an unknown sun! Every time I looked up, I
- found her staring at me with all her might! At first I was annoyed, as at
- the rudeness of a fellow creature; but soon I saw or fancied a certain
- wondering pity in her gaze: why was I out in her night? Then first I knew
- what an awful thing it was to be awake in the universe: I WAS, and could
- not help it!
- </p>
- <p>
- As I walked, my feet lost the heather, and trod a bare spongy soil,
- something like dry, powdery peat. To my dismay it gave a momentary heave
- under me; then presently I saw what seemed the ripple of an earthquake
- running on before me, shadowy in the low moon. It passed into the
- distance; but, while yet I stared after it, a single wave rose up, and
- came slowly toward me. A yard or two away it burst, and from it, with a
- scramble and a bound, issued an animal like a tiger. About his mouth and
- ears hung clots of mould, and his eyes winked and flamed as he rushed at
- me, showing his white teeth in a soundless snarl. I stood fascinated,
- unconscious of either courage or fear. He turned his head to the ground,
- and plunged into it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That moon is affecting my brain,&rdquo; I said as I resumed my journey. &ldquo;What
- life can be here but the phantasmic&mdash;the stuff of which dreams are
- made? I am indeed walking in a vain show!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Thus I strove to keep my heart above the waters of fear, nor knew that she
- whom I distrusted was indeed my defence from the realities I took for
- phantoms: her light controlled the monsters, else had I scarce taken a
- second step on the hideous ground. &ldquo;I will not be appalled by that which
- only seems!&rdquo; I said to myself, yet felt it a terrible thing to walk on a
- sea where such fishes disported themselves below. With that, a step or two
- from me, the head of a worm began to come slowly out of the earth, as big
- as that of a polar bear and much resembling it, with a white mane to its
- red neck. The drawing wriggles with which its huge length extricated
- itself were horrible, yet I dared not turn my eyes from them. The moment
- its tail was free, it lay as if exhausted, wallowing in feeble effort to
- burrow again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Does it live on the dead,&rdquo; I wondered, &ldquo;and is it unable to hurt the
- living? If they scent their prey and come out, why do they leave me
- unharmed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I know now it was that the moon paralysed them.
- </p>
- <p>
- All the night through as I walked, hideous creatures, no two alike,
- threatened me. In some of them, beauty of colour enhanced loathliness of
- shape: one large serpent was covered from head to distant tail with
- feathers of glorious hues.
- </p>
- <p>
- I became at length so accustomed to their hurtless menaces that I fell to
- beguiling the way with the invention of monstrosities, never suspecting
- that I owed each moment of life to the staring moon. Though hers was no
- primal radiance, it so hampered the evil things, that I walked in safety.
- For light is yet light, if but the last of a countless series of
- reflections! How swiftly would not my feet have carried me over the
- restless soil, had I known that, if still within their range when her lamp
- ceased to shine on the cursed spot, I should that moment be at the mercy
- of such as had no mercy, the centre of a writhing heap of hideousness,
- every individual of it as terrible as before it had but seemed! Fool of
- ignorance, I watched the descent of the weary, solemn, anxious moon down
- the widening vault above me, with no worse uneasiness than the dread of
- losing my way&mdash;where as yet I had indeed no way to lose.
- </p>
- <p>
- I was drawing near the hills I had made my goal, and she was now not far
- from their sky-line, when the soundless wallowing ceased, and the burrow
- lay motionless and bare. Then I saw, slowly walking over the light soil,
- the form of a woman. A white mist floated about her, now assuming, now
- losing to reassume the shape of a garment, as it gathered to her or was
- blown from her by a wind that dogged her steps.
- </p>
- <p>
- She was beautiful, but with such a pride at once and misery on her
- countenance that I could hardly believe what yet I saw. Up and down she
- walked, vainly endeavouring to lay hold of the mist and wrap it around
- her. The eyes in the beautiful face were dead, and on her left side was a
- dark spot, against which she would now and then press her hand, as if to
- stifle pain or sickness. Her hair hung nearly to her feet, and sometimes
- the wind would so mix it with the mist that I could not distinguish the
- one from the other; but when it fell gathering together again, it shone a
- pale gold in the moonlight.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly pressing both hands on her heart, she fell to the ground, and the
- mist rose from her and melted in the air. I ran to her. But she began to
- writhe in such torture that I stood aghast. A moment more and her legs,
- hurrying from her body, sped away serpents. From her shoulders fled her
- arms as in terror, serpents also. Then something flew up from her like a
- bat, and when I looked again, she was gone. The ground rose like the sea
- in a storm; terror laid hold upon me; I turned to the hills and ran.
- </p>
- <p>
- I was already on the slope of their base, when the moon sank behind one of
- their summits, leaving me in its shadow. Behind me rose a waste and
- sickening cry, as of frustrate desire&mdash;the only sound I had heard
- since the fall of the dead butterfly; it made my heart shake like a flag
- in the wind. I turned, saw many dark objects bounding after me, and made
- for the crest of a ridge on which the moon still shone. She seemed to
- linger there that I might see to defend myself. Soon I came in sight of
- her, and climbed the faster.
- </p>
- <p>
- Crossing the shadow of a rock, I heard the creatures panting at my heels.
- But just as the foremost threw himself upon me with a snarl of greedy
- hate, we rushed into the moon together. She flashed out an angry light,
- and he fell from me a bodiless blotch. Strength came to me, and I turned
- on the rest. But one by one as they darted into the light, they dropped
- with a howl; and I saw or fancied a strange smile on the round face above
- me.
- </p>
- <p>
- I climbed to the top of the ridge: far away shone the moon, sinking to a
- low horizon. The air was pure and strong. I descended a little way, found
- it warmer, and sat down to wait the dawn.
- </p>
- <p>
- The moon went below, and the world again was dark.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0011" id="link2HCH0011">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XI. THE EVIL WOOD
- </h2>
- <p>
- I fell fast asleep, and when I woke the sun was rising. I went to the top
- again, and looked back: the hollow I had crossed in the moonlight lay
- without sign of life. Could it be that the calm expanse before me swarmed
- with creatures of devouring greed?
- </p>
- <p>
- I turned and looked over the land through which my way must lie. It seemed
- a wide desert, with a patch of a different colour in the distance that
- might be a forest. Sign of presence, human or animal, was none&mdash;smoke
- or dust or shadow of cultivation. Not a cloud floated in the clear heaven;
- no thinnest haze curtained any segment of its circling rim.
- </p>
- <p>
- I descended, and set out for the imaginable forest: something alive might
- be there; on this side of it could not well be anything!
- </p>
- <p>
- When I reached the plain, I found it, as far as my sight could go, of
- rock, here flat and channeled, there humped and pinnacled&mdash;evidently
- the wide bed of a vanished river, scored by innumerable water-runs,
- without a trace of moisture in them. Some of the channels bore a dry moss,
- and some of the rocks a few lichens almost as hard as themselves. The air,
- once &ldquo;filled with pleasant noise of waters,&rdquo; was silent as death. It took
- me the whole day to reach the patch,&mdash;which I found indeed a forest&mdash;but
- not a rudiment of brook or runnel had I crossed! Yet through the glowing
- noon I seemed haunted by an aural mirage, hearing so plainly the voice of
- many waters that I could hardly believe the opposing testimony of my eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- The sun was approaching the horizon when I left the river-bed, and entered
- the forest. Sunk below the tree-tops, and sending his rays between their
- pillar-like boles, he revealed a world of blessed shadows waiting to
- receive me. I had expected a pine-wood, but here were trees of many sorts,
- some with strong resemblances to trees I knew, others with marvellous
- differences from any I had ever seen. I threw myself beneath the boughs of
- what seemed a eucalyptus in blossom: its flowers had a hard calyx much
- resembling a skull, the top of which rose like a lid to let the froth-like
- bloom-brain overfoam its cup. From beneath the shadow of its
- falchion-leaves my eyes went wandering into deep after deep of the forest.
- </p>
- <p>
- Soon, however, its doors and windows began to close, shutting up aisle and
- corridor and roomier glade. The night was about me, and instant and sharp
- the cold. Again what a night I found it! How shall I make my reader share
- with me its wild ghostiness?
- </p>
- <p>
- The tree under which I lay rose high before it branched, but the boughs of
- it bent so low that they seemed ready to shut me in as I leaned against
- the smooth stem, and let my eyes wander through the brief twilight of the
- vanishing forest. Presently, to my listless roving gaze, the varied
- outlines of the clumpy foliage began to assume or imitate&mdash;say rather
- SUGGEST other shapes than their own. A light wind began to blow; it set
- the boughs of a neighbour tree rocking, and all their branches aswing,
- every twig and every leaf blending its individual motion with the sway of
- its branch and the rock of its bough. Among its leafy shapes was a pack of
- wolves that struggled to break from a wizard&rsquo;s leash: greyhounds would not
- have strained so savagely! I watched them with an interest that grew as
- the wind gathered force, and their motions life.
- </p>
- <p>
- Another mass of foliage, larger and more compact, presented my fancy with
- a group of horses&rsquo; heads and forequarters projecting caparisoned from
- their stalls. Their necks kept moving up and down, with an impatience that
- augmented as the growing wind broke their vertical rhythm with a wilder
- swaying from side to side. What heads they were! how gaunt, how strange!&mdash;several
- of them bare skulls&mdash;one with the skin tight on its bones! One had
- lost the under jaw and hung low, looking unutterably weary&mdash;but now
- and then hove high as if to ease the bit. Above them, at the end of a
- branch, floated erect the form of a woman, waving her arms in imperious
- gesture. The definiteness of these and other leaf masses first surprised
- and then discomposed me: what if they should overpower my brain with
- seeming reality? But the twilight became darkness; the wind ceased; every
- shape was shut up in the night; I fell asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was still dark when I began to be aware of a far-off, confused, rushing
- noise, mingled with faint cries. It grew and grew until a tumult as of
- gathering multitudes filled the wood. On all sides at once the sounds drew
- nearer; the spot where I lay seemed the centre of a commotion that
- extended throughout the forest. I scarce moved hand or foot lest I should
- betray my presence to hostile things.
- </p>
- <p>
- The moon at length approached the forest, and came slowly into it: with
- her first gleam the noises increased to a deafening uproar, and I began to
- see dim shapes about me. As she ascended and grew brighter, the noises
- became yet louder, and the shapes clearer. A furious battle was raging
- around me. Wild cries and roars of rage, shock of onset, struggle
- prolonged, all mingled with words articulate, surged in my ears. Curses
- and credos, snarls and sneers, laughter and mockery, sacred names and
- howls of hate, came huddling in chaotic interpenetration. Skeletons and
- phantoms fought in maddest confusion. Swords swept through the phantoms:
- they only shivered. Maces crashed on the skeletons, shattering them
- hideously: not one fell or ceased to fight, so long as a single joint held
- two bones together. Bones of men and horses lay scattered and heaped;
- grinding and crunching them under foot fought the skeletons. Everywhere
- charged the bone-gaunt white steeds; everywhere on foot or on wind-blown
- misty battle-horses, raged and ravened and raved the indestructible
- spectres; weapons and hoofs clashed and crushed; while skeleton jaws and
- phantom-throats swelled the deafening tumult with the war-cry of every
- opinion, bad or good, that had bred strife, injustice, cruelty in any
- world. The holiest words went with the most hating blow. Lie-distorted
- truths flew hurtling in the wind of javelins and bones. Every moment some
- one would turn against his comrades, and fight more wildly than before,
- THE TRUTH! THE TRUTH! still his cry. One I noted who wheeled ever in a
- circle, and smote on all sides. Wearied out, a pair would sit for a minute
- side by side, then rise and renew the fierce combat. None stooped to
- comfort the fallen, or stepped wide to spare him.
- </p>
- <p>
- The moon shone till the sun rose, and all the night long I had glimpses of
- a woman moving at her will above the strife-tormented multitude, now on
- this front now on that, one outstretched arm urging the fight, the other
- pressed against her side. &ldquo;Ye are men: slay one another!&rdquo; she shouted. I
- saw her dead eyes and her dark spot, and recalled what I had seen the
- night before.
- </p>
- <p>
- Such was the battle of the dead, which I saw and heard as I lay under the
- tree.
- </p>
- <p>
- Just before sunrise, a breeze went through the forest, and a voice cried,
- &ldquo;Let the dead bury their dead!&rdquo; At the word the contending thousands
- dropped noiseless, and when the sun looked in, he saw never a bone, but
- here and there a withered branch.
- </p>
- <p>
- I rose and resumed my journey, through as quiet a wood as ever grew out of
- the quiet earth. For the wind of the morning had ceased when the sun
- appeared, and the trees were silent. Not a bird sang, not a squirrel,
- mouse, or weasel showed itself, not a belated moth flew athwart my path.
- But as I went I kept watch over myself, nor dared let my eyes rest on any
- forest-shape. All the time I seemed to hear faint sounds of mattock and
- spade and hurtling bones: any moment my eyes might open on things I would
- not see! Daylight prudence muttered that perhaps, to appear, ten thousand
- phantoms awaited only my consenting fancy.
- </p>
- <p>
- In the middle of the afternoon I came out of the wood&mdash;to find before
- me a second net of dry water-courses. I thought at first that I had
- wandered from my attempted line, and reversed my direction; but I soon saw
- it was not so, and concluded presently that I had come to another branch
- of the same river-bed. I began at once to cross it, and was in the bottom
- of a wide channel when the sun set.
- </p>
- <p>
- I sat down to await the moon, and growing sleepy, stretched myself on the
- moss. The moment my head was down, I heard the sounds of rushing streams&mdash;all
- sorts of sweet watery noises. The veiled melody of the molten music sang
- me into a dreamless sleep, and when I woke the sun was already up, and the
- wrinkled country widely visible. Covered with shadows it lay striped and
- mottled like the skin of some wild animal. As the sun rose the shadows
- diminished, and it seemed as if the rocks were re-absorbing the darkness
- that had oozed out of them during the night.
- </p>
- <p>
- Hitherto I had loved my Arab mare and my books more, I fear, than live man
- or woman; now at length my soul was athirst for a human presence, and I
- longed even after those inhabitants of this alien world whom the raven had
- so vaguely described as nearest my sort. With heavy yet hoping heart, and
- mind haunted by a doubt whether I was going in any direction at all, I
- kept wearily travelling &ldquo;north-west and by south.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0012" id="link2HCH0012">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XII. FRIENDS AND FOES
- </h2>
- <p>
- Coming, in one of the channels, upon what seemed a little shrub, the
- outlying picket, I trusted, of an army behind it, I knelt to look at it
- closer. It bore a small fruit, which, as I did not recognise it, I feared
- to gather and eat. Little I thought that I was watched from behind the
- rocks by hundreds of eyes eager with the question whether I would or would
- not take it.
- </p>
- <p>
- I came to another plant somewhat bigger, then to another larger still, and
- at length to clumps of a like sort; by which time I saw that they were not
- shrubs but dwarf-trees. Before I reached the bank of this second branch of
- the river-bed, I found the channels so full of them that it was with
- difficulty I crossed such as I could not jump. In one I heard a great
- rush, as of a multitude of birds from an ivied wall, but saw nothing.
- </p>
- <p>
- I came next to some large fruit-bearing trees, but what they bore looked
- coarse. They stood on the edge of a hollow, which evidently had once been
- the basin of a lake. From the left a forest seemed to flow into and fill
- it; but while the trees above were of many sorts, those in the hollow were
- almost entirely fruit-bearing.
- </p>
- <p>
- I went a few yards down the slope of grass mingled with moss, and
- stretched myself upon it weary. A little farther down stood a tiny tree
- full of rosiest apples no bigger than small cherries, its top close to my
- hand; I pulled and ate one of them. Finding it delicious, I was in the act
- of taking another, when a sudden shouting of children, mingled with
- laughter clear and sweet as the music of a brook, startled me with
- delight.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He likes our apples! He likes our apples! He&rsquo;s a good giant! He&rsquo;s a good
- giant!&rdquo; cried many little voices.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He&rsquo;s a giant!&rdquo; objected one.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He IS rather big,&rdquo; assented another, &ldquo;but littleness isn&rsquo;t everything! It
- won&rsquo;t keep you from growing big and stupid except you take care!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I rose on my elbow and stared. Above and about and below me stood a
- multitude of children, apparently of all ages, some just able to run
- alone, and some about twelve or thirteen. Three or four seemed older. They
- stood in a small knot, a little apart, and were less excited than the
- rest. The many were chattering in groups, declaiming and contradicting,
- like a crowd of grown people in a city, only with greater merriment,
- better manners, and more sense.
- </p>
- <p>
- I gathered that, by the approach of my hand to a second apple, they knew
- that I liked the first; but how from that they argued me good, I did not
- see, nor wondered that one of them at least should suggest caution. I did
- not open my mouth, for I was afraid of frightening them, and sure I should
- learn more by listening than by asking questions. For I understood nearly
- all they said&mdash;at which I was not surprised: to understand is not
- more wonderful than to love.
- </p>
- <p>
- There came a movement and slight dispersion among them, and presently a
- sweet, innocent-looking, lovingly roguish little fellow handed me a huge
- green apple. Silence fell on the noisy throng; all waited expectant.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Eat, good giant,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- I sat up, took the apple, smiled thanks, and would have eaten; but the
- moment I bit into it, I flung it far away.
- </p>
- <p>
- Again rose a shout of delight; they flung themselves upon me, so as nearly
- to smother me; they kissed my face and hands; they laid hold of my legs;
- they clambered about my arms and shoulders, embracing my head and neck. I
- came to the ground at last, overwhelmed with the lovely little goblins.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Good, good giant!&rdquo; they cried. &ldquo;We knew you would come! Oh you dear,
- good, strong giant!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The babble of their talk sprang up afresh, and ever the jubilant shout
- would rise anew from hundreds of clear little throats.
- </p>
- <p>
- Again came a sudden silence. Those around me drew back; those atop of me
- got off and began trying to set me on my feet. Upon their sweet faces,
- concern had taken the place of merriment.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Get up, good giant!&rdquo; said a little girl. &ldquo;Make haste! much haste! He saw
- you throw his apple away!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Before she ended, I was on my feet. She stood pointing up the slope. On
- the brow of it was a clownish, bad-looking fellow, a few inches taller
- than myself. He looked hostile, but I saw no reason to fear him, for he
- had no weapon, and my little friends had vanished every one.
- </p>
- <p>
- He began to descend, and I, in the hope of better footing and position, to
- go up. He growled like a beast as he turned toward me.
- </p>
- <p>
- Reaching a more level spot, I stood and waited for him. As he came near,
- he held out his hand. I would have taken it in friendly fashion, but he
- drew it back, threatened a blow, and held it out again. Then I understood
- him to claim the apple I had flung away, whereupon I made a grimace of
- dislike and a gesture of rejection.
- </p>
- <p>
- He answered with a howl of rage that seemed to say, &ldquo;Do you dare tell me
- my apple was not fit to eat?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;One bad apple may grow on the best tree,&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- Whether he perceived my meaning I cannot tell, but he made a stride
- nearer, and I stood on my guard. He delayed his assault, however, until a
- second giant, much like him, who had been stealing up behind me, was close
- enough, when he rushed upon me. I met him with a good blow in the face,
- but the other struck me on the back of the head, and between them I was
- soon overpowered.
- </p>
- <p>
- They dragged me into the wood above the valley, where their tribe lived&mdash;in
- wretched huts, built of fallen branches and a few stones. Into one of
- these they pushed me, there threw me on the ground, and kicked me. A woman
- was present, who looked on with indifference.
- </p>
- <p>
- I may here mention that during my captivity I hardly learned to
- distinguish the women from the men, they differed so little. Often I
- wondered whether I had not come upon a sort of fungoid people, with just
- enough mind to give them motion and the expressions of anger and greed.
- Their food, which consisted of tubers, bulbs, and fruits, was to me
- inexpressibly disagreeable, but nothing offended them so much as to show
- dislike to it. I was cuffed by the women and kicked by the men because I
- would not swallow it.
- </p>
- <p>
- I lay on the floor that night hardly able to move, but I slept a good
- deal, and woke a little refreshed. In the morning they dragged me to the
- valley, and tying my feet, with a long rope, to a tree, put a flat stone
- with a saw-like edge in my left hand. I shifted it to the right; they
- kicked me, and put it again in the left; gave me to understand that I was
- to scrape the bark off every branch that had no fruit on it; kicked me
- once more, and left me.
- </p>
- <p>
- I set about the dreary work in the hope that by satisfying them I should
- be left very much to myself&mdash;to make my observations and choose my
- time for escape. Happily one of the dwarf-trees grew close by me, and
- every other minute I plucked and ate a small fruit, which wonderfully
- refreshed and strengthened me.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0013" id="link2HCH0013">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XIII. THE LITTLE ONES
- </h2>
- <p>
- I had been at work but a few moments, when I heard small voices near me,
- and presently the Little Ones, as I soon found they called themselves,
- came creeping out from among the tiny trees that like brushwood filled the
- spaces between the big ones. In a minute there were scores and scores
- about me. I made signs that the giants had but just left me, and were not
- far off; but they laughed, and told me the wind was quite clean.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They are too blind to see us,&rdquo; they said, and laughed like a multitude of
- sheep-bells.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you like that rope about your ankles?&rdquo; asked one.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I want them to think I cannot take it off,&rdquo; I replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They can scarcely see their own feet!&rdquo; he rejoined. &ldquo;Walk with short
- steps and they will think the rope is all right.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- As he spoke, he danced with merriment.
- </p>
- <p>
- One of the bigger girls got down on her knees to untie the clumsy knot. I
- smiled, thinking those pretty fingers could do nothing with it, but in a
- moment it was loose.
- </p>
- <p>
- They then made me sit down, and fed me with delicious little fruits; after
- which the smaller of them began to play with me in the wildest fashion, so
- that it was impossible for me to resume my work. When the first grew
- tired, others took their places, and this went on until the sun was
- setting, and heavy steps were heard approaching. The little people started
- from me, and I made haste to put the rope round my ankles.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We must have a care,&rdquo; said the girl who had freed me; &ldquo;a crush of one of
- their horrid stumpy feet might kill a very little one!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Can they not perceive you at all then?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They might see something move; and if the children were in a heap on the
- top of you, as they were a moment ago, it would be terrible; for they hate
- every live thing but themselves.&mdash;Not that they are much alive
- either!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She whistled like a bird. The next instant not one of them was to be seen
- or heard, and the girl herself had disappeared.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was my master, as doubtless he counted himself, come to take me home.
- He freed my ankles, and dragged me to the door of his hut; there he threw
- me on the ground, again tied my feet, gave me a kick, and left me.
- </p>
- <p>
- Now I might at once have made my escape; but at length I had friends, and
- could not think of leaving them. They were so charming, so full of winsome
- ways, that I must see more of them! I must know them better! &ldquo;To-morrow,&rdquo;
- I said to myself with delight, &ldquo;I shall see them again!&rdquo; But from the
- moment there was silence in the huts until I fell asleep, I heard them
- whispering all about me, and knew that I was lovingly watched by a
- multitude. After that, I think they hardly ever left me quite alone.
- </p>
- <p>
- I did not come to know the giants at all, and I believe there was scarcely
- anything in them to know. They never became in the least friendly, but
- they were much too stupid to invent cruelties. Often I avoided a bad kick
- by catching the foot and giving its owner a fall, upon which he never, on
- that occasion, renewed his attempt.
- </p>
- <p>
- But the little people were constantly doing and saying things that
- pleased, often things that surprised me. Every day I grew more loath to
- leave them. While I was at work, they would keep coming and going, amusing
- and delighting me, and taking all the misery, and much of the weariness
- out of my monotonous toil. Very soon I loved them more than I can tell.
- They did not know much, but they were very wise, and seemed capable of
- learning anything. I had no bed save the bare ground, but almost as often
- as I woke, it was in a nest of children&mdash;one or other of them in my
- arms, though which I seldom could tell until the light came, for they
- ordered the succession among themselves. When one crept into my bosom,
- unconsciously I clasped him there, and the rest lay close around me, the
- smaller nearer. It is hardly necessary to say that I did not suffer much
- from the nightly cold! The first thing they did in the morning, and the
- last before sunset, was to bring the good giant plenty to eat.
- </p>
- <p>
- One morning I was surprised on waking to find myself alone. As I came to
- my senses, however, I heard subdued sounds of approach, and presently the
- girl already mentioned, the tallest and gravest of the community, and
- regarded by all as their mother, appeared from the wood, followed by the
- multitude in jubilation manifest&mdash;but silent lest they should rouse
- the sleeping giant at whose door I lay. She carried a boy-baby in her
- arms: hitherto a girl-baby, apparently about a year old, had been the
- youngest. Three of the bigger girls were her nurses, but they shared their
- treasure with all the rest. Among the Little Ones, dolls were unknown; the
- bigger had the smaller, and the smaller the still less, to tend and play
- with.
- </p>
- <p>
- Lona came to me and laid the infant in my arms. The baby opened his eyes
- and looked at me, closed them again, and fell asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He loves you already!&rdquo; said the girl.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where did you find him?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In the wood, of course,&rdquo; she answered, her eyes beaming with delight, &ldquo;&mdash;where
- we always find them. Isn&rsquo;t he a beauty? We&rsquo;ve been out all night looking
- for him. Sometimes it is not easy to find!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How do you know when there is one to find?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot tell,&rdquo; she replied. &ldquo;Every one makes haste to tell the other,
- but we never find out who told first. Sometimes I think one must have said
- it asleep, and another heard it half-awake. When there is a baby in the
- wood, no one can stop to ask questions; and when we have found it, then it
- is too late.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do more boy or girl babies come to the wood?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They don&rsquo;t come to the wood; we go to the wood and find them.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are there more boys or girls of you now?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I had found that to ask precisely the same question twice, made them knit
- their brows.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not know,&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You can count them, surely!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We never do that. We shouldn&rsquo;t like to be counted.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It wouldn&rsquo;t be smooth. We would rather not know.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where do the babies come from first?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;From the wood&mdash;always. There is no other place they can come from.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She knew where they came from last, and thought nothing else was to be
- known about their advent.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How often do you find one?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Such a happy thing takes all the glad we&rsquo;ve got, and we forget the last
- time. You too are glad to have him&mdash;are you not, good giant?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, indeed, I am!&rdquo; I answered. &ldquo;But how do you feed him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will show you,&rdquo; she rejoined, and went away&mdash;to return directly
- with two or three ripe little plums. She put one to the baby&rsquo;s lips.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He would open his mouth if he were awake,&rdquo; she said, and took him in her
- arms.
- </p>
- <p>
- She squeezed a drop to the surface, and again held the fruit to the baby&rsquo;s
- lips. Without waking he began at once to suck it, and she went on slowly
- squeezing until nothing but skin and stone were left.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There!&rdquo; she cried, in a tone of gentle triumph. &ldquo;A big-apple world it
- would be with nothing for the babies! We wouldn&rsquo;t stop in it&mdash;would
- we, darling? We would leave it to the bad giants!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what if you let the stone into the baby&rsquo;s mouth when you were feeding
- him?&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No mother would do that,&rdquo; she replied. &ldquo;I shouldn&rsquo;t be fit to have a
- baby!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I thought what a lovely woman she would grow. But what became of them when
- they grew up? Where did they go? That brought me again to the question&mdash;where
- did they come from first?
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you tell me where you lived before?&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Here,&rdquo; she replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have you NEVER lived anywhere else?&rdquo; I ventured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never. We all came from the wood. Some think we dropped out of the
- trees.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How is it there are so many of you quite little?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t understand. Some are less and some are bigger. I am very big.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Baby will grow bigger, won&rsquo;t he?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course he will!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And will you grow bigger?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t think so. I hope not. I am the biggest. It frightens me
- sometimes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why should it frighten you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She gave me no answer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How old are you?&rdquo; I resumed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not know what you mean. We are all just that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How big will the baby grow?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot tell.&mdash;Some,&rdquo; she added, with a trouble in her voice,
- &ldquo;begin to grow after we think they have stopped.&mdash;That is a frightful
- thing. We don&rsquo;t talk about it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What makes it frightful?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She was silent for a moment, then answered,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We fear they may be beginning to grow giants.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why should you fear that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because it is so terrible.&mdash;I don&rsquo;t want to talk about it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She pressed the baby to her bosom with such an anxious look that I dared
- not further question her.
- </p>
- <p>
- Before long I began to perceive in two or three of the smaller children
- some traces of greed and selfishness, and noted that the bigger girls cast
- on these a not infrequent glance of anxiety.
- </p>
- <p>
- None of them put a hand to my work: they would do nothing for the giants!
- But they never relaxed their loving ministrations to me. They would sing
- to me, one after another, for hours; climb the tree to reach my mouth and
- pop fruit into it with their dainty little fingers; and they kept constant
- watch against the approach of a giant.
- </p>
- <p>
- Sometimes they would sit and tell me stories&mdash;mostly very childish,
- and often seeming to mean hardly anything. Now and then they would call a
- general assembly to amuse me. On one such occasion a moody little fellow
- sang me a strange crooning song, with a refrain so pathetic that, although
- unintelligible to me, it caused the tears to run down my face. This
- phenomenon made those who saw it regard me with much perplexity. Then
- first I bethought myself that I had not once, in that world, looked on
- water, falling or lying or running. Plenty there had been in some long
- vanished age&mdash;that was plain enough&mdash;but the Little Ones had
- never seen any before they saw my tears! They had, nevertheless, it
- seemed, some dim, instinctive perception of their origin; for a very small
- child went up to the singer, shook his clenched pud in his face, and said
- something like this: &ldquo;&lsquo;Ou skeeze ze juice out of ze good giant&rsquo;s
- seeberries! Bad giant!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How is it,&rdquo; I said one day to Lona, as she sat with the baby in her arms
- at the foot of my tree, &ldquo;that I never see any children among the giants?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She stared a little, as if looking in vain for some sense in the question,
- then replied,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They are giants; there are no little ones.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have they never any children?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No; there are never any in the wood for them. They do not love them. If
- they saw ours, they would stamp them.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is there always the same number of the giants then? I thought, before I
- had time to know better, that they were your fathers and mothers.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She burst into the merriest laughter, and said,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, good giant; WE are THEIR firsters.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But as she said it, the merriment died out of her, and she looked scared.
- </p>
- <p>
- I stopped working, and gazed at her, bewildered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How CAN that be?&rdquo; I exclaimed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not say; I do not understand,&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;But we were here and
- they not. They go from us. I am sorry, but we cannot help it. THEY could
- have helped it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How long have you been here?&rdquo; I asked, more and more puzzled&mdash;in the
- hope of some side-light on the matter.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Always, I think,&rdquo; she replied. &ldquo;I think somebody made us always.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I turned to my scraping.
- </p>
- <p>
- She saw I did not understand.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The giants were not made always,&rdquo; she resumed. &ldquo;If a Little One doesn&rsquo;t
- care, he grows greedy, and then lazy, and then big, and then stupid, and
- then bad. The dull creatures don&rsquo;t know that they come from us. Very few
- of them believe we are anywhere. They say NONSENSE!&mdash;Look at little
- Blunty: he is eating one of their apples! He will be the next! Oh! oh! he
- will soon be big and bad and ugly, and not know it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The child stood by himself a little way off, eating an apple nearly as big
- as his head. I had often thought he did not look so good as the rest; now
- he looked disgusting.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will take the horrid thing from him!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is no use,&rdquo; she answered sadly. &ldquo;We have done all we can, and it is
- too late! We were afraid he was growing, for he would not believe anything
- told him; but when he refused to share his berries, and said he had
- gathered them for himself, then we knew it! He is a glutton, and there is
- no hope of him.&mdash;It makes me sick to see him eat!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Could not some of the boys watch him, and not let him touch the poisonous
- things?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He may have them if he will: it is all one&mdash;to eat the apples, and
- to be a boy that would eat them if he could. No; he must go to the giants!
- He belongs to them. You can see how much bigger he is than when first you
- came! He is bigger since yesterday.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He is as like that hideous green lump in his hand as boy could look!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It suits what he is making himself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;His head and it might change places!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps they do!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Does he want to be a giant?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He hates the giants, but he is making himself one all the same: he likes
- their apples! Oh baby, baby, he was just such a darling as you when we
- found him!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He will be very miserable when he finds himself a giant!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, no; he will like it well enough! That is the worst of it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will he hate the Little Ones?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He will be like the rest; he will not remember us&mdash;most likely will
- not believe there are Little Ones. He will not care; he will eat his
- apples.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do tell me how it will come about. I understand your world so little! I
- come from a world where everything is different.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not know about WORLD. What is it? What more but a word in your
- beautiful big mouth?&mdash;That makes it something!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never mind about the word; tell me what next will happen to Blunty.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He will wake one morning and find himself a giant&mdash;not like you,
- good giant, but like any other bad giant. You will hardly know him, but I
- will tell you which. He will think he has been a giant always, and will
- not know you, or any of us. The giants have lost themselves, Peony says,
- and that is why they never smile. I wonder whether they are not glad
- because they are bad, or bad because they are not glad. But they can&rsquo;t be
- glad when they have no babies! I wonder what BAD means, good giant!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I wish I knew no more about it than you!&rdquo; I returned. &ldquo;But I try to be
- good, and mean to keep on trying.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So do I&mdash;and that is how I know you are good.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A long pause followed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then you do not know where the babies come from into the wood?&rdquo; I said,
- making one attempt more.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is nothing to know there,&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;They are in the wood;
- they grow there.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then how is it you never find one before it is quite grown?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- She knitted her brows and was silent a moment:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They&rsquo;re not there till they&rsquo;re finished,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is a pity the little sillies can&rsquo;t speak till they&rsquo;ve forgotten
- everything they had to tell!&rdquo; I remarked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Little Tolma, the last before this baby, looked as if she had something
- to tell, when I found her under a beech-tree, sucking her thumb, but she
- hadn&rsquo;t. She only looked up at me&mdash;oh, so sweetly! SHE will never go
- bad and grow big! When they begin to grow big they care for nothing but
- bigness; and when they cannot grow any bigger, they try to grow fatter.
- The bad giants are very proud of being fat.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So they are in my world,&rdquo; I said; &ldquo;only they do not say FAT there, they
- say RICH.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In one of their houses,&rdquo; continued Lona, &ldquo;sits the biggest and fattest of
- them&mdash;so proud that nobody can see him; and the giants go to his
- house at certain times, and call out to him, and tell him how fat he is,
- and beg him to make them strong to eat more and grow fat like him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The rumour at length reached my ears that Blunty had vanished. I saw a few
- grave faces among the bigger ones, but he did not seem to be much missed.
- </p>
- <p>
- The next morning Lona came to me and whispered,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look! look there&mdash;by that quince-tree: that is the giant that was
- Blunty!&mdash;Would you have known him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never,&rdquo; I answered. &ldquo;&mdash;But now you tell me, I could fancy it might
- be Blunty staring through a fog! He DOES look stupid!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He is for ever eating those apples now!&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;That is what comes of
- Little Ones that WON&rsquo;T be little!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They call it growing-up in my world!&rdquo; I said to myself. &ldquo;If only she
- would teach me to grow the other way, and become a Little One!&mdash;Shall
- I ever be able to laugh like them?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I had had the chance, and had flung it from me! Blunty and I were alike!
- He did not know his loss, and I had to be taught mine!
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0014" id="link2HCH0014">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XIV. A CRISIS
- </h2>
- <p>
- For a time I had no desire save to spend my life with the Little Ones. But
- soon other thoughts and feelings began to influence me. First awoke the
- vague sense that I ought to be doing something; that I was not meant for
- the fattening of boors! Then it came to me that I was in a marvellous
- world, of which it was assuredly my business to discover the ways and
- laws; and that, if I would do anything in return for the children&rsquo;s
- goodness, I must learn more about them than they could tell me, and to
- that end must be free. Surely, I thought, no suppression of their growth
- can be essential to their loveliness and truth and purity! Not in any
- world could the possibility exist of such a discord between constitution
- and its natural outcome! Life and law cannot be so at variance that
- perfection must be gained by thwarting development! But the growth of the
- Little Ones WAS arrested! something interfered with it: what was it? Lona
- seemed the eldest of them, yet not more than fifteen, and had been long in
- charge of a multitude, in semblance and mostly in behaviour merest
- children, who regarded her as their mother! Were they growing at all? I
- doubted it. Of time they had scarcely the idea; of their own age they knew
- nothing! Lona herself thought she had lived always! Full of wisdom and
- empty of knowledge, she was at once their Love and their Law! But what
- seemed to me her ignorance might in truth be my own lack of insight! Her
- one anxiety plainly was, that her Little Ones should not grow, and change
- into bad giants! Their &ldquo;good giant&rdquo; was bound to do his best for them:
- without more knowledge of their nature, and some knowledge of their
- history, he could do nothing, and must therefore leave them! They would
- only be as they were before; they had in no way become dependent on me;
- they were still my protectors, I was not theirs; my presence but brought
- them more in danger of their idiotic neighbours! I longed to teach them
- many things: I must first understand more of those I would teach!
- Knowledge no doubt made bad people worse, but it must make good people
- better! I was convinced they would learn mathematics; and might they not
- be taught to write down the dainty melodies they murmured and forgot?
- </p>
- <p>
- The conclusion was, that I must rise and continue my travels, in the hope
- of coming upon some elucidation of the fortunes and destiny of the
- bewitching little creatures.
- </p>
- <p>
- My design, however, would not so soon have passed into action, but for
- what now occurred.
- </p>
- <p>
- To prepare them for my temporary absence, I was one day telling them while
- at work that I would long ago have left the bad giants, but that I loved
- the Little Ones so much&mdash;when, as by one accord, they came rushing
- and crowding upon me; they scrambled over each other and up the tree and
- dropped on my head, until I was nearly smothered. With three very little
- ones in my arms, one on each shoulder clinging to my neck, one standing
- straight up on my head, four or five holding me fast by the legs, others
- grappling my body and arms, and a multitude climbing and descending upon
- these, I was helpless as one overwhelmed by lava. Absorbed in the merry
- struggle, not one of them saw my tyrant coming until he was almost upon
- me. With just one cry of &ldquo;Take care, good giant!&rdquo; they ran from me like
- mice, they dropped from me like hedgehogs, they flew from me up the tree
- like squirrels, and the same moment, sharp round the stem came the bad
- giant, and dealt me such a blow on the head with a stick that I fell to
- the ground. The children told me afterwards that they sent him &ldquo;such a
- many bumps of big apples and stones&rdquo; that he was frightened, and ran
- blundering home.
- </p>
- <p>
- When I came to myself it was night. Above me were a few pale stars that
- expected the moon. I thought I was alone. My head ached badly, and I was
- terribly athirst.
- </p>
- <p>
- I turned wearily on my side. The moment my ear touched the ground, I heard
- the gushing and gurgling of water, and the soft noises made me groan with
- longing. At once I was amid a multitude of silent children, and delicious
- little fruits began to visit my lips. They came and came until my thirst
- was gone.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then I was aware of sounds I had never heard there before; the air was
- full of little sobs.
- </p>
- <p>
- I tried to sit up. A pile of small bodies instantly heaped itself at my
- back. Then I struggled to my feet, with much pushing and pulling from the
- Little Ones, who were wonderfully strong for their size.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You must go away, good giant,&rdquo; they said. &ldquo;When the bad giants see you
- hurt, they will all trample on you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think I must,&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go and grow strong, and come again,&rdquo; they said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will,&rdquo; I replied&mdash;and sat down.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed you must go at once!&rdquo; whispered Lona, who had been supporting me,
- and now knelt beside me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I listened at his door,&rdquo; said one of the bigger boys, &ldquo;and heard the bad
- giant say to his wife that he had found you idle, talking to a lot of
- moles and squirrels, and when he beat you, they tried to kill him. He said
- you were a wizard, and they must knock you, or they would have no peace.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will go at once,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;and come back as soon as I have found out
- what is wanted to make you bigger and stronger.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We don&rsquo;t want to be bigger,&rdquo; they answered, looking very serious. &ldquo;We
- WON&rsquo;T grow bad giants!&mdash;We are strong now; you don&rsquo;t know how much
- strong!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It was no use holding them out a prospect that had not any attraction for
- them! I said nothing more, but rose and moved slowly up the slope of the
- valley. At once they formed themselves into a long procession; some led
- the way, some walked with me helping me, and the rest followed. They kept
- feeding me as we went.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are broken,&rdquo; they said, &ldquo;and much red juice has run out of you: put
- some in.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- When we reached the edge of the valley, there was the moon just lifting
- her forehead over the rim of the horizon.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She has come to take care of you, and show you the way,&rdquo; said Lona.
- </p>
- <p>
- I questioned those about me as we walked, and learned there was a great
- place with a giant-girl for queen. When I asked if it was a city, they
- said they did not know. Neither could they tell how far off, or in what
- direction it was, or what was the giant-girl&rsquo;s name; all they knew was,
- that she hated the Little Ones, and would like to kill them, only she
- could not find them. I asked how they knew that; Lona answered that she
- had always known it. If the giant-girl came to look for them, they must
- hide hard, she said. When I told them I should go and ask her why she
- hated them, they cried out,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, no! she will kill you, good giant; she will kill you! She is an awful
- bad-giant witch!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I asked them where I was to go then. They told me that, beyond the
- baby-forest, away where the moon came from, lay a smooth green country,
- pleasant to the feet, without rocks or trees. But when I asked how I was
- to set out for it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The moon will tell you, we think,&rdquo; they said.
- </p>
- <p>
- They were taking me up the second branch of the river bed: when they saw
- that the moon had reached her height, they stopped to return.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We have never gone so far from our trees before,&rdquo; they said. &ldquo;Now mind
- you watch how you go, that you may see inside your eyes how to come back
- to us.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And beware of the giant-woman that lives in the desert,&rdquo; said one of the
- bigger girls as they were turning, &ldquo;I suppose you have heard of her!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then take care not to go near her. She is called the Cat-woman. She is
- awfully ugly&mdash;AND SCRATCHES.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- As soon as the bigger ones stopped, the smaller had begun to run back. The
- others now looked at me gravely for a moment, and then walked slowly away.
- Last to leave me, Lona held up the baby to be kissed, gazed in my eyes,
- whispered, &ldquo;The Cat-woman will not hurt YOU,&rdquo; and went without another
- word. I stood a while, gazing after them through the moonlight, then
- turned and, with a heavy heart, began my solitary journey. Soon the
- laughter of the Little Ones overtook me, like sheep-bells innumerable,
- rippling the air, and echoing in the rocks about me. I turned again, and
- again gazed after them: they went gamboling along, with never a care in
- their sweet souls. But Lona walked apart with her baby.
- </p>
- <p>
- Pondering as I went, I recalled many traits of my little friends.
- </p>
- <p>
- Once when I suggested that they should leave the country of the bad
- giants, and go with me to find another, they answered, &ldquo;But that would be
- to NOT ourselves!&rdquo;&mdash;so strong in them was the love of place that
- their country seemed essential to their very being! Without ambition or
- fear, discomfort or greed, they had no motive to desire any change; they
- knew of nothing amiss; and, except their babies, they had never had a
- chance of helping any one but myself:&mdash;How were they to grow? But
- again, Why should they grow? In seeking to improve their conditions, might
- I not do them harm, and only harm? To enlarge their minds after the
- notions of my world&mdash;might it not be to distort and weaken them?
- Their fear of growth as a possible start for gianthood might be
- instinctive!
- </p>
- <p>
- The part of philanthropist is indeed a dangerous one; and the man who
- would do his neighbour good must first study how not to do him evil, and
- must begin by pulling the beam out of his own eye.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0015" id="link2HCH0015">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XV. A STRANGE HOSTESS
- </h2>
- <p>
- I travelled on attended by the moon. As usual she was full&mdash;I had
- never seen her other&mdash;and to-night as she sank I thought I perceived
- something like a smile on her countenance.
- </p>
- <p>
- When her under edge was a little below the horizon, there appeared in the
- middle of her disc, as if it had been painted upon it, a cottage, through
- the open door and window of which she shone; and with the sight came the
- conviction that I was expected there. Almost immediately the moon was
- gone, and the cottage had vanished; the night was rapidly growing dark,
- and my way being across a close succession of small ravines, I resolved to
- remain where I was and expect the morning. I stretched myself, therefore,
- in a sandy hollow, made my supper off the fruits the children had given me
- at parting, and was soon asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- I woke suddenly, saw above me constellations unknown to my former world,
- and had lain for a while gazing at them, when I became aware of a figure
- seated on the ground a little way from and above me. I was startled, as
- one is on discovering all at once that he is not alone. The figure was
- between me and the sky, so that I saw its outline well. From where I lay
- low in the hollow, it seemed larger than human.
- </p>
- <p>
- It moved its head, and then first I saw that its back was toward me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you not come with me?&rdquo; said a sweet, mellow voice, unmistakably a
- woman&rsquo;s.
- </p>
- <p>
- Wishing to learn more of my hostess,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thank you,&rdquo; I replied, &ldquo;but I am not uncomfortable here. Where would
- you have me go? I like sleeping in the open air.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is no hurt in the air,&rdquo; she returned; &ldquo;but the creatures that roam
- the night in these parts are not such as a man would willingly have about
- him while he sleeps.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have not been disturbed,&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No; I have been sitting by you ever since you lay down.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is very kind of you! How came you to know I was here? Why do you
- show me such favour?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I saw you,&rdquo; she answered, still with her back to me, &ldquo;in the light of the
- moon, just as she went down. I see badly in the day, but at night
- perfectly. The shadow of my house would have hidden you, but both its
- doors were open. I was out on the waste, and saw you go into this hollow.
- You were asleep, however, before I could reach you, and I was not willing
- to disturb you. People are frightened if I come on them suddenly. They
- call me the Cat-woman. It is not my name.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I remembered what the children had told me&mdash;that she was very ugly,
- and scratched. But her voice was gentle, and its tone a little apologetic:
- she could not be a bad giantess!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You shall not hear it from me,&rdquo; I answered, &ldquo;Please tell me what I MAY
- call you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When you know me, call me by the name that seems to you to fit me,&rdquo; she
- replied: &ldquo;that will tell me what sort you are. People do not often give me
- the right one. It is well when they do.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suppose, madam, you live in the cottage I saw in the heart of the
- moon?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do. I live there alone, except when I have visitors. It is a poor
- place, but I do what I can for my guests, and sometimes their sleep is
- sweet to them.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Her voice entered into me, and made me feel strangely still.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will go with you, madam,&rdquo; I said, rising.
- </p>
- <p>
- She rose at once, and without a glance behind her led the way. I could see
- her just well enough to follow. She was taller than myself, but not so
- tall as I had thought her. That she never turned her face to me made me
- curious&mdash;nowise apprehensive, her voice rang so true. But how was I
- to fit her with a name who could not see her? I strove to get alongside of
- her, but failed: when I quickened my pace she quickened hers, and kept
- easily ahead of me. At length I did begin to grow a little afraid. Why was
- she so careful not to be seen? Extraordinary ugliness would account for
- it: she might fear terrifying me! Horror of an inconceivable monstrosity
- began to assail me: was I following through the dark an unheard of
- hideousness? Almost I repented of having accepted her hospitality.
- </p>
- <p>
- Neither spoke, and the silence grew unbearable. I MUST break it!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I want to find my way,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;to a place I have heard of, but whose
- name I have not yet learned. Perhaps you can tell it me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Describe it, then, and I will direct you. The stupid Bags know nothing,
- and the careless little Lovers forget almost everything.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where do those live?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are just come from them!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I never heard those names before!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You would not hear them. Neither people knows its own name!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Strange!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps so! but hardly any one anywhere knows his own name! It would make
- many a fine gentleman stare to hear himself addressed by what is really
- his name!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I held my peace, beginning to wonder what my name might be.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What now do you fancy yours?&rdquo; she went on, as if aware of my thought.
- &ldquo;But, pardon me, it is a matter of no consequence.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I had actually opened my mouth to answer her, when I discovered that my
- name was gone from me. I could not even recall the first letter of it!
- This was the second time I had been asked my name and could not tell it!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never mind,&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;it is not wanted. Your real name, indeed, is
- written on your forehead, but at present it whirls about so irregularly
- that nobody can read it. I will do my part to steady it. Soon it will go
- slower, and, I hope, settle at last.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- This startled me, and I was silent.
- </p>
- <p>
- We had left the channels and walked a long time, but no sign of the
- cottage yet appeared.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The Little Ones told me,&rdquo; I said at length, &ldquo;of a smooth green country,
- pleasant to the feet!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes?&rdquo; she returned.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They told me too of a girl giantess that was queen somewhere: is that her
- country?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is a city in that grassy land,&rdquo; she replied, &ldquo;where a woman is
- princess. The city is called Bulika. But certainly the princess is not a
- girl! She is older than this world, and came to it from yours&mdash;with a
- terrible history, which is not over yet. She is an evil person, and
- prevails much with the Prince of the Power of the Air. The people of
- Bulika were formerly simple folk, tilling the ground and pasturing sheep.
- She came among them, and they received her hospitably. She taught them to
- dig for diamonds and opals and sell them to strangers, and made them give
- up tillage and pasturage and build a city. One day they found a huge snake
- and killed it; which so enraged her that she declared herself their
- princess, and became terrible to them. The name of the country at that
- time was THE LAND OF WATERS; for the dry channels, of which you have
- crossed so many, were then overflowing with live torrents; and the valley,
- where now the Bags and the Lovers have their fruit-trees, was a lake that
- received a great part of them. But the wicked princess gathered up in her
- lap what she could of the water over the whole country, closed it in an
- egg, and carried it away. Her lap, however, would not hold more than half
- of it; and the instant she was gone, what she had not yet taken fled away
- underground, leaving the country as dry and dusty as her own heart. Were
- it not for the waters under it, every living thing would long ago have
- perished from it. For where no water is, no rain falls; and where no rain
- falls, no springs rise. Ever since then, the princess has lived in Bulika,
- holding the inhabitants in constant terror, and doing what she can to keep
- them from multiplying. Yet they boast and believe themselves a prosperous,
- and certainly are a self-satisfied people&mdash;good at bargaining and
- buying, good at selling and cheating; holding well together for a common
- interest, and utterly treacherous where interests clash; proud of their
- princess and her power, and despising every one they get the better of;
- never doubting themselves the most honourable of all the nations, and each
- man counting himself better than any other. The depth of their
- worthlessness and height of their vainglory no one can understand who has
- not been there to see, who has not learned to know the miserable
- misgoverned and self-deceived creatures.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thank you, madam. And now, if you please, will you tell me something
- about the Little Ones&mdash;the Lovers? I long heartily to serve them. Who
- and what are they? and how do they come to be there? Those children are
- the greatest wonder I have found in this world of wonders.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In Bulika you may, perhaps, get some light on those matters. There is an
- ancient poem in the library of the palace, I am told, which of course no
- one there can read, but in which it is plainly written that after the
- Lovers have gone through great troubles and learned their own name, they
- will fill the land, and make the giants their slaves.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By that time they will have grown a little, will they not?&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, they will have grown; yet I think too they will not have grown. It
- is possible to grow and not to grow, to grow less and to grow bigger, both
- at once&mdash;yes, even to grow by means of not growing!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your words are strange, madam!&rdquo; I rejoined. &ldquo;But I have heard it said
- that some words, because they mean more, appear to mean less!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is true, and such words HAVE to be understood. It were well for the
- princess of Bulika if she heard what the very silence of the land is
- shouting in her ears all day long! But she is far too clever to understand
- anything.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I suppose, when the little Lovers are grown, their land will have
- water again?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not exactly so: when they are thirsty enough, they will have water, and
- when they have water, they will grow. To grow, they must have water. And,
- beneath, it is flowing still.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have heard that water twice,&rdquo; I said; &ldquo;&mdash;once when I lay down to
- wait for the moon&mdash;and when I woke the sun was shining! and once when
- I fell, all but killed by the bad giant. Both times came the voices of the
- water, and healed me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The woman never turned her head, and kept always a little before me, but I
- could hear every word that left her lips, and her voice much reminded me
- of the woman&rsquo;s in the house of death. Much of what she said, I did not
- understand, and therefore cannot remember. But I forgot that I had ever
- been afraid of her.
- </p>
- <p>
- We went on and on, and crossed yet a wide tract of sand before reaching
- the cottage. Its foundation stood in deep sand, but I could see that it
- was a rock. In character the cottage resembled the sexton&rsquo;s, but had
- thicker walls. The door, which was heavy and strong, opened immediately
- into a large bare room, which had two little windows opposite each other,
- without glass. My hostess walked in at the open door out of which the moon
- had looked, and going straight to the farthest corner, took a long white
- cloth from the floor, and wound it about her head and face. Then she
- closed the other door, in at which the moon had looked, trimmed a small
- horn lantern that stood on the hearth, and turned to receive me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are very welcome, Mr. Vane!&rdquo; she said, calling me by the name I had
- forgotten. &ldquo;Your entertainment will be scanty, but, as the night is not
- far spent, and the day not at hand, it is better you should be indoors.
- Here you will be safe, and a little lack is not a great misery.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thank you heartily, madam,&rdquo; I replied. &ldquo;But, seeing you know the name I
- could not tell you, may I not now know yours?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My name is Mara,&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then I remembered the sexton and the little black cat.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Some people,&rdquo; she went on, &ldquo;take me for Lot&rsquo;s wife, lamenting over Sodom;
- and some think I am Rachel, weeping for her children; but I am neither of
- those.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thank you again, Mara,&rdquo; I said. &ldquo;&mdash;May I lie here on your floor
- till the morning?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;At the top of that stair,&rdquo; she answered, &ldquo;you will find a bed&mdash;on
- which some have slept better than they expected, and some have waked all
- the night and slept all the next day. It is not a very soft one, but it is
- better than the sand&mdash;and there are no hyenas sniffing about it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The stair, narrow and steep, led straight up from the room to an unceiled
- and unpartitioned garret, with one wide, low dormer window. Close under
- the sloping roof stood a narrow bed, the sight of which with its white
- coverlet made me shiver, so vividly it recalled the couches in the chamber
- of death. On the table was a dry loaf, and beside it a cup of cold water.
- To me, who had tasted nothing but fruit for months, they were a feast.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I must leave you in the dark,&rdquo; my hostess called from the bottom of the
- stair. &ldquo;This lantern is all the light I have, and there are things to do
- to-night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is of no consequence, thank you, madam,&rdquo; I returned. &ldquo;To eat and
- drink, to lie down and sleep, are things that can be done in the dark.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rest in peace,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- I ate up the loaf, drank the water every drop, and laid myself down. The
- bed was hard, the covering thin and scanty, and the night cold: I dreamed
- that I lay in the chamber of death, between the warrior and the lady with
- the healing wound.
- </p>
- <p>
- I woke in the middle of the night, thinking I heard low noises of wild
- animals.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Creatures of the desert scenting after me, I suppose!&rdquo; I said to myself,
- and, knowing I was safe, would have gone to sleep again. But that instant
- a rough purring rose to a howl under my window, and I sprang from my bed
- to see what sort of beast uttered it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Before the door of the cottage, in the full radiance of the moon, a tall
- woman stood, clothed in white, with her back toward me. She was stooping
- over a large white animal like a panther, patting and stroking it with one
- hand, while with the other she pointed to the moon half-way up the heaven,
- then drew a perpendicular line to the horizon. Instantly the creature
- darted off with amazing swiftness in the direction indicated. For a moment
- my eyes followed it, then sought the woman; but she was gone, and not yet
- had I seen her face! Again I looked after the animal, but whether I saw or
- only fancied a white speck in the distance, I could not tell.&mdash;What
- did it mean? What was the monster-cat sent off to do? I shuddered, and
- went back to my bed. Then I remembered that, when I lay down in the sandy
- hollow outside, the moon was setting; yet here she was, a few hours after,
- shining in all her glory! &ldquo;Everything is uncertain here,&rdquo; I said to
- myself, &ldquo;&mdash;even the motions of the heavenly bodies!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I learned afterward that there were several moons in the service of this
- world, but the laws that ruled their times and different orbits I failed
- to discover.
- </p>
- <p>
- Again I fell asleep, and slept undisturbed.
- </p>
- <p>
- When I went down in the morning, I found bread and water waiting me, the
- loaf so large that I ate only half of it. My hostess sat muffled beside me
- while I broke my fast, and except to greet me when I entered, never opened
- her mouth until I asked her to instruct me how to arrive at Bulika. She
- then told me to go up the bank of the river-bed until it disappeared; then
- verge to the right until I came to a forest&mdash;in which I might spend a
- night, but which I must leave with my face to the rising moon. Keeping in
- the same direction, she said, until I reached a running stream, I must
- cross that at right angles, and go straight on until I saw the city on the
- horizon.
- </p>
- <p>
- I thanked her, and ventured the remark that, looking out of the window in
- the night, I was astonished to see her messenger understand her so well,
- and go so straight and so fast in the direction she had indicated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If I had but that animal of yours to guide me&mdash;&rdquo; I went on, hoping
- to learn something of its mission, but she interrupted me, saying,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was to Bulika she went&mdash;the shortest way.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How wonderfully intelligent she looked!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Astarte knows her work well enough to be sent to do it,&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have you many messengers like her?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;As many as I require.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are they hard to teach?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They need no teaching. They are all of a certain breed, but not one of
- the breed is like another. Their origin is so natural it would seem to you
- incredible.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;May I not know it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A new one came to me last night&mdash;from your head while you slept.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I laughed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;All in this world seem to love mystery!&rdquo; I said to myself. &ldquo;Some chance
- word of mine suggested an idea&mdash;and in this form she embodies the
- small fact!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then the creature is mine!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not at all!&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;That only can be ours in whose existence our
- will is a factor.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ha! a metaphysician too!&rdquo; I remarked inside, and was silent.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;May I take what is left of the loaf?&rdquo; I asked presently.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will want no more to-day,&rdquo; she replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To-morrow I may!&rdquo; I rejoined.
- </p>
- <p>
- She rose and went to the door, saying as she went,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It has nothing to do with to-morrow&mdash;but you may take it if you
- will.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She opened the door, and stood holding it. I rose, taking up the bread&mdash;but
- lingered, much desiring to see her face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Must I go, then?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No one sleeps in my house two nights together!&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thank you, then, for your hospitality, and bid you farewell!&rdquo; I said,
- and turned to go.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The time will come when you must house with me many days and many
- nights,&rdquo; she murmured sadly through her muffling.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Willingly,&rdquo; I replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nay, NOT willingly!&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- I said to myself that she was right&mdash;I would not willingly be her
- guest a second time! but immediately my heart rebuked me, and I had scarce
- crossed the threshold when I turned again.
- </p>
- <p>
- She stood in the middle of the room; her white garments lay like foamy
- waves at her feet, and among them the swathings of her face: it was lovely
- as a night of stars. Her great gray eyes looked up to heaven; tears were
- flowing down her pale cheeks. She reminded me not a little of the sexton&rsquo;s
- wife, although the one looked as if she had not wept for thousands of
- years, and the other as if she wept constantly behind the wrappings of her
- beautiful head. Yet something in the very eyes that wept seemed to say,
- &ldquo;Weeping may endure for a night, but joy cometh in the morning.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I had bowed my head for a moment, about to kneel and beg her forgiveness,
- when, looking up in the act, I found myself outside a doorless house. I
- went round and round it, but could find no entrance.
- </p>
- <p>
- I had stopped under one of the windows, on the point of calling aloud my
- repentant confession, when a sudden wailing, howling scream invaded my
- ears, and my heart stood still. Something sprang from the window above my
- head, and lighted beyond me. I turned, and saw a large gray cat, its hair
- on end, shooting toward the river-bed. I fell with my face in the sand,
- and seemed to hear within the house the gentle sobbing of one who suffered
- but did not repent.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0016" id="link2HCH0016">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XVI. A GRUESOME DANCE
- </h2>
- <p>
- I rose to resume my journey, and walked many a desert mile. How I longed
- for a mountain, or even a tall rock, from whose summit I might see across
- the dismal plain or the dried-up channels to some bordering hope! Yet what
- could such foresight have availed me? That which is within a man, not that
- which lies beyond his vision, is the main factor in what is about to
- befall him: the operation upon him is the event. Foreseeing is not
- understanding, else surely the prophecy latent in man would come oftener
- to the surface!
- </p>
- <p>
- The sun was half-way to the horizon when I saw before me a rugged rocky
- ascent; but ere I reached it my desire to climb was over, and I longed to
- lie down. By that time the sun was almost set, and the air had begun to
- grow dark. At my feet lay a carpet of softest, greenest moss, couch for a
- king: I threw myself upon it, and weariness at once began to ebb, for, the
- moment my head was down, the third time I heard below me many waters,
- playing broken airs and ethereal harmonies with the stones of their buried
- channels. Loveliest chaos of music-stuff the harp aquarian kept sending up
- to my ears! What might not a Händel have done with that ever-recurring
- gurgle and bell-like drip, to the mingling and mutually destructive
- melodies their common refrain!
- </p>
- <p>
- As I lay listening, my eyes went wandering up and down the rocky slope
- abrupt above me, reading on its face the record that down there, ages ago,
- rushed a cataract, filling the channels that had led me to its foot. My
- heart swelled at the thought of the splendid tumult, where the waves
- danced revelling in helpless fall, to mass their music in one organ-roar
- below. But soon the hidden brooks lulled me to sleep, and their lullabies
- mingled with my dreams.
- </p>
- <p>
- I woke before the sun, and eagerly climbed to see what lay beyond. Alas,
- nothing but a desert of finest sand! Not a trace was left of the river
- that had plunged adown the rocks! The powdery drift had filled its course
- to the level of the dreary expanse! As I looked back I saw that the river
- had divided into two branches as it fell, that whose bank I had now
- followed to the foot of the rocky scaur, and that which first I crossed to
- the Evil Wood. The wood I descried between the two on the far horizon.
- Before me and to the left, the desert stretched beyond my vision, but far
- to the right I could see a lift in the sky-line, giving hope of the forest
- to which my hostess had directed me.
- </p>
- <p>
- I sat down, and sought in my pocket the half-loaf I had brought with me&mdash;then
- first to understand what my hostess had meant concerning it. Verily the
- bread was not for the morrow: it had shrunk and hardened to a stone! I
- threw it away, and set out again.
- </p>
- <p>
- About noon I came to a few tamarisk and juniper trees, and then to a few
- stunted firs. As I went on, closer thickets and larger firs met me, and at
- length I was in just such a forest of pines and other trees as that in
- which the Little Ones found their babies, and believed I had returned upon
- a farther portion of the same. But what mattered WHERE while EVERYWHERE
- was the same as NOWHERE! I had not yet, by doing something in it, made
- ANYWHERE into a place! I was not yet alive; I was only dreaming I lived! I
- was but a consciousness with an outlook! Truly I had been nothing else in
- the world I had left, but now I knew the fact! I said to myself that if in
- this forest I should catch the faint gleam of the mirror, I would turn far
- aside lest it should entrap me unawares, and give me back to my old
- existence: here I might learn to be something by doing something! I could
- not endure the thought of going back, with so many beginnings and not an
- end achieved. The Little Ones would meet what fate was appointed them; the
- awful witch I should never meet; the dead would ripen and arise without
- me; I should but wake to know that I had dreamed, and that all my going
- was nowhither! I would rather go on and on than come to such a close!
- </p>
- <p>
- I went deeper into the wood: I was weary, and would rest in it.
- </p>
- <p>
- The trees were now large, and stood in regular, almost geometric, fashion,
- with roomy spaces between. There was little undergrowth, and I could see a
- long way in every direction. The forest was like a great church, solemn
- and silent and empty, for I met nothing on two feet or four that day. Now
- and then, it is true, some swift thing, and again some slow thing, would
- cross the space on which my eye happened that moment to settle; but it was
- always at some distance, and only enhanced the sense of wideness and
- vacancy. I heard a few birds, and saw plenty of butterflies, some of
- marvellously gorgeous colouring and combinations of colour, some of a pure
- and dazzling whiteness.
- </p>
- <p>
- Coming to a spot where the pines stood farther apart and gave room for
- flowering shrubs, and hoping it a sign of some dwelling near, I took the
- direction where yet more and more roses grew, for I was hungry after the
- voice and face of my kind&mdash;after any live soul, indeed, human or not,
- which I might in some measure understand. What a hell of horror, I
- thought, to wander alone, a bare existence never going out of itself,
- never widening its life in another life, but, bound with the cords of its
- poor peculiarities, lying an eternal prisoner in the dungeon of its own
- being! I began to learn that it was impossible to live for oneself even,
- save in the presence of others&mdash;then, alas, fearfully possible! evil
- was only through good! selfishness but a parasite on the tree of life! In
- my own world I had the habit of solitary song; here not a crooning murmur
- ever parted my lips! There I sang without thinking; here I thought without
- singing! there I had never had a bosom-friend; here the affection of an
- idiot would be divinely welcome! &ldquo;If only I had a dog to love!&rdquo; I sighed&mdash;and
- regarded with wonder my past self, which preferred the company of book or
- pen to that of man or woman; which, if the author of a tale I was enjoying
- appeared, would wish him away that I might return to his story. I had
- chosen the dead rather than the living, the thing thought rather than the
- thing thinking! &ldquo;Any man,&rdquo; I said now, &ldquo;is more than the greatest of
- books!&rdquo; I had not cared for my live brothers and sisters, and now I was
- left without even the dead to comfort me!
- </p>
- <p>
- The wood thinned yet more, and the pines grew yet larger, sending up huge
- stems, like columns eager to support the heavens. More trees of other
- kinds appeared; the forest was growing richer! The roses wore now trees,
- and their flowers of astonishing splendour.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly I spied what seemed a great house or castle; but its forms were
- so strangely indistinct, that I could not be certain it was more than a
- chance combination of tree-shapes. As I drew nearer, its lines yet held
- together, but neither they nor the body of it grew at all more definite;
- and when at length I stood in front of it, I remained as doubtful of its
- nature as before. House or castle habitable, it certainly was not; it
- might be a ruin overgrown with ivy and roses! Yet of building hid in the
- foliage, not the poorest wall-remnant could I discern. Again and again I
- seemed to descry what must be building, but it always vanished before
- closer inspection. Could it be, I pondered, that the ivy had embraced a
- huge edifice and consumed it, and its interlaced branches retained the
- shapes of the walls it had assimilated?&mdash;I could be sure of nothing
- concerning the appearance.
- </p>
- <p>
- Before me was a rectangular vacancy&mdash;the ghost of a doorway without a
- door: I stepped through it, and found myself in an open space like a great
- hall, its floor covered with grass and flowers, its walls and roof of ivy
- and vine, mingled with roses.
- </p>
- <p>
- There could be no better place in which to pass the night! I gathered a
- quantity of withered leaves, laid them in a corner, and threw myself upon
- them. A red sunset filled the hall, the night was warm, and my couch
- restful; I lay gazing up at the live ceiling, with its tracery of branches
- and twigs, its clouds of foliage, and peeping patches of loftier roof. My
- eyes went wading about as if tangled in it, until the sun was down, and
- the sky beginning to grow dark. Then the red roses turned black, and soon
- the yellow and white alone were visible. When they vanished, the stars
- came instead, hanging in the leaves like live topazes, throbbing and
- sparkling and flashing many colours: I was canopied with a tree from
- Aladdin&rsquo;s cave!
- </p>
- <p>
- Then I discovered that it was full of nests, whence tiny heads, nearly
- indistinguishable, kept popping out with a chirp or two, and disappearing
- again. For a while there were rustlings and stirrings and little prayers;
- but as the darkness grew, the small heads became still, and at last every
- feathered mother had her brood quiet under her wings, the talk in the
- little beds was over, and God&rsquo;s bird-nursery at rest beneath the waves of
- sleep. Once more a few flutterings made me look up: an owl went sailing
- across. I had only a glimpse of him, but several times felt the cool
- wafture of his silent wings. The mother birds did not move again; they saw
- that he was looking for mice, not children.
- </p>
- <p>
- About midnight I came wide awake, roused by a revelry, whose noises were
- yet not loud. Neither were they distant; they were close to me, but
- attenuate. My eyes were so dazzled, however, that for a while I could see
- nothing; at last they came to themselves.
- </p>
- <p>
- I was lying on my withered leaves in the corner of a splendid hall. Before
- me was a crowd of gorgeously dressed men and gracefully robed women, none
- of whom seemed to see me. In dance after dance they vaguely embodied the
- story of life, its meetings, its passions, its partings. A student of
- Shakspere, I had learned something of every dance alluded to in his plays,
- and hence partially understood several of those I now saw&mdash;the
- minuet, the pavin, the hey, the coranto, the lavolta. The dancers were
- attired in fashion as ancient as their dances.
- </p>
- <p>
- A moon had risen while I slept, and was shining through the
- countless-windowed roof; but her light was crossed by so many shadows that
- at first I could distinguish almost nothing of the faces of the multitude;
- I could not fail, however, to perceive that there was something odd about
- them: I sat up to see them better.&mdash;Heavens! could I call them faces?
- They were skull fronts!&mdash;hard, gleaming bone, bare jaws, truncated
- noses, lipless teeth which could no more take part in any smile! Of these,
- some flashed set and white and murderous; others were clouded with decay,
- broken and gapped, coloured of the earth in which they seemed so long to
- have lain! Fearfuller yet, the eye-sockets were not empty; in each was a
- lidless living eye! In those wrecks of faces, glowed or flashed or
- sparkled eyes of every colour, shape, and expression. The beautiful, proud
- eye, dark and lustrous, condescending to whatever it rested upon, was the
- more terrible; the lovely, languishing eye, the more repulsive; while the
- dim, sad eyes, less at variance with their setting, were sad exceedingly,
- and drew the heart in spite of the horror out of which they gazed.
- </p>
- <p>
- I rose and went among the apparitions, eager to understand something of
- their being and belongings. Were they souls, or were they and their
- rhythmic motions but phantasms of what had been? By look nor by gesture,
- not by slightest break in the measure, did they show themselves aware of
- me; I was not present to them: how much were they in relation to each
- other? Surely they saw their companions as I saw them! Or was each only
- dreaming itself and the rest? Did they know each how they appeared to the
- others&mdash;a death with living eyes? Had they used their faces, not for
- communication, not to utter thought and feeling, not to share existence
- with their neighbours, but to appear what they wished to appear, and
- conceal what they were? and, having made their faces masks, were they
- therefore deprived of those masks, and condemned to go without faces until
- they repented?
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How long must they flaunt their facelessness in faceless eyes?&rdquo; I
- wondered. &ldquo;How long will the frightful punition endure? Have they at
- length begun to love and be wise? Have they yet yielded to the shame that
- has found them?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I heard not a word, saw not a movement of one naked mouth. Were they
- because of lying bereft of speech? With their eyes they spoke as if
- longing to be understood: was it truth or was it falsehood that spoke in
- their eyes? They seemed to know one another: did they see one skull
- beautiful, and another plain? Difference must be there, and they had had
- long study of skulls!
- </p>
- <p>
- My body was to theirs no obstacle: was I a body, and were they but forms?
- or was I but a form, and were they bodies? The moment one of the dancers
- came close against me, that moment he or she was on the other side of me,
- and I could tell, without seeing, which, whether man or woman, had passed
- through my house.
- </p>
- <p>
- On many of the skulls the hair held its place, and however dressed, or in
- itself however beautiful, to my eyes looked frightful on the bones of the
- forehead and temples. In such case, the outer ear often remained also, and
- at its tip, the jewel of the ear as Sidney calls it, would hang,
- glimmering, gleaming, or sparkling, pearl or opal or diamond&mdash;under
- the night of brown or of raven locks, the sunrise of golden ripples, or
- the moonshine of pale, interclouded, fluffy cirri&mdash;lichenous all on
- the ivory-white or damp-yellow naked bone. I looked down and saw the
- daintily domed instep; I looked up and saw the plump shoulders basing the
- spring of the round full neck&mdash;which withered at half-height to the
- fluted shaft of a gibbose cranium.
- </p>
- <p>
- The music became wilder, the dance faster and faster; eyes flared and
- flashed, jewels twinkled and glittered, casting colour and fire on the
- pallid grins that glode through the hall, weaving a ghastly rhythmic woof
- in intricate maze of multitudinous motion, when sudden came a pause, and
- every eye turned to the same spot:&mdash;in the doorway stood a woman,
- perfect in form, in holding, and in hue, regarding the company as from the
- pedestal of a goddess, while the dancers stood &ldquo;like one forbid,&rdquo; frozen
- to a new death by the vision of a life that killed. &ldquo;Dead things, I live!&rdquo;
- said her scornful glance. Then, at once, like leaves in which an instant
- wind awakes, they turned each to another, and broke afresh into melodious
- consorted motion, a new expression in their eyes, late solitary, now
- filled with the interchange of a common triumph. &ldquo;Thou also,&rdquo; they seemed
- to say, &ldquo;wilt soon become weak as we! thou wilt soon become like unto us!&rdquo;
- I turned mine again to the woman&mdash;and saw upon her side a small dark
- shadow.
- </p>
- <p>
- She had seen the change in the dead stare; she looked down; she understood
- the talking eyes; she pressed both her lovely hands on the shadow, gave a
- smothered cry, and fled. The birds moved rustling in their nests, and a
- flash of joy lit up the eyes of the dancers, when suddenly a warm wind,
- growing in strength as it swept through the place, blew out every light.
- But the low moon yet glimmered on the horizon with &ldquo;sick assay&rdquo; to shine,
- and a turbid radiance yet gleamed from so many eyes, that I saw well
- enough what followed. As if each shape had been but a snow-image, it began
- to fall to pieces, ruining in the warm wind. In papery flakes the flesh
- peeled from its bones, dropping like soiled snow from under its garments;
- these fell fluttering in rags and strips, and the whole white skeleton,
- emerging from garment and flesh together, stood bare and lank amid the
- decay that littered the floor. A faint rattling shiver went through the
- naked company; pair after pair the lamping eyes went out; and the darkness
- grew round me with the loneliness. For a moment the leaves were still
- swept fluttering all one way; then the wind ceased, and the owl floated
- silent through the silent night.
- </p>
- <p>
- Not for a moment had I been afraid. It is true that whoever would cross
- the threshold of any world, must leave fear behind him; but, for myself, I
- could claim no part in its absence. No conscious courage was operant in
- me; simply, I was not afraid. I neither knew why I was not afraid, nor
- wherefore I might have been afraid. I feared not even fear&mdash;which of
- all dangers is the most dangerous.
- </p>
- <p>
- I went out into the wood, at once to resume my journey. Another moon was
- rising, and I turned my face toward it.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0017" id="link2HCH0017">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XVII. A GROTESQUE TRAGEDY
- </h2>
- <p>
- I had not gone ten paces when I caught sight of a strange-looking object,
- and went nearer to know what it might be. I found it a mouldering carriage
- of ancient form, ruinous but still upright on its heavy wheels. On each
- side of the pole, still in its place, lay the skeleton of a horse; from
- their two grim white heads ascended the shrivelled reins to the hand of
- the skeleton-coachman seated on his tattered hammer-cloth; both doors had
- fallen away; within sat two skeletons, each leaning back in its corner.
- </p>
- <p>
- Even as I looked, they started awake, and with a cracking rattle of bones,
- each leaped from the door next it. One fell and lay; the other stood a
- moment, its structure shaking perilously; then with difficulty, for its
- joints were stiff, crept, holding by the back of the carriage, to the
- opposite side, the thin leg-bones seeming hardly strong enough to carry
- its weight, where, kneeling by the other, it sought to raise it, almost
- falling itself again in the endeavour.
- </p>
- <p>
- The prostrate one rose at length, as by a sudden effort, to the sitting
- posture. For a few moments it turned its yellowish skull to this side and
- that; then, heedless of its neighbour, got upon its feet by grasping the
- spokes of the hind wheel. Half erected thus, it stood with its back to the
- other, both hands holding one of its knee-joints. With little less
- difficulty and not a few contortions, the kneeling one rose next, and
- addressed its companion.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have you hurt yourself, my lord?&rdquo; it said, in a voice that sounded
- far-off, and ill-articulated as if blown aside by some spectral wind.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, I have,&rdquo; answered the other, in like but rougher tone. &ldquo;You would do
- nothing to help me, and this cursed knee is out!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did my best, my lord.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No doubt, my lady, for it was bad! I thought I should never find my feet
- again!&mdash;But, bless my soul, madam! are you out in your bones?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She cast a look at herself.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have nothing else to be out in,&rdquo; she returned; &ldquo;&mdash;and YOU at least
- cannot complain! But what on earth does it mean? Am I dreaming?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;YOU may be dreaming, madam&mdash;I cannot tell; but this knee of mine
- forbids me the grateful illusion.&mdash;Ha! I too, I perceive, have
- nothing to walk in but bones!&mdash;Not so unbecoming to a man, however! I
- trust to goodness they are not MY bones! every one aches worse than
- another, and this loose knee worst of all! The bed must have been damp&mdash;and
- I too drunk to know it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Probably, my lord of Cokayne!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What! what!&mdash;You make me think I too am dreaming&mdash;aches and
- all! How do YOU know the title my roistering bullies give me? I don&rsquo;t
- remember you!&mdash;Anyhow, you have no right to take liberties! My name
- is&mdash;I am lord&mdash;&mdash;tut, tut! What do you call me when I&rsquo;m&mdash;I
- mean when you are sober? I cannot&mdash;at the moment,&mdash;Why, what IS
- my name?&mdash;I must have been VERY drunk when I went to bed! I often
- am!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You come so seldom to mine, that I do not know, my lord; but I may take
- your word for THAT!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I hope so!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;&mdash;if for nothing else!&rdquo; &ldquo;Hoity toity! I never told you a lie in my
- life!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You never told me anything but lies.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Upon my honour!&mdash;Why, I never saw the woman before!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You knew me well enough to lie to, my lord!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do seem to begin to dream I have met you before, but, upon my oath,
- there is nothing to know you by! Out of your clothes, who is to tell who
- you may not be?&mdash;One thing I MAY swear&mdash;that I never saw you so
- much undressed before!&mdash;By heaven, I have no recollection of you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am glad to hear it: my recollections of you are the less distasteful!&mdash;Good
- morning, my lord!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She turned away, hobbled, clacking, a few paces, and stood again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are just as heartless as&mdash;as&mdash;any other woman, madam!&mdash;Where
- in this hell of a place shall I find my valet?&mdash;What was the cursed
- name I used to call the fool?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned his bare noddle this way and that on its creaking pivot, still
- holding his knee with both hands.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will be your valet for once, my lord,&rdquo; said the lady, turning once more
- to him. &ldquo;&mdash;What can I do for you? It is not easy to tell!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tie my leg on, of course, you fool! Can&rsquo;t you see it is all but off?
- Heigho, my dancing days!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She looked about with her eyeless sockets and found a piece of fibrous
- grass, with which she proceeded to bind together the adjoining parts that
- had formed the knee. When she had done, he gave one or two carefully
- tentative stamps.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You used to stamp rather differently, my lord!&rdquo; she said, as she rose
- from her knees.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Eh? what!&mdash;Now I look at you again, it seems to me I used to hate
- you!&mdash;Eh?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Naturally, my lord! You hated a good many people!&mdash;your wife, of
- course, among the rest!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, I begin, I be-gin&mdash;&mdash; But&mdash;I must have been a long
- time somewhere!&mdash;I really forget!&mdash;There! your damned, miserable
- bit of grass is breaking!&mdash;We used to get on PRETTY well together&mdash;eh?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not that I remember, my lord. The only happy moments I had in your
- company were scattered over the first week of our marriage.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Was that the way of it? Ha! ha!&mdash;Well, it&rsquo;s over now, thank
- goodness!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I wish I could believe it! Why were we sitting there in that carriage
- together? It wakes apprehension!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think we were divorced, my lady!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hardly enough: we are still together!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A sad truth, but capable of remedy: the forest seems of some extent!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I doubt! I doubt!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am sorry I cannot think of a compliment to pay you&mdash;without lying,
- that is. To judge by your figure and complexion you have lived hard since
- I saw you last! I cannot surely be QUITE so naked as your ladyship!&mdash;I
- beg your pardon, madam! I trust you will take it I am but jesting in a
- dream! It is of no consequence, however; dreaming or waking, all&rsquo;s one&mdash;all
- merest appearance! You can&rsquo;t be certain of anything, and that&rsquo;s as good as
- knowing there is nothing! Life may teach any fool that!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It has taught me the fool I was to love you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You were not the only fool to do that! Women had a trick of falling in
- love with me:&mdash;I had forgotten that you were one of them!&rdquo; &ldquo;I did
- love you, my lord&mdash;a little&mdash;at one time!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, there was your mistake, my lady! You should have loved me much, loved
- me devotedly, loved me savagely&mdash;loved me eternally! Then I should
- have tired of you the sooner, and not hated you so much afterward!&mdash;But
- let bygones be bygones!&mdash;WHERE are we? Locality is the question! To
- be or not to be, is NOT the question!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We are in the other world, I presume!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Granted!&mdash;but in which or what sort of other world? This can&rsquo;t be
- hell!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It must: there&rsquo;s marriage in it! You and I are damned in each other.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then I&rsquo;m not like Othello, damned in a fair wife!&mdash;Oh, I remember my
- Shakspeare, madam!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She picked up a broken branch that had fallen into a bush, and steadying
- herself with it, walked away, tossing her little skull.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Give that stick to me,&rdquo; cried her late husband; &ldquo;I want it more than
- you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She returned him no answer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You mean to make me beg for it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not at all, my lord. I mean to keep it,&rdquo; she replied, continuing her slow
- departure.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Give it me at once; I mean to have it! I require it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Unfortunately, I think I require it myself!&rdquo; returned the lady, walking a
- little quicker, with a sharper cracking of her joints and clinking of her
- bones.
- </p>
- <p>
- He started to follow her, but nearly fell: his knee-grass had burst, and
- with an oath he stopped, grasping his leg again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come and tie it up properly!&rdquo; he would have thundered, but he only piped
- and whistled!
- </p>
- <p>
- She turned and looked at him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come and tie it up instantly!&rdquo; he repeated.
- </p>
- <p>
- She walked a step or two farther from him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I swear I will not touch you!&rdquo; he cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Swear on, my lord! there is no one here to believe you. But, pray, do not
- lose your temper, or you will shake yourself to pieces, and where to find
- string enough to tie up all your crazy joints, is more than I can tell.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She came back, and knelt once more at his side&mdash;first, however,
- laying the stick in dispute beyond his reach and within her own.
- </p>
- <p>
- The instant she had finished retying the joint, he made a grab at her,
- thinking, apparently, to seize her by the hair; but his hard fingers
- slipped on the smooth poll.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Disgusting!&rdquo; he muttered, and laid hold of her upper arm-bone.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will break it!&rdquo; she said, looking up from her knees.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will, then!&rdquo; he answered, and began to strain at it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall not tie your leg again the next time it comes loose!&rdquo; she
- threatened.
- </p>
- <p>
- He gave her arm a vicious twist, but happily her bones were in better
- condition than his. She stretched her other hand toward the broken branch.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That&rsquo;s right: reach me the stick!&rdquo; he grinned.
- </p>
- <p>
- She brought it round with such a swing that one of the bones of the
- sounder leg snapped. He fell, choking with curses. The lady laughed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now you will have to wear splints always!&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;such dry bones
- never mend!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You devil!&rdquo; he cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;At your service, my lord! Shall I fetch you a couple of wheel-spokes?
- Neat&mdash;but heavy, I fear!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned his bone-face aside, and did not answer, but lay and groaned. I
- marvelled he had not gone to pieces when he fell. The lady rose and walked
- away&mdash;not all ungracefully, I thought.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What can come of it?&rdquo; I said to myself. &ldquo;These are too wretched for any
- world, and this cannot be hell, for the Little Ones are in it, and the
- sleepers too! What can it all mean? Can things ever come right for
- skeletons?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There are words too big for you and me: ALL is one of them, and EVER is
- another,&rdquo; said a voice near me which I knew.
- </p>
- <p>
- I looked about, but could not see the speaker.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are not in hell,&rdquo; it resumed. &ldquo;Neither am I in hell. But those
- skeletons are in hell!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Ere he ended I caught sight of the raven on the bough of a beech, right
- over my head. The same moment he left it, and alighting on the ground,
- stood there, the thin old man of the library, with long nose and long
- coat.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The male was never a gentleman,&rdquo; he went on, &ldquo;and in the bony stage of
- retrogression, with his skeleton through his skin, and his character
- outside his manners, does not look like one. The female is less vulgar,
- and has a little heart. But, the restraints of society removed, you see
- them now just as they are and always were!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me, Mr. Raven, what will become of them,&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shall see,&rdquo; he replied. &ldquo;In their day they were the handsomest couple
- at court; and now, even in their dry bones, they seem to regard their
- former repute as an inalienable possession; to see their faces, however,
- may yet do something for them! They felt themselves rich too while they
- had pockets, but they have already begun to feel rather pinched! My lord
- used to regard my lady as a worthless encumbrance, for he was tired of her
- beauty and had spent her money; now he needs her to cobble his joints for
- him! These changes have roots of hope in them. Besides, they cannot now
- get far away from each other, and they see none else of their own kind:
- they must at last grow weary of their mutual repugnance, and begin to love
- one another! for love, not hate, is deepest in what Love &lsquo;loved into
- being.&rsquo;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I saw many more of their kind an hour ago, in the hall close by!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of their kind, but not of their sort,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;For many years these
- will see none such as you saw last night. Those are centuries in advance
- of these. You saw that those could even dress themselves a little! It is
- true they cannot yet retain their clothes so long as they would&mdash;only,
- at present, for a part of the night; but they are pretty steadily growing
- more capable, and will by and by develop faces; for every grain of
- truthfulness adds a fibre to the show of their humanity. Nothing but truth
- can appear; and whatever is must seem.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are they upheld by this hope?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They are upheld by hope, but they do not in the least know their hope; to
- understand it, is yet immeasurably beyond them,&rdquo; answered Mr. Raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- His unexpected appearance had caused me no astonishment. I was like a
- child, constantly wondering, and surprised at nothing.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you come to find me, sir?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not at all,&rdquo; he replied. &ldquo;I have no anxiety about you. Such as you always
- come back to us.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me, please, who am I such as?&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot make my friend the subject of conversation,&rdquo; he answered, with a
- smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But when that friend is present!&rdquo; I urged.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I decline the more strongly,&rdquo; he rejoined.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But when that friend asks you!&rdquo; I persisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then most positively I refuse,&rdquo; he returned.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because he and I would be talking of two persons as if they were one and
- the same. Your consciousness of yourself and my knowledge of you are far
- apart!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The lapels of his coat flew out, and the lappets lifted, and I thought the
- metamorphosis of HOMO to CORVUS was about to take place before my eyes.
- But the coat closed again in front of him, and he added, with seeming
- inconsequence,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In this world never trust a person who has once deceived you. Above all,
- never do anything such a one may ask you to do.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will try to remember,&rdquo; I answered; &ldquo;&mdash;but I may forget!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then some evil that is good for you will follow.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And if I remember?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Some evil that is not good for you, will not follow.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The old man seemed to sink to the ground, and immediately I saw the raven
- several yards from me, flying low and fast.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0018" id="link2HCH0018">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XVIII. DEAD OR ALIVE?
- </h2>
- <p>
- I went walking on, still facing the moon, who, not yet high, was staring
- straight into the forest. I did not know what ailed her, but she was dark
- and dented, like a battered disc of old copper, and looked dispirited and
- weary. Not a cloud was nigh to keep her company, and the stars were too
- bright for her. &ldquo;Is this going to last for ever?&rdquo; she seemed to say. She
- was going one way and I was going the other, yet through the wood we went
- a long way together. We did not commune much, for my eyes were on the
- ground; but her disconsolate look was fixed on me: I felt without seeing
- it. A long time we were together, I and the moon, walking side by side,
- she the dull shine, and I the live shadow.
- </p>
- <p>
- Something on the ground, under a spreading tree, caught my eye with its
- whiteness, and I turned toward it. Vague as it was in the shadow of the
- foliage, it suggested, as I drew nearer, a human body. &ldquo;Another skeleton!&rdquo;
- I said to myself, kneeling and laying my hand upon it. A body it was,
- however, and no skeleton, though as nearly one as body could well be. It
- lay on its side, and was very cold&mdash;not cold like a stone, but cold
- like that which was once alive, and is alive no more. The closer I looked
- at it, the oftener I touched it, the less it seemed possible it should be
- other than dead. For one bewildered moment, I fancied it one of the wild
- dancers, a ghostly Cinderella, perhaps, that had lost her way home, and
- perished in the strange night of an out-of-door world! It was quite naked,
- and so worn that, even in the shadow, I could, peering close, have counted
- without touching them, every rib in its side. All its bones, indeed, were
- as visible as if tight-covered with only a thin elastic leather. Its
- beautiful yet terrible teeth, unseemly disclosed by the retracted lips,
- gleamed ghastly through the dark. Its hair was longer than itself, thick
- and very fine to the touch, and black as night.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the body of a tall, probably graceful woman.&mdash;How had she come
- there? Not of herself, and already in such wasted condition, surely! Her
- strength must have failed her; she had fallen, and lain there until she
- died of hunger! But how, even so, could she be thus emaciated? And how
- came she to be naked? Where were the savages to strip and leave her? or
- what wild beasts would have taken her garments? That her body should have
- been left was not wonderful!
- </p>
- <p>
- I rose to my feet, stood, and considered. I must not, could not let her
- lie exposed and forsaken! Natural reverence forbade it. Even the garment
- of a woman claims respect; her body it were impossible to leave uncovered!
- Irreverent eyes might look on it! Brutal claws might toss it about! Years
- would pass ere the friendly rains washed it into the soil!&mdash;But the
- ground was hard, almost solid with interlacing roots, and I had but my
- bare hands!
- </p>
- <p>
- At first it seemed plain that she had not long been dead: there was not a
- sign of decay about her! But then what had the slow wasting of life left
- of her to decay?
- </p>
- <p>
- Could she be still alive? Might she not? What if she were! Things went
- very strangely in this strange world! Even then there would be little
- chance of bringing her back, but I must know she was dead before I buried
- her!
- </p>
- <p>
- As I left the forest-hall, I had spied in the doorway a bunch of ripe
- grapes, and brought it with me, eating as I came: a few were yet left on
- the stalk, and their juice might possibly revive her! Anyhow it was all I
- had with which to attempt her rescue! The mouth was happily a little open;
- but the head was in such an awkward position that, to move the body, I
- passed my arm under the shoulder on which it lay, when I found the
- pine-needles beneath it warm: she could not have been any time dead, and
- MIGHT still be alive, though I could discern no motion of the heart, or
- any indication that she breathed! One of her hands was clenched hard,
- apparently inclosing something small. I squeezed a grape into her mouth,
- but no swallowing followed.
- </p>
- <p>
- To do for her all I could, I spread a thick layer of pine-needles and dry
- leaves, laid one of my garments over it, warm from my body, lifted her
- upon it, and covered her with my clothes and a great heap of leaves: I
- would save the little warmth left in her, hoping an increase to it when
- the sun came back. Then I tried another grape, but could perceive no
- slightest movement of mouth or throat.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Doubt,&rdquo; I said to myself, &ldquo;may be a poor encouragement to do anything,
- but it is a bad reason for doing nothing.&rdquo; So tight was the skin upon her
- bones that I dared not use friction.
- </p>
- <p>
- I crept into the heap of leaves, got as close to her as I could, and took
- her in my arms. I had not much heat left in me, but what I had I would
- share with her! Thus I spent what remained of the night, sleepless, and
- longing for the sun. Her cold seemed to radiate into me, but no heat to
- pass from me to her.
- </p>
- <p>
- Had I fled from the beautiful sleepers, I thought, each on her &ldquo;dim,
- straight&rdquo; silver couch, to lie alone with such a bedfellow! I had refused
- a lovely privilege: I was given over to an awful duty! Beneath the sad,
- slow-setting moon, I lay with the dead, and watched for the dawn.
- </p>
- <p>
- The darkness had given way, and the eastern horizon was growing dimly
- clearer, when I caught sight of a motion rather than of anything that
- moved&mdash;not far from me, and close to the ground. It was the low
- undulating of a large snake, which passed me in an unswerving line.
- Presently appeared, making as it seemed for the same point, what I took
- for a roebuck-doe and her calf. Again a while, and two creatures like
- bear-cubs came, with three or four smaller ones behind them. The light was
- now growing so rapidly that when, a few minutes after, a troop of horses
- went trotting past, I could see that, although the largest of them were no
- bigger than the smallest Shetland pony, they must yet be full-grown, so
- perfect were they in form, and so much had they all the ways and action of
- great horses. They were of many breeds. Some seemed models of cart-horses,
- others of chargers, hunters, racers. Dwarf cattle and small elephants
- followed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why are the children not here!&rdquo; I said to myself. &ldquo;The moment I am free
- of this poor woman, I must go back and fetch them!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Where were the creatures going? What drew them? Was this an exodus, or a
- morning habit? I must wait for the sun! Till he came I must not leave the
- woman! I laid my hand on the body, and could not help thinking it felt a
- trifle warmer. It might have gained a little of the heat I had lost! it
- could hardly have generated any! What reason for hope there was had not
- grown less!
- </p>
- <p>
- The forehead of the day began to glow, and soon the sun came peering up,
- as if to see for the first time what all this stir of a new world was
- about. At sight of his great innocent splendour, I rose full of life,
- strong against death. Removing the handkerchief I had put to protect the
- mouth and eyes from the pine-needles, I looked anxiously to see whether I
- had found a priceless jewel, or but its empty case.
- </p>
- <p>
- The body lay motionless as when I found it. Then first, in the morning
- light, I saw how drawn and hollow was the face, how sharp were the bones
- under the skin, how every tooth shaped itself through the lips. The human
- garment was indeed worn to its threads, but the bird of heaven might yet
- be nestling within, might yet awake to motion and song!
- </p>
- <p>
- But the sun was shining on her face! I re-arranged the handkerchief, laid
- a few leaves lightly over it, and set out to follow the creatures. Their
- main track was well beaten, and must have long been used&mdash;likewise
- many of the tracks that, joining it from both sides, merged in, and
- broadened it. The trees retreated as I went, and the grass grew thicker.
- Presently the forest was gone, and a wide expanse of loveliest green
- stretched away to the horizon. Through it, along the edge of the forest,
- flowed a small river, and to this the track led. At sight of the water a
- new though undefined hope sprang up in me. The stream looked everywhere
- deep, and was full to the brim, but nowhere more than a few yards wide. A
- bluish mist rose from it, vanishing as it rose. On the opposite side, in
- the plentiful grass, many small animals were feeding. Apparently they
- slept in the forest, and in the morning sought the plain, swimming the
- river to reach it. I knelt and would have drunk, but the water was hot,
- and had a strange metallic taste.
- </p>
- <p>
- I leapt to my feet: here was the warmth I sought&mdash;the first necessity
- of life! I sped back to my helpless charge.
- </p>
- <p>
- Without well considering my solitude, no one will understand what seemed
- to lie for me in the redemption of this woman from death. &ldquo;Prove what she
- may,&rdquo; I thought with myself, &ldquo;I shall at least be lonely no more!&rdquo; I had
- found myself such poor company that now first I seemed to know what hope
- was. This blessed water would expel the cold death, and drown my
- desolation!
- </p>
- <p>
- I bore her to the stream. Tall as she was, I found her marvellously light,
- her bones were so delicate, and so little covered them. I grew yet more
- hopeful when I found her so far from stiff that I could carry her on one
- arm, like a sleeping child, leaning against my shoulder. I went softly,
- dreading even the wind of my motion, and glad there was no other.
- </p>
- <p>
- The water was too hot to lay her at once in it: the shock might scare from
- her the yet fluttering life! I laid her on the bank, and dipping one of my
- garments, began to bathe the pitiful form. So wasted was it that, save
- from the plentifulness and blackness of the hair, it was impossible even
- to conjecture whether she was young or old. Her eyelids were just not
- shut, which made her look dead the more: there was a crack in the clouds
- of her night, at which no sun shone through!
- </p>
- <p>
- The longer I went on bathing the poor bones, the less grew my hope that
- they would ever again be clothed with strength, that ever those eyelids
- would lift, and a soul look out; still I kept bathing continuously,
- allowing no part time to grow cold while I bathed another; and gradually
- the body became so much warmer, that at last I ventured to submerge it: I
- got into the stream and drew it in, holding the face above the water, and
- letting the swift, steady current flow all about the rest. I noted, but
- was able to conclude nothing from the fact, that, for all the heat, the
- shut hand never relaxed its hold.
- </p>
- <p>
- After about ten minutes, I lifted it out and laid it again on the bank,
- dried it, and covered it as well as I could, then ran to the forest for
- leaves.
- </p>
- <p>
- The grass and soil were dry and warm; and when I returned I thought it had
- scarcely lost any of the heat the water had given it. I spread the leaves
- upon it, and ran for more&mdash;then for a third and a fourth freight.
- </p>
- <p>
- I could now leave it and go to explore, in the hope of discovering some
- shelter. I ran up the stream toward some rocky hills I saw in that
- direction, which were not far off.
- </p>
- <p>
- When I reached them, I found the river issuing full grown from a rock at
- the bottom of one of them. To my fancy it seemed to have run down a stair
- inside, an eager cataract, at every landing wild to get out, but only at
- the foot finding a door of escape.
- </p>
- <p>
- It did not fill the opening whence it rushed, and I crept through into a
- little cave, where I learned that, instead of hurrying tumultuously down a
- stair, it rose quietly from the ground at the back like the base of a
- large column, and ran along one side, nearly filling a deep, rather narrow
- channel. I considered the place, and saw that, if I could find a few
- fallen boughs long enough to lie across the channel, and large enough to
- bear a little weight without bending much, I might, with smaller branches
- and plenty of leaves, make upon them a comfortable couch, which the stream
- under would keep constantly warm. Then I ran back to see how my charge
- fared.
- </p>
- <p>
- She was lying as I had left her. The heat had not brought her to life, but
- neither had it developed anything to check farther hope. I got a few
- boulders out of the channel, and arranged them at her feet and on both
- sides of her.
- </p>
- <p>
- Running again to the wood, I had not to search long ere I found some small
- boughs fit for my purpose&mdash;mostly of beech, their dry yellow leaves
- yet clinging to them. With these I had soon laid the floor of a bridge-bed
- over the torrent. I crossed the boughs with smaller branches, interlaced
- these with twigs, and buried all deep in leaves and dry moss.
- </p>
- <p>
- When thus at length, after not a few journeys to the forest, I had
- completed a warm, dry, soft couch, I took the body once more, and set out
- with it for the cave. It was so light that now and then as I went I almost
- feared lest, when I laid it down, I should find it a skeleton after all;
- and when at last I did lay it gently on the pathless bridge, it was a
- greater relief to part with that fancy than with the weight. Once more I
- covered the body with a thick layer of leaves; and trying again to feed
- her with a grape, found to my joy that I could open the mouth a little
- farther. The grape, indeed, lay in it unheeded, but I hoped some of the
- juice might find its way down.
- </p>
- <p>
- After an hour or two on the couch, she was no longer cold. The warmth of
- the brook had interpenetrated her frame&mdash;truly it was but a frame!&mdash;and
- she was warm to the touch;&mdash;not, probably, with the warmth of life,
- but with a warmth which rendered it more possible, if she were alive, that
- she might live. I had read of one in a trance lying motionless for weeks!
- </p>
- <p>
- In that cave, day after day, night after night, seven long days and
- nights, I sat or lay, now waking now sleeping, but always watching. Every
- morning I went out and bathed in the hot stream, and every morning felt
- thereupon as if I had eaten and drunk&mdash;which experience gave me
- courage to lay her in it also every day. Once as I did so, a shadow of
- discoloration on her left side gave me a terrible shock, but the next
- morning it had vanished, and I continued the treatment&mdash;every
- morning, after her bath, putting a fresh grape in her mouth.
- </p>
- <p>
- I too ate of the grapes and other berries I found in the forest; but I
- believed that, with my daily bath in that river, I could have done very
- well without eating at all.
- </p>
- <p>
- Every time I slept, I dreamed of finding a wounded angel, who, unable to
- fly, remained with me until at last she loved me and would not leave me;
- and every time I woke, it was to see, instead of an angel-visage with
- lustrous eyes, the white, motionless, wasted face upon the couch. But Adam
- himself, when first he saw her asleep, could not have looked more
- anxiously for Eve&rsquo;s awaking than I watched for this woman&rsquo;s. Adam knew
- nothing of himself, perhaps nothing of his need of another self; I, an
- alien from my fellows, had learned to love what I had lost! Were this one
- wasted shred of womanhood to disappear, I should have nothing in me but a
- consuming hunger after life! I forgot even the Little Ones: things were
- not amiss with them! here lay what might wake and be a woman! might
- actually open eyes, and look out of them upon me!
- </p>
- <p>
- Now first I knew what solitude meant&mdash;now that I gazed on one who
- neither saw nor heard, neither moved nor spoke. I saw now that a man alone
- is but a being that may become a man&mdash;that he is but a need, and
- therefore a possibility. To be enough for himself, a being must be an
- eternal, self-existent worm! So superbly constituted, so simply complicate
- is man; he rises from and stands upon such a pedestal of lower physical
- organisms and spiritual structures, that no atmosphere will comfort or
- nourish his life, less divine than that offered by other souls; nowhere
- but in other lives can he breathe. Only by the reflex of other lives can
- he ripen his specialty, develop the idea of himself, the individuality
- that distinguishes him from every other. Were all men alike, each would
- still have an individuality, secured by his personal consciousness, but
- there would be small reason why there should be more than two or three
- such; while, for the development of the differences which make a large and
- lofty unity possible, and which alone can make millions into a church, an
- endless and measureless influence and reaction are indispensable. A man to
- be perfect&mdash;complete, that is, in having reached the spiritual
- condition of persistent and universal growth, which is the mode wherein he
- inherits the infinitude of his Father&mdash;must have the education of a
- world of fellow-men. Save for the hope of the dawn of life in the form
- beside me, I should have fled for fellowship to the beasts that grazed and
- did not speak. Better to go about with them&mdash;infinitely better&mdash;than
- to live alone! But with the faintest prospect of a woman to my friend, I,
- poorest of creatures, was yet a possible man!
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0019" id="link2HCH0019">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XIX. THE WHITE LEECH
- </h2>
- <p>
- I woke one morning from a profound sleep, with one of my hands very
- painful. The back of it was much swollen, and in the centre of the
- swelling was a triangular wound, like the bite of a leech. As the day went
- on, the swelling subsided, and by the evening the hurt was all but healed.
- I searched the cave, turning over every stone of any size, but discovered
- nothing I could imagine capable of injuring me.
- </p>
- <p>
- Slowly the days passed, and still the body never moved, never opened its
- eyes. It could not be dead, for assuredly it manifested no sign of decay,
- and the air about it was quite pure. Moreover, I could imagine that the
- sharpest angles of the bones had begun to disappear, that the form was
- everywhere a little rounder, and the skin had less of the parchment-look:
- if such change was indeed there, life must be there! the tide which had
- ebbed so far toward the infinite, must have begun again to flow! Oh joy to
- me, if the rising ripples of life&rsquo;s ocean were indeed burying under lovely
- shape the bones it had all but forsaken! Twenty times a day I looked for
- evidence of progress, and twenty times a day I doubted&mdash;sometimes
- even despaired; but the moment I recalled the mental picture of her as I
- found her, hope revived.
- </p>
- <p>
- Several weeks had passed thus, when one night, after lying a long time
- awake, I rose, thinking to go out and breathe the cooler air; for,
- although from the running of the stream it was always fresh in the cave,
- the heat was not seldom a little oppressive. The moon outside was full,
- the air within shadowy clear, and naturally I cast a lingering look on my
- treasure ere I went. &ldquo;Bliss eternal!&rdquo; I cried aloud, &ldquo;do I see her eyes?&rdquo;
- Great orbs, dark as if cut from the sphere of a starless night, and
- luminous by excess of darkness, seemed to shine amid the glimmering
- whiteness of her face. I stole nearer, my heart beating so that I feared
- the noise of it startling her. I bent over her. Alas, her eyelids were
- close shut! Hope and Imagination had wrought mutual illusion! my heart&rsquo;s
- desire would never be! I turned away, threw myself on the floor of the
- cave, and wept. Then I bethought me that her eyes had been a little open,
- and that now the awful chink out of which nothingness had peered, was
- gone: it might be that she had opened them for a moment, and was again
- asleep!&mdash;it might be she was awake and holding them close! In either
- case, life, less or more, must have shut them! I was comforted, and fell
- fast asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- That night I was again bitten, and awoke with a burning thirst.
- </p>
- <p>
- In the morning I searched yet more thoroughly, but again in vain. The
- wound was of the same character, and, as before, was nearly well by the
- evening. I concluded that some large creature of the leech kind came
- occasionally from the hot stream. &ldquo;But, if blood be its object,&rdquo; I said to
- myself, &ldquo;so long as I am there, I need hardly fear for my treasure!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- That same morning, when, having peeled a grape as usual and taken away the
- seeds, I put it in her mouth, her lips made a slight movement of
- reception, and I KNEW she lived!
- </p>
- <p>
- My hope was now so much stronger that I began to think of some attire for
- her: she must be able to rise the moment she wished! I betook myself
- therefore to the forest, to investigate what material it might afford, and
- had hardly begun to look when fibrous skeletons, like those of the leaves
- of the prickly pear, suggested themselves as fit for the purpose. I
- gathered a stock of them, laid them to dry in the sun, pulled apart the
- reticulated layers, and of these had soon begun to fashion two loose
- garments, one to hang from her waist, the other from her shoulders. With
- the stiletto-point of an aloe-leaf and various filaments, I sewed together
- three thicknesses of the tissue.
- </p>
- <p>
- During the week that followed, there was no farther sign except that she
- more evidently took the grapes. But indeed all the signs became surer:
- plainly she was growing plumper, and her skin fairer. Still she did not
- open her eyes; and the horrid fear would at times invade me, that her
- growth was of some hideous fungoid nature, the few grapes being nowise
- sufficient to account for it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Again I was bitten; and now the thing, whatever it was, began to pay me
- regular visits at intervals of three days. It now generally bit me in the
- neck or the arm, invariably with but one bite, always while I slept, and
- never, even when I slept, in the daytime. Hour after hour would I lie
- awake on the watch, but never heard it coming, or saw sign of its
- approach. Neither, I believe, did I ever feel it bite me. At length I
- became so hopeless of catching it, that I no longer troubled myself either
- to look for it by day, or lie in wait for it at night. I knew from my
- growing weakness that I was losing blood at a dangerous rate, but I cared
- little for that: in sight of my eyes death was yielding to life; a soul
- was gathering strength to save me from loneliness; we would go away
- together, and I should speedily recover!
- </p>
- <p>
- The garments were at length finished, and, contemplating my handiwork with
- no small satisfaction, I proceeded to mat layers of the fibre into
- sandals.
- </p>
- <p>
- One night I woke suddenly, breathless and faint, and longing after air,
- and had risen to crawl from the cave, when a slight rustle in the leaves
- of the couch set me listening motionless.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I caught the vile thing,&rdquo; said a feeble voice, in my mother-tongue; &ldquo;I
- caught it in the very act!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She was alive! she spoke! I dared not yield to my transport lest I should
- terrify her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What creature?&rdquo; I breathed, rather than said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The creature,&rdquo; she answered, &ldquo;that was biting you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What was it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A great white leech.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How big?&rdquo; I pursued, forcing myself to be calm.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not far from six feet long, I should think,&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have saved my life, perhaps!&mdash;But how could you touch the horrid
- thing! How brave of you!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did!&rdquo; was all her answer, and I thought she shuddered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where is it? What could you do with such a monster?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I threw it in the river.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then it will come again, I fear!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not think I could have killed it, even had I known how!&mdash;I
- heard you moaning, and got up to see what disturbed you; saw the frightful
- thing at your neck, and pulled it away. But I could not hold it, and was
- hardly able to throw it from me. I only heard it splash in the water!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We&rsquo;ll kill it next time!&rdquo; I said; but with that I turned faint, sought
- the open air, but fell.
- </p>
- <p>
- When I came to myself the sun was up. The lady stood a little way off,
- looking, even in the clumsy attire I had fashioned for her, at once grand
- and graceful. I HAD seen those glorious eyes! Through the night they had
- shone! Dark as the darkness primeval, they now outshone the day! She stood
- erect as a column, regarding me. Her pale cheek indicated no emotion, only
- question. I rose.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We must be going!&rdquo; I said. &ldquo;The white leech&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I stopped: a strange smile had flickered over her beautiful face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you find me there?&rdquo; she asked, pointing to the cave.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No; I brought you there,&rdquo; I replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You brought me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;From where?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;From the forest.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What have you done with my clothes&mdash;and my jewels?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You had none when I found you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then why did you not leave me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I hoped you were not dead.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why should you have cared?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I was very lonely, and wanted you to live.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You would have kept me enchanted for my beauty!&rdquo; she said, with proud
- scorn.
- </p>
- <p>
- Her words and her look roused my indignation.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There was no beauty left in you,&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why, then, again, did you not let me alone?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because you were of my own kind.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of YOUR kind?&rdquo; she cried, in a tone of utter contempt.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thought so, but find I was mistaken!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Doubtless you pitied me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never had woman more claim on pity, or less on any other feeling!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- With an expression of pain, mortification, and anger unutterable, she
- turned from me and stood silent. Starless night lay profound in the gulfs
- of her eyes: hate of him who brought it back had slain their splendour.
- The light of life was gone from them.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Had you failed to rouse me, what would you have done?&rdquo; she asked suddenly
- without moving.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I would have buried it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It! What?&mdash;You would have buried THIS?&rdquo; she exclaimed, flashing
- round upon me in a white fury, her arms thrown out, and her eyes darting
- forks of cold lightning.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nay; that I saw not! That, weary weeks of watching and tending have
- brought back to you,&rdquo; I answered&mdash;for with such a woman I must be
- plain! &ldquo;Had I seen the smallest sign of decay, I would at once have buried
- you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dog of a fool!&rdquo; she cried, &ldquo;I was but in a trance&mdash;Samoil! what a
- fate!&mdash;Go and fetch the she-savage from whom you borrowed this
- hideous disguise.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I made it for you. It is hideous, but I did my best.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She drew herself up to her tall height.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How long have I been insensible?&rdquo; she demanded. &ldquo;A woman could not have
- made that dress in a day!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not in twenty days,&rdquo; I rejoined, &ldquo;hardly in thirty!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ha! How long do you pretend I have lain unconscious?&mdash;Answer me at
- once.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot tell how long you had lain when I found you, but there was
- nothing left of you save skin and bone: that is more than three months
- ago.&mdash;Your hair was beautiful, nothing else! I have done for it what
- I could.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My poor hair!&rdquo; she said, and brought a great armful of it round from
- behind her; &ldquo;&mdash;it will be more than a three-months&rsquo; care to bring YOU
- to life again!&mdash;I suppose I must thank you, although I cannot say I
- am grateful!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is no need, madam: I would have done the same for any woman&mdash;yes,
- or for any man either!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How is it my hair is not tangled?&rdquo; she said, fondling it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It always drifted in the current.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How?&mdash;What do you mean?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I could not have brought you to life but by bathing you in the hot river
- every morning.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She gave a shudder of disgust, and stood for a while with her gaze fixed
- on the hurrying water. Then she turned to me:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We must understand each other!&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;&mdash;You have done me the
- two worst of wrongs&mdash;compelled me to live, and put me to shame:
- neither of them can I pardon!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She raised her left hand, and flung it out as if repelling me. Something
- ice-cold struck me on the forehead. When I came to myself, I was on the
- ground, wet and shivering.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0020" id="link2HCH0020">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XX. GONE!&mdash;BUT HOW?
- </h2>
- <p>
- I rose, and looked around me, dazed at heart. For a moment I could not see
- her: she was gone, and loneliness had returned like the cloud after the
- rain! She whom I brought back from the brink of the grave, had fled from
- me, and left me with desolation! I dared not one moment remain thus
- hideously alone. Had I indeed done her a wrong? I must devote my life to
- sharing the burden I had compelled her to resume!
- </p>
- <p>
- I descried her walking swiftly over the grass, away from the river, took
- one plunge for a farewell restorative, and set out to follow her. The last
- visit of the white leech, and the blow of the woman, had enfeebled me, but
- already my strength was reviving, and I kept her in sight without
- difficulty.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is this, then, the end?&rdquo; I said as I went, and my heart brooded a sad
- song. Her angry, hating eyes haunted me. I could understand her resentment
- at my having forced life upon her, but how had I further injured her? Why
- should she loathe me? Could modesty itself be indignant with true service?
- How should the proudest woman, conscious of my every action, cherish
- against me the least sense of disgracing wrong? How reverently had I not
- touched her! As a father his motherless child, I had borne and tended her!
- Had all my labour, all my despairing hope gone to redeem only ingratitude?
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; I answered myself; &ldquo;beauty must have a heart! However profoundly
- hidden, it must be there! The deeper buried, the stronger and truer will
- it wake at last in its beautiful grave! To rouse that heart were a better
- gift to her than the happiest life! It would be to give her a nobler, a
- higher life!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She was ascending a gentle slope before me, walking straight and steady as
- one that knew whither, when I became aware that she was increasing the
- distance between us. I summoned my strength, and it came in full tide. My
- veins filled with fresh life! My body seemed to become ethereal, and,
- following like an easy wind, I rapidly overtook her.
- </p>
- <p>
- Not once had she looked behind. Swiftly she moved, like a Greek goddess to
- rescue, but without haste. I was within three yards of her, when she
- turned sharply, yet with grace unbroken, and stood. Fatigue or heat she
- showed none. Her paleness was not a pallor, but a pure whiteness; her
- breathing was slow and deep. Her eyes seemed to fill the heavens, and give
- light to the world. It was nearly noon, but the sense was upon me as of a
- great night in which an invisible dew makes the stars look large.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you follow me?&rdquo; she asked, quietly but rather sternly, as if she
- had never before seen me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have lived so long,&rdquo; I answered, &ldquo;on the mere hope of your eyes, that I
- must want to see them again!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You WILL not be spared!&rdquo; she said coldly. &ldquo;I command you to stop where
- you stand.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not until I see you in a place of safety will I leave you,&rdquo; I replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then take the consequences,&rdquo; she said, and resumed her swift-gliding
- walk.
- </p>
- <p>
- But as she turned she cast on me a glance, and I stood as if run through
- with a spear. Her scorn had failed: she would kill me with her beauty!
- </p>
- <p>
- Despair restored my volition; the spell broke; I ran, and overtook her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have pity upon me!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- She gave no heed. I followed her like a child whose mother pretends to
- abandon him. &ldquo;I will be your slave!&rdquo; I said, and laid my hand on her arm.
- </p>
- <p>
- She turned as if a serpent had bit her. I cowered before the blaze of her
- eyes, but could not avert my own.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Pity me,&rdquo; I cried again.
- </p>
- <p>
- She resumed her walking.
- </p>
- <p>
- The whole day I followed her. The sun climbed the sky, seemed to pause on
- its summit, went down the other side. Not a moment did she pause, not a
- moment did I cease to follow. She never turned her head, never relaxed her
- pace.
- </p>
- <p>
- The sun went below, and the night came up. I kept close to her: if I lost
- sight of her for a moment, it would be for ever!
- </p>
- <p>
- All day long we had been walking over thick soft grass: abruptly she
- stopped, and threw herself upon it. There was yet light enough to show
- that she was utterly weary. I stood behind her, and gazed down on her for
- a moment.
- </p>
- <p>
- Did I love her? I knew she was not good! Did I hate her? I could not leave
- her! I knelt beside her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Begone! Do not dare touch me,&rdquo; she cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- Her arms lay on the grass by her sides as if paralyzed.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly they closed about my neck, rigid as those of the torture-maiden.
- She drew down my face to hers, and her lips clung to my cheek. A sting of
- pain shot somewhere through me, and pulsed. I could not stir a hair&rsquo;s
- breadth. Gradually the pain ceased. A slumberous weariness, a dreamy
- pleasure stole over me, and then I knew nothing.
- </p>
- <p>
- All at once I came to myself. The moon was a little way above the horizon,
- but spread no radiance; she was but a bright thing set in blackness. My
- cheek smarted; I put my hand to it, and found a wet spot. My neck ached:
- there again was a wet spot! I sighed heavily, and felt very tired. I
- turned my eyes listlessly around me&mdash;and saw what had become of the
- light of the moon: it was gathered about the lady! she stood in a
- shimmering nimbus! I rose and staggered toward her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Down!&rdquo; she cried imperiously, as to a rebellious dog. &ldquo;Follow me a step
- if you dare!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will!&rdquo; I murmured, with an agonised effort.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Set foot within the gates of my city, and my people will stone you: they
- do not love beggars!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I was deaf to her words. Weak as water, and half awake, I did not know
- that I moved, but the distance grew less between us. She took one step
- back, raised her left arm, and with the clenched hand seemed to strike me
- on the forehead. I received as it were a blow from an iron hammer, and
- fell.
- </p>
- <p>
- I sprang to my feet, cold and wet, but clear-headed and strong. Had the
- blow revived me? it had left neither wound nor pain!&mdash;But how came I
- wet?&mdash;I could not have lain long, for the moon was no higher!
- </p>
- <p>
- The lady stood some yards away, her back toward me. She was doing
- something, I could not distinguish what. Then by her sudden gleam I knew
- she had thrown off her garments, and stood white in the dazed moon. One
- moment she stood&mdash;and fell forward.
- </p>
- <p>
- A streak of white shot away in a swift-drawn line. The same instant the
- moon recovered herself, shining out with a full flash, and I saw that the
- streak was a long-bodied thing, rushing in great, low-curved bounds over
- the grass. Dark spots seemed to run like a stream adown its back, as if it
- had been fleeting along under the edge of a wood, and catching the shadows
- of the leaves.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;God of mercy!&rdquo; I cried, &ldquo;is the terrible creature speeding to the
- night-infolded city?&rdquo; and I seemed to hear from afar the sudden burst and
- spread of outcrying terror, as the pale savage bounded from house to
- house, rending and slaying.
- </p>
- <p>
- While I gazed after it fear-stricken, past me from behind, like a swift,
- all but noiseless arrow, shot a second large creature, pure white. Its
- path was straight for the spot where the lady had fallen, and, as I
- thought, lay. My tongue clave to the roof of my mouth. I sprang forward
- pursuing the beast. But in a moment the spot I made for was far behind it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was well,&rdquo; I thought, &ldquo;that I could not cry out: if she had risen, the
- monster would have been upon her!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But when I reached the place, no lady was there; only the garments she had
- dropped lay dusk in the moonlight.
- </p>
- <p>
- I stood staring after the second beast. It tore over the ground with yet
- greater swiftness than the former&mdash;in long, level, skimming leaps,
- the very embodiment of wasteless speed. It followed the line the other had
- taken, and I watched it grow smaller and smaller, until it disappeared in
- the uncertain distance.
- </p>
- <p>
- But where was the lady? Had the first beast surprised her, creeping upon
- her noiselessly? I had heard no shriek! and there had not been time to
- devour her! Could it have caught her up as it ran, and borne her away to
- its den? So laden it could not have run so fast! and I should have seen
- that it carried something!
- </p>
- <p>
- Horrible doubts began to wake in me. After a thorough but fruitless
- search, I set out in the track of the two animals.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0021" id="link2HCH0021">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXI. THE FUGITIVE MOTHER
- </h2>
- <p>
- As I hastened along, a cloud came over the moon, and from the gray dark
- suddenly emerged a white figure, clasping a child to her bosom, and
- stooping as she ran. She was on a line parallel with my own, but did not
- perceive me as she hurried along, terror and anxiety in every movement of
- her driven speed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is chased!&rdquo; I said to myself. &ldquo;Some prowler of this terrible night is
- after her!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- To follow would have added to her fright: I stepped into her track to stop
- her pursuer.
- </p>
- <p>
- As I stood for a moment looking after her through the dusk, behind me came
- a swift, soft-footed rush, and ere I could turn, something sprang over my
- head, struck me sharply on the forehead, and knocked me down. I was up in
- an instant, but all I saw of my assailant was a vanishing whiteness. I ran
- after the beast, with the blood trickling from my forehead; but had run
- only a few steps, when a shriek of despair tore the quivering night. I ran
- the faster, though I could not but fear it must already be too late.
- </p>
- <p>
- In a minute or two I spied a low white shape approaching me through the
- vapour-dusted moonlight. It must be another beast, I thought at first, for
- it came slowly, almost crawling, with strange, floundering leaps, as of a
- creature in agony! I drew aside from its path, and waited. As it neared
- me, I saw it was going on three legs, carrying its left fore-paw high from
- the ground. It had many dark, oval spots on a shining white skin, and was
- attended by a low rushing sound, as of water falling upon grass. As it
- went by me, I saw something streaming from the lifted paw.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is blood!&rdquo; I said to myself, &ldquo;some readier champion than I has wounded
- the beast!&rdquo; But, strange to tell, such a pity seized me at sight of the
- suffering creature, that, though an axe had been in my hand I could not
- have struck at it. In a broken succession of hobbling leaps it went out of
- sight, its blood, as it seemed, still issuing in a small torrent, which
- kept flowing back softly through the grass beside me. &ldquo;If it go on
- bleeding like that,&rdquo; I thought, &ldquo;it will soon be hurtless!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I went on, for I might yet be useful to the woman, and hoped also to see
- her deliverer.
- </p>
- <p>
- I descried her a little way off, seated on the grass, with her child in
- her lap.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Can I do anything for you?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- At the sound of my voice she started violently, and would have risen. I
- threw myself on the ground.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You need not be frightened,&rdquo; I said. &ldquo;I was following the beast when
- happily you found a nearer protector! It passed me now with its foot
- bleeding so much that by this time it must be all but dead!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is little hope of that!&rdquo; she answered, trembling. &ldquo;Do you not know
- whose beast she is?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Now I had certain strange suspicions, but I answered that I knew nothing
- of the brute, and asked what had become of her champion.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What champion?&rdquo; she rejoined. &ldquo;I have seen no one.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then how came the monster to grief?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I pounded her foot with a stone&mdash;as hard as I could strike. Did you
- not hear her cry?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well, you are a brave woman!&rdquo; I answered. &ldquo;I thought it was you gave the
- cry!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was the leopardess.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I never heard such a sound from the throat of an animal! it was like the
- scream of a woman in torture!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My voice was gone; I could not have shrieked to save my baby! When I saw
- the horrid mouth at my darling&rsquo;s little white neck, I caught up a stone
- and mashed her lame foot.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me about the creature,&rdquo; I said; &ldquo;I am a stranger in these parts.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will soon know about her if you are going to Bulika!&rdquo; she answered.
- &ldquo;Now, I must never go back there!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, I am going to Bulika,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;&mdash;to see the princess.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have a care; you had better not go!&mdash;But perhaps you are&mdash;! The
- princess is a very good, kind woman!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I heard a little movement. Clouds had by this time gathered so thick over
- the moon that I could scarcely see my companion: I feared she was rising
- to run from me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are in no danger of any sort from me,&rdquo; I said. &ldquo;What oath would you
- like me to take?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know by your speech that you are not of the people of Bulika,&rdquo; she
- replied; &ldquo;I will trust you!&mdash;I am not of them, either, else I should
- not be able: they never trust any one&mdash;If only I could see you! But I
- like your voice!&mdash;There, my darling is asleep! The foul beast has not
- hurt her!&mdash;Yes: it was my baby she was after!&rdquo; she went on, caressing
- the child. &ldquo;And then she would have torn her mother to pieces for carrying
- her off!&mdash;Some say the princess has two white leopardesses,&rdquo; she
- continued: &ldquo;I know only one&mdash;with spots. Everybody knows HER! If the
- princess hear of a baby, she sends her immediately to suck its blood, and
- then it either dies or grows up an idiot. I would have gone away with my
- baby, but the princess was from home, and I thought I might wait until I
- was a little stronger. But she must have taken the beast with her, and
- been on her way home when I left, and come across my track. I heard the
- SNIFF-SNUFF of the leopardess behind me, and ran;&mdash;oh, how I ran!&mdash;But
- my darling will not die! There is no mark on her!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where are you taking her?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where no one ever tells!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why is the princess so cruel?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is an old prophecy that a child will be the death of her. That is
- why she will listen to no offer of marriage, they say.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But what will become of her country if she kill all the babies?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She does not care about her country. She sends witches around to teach
- the women spells that keep babies away, and give them horrible things to
- eat. Some say she is in league with the Shadows to put an end to the race.
- At night we hear the questing beast, and lie awake and shiver. She can
- tell at once the house where a baby is coming, and lies down at the door,
- watching to get in. There are words that have power to shoo her away, only
- they do not always work&mdash;But here I sit talking, and the beast may by
- this time have got home, and her mistress be sending the other after us!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- As thus she ended, she rose in haste.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not think she will ever get home.&mdash;Let me carry the baby for
- you!&rdquo; I said, as I rose also.
- </p>
- <p>
- She returned me no answer, and when I would have taken it, only clasped it
- the closer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot think,&rdquo; I said, walking by her side, &ldquo;how the brute could be
- bleeding so much!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Take my advice, and don&rsquo;t go near the palace,&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;There are
- sounds in it at night as if the dead were trying to shriek, but could not
- open their mouths!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She bade me an abrupt farewell. Plainly she did not want more of my
- company; so I stood still, and heard her footsteps die away on the grass.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0022" id="link2HCH0022">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXII. BULIKA
- </h2>
- <p>
- I had lost all notion of my position, and was walking about in pure,
- helpless impatience, when suddenly I found myself in the path of the
- leopardess, wading in the blood from her paw. It ran against my ankles
- with the force of a small brook, and I got out of it the more quickly
- because of an unshaped suspicion in my mind as to whose blood it might be.
- But I kept close to the sound of it, walking up the side of the stream,
- for it would guide me in the direction of Bulika.
- </p>
- <p>
- I soon began to reflect, however, that no leopardess, no elephant, no
- hugest animal that in our world preceded man, could keep such a torrent
- flowing, except every artery in its body were open, and its huge system
- went on filling its vessels from fields and lakes and forests as fast as
- they emptied themselves: it could not be blood! I dipped a finger in it,
- and at once satisfied myself that it was not. In truth, however it might
- have come there, it was a softly murmuring rivulet of water that ran,
- without channel, over the grass! But sweet as was its song, I dared not
- drink of it; I kept walking on, hoping after the light, and listening to
- the familiar sound so long unheard&mdash;for that of the hot stream was
- very different. The mere wetting of my feet in it, however, had so
- refreshed me, that I went on without fatigue till the darkness began to
- grow thinner, and I knew the sun was drawing nigh. A few minutes more, and
- I could discern, against the pale aurora, the wall-towers of a city&mdash;seemingly
- old as time itself. Then I looked down to get a sight of the brook.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was gone. I had indeed for a long time noted its sound growing fainter,
- but at last had ceased to attend to it. I looked back: the grass in its
- course lay bent as it had flowed, and here and there glimmered a small
- pool. Toward the city, there was no trace of it. Near where I stood, the
- flow of its fountain must at least have paused!
- </p>
- <p>
- Around the city were gardens, growing many sorts of vegetables, hardly one
- of which I recognised. I saw no water, no flowers, no sign of animals. The
- gardens came very near the walls, but were separated from them by huge
- heaps of gravel and refuse thrown from the battlements.
- </p>
- <p>
- I went up to the nearest gate, and found it but half-closed, nowise
- secured, and without guard or sentinel. To judge by its hinges, it could
- not be farther opened or shut closer. Passing through, I looked down a
- long ancient street. It was utterly silent, and with scarce an indication
- in it of life present. Had I come upon a dead city? I turned and went out
- again, toiled a long way over the dust-heaps, and crossed several roads,
- each leading up to a gate: I would not re-enter until some of the
- inhabitants should be stirring.
- </p>
- <p>
- What was I there for? what did I expect or hope to find? what did I mean
- to do?
- </p>
- <p>
- I must see, if but once more, the woman I had brought to life! I did not
- desire her society: she had waked in me frightful suspicions; and
- friendship, not to say love, was wildly impossible between us! But her
- presence had had a strange influence upon me, and in her presence I must
- resist, and at the same time analyse that influence! The seemingly
- inscrutable in her I would fain penetrate: to understand something of her
- mode of being would be to look into marvels such as imagination could
- never have suggested! In this I was too daring: a man must not, for
- knowledge, of his own will encounter temptation! On the other hand, I had
- reinstated an evil force about to perish, and was, to the extent of my
- opposing faculty, accountable for what mischief might ensue! I had learned
- that she was the enemy of children: the Little Ones might be in her
- danger! It was in the hope of finding out something of their history that
- I had left them; on that I had received a little light: I must have more;
- I must learn how to protect them!
- </p>
- <p>
- Hearing at length a little stir in the place, I walked through the next
- gate, and thence along a narrow street of tall houses to a little square,
- where I sat down on the base of a pillar with a hideous bat-like creature
- atop. Ere long, several of the inhabitants came sauntering past. I spoke
- to one: he gave me a rude stare and ruder word, and went on.
- </p>
- <p>
- I got up and went through one narrow street after another, gradually
- filling with idlers, and was not surprised to see no children. By and by,
- near one of the gates, I encountered a group of young men who reminded me
- not a little of the bad giants. They came about me staring, and presently
- began to push and hustle me, then to throw things at me. I bore it as well
- as I could, wishing not to provoke enmity where wanted to remain for a
- while. Oftener than once or twice I appealed to passers-by whom I fancied
- more benevolent-looking, but none would halt a moment to listen to me. I
- looked poor, and that was enough: to the citizens of Bulika, as to
- house-dogs, poverty was an offence! Deformity and sickness were taxed; and
- no legislation of their princess was more heartily approved of than what
- tended to make poverty subserve wealth.
- </p>
- <p>
- I took to my heels at last, and no one followed me beyond the gate. A
- lumbering fellow, however, who sat by it eating a hunch of bread, picked
- up a stone to throw after me, and happily, in his stupid eagerness, threw,
- not the stone but the bread. I took it, and he did not dare follow to
- reclaim it: beyond the walls they were cowards every one. I went off a few
- hundred yards, threw myself down, ate the bread, fell asleep, and slept
- soundly in the grass, where the hot sunlight renewed my strength.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was night when I woke. The moon looked down on me in friendly fashion,
- seeming to claim with me old acquaintance. She was very bright, and the
- same moon, I thought, that saw me through the terrors of my first night in
- that strange world. A cold wind blew from the gate, bringing with it an
- evil odour; but it did not chill me, for the sun had plenished me with
- warmth. I crept again into the city. There I found the few that were still
- in the open air crouched in corners to escape the shivering blast.
- </p>
- <p>
- I was walking slowly through the long narrow street, when, just before me,
- a huge white thing bounded across it, with a single flash in the
- moonlight, and disappeared. I turned down the next opening, eager to get
- sight of it again.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was a narrow lane, almost too narrow to pass through, but it led me
- into a wider street. The moment I entered the latter, I saw on the
- opposite side, in the shadow, the creature I had followed, itself
- following like a dog what I took for a man. Over his shoulder, every other
- moment, he glanced at the animal behind him, but neither spoke to it, nor
- attempted to drive it away. At a place where he had to cross a patch of
- moonlight, I saw that he cast no shadow, and was himself but a flat
- superficial shadow, of two dimensions. He was, nevertheless, an opaque
- shadow, for he not merely darkened any object on the other side of him,
- but rendered it, in fact, invisible. In the shadow he was blacker than the
- shadow; in the moonlight he looked like one who had drawn his shadow up
- about him, for not a suspicion of it moved beside or under him; while the
- gleaming animal, which followed so close at his heels as to seem the white
- shadow of his blackness, and which I now saw to be a leopardess, drew her
- own gliding shadow black over the ground by her side. When they passed
- together from the shadow into the moonlight, the Shadow deepened in
- blackness, the animal flashed into radiance. I was at the moment walking
- abreast of them on the opposite side, my bare feet sounding on the flat
- stones: the leopardess never turned head or twitched ear; the shadow
- seemed once to look at me, for I lost his profile, and saw for a second
- only a sharp upright line. That instant the wind found me and blew through
- me: I shuddered from head to foot, and my heart went from wall to wall of
- my bosom, like a pebble in a child&rsquo;s rattle.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0023" id="link2HCH0023">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXIII. A WOMAN OF BULIKA
- </h2>
- <p>
- I turned aside into an alley, and sought shelter in a small archway. In
- the mouth of it I stopped, and looked out at the moonlight which filled
- the alley. The same instant a woman came gliding in after me, turned,
- trembling, and looked out also. A few seconds passed; then a huge leopard,
- its white skin dappled with many blots, darted across the archway. The
- woman pressed close to me, and my heart filled with pity. I put my arm
- round her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If the brute come here, I will lay hold of it,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;and you must
- run.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Thank you!&rdquo; she murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have you ever seen it before?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Several times,&rdquo; she answered, still trembling. &ldquo;She is a pet of the
- princess&rsquo;s. You are a stranger, or you would know her!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am a stranger,&rdquo; I answered. &ldquo;But is she, then, allowed to run loose?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is kept in a cage, her mouth muzzled, and her feet in gloves of
- crocodile leather. Chained she is too; but she gets out often, and sucks
- the blood of any child she can lay hold of. Happily there are not many
- mothers in Bulika!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Here she burst into tears.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I wish I were at home!&rdquo; she sobbed. &ldquo;The princess returned only last
- night, and there is the leopardess out already! How am I to get into the
- house? It is me she is after, I know! She will be lying at my own door,
- watching for me!&mdash;But I am a fool to talk to a stranger!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;All strangers are not bad!&rdquo; I said. &ldquo;The beast shall not touch you till
- she has done with me, and by that time you will be in. You are happy to
- have a house to go to! What a terrible wind it is!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Take me home safe, and I will give you shelter from it,&rdquo; she rejoined.
- &ldquo;But we must wait a little!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I asked her many questions. She told me the people never did anything
- except dig for precious stones in their cellars. They were rich, and had
- everything made for them in other towns.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because it is a disgrace to work,&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;Everybody in Bulika
- knows that!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I asked how they were rich if none of them earned money. She replied that
- their ancestors had saved for them, and they never spent. When they wanted
- money they sold a few of their gems.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But there must be some poor!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I suppose there must be, but we never think of such people. When one goes
- poor, we forget him. That is how we keep rich. We mean to be rich always.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But when you have dug up all your precious stones and sold them, you will
- have to spend your money, and one day you will have none left!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We have so many, and there are so many still in the ground, that that day
- will never come,&rdquo; she replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Suppose a strange people were to fall upon you, and take everything you
- have!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No strange people will dare; they are all horribly afraid of our
- princess. She it is who keeps us safe and free and rich!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Every now and then as she spoke, she would stop and look behind her.
- </p>
- <p>
- I asked why her people had such a hatred of strangers. She answered that
- the presence of a stranger defiled the city.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How is that?&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because we are more ancient and noble than any other nation.&mdash;Therefore,&rdquo;
- she added, &ldquo;we always turn strangers out before night.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How, then, can you take me into your house?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will make an exception of you,&rdquo; she replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is there no place in the city for the taking in of strangers?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Such a place would be pulled down, and its owner burned. How is purity to
- be preserved except by keeping low people at a proper distance? Dignity is
- such a delicate thing!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She told me that their princess had reigned for thousands of years; that
- she had power over the air and the water as well as the earth&mdash;and,
- she believed, over the fire too; that she could do what she pleased, and
- was answerable to nobody.
- </p>
- <p>
- When at length she was willing to risk the attempt, we took our way
- through lanes and narrow passages, and reached her door without having met
- a single live creature. It was in a wider street, between two tall houses,
- at the top of a narrow, steep stair, up which she climbed slowly, and I
- followed. Ere we reached the top, however, she seemed to take fright, and
- darted up the rest of the steps: I arrived just in time to have the door
- closed in my face, and stood confounded on the landing, where was about
- length enough, between the opposite doors of the two houses, for a man to
- lie down.
- </p>
- <p>
- Weary, and not scrupling to defile Bulika with my presence, I took
- advantage of the shelter, poor as it was.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0024" id="link2HCH0024">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXIV. THE WHITE LEOPARDESS
- </h2>
- <p>
- At the foot of the stair lay the moonlit street, and I could hear the
- unwholesome, inhospitable wind blowing about below. But not a breath of it
- entered my retreat, and I was composing myself to rest, when suddenly my
- eyes opened, and there was the head of the shining creature I had seen
- following the Shadow, just rising above the uppermost step! The moment she
- caught sight of my eyes, she stopped and began to retire, tail foremost. I
- sprang up; whereupon, having no room to turn, she threw herself backward,
- head over tail, scrambled to her feet, and in a moment was down the stair
- and gone. I followed her to the bottom, and looked all up and down the
- street. Not seeing her, I went back to my hard couch.
- </p>
- <p>
- There were, then, two evil creatures prowling about the city, one with,
- and one without spots! I was not inclined to risk much for man or woman in
- Bulika, but the life of a child might well be worth such a poor one as
- mine, and I resolved to keep watch at that door the rest of the night.
- </p>
- <p>
- Presently I heard the latch move, slow, slow: I looked up, and seeing the
- door half-open, rose and slid softly in. Behind it stood, not the woman I
- had befriended, but the muffled woman of the desert. Without a word she
- led me a few steps to an empty stone-paved chamber, and pointed to a rug
- on the floor. I wrapped myself in it, and once more lay down. She shut the
- door of the room, and I heard the outer door open and close again. There
- was no light save what came from the moonlit air.
- </p>
- <p>
- As I lay sleepless, I began to hear a stifled moaning. It went on for a
- good while, and then came the cry of a child, followed by a terrible
- shriek. I sprang up and darted into the passage: from another door in it
- came the white leopardess with a new-born baby in her mouth, carrying it
- like a cub of her own. I threw myself upon her, and compelled her to drop
- the infant, which fell on the stone slabs with a piteous wail.
- </p>
- <p>
- At the cry appeared the muffled woman. She stepped over us, the beast and
- myself, where we lay struggling in the narrow passage, took up the child,
- and carried it away. Returning, she lifted me off the animal, opened the
- door, and pushed me gently out. At my heels followed the leopardess.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She too has failed me!&rdquo; thought I; &ldquo;&mdash;given me up to the beast to be
- settled with at her leisure! But we shall have a tussle for it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I ran down the stair, fearing she would spring on my back, but she
- followed me quietly. At the foot I turned to lay hold of her, but she
- sprang over my head; and when again I turned to face her, she was
- crouching at my feet! I stooped and stroked her lovely white skin; she
- responded by licking my bare feet with her hard dry tongue. Then I patted
- and fondled her, a well of tenderness overflowing in my heart: she might
- be treacherous too, but if I turned from every show of love lest it should
- be feigned, how was I ever to find the real love which must be somewhere
- in every world?
- </p>
- <p>
- I stood up; she rose, and stood beside me.
- </p>
- <p>
- A bulky object fell with a heavy squelch in the middle of the street, a
- few yards from us. I ran to it, and found a pulpy mass, with just form
- enough left to show it the body of a woman. It must have been thrown from
- some neighbouring window! I looked around me: the Shadow was walking along
- the other side of the way, with the white leopardess again at his heel!
- </p>
- <p>
- I followed and gained upon them, urging in my heart for the leopardess
- that probably she was not a free agent. When I got near them, however, she
- turned and flew at me with such a hideous snarl, that instinctively I drew
- back: instantly she resumed her place behind the Shadow. Again I drew
- near; again she flew at me, her eyes flaming like live emeralds. Once more
- I made the experiment: she snapped at me like a dog, and bit me. My heart
- gave way, and I uttered a cry; whereupon the creature looked round with a
- glance that plainly meant&mdash;&ldquo;Why WOULD you make me do it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I turned away angry with myself: I had been losing my time ever since I
- entered the place! night as it was I would go straight to the palace! From
- the square I had seen it&mdash;high above the heart of the city, compassed
- with many defences, more a fortress than a palace!
- </p>
- <p>
- But I found its fortifications, like those of the city, much neglected,
- and partly ruinous. For centuries, clearly, they had been of no account!
- It had great and strong gates, with something like a drawbridge to them
- over a rocky chasm; but they stood open, and it was hard to believe that
- water had ever occupied the hollow before them. All was so still that
- sleep seemed to interpenetrate the structure, causing the very moonlight
- to look discordantly awake. I must either enter like a thief, or break a
- silence that rendered frightful the mere thought of a sound!
- </p>
- <p>
- Like an outcast dog I was walking about the walls, when I came to a little
- recess with a stone bench: I took refuge in it from the wind, lay down,
- and in spite of the cold fell fast asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- I was wakened by something leaping upon me, and licking my face with the
- rough tongue of a feline animal. &ldquo;It is the white leopardess!&rdquo; I thought.
- &ldquo;She is come to suck my blood!&mdash;and why should she not have it?&mdash;it
- would cost me more to defend than to yield it!&rdquo; So I lay still, expecting
- a shoot of pain. But the pang did not arrive; a pleasant warmth instead
- began to diffuse itself through me. Stretched at my back, she lay as close
- to me as she could lie, the heat of her body slowly penetrating mine, and
- her breath, which had nothing of the wild beast in it, swathing my head
- and face in a genial atmosphere. A full conviction that her intention
- toward me was good, gained possession of me. I turned like a sleepy boy,
- threw my arm over her, and sank into profound unconsciousness.
- </p>
- <p>
- When I began to come to myself, I fancied I lay warm and soft in my own
- bed. &ldquo;Is it possible I am at home?&rdquo; I thought. The well-known scents of
- the garden seemed to come crowding in. I rubbed my eyes, and looked out: I
- lay on a bare stone, in the heart of a hateful city!
- </p>
- <p>
- I sprang from the bench. Had I indeed had a leopardess for my bedfellow,
- or had I but dreamed it? She had but just left me, for the warmth of her
- body was with me yet!
- </p>
- <p>
- I left the recess with a new hope, as strong as it was shapeless. One
- thing only was clear to me: I must find the princess! Surely I had some
- power with her, if not over her! Had I not saved her life, and had she not
- prolonged it at the expense of my vitality? The reflection gave me courage
- to encounter her, be she what she might.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0025" id="link2HCH0025">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXV. THE PRINCESS
- </h2>
- <p>
- Making a circuit of the castle, I came again to the open gates, crossed
- the ravine-like moat, and found myself in a paved court, planted at
- regular intervals with towering trees like poplars. In the centre was one
- taller than the rest, whose branches, near the top, spread a little and
- gave it some resemblance to a palm. Between their great stems I got
- glimpses of the palace, which was of a style strange to me, but suggested
- Indian origin. It was long and low, with lofty towers at the corners, and
- one huge dome in the middle, rising from the roof to half the height of
- the towers. The main entrance was in the centre of the front&mdash;a low
- arch that seemed half an ellipse. No one was visible, the doors stood wide
- open, and I went unchallenged into a large hall, in the form of a longish
- ellipse. Toward one side stood a cage, in which couched, its head on its
- paws, a huge leopardess, chained by a steel collar, with its mouth muzzled
- and its paws muffled. It was white with dark oval spots, and lay staring
- out of wide-open eyes, with canoe-shaped pupils, and great green irids. It
- appeared to watch me, but not an eyeball, not a foot, not a whisker moved,
- and its tail stretched out behind it rigid as an iron bar. I could not
- tell whether it was a live thing or not.
- </p>
- <p>
- From this vestibule two low passages led; I took one of them, and found it
- branch into many, all narrow and irregular. At a spot where was scarce
- room for two to pass, a page ran against me. He started back in terror,
- but having scanned me, gathered impudence, puffed himself out, and asked
- my business.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To see the princess,&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A likely thing!&rdquo; he returned. &ldquo;I have not seen her highness this morning
- myself!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I caught him by the back of the neck, shook him, and said, &ldquo;Take me to her
- at once, or I will drag you with me till I find her. She shall know how
- her servants receive her visitors.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He gave a look at me, and began to pull like a blind man&rsquo;s dog, leading me
- thus to a large kitchen, where were many servants, feebly busy, and hardly
- awake. I expected them to fall upon me and drive me out, but they stared
- instead, with wide eyes&mdash;not at me, but at something behind me, and
- grew more ghastly as they stared. I turned my head, and saw the white
- leopardess, regarding them in a way that might have feared stouter hearts.
- </p>
- <p>
- Presently, however, one of them, seeing, I suppose, that attack was not
- imminent, began to recover himself; I turned to him, and let the boy go.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Take me to the princess,&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She has not yet left her room, your lordship,&rdquo; he replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let her know that I am here, waiting audience of her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will your lordship please to give me your name?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell her that one who knows the white leech desires to see her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She will kill me if I take such a message: I must not. I dare not.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You refuse?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He cast a glance at my attendant, and went.
- </p>
- <p>
- The others continued staring&mdash;too much afraid of her to take their
- eyes off her. I turned to the graceful creature, where she stood, her
- muzzle dropped to my heel, white as milk, a warm splendour in the gloomy
- place, and stooped and patted her. She looked up at me; the mere movement
- of her head was enough to scatter them in all directions. She rose on her
- hind legs, and put her paws on my shoulders; I threw my arms round her.
- She pricked her ears, broke from me, and was out of sight in a moment.
- </p>
- <p>
- The man I had sent to the princess entered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Please to come this way, my lord,&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- My heart gave a throb, as if bracing itself to the encounter. I followed
- him through many passages, and was at last shown into a room so large and
- so dark that its walls were invisible. A single spot on the floor
- reflected a little light, but around that spot all was black. I looked up,
- and saw at a great height an oval aperture in the roof, on the periphery
- of which appeared the joints between blocks of black marble. The light on
- the floor showed close fitting slabs of the same material. I found
- afterward that the elliptical wall as well was of black marble, absorbing
- the little light that reached it. The roof was the long half of an
- ellipsoid, and the opening in it was over one of the foci of the ellipse
- of the floor. I fancied I caught sight of reddish lines, but when I would
- have examined them, they were gone.
- </p>
- <p>
- All at once, a radiant form stood in the centre of the darkness, flashing
- a splendour on every side. Over a robe of soft white, her hair streamed in
- a cataract, black as the marble on which it fell. Her eyes were a luminous
- blackness; her arms and feet like warm ivory. She greeted me with the
- innocent smile of a girl&mdash;and in face, figure, and motion seemed but
- now to have stepped over the threshold of womanhood. &ldquo;Alas,&rdquo; thought I,
- &ldquo;ill did I reckon my danger! Can this be the woman I rescued&mdash;she who
- struck me, scorned me, left me?&rdquo; I stood gazing at her out of the
- darkness; she stood gazing into it, as if searching for me.
- </p>
- <p>
- She disappeared. &ldquo;She will not acknowledge me!&rdquo; I thought. But the next
- instant her eyes flashed out of the dark straight into mine. She had
- descried me and come to me!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have found me at last!&rdquo; she said, laying her hand on my shoulder. &ldquo;I
- knew you would!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- My frame quivered with conflicting consciousnesses, to analyse which I had
- no power. I was simultaneously attracted and repelled: each sensation
- seemed either.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You shiver!&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;This place is cold for you! Come.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I stood silent: she had struck me dumb with beauty; she held me dumb with
- sweetness.
- </p>
- <p>
- Taking me by the hand, she drew me to the spot of light, and again flashed
- upon me. An instant she stood there.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have grown brown since last I saw you,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This is almost the first roof I have been under since you left me,&rdquo; I
- replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Whose was the other?&rdquo; she rejoined.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not know the woman&rsquo;s name.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I would gladly learn it! The instinct of hospitality is not strong in my
- people!&rdquo; She took me again by the hand, and led me through the darkness
- many steps to a curtain of black. Beyond it was a white stair, up which
- she conducted me to a beautiful chamber.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How you must miss the hot flowing river!&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;But there is a bath
- in the corner with no white leeches in it! At the foot of your couch you
- will find a garment. When you come down, I shall be in the room to your
- left at the foot of the stair.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I stood as she left me, accusing my presumption: how was I to treat this
- lovely woman as a thing of evil, who behaved to me like a sister?&mdash;Whence
- the marvellous change in her? She left me with a blow; she received me
- almost with an embrace! She had reviled me; she said she knew I would
- follow and find her! Did she know my doubts concerning her&mdash;how much
- I should want explained? COULD she explain all? Could I believe her if she
- did? As to her hospitality, I had surely earned and might accept that&mdash;at
- least until I came to a definite judgment concerning her!
- </p>
- <p>
- Could such beauty as I saw, and such wickedness as I suspected, exist in
- the same person? If they could, HOW was it possible? Unable to answer the
- former question, I must let the latter wait!
- </p>
- <p>
- Clear as crystal, the water in the great white bath sent a sparkling flash
- from the corner where it lay sunk in the marble floor, and seemed to
- invite me to its embrace. Except the hot stream, two draughts in the
- cottage of the veiled woman, and the pools in the track of the wounded
- leopardess, I had not seen water since leaving home: it looked a thing
- celestial. I plunged in.
- </p>
- <p>
- Immediately my brain was filled with an odour strange and delicate, which
- yet I did not altogether like. It made me doubt the princess afresh: had
- she medicated it? had she enchanted it? was she in any way working on me
- unlawfully? And how was there water in the palace, and not a drop in the
- city? I remembered the crushed paw of the leopardess, and sprang from the
- bath.
- </p>
- <p>
- What had I been bathing in? Again I saw the fleeing mother, again I heard
- the howl, again I saw the limping beast. But what matter whence it flowed?
- was not the water sweet? Was it not very water the pitcher-plant secreted
- from its heart, and stored for the weary traveller? Water came from
- heaven: what mattered the well where it gathered, or the spring whence it
- burst? But I did not re-enter the bath.
- </p>
- <p>
- I put on the robe of white wool, embroidered on the neck and hem, that lay
- ready for me, and went down the stair to the room whither my hostess had
- directed me. It was round, all of alabaster, and without a single window:
- the light came through everywhere, a soft, pearly shimmer rather than
- shine. Vague shadowy forms went flitting about over the walls and low
- dome, like loose rain-clouds over a grey-blue sky.
- </p>
- <p>
- The princess stood waiting me, in a robe embroidered with argentine rings
- and discs, rectangles and lozenges, close together&mdash;a silver mail. It
- fell unbroken from her neck and hid her feet, but its long open sleeves
- left her arms bare.
- </p>
- <p>
- In the room was a table of ivory, bearing cakes and fruit, an ivory jug of
- milk, a crystal jug of wine of a pale rose-colour, and a white loaf.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Here we do not kill to eat,&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;but I think you will like what I
- can give you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I told her I could desire nothing better than what I saw. She seated
- herself on a couch by the table, and made me a sign to sit by her.
- </p>
- <p>
- She poured me out a bowlful of milk, and, handing me the loaf, begged me
- to break from it such a piece as I liked. Then she filled from the
- wine-jug two silver goblets of grotesquely graceful workmanship.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have never drunk wine like this!&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- I drank, and wondered: every flower of Hybla and Hymettus must have sent
- its ghost to swell the soul of that wine!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And now that you will be able to listen,&rdquo; she went on, &ldquo;I must do what I
- can to make myself intelligible to you. Our natures, however, are so
- different, that this may not be easy. Men and women live but to die; we,
- that is such as I&mdash;we are but a few&mdash;live to live on. Old age is
- to you a horror; to me it is a dear desire: the older we grow, the nearer
- we are to our perfection. Your perfection is a poor thing, comes soon, and
- lasts but a little while; ours is a ceaseless ripening. I am not yet ripe,
- and have lived thousands of your years&mdash;how many, I never cared to
- note. The everlasting will not be measured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Many lovers have sought me; I have loved none of them: they sought but to
- enslave me; they sought me but as the men of my city seek gems of price.&mdash;When
- you found me, I found a man! I put you to the test; you stood it; your
- love was genuine!&mdash;It was, however, far from ideal&mdash;far from
- such love as I would have. You loved me truly, but not with true love.
- Pity has, but is not love. What woman of any world would return love for
- pity? Such love as yours was then, is hateful to me. I knew that, if you
- saw me as I am, you would love me&mdash;like the rest of them&mdash;to
- have and to hold: I would none of that either! I would be otherwise loved!
- I would have a love that outlived hopelessness, outmeasured indifference,
- hate, scorn! Therefore did I put on cruelty, despite, ingratitude. When I
- left you, I had shown myself such as you could at least no longer follow
- from pity: I was no longer in need of you! But you must satisfy my desire
- or set me free&mdash;prove yourself priceless or worthless! To satisfy the
- hunger of my love, you must follow me, looking for nothing, not gratitude,
- not even pity in return!&mdash;follow and find me, and be content with
- merest presence, with scantest forbearance!&mdash;I, not you, have failed;
- I yield the contest.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She looked at me tenderly, and hid her face in her hands. But I had caught
- a flash and a sparkle behind the tenderness, and did not believe her. She
- laid herself out to secure and enslave me; she only fascinated me!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Beautiful princess,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;let me understand how you came to be found
- in such evil plight.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There are things I cannot explain,&rdquo; she replied, &ldquo;until you have become
- capable of understanding them&mdash;which can only be when love is grown
- perfect. There are many things so hidden from you that you cannot even
- wish to know them; but any question you can put, I can in some measure
- answer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I had set out to visit a part of my dominions occupied by a savage
- dwarf-people, strong and fierce, enemies to law and order, opposed to
- every kind of progress&mdash;an evil race. I went alone, fearing nothing,
- unaware of the least necessity for precaution. I did not know that upon
- the hot stream beside which you found me, a certain woman, by no means so
- powerful as myself, not being immortal, had cast what you call a spell&mdash;which
- is merely the setting in motion of a force as natural as any other, but
- operating primarily in a region beyond the ken of the mortal who makes use
- of the force.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I set out on my journey, reached the stream, bounded across it,&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A shadow of embarrassment darkened her cheek: I understood it, but showed
- no sign. Checked for the merest moment, she went on:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;&mdash;you know what a step it is in parts!&mdash;But in the very act, an
- indescribable cold invaded me. I recognised at once the nature of the
- assault, and knew it could affect me but temporarily. By sheer force of
- will I dragged myself to the wood&mdash;nor knew anything more until I saw
- you asleep, and the horrible worm at your neck. I crept out, dragged the
- monster from you, and laid my lips to the wound. You began to wake; I
- buried myself among the leaves.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She rose, her eyes flashing as never human eyes flashed, and threw her
- arms high over her head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What you have made me is yours!&rdquo; she cried. &ldquo;I will repay you as never
- yet did woman! My power, my beauty, my love are your own: take them.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She dropt kneeling beside me, laid her arms across my knees, and looked up
- in my face.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then first I noted on her left hand a large clumsy glove. In my mind&rsquo;s eye
- I saw hair and claws under it, but I knew it was a hand shut hard&mdash;perhaps
- badly bruised. I glanced at the other: it was lovely as hand could be, and
- I felt that, if I did less than loathe her, I should love her. Not to
- dally with usurping emotions, I turned my eyes aside.
- </p>
- <p>
- She started to her feet. I sat motionless, looking down.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To me she may be true!&rdquo; said my vanity. For a moment I was tempted to
- love a lie.
- </p>
- <p>
- An odour, rather than the gentlest of airy pulses, was fanning me. I
- glanced up. She stood erect before me, waving her lovely arms in seemingly
- mystic fashion.
- </p>
- <p>
- A frightful roar made my heart rebound against the walls of its cage. The
- alabaster trembled as if it would shake into shivers. The princess
- shuddered visibly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My wine was too strong for you!&rdquo; she said, in a quavering voice; &ldquo;I ought
- not to have let you take a full draught! Go and sleep now, and when you
- wake ask me what you please.&mdash;I will go with you: come.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- As she preceded me up the stair,&mdash;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not wonder that roar startled you!&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;It startled me, I
- confess: for a moment I feared she had escaped. But that is impossible.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The roar seemed to me, however&mdash;I could not tell why&mdash;to come
- from the WHITE leopardess, and to be meant for me, not the princess.
- </p>
- <p>
- With a smile she left me at the door of my room, but as she turned I read
- anxiety on her beautiful face.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0026" id="link2HCH0026">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXVI. A BATTLE ROYAL
- </h2>
- <p>
- I threw myself on the bed, and began to turn over in my mind the tale she
- had told me. She had forgotten herself, and, by a single incautious word,
- removed one perplexity as to the condition in which I found her in the
- forest! The leopardess BOUNDED over; the princess lay prostrate on the
- bank: the running stream had dissolved her self-enchantment! Her own
- account of the object of her journey revealed the danger of the Little
- Ones then imminent: I had saved the life of their one fearful enemy!
- </p>
- <p>
- I had but reached this conclusion when I fell asleep. The lovely wine may
- not have been quite innocent.
- </p>
- <p>
- When I opened my eyes, it was night. A lamp, suspended from the ceiling,
- cast a clear, although soft light through the chamber. A delicious languor
- infolded me. I seemed floating, far from land, upon the bosom of a
- twilight sea. Existence was in itself pleasure. I had no pain. Surely I
- was dying!
- </p>
- <p>
- No pain!&mdash;ah, what a shoot of mortal pain was that! what a sickening
- sting! It went right through my heart! Again! That was sharpness itself!&mdash;and
- so sickening! I could not move my hand to lay it on my heart; something
- kept it down!
- </p>
- <p>
- The pain was dying away, but my whole body seemed paralysed. Some evil
- thing was upon me!&mdash;something hateful! I would have struggled, but
- could not reach a struggle. My will agonised, but in vain, to assert
- itself. I desisted, and lay passive. Then I became aware of a soft hand on
- my face, pressing my head into the pillow, and of a heavy weight lying
- across me.
- </p>
- <p>
- I began to breathe more freely; the weight was gone from my chest; I
- opened my eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- The princess was standing above me on the bed, looking out into the room,
- with the air of one who dreamed. Her great eyes were clear and calm. Her
- mouth wore a look of satisfied passion; she wiped from it a streak of red.
- </p>
- <p>
- She caught my gaze, bent down, and struck me on the eyes with the
- handkerchief in her hand: it was like drawing the edge of a knife across
- them, and for a moment or two I was blind.
- </p>
- <p>
- I heard a dull heavy sound, as of a large soft-footed animal alighting
- from a little jump. I opened my eyes, and saw the great swing of a long
- tail as it disappeared through the half-open doorway. I sprang after it.
- </p>
- <p>
- The creature had vanished quite. I shot down the stair, and into the hall
- of alabaster. The moon was high, and the place like the inside of a faint,
- sun-blanched moon. The princess was not there. I must find her: in her
- presence I might protect myself; out of it I could not! I was a tame
- animal for her to feed upon; a human fountain for a thirst demoniac! She
- showed me favour the more easily to use me! My waking eyes did not fear
- her, but they would close, and she would come! Not seeing her, I felt her
- everywhere, for she might be anywhere&mdash;might even now be waiting me
- in some secret cavern of sleep! Only with my eyes upon her could I feel
- safe from her!
- </p>
- <p>
- Outside the alabaster hall it was pitch-dark, and I had to grope my way
- along with hands and feet. At last I felt a curtain, put it aside, and
- entered the black hall. There I found a great silent assembly. How it was
- visible I neither saw nor could imagine, for the walls, the floor, the
- roof, were shrouded in what seemed an infinite blackness, blacker than the
- blackest of moonless, starless nights; yet my eyes could separate,
- although vaguely, not a few of the individuals in the mass interpenetrated
- and divided, as well as surrounded, by the darkness. It seemed as if my
- eyes would never come quite to themselves. I pressed their balls and
- looked and looked again, but what I saw would not grow distinct. Blackness
- mingled with form, silence and undefined motion possessed the wide space.
- All was a dim, confused dance, filled with recurrent glimpses of shapes
- not unknown to me. Now appeared a woman, with glorious eyes looking out of
- a skull; now an armed figure on a skeleton horse; now one now another of
- the hideous burrowing phantasms. I could trace no order and little
- relation in the mingling and crossing currents and eddies. If I seemed to
- catch the shape and rhythm of a dance, it was but to see it break, and
- confusion prevail. With the shifting colours of the seemingly more solid
- shapes, mingled a multitude of shadows, independent apparently of
- originals, each moving after its own free shadow-will. I looked everywhere
- for the princess, but throughout the wildly changing kaleidoscopic scene,
- could not see her nor discover indication of her presence. Where was she?
- What might she not be doing? No one took the least notice of me as I
- wandered hither and thither seeking her. At length losing hope, I turned
- away to look elsewhere. Finding the wall, and keeping to it with my hand,
- for even then I could not see it, I came, groping along, to a curtained
- opening into the vestibule.
- </p>
- <p>
- Dimly moonlighted, the cage of the leopardess was the arena of what seemed
- a desperate although silent struggle. Two vastly differing forms, human
- and bestial, with entangled confusion of mingling bodies and limbs,
- writhed and wrestled in closest embrace. It had lasted but an instant when
- I saw the leopardess out of the cage, walking quietly to the open door. As
- I hastened after her I threw a glance behind me: there was the leopardess
- in the cage, couching motionless as when I saw her first.
- </p>
- <p>
- The moon, half-way up the sky, was shining round and clear; the bodiless
- shadow I had seen the night before, was walking through the trees toward
- the gate; and after him went the leopardess, swinging her tail. I
- followed, a little way off, as silently as they, and neither of them once
- looked round. Through the open gate we went down to the city, lying quiet
- as the moonshine upon it. The face of the moon was very still, and its
- stillness looked like that of expectation.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Shadow took his way straight to the stair at the top of which I had
- lain the night before. Without a pause he went up, and the leopardess
- followed. I quickened my pace, but, a moment after, heard a cry of horror.
- Then came the fall of something soft and heavy between me and the stair,
- and at my feet lay a body, frightfully blackened and crushed, but still
- recognisable as that of the woman who had led me home and shut me out. As
- I stood petrified, the spotted leopardess came bounding down the stair
- with a baby in her mouth. I darted to seize her ere she could turn at the
- foot; but that instant, from behind me, the white leopardess, like a great
- bar of glowing silver, shot through the moonlight, and had her by the
- neck. She dropped the child; I caught it up, and stood to watch the battle
- between them.
- </p>
- <p>
- What a sight it was&mdash;now the one, now the other uppermost, both too
- intent for any noise beyond a low growl, a whimpered cry, or a snarl of
- hate&mdash;followed by a quicker scrambling of claws, as each, worrying
- and pushing and dragging, struggled for foothold on the pavement! The
- spotted leopardess was larger than the white, and I was anxious for my
- friend; but I soon saw that, though neither stronger nor more active, the
- white leopardess had the greater endurance. Not once did she lose her hold
- on the neck of the other. From the spotted throat at length issued a howl
- of agony, changing, by swift-crowded gradations, into the long-drawn
- CRESCENDO of a woman&rsquo;s uttermost wail. The white one relaxed her jaws; the
- spotted one drew herself away, and rose on her hind legs. Erect in the
- moonlight stood the princess, a confused rush of shadows careering over
- her whiteness&mdash;the spots of the leopard crowding, hurrying, fleeing
- to the refuge of her eyes, where merging they vanished. The last few,
- outsped and belated, mingled with the cloud of her streamy hair, leaving
- her radiant as the moon when a legion of little vapours has flown,
- wind-hunted, off her silvery disc&mdash;save that, adown the white column
- of her throat, a thread of blood still trickled from every wound of her
- adversary&rsquo;s terrible teeth. She turned away, took a few steps with the
- gait of a Hecate, fell, covered afresh with her spots, and fled at a long,
- stretching gallop.
- </p>
- <p>
- The white leopardess turned also, sprang upon me, pulled my arms asunder,
- caught the baby as it fell, and flew with it along the street toward the
- gate.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0027" id="link2HCH0027">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXVII. THE SILENT FOUNTAIN
- </h2>
- <p>
- I turned and followed the spotted leopardess, catching but one glimpse of
- her as she tore up the brow of the hill to the gate of the palace. When I
- reached the entrance-hall, the princess was just throwing the robe around
- her which she had left on the floor. The blood had ceased to flow from her
- wounds, and had dried in the wind of her flight.
- </p>
- <p>
- When she saw me, a flash of anger crossed her face, and she turned her
- head aside. Then, with an attempted smile, she looked at me, and said,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have met with a small accident! Happening to hear that the cat-woman
- was again in the city, I went down to send her away. But she had one of
- her horrid creatures with her: it sprang upon me, and had its claws in my
- neck before I could strike it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She gave a shiver, and I could not help pitying her, although I knew she
- lied, for her wounds were real, and her face reminded me of how she looked
- in the cave. My heart began to reproach me that I had let her fight
- unaided, and I suppose I looked the compassion I felt.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Child of folly!&rdquo; she said, with another attempted smile, &ldquo;&mdash;not
- crying, surely!&mdash;Wait for me here; I am going into the black hall for
- a moment. I want you to get me something for my scratches.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But I followed her close. Out of my sight I feared her.
- </p>
- <p>
- The instant the princess entered, I heard a buzzing sound as of many low
- voices, and, one portion after another, the assembly began to be
- shiftingly illuminated, as by a ray that went travelling from spot to
- spot. Group after group would shine out for a space, then sink back into
- the general vagueness, while another part of the vast company would grow
- momently bright.
- </p>
- <p>
- Some of the actions going on when thus illuminated, were not unknown to
- me; I had been in them, or had looked on them, and so had the princess:
- present with every one of them I now saw her. The skull-headed dancers
- footed the grass in the forest-hall: there was the princess looking in at
- the door! The fight went on in the Evil Wood: there was the princess
- urging it! Yet I was close behind her all the time, she standing
- motionless, her head sunk on her bosom. The confused murmur continued, the
- confused commotion of colours and shapes; and still the ray went shifting
- and showing. It settled at last on the hollow in the heath, and there was
- the princess, walking up and down, and trying in vain to wrap the vapour
- around her! Then first I was startled at what I saw: the old librarian
- walked up to her, and stood for a moment regarding her; she fell; her
- limbs forsook her and fled; her body vanished.
- </p>
- <p>
- A wild shriek rang through the echoing place, and with the fall of her
- eidolon, the princess herself, till then standing like a statue in front
- of me, fell heavily, and lay still. I turned at once and went out: not
- again would I seek to restore her! As I stood trembling beside the cage, I
- knew that in the black ellipsoid I had been in the brain of the princess!&mdash;I
- saw the tail of the leopardess quiver once.
- </p>
- <p>
- While still endeavouring to compose myself, I heard the voice of the
- princess beside me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come now,&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;I will show you what I want you to do for me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She led the way into the court. I followed in dazed compliance.
- </p>
- <p>
- The moon was near the zenith, and her present silver seemed brighter than
- the gold of the absent sun. She brought me through the trees to the
- tallest of them, the one in the centre. It was not quite like the rest,
- for its branches, drawing their ends together at the top, made a clump
- that looked from beneath like a fir-cone. The princess stood close under
- it, gazing up, and said, as if talking to herself,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;On the summit of that tree grows a tiny blossom which would at once heal
- my scratches! I might be a dove for a moment and fetch it, but I see a
- little snake in the leaves whose bite would be worse to a dove than the
- bite of a tiger to me!&mdash;How I hate that cat-woman!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She turned to me quickly, saying with one of her sweetest smiles,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Can you climb?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The smile vanished with the brief question, and her face changed to a look
- of sadness and suffering. I ought to have left her to suffer, but the way
- she put her hand to her wounded neck went to my heart.
- </p>
- <p>
- I considered the tree. All the way up to the branches, were projections on
- the stem like the remnants on a palm of its fallen leaves.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I can climb that tree,&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not with bare feet!&rdquo; she returned.
- </p>
- <p>
- In my haste to follow the leopardess disappearing, I had left my sandals
- in my room.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is no matter,&rdquo; I said; &ldquo;I have long gone barefoot!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Again I looked at the tree, and my eyes went wandering up the stem until
- my sight lost itself in the branches. The moon shone like silvery foam
- here and there on the rugged bole, and a little rush of wind went through
- the top with a murmurous sound as of water falling softly into water. I
- approached the tree to begin my ascent of it. The princess stopped me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot let you attempt it with your feet bare!&rdquo; she insisted. &ldquo;A fall
- from the top would kill you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So would a bite from the snake!&rdquo; I answered&mdash;not believing, I
- confess, that there was any snake.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It would not hurt YOU!&rdquo; she replied. &ldquo;&mdash;Wait a moment.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She tore from her garment the two wide borders that met in front, and
- kneeling on one knee, made me put first my left foot, then my right on the
- other, and bound them about with the thick embroidered strips.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have left the ends hanging, princess!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have nothing to cut them off with; but they are not long enough to get
- entangled,&rdquo; she replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- I turned to the tree, and began to climb.
- </p>
- <p>
- Now in Bulika the cold after sundown was not so great as in certain other
- parts of the country&mdash;especially about the sexton&rsquo;s cottage; yet when
- I had climbed a little way, I began to feel very cold, grew still colder
- as I ascended, and became coldest of all when I got among the branches.
- Then I shivered, and seemed to have lost my hands and feet.
- </p>
- <p>
- There was hardly any wind, and the branches did not sway in the least,
- yet, as I approached the summit, I became aware of a peculiar
- unsteadiness: every branch on which I placed foot or laid hold, seemed on
- the point of giving way. When my head rose above the branches near the
- top, and in the open moonlight I began to look about for the blossom, that
- instant I found myself drenched from head to foot. The next, as if plunged
- in a stormy water, I was flung about wildly, and felt myself sinking.
- Tossed up and down, tossed this way and tossed that way, rolled over and
- over, checked, rolled the other way and tossed up again, I was sinking
- lower and lower. Gasping and gurgling and choking, I fell at last upon a
- solid bottom.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I told you so!&rdquo; croaked a voice in my ear.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0028" id="link2HCH0028">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXVIII. I AM SILENCED
- </h2>
- <p>
- I rubbed the water out of my eyes, and saw the raven on the edge of a huge
- stone basin. With the cold light of the dawn reflected from his glossy
- plumage, he stood calmly looking down upon me. I lay on my back in water,
- above which, leaning on my elbows, I just lifted my face. I was in the
- basin of the large fountain constructed by my father in the middle of the
- lawn. High over me glimmered the thick, steel-shiny stalk, shooting, with
- a torrent uprush, a hundred feet into the air, to spread in a blossom of
- foam.
- </p>
- <p>
- Nettled at the coolness of the raven&rsquo;s remark,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You told me nothing!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I told you to do nothing any one you distrusted asked you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tut! how was mortal to remember that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will not forget the consequences of having forgotten it!&rdquo; replied Mr.
- Raven, who stood leaning over the margin of the basin, and stretched his
- hand across to me.
- </p>
- <p>
- I took it, and was immediately beside him on the lawn, dripping and
- streaming.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You must change your clothes at once!&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;A wetting does not
- signify where you come from&mdash;though at present such an accident is
- unusual; here it has its inconveniences!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He was again a raven, walking, with something stately in his step, toward
- the house, the door of which stood open.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have not much to change!&rdquo; I laughed; for I had flung aside my robe to
- climb the tree.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is a long time since I moulted a feather!&rdquo; said the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- In the house no one seemed awake. I went to my room, found a
- dressing-gown, and descended to the library.
- </p>
- <p>
- As I entered, the librarian came from the closet. I threw myself on a
- couch. Mr. Raven drew a chair to my side and sat down. For a minute or two
- neither spoke. I was the first to break the silence.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What does it all mean?&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A good question!&rdquo; he rejoined: &ldquo;nobody knows what anything is; a man can
- learn only what a thing means! Whether he do, depends on the use he is
- making of it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have made no use of anything yet!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not much; but you know the fact, and that is something! Most people take
- more than a lifetime to learn that they have learned nothing, and done
- less! At least you have not been without the desire to be of use!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did want to do something for the children&mdash;the precious Little
- Ones, I mean.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know you did&mdash;and started the wrong way!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did not know the right way.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is true also&mdash;but you are to blame that you did not.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am ready to believe whatever you tell me&mdash;as soon as I understand
- what it means.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Had you accepted our invitation, you would have known the right way. When
- a man will not act where he is, he must go far to find his work.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed I have gone far, and got nowhere, for I have not found my work! I
- left the children to learn how to serve them, and have only learned the
- danger they are in.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When you were with them, you were where you could help them: you left
- your work to look for it! It takes a wise man to know when to go away; a
- fool may learn to go back at once!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you mean, sir, I could have done something for the Little Ones by
- staying with them?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Could you teach them anything by leaving them?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No; but how could I teach them? I did not know how to begin. Besides,
- they were far ahead of me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is true. But you were not a rod to measure them with! Certainly, if
- they knew what you know, not to say what you might have known, they would
- be ahead of you&mdash;out of sight ahead! but you saw they were not
- growing&mdash;or growing so slowly that they had not yet developed the
- idea of growing! they were even afraid of growing!&mdash;You had never
- seen children remain children!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But surely I had no power to make them grow!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You might have removed some of the hindrances to their growing!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are they? I do not know them. I did think perhaps it was the want of
- water!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Of course it is! they have none to cry with!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I would gladly have kept them from requiring any for that purpose!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No doubt you would&mdash;the aim of all stupid philanthropists! Why, Mr.
- Vane, but for the weeping in it, your world would never have become worth
- saving! You confess you thought it might be water they wanted: why did not
- you dig them a well or two?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That never entered my mind!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not when the sounds of the waters under the earth entered your ears?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I believe it did once. But I was afraid of the giants for them. That was
- what made me bear so much from the brutes myself!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed you almost taught the noble little creatures to be afraid of the
- stupid Bags! While they fed and comforted and worshipped you, all the time
- you submitted to be the slave of bestial men! You gave the darlings a
- seeming coward for their hero! A worse wrong you could hardly have done
- them. They gave you their hearts; you owed them your soul!&mdash;You might
- by this time have made the Bags hewers of wood and drawers of water to the
- Little Ones!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I fear what you say is true, Mr. Raven! But indeed I was afraid that more
- knowledge might prove an injury to them&mdash;render them less innocent,
- less lovely.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They had given you no reason to harbour such a fear!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is not a little knowledge a dangerous thing?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is one of the pet falsehoods of your world! Is man&rsquo;s greatest
- knowledge more than a little? or is it therefore dangerous? The fancy that
- knowledge is in itself a great thing, would make any degree of knowledge
- more dangerous than any amount of ignorance. To know all things would not
- be greatness.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;At least it was for love of them, not from cowardice that I served the
- giants!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Granted. But you ought to have served the Little Ones, not the giants!
- You ought to have given the Little Ones water; then they would soon have
- taught the giants their true position. In the meantime you could yourself
- have made the giants cut down two-thirds of their coarse fruit-trees to
- give room to the little delicate ones! You lost your chance with the
- Lovers, Mr. Vane! You speculated about them instead of helping them!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0029" id="link2HCH0029">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXIX. THE PERSIAN CAT
- </h2>
- <p>
- I sat in silence and shame. What he said was true: I had not been a wise
- neighbour to the Little Ones!
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Raven resumed:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You wronged at the same time the stupid creatures themselves. For them
- slavery would have been progress. To them a few such lessons as you could
- have given them with a stick from one of their own trees, would have been
- invaluable.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I did not know they were cowards!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What difference does that make? The man who grounds his action on
- another&rsquo;s cowardice, is essentially a coward himself.&mdash;I fear worse
- will come of it! By this time the Little Ones might have been able to
- protect themselves from the princess, not to say the giants&mdash;they
- were always fit enough for that; as it was they laughed at them! but now,
- through your relations with her,&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I hate her!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you let her know you hated her?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Again I was silent.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not even to her have you been faithful!&mdash;But hush! we were followed
- from the fountain, I fear!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No living creature did I see!&mdash;except a disreputable-looking cat
- that bolted into the shrubbery.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was a magnificent Persian&mdash;so wet and draggled, though, as to
- look what she was&mdash;worse than disreputable!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you mean, Mr. Raven?&rdquo; I cried, a fresh horror taking me by the
- throat. &ldquo;&mdash;There was a beautiful blue Persian about the house, but
- she fled at the very sound of water!&mdash;Could she have been after the
- goldfish?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shall see!&rdquo; returned the librarian. &ldquo;I know a little about cats of
- several sorts, and there is that in the room which will unmask this one,
- or I am mistaken in her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He rose, went to the door of the closet, brought from it the mutilated
- volume, and sat down again beside me. I stared at the book in his hand: it
- was a whole book, entire and sound!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where was the other half of it?&rdquo; I gasped.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Sticking through into my library,&rdquo; he answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- I held my peace. A single question more would have been a plunge into a
- bottomless sea, and there might be no time!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Listen,&rdquo; he said: &ldquo;I am going to read a stanza or two. There is one
- present who, I imagine, will hardly enjoy the reading!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He opened the vellum cover, and turned a leaf or two. The parchment was
- discoloured with age, and one leaf showed a dark stain over two-thirds of
- it. He slowly turned this also, and seemed looking for a certain passage
- in what appeared a continuous poem. Somewhere about the middle of the book
- he began to read.
- </p>
- <p>
- But what follows represents&mdash;not what he read, only the impression it
- made upon me. The poem seemed in a language I had never before heard,
- which yet I understood perfectly, although I could not write the words, or
- give their meaning save in poor approximation. These fragments, then, are
- the shapes which those he read have finally taken in passing again through
- my brain:&mdash;
- </p>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
- &ldquo;But if I found a man that could believe
- In what he saw not, felt not, and yet knew,
- From him I should take substance, and receive
- Firmness and form relate to touch and view;
- Then should I clothe me in the likeness true
- Of that idea where his soul did cleave!&rdquo;
- </pre>
- <p>
- He turned a leaf and read again:&mdash;
- </p>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
- &ldquo;In me was every woman. I had power
- Over the soul of every living man,
- Such as no woman ever had in dower&mdash;
- Could what no woman ever could, or can;
- All women, I, the woman, still outran,
- Outsoared, outsank, outreigned, in hall or bower.
-
- &ldquo;For I, though me he neither saw nor heard,
- Nor with his hand could touch finger of mine,
- Although not once my breath had ever stirred
- A hair of him, could trammel brain and spine
- With rooted bonds which Death could not untwine&mdash;
- Or life, though hope were evermore deferred.&rdquo;
- </pre>
- <p>
- Again he paused, again turned a leaf, and again began:&mdash;
- </p>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
- &ldquo;For by his side I lay, a bodiless thing;
- I breathed not, saw not, felt not, only thought,
- And made him love me&mdash;with a hungering
- After he knew not what&mdash;if it was aught
- Or but a nameless something that was wrought
- By him out of himself; for I did sing
-
- &ldquo;A song that had no sound into his soul;
- I lay a heartless thing against his heart,
- Giving him nothing where he gave his whole
- Being to clothe me human, every part:
- That I at last into his sense might dart,
- Thus first into his living mind I stole.
-
- &ldquo;Ah, who was ever conquering Love but I!
- Who else did ever throne in heart of man!
- To visible being, with a gladsome cry
- Waking, life&rsquo;s tremor through me throbbing ran!&rdquo;
- </pre>
- <p>
- A strange, repulsive feline wail arose somewhere in the room. I started up
- on my elbow and stared about me, but could see nothing.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mr. Raven turned several leaves, and went on:&mdash;
- </p>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
- &ldquo;Sudden I woke, nor knew the ghastly fear
- That held me&mdash;not like serpent coiled about,
- But like a vapour moist, corrupt, and drear,
- Filling heart, soul, and breast and brain throughout;
- My being lay motionless in sickening doubt,
- Nor dared to ask how came the horror here.
-
- &ldquo;My past entire I knew, but not my now;
- I understood nor what I was, nor where;
- I knew what I had been: still on my brow
- I felt the touch of what no more was there!
- I was a fainting, dead, yet live Despair;
- A life that flouted life with mop and mow!
-
- &ldquo;That I was a queen I knew right well,
- And sometimes wore a splendour on my head
- Whose flashing even dead darkness could not quell&mdash;
- The like on neck and arms and girdle-stead;
- And men declared a light my closed eyes shed
- That killed the diamond in its silver cell.&rdquo;
- </pre>
- <p>
- Again I heard the ugly cry of feline pain. Again I looked, but saw neither
- shape nor motion. Mr. Raven seemed to listen a moment, but again turned
- several pages, and resumed:&mdash;
- </p>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
- &ldquo;Hideously wet, my hair of golden hue
- Fouled my fair hands: to have it swiftly shorn
- I had given my rubies, all for me dug new&mdash;
- No eyes had seen, and such no waist had worn!
- For a draught of water from a drinking horn,
- For one blue breath, I had given my sapphires blue!
-
- &ldquo;Nay, I had given my opals for a smock,
- A peasant-maiden&rsquo;s garment, coarse and clean:
- My shroud was rotting! Once I heard a cock
- Lustily crow upon the hillock green
- Over my coffin. Dulled by space between,
- Came back an answer like a ghostly mock.&rdquo;
- </pre>
- <p>
- Once more arose the bestial wail.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thought some foul thing was in the room!&rdquo; said the librarian, casting a
- glance around him; but instantly he turned a leaf or two, and again read:&mdash;
- </p>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
- &ldquo;For I had bathed in milk and honey-dew,
- In rain from roses shook, that ne&rsquo;er touched earth,
- And ointed me with nard of amber hue;
- Never had spot me spotted from my birth,
- Or mole, or scar of hurt, or fret of dearth;
- Never one hair superfluous on me grew.
-
- &ldquo;Fleeing cold whiteness, I would sit alone&mdash;
- Not in the sun&mdash;I feared his bronzing light,
- But in his radiance back around me thrown
- By fulgent mirrors tempering his might;
- Thus bathing in a moon-bath not too bright,
- My skin I tinted slow to ivory tone.
-
- &ldquo;But now, all round was dark, dark all within!
- My eyes not even gave out a phantom-flash;
- My fingers sank in pulp through pulpy skin;
- My body lay death-weltered in a mash
- Of slimy horrors&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </pre>
- <p>
- With a fearsome yell, her clammy fur staring in clumps, her tail thick as
- a cable, her eyes flashing green as a chrysoprase, her distended claws
- entangling themselves so that she floundered across the carpet, a huge
- white cat rushed from somewhere, and made for the chimney. Quick as
- thought the librarian threw the manuscript between her and the hearth. She
- crouched instantly, her eyes fixed on the book. But his voice went on as
- if still he read, and his eyes seemed also fixed on the book:&mdash;
- </p>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
- &ldquo;Ah, the two worlds! so strangely are they one,
- And yet so measurelessly wide apart!
- Oh, had I lived the bodiless alone
- And from defiling sense held safe my heart,
- Then had I scaped the canker and the smart,
- Scaped life-in-death, scaped misery&rsquo;s endless moan!&rdquo;
- </pre>
- <p>
- At these words such a howling, such a prolonged yell of agony burst from
- the cat, that we both stopped our ears. When it ceased, Mr. Raven walked
- to the fire-place, took up the book, and, standing between the creature
- and the chimney, pointed his finger at her for a moment. She lay perfectly
- still. He took a half-burnt stick from the hearth, drew with it some sign
- on the floor, put the manuscript back in its place, with a look that
- seemed to say, &ldquo;Now we have her, I think!&rdquo; and, returning to the cat,
- stood over her and said, in a still, solemn voice:&mdash;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Lilith, when you came here on the way to your evil will, you little
- thought into whose hands you were delivering yourself!&mdash;Mr. Vane,
- when God created me,&mdash;not out of Nothing, as say the unwise, but out
- of His own endless glory&mdash;He brought me an angelic splendour to be my
- wife: there she lies! For her first thought was POWER; she counted it
- slavery to be one with me, and bear children for Him who gave her being.
- One child, indeed, she bore; then, puffed with the fancy that she had
- created her, would have me fall down and worship her! Finding, however,
- that I would but love and honour, never obey and worship her, she poured
- out her blood to escape me, fled to the army of the aliens, and soon had
- so ensnared the heart of the great Shadow, that he became her slave,
- wrought her will, and made her queen of Hell. How it is with her now, she
- best knows, but I know also. The one child of her body she fears and
- hates, and would kill, asserting a right, which is a lie, over what God
- sent through her into His new world. Of creating, she knows no more than
- the crystal that takes its allotted shape, or the worm that makes two
- worms when it is cloven asunder. Vilest of God&rsquo;s creatures, she lives by
- the blood and lives and souls of men. She consumes and slays, but is
- powerless to destroy as to create.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The animal lay motionless, its beryl eyes fixed flaming on the man: his
- eyes on hers held them fixed that they could not move from his.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then God gave me another wife&mdash;not an angel but a woman&mdash;who is
- to this as light is to darkness.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The cat gave a horrible screech, and began to grow bigger. She went on
- growing and growing. At last the spotted leopardess uttered a roar that
- made the house tremble. I sprang to my feet. I do not think Mr. Raven
- started even with his eyelids.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is but her jealousy that speaks,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;jealousy self-kindled,
- foiled and fruitless; for here I am, her master now whom she, would not
- have for her husband! while my beautiful Eve yet lives, hoping immortally!
- Her hated daughter lives also, but beyond her evil ken, one day to be what
- she counts her destruction&mdash;for even Lilith shall be saved by her
- childbearing. Meanwhile she exults that my human wife plunged herself and
- me in despair, and has borne me a countless race of miserables; but my Eve
- repented, and is now beautiful as never was woman or angel, while her
- groaning, travailing world is the nursery of our Father&rsquo;s children. I too
- have repented, and am blessed.&mdash;Thou, Lilith, hast not yet repented;
- but thou must.&mdash;Tell me, is the great Shadow beautiful? Knowest thou
- how long thou wilt thyself remain beautiful?&mdash;Answer me, if thou
- knowest.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Then at last I understood that Mr. Raven was indeed Adam, the old and the
- new man; and that his wife, ministering in the house of the dead, was Eve,
- the mother of us all, the lady of the New Jerusalem.
- </p>
- <p>
- The leopardess reared; the flickering and fleeing of her spots began; the
- princess at length stood radiant in her perfect shape.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I AM beautiful&mdash;and immortal!&rdquo; she said&mdash;and she looked the
- goddess she would be.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;As a bush that burns, and is consumed,&rdquo; answered he who had been her
- husband. &ldquo;&mdash;What is that under thy right hand?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- For her arm lay across her bosom, and her hand was pressed to her side.
- </p>
- <p>
- A swift pang contorted her beautiful face, and passed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is but a leopard-spot that lingers! it will quickly follow those I
- have dismissed,&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Thou art beautiful because God created thee, but thou art the slave of
- sin: take thy hand from thy side.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Her hand sank away, and as it dropt she looked him in the eyes with a
- quailing fierceness that had in it no surrender.
- </p>
- <p>
- He gazed a moment at the spot.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is not on the leopard; it is in the woman!&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;Nor will it
- leave thee until it hath eaten to thy heart, and thy beauty hath flowed
- from thee through the open wound!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She gave a glance downward, and shivered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Lilith,&rdquo; said Adam, and his tone had changed to a tender beseeching,
- &ldquo;hear me, and repent, and He who made thee will cleanse thee!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Her hand returned quivering to her side. Her face grew dark. She gave the
- cry of one from whom hope is vanishing. The cry passed into a howl. She
- lay writhing on the floor, a leopardess covered with spots.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The evil thou meditatest,&rdquo; Adam resumed, &ldquo;thou shalt never compass,
- Lilith, for Good and not Evil is the Universe. The battle between them may
- last for countless ages, but it must end: how will it fare with thee when
- Time hath vanished in the dawn of the eternal morn? Repent, I beseech
- thee; repent, and be again an angel of God!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She rose, she stood upright, a woman once more, and said,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will not repent. I will drink the blood of thy child.&rdquo; My eyes were
- fastened on the princess; but when Adam spoke, I turned to him: he stood
- towering above her; the form of his visage was altered, and his voice was
- terrible.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Down!&rdquo; he cried; &ldquo;or by the power given me I will melt thy very bones.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She flung herself on the floor, dwindled and dwindled, and was again a
- gray cat. Adam caught her up by the skin of her neck, bore her to the
- closet, and threw her in. He described a strange figure on the threshold,
- and closing the door, locked it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then he returned to my side the old librarian, looking sad and worn, and
- furtively wiping tears from his eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0030" id="link2HCH0030">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXX. ADAM EXPLAINS
- </h2>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We must be on our guard,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;or she will again outwit us. She
- would befool the very elect!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How are we to be on our guard?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Every way,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;She fears, therefore hates her child, and is in
- this house on her way to destroy her. The birth of children is in her eyes
- the death of their parents, and every new generation the enemy of the
- last. Her daughter appears to her an open channel through which her
- immortality&mdash;which yet she counts self-inherent&mdash;is flowing fast
- away: to fill it up, almost from her birth she has pursued her with an
- utter enmity. But the result of her machinations hitherto is, that in the
- region she claims as her own, has appeared a colony of children, to which
- that daughter is heart and head and sheltering wings. My Eve longed after
- the child, and would have been to her as a mother to her first-born, but
- we were then unfit to train her: she was carried into the wilderness, and
- for ages we knew nothing of her fate. But she was divinely fostered, and
- had young angels for her playmates; nor did she ever know care until she
- found a baby in the wood, and the mother-heart in her awoke. One by one
- she has found many children since, and that heart is not yet full. Her
- family is her absorbing charge, and never children were better mothered.
- Her authority over them is without appeal, but it is unknown to herself,
- and never comes to the surface except in watchfulness and service. She has
- forgotten the time when she lived without them, and thinks she came
- herself from the wood, the first of the family.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have saved the life of her and their enemy; therefore your life
- belongs to her and them. The princess was on her way to destroy them, but
- as she crossed that stream, vengeance overtook her, and she would have
- died had you not come to her aid. You did; and ere now she would have been
- raging among the Little Ones, had she dared again cross the stream. But
- there was yet a way to the blessed little colony through the world of the
- three dimensions; only, from that, by the slaying of her former body, she
- had excluded herself, and except in personal contact with one belonging to
- it, could not re-enter it. You provided the opportunity: never, in all her
- long years, had she had one before. Her hand, with lightest touch, was on
- one or other of your muffled feet, every step as you climbed. In that
- little chamber, she is now watching to leave it as soon as ever she may.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She cannot know anything about the door!&mdash;she cannot at least know
- how to open it!&rdquo; I said; but my heart was not so confident as my words.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hush, hush!&rdquo; whispered the librarian, with uplifted hand; &ldquo;she can hear
- through anything!&mdash;You must go at once, and make your way to my
- wife&rsquo;s cottage. I will remain to keep guard over her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let me go to the Little Ones!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Beware of that, Mr. Vane. Go to my wife, and do as she tells you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- His advice did not recommend itself: why haste to encounter measureless
- delay? If not to protect the children, why go at all? Alas, even now I
- believed him only enough to ask him questions, not to obey him!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me first, Mr. Raven,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;why, of all places, you have shut her
- up there! The night I ran from your house, it was immediately into that
- closet!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The closet is no nearer our cottage, and no farther from it, than any or
- every other place.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But,&rdquo; I returned, hard to persuade where I could not understand, &ldquo;how is
- it then that, when you please, you take from that same door a whole book
- where I saw and felt only a part of one? The other part, you have just
- told me, stuck through into your library: when you put it again on the
- shelf, will it not again stick through into that? Must not then the two
- places, in which parts of the same volume can at the same moment exist,
- lie close together? Or can one part of the book be in space, or SOMEWHERE,
- and the other out of space, or NOWHERE?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am sorry I cannot explain the thing to you,&rdquo; he answered; &ldquo;but there is
- no provision in you for understanding it. Not merely, therefore, is the
- phenomenon inexplicable to you, but the very nature of it is
- inapprehensible by you. Indeed I but partially apprehend it myself. At the
- same time you are constantly experiencing things which you not only do
- not, but cannot understand. You think you understand them, but your
- understanding of them is only your being used to them, and therefore not
- surprised at them. You accept them, not because you understand them, but
- because you must accept them: they are there, and have unavoidable
- relations with you! The fact is, no man understands anything; when he
- knows he does not understand, that is his first tottering step&mdash;not
- toward understanding, but toward the capability of one day understanding.
- To such things as these you are not used, therefore you do not fancy you
- understand them. Neither I nor any man can here help you to understand;
- but I may, perhaps, help you a little to believe!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He went to the door of the closet, gave a low whistle, and stood
- listening. A moment after, I heard, or seemed to hear, a soft whir of
- wings, and, looking up, saw a white dove perch for an instant on the top
- of the shelves over the portrait, thence drop to Mr. Raven&rsquo;s shoulder, and
- lay her head against his cheek. Only by the motions of their two heads
- could I tell that they were talking together; I heard nothing. Neither had
- I moved my eyes from them, when suddenly she was not there, and Mr. Raven
- came back to his seat.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why did you whistle?&rdquo; I asked. &ldquo;Surely sound here is not sound there!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are right,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;I whistled that you might know I called
- her. Not the whistle, but what the whistle meant reached her.&mdash;There
- is not a minute to lose: you must go!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will at once!&rdquo; I replied, and moved for the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will sleep to-night at my hostelry!&rdquo; he said&mdash;not as a question,
- but in a tone of mild authority.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My heart is with the children,&rdquo; I replied. &ldquo;But if you insist&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do insist. You can otherwise effect nothing.&mdash;I will go with you
- as far as the mirror, and see you off.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He rose. There came a sudden shock in the closet. Apparently the
- leopardess had flung herself against the heavy door. I looked at my
- companion.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come; come!&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ere we reached the door of the library, a howling yell came after us,
- mingled with the noise of claws that scored at the hard oak. I hesitated,
- and half turned.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To think of her lying there alone,&rdquo; I murmured, &ldquo;&mdash;with that
- terrible wound!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nothing will ever close that wound,&rdquo; he answered, with a sigh. &ldquo;It must
- eat into her heart! Annihilation itself is no death to evil. Only good
- where evil was, is evil dead. An evil thing must live with its evil until
- it chooses to be good. That alone is the slaying of evil.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I held my peace until a sound I did not understand overtook us.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If she should break loose!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Make haste!&rdquo; he rejoined. &ldquo;I shall hurry down the moment you are gone,
- and I have disarranged the mirrors.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- We ran, and reached the wooden chamber breathless. Mr. Raven seized the
- chains and adjusted the hood. Then he set the mirrors in their proper
- relation, and came beside me in front of the standing one. Already I saw
- the mountain range emerging from the mist.
- </p>
- <p>
- Between us, wedging us asunder, darted, with the yell of a demon, the huge
- bulk of the spotted leopardess. She leaped through the mirror as through
- an open window, and settled at once into a low, even, swift gallop.
- </p>
- <p>
- I cast a look of dismay at my companion, and sprang through to follow her.
- He came after me leisurely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You need not run,&rdquo; he called; &ldquo;you cannot overtake her. This is our way.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- As he spoke he turned in the opposite direction.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She has more magic at her finger-tips than I care to know!&rdquo; he added
- quietly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We must do what we can!&rdquo; I said, and ran on, but sickening as I saw her
- dwindle in the distance, stopped, and went back to him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Doubtless we must,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;But my wife has warned Mara, and she
- will do her part; you must sleep first: you have given me your word!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nor do I mean to break it. But surely sleep is not the first thing!
- Surely, surely, action takes precedence of repose!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A man can do nothing he is not fit to do.&mdash;See! did I not tell you
- Mara would do her part?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I looked whither he pointed, and saw a white spot moving at an acute angle
- with the line taken by the leopardess.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There she is!&rdquo; he cried. &ldquo;The spotted leopardess is strong, but the white
- is stronger!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have seen them fight: the combat did not appear decisive as to that.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How should such eyes tell which have never slept? The princess did not
- confess herself beaten&mdash;that she never does&mdash;but she fled! When
- she confesses her last hope gone, that it is indeed hard to kick against
- the goad, then will her day begin to dawn! Come; come! He who cannot act
- must make haste to sleep!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0031" id="link2HCH0031">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXXI. THE SEXTON&rsquo;S OLD HORSE
- </h2>
- <p>
- I stood and watched the last gleam of the white leopardess melt away, then
- turned to follow my guide&mdash;but reluctantly. What had I to do with
- sleep? Surely reason was the same in every world, and what reason could
- there be in going to sleep with the dead, when the hour was calling the
- live man? Besides, no one would wake me, and how could I be certain of
- waking early&mdash;of waking at all?&mdash;the sleepers in that house let
- morning glide into noon, and noon into night, nor ever stirred! I
- murmured, but followed, for I knew not what else to do.
- </p>
- <p>
- The librarian walked on in silence, and I walked silent as he. Time and
- space glided past us. The sun set; it began to grow dark, and I felt in
- the air the spreading cold of the chamber of death. My heart sank lower
- and lower. I began to lose sight of the lean, long-coated figure, and at
- length could no more hear his swishing stride through the heather. But
- then I heard instead the slow-flapping wings of the raven; and, at
- intervals, now a firefly, now a gleaming butterfly rose into the rayless
- air.
- </p>
- <p>
- By and by the moon appeared, slow crossing the far horizon.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are tired, are you not, Mr. Vane?&rdquo; said the raven, alighting on a
- stone. &ldquo;You must make acquaintance with the horse that will carry you in
- the morning!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He gave a strange whistle through his long black beak. A spot appeared on
- the face of the half-risen moon. To my ears came presently the drumming of
- swift, soft-galloping hoofs, and in a minute or two, out of the very disc
- of the moon, low-thundered the terrible horse. His mane flowed away behind
- him like the crest of a wind-fighting wave, torn seaward in hoary spray,
- and the whisk of his tail kept blinding the eye of the moon. Nineteen
- hands he seemed, huge of bone, tight of skin, hard of muscle&mdash;a steed
- the holy Death himself might choose on which to ride abroad and slay! The
- moon seemed to regard him with awe; in her scary light he looked a very
- skeleton, loosely roped together. Terrifically large, he moved with the
- lightness of a winged insect. As he drew near, his speed slackened, and
- his mane and tail drifted about him settling.
- </p>
- <p>
- Now I was not merely a lover of horses, but I loved every horse I saw. I
- had never spent money except upon horses, and had never sold a horse. The
- sight of this mighty one, terrible to look at, woke in me longing to
- possess him. It was pure greed, nay, rank covetousness, an evil thing in
- all the worlds. I do not mean that I could have stolen him, but that,
- regardless of his proper place, I would have bought him if I could. I laid
- my hands on him, and stroked the protuberant bones that humped a hide
- smooth and thin, and shiny as satin&mdash;so shiny that the very shape of
- the moon was reflected in it; I fondled his sharp-pointed ears, whispered
- words in them, and breathed into his red nostrils the breath of a man&rsquo;s
- life. He in return breathed into mine the breath of a horse&rsquo;s life, and we
- loved one another. What eyes he had! Blue-filmy like the eyes of the dead,
- behind each was a glowing coal! The raven, with wings half extended,
- looked on pleased at my love-making to his magnificent horse.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is well! be friends with him,&rdquo; he said: &ldquo;he will carry you all the
- better to-morrow!&mdash;Now we must hurry home!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- My desire to ride the horse had grown passionate.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;May I not mount him at once, Mr. Raven?&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;By all means!&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;Mount, and ride him home.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The horse bent his head over my shoulder lovingly. I twisted my hands in
- his mane and scrambled onto his back, not without aid from certain
- protuberant bones.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He would outspeed any leopard in creation!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not that way at night,&rdquo; answered the raven; &ldquo;the road is difficult.&mdash;But
- come; loss now will be gain then! To wait is harder than to run, and its
- meed is the fuller. Go on, my son&mdash;straight to the cottage. I shall
- be there as soon as you. It will rejoice my wife&rsquo;s heart to see son of
- hers on that horse!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I sat silent. The horse stood like a block of marble.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why do you linger?&rdquo; asked the raven.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I long so much to ride after the leopardess,&rdquo; I answered, &ldquo;that I can
- scarce restrain myself!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have promised!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My debt to the Little Ones appears, I confess, a greater thing than my
- bond to you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yield to the temptation and you will bring mischief upon them&mdash;and
- on yourself also.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What matters it for me? I love them; and love works no evil. I will go.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But the truth was, I forgot the children, infatuate with the horse.
- </p>
- <p>
- Eyes flashed through the darkness, and I knew that Adam stood in his own
- shape beside me. I knew also by his voice that he repressed an indignation
- almost too strong for him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Vane,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;do you not know why you have not yet done anything
- worth doing?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because I have been a fool,&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wherein?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In everything.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Which do you count your most indiscreet action?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Bringing the princess to life: I ought to have left her to her just
- fate.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nay, now you talk foolishly! You could not have done otherwise than you
- did, not knowing she was evil!&mdash;But you never brought any one to
- life! How could you, yourself dead?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I dead?&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; he answered; &ldquo;and you will be dead, so long as you refuse to die.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Back to the old riddling!&rdquo; I returned scornfully.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Be persuaded, and go home with me,&rdquo; he continued gently. &ldquo;The most&mdash;nearly
- the only foolish thing you ever did, was to run from our dead.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I pressed the horse&rsquo;s ribs, and he was off like a sudden wind. I gave him
- a pat on the side of the neck, and he went about in a sharp-driven curve,
- &ldquo;close to the ground, like a cat when scratchingly she wheels about after
- a mouse,&rdquo; leaning sideways till his mane swept the tops of the heather.
- </p>
- <p>
- Through the dark I heard the wings of the raven. Five quick flaps I heard,
- and he perched on the horse&rsquo;s head. The horse checked himself instantly,
- ploughing up the ground with his feet.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Vane,&rdquo; croaked the raven, &ldquo;think what you are doing! Twice already
- has evil befallen you&mdash;once from fear, and once from heedlessness:
- breach of word is far worse; it is a crime.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The Little Ones are in frightful peril, and I brought it upon them!&rdquo; I
- cried. &ldquo;&mdash;But indeed I will not break my word to you. I will return,
- and spend in your house what nights&mdash;what days&mdash;what years you
- please.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I tell you once more you will do them other than good if you go
- to-night,&rdquo; he insisted.
- </p>
- <p>
- But a false sense of power, a sense which had no root and was merely
- vibrated into me from the strength of the horse, had, alas, rendered me
- too stupid to listen to anything he said!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Would you take from me my last chance of reparation?&rdquo; I cried. &ldquo;This time
- there shall be no shirking! It is my duty, and I will go&mdash;if I perish
- for it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Go, then, foolish boy!&rdquo; he returned, with anger in his croak. &ldquo;Take the
- horse, and ride to failure! May it be to humility!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He spread his wings and flew. Again I pressed the lean ribs under me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;After the spotted leopardess!&rdquo; I whispered in his ear.
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned his head this way and that, snuffing the air; then started, and
- went a few paces in a slow, undecided walk. Suddenly he quickened his
- walk; broke into a trot; began to gallop, and in a few moments his speed
- was tremendous. He seemed to see in the dark; never stumbled, not once
- faltered, not once hesitated. I sat as on the ridge of a wave. I felt
- under me the play of each individual muscle: his joints were so elastic,
- and his every movement glided so into the next, that not once did he jar
- me. His growing swiftness bore him along until he flew rather than ran.
- The wind met and passed us like a tornado.
- </p>
- <p>
- Across the evil hollow we sped like a bolt from an arblast. No monster
- lifted its neck; all knew the hoofs that thundered over their heads! We
- rushed up the hills, we shot down their farther slopes; from the rocky
- chasms of the river-bed he did not swerve; he held on over them his
- fierce, terrible gallop. The moon, half-way up the heaven, gazed with a
- solemn trouble in her pale countenance. Rejoicing in the power of my steed
- and in the pride of my life, I sat like a king and rode.
- </p>
- <p>
- We were near the middle of the many channels, my horse every other moment
- clearing one, sometimes two in his stride, and now and then gathering
- himself for a great bounding leap, when the moon reached the key-stone of
- her arch. Then came a wonder and a terror: she began to descend rolling
- like the nave of Fortune&rsquo;s wheel bowled by the gods, and went faster and
- faster. Like our own moon, this one had a human face, and now the broad
- forehead now the chin was uppermost as she rolled. I gazed aghast.
- </p>
- <p>
- Across the ravines came the howling of wolves. An ugly fear began to
- invade the hollow places of my heart; my confidence was on the wane! The
- horse maintained his headlong swiftness, with ears pricked forward, and
- thirsty nostrils exulting in the wind his career created. But there was
- the moon jolting like an old chariot-wheel down the hill of heaven, with
- awful boding! She rolled at last over the horizon-edge and disappeared,
- carrying all her light with her.
- </p>
- <p>
- The mighty steed was in the act of clearing a wide shallow channel when we
- were caught in the net of the darkness. His head dropped; its impetus
- carried his helpless bulk across, but he fell in a heap on the margin, and
- where he fell he lay. I got up, kneeled beside him, and felt him all over.
- Not a bone could I find broken, but he was a horse no more. I sat down on
- the body, and buried my face in my hands.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0032" id="link2HCH0032">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXXII. THE LOVERS AND THE BAGS
- </h2>
- <p>
- Bitterly cold grew the night. The body froze under me. The cry of the
- wolves came nearer; I heard their feet soft-padding on the rocky ground;
- their quick panting filled the air. Through the darkness I saw the many
- glowing eyes; their half-circle contracted around me. My time was come! I
- sprang to my feet.&mdash;Alas, I had not even a stick!
- </p>
- <p>
- They came in a rush, their eyes flashing with fury of greed, their black
- throats agape to devour me. I stood hopelessly waiting them. One moment
- they halted over the horse&mdash;then came at me.
- </p>
- <p>
- With a sound of swiftness all but silence, a cloud of green eyes came down
- on their flank. The heads that bore them flew at the wolves with a cry
- feebler yet fiercer than their howling snarl, and by the cry I knew them:
- they were cats, led by a huge gray one. I could see nothing of him but his
- eyes, yet I knew him&mdash;and so knew his colour and bigness. A terrific
- battle followed, whose tale alone came to me through the night. I would
- have fled, for surely it was but a fight which should have me!&mdash;only
- where was the use? my first step would be a fall! and my foes of either
- kind could both see and scent me in the dark!
- </p>
- <p>
- All at once I missed the howling, and the caterwauling grew wilder. Then
- came the soft padding, and I knew it meant flight: the cats had defeated
- the wolves! In a moment the sharpest of sharp teeth were in my legs; a
- moment more and the cats were all over me in a live cataract, biting
- wherever they could bite, furiously scratching me anywhere and everywhere.
- A multitude clung to my body; I could not flee. Madly I fell on the
- hateful swarm, every finger instinct with destruction. I tore them off me,
- I throttled at them in vain: when I would have flung them from me, they
- clung to my hands like limpets. I trampled them under my feet, thrust my
- fingers in their eyes, caught them in jaws stronger than theirs, but could
- not rid myself of one. Without cease they kept discovering upon me space
- for fresh mouthfuls; they hauled at my skin with the widespread, horribly
- curved pincers of clutching claws; they hissed and spat in my face&mdash;but
- never touched it until, in my despair, I threw myself on the ground, when
- they forsook my body, and darted at my face. I rose, and immediately they
- left it, the more to occupy themselves with my legs. In an agony I broke
- from them and ran, careless whither, cleaving the solid dark. They
- accompanied me in a surrounding torrent, now rubbing, now leaping up
- against me, but tormenting me no more. When I fell, which was often, they
- gave me time to rise; when from fear of falling I slackened my pace, they
- flew afresh at my legs. All that miserable night they kept me running&mdash;but
- they drove me by a comparatively smooth path, for I tumbled into no gully,
- and passing the Evil Wood without seeing it, left it behind in the dark.
- When at length the morning appeared, I was beyond the channels, and on the
- verge of the orchard valley. In my joy I would have made friends with my
- persecutors, but not a cat was to be seen. I threw myself on the moss, and
- fell fast asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- I was waked by a kick, to find myself bound hand and foot, once more the
- thrall of the giants!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What fitter?&rdquo; I said to myself; &ldquo;to whom else should I belong?&rdquo; and I
- laughed in the triumph of self-disgust. A second kick stopped my false
- merriment; and thus recurrently assisted by my captors, I succeeded at
- length in rising to my feet.
- </p>
- <p>
- Six of them were about me. They undid the rope that tied my legs together,
- attached a rope to each of them, and dragged me away. I walked as well as
- I could, but, as they frequently pulled both ropes at once, I fell
- repeatedly, whereupon they always kicked me up again. Straight to my old
- labour they took me, tied my leg-ropes to a tree, undid my arms, and put
- the hateful flint in my left hand. Then they lay down and pelted me with
- fallen fruit and stones, but seldom hit me. If I could have freed my legs,
- and got hold of a stick I spied a couple of yards from me, I would have
- fallen upon all six of them! &ldquo;But the Little Ones will come at night!&rdquo; I
- said to myself, and was comforted.
- </p>
- <p>
- All day I worked hard. When the darkness came, they tied my hands, and
- left me fast to the tree. I slept a good deal, but woke often, and every
- time from a dream of lying in the heart of a heap of children. With the
- morning my enemies reappeared, bringing their kicks and their bestial
- company.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was about noon, and I was nearly failing from fatigue and hunger, when
- I heard a sudden commotion in the brushwood, followed by a burst of the
- bell-like laughter so dear to my heart. I gave a loud cry of delight and
- welcome. Immediately rose a trumpeting as of baby-elephants, a neighing as
- of foals, and a bellowing as of calves, and through the bushes came a
- crowd of Little Ones, on diminutive horses, on small elephants, on little
- bears; but the noises came from the riders, not the animals. Mingled with
- the mounted ones walked the bigger of the boys and girls, among the latter
- a woman with a baby crowing in her arms. The giants sprang to their
- lumbering feet, but were instantly saluted with a storm of sharp stones;
- the horses charged their legs; the bears rose and hugged them at the
- waist; the elephants threw their trunks round their necks, pulled them
- down, and gave them such a trampling as they had sometimes given, but
- never received before. In a moment my ropes were undone, and I was in the
- arms, seemingly innumerable, of the Little Ones. For some time I saw no
- more of the giants.
- </p>
- <p>
- They made me sit down, and my Lona came, and without a word began to feed
- me with the loveliest red and yellow fruits. I sat and ate, the whole
- colony mounting guard until I had done. Then they brought up two of the
- largest of their elephants, and having placed them side by side, hooked
- their trunks and tied their tails together. The docile creatures could
- have untied their tails with a single shake, and unhooked their trunks by
- forgetting them; but tails and trunks remained as their little masters had
- arranged them, and it was clear the elephants understood that they must
- keep their bodies parallel. I got up, and laid myself in the hollow
- between their two backs; when the wise animals, counteracting the weight
- that pushed them apart, leaned against each other, and made for me a most
- comfortable litter. My feet, it is true, projected beyond their tails, but
- my head lay pillowed on an ear of each. Then some of the smaller children,
- mounting for a bodyguard, ranged themselves in a row along the back of
- each of my bearers; the whole assembly formed itself in train; and the
- procession began to move.
- </p>
- <p>
- Whither they were carrying me, I did not try to conjecture; I yielded
- myself to their pleasure, almost as happy as they. Chattering and laughing
- and playing glad tricks innumerable at first, the moment they saw I was
- going to sleep, they became still as judges.
- </p>
- <p>
- I woke: a sudden musical uproar greeted the opening of my eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- We were travelling through the forest in which they found the babies, and
- which, as I had suspected, stretched all the way from the valley to the
- hot stream.
- </p>
- <p>
- A tiny girl sat with her little feet close to my face, and looked down at
- me coaxingly for a while, then spoke, the rest seeming to hang on her
- words.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We make a petisson to king,&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is it, my darling?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Shut eyes one minute,&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Certainly I will! Here goes!&rdquo; I replied, and shut my eyes close.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, no! not fore I tell oo!&rdquo; she cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- I opened them again, and we talked and laughed together for quite another
- hour.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Close eyes!&rdquo; she said suddenly.
- </p>
- <p>
- I closed my eyes, and kept them close. The elephants stood still. I heard
- a soft scurry, a little rustle, and then a silence&mdash;for in that world
- SOME silences ARE heard.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Open eyes!&rdquo; twenty voices a little way off shouted at once; but when I
- obeyed, not a creature was visible except the elephants that bore me. I
- knew the children marvellously quick in getting out of the way&mdash;the
- giants had taught them that; but when I raised myself, and looking about
- in the open shrubless forest, could descry neither hand nor heel, I stared
- in &ldquo;blank astonishment.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The sun was set, and it was fast getting dark, yet presently a multitude
- of birds began to sing. I lay down to listen, pretty sure that, if I left
- them alone, the hiders would soon come out again.
- </p>
- <p>
- The singing grew to a little storm of bird-voices. &ldquo;Surely the children
- must have something to do with it!&mdash;And yet how could they set the
- birds singing?&rdquo; I said to myself as I lay and listened. Soon, however,
- happening to look up into the tree under which my elephants stood, I
- thought I spied a little motion among the leaves, and looked more keenly.
- Sudden white spots appeared in the dark foliage, the music died down, a
- gale of childish laughter rippled the air, and white spots came out in
- every direction: the trees were full of children! In the wildest merriment
- they began to descend, some dropping from bough to bough so rapidly that I
- could scarce believe they had not fallen. I left my litter, and was
- instantly surrounded&mdash;a mark for all the artillery of their jubilant
- fun. With stately composure the elephants walked away to bed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But,&rdquo; said I, when their uproarious gladness had had scope for a while,
- &ldquo;how is it that I never before heard you sing like the birds? Even when I
- thought it must be you, I could hardly believe it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; said one of the wildest, &ldquo;but we were not birds then! We were
- run-creatures, not fly-creatures! We had our hide-places in the bushes
- then; but when we came to no-bushes, only trees, we had to build nests!
- When we built nests, we grew birds, and when we were birds, we had to do
- birds! We asked them to teach us their noises, and they taught us, and now
- we are real birds!&mdash;Come and see my nest. It&rsquo;s not big enough for
- king, but it&rsquo;s big enough for king to see me in it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I told him I could not get up a tree without the sun to show me the way;
- when he came, I would try.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Kings seldom have wings!&rdquo; I added.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;King! king!&rdquo; cried one, &ldquo;oo knows none of us hasn&rsquo;t no wings&mdash;foolis
- feddery tings! Arms and legs is better.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is true. I can get up without wings&mdash;and carry straws in my
- mouth too, to build my nest with!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oo knows!&rdquo; he answered, and went away sucking his thumb.
- </p>
- <p>
- A moment after, I heard him calling out of his nest, a great way up a
- walnut tree of enormous size,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Up adain, king! Dood night! I seepy!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- And I heard no more of him till he woke me in the morning.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0033" id="link2HCH0033">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXXIII. LONA&rsquo;S NARRATIVE
- </h2>
- <p>
- I lay down by a tree, and one and one or in little groups, the children
- left me and climbed to their nests. They were always so tired at night and
- so rested in the morning, that they were equally glad to go to sleep and
- to get up again. I, although tired also, lay awake: Lona had not bid me
- good night, and I was sure she would come.
- </p>
- <p>
- I had been struck, the moment I saw her again, with her resemblance to the
- princess, and could not doubt her the daughter of whom Adam had told me;
- but in Lona the dazzling beauty of Lilith was softened by childlikeness,
- and deepened by the sense of motherhood. &ldquo;She is occupied probably,&rdquo; I
- said to myself, &ldquo;with the child of the woman I met fleeing!&rdquo; who, she had
- already told me, was not half mother enough.
- </p>
- <p>
- She came at length, sat down beside me, and after a few moments of silent
- delight, expressed mainly by stroking my face and hands, began to tell me
- everything that had befallen since I went. The moon appeared as we talked,
- and now and then, through the leaves, lighted for a quivering moment her
- beautiful face&mdash;full of thought, and a care whose love redeemed and
- glorified it. How such a child should have been born of such a mother&mdash;such
- a woman of such a princess, was hard to understand; but then, happily, she
- had two parents&mdash;say rather, three! She drew my heart by what in me
- was likest herself, and I loved her as one who, grow to what perfection
- she might, could only become the more a child. I knew now that I loved her
- when I left her, and that the hope of seeing her again had been my main
- comfort. Every word she spoke seemed to go straight to my heart, and, like
- the truth itself, make it purer.
- </p>
- <p>
- She told me that after I left the orchard valley, the giants began to
- believe a little more in the actual existence of their neighbours, and
- became in consequence more hostile to them. Sometimes the Little Ones
- would see them trampling furiously, perceiving or imagining some
- indication of their presence, while they indeed stood beside, and laughed
- at their foolish rage. By and by, however, their animosity assumed a more
- practical shape: they began to destroy the trees on whose fruit the Little
- Ones lived. This drove the mother of them all to meditate counteraction.
- Setting the sharpest of them to listen at night, she learned that the
- giants thought I was hidden somewhere near, intending, as soon as I
- recovered my strength, to come in the dark and kill them sleeping.
- Thereupon she concluded that the only way to stop the destruction was to
- give them ground for believing that they had abandoned the place. The
- Little Ones must remove into the forest&mdash;beyond the range of the
- giants, but within reach of their own trees, which they must visit by
- night! The main objection to the plan was, that the forest had little or
- no undergrowth to shelter&mdash;or conceal them if necessary.
- </p>
- <p>
- But she reflected that where birds, there the Little Ones could find
- habitation. They had eager sympathies with all modes of life, and could
- learn of the wildest creatures: why should they not take refuge from the
- cold and their enemies in the tree-tops? why not, having lain in the low
- brushwood, seek now the lofty foliage? why not build nests where it would
- not serve to scoop hollows? All that the birds could do, the Little Ones
- could learn&mdash;except, indeed, to fly!
- </p>
- <p>
- She spoke to them on the subject, and they heard with approval. They could
- already climb the trees, and they had often watched the birds building
- their nests! The trees of the forest, although large, did not look bad!
- They went up much nearer the sky than those of the giants, and spread out
- their arms&mdash;some even stretched them down&mdash;as if inviting them
- to come and live with them! Perhaps, in the top of the tallest, they might
- find that bird that laid the baby-eggs, and sat upon them till they were
- ripe, then tumbled them down to let the little ones out! Yes; they would
- build sleep-houses in the trees, where no giant would see them, for never
- by any chance did one throw back his dull head to look up! Then the bad
- giants would be sure they had left the country, and the Little Ones would
- gather their own apples and pears and figs and mesples and peaches when
- they were asleep!
- </p>
- <p>
- Thus reasoned the Lovers, and eagerly adopted Lona&rsquo;s suggestion&mdash;with
- the result that they were soon as much at home in the tree-tops as the
- birds themselves, and that the giants came ere long to the conclusion that
- they had frightened them out of the country&mdash;whereupon they forgot
- their trees, and again almost ceased to believe in the existence of their
- small neighbours.
- </p>
- <p>
- Lona asked me whether I had not observed that many of the children were
- grown. I answered I had not, but could readily believe it. She assured me
- it was so, but said the certain evidence that their minds too had grown
- since their migration upward, had gone far in mitigation of the alarm the
- discovery had occasioned her.
- </p>
- <p>
- In the last of the short twilight, and later when the moon was shining,
- they went down to the valley, and gathered fruit enough to serve them the
- next day; for the giants never went out in the twilight: that to them was
- darkness; and they hated the moon: had they been able, they would have
- extinguished her. But soon the Little Ones found that fruit gathered in
- the night was not altogether good the next day; so the question arose
- whether it would not be better, instead of pretending to have left the
- country, to make the bad giants themselves leave it.
- </p>
- <p>
- They had already, she said, in exploring the forest, made acquaintance
- with the animals in it, and with most of them personally. Knowing
- therefore how strong as well as wise and docile some of them were, and how
- swift as well as manageable many others, they now set themselves to secure
- their aid against the giants, and with loving, playful approaches, had
- soon made more than friends of most of them, from the first addressing
- horse or elephant as Brother or Sister Elephant, Brother or Sister Horse,
- until before long they had an individual name for each. It was some little
- time longer before they said Brother or Sister Bear, but that came next,
- and the other day she had heard one little fellow cry, &ldquo;Ah, Sister
- Serpent!&rdquo; to a snake that bit him as he played with it too roughly. Most
- of them would have nothing to do with a caterpillar, except watch it
- through its changes; but when at length it came from its retirement with
- wings, all would immediately address it as Sister Butterfly,
- congratulating it on its metamorphosis&mdash;for which they used a word
- that meant something like REPENTANCE&mdash;and evidently regarding it as
- something sacred.
- </p>
- <p>
- One moonlit evening, as they were going to gather their fruit, they came
- upon a woman seated on the ground with a baby in her lap&mdash;the woman I
- had met on my way to Bulika. They took her for a giantess that had stolen
- one of their babies, for they regarded all babies as their property.
- Filled with anger they fell upon her multitudinously, beating her after a
- childish, yet sufficiently bewildering fashion. She would have fled, but a
- boy threw himself down and held her by the feet. Recovering her wits, she
- recognised in her assailants the children whose hospitality she sought,
- and at once yielded the baby. Lona appeared, and carried it away in her
- bosom.
- </p>
- <p>
- But while the woman noted that in striking her they were careful not to
- hurt the child, the Little Ones noted that, as she surrendered her, she
- hugged and kissed her just as they wanted to do, and came to the
- conclusion that she must be a giantess of the same kind as the good giant.
- The moment Lona had the baby, therefore, they brought the mother fruit,
- and began to show her every sort of childish attention.
- </p>
- <p>
- Now the woman had been in perplexity whither to betake herself, not daring
- to go back to the city, because the princess was certain to find out who
- had lamed her leopardess: delighted with the friendliness of the little
- people, she resolved to remain with them for the present: she would have
- no trouble with her infant, and might find some way of returning to her
- husband, who was rich in money and gems, and very seldom unkind to her.
- </p>
- <p>
- Here I must supplement, partly from conjecture, what Lona told me about
- the woman. With the rest of the inhabitants of Bulika, she was aware of
- the tradition that the princess lived in terror of the birth of an infant
- destined to her destruction. They were all unacquainted, however, with the
- frightful means by which she preserved her youth and beauty; and her
- deteriorating physical condition requiring a larger use of those means,
- they took the apparent increase of her hostility to children for a sign
- that she saw her doom approaching. This, although no one dreamed of any
- attempt against her, nourished in them hopes of change.
- </p>
- <p>
- Now arose in the mind of the woman the idea of furthering the fulfilment
- of the shadowy prediction, or of using the myth at least for her own
- restoration to her husband. For what seemed more probable than that the
- fate foretold lay with these very children? They were marvellously brave,
- and the Bulikans cowards, in abject terror of animals! If she could rouse
- in the Little Ones the ambition of taking the city, then in the confusion
- of the attack, she would escape from the little army, reach her house
- unrecognised, and there lying hidden, await the result!
- </p>
- <p>
- Should the children now succeed in expelling the giants, she would begin
- at once, while they were yet flushed with victory, to suggest the loftier
- aim! By disposition, indeed, they were unfit for warfare; they hardly ever
- quarrelled, and never fought; loved every live thing, and hated either to
- hurt or to suffer. Still, they were easily influenced, and could certainly
- be taught any exercise within their strength!&mdash;At once she set some
- of the smaller ones throwing stones at a mark; and soon they were all
- engrossed with the new game, and growing skilful in it.
- </p>
- <p>
- The first practical result was their use of stones in my rescue. While
- gathering fruit, they found me asleep, went home, held a council, came the
- next day with their elephants and horses, overwhelmed the few giants
- watching me, and carried me off. Jubilant over their victory, the smaller
- boys were childishly boastful, the bigger boys less ostentatious, while
- the girls, although their eyes flashed more, were not so talkative as
- usual. The woman of Bulika no doubt felt encouraged.
- </p>
- <p>
- We talked the greater part of the night, chiefly about the growth of the
- children, and what it might indicate. With Lona&rsquo;s power of recognising
- truth I had long been familiar; now I began to be astonished at her
- practical wisdom. Probably, had I been more of a child myself, I should
- have wondered less.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was yet far from morning when I became aware of a slight fluttering and
- scrambling. I rose on my elbow, and looking about me, saw many Little Ones
- descend from their nests. They disappeared, and in a few moments all was
- again still.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are they doing?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They think,&rdquo; answered Lona, &ldquo;that, stupid as they are, the giants will
- search the wood, and they are gone to gather stones with which to receive
- them. Stones are not plentiful in the forest, and they have to scatter far
- to find enow. They will carry them to their nests, and from the trees
- attack the giants as they come within reach. Knowing their habits, they do
- not expect them before the morning. If they do come, it will be the
- opening of a war of expulsion: one or the other people must go. The
- result, however, is hardly doubtful. We do not mean to kill them; indeed,
- their skulls are so thick that I do not think we could!&mdash;not that
- killing would do them much harm; they are so little alive! If one were
- killed, his giantess would not remember him beyond three days!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do the children then throw so well that the thing MIGHT happen?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wait till you see them!&rdquo; she answered, with a touch of pride. &ldquo;&mdash;But
- I have not yet told you,&rdquo; she went on, &ldquo;of a strange thing that happened
- the night before last!&mdash;We had come home from gathering our fruit,
- and were asleep in our nests, when we were roused by the horrid noises of
- beasts fighting. The moon was bright, and in a moment our trees glittered
- with staring little eyes, watching two huge leopardesses, one perfectly
- white, the other covered with black spots, which worried and tore each
- other with I do not know how many teeth and claws. To judge by her back,
- the spotted creature must have been climbing a tree when the other sprang
- upon her. When first I saw them, they were just under my own tree, rolling
- over and over each other. I got down on the lowest branch, and saw them
- perfectly. The children enjoyed the spectacle, siding some with this one,
- some with that, for we had never seen such beasts before, and thought they
- were only at play. But by degrees their roaring and growling almost
- ceased, and I saw that they were in deadly earnest, and heartily wished
- neither might be left able to climb a tree. But when the children saw the
- blood pouring from their flanks and throats, what do you think they did?
- They scurried down to comfort them, and gathering in a great crowd about
- the terrible creatures, began to pat and stroke them. Then I got down as
- well, for they were much too absorbed to heed my calling to them; but
- before I could reach them, the white one stopped fighting, and sprang
- among them with such a hideous yell that they flew up into the trees like
- birds. Before I got back into mine, the wicked beasts were at it again
- tooth and claw. Then Whitey had the best of it; Spotty ran away as fast as
- she could run, and Whitey came and lay down at the foot of my tree. But in
- a minute or two she was up again, and walking about as if she thought
- Spotty might be lurking somewhere. I waked often, and every time I looked
- out, I saw her. In the morning she went away.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know both the beasts,&rdquo; I said. &ldquo;Spotty is a bad beast. She hates the
- children, and would kill every one of them. But Whitey loves them. She ran
- at them only to frighten them away, lest Spotty should get hold of any of
- them. No one needs be afraid of Whitey!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- By this time the Little Ones were coming back, and with much noise, for
- they had no care to keep quiet now that they were at open war with the
- giants, and laden with good stones. They mounted to their nests again,
- though with difficulty because of their burdens, and in a minute were fast
- asleep. Lona retired to her tree. I lay where I was, and slept the better
- that I thought most likely the white leopardess was still somewhere in the
- wood.
- </p>
- <p>
- I woke soon after the sun, and lay pondering. Two hours passed, and then
- in truth the giants began to appear, in straggling companies of three and
- four, until I counted over a hundred of them. The children were still
- asleep, and to call them would draw the attention of the giants: I would
- keep quiet so long as they did not discover me. But by and by one came
- blundering upon me, stumbled, fell, and rose again. I thought he would
- pass heedless, but he began to search about. I sprang to my feet, and
- struck him in the middle of his huge body. The roar he gave roused the
- children, and a storm as of hail instantly came on, of which not a stone
- struck me, and not one missed the giant. He fell and lay. Others drew
- near, and the storm extended, each purblind creature becoming, as he
- entered the range of a garrisoned tree, a target for converging stones. In
- a short time almost every giant was prostrate, and a jubilant pæan of
- bird-song rose from the tops of fifty trees.
- </p>
- <p>
- Many elephants came hurrying up, and the children descending the trees
- like monkeys, in a moment every elephant had three or four of them on his
- back, and thus loaded, began to walk over the giants, who lay and roared.
- Losing patience at length with their noise, the elephants gave them a few
- blows of their trunks, and left them.
- </p>
- <p>
- Until night the bad giants remained where they had fallen, silent and
- motionless. The next morning they had disappeared every one, and the
- children saw no more of them. They removed to the other end of the orchard
- valley, and never after ventured into the forest.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0034" id="link2HCH0034">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXXIV. PREPARATION
- </h2>
- <p>
- Victory thus gained, the woman of Bulika began to speak about the city,
- and talked much of its defenceless condition, of the wickedness of its
- princess, of the cowardice of its inhabitants. In a few days the children
- chattered of nothing but Bulika, although indeed they had not the least
- notion of what a city was. Then first I became aware of the design of the
- woman, although not yet of its motive.
- </p>
- <p>
- The idea of taking possession of the place, recommended itself greatly to
- Lona&mdash;and to me also. The children were now so rapidly developing
- faculty, that I could see no serious obstacle to the success of the
- enterprise. For the terrible Lilith&mdash;woman or leopardess, I knew her
- one vulnerable point, her doom through her daughter, and the influence the
- ancient prophecy had upon the citizens: surely whatever in the enterprise
- could be called risk, was worth taking! Successful,&mdash;and who could
- doubt their success?&mdash;must not the Little Ones, from a crowd of
- children, speedily become a youthful people, whose government and
- influence would be all for righteousness? Ruling the wicked with a rod of
- iron, would they not be the redemption of the nation?
- </p>
- <p>
- At the same time, I have to confess that I was not without views of
- personal advantage, not without ambition in the undertaking. It was just,
- it seemed to me, that Lona should take her seat on the throne that had
- been her mother&rsquo;s, and natural that she should make of me her consort and
- minister. For me, I would spend my life in her service; and between us,
- what might we not do, with such a core to it as the Little Ones, for the
- development of a noble state?
- </p>
- <p>
- I confess also to an altogether foolish dream of opening a commerce in
- gems between the two worlds&mdash;happily impossible, for it could have
- done nothing but harm to both.
- </p>
- <p>
- Calling to mind the appeal of Adam, I suggested to Lona that to find them
- water might perhaps expedite the growth of the Little Ones. She judged it
- prudent, however, to leave that alone for the present, as we did not know
- what its first consequences might be; while, in the course of time, it
- would almost certainly subject them to a new necessity.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They are what they are without it!&rdquo; she said: &ldquo;when we have the city, we
- will search for water!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- We began, therefore, and pushed forward our preparations, constantly
- reviewing the merry troops and companies. Lona gave her attention chiefly
- to the commissariat, while I drilled the little soldiers, exercised them
- in stone-throwing, taught them the use of some other weapons, and did all
- I could to make warriors of them. The main difficulty was to get them to
- rally to their flag the instant the call was sounded. Most of them were
- armed with slings, some of the bigger boys with bows and arrows. The
- bigger girls carried aloe-spikes, strong as steel and sharp as needles,
- fitted to longish shafts&mdash;rather formidable weapons. Their sole duty
- was the charge of such as were too small to fight.
- </p>
- <p>
- Lona had herself grown a good deal, but did not seem aware of it: she had
- always been, as she still was, the tallest! Her hair was much longer, and
- she was become almost a woman, but not one beauty of childhood had she
- outgrown. When first we met after our long separation, she laid down her
- infant, put her arms round my neck, and clung to me silent, her face
- glowing with gladness: the child whimpered; she sprang to him, and had him
- in her bosom instantly. To see her with any thoughtless, obstinate, or
- irritable little one, was to think of a tender grandmother. I seemed to
- have known her for ages&mdash;for always&mdash;from before time began! I
- hardly remembered my mother, but in my mind&rsquo;s eye she now looked like
- Lona; and if I imagined sister or child, invariably she had the face of
- Lona! My every imagination flew to her; she was my heart&rsquo;s wife! She
- hardly ever sought me, but was almost always within sound of my voice.
- What I did or thought, I referred constantly to her, and rejoiced to
- believe that, while doing her work in absolute independence, she was most
- at home by my side. Never for me did she neglect the smallest child, and
- my love only quickened my sense of duty. To love her and to do my duty,
- seemed, not indeed one, but inseparable. She might suggest something I
- should do; she might ask me what she ought to do; but she never seemed to
- suppose that I, any more than she, would like to do, or could care about
- anything except what must be done. Her love overflowed upon me&mdash;not
- in caresses, but in a closeness of recognition which I can compare to
- nothing but the devotion of a divine animal.
- </p>
- <p>
- I never told her anything about her mother.
- </p>
- <p>
- The wood was full of birds, the splendour of whose plumage, while it took
- nothing from their song, seemed almost to make up for the lack of flowers&mdash;which,
- apparently, could not grow without water. Their glorious feathers being
- everywhere about in the forest, it came into my heart to make from them a
- garment for Lona. While I gathered, and bound them in overlapping rows,
- she watched me with evident appreciation of my choice and arrangement,
- never asking what I was fashioning, but evidently waiting expectant the
- result of my work. In a week or two it was finished&mdash;a long loose
- mantle, to fasten at the throat and waist, with openings for the arms.
- </p>
- <p>
- I rose and put it on her. She rose, took it off, and laid it at my feet&mdash;I
- imagine from a sense of propriety. I put it again on her shoulders, and
- showed her where to put her arms through. She smiled, looked at the
- feathers a little and stroked them&mdash;again took it off and laid it
- down, this time by her side. When she left me, she carried it with her,
- and I saw no more of it for some days. At length she came to me one
- morning wearing it, and carrying another garment which she had fashioned
- similarly, but of the dried leaves of a tough evergreen. It had the
- strength almost of leather, and the appearance of scale-armour. I put it
- on at once, and we always thereafter wore those garments when on
- horseback.
- </p>
- <p>
- For, on the outskirts of the forest, had appeared one day a troop of
- full-grown horses, with which, as they were nowise alarmed at creatures of
- a shape so different from their own, I had soon made friends, and two of
- the finest I had trained for Lona and myself. Already accustomed to ride a
- small one, her delight was great when first she looked down from the back
- of an animal of the giant kind; and the horse showed himself proud of the
- burden he bore. We exercised them every day until they had such confidence
- in us as to obey instantly and fear nothing; after which we always rode
- them at parade and on the march.
- </p>
- <p>
- The undertaking did indeed at times appear to me a foolhardy one, but the
- confidence of the woman of Bulika, real or simulated, always overcame my
- hesitancy. The princess&rsquo;s magic, she insisted, would prove powerless
- against the children; and as to any force she might muster, our
- animal-allies alone would assure our superiority: she was herself, she
- said, ready, with a good stick, to encounter any two men of Bulika. She
- confessed to not a little fear of the leopardess, but I was myself ready
- for her. I shrank, however, from carrying ALL the children with us.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Would it not be better,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;that you remained in the forest with
- your baby and the smallest of the Little Ones?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She answered that she greatly relied on the impression the sight of them
- would make on the women, especially the mothers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When they see the darlings,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;their hearts will be taken by
- storm; and I must be there encouraging them to make a stand! If there be a
- remnant of hardihood in the place, it will be found among the women!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;YOU must not encumber yourself,&rdquo; I said to Lona, &ldquo;with any of the
- children; you will be wanted everywhere!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- For there were two babies besides the woman&rsquo;s, and even on horseback she
- had almost always one in her arms.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not remember ever being without a child to take care of,&rdquo; she
- answered; &ldquo;but when we reach the city, it shall be as you wish!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Her confidence in one who had failed so unworthily, shamed me. But neither
- had I initiated the movement, nor had I any ground for opposing it; I had
- no choice, but must give it the best help I could! For myself, I was ready
- to live or die with Lona. Her humility as well as her trust humbled me,
- and I gave myself heartily to her purposes.
- </p>
- <p>
- Our way lying across a grassy plain, there was no need to take food for
- the horses, or the two cows which would accompany us for the infants; but
- the elephants had to be provided for. True, the grass was as good for them
- as for those other animals, but it was short, and with their one-fingered
- long noses, they could not pick enough for a single meal. We had,
- therefore, set the whole colony to gather grass and make hay, of which the
- elephants themselves could carry a quantity sufficient to last them
- several days, with the supplement of what we would gather fresh every time
- we halted. For the bears we stored nuts, and for ourselves dried plenty of
- fruits. We had caught and tamed several more of the big horses, and now
- having loaded them and the elephants with these provisions, we were
- prepared to set out.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then Lona and I held a general review, and I made them a little speech. I
- began by telling them that I had learned a good deal about them, and knew
- now where they came from. &ldquo;We did not come from anywhere,&rdquo; they cried,
- interrupting me; &ldquo;we are here!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I told them that every one of them had a mother of his own, like the
- mother of the last baby; that I believed they had all been brought from
- Bulika when they were so small that they could not now remember it; that
- the wicked princess there was so afraid of babies, and so determined to
- destroy them, that their mothers had to carry them away and leave them
- where she could not find them; and that now we were going to Bulika, to
- find their mothers, and deliver them from the bad giantess.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But I must tell you,&rdquo; I continued, &ldquo;that there is danger before us, for,
- as you know, we may have to fight hard to take the city.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We can fight! we are ready!&rdquo; cried the boys.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, you can,&rdquo; I returned, &ldquo;and I know you will: mothers are worth
- fighting for! Only mind, you must all keep together.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, yes; we&rsquo;ll take care of each other,&rdquo; they answered. &ldquo;Nobody shall
- touch one of us but his own mother!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You must mind, every one, to do immediately what your officers tell you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We will, we will!&mdash;Now we&rsquo;re quite ready! Let us go!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Another thing you must not forget,&rdquo; I went on: &ldquo;when you strike, be sure
- you make it a downright swinging blow; when you shoot an arrow, draw it to
- the head; when you sling a stone, sling it strong and straight.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That we will!&rdquo; they cried with jubilant, fearless shout.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Perhaps you will be hurt!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We don&rsquo;t mind that!&mdash;Do we, boys?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not a bit!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Some of you may very possibly be killed!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t mind being killed!&rdquo; cried one of the finest of the smaller boys:
- he rode a beautiful little bull, which galloped and jumped like a horse.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t either! I don&rsquo;t either!&rdquo; came from all sides.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then Lona, queen and mother and sister of them all, spoke from her big
- horse by my side:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I would give my life,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;to have my mother! She might kill me if
- she liked! I should just kiss her and die!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come along, boys!&rdquo; cried a girl. &ldquo;We&rsquo;re going to our mothers!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A pang went through my heart.&mdash;But I could not draw back; it would be
- moral ruin to the Little Ones!
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0035" id="link2HCH0035">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- Chapter XXXV. THE LITTLE ONES IN BULIKA
- </h2>
- <p>
- It was early in the morning when we set out, making, between the blue sky
- and the green grass, a gallant show on the wide plain. We would travel all
- the morning, and rest the afternoon; then go on at night, rest the next
- day, and start again in the short twilight. The latter part of our journey
- we would endeavour so to divide as to arrive at the city with the first of
- the morning, and be already inside the gates when discovered.
- </p>
- <p>
- It seemed as if all the inhabitants of the forest would migrate with us. A
- multitude of birds flew in front, imagining themselves, no doubt, the
- leading division; great companies of butterflies and other insects played
- about our heads; and a crowd of four-footed creatures followed us. These
- last, when night came, left us almost all; but the birds and the
- butterflies, the wasps and the dragon-flies, went with us to the very
- gates of the city.
- </p>
- <p>
- We halted and slept soundly through the afternoon: it was our first real
- march, but none were tired. In the night we went faster, because it was
- cold. Many fell asleep on the backs of their beasts, and woke in the
- morning quite fresh. None tumbled off. Some rode shaggy, shambling bears,
- which yet made speed enough, going as fast as the elephants. Others were
- mounted on different kinds of deer, and would have been racing all the way
- had I not prevented it. Those atop of the hay on the elephants, unable to
- see the animals below them, would keep talking to them as long as they
- were awake. Once, when we had halted to feed, I heard a little fellow, as
- he drew out the hay to give him, commune thus with his &ldquo;darling beast&rdquo;:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nosy dear, I am digging you out of the mountain, and shall soon get down
- to you: be patient; I&rsquo;m a coming! Very soon now you&rsquo;ll send up your nose
- to look for me, and then we&rsquo;ll kiss like good elephants, we will!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The same night there burst out such a tumult of elephant-trumpeting,
- horse-neighing, and child-imitation, ringing far over the silent levels,
- that, uncertain how near the city might not be, I quickly stilled the
- uproar lest it should give warning of our approach.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly, one morning, the sun and the city rose, as it seemed, together.
- To the children the walls appeared only a great mass of rock, but when I
- told them the inside was full of nests of stone, I saw apprehension and
- dislike at once invade their hearts: for the first time in their lives, I
- believe&mdash;many of them long little lives&mdash;they knew fear. The
- place looked to them bad: how were they to find mothers in such a place?
- But they went on bravely, for they had confidence in Lona&mdash;and in me
- too, little as I deserved it.
- </p>
- <p>
- We rode through the sounding archway. Sure never had such a drumming of
- hoofs, such a padding of paws and feet been heard on its old pavement! The
- horses started and looked scared at the echo of their own steps; some
- halted a moment, some plunged wildly and wheeled about; but they were soon
- quieted, and went on. Some of the Little Ones shivered, and all were still
- as death. The three girls held closer the infants they carried. All except
- the bears and butterflies manifested fear.
- </p>
- <p>
- On the countenance of the woman lay a dark anxiety; nor was I myself
- unaffected by the general dread, for the whole army was on my hands and on
- my conscience: I had brought it up to the danger whose shadow was now
- making itself felt! But I was supported by the thought of the coming
- kingdom of the Little Ones, with the bad giants its slaves, and the
- animals its loving, obedient friends! Alas, I who dreamed thus, had not
- myself learned to obey! Untrusting, unfaithful obstinacy had set me at the
- head of that army of innocents! I was myself but a slave, like any king in
- the world I had left who does or would do only what pleases him! But Lona
- rode beside me a child indeed, therefore a free woman&mdash;calm, silent,
- watchful, not a whit afraid!
- </p>
- <p>
- We were nearly in the heart of the city before any of its inhabitants
- became aware of our presence. But now windows began to open, and sleepy
- heads to look out. Every face wore at first a dull stare of wonderless
- astonishment, which, as soon as the starers perceived the animals, changed
- to one of consternation. In spite of their fear, however, when they saw
- that their invaders were almost all children, the women came running into
- the streets, and the men followed. But for a time all of them kept close
- to the houses, leaving open the middle of the way, for they durst not
- approach the animals.
- </p>
- <p>
- At length a boy, who looked about five years old, and was full of the idea
- of his mother, spying in the crowd a woman whose face attracted him, threw
- himself upon her from his antelope, and clung about her neck; nor was she
- slow to return his embrace and kisses. But the hand of a man came over her
- shoulder, and seized him by the neck. Instantly a girl ran her sharp spear
- into the fellow&rsquo;s arm. He sent forth a savage howl, and immediately
- stabbed by two or three more, fled yelling.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They are just bad giants!&rdquo; said Lona, her eyes flashing as she drove her
- horse against one of unusual height who, having stirred up the little
- manhood in him, stood barring her way with a club. He dared not abide the
- shock, but slunk aside, and the next moment went down, struck by several
- stones. Another huge fellow, avoiding my charger, stepped suddenly, with a
- speech whose rudeness alone was intelligible, between me and the boy who
- rode behind me. The boy told him to address the king; the giant struck his
- little horse on the head with a hammer, and he fell. Before the brute
- could strike again, however, one of the elephants behind laid him
- prostrate, and trampled on him so that he did not attempt to get up until
- hundreds of feet had walked over him, and the army was gone by.
- </p>
- <p>
- But at sight of the women what a dismay clouded the face of Lona! Hardly
- one of them was even pleasant to look upon! Were her darlings to find
- mothers among such as these?
- </p>
- <p>
- Hardly had we halted in the central square, when two girls rode up in
- anxious haste, with the tidings that two of the boys had been hurried away
- by some women. We turned at once, and then first discovered that the woman
- we befriended had disappeared with her baby.
- </p>
- <p>
- But at the same moment we descried a white leopardess come bounding toward
- us down a narrow lane that led from the square to the palace. The Little
- Ones had not forgotten the fight of the two leopardesses in the forest:
- some of them looked terrified, and their ranks began to waver; but they
- remembered the order I had just given them, and stood fast.
- </p>
- <p>
- We stopped to see the result; when suddenly a small boy, called Odu,
- remarkable for his speed and courage, who had heard me speak of the
- goodness of the white leopardess, leaped from the back of his bear, which
- went shambling after him, and ran to meet her. The leopardess, to avoid
- knocking him down, pulled herself up so suddenly that she went rolling
- over and over: when she recovered her feet she found the child on her
- back. Who could doubt the subjugation of a people which saw an urchin of
- the enemy bestride an animal of which they lived in daily terror?
- Confident of the effect on the whole army, we rode on.
- </p>
- <p>
- As we stopped at the house to which our guides led us, we heard a scream;
- I sprang down, and thundered at the door. My horse came and pushed me away
- with his nose, turned about, and had begun to batter the door with his
- heels, when up came little Odu on the leopardess, and at sight of her he
- stood still, trembling. But she too had heard the cry, and forgetting the
- child on her back, threw herself at the door; the boy was dashed against
- it, and fell senseless. Before I could reach him, Lona had him in her
- arms, and as soon as he came to himself, set him on the back of his bear,
- which had still followed him.
- </p>
- <p>
- When the leopardess threw herself the third time against the door, it gave
- way, and she darted in. We followed, but she had already vanished. We
- sprang up a stair, and went all over the house, to find no one. Darting
- down again, we spied a door under the stair, and got into a labyrinth of
- excavations. We had not gone far, however, when we met the leopardess with
- the child we sought across her back.
- </p>
- <p>
- He told us that the woman he took for his mother threw him into a hole,
- saying she would give him to the leopardess. But the leopardess was a good
- one, and took him out.
- </p>
- <p>
- Following in search of the other boy, we got into the next house more
- easily, but to find, alas, that we were too late: one of the savages had
- just killed the little captive! It consoled Lona, however, to learn which
- he was, for she had been expecting him to grow a bad giant, from which
- worst of fates death had saved him. The leopardess sprang upon his
- murderer, took him by the throat, dragged him into the street, and
- followed Lona with him, like a cat with a great rat in her jaws.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let us leave the horrible place,&rdquo; said Lona; &ldquo;there are no mothers here!
- This people is not worth delivering.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The leopardess dropped her burden, and charged into the crowd, this way
- and that, wherever it was thickest. The slaves cried out and ran, tumbling
- over each other in heaps.
- </p>
- <p>
- When we got back to the army, we found it as we had left it, standing in
- order and ready.
- </p>
- <p>
- But I was far from easy: the princess gave no sign, and what she might be
- plotting we did not know! Watch and ward must be kept the night through!
- </p>
- <p>
- The Little Ones were such hardy creatures that they could repose anywhere:
- we told them to lie down with their animals where they were, and sleep
- till they were called. In one moment they were down, and in another lapt
- in the music of their sleep, a sound as of water over grass, or a soft
- wind among leaves. Their animals slept more lightly, ever on the edge of
- waking. The bigger boys and girls walked softly hither and thither among
- the dreaming multitude. All was still; the whole wicked place appeared at
- rest.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0036" id="link2HCH0036">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXXVI. MOTHER AND DAUGHTER
- </h2>
- <p>
- Lona was so disgusted with the people, and especially with the women, that
- she wished to abandon the place as soon as possible; I, on the contrary,
- felt very strongly that to do so would be to fail wilfully where success
- was possible; and, far worse, to weaken the hearts of the Little Ones, and
- so bring them into much greater danger. If we retreated, it was certain
- the princess would not leave us unassailed! if we encountered her, the
- hope of the prophecy went with us! Mother and daughter must meet: it might
- be that Lona&rsquo;s loveliness would take Lilith&rsquo;s heart by storm! if she
- threatened violence, I should be there between them! If I found that I had
- no other power over her, I was ready, for the sake of my Lona, to strike
- her pitilessly on the closed hand! I knew she was doomed: most likely it
- was decreed that her doom should now be brought to pass through us!
- </p>
- <p>
- Still without hint of the relation in which she stood to the princess, I
- stated the case to Lona as it appeared to me. At once she agreed to
- accompany me to the palace.
- </p>
- <p>
- From the top of one of its great towers, the princess had, in the early
- morning, while the city yet slept, descried the approach of the army of
- the Little Ones. The sight awoke in her an over-mastering terror: she had
- failed in her endeavour to destroy them, and they were upon her! The
- prophecy was about to be fulfilled!
- </p>
- <p>
- When she came to herself, she descended to the black hall, and seated
- herself in the north focus of the ellipse, under the opening in the roof.
- </p>
- <p>
- For she must think! Now what she called THINKING required a clear
- consciousness of herself, not as she was, but as she chose to believe
- herself; and to aid her in the realisation of this consciousness, she had
- suspended, a little way from and above her, itself invisible in the
- darkness of the hall, a mirror to receive the full sunlight reflected from
- her person. For the resulting vision of herself in the splendour of her
- beauty, she sat waiting the meridional sun.
- </p>
- <p>
- Many a shadow moved about her in the darkness, but as often as, with a
- certain inner eye which she had, she caught sight of one, she refused to
- regard it. Close under the mirror stood the Shadow which attended her
- walks, but, self-occupied, him she did not see.
- </p>
- <p>
- The city was taken; the inhabitants were cowering in terror; the Little
- Ones and their strange cavalry were encamped in the square; the sun shone
- upon the princess, and for a few minutes she saw herself glorious. The
- vision passed, but she sat on. The night was now come, and darkness
- clothed and filled the glass, yet she did not move. A gloom that swarmed
- with shadows, wallowed in the palace; the servants shivered and shook, but
- dared not leave it because of the beasts of the Little Ones; all night
- long the princess sat motionless: she must see her beauty again! she must
- try again to think! But courage and will had grown weary of her, and would
- dwell with her no more!
- </p>
- <p>
- In the morning we chose twelve of the tallest and bravest of the boys to
- go with us to the palace. We rode our great horses, and they small horses
- and elephants.
- </p>
- <p>
- The princess sat waiting the sun to give her the joy of her own presence.
- The tide of the light was creeping up the shore of the sky, but until the
- sun stood overhead, not a ray could enter the black hall.
- </p>
- <p>
- He rose to our eyes, and swiftly ascended. As we climbed the steep way to
- the palace, he climbed the dome of its great hall. He looked in at the eye
- of it&mdash;and with sudden radiance the princess flashed upon her own
- sight. But she sprang to her feet with a cry of despair: alas her
- whiteness! the spot covered half her side, and was black as the marble
- around her! She clutched her robe, and fell back in her chair. The Shadow
- glided out, and she saw him go.
- </p>
- <p>
- We found the gate open as usual, passed through the paved grove up to the
- palace door, and entered the vestibule. There in her cage lay the spotted
- leopardess, apparently asleep or lifeless. The Little Ones paused a moment
- to look at her. She leaped up rampant against the cage. The horses reared
- and plunged; the elephants retreated a step. The next instant she fell
- supine, writhed in quivering spasms, and lay motionless. We rode into the
- great hall.
- </p>
- <p>
- The princess yet leaned back in her chair in the shaft of sunlight, when
- from the stones of the court came to her ears the noise of the horses&rsquo;
- hoofs. She started, listened, and shook: never had such sound been heard
- in her palace! She pressed her hand to her side, and gasped. The trampling
- came nearer and nearer; it entered the hall itself; moving figures that
- were not shadows approached her through the darkness!
- </p>
- <p>
- For us, we saw a splendour, a glorious woman centring the dark. Lona
- sprang from her horse, and bounded to her. I sprang from mine, and
- followed Lona.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother! mother!&rdquo; she cried, and her clear, lovely voice echoed in the
- dome.
- </p>
- <p>
- The princess shivered; her face grew almost black with hate, her eyebrows
- met on her forehead. She rose to her feet, and stood.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother! mother!&rdquo; cried Lona again, as she leaped on the daïs, and flung
- her arms around the princess.
- </p>
- <p>
- An instant more and I should have reached them!&mdash;in that instant I
- saw Lona lifted high, and dashed on the marble floor. Oh, the horrible
- sound of her fall! At my feet she fell, and lay still. The princess sat
- down with the smile of a demoness.
- </p>
- <p>
- I dropped on my knees beside Lona, raised her from the stones, and pressed
- her to my bosom. With indignant hate I glanced at the princess; she
- answered me with her sweetest smile. I would have sprung upon her, taken
- her by the throat, and strangled her, but love of the child was stronger
- than hate of the mother, and I clasped closer my precious burden. Her arms
- hung helpless; her blood trickled over my hands, and fell on the floor
- with soft, slow little plashes.
- </p>
- <p>
- The horses scented it&mdash;mine first, then the small ones. Mine reared,
- shivering and wild-eyed, went about, and thundered blindly down the dark
- hall, with the little horses after him. Lona&rsquo;s stood gazing down at his
- mistress, and trembling all over. The boys flung themselves from their
- horses&rsquo; backs, and they, not seeing the black wall before them, dashed
- themselves, with mine, to pieces against it. The elephants came on to the
- foot of the daïs, and stopped, wildly trumpeting; the Little Ones sprang
- upon it, and stood horrified; the princess lay back in her seat, her face
- that of a corpse, her eyes alone alive, wickedly flaming. She was again
- withered and wasted to what I found in the wood, and her side was as if a
- great branding hand had been laid upon it. But Lona saw nothing, and I saw
- but Lona.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother! mother!&rdquo; she sighed, and her breathing ceased.
- </p>
- <p>
- I carried her into the court: the sun shone upon a white face, and the
- pitiful shadow of a ghostly smile. Her head hung back. She was &ldquo;dead as
- earth.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I forgot the Little Ones, forgot the murdering princess, forgot the body
- in my arms, and wandered away, looking for my Lona. The doors and windows
- were crowded with brute-faces jeering at me, but not daring to speak, for
- they saw the white leopardess behind me, hanging her head close at my
- heel. I spurned her with my foot. She held back a moment, and followed me
- again.
- </p>
- <p>
- I reached the square: the little army was gone! Its emptiness roused me.
- Where were the Little Ones, HER Little Ones? I had lost her children! I
- stared helpless about me, staggered to the pillar, and sank upon its base.
- </p>
- <p>
- But as I sat gazing on the still countenance, it seemed to smile a live
- momentary smile. I never doubted it an illusion, yet believed what it
- said: I should yet see her alive! It was not she, it was I who was lost,
- and she would find me!
- </p>
- <p>
- I rose to go after the Little Ones, and instinctively sought the gate by
- which we had entered. I looked around me, but saw nothing of the
- leopardess.
- </p>
- <p>
- The street was rapidly filling with a fierce crowd. They saw me encumbered
- with my dead, but for a time dared not assail me. Ere I reached the gate,
- however, they had gathered courage. The women began to hustle me; I held
- on heedless. A man pushed against my sacred burden: with a kick I sent him
- away howling. But the crowd pressed upon me, and fearing for the dead that
- was beyond hurt, I clasped my treasure closer, and freed my right arm.
- That instant, however, a commotion arose in the street behind me; the
- crowd broke; and through it came the Little Ones I had left in the palace.
- Ten of them were upon four of the elephants; on the two other elephants
- lay the princess, bound hand and foot, and quite still, save that her eyes
- rolled in their ghastly sockets. The two other Little Ones rode behind her
- on Lona&rsquo;s horse. Every now and then the wise creatures that bore her threw
- their trunks behind and felt her cords.
- </p>
- <p>
- I walked on in front, and out of the city. What an end to the hopes with
- which I entered the evil place! We had captured the bad princess, and lost
- our all-beloved queen! My life was bare! my heart was empty!
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0037" id="link2HCH0037">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXXVII. THE SHADOW
- </h2>
- <p>
- A murmur of pleasure from my companions roused me: they had caught sight
- of their fellows in the distance! The two on Lona&rsquo;s horse rode on to join
- them. They were greeted with a wavering shout&mdash;which immediately died
- away. As we drew near, the sound of their sobs reached us like the
- breaking of tiny billows.
- </p>
- <p>
- When I came among them, I saw that something dire had befallen them: on
- their childish faces was the haggard look left by some strange terror. No
- possible grief could have wrought the change. A few of them came slowly
- round me, and held out their arms to take my burden. I yielded it; the
- tender hopelessness of the smile with which they received it, made my
- heart swell with pity in the midst of its own desolation. In vain were
- their sobs over their mother-queen; in vain they sought to entice from her
- some recognition of their love; in vain they kissed and fondled her as
- they bore her away: she would not wake! On each side one carried an arm,
- gently stroking it; as many as could get near, put their arms under her
- body; those who could not, crowded around the bearers. On a spot where the
- grass grew thicker and softer they laid her down, and there all the Little
- Ones gathered sobbing.
- </p>
- <p>
- Outside the crowd stood the elephants, and I near them, gazing at my Lona
- over the many little heads between. Those next me caught sight of the
- princess, and stared trembling. Odu was the first to speak.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have seen that woman before!&rdquo; he whispered to his next neighbour. &ldquo;It
- was she who fought the white leopardess, the night they woke us with their
- yelling!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Silly!&rdquo; returned his companion. &ldquo;That was a wild beast, with spots!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look at her eyes!&rdquo; insisted Odu. &ldquo;I know she is a bad giantess, but she
- is a wild beast all the same. I know she is the spotted one!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The other took a step nearer; Odu drew him back with a sharp pull.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Don&rsquo;t look at her!&rdquo; he cried, shrinking away, yet fascinated by the
- hate-filled longing in her eyes. &ldquo;She would eat you up in a moment! It was
- HER shadow! She is the wicked princess!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That cannot be! they said she was beautiful!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed it is the princess!&rdquo; I interposed. &ldquo;Wickedness has made her ugly!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She heard, and what a look was hers!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was very wrong of me to run away!&rdquo; said Odu thoughtfully.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What made you run away?&rdquo; I asked. &ldquo;I expected to find you where I left
- you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He did not reply at once.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know what made me run,&rdquo; answered another. &ldquo;I was frightened!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It was a man that came down the hill from the palace,&rdquo; said a third.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How did he frighten you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t know.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He wasn&rsquo;t a man,&rdquo; said Odu; &ldquo;he was a shadow; he had no thick to him!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me more about him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He came down the hill very black, walking like a bad giant, but spread
- flat. He was nothing but blackness. We were frightened the moment we saw
- him, but we did not run away; we stood and watched him. He came on as if
- he would walk over us. But before he reached us, he began to spread and
- spread, and grew bigger end bigger, till at last he was so big that he
- went out of our sight, and we saw him no more, and then he was upon us!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What do you mean by that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He was all black through between us, and we could not see one another;
- and then he was inside us.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How did you know he was inside you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He did me quite different. I felt like bad. I was not Odu any more&mdash;not
- the Odu I knew. I wanted to tear Sozo to pieces&mdash;not really, but
- like!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He turned and hugged Sozo.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It wasn&rsquo;t me, Sozo,&rdquo; he sobbed. &ldquo;Really, deep down, it was Odu, loving
- you always! And Odu came up, and knocked Naughty away. I grew sick, and
- thought I must kill myself to get out of the black. Then came a horrible
- laugh that had heard my think, and it set the air trembling about me. And
- then I suppose I ran away, but I did not know I had run away until I found
- myself running, fast as could, and all the rest running too. I would have
- stopped, but I never thought of it until I was out of the gate among the
- grass. Then I knew that I had run away from a shadow that wanted to be me
- and wasn&rsquo;t, and that I was the Odu that loved Sozo. It was the shadow that
- got into me, and hated him from inside me; it was not my own self me! And
- now I know that I ought not to have run away! But indeed I did not quite
- know what I was doing until it was done! My legs did it, I think: they
- grew frightened, and forgot me, and ran away! Naughty legs! There! and
- there!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Thus ended Odu, with a kick to each of his naughty legs.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What became of the shadow?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not know,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;I suppose he went home into the night where
- there is no moon.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I fell a wondering where Lona was gone, and dropping on the grass, took
- the dead thing in my lap, and whispered in its ear, &ldquo;Where are you, Lona?
- I love you!&rdquo; But its lips gave no answer. I kissed them, not quite cold,
- laid the body down again, and appointing a guard over it, rose to provide
- for the safety of Lona&rsquo;s people during the night.
- </p>
- <p>
- Before the sun went down, I had set a watch over the princess outside the
- camp, and sentinels round it: intending to walk about it myself all night
- long, I told the rest of the army to go to sleep. They threw themselves on
- the grass and were asleep in a moment.
- </p>
- <p>
- When the moon rose I caught a glimpse of something white; it was the
- leopardess. She swept silently round the sleeping camp, and I saw her pass
- three times between the princess and the Little Ones. Thereupon I made the
- watch lie down with the others, and stretched myself beside the body of
- Lona.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0038" id="link2HCH0038">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXXVIII. TO THE HOUSE OF BITTERNESS
- </h2>
- <p>
- In the morning we set out, and made for the forest as fast as we could. I
- rode Lona&rsquo;s horse, and carried her body. I would take it to her father: he
- would give it a couch in the chamber of his dead! or, if he would not,
- seeing she had not come of herself, I would watch it in the desert until
- it mouldered away! But I believed he would, for surely she had died long
- ago! Alas, how bitterly must I not humble myself before him!
- </p>
- <p>
- To Adam I must take Lilith also. I had no power to make her repent! I had
- hardly a right to slay her&mdash;much less a right to let her loose in the
- world! and surely I scarce merited being made for ever her gaoler!
- </p>
- <p>
- Again and again, on the way, I offered her food; but she answered only
- with a look of hungering hate. Her fiery eyes kept rolling to and fro, nor
- ever closed, I believe, until we reached the other side of the hot stream.
- After that they never opened until we came to the House of Bitterness.
- </p>
- <p>
- One evening, as we were camping for the night, I saw a little girl go up
- to her, and ran to prevent mischief. But ere I could reach them, the child
- had put something to the lips of the princess, and given a scream of pain.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Please, king,&rdquo; she whimpered, &ldquo;suck finger. Bad giantess make hole in
- it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I sucked the tiny finger.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Well now!&rdquo; she cried, and a minute after was holding a second fruit to a
- mouth greedy of other fare. But this time she snatched her hand quickly
- away, and the fruit fell to the ground. The child&rsquo;s name was Luva.
- </p>
- <p>
- The next day we crossed the hot stream. Again on their own ground, the
- Little Ones were jubilant. But their nests were still at a great distance,
- and that day we went no farther than the ivy-hall, where, because of its
- grapes, I had resolved to spend the night. When they saw the great
- clusters, at once they knew them good, rushed upon them, ate eagerly, and
- in a few minutes were all fast asleep on the green floor and in the forest
- around the hall. Hoping again to see the dance, and expecting the Little
- Ones to sleep through it, I had made them leave a wide space in the
- middle. I lay down among them, with Lona by my side, but did not sleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- The night came, and suddenly the company was there. I was wondering with
- myself whether, night after night, they would thus go on dancing to all
- eternity, and whether I should not one day have to join them because of my
- stiff-neckedness, when the eyes of the children came open, and they sprang
- to their feet, wide awake. Immediately every one caught hold of a dancer,
- and away they went, bounding and skipping. The spectres seemed to see and
- welcome them: perhaps they knew all about the Little Ones, for they had
- themselves long been on their way back to childhood! Anyhow, their
- innocent gambols must, I thought, bring refreshment to weary souls who,
- their present taken from them and their future dark, had no life save the
- shadow of their vanished past. Many a merry but never a rude prank did the
- children play; and if they did at times cause a momentary jar in the
- rhythm of the dance, the poor spectres, who had nothing to smile withal,
- at least manifested no annoyance.
- </p>
- <p>
- Just ere the morning began to break, I started to see the
- skeleton-princess in the doorway, her eyes open and glowing, the fearful
- spot black on her side. She stood for a moment, then came gliding in, as
- if she would join the dance. I sprang to my feet. A cry of repugnant fear
- broke from the children, and the lights vanished. But the low moon looked
- in, and I saw them clinging to each other. The ghosts were gone&mdash;at
- least they were no longer visible. The princess too had disappeared. I
- darted to the spot where I had left her: she lay with her eyes closed, as
- if she had never moved. I returned to the hall. The Little Ones were
- already on the floor, composing themselves to sleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- The next morning, as we started, we spied, a little way from us, two
- skeletons moving about in a thicket. The Little Ones broke their ranks,
- and ran to them. I followed; and, although now walking at ease, without
- splint or ligature, I was able to recognise the pair I had before seen in
- that neighbourhood. The children at once made friends with them, laying
- hold of their arms, and stroking the bones of their long fingers; and it
- was plain the poor creatures took their attentions kindly. The two seemed
- on excellent terms with each other. Their common deprivation had drawn
- them together! the loss of everything had been the beginning of a new life
- to them!
- </p>
- <p>
- Perceiving that they had gathered handfuls of herbs, and were looking for
- more&mdash;presumably to rub their bones with, for in what other way could
- nourishment reach their system so rudimentary?&mdash;the Little Ones,
- having keenly examined those they held, gathered of the same sorts, and
- filled the hands the skeletons held out to receive them. Then they bid
- them goodbye, promising to come and see them again, and resumed their
- journey, saying to each other they had not known there were such nice
- people living in the same forest.
- </p>
- <p>
- When we came to the nest-village, I remained there a night with them, to
- see them resettled; for Lona still looked like one just dead, and there
- seemed no need of haste.
- </p>
- <p>
- The princess had eaten nothing, and her eyes remained shut: fearing she
- might die ere we reached the end of our journey, I went to her in the
- night, and laid my bare arm upon her lips. She bit into it so fiercely
- that I cried out. How I got away from her I do not know, but I came to
- myself lying beyond her reach. It was then morning, and immediately I set
- about our departure.
- </p>
- <p>
- Choosing twelve Little Ones, not of the biggest and strongest, but of the
- sweetest and merriest, I mounted them on six elephants, and took two more
- of the wise CLUMSIES, as the children called them, to bear the princess. I
- still rode Lona&rsquo;s horse, and carried her body wrapt in her cloak before
- me. As nearly as I could judge I took the direct way, across the left
- branch of the river-bed, to the House of Bitterness, where I hoped to
- learn how best to cross the broader and rougher branch, and how to avoid
- the basin of monsters: I dreaded the former for the elephants, the latter
- for the children.
- </p>
- <p>
- I had one terrible night on the way&mdash;the third, passed in the desert
- between the two branches of the dead river.
- </p>
- <p>
- We had stopped the elephants in a sheltered place, and there let the
- princess slip down between them, to lie on the sand until the morning. She
- seemed quite dead, but I did not think she was. I laid myself a little way
- from her, with the body of Lona by my other side, thus to keep watch at
- once over the dead and the dangerous. The moon was half-way down the west,
- a pale, thoughtful moon, mottling the desert with shadows. Of a sudden she
- was eclipsed, remaining visible, but sending forth no light: a thick,
- diaphanous film covered her patient beauty, and she looked troubled. The
- film swept a little aside, and I saw the edge of it against her clearness&mdash;the
- jagged outline of a bat-like wing, torn and hooked. Came a cold wind with
- a burning sting&mdash;and Lilith was upon me. Her hands were still bound,
- but with her teeth she pulled from my shoulder the cloak Lona made for me,
- and fixed them in my flesh. I lay as one paralysed.
- </p>
- <p>
- Already the very life seemed flowing from me into her, when I remembered,
- and struck her on the hand. She raised her head with a gurgling shriek,
- and I felt her shiver. I flung her from me, and sprang to my feet.
- </p>
- <p>
- She was on her knees, and rocked herself to and fro. A second blast of
- hot-stinging cold enveloped us; the moon shone out clear, and I saw her
- face&mdash;gaunt and ghastly, besmeared with red.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Down, devil!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where are you taking me?&rdquo; she asked, with the voice of a dull echo from a
- sepulchre.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To your first husband,&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He will kill me!&rdquo; she moaned.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;At least he will take you off my hands!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Give me my daughter,&rdquo; she suddenly screamed, grinding her teeth.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never! Your doom is upon you at last!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Loose my hands for pity&rsquo;s sake!&rdquo; she groaned. &ldquo;I am in torture. The cords
- are sunk in my flesh.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I dare not. Lie down!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- She threw herself on the ground like a log.
- </p>
- <p>
- The rest of the night passed in peace, and in the morning she again seemed
- dead.
- </p>
- <p>
- Before evening we came in sight of the House of Bitterness, and the next
- moment one of the elephants came alongside of my horse.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Please, king, you are not going to that place?&rdquo; whispered the Little One
- who rode on his neck.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed I am! We are going to stay the night there,&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, please, don&rsquo;t! That must be where the cat-woman lives!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If you had ever seen her, you would not call her by that name!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nobody ever sees her: she has lost her face! Her head is back and side
- all round.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She hides her face from dull, discontented people!&mdash;Who taught you
- to call her the cat-woman?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I heard the bad giants call her so.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What did they say about her?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That she had claws to her toes.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is not true. I know the lady. I spent a night at her house.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But she MAY have claws to her toes! You might see her feet, and her claws
- be folded up inside their cushions!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then perhaps you think that I have claws to my toes?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh, no; that can&rsquo;t be! you are good!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The giants might have told you so!&rdquo; I pursued.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shouldn&rsquo;t believe them about you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are the giants good?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No; they love lying.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then why do you believe them about her? I know the lady is good; she
- cannot have claws.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Please how do you know she is good?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How do you know I am good?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I rode on, while he waited for his companions, and told them what I had
- said.
- </p>
- <p>
- They hastened after me, and when they came up,&mdash;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I would not take you to her house if I did not believe her good,&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We know you would not,&rdquo; they answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If I were to do something that frightened you&mdash;what would you say?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The beasts frightened us sometimes at first, but they never hurt us!&rdquo;
- answered one.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That was before we knew them!&rdquo; added another.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Just so!&rdquo; I answered. &ldquo;When you see the woman in that cottage, you will
- know that she is good. You may wonder at what she does, but she will
- always be good. I know her better than you know me. She will not hurt you,&mdash;or
- if she does,&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, you are not sure about it, king dear! You think she MAY hurt us!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am sure she will never be unkind to you, even if she do hurt you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They were silent for a while.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I&rsquo;m not afraid of being hurt&mdash;a little!&mdash;a good deal!&rdquo; cried
- Odu. &ldquo;But I should not like scratches in the dark! The giants say the
- cat-woman has claw-feet all over her house!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am taking the princess to her,&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because she is her friend.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How can she be good then?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Little Tumbledown is a friend of the princess,&rdquo; I answered; &ldquo;so is Luva:
- I saw them both, more than once, trying to feed her with grapes!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Little Tumbledown is good! Luva is very good!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is why they are her friends.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will the cat-woman&mdash;I mean the woman that isn&rsquo;t the cat-woman, and
- has no claws to her toes&mdash;give her grapes?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is more likely to give her scratches!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why?&mdash;You say she is her friend!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is just why.&mdash;A friend is one who gives us what we need, and
- the princess is sorely in need of a terrible scratching.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They were silent again.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If any of you are afraid,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;you may go home; I shall not prevent
- you. But I cannot take one with me who believes the giants rather than me,
- or one who will call a good lady the cat-woman!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Please, king,&rdquo; said one, &ldquo;I&rsquo;m so afraid of being afraid!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My boy,&rdquo; I answered, &ldquo;there is no harm in being afraid. The only harm is
- in doing what Fear tells you. Fear is not your master! Laugh in his face
- and he will run away.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There she is&mdash;in the door waiting for us!&rdquo; cried one, and put his
- hands over his eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How ugly she is!&rdquo; cried another, and did the same.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You do not see her,&rdquo; I said; &ldquo;her face is covered!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She has no face!&rdquo; they answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She has a very beautiful face. I saw it once.&mdash;It is indeed as
- beautiful as Lona&rsquo;s!&rdquo; I added with a sigh.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then what makes her hide it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think I know:&mdash;anyhow, she has some good reason for it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I don&rsquo;t like the cat-woman! she is frightful!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You cannot like, and you ought not to dislike what you have never seen.&mdash;Once
- more, you must not call her the cat-woman!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are we to call her then, please?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Lady Mara.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is a pretty name!&rdquo; said a girl; &ldquo;I will call her &lsquo;lady Mara&rsquo;; then
- perhaps she will show me her beautiful face!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mara, drest and muffled in white, was indeed standing in the doorway to
- receive us.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;At last!&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Lilith&rsquo;s hour has been long on the way, but it is
- come! Everything comes. Thousands of years have I waited&mdash;and not in
- vain!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She came to me, took my treasure from my arms, carried it into the house,
- and returning, took the princess. Lilith shuddered, but made no
- resistance. The beasts lay down by the door. We followed our hostess, the
- Little Ones looking very grave. She laid the princess on a rough settle at
- one side of the room, unbound her, and turned to us.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mr. Vane,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and you, Little Ones, I thank you! This woman would
- not yield to gentler measures; harder must have their turn. I must do what
- I can to make her repent!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The pitiful-hearted Little Ones began to sob sorely.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you hurt her very much, lady Mara?&rdquo; said the girl I have just
- mentioned, putting her warm little hand in mine.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes; I am afraid I must; I fear she will make me!&rdquo; answered Mara. &ldquo;It
- would be cruel to hurt her too little. It would have all to be done again,
- only worse.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;May I stop with her?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No, my child. She loves no one, therefore she cannot be WITH any one.
- There is One who will be with her, but she will not be with Him.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will the shadow that came down the hill be with her?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The great Shadow will be in her, I fear, but he cannot be WITH her, or
- with any one. She will know I am beside her, but that will not comfort
- her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you scratch her very deep?&rdquo; asked Odu, going near, and putting his
- hand in hers. &ldquo;Please, don&rsquo;t make the red juice come!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She caught him up, turned her back to the rest of us, drew the muffling
- down from her face, and held him at arms&rsquo; length that he might see her.
- </p>
- <p>
- As if his face had been a mirror, I saw in it what he saw. For one moment
- he stared, his little mouth open; then a divine wonder arose in his
- countenance, and swiftly changed to intense delight. For a minute he gazed
- entranced, then she set him down. Yet a moment he stood looking up at her,
- lost in contemplation&mdash;then ran to us with the face of a prophet that
- knows a bliss he cannot tell. Mara rearranged her mufflings, and turned to
- the other children.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You must eat and drink before you go to sleep,&rdquo; she said; &ldquo;you have had a
- long journey!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She set the bread of her house before them, and a jug of cold water. They
- had never seen bread before, and this was hard and dry, but they ate it
- without sign of distaste. They had never seen water before, but they drank
- without demur, one after the other looking up from the draught with a face
- of glad astonishment. Then she led away the smallest, and the rest went
- trooping after her. With her own gentle hands, they told me, she put them
- to bed on the floor of the garret.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0039" id="link2HCH0039">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XXXIX. THAT NIGHT
- </h2>
- <p>
- Their night was a troubled one, and they brought a strange report of it
- into the day. Whether the fear of their sleep came out into their waking,
- or their waking fear sank with them into their dreams, awake or asleep
- they were never at rest from it. All night something seemed going on in
- the house&mdash;something silent, something terrible, something they were
- not to know. Never a sound awoke; the darkness was one with the silence,
- and the silence was the terror.
- </p>
- <p>
- Once, a frightful wind filled the house, and shook its inside, they said,
- so that it quivered and trembled like a horse shaking himself; but it was
- a silent wind that made not even a moan in their chamber, and passed away
- like a soundless sob.
- </p>
- <p>
- They fell asleep. But they woke again with a great start. They thought the
- house was filling with water such as they had been drinking. It came from
- below, and swelled up until the garret was full of it to the very roof.
- But it made no more sound than the wind, and when it sank away, they fell
- asleep dry and warm.
- </p>
- <p>
- The next time they woke, all the air, they said, inside and out, was full
- of cats. They swarmed&mdash;up and down, along and across, everywhere
- about the room. They felt their claws trying to get through the
- night-gowns lady Mara had put on them, but they could not; and in the
- morning not one of them had a scratch. Through the dark suddenly, came the
- only sound they heard the night long&mdash;the far-off howl of the huge
- great-grandmother-cat in the desert: she must have been calling her little
- ones, they thought, for that instant the cats stopped, and all was still.
- Once more they fell fast asleep, and did not wake till the sun was rising.
- </p>
- <p>
- Such was the account the children gave of their experiences. But I was
- with the veiled woman and the princess all through the night: something of
- what took place I saw; much I only felt; and there was more which eye
- could not see, and heart only could in a measure understand.
- </p>
- <p>
- As soon as Mara left the room with the children, my eyes fell on the white
- leopardess: I thought we had left her behind us, but there she was,
- cowering in a corner. Apparently she was in mortal terror of what she
- might see. A lamp stood on the high chimney-piece, and sometimes the room
- seemed full of lamp-shadows, sometimes of cloudy forms. The princess lay
- on the settle by the wall, and seemed never to have moved hand or foot. It
- was a fearsome waiting.
- </p>
- <p>
- When Mara returned, she drew the settle with Lilith upon it to the middle
- of the room, then sat down opposite me, at the other side of the hearth.
- Between us burned a small fire.
- </p>
- <p>
- Something terrible was on its way! The cloudy presences flickered and
- shook. A silvery creature like a slowworm came crawling out from among
- them, slowly crossed the clay floor, and crept into the fire. We sat
- motionless. The something came nearer.
- </p>
- <p>
- But the hours passed, midnight drew nigh, and there was no change. The
- night was very still. Not a sound broke the silence, not a rustle from the
- fire, not a crack from board or beam. Now and again I felt a sort of
- heave, but whether in the earth or in the air or in the waters under the
- earth, whether in my own body or in my soul&mdash;whether it was anywhere,
- I could not tell. A dread sense of judgment was upon me. But I was not
- afraid, for I had ceased to care for aught save the thing that must be
- done.
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly it was midnight. The muffled woman rose, turned toward the
- settle, and slowly unwound the long swathes that hid her face: they
- dropped on the ground, and she stepped over them. The feet of the princess
- were toward the hearth; Mara went to her head, and turning, stood behind
- it. Then I saw her face. It was lovely beyond speech&mdash;white and sad,
- heart-and-soul sad, but not unhappy, and I knew it never could be unhappy.
- Great tears were running down her cheeks: she wiped them away with her
- robe; her countenance grew very still, and she wept no more. But for the
- pity in every line of her expression, she would have seemed severe. She
- laid her hand on the head of the princess&mdash;on the hair that grew low
- on the forehead, and stooping, breathed on the sallow brow. The body
- shuddered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you turn away from the wicked things you have been doing so long?&rdquo;
- said Mara gently.
- </p>
- <p>
- The princess did not answer. Mara put the question again, in the same
- soft, inviting tone.
- </p>
- <p>
- Still there was no sign of hearing. She spoke the words a third time.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then the seeming corpse opened its mouth and answered, its words appearing
- to frame themselves of something else than sound.&mdash;I cannot shape the
- thing further: sounds they were not, yet they were words to me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will not,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;I will be myself and not another!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Alas, you are another now, not yourself! Will you not be your real self?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will be what I mean myself now.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If you were restored, would you not make what amends you could for the
- misery you have caused?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I would do after my nature.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You do not know it: your nature is good, and you do evil!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will do as my Self pleases&mdash;as my Self desires.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will do as the Shadow, overshadowing your Self inclines you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will do what I will to do.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You have killed your daughter, Lilith!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have killed thousands. She is my own!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She was never yours as you are another&rsquo;s.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am not another&rsquo;s; I am my own, and my daughter is mine.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then, alas, your hour is come!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I care not. I am what I am; no one can take from me myself!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are not the Self you imagine.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So long as I feel myself what it pleases me to think myself, I care not.
- I am content to be to myself what I would be. What I choose to seem to
- myself makes me what I am. My own thought makes me me; my own thought of
- myself is me. Another shall not make me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But another has made you, and can compel you to see what you have made
- yourself. You will not be able much longer to look to yourself anything
- but what he sees you! You will not much longer have satisfaction in the
- thought of yourself. At this moment you are aware of the coming change!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No one ever made me. I defy that Power to unmake me from a free woman!
- You are his slave, and I defy you! You may be able to torture me&mdash;I
- do not know, but you shall not compel me to anything against my will!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Such a compulsion would be without value. But there is a light that goes
- deeper than the will, a light that lights up the darkness behind it: that
- light can change your will, can make it truly yours and not another&rsquo;s&mdash;not
- the Shadow&rsquo;s. Into the created can pour itself the creating will, and so
- redeem it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That light shall not enter me: I hate it!&mdash;Begone, slave!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am no slave, for I love that light, and will with the deeper will which
- created mine. There is no slave but the creature that wills against its
- creator. Who is a slave but her who cries, &lsquo;I am free,&rsquo; yet cannot cease
- to exist!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You speak foolishness from a cowering heart! You imagine me given over to
- you: I defy you! I hold myself against you! What I choose to be, you
- cannot change. I will not be what you think me&mdash;what you say I am!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am sorry: you must suffer!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But be free!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She alone is free who would make free; she loves not freedom who would
- enslave: she is herself a slave. Every life, every will, every heart that
- came within your ken, you have sought to subdue: you are the slave of
- every slave you have made&mdash;such a slave that you do not know it!&mdash;See
- your own self!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She took her hand from the head of the princess, and went two backward
- paces from her.
- </p>
- <p>
- A soundless presence as of roaring flame possessed the house&mdash;the
- same, I presume, that was to the children a silent wind. Involuntarily I
- turned to the hearth: its fire was a still small moveless glow. But I saw
- the worm-thing come creeping out, white-hot, vivid as incandescent silver,
- the live heart of essential fire. Along the floor it crawled toward the
- settle, going very slow. Yet more slowly it crept up on it, and laid
- itself, as unwilling to go further, at the feet of the princess. I rose
- and stole nearer. Mara stood motionless, as one that waits an event
- foreknown. The shining thing crawled on to a bare bony foot: it showed no
- suffering, neither was the settle scorched where the worm had lain.
- Slowly, very slowly, it crept along her robe until it reached her bosom,
- where it disappeared among the folds.
- </p>
- <p>
- The face of the princess lay stonily calm, the eyelids closed as over dead
- eyes; and for some minutes nothing followed. At length, on the dry,
- parchment-like skin, began to appear drops as of the finest dew: in a
- moment they were as large as seed-pearls, ran together, and began to pour
- down in streams. I darted forward to snatch the worm from the poor
- withered bosom, and crush it with my foot. But Mara, Mother of Sorrow,
- stepped between, and drew aside the closed edges of the robe: no serpent
- was there&mdash;no searing trail; the creature had passed in by the centre
- of the black spot, and was piercing through the joints and marrow to the
- thoughts and intents of the heart. The princess gave one writhing,
- contorted shudder, and I knew the worm was in her secret chamber.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is seeing herself!&rdquo; said Mara; and laying her hand on my arm, she
- drew me three paces from the settle.
- </p>
- <p>
- Of a sudden the princess bent her body upward in an arch, then sprang to
- the floor, and stood erect. The horror in her face made me tremble lest
- her eyes should open, and the sight of them overwhelm me. Her bosom heaved
- and sank, but no breath issued. Her hair hung and dripped; then it stood
- out from her head and emitted sparks; again hung down, and poured the
- sweat of her torture on the floor.
- </p>
- <p>
- I would have thrown my arms about her, but Mara stopped me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You cannot go near her,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;She is far away from us, afar in the
- hell of her self-consciousness. The central fire of the universe is
- radiating into her the knowledge of good and evil, the knowledge of what
- she is. She sees at last the good she is not, the evil she is. She knows
- that she is herself the fire in which she is burning, but she does not
- know that the Light of Life is the heart of that fire. Her torment is that
- she is what she is. Do not fear for her; she is not forsaken. No gentler
- way to help her was left. Wait and watch.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It may have been five minutes or five years that she stood thus&mdash;I
- cannot tell; but at last she flung herself on her face.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mara went to her, and stood looking down upon her. Large tears fell from
- her eyes on the woman who had never wept, and would not weep.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you change your way?&rdquo; she said at length.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why did he make me such?&rdquo; gasped Lilith. &ldquo;I would have made myself&mdash;oh,
- so different! I am glad it was he that made me and not I myself! He alone
- is to blame for what I am! Never would I have made such a worthless thing!
- He meant me such that I might know it and be miserable! I will not be made
- any longer!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Unmake yourself, then,&rdquo; said Mara.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Alas, I cannot! You know it, and mock me! How often have I not agonised
- to cease, but the tyrant keeps me being! I curse him!&mdash;Now let him
- kill me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The words came in jets as from a dying fountain.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Had he not made you,&rdquo; said Mara, gently and slowly, &ldquo;you could not even
- hate him. But he did not make you such. You have made yourself what you
- are.&mdash;Be of better cheer: he can remake you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will not be remade!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He will not change you; he will only restore you to what you were.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will not be aught of his making.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are you not willing to have that set right which you have set wrong?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She lay silent; her suffering seemed abated.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If you are willing, put yourself again on the settle.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will not,&rdquo; she answered, forcing the words through her clenched teeth.
- </p>
- <p>
- A wind seemed to wake inside the house, blowing without sound or impact;
- and a water began to rise that had no lap in its ripples, no sob in its
- swell. It was cold, but it did not benumb. Unseen and noiseless it came.
- It smote no sense in me, yet I knew it rising. I saw it lift at last and
- float her. Gently it bore her, unable to resist, and left rather than laid
- her on the settle. Then it sank swiftly away.
- </p>
- <p>
- The strife of thought, accusing and excusing, began afresh, and gathered
- fierceness. The soul of Lilith lay naked to the torture of pure
- interpenetrating inward light. She began to moan, and sigh deep sighs,
- then murmur as holding colloquy with a dividual self: her queendom was no
- longer whole; it was divided against itself. One moment she would exult as
- over her worst enemy, and weep; the next she would writhe as in the
- embrace of a friend whom her soul hated, and laugh like a demon. At length
- she began what seemed a tale about herself, in a language so strange, and
- in forms so shadowy, that I could but here and there understand a little.
- Yet the language seemed the primeval shape of one I knew well, and the
- forms to belong to dreams which had once been mine, but refused to be
- recalled. The tale appeared now and then to touch upon things that Adam
- had read from the disparted manuscript, and often to make allusion to
- influences and forces&mdash;vices too, I could not help suspecting&mdash;with
- which I was unacquainted.
- </p>
- <p>
- She ceased, and again came the horror in her hair, the sparkling and
- flowing alternate. I sent a beseeching look to Mara.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Those, alas, are not the tears of repentance!&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;The true tears
- gather in the eyes. Those are far more bitter, and not so good.
- Self-loathing is not sorrow. Yet it is good, for it marks a step in the
- way home, and in the father&rsquo;s arms the prodigal forgets the self he
- abominates. Once with his father, he is to himself of no more account. It
- will be so with her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She went nearer and said,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you restore that which you have wrongfully taken?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have taken nothing,&rdquo; answered the princess, forcing out the words in
- spite of pain, &ldquo;that I had not the right to take. My power to take
- manifested my right.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mara left her.
- </p>
- <p>
- Gradually my soul grew aware of an invisible darkness, a something more
- terrible than aught that had yet made itself felt. A horrible Nothingness,
- a Negation positive infolded her; the border of its being that was yet no
- being, touched me, and for one ghastly instant I seemed alone with Death
- Absolute! It was not the absence of everything I felt, but the presence of
- Nothing. The princess dashed herself from the settle to the floor with an
- exceeding great and bitter cry. It was the recoil of Being from
- Annihilation.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;For pity&rsquo;s sake,&rdquo; she shrieked, &ldquo;tear my heart out, but let me live!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- With that there fell upon her, and upon us also who watched with her, the
- perfect calm as of a summer night. Suffering had all but reached the brim
- of her life&rsquo;s cup, and a hand had emptied it! She raised her head, half
- rose, and looked around her. A moment more, and she stood erect, with the
- air of a conqueror: she had won the battle! Dareful she had met her
- spiritual foes; they had withdrawn defeated! She raised her withered arm
- above her head, a pæan of unholy triumph in her throat&mdash;when suddenly
- her eyes fixed in a ghastly stare.&mdash;What was she seeing?
- </p>
- <p>
- I looked, and saw: before her, cast from unseen heavenly mirror, stood the
- reflection of herself, and beside it a form of splendent beauty, She
- trembled, and sank again on the floor helpless. She knew the one what God
- had intended her to be, the other what she had made herself.
- </p>
- <p>
- The rest of the night she lay motionless altogether.
- </p>
- <p>
- With the gray dawn growing in the room, she rose, turned to Mara, and
- said, in prideful humility, &ldquo;You have conquered. Let me go into the
- wilderness and bewail myself.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mara saw that her submission was not feigned, neither was it real. She
- looked at her a moment, and returned:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Begin, then, and set right in the place of wrong.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know not how,&rdquo; she replied&mdash;with the look of one who foresaw and
- feared the answer.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Open thy hand, and let that which is in it go.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A fierce refusal seemed to struggle for passage, but she kept it prisoned.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;I have no longer the power. Open it for me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She held out the offending hand. It was more a paw than a hand. It seemed
- to me plain that she could not open it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mara did not even look at it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You must open it yourself,&rdquo; she said quietly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have told you I cannot!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You can if you will&mdash;not indeed at once, but by persistent effort.
- What you have done, you do not yet wish undone&mdash;do not yet intend to
- undo!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You think so, I dare say,&rdquo; rejoined the princess with a flash of
- insolence, &ldquo;but I KNOW that I cannot open my hand!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know you better than you know yourself, and I know you can. You have
- often opened it a little way. Without trouble and pain you cannot open it
- quite, but you CAN open it. At worst you could beat it open! I pray you,
- gather your strength, and open it wide.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will not try what I know impossible. It would be the part of a fool!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Which you have been playing all your life! Oh, you are hard to teach!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Defiance reappeared on the face of the princess. She turned her back on
- Mara, saying, &ldquo;I know what you have been tormenting me for! You have not
- succeeded, nor shall you succeed! You shall yet find me stronger than you
- think! I will yet be mistress of myself! I am still what I have always
- known myself&mdash;queen of Hell, and mistress of the worlds!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Then came the most fearful thing of all. I did not know what it was; I
- knew myself unable to imagine it; I knew only that if it came near me I
- should die of terror! I now know that it was LIFE IN DEATH&mdash;life
- dead, yet existent; and I knew that Lilith had had glimpses, but only
- glimpses of it before: it had never been with her until now.
- </p>
- <p>
- She stood as she had turned. Mara went and sat down by the fire. Fearing
- to stand alone with the princess, I went also and sat again by the hearth.
- Something began to depart from me. A sense of cold, yet not what we call
- cold, crept, not into, but out of my being, and pervaded it. The lamp of
- life and the eternal fire seemed dying together, and I about to be left
- with naught but the consciousness that I had been alive. Mercifully,
- bereavement did not go so far, and my thought went back to Lilith.
- </p>
- <p>
- Something was taking place in her which we did not know. We knew we did
- not feel what she felt, but we knew we felt something of the misery it
- caused her. The thing itself was in her, not in us; its reflex, her
- misery, reached us, and was again reflected in us: she was in the outer
- darkness, we present with her who was in it! We were not in the outer
- darkness; had we been, we could not have been WITH her; we should have
- been timelessly, spacelessly, absolutely apart. The darkness knows neither
- the light nor itself; only the light knows itself and the darkness also.
- None but God hates evil and understands it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Something was gone from her, which then first, by its absence, she knew to
- have been with her every moment of her wicked years. The source of life
- had withdrawn itself; all that was left her of conscious being was the
- dregs of her dead and corrupted life.
- </p>
- <p>
- She stood rigid. Mara buried her head in her hands. I gazed on the face of
- one who knew existence but not love&mdash;knew nor life, nor joy, nor
- good; with my eyes I saw the face of a live death! She knew life only to
- know that it was dead, and that, in her, death lived. It was not merely
- that life had ceased in her, but that she was consciously a dead thing.
- She had killed her life, and was dead&mdash;and knew it. She must DEATH IT
- for ever and ever! She had tried her hardest to unmake herself, and could
- not! she was a dead life! she could not cease! she must BE! In her face I
- saw and read beyond its misery&mdash;saw in its dismay that the dismay
- behind it was more than it could manifest. It sent out a livid gloom; the
- light that was in her was darkness, and after its kind it shone. She was
- what God could not have created. She had usurped beyond her share in
- self-creation, and her part had undone His! She saw now what she had made,
- and behold, it was not good! She was as a conscious corpse, whose coffin
- would never come to pieces, never set her free! Her bodily eyes stood wide
- open, as if gazing into the heart of horror essential&mdash;her own
- indestructible evil. Her right hand also was now clenched&mdash;upon
- existent Nothing&mdash;her inheritance!
- </p>
- <p>
- But with God all things are possible: He can save even the rich!
- </p>
- <p>
- Without change of look, without sign of purpose, Lilith walked toward
- Mara. She felt her coming, and rose to meet her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I yield,&rdquo; said the princess. &ldquo;I cannot hold out. I am defeated.&mdash;Not
- the less, I cannot open my hand.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have you tried?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am trying now with all my might.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will take you to my father. You have wronged him worst of the created,
- therefore he best of the created can help you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How can HE help me?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He will forgive you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, if he would but help me to cease! Not even that am I capable of! I
- have no power over myself; I am a slave! I acknowledge it. Let me die.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A slave thou art that shall one day be a child!&rdquo; answered Mara.&mdash;&ldquo;Verily,
- thou shalt die, but not as thou thinkest. Thou shalt die out of death into
- life. Now is the Life for, that never was against thee!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Like her mother, in whom lay the motherhood of all the world, Mara put her
- arms around Lilith, and kissed her on the forehead. The fiery-cold misery
- went out of her eyes, and their fountains filled. She lifted, and bore her
- to her own bed in a corner of the room, laid her softly upon it, and
- closed her eyes with caressing hands.
- </p>
- <p>
- Lilith lay and wept. The Lady of Sorrow went to the door and opened it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Morn, with the Spring in her arms, waited outside. Softly they stole in at
- the opened door, with a gentle wind in the skirts of their garments. It
- flowed and flowed about Lilith, rippling the unknown, upwaking sea of her
- life eternal; rippling and to ripple it, until at length she who had been
- but as a weed cast on the dry sandy shore to wither, should know herself
- an inlet of the everlasting ocean, henceforth to flow into her for ever,
- and ebb no more. She answered the morning wind with reviving breath, and
- began to listen. For in the skirts of the wind had come the rain&mdash;the
- soft rain that heals the mown, the many-wounded grass&mdash;soothing it
- with the sweetness of all music, the hush that lives between music and
- silence. It bedewed the desert places around the cottage, and the sands of
- Lilith&rsquo;s heart heard it, and drank it in. When Mara returned to sit by her
- bed, her tears were flowing softer than the rain, and soon she was fast
- asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0040" id="link2HCH0040">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XL. THE HOUSE OF DEATH
- </h2>
- <p>
- The Mother of Sorrows rose, muffled her face, and went to call the Little
- Ones. They slept as if all the night they had not moved, but the moment
- she spoke they sprang to their feet, fresh as if new-made. Merrily down
- the stair they followed her, and she brought them where the princess lay,
- her tears yet flowing as she slept. Their glad faces grew grave. They
- looked from the princess out on the rain, then back at the princess.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The sky is falling!&rdquo; said one.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The white juice is running out of the princess!&rdquo; cried another, with an
- awed look.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is it rivers?&rdquo; asked Odu, gazing at the little streams that flowed adown
- her hollow cheeks.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes,&rdquo; answered Mara, &ldquo;&mdash;the most wonderful of all rivers.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I thought rivers was bigger, and rushed, like a lot of Little Ones,
- making loud noises!&rdquo; he returned, looking at me, from whom alone he had
- heard of rivers.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Look at the rivers of the sky!&rdquo; said Mara. &ldquo;See how they come down to
- wake up the waters under the earth! Soon will the rivers be flowing
- everywhere, merry and loud, like thousands and thousands of happy
- children. Oh, how glad they will make you, Little Ones! You have never
- seen any, and do not know how lovely is the water!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That will be the glad of the ground that the princess is grown good,&rdquo;
- said Odu. &ldquo;See the glad of the sky!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are the rivers the glad of the princess?&rdquo; asked Luva. &ldquo;They are not her
- juice, for they are not red!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They are the juice inside the juice,&rdquo; answered Mara.
- </p>
- <p>
- Odu put one finger to his eye, looked at it, and shook his head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Princess will not bite now!&rdquo; said Luva.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No; she will never do that again,&rdquo; replied Mara. &ldquo;&mdash;But now we must
- take her nearer home.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is that a nest?&rdquo; asked Sozo.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes; a very big nest. But we must take her to another place first.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is that?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is the biggest room in all this world.&mdash;But I think it is going
- to be pulled down: it will soon be too full of little nests.&mdash;Go and
- get your clumsies.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Please are there any cats in it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not one. The nests are too full of lovely dreams for one cat to get in.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We shall be ready in a minute,&rdquo; said Odu, and ran out, followed by all
- except Luva.
- </p>
- <p>
- Lilith was now awake, and listening with a sad smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But her rivers are running so fast!&rdquo; said Luva, who stood by her side and
- seemed unable to take her eyes from her face. &ldquo;Her robe is all&mdash;I
- don&rsquo;t know what. Clumsies won&rsquo;t like it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They won&rsquo;t mind it,&rdquo; answered Mara. &ldquo;Those rivers are so clean that they
- make the whole world clean.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I had fallen asleep by the fire, but for some time had been awake and
- listening, and now rose.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is time to mount, Mr. Vane,&rdquo; said our hostess.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Tell me, please,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;is there not a way by which to avoid the
- channels and the den of monsters?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is an easy way across the river-bed, which I will show you,&rdquo; she
- answered; &ldquo;but you must pass once more through the monsters.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I fear for the children,&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Fear will not once come nigh them,&rdquo; she rejoined.
- </p>
- <p>
- We left the cottage. The beasts stood waiting about the door. Odu was
- already on the neck of one of the two that were to carry the princess. I
- mounted Lona&rsquo;s horse; Mara brought her body, and gave it me in my arms.
- When she came out again with the princess, a cry of delight arose from the
- children: she was no longer muffled! Gazing at her, and entranced with her
- loveliness, the boys forgot to receive the princess from her; but the
- elephants took Lilith tenderly with their trunks, one round her body and
- one round her knees, and, Mara helping, laid her along between them.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Why does the princess want to go?&rdquo; asked a small boy. &ldquo;She would keep
- good if she staid here!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She wants to go, and she does not want to go: we are helping her,&rdquo;
- answered Mara. &ldquo;She will not keep good here.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What are you helping her to do?&rdquo; he went on.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To go where she will get more help&mdash;help to open her hand, which has
- been closed for a thousand years.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;So long? Then she has learned to do without it: why should she open it
- now?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because it is shut upon something that is not hers.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Please, lady Mara, may we have some of your very dry bread before we go?&rdquo;
- said Luva.
- </p>
- <p>
- Mara smiled, and brought them four loaves and a great jug of water.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We will eat as we go,&rdquo; they said. But they drank the water with delight.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think,&rdquo; remarked one of them, &ldquo;it must be elephant-juice! It makes me
- so strong!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- We set out, the Lady of Sorrow walking with us, more beautiful than the
- sun, and the white leopardess following her. I thought she meant but to
- put us in the path across the channels, but I soon found she was going
- with us all the way. Then I would have dismounted that she might ride, but
- she would not let me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have no burden to carry,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;The children and I will walk
- together.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- It was the loveliest of mornings; the sun shone his brightest, and the
- wind blew his sweetest, but they did not comfort the desert, for it had no
- water.
- </p>
- <p>
- We crossed the channels without difficulty, the children gamboling about
- Mara all the way, but did not reach the top of the ridge over the bad
- burrow until the sun was already in the act of disappearing. Then I made
- the Little Ones mount their elephants, for the moon might be late, and I
- could not help some anxiety about them.
- </p>
- <p>
- The Lady of Sorrow now led the way by my side; the elephants followed&mdash;the
- two that bore the princess in the centre; the leopardess brought up the
- rear; and just as we reached the frightful margin, the moon looked up and
- showed the shallow basin lying before us untroubled. Mara stepped into it;
- not a movement answered her tread or the feet of my horse. But the moment
- that the elephants carrying the princess touched it, the seemingly solid
- earth began to heave and boil, and the whole dread brood of the hellish
- nest was commoved. Monsters uprose on all sides, every neck at full
- length, every beak and claw outstretched, every mouth agape. Long-billed
- heads, horribly jawed faces, knotty tentacles innumerable, went out after
- Lilith. She lay in an agony of fear, nor dared stir a finger. Whether the
- hideous things even saw the children, I doubt; certainly not one of them
- touched a child; not one loathly member passed the live rampart of her
- body-guard, to lay hold of her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Little Ones,&rdquo; I cried, &ldquo;keep your elephants close about the princess. Be
- brave; they will not touch you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What will not touch us? We don&rsquo;t know what to be brave at!&rdquo; they
- answered; and I perceived they were unaware of one of the deformities
- around them.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Never mind then,&rdquo; I returned; &ldquo;only keep close.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- They were panoplied in their blindness! Incapacity to see was their
- safety. What they could nowise be aware of, could not hurt them.
- </p>
- <p>
- But the hideous forms I saw that night! Mara was a few paces in front of
- me when a solitary, bodiless head bounced on the path between us. The
- leopardess came rushing under the elephants from behind, and would have
- seized it, but, with frightful contortions of visage and a loathsome howl,
- it gave itself a rapid rotatory twist, sprang from her, and buried itself
- in the ground. The death in my arms assoiling me from fear, I regarded
- them all unmoved, although never, sure, was elsewhere beheld such a crew
- accursed!
- </p>
- <p>
- Mara still went in front of me, and the leopardess now walked close behind
- her, shivering often, for it was very cold, when suddenly the ground
- before me to my left began to heave, and a low wave of earth came slinking
- toward us. It rose higher as it drew hear; out of it slouched a dreadful
- head with fleshy tubes for hair, and opening a great oval mouth, snapped
- at me. The leopardess sprang, but fell baffled beyond it.
- </p>
- <p>
- Almost under our feet, shot up the head of an enormous snake, with a
- lamping wallowing glare in its eyes. Again the leopardess rushed to the
- attack, but found nothing. At a third monster she darted with like fury,
- and like failure&mdash;then sullenly ceased to heed the phantom-horde. But
- I understood the peril and hastened the crossing&mdash;the rather that the
- moon was carrying herself strangely. Even as she rose she seemed ready to
- drop and give up the attempt as hopeless; and since, I saw her sink back
- once fully her own breadth. The arc she made was very low, and now she had
- begun to descend rapidly.
- </p>
- <p>
- We were almost over, when, between us and the border of the basin, arose a
- long neck, on the top of which, like the blossom of some Stygian lily, sat
- what seemed the head of a corpse, its mouth half open, and full of canine
- teeth. I went on; it retreated, then drew aside. The lady stepped on the
- firm land, but the leopardess between us, roused once more, turned, and
- flew at the throat of the terror. I remained where I was to see the
- elephants, with the princess and the children, safe on the bank. Then I
- turned to look after the leopardess. That moment the moon went down, For
- an instant I saw the leopardess and the snake-monster convolved in a cloud
- of dust; then darkness hid them. Trembling with fright, my horse wheeled,
- and in three bounds overtook the elephants.
- </p>
- <p>
- As we came up with them, a shapeless jelly dropped on the princess. A
- white dove dropped immediately on the jelly, stabbing it with its beak. It
- made a squelching, sucking sound, and fell off. Then I heard the voice of
- a woman talking with Mara, and I knew the voice.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I fear she is dead!&rdquo; said Mara.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will send and find her,&rdquo; answered the mother. &ldquo;But why, Mara, shouldst
- thou at all fear for her or for any one? Death cannot hurt her who dies
- doing the work given her to do.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall miss her sorely; she is good and wise. Yet I would not have her
- live beyond her hour!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She has gone down with the wicked; she will rise with the righteous. We
- shall see her again ere very long.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother,&rdquo; I said, although I did not see her, &ldquo;we come to you many, but
- most of us are Little Ones. Will you be able to receive us all?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are welcome every one,&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;Sooner or later all will be
- little ones, for all must sleep in my house! It is well with those that go
- to sleep young and willing!&mdash;My husband is even now preparing her
- couch for Lilith. She is neither young nor quite willing, but it is well
- indeed that she is come.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I heard no more. Mother and daughter had gone away together through the
- dark. But we saw a light in the distance, and toward it we went stumbling
- over the moor.
- </p>
- <p>
- Adam stood in the door, holding the candle to guide us, and talking with
- his wife, who, behind him, laid bread and wine on the table within.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Happy children,&rdquo; I heard her say, &ldquo;to have looked already on the face of
- my daughter! Surely it is the loveliest in the great world!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- When we reached the door, Adam welcomed us almost merrily. He set the
- candle on the threshold, and going to the elephants, would have taken the
- princess to carry her in; but she repulsed him, and pushing her elephants
- asunder, stood erect between them. They walked from beside her, and left
- her with him who had been her husband&mdash;ashamed indeed of her gaunt
- uncomeliness, but unsubmissive. He stood with a welcome in his eyes that
- shone through their severity.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We have long waited for thee, Lilith!&rdquo; he said.
- </p>
- <p>
- She returned him no answer.
- </p>
- <p>
- Eve and her daughter came to the door.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The mortal foe of my children!&rdquo; murmured Eve, standing radiant in her
- beauty.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your children are no longer in her danger,&rdquo; said Mara; &ldquo;she has turned
- from evil.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Trust her not hastily, Mara,&rdquo; answered her mother; &ldquo;she has deceived a
- multitude!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But you will open to her the mirror of the Law of Liberty, mother, that
- she may go into it, and abide in it! She consents to open her hand and
- restore: will not the great Father restore her to inheritance with His
- other children?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I do not know Him!&rdquo; murmured Lilith, in a voice of fear and doubt.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Therefore it is that thou art miserable,&rdquo; said Adam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will go back whence I came!&rdquo; she cried, and turned, wringing her hands,
- to depart.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That is indeed what I would have thee do, where I would have thee go&mdash;to
- Him from whom thou camest! In thy agony didst thou not cry out for Him?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cried out for Death&mdash;to escape Him and thee!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Death is even now on his way to lead thee to Him. Thou knowest neither
- Death nor the Life that dwells in Death! Both befriend thee. I am dead,
- and would see thee dead, for I live and love thee. Thou art weary and
- heavy-laden: art thou not ashamed? Is not the being thou hast corrupted
- become to thee at length an evil thing? Wouldst thou yet live on in
- disgrace eternal? Cease thou canst not: wilt thou not be restored and BE?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She stood silent with bowed head.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Father,&rdquo; said Mara, &ldquo;take her in thine arms, and carry her to her couch.
- There she will open her hand, and die into life.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will walk,&rdquo; said the princess.
- </p>
- <p>
- Adam turned and led the way. The princess walked feebly after him into the
- cottage.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then Eve came out to me where I sat with Lona in my bosom. She reached up
- her arms, took her from me, and carried her in. I dismounted, and the
- children also. The horse and the elephants stood shivering; Mara patted
- and stroked them every one; they lay down and fell asleep. She led us into
- the cottage, and gave the Little Ones of the bread and wine on the table.
- Adam and Lilith were standing there together, but silent both.
- </p>
- <p>
- Eve came from the chamber of death, where she had laid Lona down, and
- offered of the bread and wine to the princess.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Thy beauty slays me! It is death I would have, not food!&rdquo; said Lilith,
- and turned from her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This food will help thee to die,&rdquo; answered Eve.
- </p>
- <p>
- But Lilith would not taste of it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If thou wilt nor eat nor drink, Lilith,&rdquo; said Adam, &ldquo;come and see the
- place where thou shalt lie in peace.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He led the way through the door of death, and she followed submissive. But
- when her foot crossed the threshold she drew it back, and pressed her hand
- to her bosom, struck through with the cold immortal.
- </p>
- <p>
- A wild blast fell roaring on the roof, and died away in a moan. She stood
- ghastly with terror.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is he!&rdquo; said her voiceless lips: I read their motion.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who, princess!&rdquo; I whispered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The great Shadow,&rdquo; she murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Here he cannot enter,&rdquo; said Adam. &ldquo;Here he can hurt no one. Over him also
- is power given me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are the children in the house?&rdquo; asked Lilith, and at the word the heart
- of Eve began to love her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He never dared touch a child,&rdquo; she said. &ldquo;Nor have you either ever hurt a
- child. Your own daughter you have but sent into the loveliest sleep, for
- she was already a long time dead when you slew her. And now Death shall be
- the atonemaker; you shall sleep together.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wife,&rdquo; said Adam, &ldquo;let us first put the children to bed, that she may see
- them safe!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He came back to fetch them. As soon as he was gone, the princess knelt to
- Eve, clasped her knees, and said,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Beautiful Eve, persuade your husband to kill me: to you he will listen!
- Indeed I would but cannot open my hand.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You cannot die without opening it. To kill you would not serve you,&rdquo;
- answered Eve. &ldquo;But indeed he cannot! no one can kill you but the Shadow;
- and whom he kills never knows she is dead, but lives to do his will, and
- thinks she is doing her own.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Show me then to my grave; I am so weary I can live no longer. I must go
- to the Shadow&mdash;yet I would not!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She did not, could not understand!
- </p>
- <p>
- She struggled to rise, but fell at the feet of Eve. The Mother lifted, and
- carried her inward.
- </p>
- <p>
- I followed Adam and Mara and the children into the chamber of death. We
- passed Eve with Lilith in her arms, and went farther in.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You shall not go to the Shadow,&rdquo; I heard Eve say, as we passed them.
- &ldquo;Even now is his head under my heel!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The dim light in Adam&rsquo;s hand glimmered on the sleeping faces, and as he
- went on, the darkness closed over them. The very air seemed dead: was it
- because none of the sleepers breathed it? Profoundest sleep filled the
- wide place. It was as if not one had waked since last I was there, for the
- forms I had then noted lay there still. My father was just as I had left
- him, save that he seemed yet nearer to a perfect peace. The woman beside
- him looked younger.
- </p>
- <p>
- The darkness, the cold, the silence, the still air, the faces of the
- lovely dead, made the hearts of the children beat softly, but their little
- tongues would talk&mdash;with low, hushed voices.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What a curious place to sleep in!&rdquo; said one, &ldquo;I would rather be in my
- nest!&rdquo; &ldquo;It is SO cold!&rdquo; said another.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, it is cold,&rdquo; answered our host; &ldquo;but you will not be cold in your
- sleep.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where are our nests?&rdquo; asked more than one, looking round and seeing no
- couch unoccupied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Find places, and sleep where you choose,&rdquo; replied Adam.
- </p>
- <p>
- Instantly they scattered, advancing fearlessly beyond the light, but we
- still heard their gentle voices, and it was plain they saw where I could
- not.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Oh,&rdquo; cried one, &ldquo;here is such a beautiful lady!&mdash;may I sleep beside
- her? I will creep in quietly, and not wake her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, you may,&rdquo; answered the voice of Eve behind us; and we came to the
- couch while the little fellow was yet creeping slowly and softly under the
- sheet. He laid his head beside the lady&rsquo;s, looked up at us, and was still.
- His eyelids fell; he was asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- We went a little farther, and there was another who had climbed up on the
- couch of a woman.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother! mother!&rdquo; he cried, kneeling over her, his face close to hers. &ldquo;&mdash;She&rsquo;s
- so cold she can&rsquo;t speak,&rdquo; he said, looking up to us; &ldquo;but I will soon make
- her warm!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He lay down, and pressing close to her, put his little arm over her. In an
- instant he too was asleep, smiling an absolute content.
- </p>
- <p>
- We came to a third Little One; it was Luva. She stood on tiptoe, leaning
- over the edge of a couch.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My own mother wouldn&rsquo;t have me,&rdquo; she said softly: &ldquo;will you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Receiving no reply, she looked up at Eve. The great mother lifted her to
- the couch, and she got at once under the snowy covering.
- </p>
- <p>
- Each of the Little Ones had by this time, except three of the boys, found
- at least an unobjecting bedfellow, and lay still and white beside a still,
- white woman. The little orphans had adopted mothers! One tiny girl had
- chosen a father to sleep with, and that was mine. A boy lay by the side of
- the beautiful matron with the slow-healing hand. On the middle one of the
- three couches hitherto unoccupied, lay Lona.
- </p>
- <p>
- Eve set Lilith down beside it. Adam pointed to the vacant couch on Lona&rsquo;s
- right hand, and said,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There, Lilith, is the bed I have prepared for you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She glanced at her daughter lying before her like a statue carved in
- semi-transparent alabaster, and shuddered from head to foot. &ldquo;How cold it
- is!&rdquo; she murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will soon begin to find comfort in the cold,&rdquo; answered Adam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Promises to the dying are easy!&rdquo; she said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But I know it: I too have slept. I am dead!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I believed you dead long ago; but I see you alive!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;More alive than you know, or are able to understand. I was scarce alive
- when first you knew me. Now I have slept, and am awake; I am dead, and
- live indeed!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I fear that child,&rdquo; she said, pointing to Lona: &ldquo;she will rise and
- terrify me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is dreaming love to you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But the Shadow!&rdquo; she moaned; &ldquo;I fear the Shadow! he will be wroth with
- me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He at sight of whom the horses of heaven start and rear, dares not
- disturb one dream in this quiet chamber!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I shall dream then?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will dream.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What dreams?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That I cannot tell, but none HE can enter into. When the Shadow comes
- here, it will be to lie down and sleep also.&mdash;His hour will come, and
- he knows it will.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How long shall I sleep?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You and he will be the last to wake in the morning of the universe.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The princess lay down, drew the sheet over her, stretched herself out
- straight, and lay still with open eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- Adam turned to his daughter. She drew near.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Lilith,&rdquo; said Mara, &ldquo;you will not sleep, if you lie there a thousand
- years, until you have opened your hand, and yielded that which is not
- yours to give or to withhold.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I cannot,&rdquo; she answered. &ldquo;I would if I could, and gladly, for I am weary,
- and the shadows of death are gathering about me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They will gather and gather, but they cannot infold you while yet your
- hand remains unopened. You may think you are dead, but it will be only a
- dream; you may think you have come awake, but it will still be only a
- dream. Open your hand, and you will sleep indeed&mdash;then wake indeed.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am trying hard, but the fingers have grown together and into the palm.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I pray you put forth the strength of your will. For the love of life,
- draw together your forces and break its bonds!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have struggled in vain; I can do no more. I am very weary, and sleep
- lies heavy upon my lids.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The moment you open your hand, you will sleep. Open it, and make an end.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- A tinge of colour arose in the parchment-like face; the contorted hand
- trembled with agonised effort. Mara took it, and sought to aid her.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hold, Mara!&rdquo; cried her father. &ldquo;There is danger!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The princess turned her eyes upon Eve, beseechingly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There was a sword I once saw in your husband&rsquo;s hands,&rdquo; she murmured. &ldquo;I
- fled when I saw it. I heard him who bore it say it would divide whatever
- was not one and indivisible!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have the sword,&rdquo; said Adam. &ldquo;The angel gave it me when he left the
- gate.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Bring it, Adam,&rdquo; pleaded Lilith, &ldquo;and cut me off this hand that I may
- sleep.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will,&rdquo; he answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- He gave the candle to Eve, and went. The princess closed her eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- In a few minutes Adam returned with an ancient weapon in his hand. The
- scabbard looked like vellum grown dark with years, but the hilt shone like
- gold that nothing could tarnish. He drew out the blade. It flashed like a
- pale blue northern streamer, and the light of it made the princess open
- her eyes. She saw the sword, shuddered, and held out her hand. Adam took
- it. The sword gleamed once, there was one little gush of blood, and he
- laid the severed hand in Mara&rsquo;s lap. Lilith had given one moan, and was
- already fast asleep. Mara covered the arm with the sheet, and the three
- turned away.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Will you not dress the wound?&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;A wound from that sword,&rdquo; answered Adam, &ldquo;needs no dressing. It is
- healing and not hurt.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Poor lady!&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;she will wake with but one hand!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Where the dead deformity clung,&rdquo; replied Mara, &ldquo;the true, lovely hand is
- already growing.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- We heard a childish voice behind us, and turned again. The candle in Eve&rsquo;s
- hand shone on the sleeping face of Lilith, and the waking faces of the
- three Little Ones, grouped on the other side of her couch. &ldquo;How beautiful
- she is grown!&rdquo; said one of them.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Poor princess!&rdquo; said another; &ldquo;I will sleep with her. She will not bite
- any more!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- As he spoke he climbed into her bed, and was immediately fast asleep. Eve
- covered him with the sheet.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will go on her other side,&rdquo; said the third. &ldquo;She shall have two to kiss
- her when she wakes!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And I am left alone!&rdquo; said the first mournfully.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I will put you to bed,&rdquo; said Eve.
- </p>
- <p>
- She gave the candle to her husband, and led the child away.
- </p>
- <p>
- We turned once more to go back to the cottage. I was very sad, for no one
- had offered me a place in the house of the dead. Eve joined us as we went,
- and walked on before with her husband. Mara by my side carried the hand of
- Lilith in the lap of her robe.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, you have found her!&rdquo; we heard Eve say as we stepped into the cottage.
- </p>
- <p>
- The door stood open; two elephant-trunks came through it out of the night
- beyond.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I sent them with the lantern,&rdquo; she went on to her husband, &ldquo;to look for
- Mara&rsquo;s leopardess: they have brought her.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I followed Adam to the door, and between us we took the white creature
- from the elephants, and carried her to the chamber we had just left, the
- women preceding us, Eve with the light, and Mara still carrying the hand.
- There we laid the beauty across the feet of the princess, her fore-paws
- outstretched, and her head couching between them.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0041" id="link2HCH0041">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XLI. I AM SENT
- </h2>
- <h3>
- Then I turned and said to Eve,
- </h3>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Mother, one couch next to Lona is empty: I know I am unworthy, but may I
- not sleep this night in your chamber with my dead? Will you not pardon
- both my cowardice and my self-confidence, and take me in? I give me up. I
- am sick of myself, and would fain sleep the sleep!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The couch next to Lona is the one already prepared for you,&rdquo; she
- answered; &ldquo;but something waits to be done ere you sleep.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am ready,&rdquo; I replied.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How do you know you can do it?&rdquo; she asked with a smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because you require it,&rdquo; I answered. &ldquo;What is it?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She turned to Adam:
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Is he forgiven, husband?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;From my heart.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then tell him what he has to do.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Adam turned to his daughter.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Give me that hand, Mara, my child.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She held it out to him in her lap. He took it tenderly.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let us go to the cottage,&rdquo; he said to me; &ldquo;there I will instruct you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- As we went, again arose a sudden stormful blast, mingled with a great
- flapping on the roof, but it died away as before in a deep moan.
- </p>
- <p>
- When the door of the death-chamber was closed behind us, Adam seated
- himself, and I stood before him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You will remember,&rdquo; he said, &ldquo;how, after leaving my daughter&rsquo;s house, you
- came to a dry rock, bearing the marks of an ancient cataract; you climbed
- that rock, and found a sandy desert: go to that rock now, and from its
- summit walk deep into the desert. But go not many steps ere you lie down,
- and listen with your head on the sand. If you hear the murmur of water
- beneath, go a little farther, and listen again. If you still hear the
- sound, you are in the right direction. Every few yards you must stop, lie
- down, and hearken. If, listening thus, at any time you hear no sound of
- water, you are out of the way, and must hearken in every direction until
- you hear it again. Keeping with the sound, and careful not to retrace your
- steps, you will soon hear it louder, and the growing sound will lead you
- to where it is loudest: that is the spot you seek. There dig with the
- spade I will give you, and dig until you come to moisture: in it lay the
- hand, cover it to the level of the desert, and come home.&mdash;But give
- good heed, and carry the hand with care. Never lay it down, in what place
- of seeming safety soever; let nothing touch it; stop nor turn aside for
- any attempt to bar your way; never look behind you; speak to no one,
- answer no one, walk straight on.&mdash;It is yet dark, and the morning is
- far distant, but you must set out at once.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He gave me the hand, and brought me a spade.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;This is my gardening spade,&rdquo; he said; &ldquo;with it I have brought many a
- lovely thing to the sun.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I took it, and went out into the night.
- </p>
- <p>
- It was very cold, and pitch-dark. To fall would be a dread thing, and the
- way I had to go was a difficult one even in the broad sunlight! But I had
- not set myself the task, and the minute I started I learned that I was
- left to no chance: a pale light broke from the ground at every step, and
- showed me where next to set my foot. Through the heather and the low rocks
- I walked without once even stumbling. I found the bad burrow quite still;
- not a wave arose, not a head appeared as I crossed it.
- </p>
- <p>
- A moon came, and herself showed me the easy way: toward morning I was
- almost over the dry channels of the first branch of the river-bed, and not
- far, I judged, from Mara&rsquo;s cottage.
- </p>
- <p>
- The moon was very low, and the sun not yet up, when I saw before me in the
- path, here narrowed by rocks, a figure covered from head to foot as with a
- veil of moonlit mist. I kept on my way as if I saw nothing. The figure
- threw aside its veil.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have you forgotten me already?&rdquo; said the princess&mdash;or what seemed
- she.
- </p>
- <p>
- I neither hesitated nor answered; I walked straight on.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You meant then to leave me in that horrible sepulchre! Do you not yet
- understand that where I please to be, there I am? Take my hand: I am alive
- as you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I was on the point of saying, &ldquo;Give me your left hand,&rdquo; but bethought
- myself, held my peace, and steadily advanced.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Give me my hand,&rdquo; she suddenly shrieked, &ldquo;or I will tear you in pieces:
- you are mine!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She flung herself upon me. I shuddered, but did not falter. Nothing
- touched me, and I saw her no more.
- </p>
- <p>
- With measured tread along the path, filling it for some distance, came a
- body of armed men. I walked through them&mdash;nor know whether they gave
- way to me, or were bodiless things. But they turned and followed me; I
- heard and felt their march at my very heels; but I cast no look behind,
- and the sound of their steps and the clash of their armour died away.
- </p>
- <p>
- A little farther on, the moon being now close to the horizon and the way
- in deep shadow, I descried, seated where the path was so narrow that I
- could not pass her, a woman with muffled face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;you are come at last! I have waited here for you an hour
- or more! You have done well! Your trial is over. My father sent me to meet
- you that you might have a little rest on the way. Give me your charge, and
- lay your head in my lap; I will take good care of both until the sun is
- well risen. I am not bitterness always, neither to all men!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Her words were terrible with temptation, for I was very weary. And what
- more likely to be true! If I were, through slavish obedience to the letter
- of the command and lack of pure insight, to trample under my feet the very
- person of the Lady of Sorrow! My heart grew faint at the thought, then
- beat as if it would burst my bosom.
- </p>
- <p>
- Nevertheless my will hardened itself against my heart, and my step did not
- falter. I took my tongue between my teeth lest I should unawares answer,
- and kept on my way. If Adam had sent her, he could not complain that I
- would not heed her! Nor would the Lady of Sorrow love me the less that
- even she had not been able to turn me aside!
- </p>
- <p>
- Just ere I reached the phantom, she pulled the covering from her face:
- great indeed was her loveliness, but those were not Mara&rsquo;s eyes! no lie
- could truly or for long imitate them! I advanced as if the thing were not
- there, and my foot found empty room.
- </p>
- <p>
- I had almost reached the other side when a Shadow&mdash;I think it was The
- Shadow, barred my way. He seemed to have a helmet upon his head, but as I
- drew closer I perceived it was the head itself I saw&mdash;so distorted as
- to bear but a doubtful resemblance to the human. A cold wind smote me,
- dank and sickening&mdash;repulsive as the air of a charnel-house; firmness
- forsook my joints, and my limbs trembled as if they would drop in a
- helpless heap. I seemed to pass through him, but I think now that he
- passed through me: for a moment I was as one of the damned. Then a soft
- wind like the first breath of a new-born spring greeted me, and before me
- arose the dawn.
- </p>
- <p>
- My way now led me past the door of Mara&rsquo;s cottage. It stood wide open, and
- upon the table I saw a loaf of bread and a pitcher of water. In or around
- the cottage was neither howl nor wail.
- </p>
- <p>
- I came to the precipice that testified to the vanished river. I climbed
- its worn face, and went on into the desert. There at last, after much
- listening to and fro, I determined the spot where the hidden water was
- loudest, hung Lilith&rsquo;s hand about my neck, and began to dig. It was a long
- labour, for I had to make a large hole because of the looseness of the
- sand; but at length I threw up a damp spadeful. I flung the sexton-tool on
- the verge, and laid down the hand. A little water was already oozing from
- under its fingers. I sprang out, and made haste to fill the grave. Then,
- utterly fatigued, I dropped beside it, and fell asleep.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0042" id="link2HCH0042">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XLII. I SLEEP THE SLEEP
- </h2>
- <p>
- When I woke, the ground was moist about me, and my track to the grave was
- growing a quicksand. In its ancient course the river was swelling, and had
- begun to shove at its burden. Soon it would be roaring down the precipice,
- and, divided in its fall, rushing with one branch to resubmerge the
- orchard valley, with the other to drown perhaps the monster horde, and
- between them to isle the Evil Wood. I set out at once on my return to
- those who sent me.
- </p>
- <p>
- When I came to the precipice, I took my way betwixt the branches, for I
- would pass again by the cottage of Mara, lest she should have returned: I
- longed to see her once more ere I went to sleep; and now I knew where to
- cross the channels, even if the river should have overtaken me and filled
- them. But when I reached it, the door stood open still; the bread and the
- water were still on the table; and deep silence was within and around it.
- I stopped and called aloud at the door, but no voice replied, and I went
- my way.
- </p>
- <p>
- A little farther, I came where sat a grayheaded man on the sand, weeping.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What ails you, sir?&rdquo; I asked. &ldquo;Are you forsaken?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I weep,&rdquo; he answered, &ldquo;because they will not let me die. I have been to
- the house of death, and its mistress, notwithstanding my years, refuses
- me. Intercede for me, sir, if you know her, I pray you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Nay, sir,&rdquo; I replied, &ldquo;that I cannot; for she refuses none whom it is
- lawful for her to receive.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How know you this of her? You have never sought death! you are much too
- young to desire it!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I fear your words may indicate that, were you young again, neither would
- you desire it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Indeed, young sir, I would not! and certain I am that you cannot.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I may not be old enough to desire to die, but I am young enough to desire
- to live indeed! Therefore I go now to learn if she will at length take me
- in. You wish to die because you do not care to live: she will not open her
- door to you, for no one can die who does not long to live.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It ill becomes your youth to mock a friendless old man. Pray, cease your
- riddles!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did not then the Mother tell you something of the same sort?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;In truth I believe she did; but I gave little heed to her excuses.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, then, sir,&rdquo; I rejoined, &ldquo;it is but too plain you have not yet learned
- to die, and I am heartily grieved for you. Such had I too been but for the
- Lady of Sorrow. I am indeed young, but I have wept many tears; pardon me,
- therefore, if I presume to offer counsel:&mdash;Go to the Lady of Sorrow,
- and &lsquo;take with both hands&rsquo; * what she will give you. Yonder lies her
- cottage. She is not in it now, but her door stands open, and there is
- bread and water on her table. Go in; sit down; eat of the bread; drink of
- the water; and wait there until she appear. Then ask counsel of her, for
- she is true, and her wisdom is great.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He fell to weeping afresh, and I left him weeping. What I said, I fear he
- did not heed. But Mara would find him!
- </p>
- <p>
- The sun was down, and the moon unrisen, when I reached the abode of the
- monsters, but it was still as a stone till I passed over. Then I heard a
- noise of many waters, and a great cry behind me, but I did not turn my
- head.
- </p>
- <p>
- Ere I reached the house of death, the cold was bitter and the darkness
- dense; and the cold and the darkness were one, and entered into my bones
- together. But the candle of Eve, shining from the window, guided me, and
- kept both frost and murk from my heart.
- </p>
- <p>
- The door stood open, and the cottage lay empty. I sat down disconsolate.
- </p>
- <p>
- And as I sat, there grew in me such a sense of loneliness as never yet in
- my wanderings had I felt. Thousands were near me, not one was with me!
- True, it was I who was dead, not they; but, whether by their life or by my
- death, we were divided! They were alive, but I was not dead enough even to
- know them alive: doubt WOULD come. They were, at best, far from me, and
- helpers I had none to lay me beside them!
- </p>
- <p>
- Never before had I known, or truly imagined desolation! In vain I took
- myself to task, saying the solitude was but a seeming: I was awake, and
- they slept&mdash;that was all! it was only that they lay so still and did
- not speak! they were with me now, and soon, soon I should be with them!
- </p>
- <p>
- I dropped Adam&rsquo;s old spade, and the dull sound of its fall on the clay
- floor seemed reverberated from the chamber beyond: a childish terror
- seized me; I sat and stared at the coffin-door.&mdash;But father Adam,
- mother Eve, sister Mara would soon come to me, and then&mdash;welcome the
- cold world and the white neighbours! I forgot my fears, lived a little,
- and loved my dead.
- </p>
- <p>
- Something did move in the chamber of the dead! There came from it what was
- LIKE a dim, far-off sound, yet was not what I knew as sound. My soul
- sprang into my ears. Was it a mere thrill of the dead air, too slight to
- be heard, but quivering in every spiritual sense? I KNEW without hearing,
- without feeling it!
- </p>
- <p>
- The something was coming! it drew nearer! In the bosom of my desertion
- awoke an infant hope. The noiseless thrill reached the coffin-door&mdash;became
- sound, and smote on my ear.
- </p>
- <p>
- The door began to move&mdash;with a low, soft creaking of its hinges. It
- was opening! I ceased to listen, and stared expectant.
- </p>
- <p>
- It opened a little way, and a face came into the opening. It was Lona&rsquo;s.
- Its eyes were closed, but the face itself was upon me, and seemed to see
- me. It was white as Eve&rsquo;s, white as Mara&rsquo;s, but did not shine like their
- faces. She spoke, and her voice was like a sleepy night-wind in the grass.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Are you coming, king?&rdquo; it said. &ldquo;I cannot rest until you are with me,
- gliding down the river to the great sea, and the beautiful dream-land. The
- sleepiness is full of lovely things: come and see them.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, my darling!&rdquo; I cried. &ldquo;Had I but known!&mdash;I thought you were
- dead!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She lay on my bosom&mdash;cold as ice frozen to marble. She threw her
- arms, so white, feebly about me, and sighed&mdash;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Carry me back to my bed, king. I want to sleep.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I bore her to the death-chamber, holding her tight lest she should
- dissolve out of my arms. Unaware that I saw, I carried her straight to her
- couch.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Lay me down,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and cover me from the warm air; it hurts&mdash;a
- little. Your bed is there, next to mine. I shall see you when I wake.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She was already asleep. I threw myself on my couch&mdash;blessed as never
- was man on the eve of his wedding.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Come, sweet cold,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;and still my heart speedily.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But there came instead a glimmer of light in the chamber, and I saw the
- face of Adam approaching. He had not the candle, yet I saw him. At the
- side of Lona&rsquo;s couch, he looked down on her with a questioning smile, and
- then greeted me across it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We have been to the top of the hill to hear the waters on their way,&rdquo; he
- said. &ldquo;They will be in the den of the monsters to-night.&mdash;But why did
- you not await our return?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My child could not sleep,&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is fast asleep!&rdquo; he rejoined.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes, now!&rdquo; I said; &ldquo;but she was awake when I laid her down.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She was asleep all the time!&rdquo; he insisted. &ldquo;She was perhaps dreaming
- about you&mdash;and came to you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She did.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And did you not see that her eyes were closed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Now I think of it, I did.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;If you had looked ere you laid her down, you would have seen her asleep
- on the couch.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That would have been terrible!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You would only have found that she was no longer in your arms.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That would have been worse!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is, perhaps, to think of; but to see it would not have troubled you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Dear father,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;how is it that I am not sleepy? I thought I should
- go to sleep like the Little Ones the moment I laid my head down!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your hour is not quite come. You must have food ere you sleep.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, I ought not to have lain down without your leave, for I cannot sleep
- without your help! I will get up at once!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But I found my own weight more than I could move.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is no need: we will serve you here,&rdquo; he answered. &ldquo;&mdash;You do
- not feel cold, do you?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not too cold to lie still, but perhaps too cold to eat!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He came to the side of my couch, bent over me, and breathed on my heart.
- At once I was warm.
- </p>
- <p>
- As he left me, I heard a voice, and knew it was the Mother&rsquo;s. She was
- singing, and her song was sweet and soft and low, and I thought she sat by
- my bed in the dark; but ere it ceased, her song soared aloft, and seemed
- to come from the throat of a woman-angel, high above all the region of
- larks, higher than man had ever yet lifted up his heart. I heard every
- word she sang, but could keep only this:&mdash;
- </p>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
- &ldquo;Many a wrong, and its curing song;
- Many a road, and many an inn;
- Room to roam, but only one home
- For all the world to win!&rdquo;
- </pre>
- <p>
- and I thought I had heard the song before.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then the three came to my couch together, bringing me bread and wine, and
- I sat up to partake of it. Adam stood on one side of me, Eve and Mara on
- the other.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are good indeed, father Adam, mother Eve, sister Mara,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;to
- receive me! In my soul I am ashamed and sorry!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;We knew you would come again!&rdquo; answered Eve.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How could you know it?&rdquo; I returned.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Because here was I, born to look after my brothers and sisters!&rdquo; answered
- Mara with a smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Every creature must one night yield himself and lie down,&rdquo; answered Adam:
- &ldquo;he was made for liberty, and must not be left a slave!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It will be late, I fear, ere all have lain down!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;There is no early or late here,&rdquo; he rejoined. &ldquo;For him the true time then
- first begins who lays himself down. Men are not coming home fast; women
- are coming faster. A desert, wide and dreary, parts him who lies down to
- die from him who lies down to live. The former may well make haste, but
- here is no haste.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;To our eyes,&rdquo; said Eve, &ldquo;you were coming all the time: we knew Mara would
- find you, and you must come!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How long is it since my father lay down?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I have told you that years are of no consequence in this house,&rdquo; answered
- Adam; &ldquo;we do not heed them. Your father will wake when his morning comes.
- Your mother, next to whom you are lying,&mdash;&mdash;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah, then, it IS my mother!&rdquo; I exclaimed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes&mdash;she with the wounded hand,&rdquo; he assented; &ldquo;&mdash;she will be up
- and away long ere your morning is ripe.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am sorry.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Rather be glad.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It must be a sight for God Himself to see such a woman come awake!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is indeed a sight for God, a sight that makes her Maker glad! He sees
- of the travail of His soul, and is satisfied!&mdash;Look at her once more,
- and sleep.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He let the rays of his candle fall on her beautiful face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She looks much younger!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She IS much younger,&rdquo; he replied. &ldquo;Even Lilith already begins to look
- younger!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I lay down, blissfully drowsy.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But when you see your mother again,&rdquo; he continued, &ldquo;you will not at first
- know her. She will go on steadily growing younger until she reaches the
- perfection of her womanhood&mdash;a splendour beyond foresight. Then she
- will open her eyes, behold on one side her husband, on the other her son&mdash;and
- rise and leave them to go to a father and a brother more to her than
- they.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I heard as one in a dream. I was very cold, but already the cold caused me
- no suffering. I felt them put on me the white garment of the dead. Then I
- forgot everything. The night about me was pale with sleeping faces, but I
- was asleep also, nor knew that I slept.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0043" id="link2HCH0043">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XLIII. THE DREAMS THAT CAME
- </h2>
- <p>
- I grew aware of existence, aware also of the profound, the infinite cold.
- I was intensely blessed&mdash;more blessed, I know, than my heart,
- imagining, can now recall. I could not think of warmth with the least
- suggestion of pleasure. I knew that I had enjoyed it, but could not
- remember how. The cold had soothed every care, dissolved every pain,
- comforted every sorrow. COMFORTED? Nay; sorrow was swallowed up in the
- life drawing nigh to restore every good and lovely thing a hundredfold! I
- lay at peace, full of the quietest expectation, breathing the damp odours
- of Earth&rsquo;s bountiful bosom, aware of the souls of primroses, daisies and
- snowdrops, patiently waiting in it for the Spring.
- </p>
- <p>
- How convey the delight of that frozen, yet conscious sleep! I had no more
- to stand up! had only to lie stretched out and still! How cold I was,
- words cannot tell; yet I grew colder and colder&mdash;and welcomed the
- cold yet more and more. I grew continuously less conscious of myself,
- continuously more conscious of bliss, unimaginable yet felt. I had neither
- made it nor prayed for it: it was mine in virtue of existence! and
- existence was mine in virtue of a Will that dwelt in mine.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then the dreams began to arrive&mdash;and came crowding.&mdash;I lay naked
- on a snowy peak. The white mist heaved below me like a billowy sea. The
- cold moon was in the air with me, and above the moon and me the colder
- sky, in which the moon and I dwelt. I was Adam, waiting for God to breathe
- into my nostrils the breath of life.&mdash;I was not Adam, but a child in
- the bosom of a mother white with a radiant whiteness. I was a youth on a
- white horse, leaping from cloud to cloud of a blue heaven, hasting calmly
- to some blessed goal. For centuries I dreamed&mdash;or was it chiliads? or
- only one long night?&mdash;But why ask? for time had nothing to do with
- me; I was in the land of thought&mdash;farther in, higher up than the
- seven dimensions, the ten senses: I think I was where I am&mdash;in the
- heart of God.&mdash;I dreamed away dim cycles in the centre of a melting
- glacier, the spectral moon drawing nearer and nearer, the wind and the
- welter of a torrent growing in my ears. I lay and heard them: the wind and
- the water and the moon sang a peaceful waiting for a redemption drawing
- nigh. I dreamed cycles, I say, but, for aught I knew or can tell, they
- were the solemn, æonian march of a second, pregnant with eternity.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then, of a sudden, but not once troubling my conscious bliss, all the
- wrongs I had ever done, from far beyond my earthly memory down to the
- present moment, were with me. Fully in every wrong lived the conscious I,
- confessing, abjuring, lamenting the dead, making atonement with each
- person I had injured, hurt, or offended. Every human soul to which I had
- caused a troubled thought, was now grown unspeakably dear to me, and I
- humbled myself before it, agonising to cast from between us the clinging
- offence. I wept at the feet of the mother whose commands I had slighted;
- with bitter shame I confessed to my father that I had told him two lies,
- and long forgotten them: now for long had remembered them, and kept them
- in memory to crush at last at his feet. I was the eager slave of all whom
- I had thus or anyhow wronged. Countless services I devised to render them!
- For this one I would build such a house as had never grown from the
- ground! for that one I would train such horses as had never yet been seen
- in any world! For a third I would make such a garden as had never bloomed,
- haunted with still pools, and alive with running waters! I would write
- songs to make their hearts swell, and tales to make them glow! I would
- turn the forces of the world into such channels of invention as to make
- them laugh with the joy of wonder! Love possessed me! Love was my life!
- Love was to me, as to him that made me, all in all!
- </p>
- <p>
- Suddenly I found myself in a solid blackness, upon which the ghost of
- light that dwells in the caverns of the eyes could not cast one fancied
- glimmer. But my heart, which feared nothing and hoped infinitely, was full
- of peace. I lay imagining what the light would be when it came, and what
- new creation it would bring with it&mdash;when, suddenly, without
- conscious volition, I sat up and stared about me.
- </p>
- <p>
- The moon was looking in at the lowest, horizontal, crypt-like windows of
- the death-chamber, her long light slanting, I thought, across the fallen,
- but still ripening sheaves of the harvest of the great husbandman.&mdash;But
- no; that harvest was gone! Gathered in, or swept away by chaotic storm,
- not a sacred sheaf was there! My dead were gone! I was alone!&mdash;In
- desolation dread lay depths yet deeper than I had hitherto known!&mdash;Had
- there never been any ripening dead? Had I but dreamed them and their
- loveliness? Why then these walls? why the empty couches? No; they were all
- up! they were all abroad in the new eternal day, and had forgotten me!
- They had left me behind, and alone! Tenfold more terrible was the tomb its
- inhabitants away! The quiet ones had made me quiet with their presence&mdash;had
- pervaded my mind with their blissful peace; now I had no friend, and my
- lovers were far from me! A moment I sat and stared horror-stricken. I had
- been alone with the moon on a mountain top in the sky; now I was alone
- with her in a huge cenotaph: she too was staring about, seeking her dead
- with ghastly gaze! I sprang to my feet, and staggered from the fearful
- place.
- </p>
- <p>
- The cottage was empty. I ran out into the night.
- </p>
- <p>
- No moon was there! Even as I left the chamber, a cloudy rampart had risen
- and covered her. But a broad shimmer came from far over the heath, mingled
- with a ghostly murmuring music, as if the moon were raining a light that
- plashed as it fell. I ran stumbling across the moor, and found a lovely
- lake, margined with reeds and rushes: the moon behind the cloud was gazing
- upon the monsters&rsquo; den, full of clearest, brightest water, and very still.&mdash;But
- the musical murmur went on, filling the quiet air, and drawing me after
- it.
- </p>
- <p>
- I walked round the border of the little mere, and climbed the range of
- hills. What a sight rose to my eyes! The whole expanse where, with hot,
- aching feet, I had crossed and recrossed the deep-scored channels and
- ravines of the dry river-bed, was alive with streams, with torrents, with
- still pools&mdash;&ldquo;a river deep and wide&rdquo;! How the moon flashed on the
- water! how the water answered the moon with flashes of its own&mdash;white
- flashes breaking everywhere from its rock-encountered flow! And a great
- jubilant song arose from its bosom, the song of new-born liberty. I stood
- a moment gazing, and my heart also began to exult: my life was not all a
- failure! I had helped to set this river free!&mdash;My dead were not lost!
- I had but to go after and find them! I would follow and follow until I
- came whither they had gone! Our meeting might be thousands of years away,
- but at last&mdash;AT LAST I should hold them! Wherefore else did the
- floods clap their hands?
- </p>
- <p>
- I hurried down the hill: my pilgrimage was begun! In what direction to
- turn my steps I knew not, but I must go and go till I found my living
- dead! A torrent ran swift and wide at the foot of the range: I rushed in,
- it laid no hold upon me; I waded through it. The next I sprang across; the
- third I swam; the next I waded again.
- </p>
- <p>
- I stopped to gaze on the wondrous loveliness of the ceaseless flash and
- flow, and to hearken to the multitudinous broken music. Every now and then
- some incipient air would seem about to draw itself clear of the dulcet
- confusion, only to merge again in the consorted roar. At moments the world
- of waters would invade as if to overwhelm me&mdash;not with the force of
- its seaward rush, or the shouting of its liberated throng, but with the
- greatness of the silence wandering into sound.
- </p>
- <p>
- As I stood lost in delight, a hand was laid on my shoulder. I turned, and
- saw a man in the prime of strength, beautiful as if fresh from the heart
- of the glad creator, young like him who cannot grow old. I looked: it was
- Adam. He stood large and grand, clothed in a white robe, with the moon in
- his hair.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Father,&rdquo; I cried, &ldquo;where is she? Where are the dead? Is the great
- resurrection come and gone? The terror of my loneliness was upon me; I
- could not sleep without my dead; I ran from the desolate chamber.&mdash;Whither
- shall I go to find them?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You mistake, my son,&rdquo; he answered, in a voice whose very breath was
- consolation. &ldquo;You are still in the chamber of death, still upon your
- couch, asleep and dreaming, with the dead around you.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Alas! when I but dream how am I to know it? The dream best dreamed is the
- likest to the waking truth!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;When you are quite dead, you will dream no false dream. The soul that is
- true can generate nothing that is not true, neither can the false enter
- it.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, sir,&rdquo; I faltered, &ldquo;how am I to distinguish betwixt the true and the
- false where both alike seem real?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Do you not understand?&rdquo; he returned, with a smile that might have slain
- all the sorrows of all his children. &ldquo;You CANNOT perfectly distinguish
- between the true and the false while you are not yet quite dead; neither
- indeed will you when you are quite dead&mdash;that is, quite alive, for
- then the false will never present itself. At this moment, believe me, you
- are on your bed in the house of death.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I am trying hard to believe you, father. I do indeed believe you,
- although I can neither see nor feel the truth of what you say.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You are not to blame that you cannot. And because even in a dream you
- believe me, I will help you.&mdash;Put forth your left hand open, and
- close it gently: it will clasp the hand of your Lona, who lies asleep
- where you lie dreaming you are awake.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I put forth my hand: it closed on the hand of Lona, firm and soft and
- deathless.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But, father,&rdquo; I cried, &ldquo;she is warm!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Your hand is as warm to hers. Cold is a thing unknown in our country.
- Neither she nor you are yet in the fields of home, but each to each is
- alive and warm and healthful.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Then my heart was glad. But immediately supervened a sharp-stinging doubt.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Father,&rdquo; I said, &ldquo;forgive me, but how am I to know surely that this also
- is not a part of the lovely dream in which I am now walking with thyself?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Thou doubtest because thou lovest the truth. Some would willingly believe
- life but a phantasm, if only it might for ever afford them a world of
- pleasant dreams: thou art not of such! Be content for a while not to know
- surely. The hour will come, and that ere long, when, being true, thou
- shalt behold the very truth, and doubt will be for ever dead. Scarce,
- then, wilt thou be able to recall the features of the phantom. Thou wilt
- then know that which thou canst not now dream. Thou hast not yet looked
- the Truth in the face, hast as yet at best but seen him through a cloud.
- That which thou seest not, and never didst see save in a glass darkly&mdash;that
- which, indeed, never can be known save by its innate splendour shining
- straight into pure eyes&mdash;that thou canst not but doubt, and art
- blameless in doubting until thou seest it face to face, when thou wilt no
- longer be able to doubt it. But to him who has once seen even a shadow
- only of the truth, and, even but hoping he has seen it when it is present
- no longer, tries to obey it&mdash;to him the real vision, the Truth
- himself, will come, and depart no more, but abide with him for ever.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think I see, father,&rdquo; I said; &ldquo;I think I understand.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Then remember, and recall. Trials yet await thee, heavy, of a nature thou
- knowest not now. Remember the things thou hast seen. Truly thou knowest
- not those things, but thou knowest what they have seemed, what they have
- meant to thee! Remember also the things thou shalt yet see. Truth is all
- in all; and the truth of things lies, at once hid and revealed, in their
- seeming.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How can that be, father?&rdquo; I said, and raised my eyes with the question;
- for I had been listening with downbent head, aware of nothing but the
- voice of Adam.
- </p>
- <p>
- He was gone; in my ears was nought but the sounding silence of the
- swift-flowing waters. I stretched forth my hands to find him, but no
- answering touch met their seeking. I was alone&mdash;alone in the land of
- dreams! To myself I seemed wide awake, but I believed I was in a dream,
- because he had told me so.
- </p>
- <p>
- Even in a dream, however, the dreamer must do something! he cannot sit
- down and refuse to stir until the dream grow weary of him and depart: I
- took up my wandering, and went on.
- </p>
- <p>
- Many channels I crossed, and came to a wider space of rock; there,
- dreaming I was weary, I laid myself down, and longed to be awake.
- </p>
- <p>
- I was about to rise and resume my journey, when I discovered that I lay
- beside a pit in the rock, whose mouth was like that of a grave. It was
- deep and dark; I could see no bottom.
- </p>
- <p>
- Now in the dreams of my childhood I had found that a fall invariably woke
- me, and would, therefore, when desiring to discontinue a dream, seek some
- eminence whence to cast myself down that I might wake: with one glance at
- the peaceful heavens, and one at the rushing waters, I rolled myself over
- the edge of the pit.
- </p>
- <p>
- For a moment consciousness left me. When it returned, I stood in the
- garret of my own house, in the little wooden chamber of the cowl and the
- mirror.
- </p>
- <p>
- Unspeakable despair, hopelessness blank and dreary, invaded me with the
- knowledge: between me and my Lona lay an abyss impassable! stretched a
- distance no chain could measure! Space and Time and Mode of Being, as with
- walls of adamant unscalable, impenetrable, shut me in from that gulf!
- True, it might yet be in my power to pass again through the door of light,
- and journey back to the chamber of the dead; and if so, I was parted from
- that chamber only by a wide heath, and by the pale, starry night betwixt
- me and the sun, which alone could open for me the mirror-door, and was now
- far away on the other side of the world! but an immeasurably wider gulf
- sank between us in this&mdash;that she was asleep and I was awake! that I
- was no longer worthy to share with her that sleep, and could no longer
- hope to awake from it with her! For truly I was much to blame: I had fled
- from my dream! The dream was not of my making, any more than was my life:
- I ought to have seen it to the end! and in fleeing from it, I had left the
- holy sleep itself behind me!&mdash;I would go back to Adam, tell him the
- truth, and bow to his decree!
- </p>
- <p>
- I crept to my chamber, threw myself on my bed, and passed a dreamless
- night.
- </p>
- <p>
- I rose, and listlessly sought the library. On the way I met no one; the
- house seemed dead. I sat down with a book to await the noontide: not a
- sentence could I understand! The mutilated manuscript offered itself from
- the masked door: the sight of it sickened me; what to me was the princess
- with her devilry!
- </p>
- <p>
- I rose and looked out of a window. It was a brilliant morning. With a
- great rush the fountain shot high, and fell roaring back. The sun sat in
- its feathery top. Not a bird sang, not a creature was to be seen. Raven
- nor librarian came near me. The world was dead about me. I took another
- book, sat down again, and went on waiting.
- </p>
- <p>
- Noon was near. I went up the stairs to the dumb, shadowy roof. I closed
- behind me the door into the wooden chamber, and turned to open the door
- out of a dreary world.
- </p>
- <p>
- I left the chamber with a heart of stone. Do what I might, all was
- fruitless. I pulled the chains; adjusted and re-adjusted the hood;
- arranged and re-arranged the mirrors; no result followed. I waited and
- waited to give the vision time; it would not come; the mirror stood blank;
- nothing lay in its dim old depth but the mirror opposite and my haggard
- face.
- </p>
- <p>
- I went back to the library. There the books were hateful to me&mdash;for I
- had once loved them.
- </p>
- <p>
- That night I lay awake from down-lying to uprising, and the next day
- renewed my endeavours with the mystic door. But all was yet in vain. How
- the hours went I cannot think. No one came nigh me; not a sound from the
- house below entered my ears. Not once did I feel weary&mdash;only
- desolate, drearily desolate.
- </p>
- <p>
- I passed a second sleepless night. In the morning I went for the last time
- to the chamber in the roof, and for the last time sought an open door:
- there was none. My heart died within me. I had lost my Lona!
- </p>
- <p>
- Was she anywhere? had she ever been, save in the mouldering cells of my
- brain? &ldquo;I must die one day,&rdquo; I thought, &ldquo;and then, straight from my
- death-bed, I will set out to find her! If she is not, I will go to the
- Father and say&mdash;&lsquo;Even thou canst not help me: let me cease, I pray
- thee!&rsquo;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0044" id="link2HCH0044">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XLIV. THE WAKING
- </h2>
- <p>
- The fourth night I seemed to fall asleep, and that night woke indeed. I
- opened my eyes and knew, although all was dark around me, that I lay in
- the house of death, and that every moment since there I fell asleep I had
- been dreaming, and now first was awake. &ldquo;At last!&rdquo; I said to my heart, and
- it leaped for joy. I turned my eyes; Lona stood by my couch, waiting for
- me! I had never lost her!&mdash;only for a little time lost the sight of
- her! Truly I needed not have lamented her so sorely!
- </p>
- <p>
- It was dark, as I say, but I saw her: SHE was not dark! Her eyes shone
- with the radiance of the Mother&rsquo;s, and the same light issued from her face&mdash;nor
- from her face only, for her death-dress, filled with the light of her body
- now tenfold awake in the power of its resurrection, was white as snow and
- glistering. She fell asleep a girl; she awoke a woman, ripe with the
- loveliness of the life essential. I folded her in my arms, and knew that I
- lived indeed.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I woke first!&rdquo; she said, with a wondering smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You did, my love, and woke me!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I only looked at you and waited,&rdquo; she answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- The candle came floating toward us through the dark, and in a few moments
- Adam and Eve and Mara were with us. They greeted us with a quiet
- good-morning and a smile: they were used to such wakings!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I hope you have had a pleasant darkness!&rdquo; said the Mother.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Not very,&rdquo; I answered, &ldquo;but the waking from it is heavenly.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is but begun,&rdquo; she rejoined; &ldquo;you are hardly yet awake!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He is at least clothed-upon with Death, which is the radiant garment of
- Life,&rdquo; said Adam.
- </p>
- <p>
- He embraced Lona his child, put an arm around me, looked a moment or two
- inquiringly at the princess, and patted the head of the leopardess.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I think we shall meet you two again before long,&rdquo; he said, looking first
- at Lona, then at me.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Have we to die again?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;No,&rdquo; he answered, with a smile like the Mother&rsquo;s; &ldquo;you have died into
- life, and will die no more; you have only to keep dead. Once dying as we
- die here, all the dying is over. Now you have only to live, and that you
- must, with all your blessed might. The more you live, the stronger you
- become to live.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But shall I not grow weary with living so strong?&rdquo; I said. &ldquo;What if I
- cease to live with all my might?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It needs but the will, and the strength is there!&rdquo; said the Mother. &ldquo;Pure
- life has no weakness to grow weary withal. THE Life keeps generating ours.&mdash;Those
- who will not die, die many times, die constantly, keep dying deeper, never
- have done dying; here all is upwardness and love and gladness.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She ceased with a smile and a look that seemed to say, &ldquo;We are mother and
- son; we understand each other! Between us no farewell is possible.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Mara kissed me on the forehead, and said, gayly,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I told you, brother, all would be well!&mdash;When next you would
- comfort, say, &lsquo;What will be well, is even now well.&rsquo;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She gave a little sigh, and I thought it meant, &ldquo;But they will not believe
- you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;&mdash;You know me now!&rdquo; she ended, with a smile like her mother&rsquo;s.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I know you!&rdquo; I answered: &ldquo;you are the voice that cried in the wilderness
- before ever the Baptist came! you are the shepherd whose wolves hunt the
- wandering sheep home ere the shadow rise and the night grow dark!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My work will one day be over,&rdquo; she said, &ldquo;and then I shall be glad with
- the gladness of the great shepherd who sent me.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;All the night long the morning is at hand,&rdquo; said Adam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is that flapping of wings I hear?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The Shadow is hovering,&rdquo; replied Adam: &ldquo;there is one here whom he counts
- his own! But ours once, never more can she be his!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I turned to look on the faces of my father and mother, and kiss them ere
- we went: their couches were empty save of the Little Ones who had with
- love&rsquo;s boldness appropriated their hospitality! For an instant that awful
- dream of desolation overshadowed me, and I turned aside.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What is it, my heart?&rdquo; said Lona.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Their empty places frightened me,&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They are up and away long ago,&rdquo; said Adam. &ldquo;They kissed you ere they
- went, and whispered, &lsquo;Come soon.&rsquo;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And I neither to feel nor hear them!&rdquo; I murmured.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;How could you&mdash;far away in your dreary old house! You thought the
- dreadful place had you once more! Now go and find them.&mdash;Your
- parents, my child,&rdquo; he added, turning to Lona, &ldquo;must come and find you!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The hour of our departure was at hand. Lona went to the couch of the
- mother who had slain her, and kissed her tenderly&mdash;then laid herself
- in her father&rsquo;s arms.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;That kiss will draw her homeward, my Lona!&rdquo; said Adam.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Who were her parents?&rdquo; asked Lona.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My father,&rdquo; answered Adam, &ldquo;is her father also.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- She turned and laid her hand in mine.
- </p>
- <p>
- I kneeled and humbly thanked the three for helping me to die. Lona knelt
- beside me, and they all breathed upon us.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Hark! I hear the sun,&rdquo; said Adam.
- </p>
- <p>
- I listened: he was coming with the rush as of a thousand times ten
- thousand far-off wings, with the roar of a molten and flaming world
- millions upon millions of miles away. His approach was a crescendo chord
- of a hundred harmonies.
- </p>
- <p>
- The three looked at each other and smiled, and that smile went floating
- heavenward a three-petaled flower, the family&rsquo;s morning thanksgiving. From
- their mouths and their faces it spread over their bodies and shone through
- their garments. Ere I could say, &ldquo;Lo, they change!&rdquo; Adam and Eve stood
- before me the angels of the resurrection, and Mara was the Magdalene with
- them at the sepulchre. The countenance of Adam was like lightning, and Eve
- held a napkin that flung flakes of splendour about the place.
- </p>
- <p>
- A wind began to moan in pulsing gusts.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;You hear his wings now!&rdquo; said Adam; and I knew he did not mean the wings
- of the morning.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It is the great Shadow stirring to depart,&rdquo; he went on. &ldquo;Wretched
- creature, he has himself within him, and cannot rest!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But is there not in him something deeper yet?&rdquo; I asked.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Without a substance,&rdquo; he answered, &ldquo;a shadow cannot be&mdash;yea, or
- without a light behind the substance!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He listened for a moment, then called out, with a glad smile, &ldquo;Hark to the
- golden cock! Silent and motionless for millions of years has he stood on
- the clock of the universe; now at last he is flapping his wings! now will
- he begin to crow! and at intervals will men hear him until the dawn of the
- day eternal.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I listened. Far away&mdash;as in the heart of an æonian silence, I heard
- the clear jubilant outcry of the golden throat. It hurled defiance at
- death and the dark; sang infinite hope, and coming calm. It was the
- &ldquo;expectation of the creature&rdquo; finding at last a voice; the cry of a chaos
- that would be a kingdom!
- </p>
- <p>
- Then I heard a great flapping.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The black bat is flown!&rdquo; said Mara.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Amen, golden cock, bird of God!&rdquo; cried Adam, and the words rang through
- the house of silence, and went up into the airy regions.
- </p>
- <p>
- At his AMEN&mdash;like doves arising on wings of silver from among the
- potsherds, up sprang the Little Ones to their knees on their beds, calling
- aloud,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Crow! crow again, golden cock!&rdquo;&mdash;as if they had both seen and heard
- him in their dreams.
- </p>
- <p>
- Then each turned and looked at the sleeping bedfellow, gazed a moment with
- loving eyes, kissed the silent companion of the night, and sprang from the
- couch. The Little Ones who had lain down beside my father and mother gazed
- blank and sad for a moment at their empty places, then slid slowly to the
- floor. There they fell each into the other&rsquo;s arms, as if then first, each
- by the other&rsquo;s eyes, assured they were alive and awake. Suddenly spying
- Lona, they came running, radiant with bliss, to embrace her. Odu, catching
- sight of the leopardess on the feet of the princess, bounded to her next,
- and throwing an arm over the great sleeping head, fondled and kissed it.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wake up, wake up, darling!&rdquo; he cried; &ldquo;it is time to wake!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- The leopardess did not move.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She has slept herself cold!&rdquo; he said to Mara, with an upcast look of
- appealing consternation.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is waiting for the princess to wake, my child,&rdquo; said Mara.
- </p>
- <p>
- Odu looked at the princess, and saw beside her, still asleep, two of his
- companions. He flew at them.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Wake up! wake up!&rdquo; he cried, and pushed and pulled, now this one, now
- that.
- </p>
- <p>
- But soon he began to look troubled, and turned to me with misty eyes.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They will not wake!&rdquo; he said. &ldquo;And why are they so cold?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;They too are waiting for the princess,&rdquo; I answered.
- </p>
- <p>
- He stretched across, and laid his hand on her face.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;She is cold too! What is it?&rdquo; he cried&mdash;and looked round in
- wondering dismay.
- </p>
- <p>
- Adam went to him.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Her wake is not ripe yet,&rdquo; he said: &ldquo;she is busy forgetting. When she has
- forgotten enough to remember enough, then she will soon be ripe, and
- wake.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;And remember?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Yes&mdash;but not too much at once though.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But the golden cock has crown!&rdquo; argued the child, and fell again upon his
- companions.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Peter! Peter! Crispy!&rdquo; he cried. &ldquo;Wake up, Peter! wake up, Crispy! We are
- all awake but you two! The gold cock has crown SO loud! The sun is awake
- and coming! Oh, why WON&rsquo;T you wake?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- But Peter would not wake, neither would Crispy, and Odu wept outright at
- last.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Let them sleep, darling!&rdquo; said Adam. &ldquo;You would not like the princess to
- wake and find nobody? They are quite happy. So is the leopardess.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- He was comforted, and wiped his eyes as if he had been all his life used
- to weeping and wiping, though now first he had tears wherewith to weep&mdash;soon
- to be wiped altogether away.
- </p>
- <p>
- We followed Eve to the cottage. There she offered us neither bread nor
- wine, but stood radiantly desiring our departure. So, with never a word of
- farewell, we went out. The horse and the elephants were at the door,
- waiting for us. We were too happy to mount them, and they followed us.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0045" id="link2HCH0045">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XLV. THE JOURNEY HOME
- </h2>
- <p>
- It had ceased to be dark; we walked in a dim twilight, breathing through
- the dimness the breath of the spring. A wondrous change had passed upon
- the world&mdash;or was it not rather that a change more marvellous had
- taken place in us? Without light enough in the sky or the air to reveal
- anything, every heather-bush, every small shrub, every blade of grass was
- perfectly visible&mdash;either by light that went out from it, as fire
- from the bush Moses saw in the desert, or by light that went out of our
- eyes. Nothing cast a shadow; all things interchanged a little light. Every
- growing thing showed me, by its shape and colour, its indwelling idea&mdash;the
- informing thought, that is, which was its being, and sent it out. My bare
- feet seemed to love every plant they trod upon. The world and my being,
- its life and mine, were one. The microcosm and macrocosm were at length
- atoned, at length in harmony! I lived in everything; everything entered
- and lived in me. To be aware of a thing, was to know its life at once and
- mine, to know whence we came, and where we were at home&mdash;was to know
- that we are all what we are, because Another is what he is! Sense after
- sense, hitherto asleep, awoke in me&mdash;sense after sense indescribable,
- because no correspondent words, no likenesses or imaginations exist,
- wherewithal to describe them. Full indeed&mdash;yet ever expanding, ever
- making room to receive&mdash;was the conscious being where things kept
- entering by so many open doors! When a little breeze brushing a bush of
- heather set its purple bells a ringing, I was myself in the joy of the
- bells, myself in the joy of the breeze to which responded their sweet
- TIN-TINNING**, myself in the joy of the sense, and of the soul that
- received all the joys together. To everything glad I lent the hall of my
- being wherein to revel. I was a peaceful ocean upon which the ground-swell
- of a living joy was continually lifting new waves; yet was the joy ever
- the same joy, the eternal joy, with tens of thousands of changing forms.
- Life was a cosmic holiday.
- </p>
- <p>
- Now I knew that life and truth were one; that life mere and pure is in
- itself bliss; that where being is not bliss, it is not life, but
- life-in-death. Every inspiration of the dark wind that blew where it
- listed, went out a sigh of thanksgiving. At last I was! I lived, and
- nothing could touch my life! My darling walked beside me, and we were on
- our way home to the Father!
- </p>
- <p>
- So much was ours ere ever the first sun rose upon our freedom: what must
- not the eternal day bring with it!
- </p>
- <p>
- We came to the fearful hollow where once had wallowed the monsters of the
- earth: it was indeed, as I had beheld it in my dream, a lovely lake. I
- gazed into its pellucid depths. A whirlpool had swept out the soil in
- which the abortions burrowed, and at the bottom lay visible the whole
- horrid brood: a dim greenish light pervaded the crystalline water, and
- revealed every hideous form beneath it. Coiled in spires, folded in
- layers, knotted on themselves, or &ldquo;extended long and large,&rdquo; they weltered
- in motionless heaps&mdash;shapes more fantastic in ghoulish, blasting
- dismay, than ever wine-sodden brain of exhausted poet fevered into
- misbeing. He who dived in the swirling Maelstrom saw none to compare with
- them in horror: tentacular convolutions, tumid bulges, glaring orbs of
- sepian deformity, would have looked to him innocence beside such
- incarnations of hatefulness&mdash;every head the wicked flower that,
- bursting from an abominable stalk, perfected its evil significance.
- </p>
- <p>
- Not one of them moved as we passed. But they were not dead. So long as
- exist men and women of unwholesome mind, that lake will still be peopled
- with loathsomenesses.
- </p>
- <p>
- But hark the herald of the sun, the auroral wind, softly trumpeting his
- approach! The master-minister of the human tabernacle is at hand! Heaping
- before his prow a huge ripple-fretted wave of crimson and gold, he rushes
- aloft, as if new launched from the urging hand of his maker into the upper
- sea&mdash;pauses, and looks down on the world. White-raving storm of
- molten metals, he is but a coal from the altar of the Father&rsquo;s
- never-ending sacrifice to his children. See every little flower straighten
- its stalk, lift up its neck, and with outstretched head stand expectant:
- something more than the sun, greater than the light, is coming, is coming&mdash;none
- the less surely coming that it is long upon the road! What matters to-day,
- or to-morrow, or ten thousand years to Life himself, to Love himself! He
- is coming, is coming, and the necks of all humanity are stretched out to
- see him come! Every morning will they thus outstretch themselves, every
- evening will they droop and wait&mdash;until he comes.&mdash;Is this but
- an air-drawn vision? When he comes, will he indeed find them watching
- thus?
- </p>
- <p>
- It was a glorious resurrection-morning. The night had been spent in
- preparing it!
- </p>
- <p>
- The children went gamboling before, and the beasts came after us.
- Fluttering butterflies, darting dragon-flies hovered or shot hither and
- thither about our heads, a cloud of colours and flashes, now descending
- upon us like a snow-storm of rainbow flakes, now rising into the humid air
- like a rolling vapour of embodied odours. It was a summer-day more like
- itself, that is, more ideal, than ever man that had not died found
- summer-day in any world. I walked on the new earth, under the new heaven,
- and found them the same as the old, save that now they opened their minds
- to me, and I saw into them. Now, the soul of everything I met came out to
- greet me and make friends with me, telling me we came from the same, and
- meant the same. I was going to him, they said, with whom they always were,
- and whom they always meant; they were, they said, lightnings that took
- shape as they flashed from him to his. The dark rocks drank like sponges
- the rays that showered upon them; the great world soaked up the light, and
- sent out the living. Two joy-fires were Lona and I. Earth breathed
- heavenward her sweet-savoured smoke; we breathed homeward our longing
- desires. For thanksgiving, our very consciousness was that.
- </p>
- <p>
- We came to the channels, once so dry and wearyful: they ran and flashed
- and foamed with living water that shouted in its gladness! Far as the eye
- could see, all was a rushing, roaring, dashing river of water made vocal
- by its rocks.
- </p>
- <p>
- We did not cross it, but &ldquo;walked in glory and in joy&rdquo; up its right bank,
- until we reached the great cataract at the foot of the sandy desert,
- where, roaring and swirling and dropping sheer, the river divided into its
- two branches. There we climbed the height&mdash;and found no desert:
- through grassy plains, between grassy banks, flowed the deep, wide, silent
- river full to the brim. Then first to the Little Ones was revealed the
- glory of God in the limpid flow of water. Instinctively they plunged and
- swam, and the beasts followed them.
- </p>
- <p>
- The desert rejoiced and blossomed as the rose. Wide forests had sprung up,
- their whole undergrowth flowering shrubs peopled with song-birds. Every
- thicket gave birth to a rivulet, and every rivulet to its water-song.
- </p>
- <p>
- The place of the buried hand gave no sign. Beyond and still beyond, the
- river came in full volume from afar. Up and up we went, now along grassy
- margin, and now through forest of gracious trees. The grass grew sweeter
- and its flowers more lovely and various as we went; the trees grew larger,
- and the wind fuller of messages.
- </p>
- <p>
- We came at length to a forest whose trees were greater, grander, and more
- beautiful than any we had yet seen. Their live pillars upheaved a thick
- embowed roof, betwixt whose leaves and blossoms hardly a sunbeam filtered.
- Into the rafters of this aerial vault the children climbed, and through
- them went scrambling and leaping in a land of bloom, shouting to the
- unseen elephants below, and hearing them trumpet their replies. The
- conversations between them Lona understood while I but guessed at them
- blunderingly. The Little Ones chased the squirrels, and the squirrels,
- frolicking, drew them on&mdash;always at length allowing themselves to be
- caught and petted. Often would some bird, lovely in plumage and form,
- light upon one of them, sing a song of what was coming, and fly away. Not
- one monkey of any sort could they see.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0046" id="link2HCH0046">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XLVI. THE CITY
- </h2>
- <p>
- Lona and I, who walked below, heard at last a great shout overhead, and in
- a moment or two the Little Ones began to come dropping down from the
- foliage with the news that, climbing to the top of a tree yet taller than
- the rest, they had descried, far across the plain, a curious something on
- the side of a solitary mountain&mdash;which mountain, they said, rose and
- rose, until the sky gathered thick to keep it down, and knocked its top
- off.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;It may be a city,&rdquo; they said, &ldquo;but it is not at all like Bulika.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I went up to look, and saw a great city, ascending into blue clouds, where
- I could not distinguish mountain from sky and cloud, or rocks from
- dwellings. Cloud and mountain and sky, palace and precipice mingled in a
- seeming chaos of broken shadow and shine.
- </p>
- <p>
- I descended, the Little Ones came with me, and together we sped on faster.
- They grew yet merrier as they went, leading the way, and never looking
- behind them. The river grew lovelier and lovelier, until I knew that never
- before had I seen real water. Nothing in this world is more than LIKE it.
- </p>
- <p>
- By and by we could from the plain see the city among the blue clouds. But
- other clouds were gathering around a lofty tower&mdash;or was it a rock?&mdash;that
- stood above the city, nearer the crest of the mountain. Gray, and dark
- gray, and purple, they writhed in confused, contrariant motions, and
- tossed up a vaporous foam, while spots in them gyrated like whirlpools. At
- length issued a dazzling flash, which seemed for a moment to play about
- the Little Ones in front of us. Blinding darkness followed, but through it
- we heard their voices, low with delight.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Did you see?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I saw.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;What did you see?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;The beautifullest man.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I heard him speak!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I didn&rsquo;t: what did he say?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Here answered the smallest and most childish of the voices&mdash;that of
- Luva:&mdash;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;He said, &lsquo;&rsquo;Ou&rsquo;s all mine&rsquo;s, &lsquo;ickle ones: come along!&rsquo;&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- I had seen the lightning, but heard no words; Lona saw and heard with the
- children. A second flash came, and my eyes, though not my ears, were
- opened. The great quivering light was compact of angel-faces. They lamped
- themselves visible, and vanished.
- </p>
- <p>
- A third flash came; its substance and radiance were human.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I see my mother!&rdquo; I cried.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I see lots o&rsquo; mothers!&rdquo; said Luva.
- </p>
- <p>
- Once more the cloud flashed&mdash;all kinds of creatures&mdash;horses and
- elephants, lions and dogs&mdash;oh, such beasts! And such birds!&mdash;great
- birds whose wings gleamed singly every colour gathered in sunset or
- rainbow! little birds whose feathers sparkled as with all the precious
- stones of the hoarding earth!&mdash;silvery cranes; red flamingoes; opal
- pigeons; peacocks gorgeous in gold and green and blue; jewelly humming
- birds!&mdash;great-winged butterflies; lithe-volumed creeping things&mdash;all
- in one heavenly flash!
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I see that serpents grow birds here, as caterpillars used to grow
- butterflies!&rdquo; remarked Lona.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;I saw my white pony, that died when I was a child.&mdash;I needn&rsquo;t have
- been so sorry; I should just have waited!&rdquo; I said.
- </p>
- <p>
- Thunder, clap or roll, there had been none. And now came a sweet rain,
- filling the atmosphere with a caressing coolness. We breathed deep, and
- stepped out with stronger strides. The falling drops flashed the colours
- of all the waked up gems of the earth, and a mighty rainbow spanned the
- city.
- </p>
- <p>
- The blue clouds gathered thicker; the rain fell in torrents; the children
- exulted and ran; it was all we could do to keep them in sight.
- </p>
- <p>
- With silent, radiant roll, the river swept onward, filling to the margin
- its smooth, soft, yielding channel. For, instead of rock or shingle or
- sand, it flowed over grass in which grew primroses and daisies, crocuses
- and narcissi, pimpernels and anemones, a starry multitude, large and
- bright through the brilliant water. The river had gathered no turbid
- cloudiness from the rain, not even a tinge of yellow or brown; the
- delicate mass shone with the pale berylline gleam that ascended from its
- deep, dainty bed.
- </p>
- <p>
- Drawing nearer to the mountain, we saw that the river came from its very
- peak, and rushed in full volume through the main street of the city. It
- descended to the gate by a stair of deep and wide steps, mingled of
- porphyry and serpentine, which continued to the foot of the mountain.
- There arriving we found shallower steps on both banks, leading up to the
- gate, and along the ascending street. Without the briefest halt, the
- Little Ones ran straight up the stair to the gate, which stood open.
- </p>
- <p>
- Outside, on the landing, sat the portress, a woman-angel of dark visage,
- leaning her shadowed brow on her idle hand. The children rushed upon her,
- covering her with caresses, and ere she understood, they had taken heaven
- by surprise, and were already in the city, still mounting the stair by the
- side of the descending torrent. A great angel, attended by a company of
- shining ones, came down to meet and receive them, but merrily evading them
- all, up still they ran. In merry dance, however, a group of woman-angels
- descended upon them, and in a moment they were fettered in heavenly arms.
- The radiants carried them away, and I saw them no more.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Ah!&rdquo; said the mighty angel, continuing his descent to meet us who were
- now almost at the gate and within hearing of his words, &ldquo;this is well!
- these are soldiers to take heaven itself by storm!&mdash;I hear of a horde
- of black bats on the frontiers: these will make short work with such!&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Seeing the horse and the elephants clambering up behind us&mdash;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Take those animals to the royal stables,&rdquo; he added; &ldquo;there tend them;
- then turn them into the king&rsquo;s forest.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Welcome home!&rdquo; he said to us, bending low with the sweetest smile.
- </p>
- <p>
- Immediately he turned and led the way higher. The scales of his armour
- flashed like flakes of lightning.
- </p>
- <p>
- Thought cannot form itself to tell what I felt, thus received by the
- officers of heaven***. All I wanted and knew not, must be on its way to
- me!
- </p>
- <p>
- We stood for a moment at the gate whence issued roaring the radiant river.
- I know not whence came the stones that fashioned it, but among them I saw
- the prototypes of all the gems I had loved on earth&mdash;far more
- beautiful than they, for these were living stones&mdash;such in which I
- saw, not the intent alone, but the intender too; not the idea alone, but
- the imbodier present, the operant outsender: nothing in this kingdom was
- dead; nothing was mere; nothing only a thing.
- </p>
- <p>
- We went up through the city and passed out. There was no wall on the upper
- side, but a huge pile of broken rocks, upsloping like the moraine of an
- eternal glacier; and through the openings between the rocks, the river
- came billowing out. On their top I could dimly discern what seemed three
- or four great steps of a stair, disappearing in a cloud white as snow; and
- above the steps I saw, but with my mind&rsquo;s eye only, as it were a grand old
- chair, the throne of the Ancient of Days. Over and under and between those
- steps issued, plenteously, unceasingly new-born, the river of the water of
- life.
- </p>
- <p>
- The great angel could guide us no farther: those rocks we must ascend
- alone!
- </p>
- <p>
- My heart beating with hope and desire, I held faster the hand of my Lona,
- and we began to climb; but soon we let each other go, to use hands as well
- as feet in the toilsome ascent of the huge stones. At length we drew near
- the cloud, which hung down the steps like the borders of a garment, passed
- through the fringe, and entered the deep folds. A hand, warm and strong,
- laid hold of mine, and drew me to a little door with a golden lock. The
- door opened; the hand let mine go, and pushed me gently through. I turned
- quickly, and saw the board of a large book in the act of closing behind
- me. I stood alone in my library.
- </p>
- <p>
- <a name="link2HCH0047" id="link2HCH0047">
- <!-- H2 anchor --> </a>
- </p>
- <div style="height: 4em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
- <h2>
- CHAPTER XLVII. THE &ldquo;ENDLESS ENDING&rdquo;
- </h2>
- <p>
- As yet I have not found Lona, but Mara is much with me. She has taught me
- many things, and is teaching me more.
- </p>
- <p>
- Can it be that that last waking also was in the dream? that I am still in
- the chamber of death, asleep and dreaming, not yet ripe enough to wake? Or
- can it be that I did not go to sleep outright and heartily, and so have
- come awake too soon? If that waking was itself but a dream, surely it was
- a dream of a better waking yet to come, and I have not been the sport of a
- false vision! Such a dream must have yet lovelier truth at the heart of
- its dreaming!
- </p>
- <p>
- In moments of doubt I cry,
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Could God Himself create such lovely things as I dreamed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Whence then came thy dream?&rdquo; answers Hope.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Out of my dark self, into the light of my consciousness.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;But whence first into thy dark self?&rdquo; rejoins Hope.
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;My brain was its mother, and the fever in my blood its father.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- &ldquo;Say rather,&rdquo; suggests Hope, &ldquo;thy brain was the violin whence it issued,
- and the fever in thy blood the bow that drew it forth.&mdash;But who made
- the violin? and who guided the bow across its strings? Say rather, again&mdash;who
- set the song birds each on its bough in the tree of life, and startled
- each in its order from its perch? Whence came the fantasia? and whence the
- life that danced thereto? Didst THOU say, in the dark of thy own
- unconscious self, &lsquo;Let beauty be; let truth seem!&rsquo; and straightway beauty
- was, and truth but seemed?&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Man dreams and desires; God broods and wills and quickens.
- </p>
- <p>
- When a man dreams his own dream, he is the sport of his dream; when
- Another gives it him, that Other is able to fulfil it.
- </p>
- <p>
- I have never again sought the mirror. The hand sent me back: I will not go
- out again by that door! &ldquo;All the days of my appointed time will I wait
- till my change come.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- Now and then, when I look round on my books, they seem to waver as if a
- wind rippled their solid mass, and another world were about to break
- through. Sometimes when I am abroad, a like thing takes place; the heavens
- and the earth, the trees and the grass appear for a moment to shake as if
- about to pass away; then, lo, they have settled again into the old
- familiar face! At times I seem to hear whisperings around me, as if some
- that loved me were talking of me; but when I would distinguish the words,
- they cease, and all is very still. I know not whether these things rise in
- my brain, or enter it from without. I do not seek them; they come, and I
- let them go.
- </p>
- <p>
- Strange dim memories, which will not abide identification, often, through
- misty windows of the past, look out upon me in the broad daylight, but I
- never dream now. It may be, notwithstanding, that, when most awake, I am
- only dreaming the more! But when I wake at last into that life which, as a
- mother her child, carries this life in its bosom, I shall know that I
- wake, and shall doubt no more.
- </p>
- <p>
- I wait; asleep or awake, I wait.
- </p>
- <p>
- Novalis says, &ldquo;Our life is no dream, but it should and will perhaps become
- one.&rdquo;
- </p>
- <p>
- <br /> <br />
- </p>
- <hr />
- <p>
- <br /> <br />
- </p>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
- *Chapter 42: William Law.
-
- **Chapter 45: Tin tin sonando con sì dolce nota
- Che &lsquo;l ben disposto spirito d&rsquo; amor turge.
- DEL PARADISO, x. 142.
-
- ***Chapter 46: Oma&rsquo; vedrai di sì fatti uficiali.
- Del Purgatorio, ii. 30.
-</pre>
- <div style="height: 6em;">
- <br /><br /><br /><br /><br /><br />
- </div>
-<pre xml:space="preserve">
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Lilith, by George MacDonald
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LILITH ***
-
-***** This file should be named 1640-h.htm or 1640-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/1/6/4/1640/
-
-Produced by John Bechard, and David Widger
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &ldquo;Project
-Gutenberg&rdquo;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
-http://gutenberg.org/license).
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. &ldquo;Project Gutenberg&rdquo; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&ldquo;the Foundation&rdquo;
- or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase &ldquo;Project Gutenberg&rdquo; appears, or with which the phrase &ldquo;Project
-Gutenberg&rdquo; is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase &ldquo;Project Gutenberg&rdquo; associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-&ldquo;Plain Vanilla ASCII&rdquo; or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original &ldquo;Plain Vanilla ASCII&rdquo; or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, &ldquo;Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.&rdquo;
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-&ldquo;Defects,&rdquo; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &ldquo;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&rdquo; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &lsquo;AS-IS&rsquo; WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm&rsquo;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&rsquo;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state&rsquo;s laws.
-
-The Foundation&rsquo;s principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
-809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
-business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
-information can be found at the Foundation&rsquo;s web site and official
-page at http://pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit http://pglaf.org
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-</pre>
- </body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/lilth10.txt b/old/lilth10.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 361e23a..0000000
--- a/old/lilth10.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11533 +0,0 @@
-***The Project Gutenberg Etext of Lilith, by George MacDonald***
-#5 in our series by George MacDonald
-
-
-Copyright laws are changing all over the world, be sure to check
-the copyright laws for your country before posting these files!!
-
-Please take a look at the important information in this header.
-We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
-electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
-
-
-**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
-
-**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
-
-*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
-
-Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
-further information is included below. We need your donations.
-
-
-Lilith
-
-by George MacDonald
-
-February, 1999 [Etext #1640]
-
-
-***The Project Gutenberg Etext of Lilith, by George MacDonald***
-******This file should be named lilth10.txt or lilth10.zip******
-
-Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, lilth11.txt
-VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, lilth10a.txt
-
-
-This etext was compiled and prepared by John Bechard, an American
-living in London, England (JaBBechard@aol.com)
-
-Project Gutenberg Etexts are usually created from multiple editions,
-all of which are in the Public Domain in the United States, unless a
-copyright notice is included. Therefore, we do NOT keep these books
-in compliance with any particular paper edition, usually otherwise.
-
-
-We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
-of the official release dates, for time for better editing.
-
-Please note: neither this list nor its contents are final till
-midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
-The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
-Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
-preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
-and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
-up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
-in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
-a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
-look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
-new copy has at least one byte more or less.
-
-
-Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
-
-We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
-fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
-to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
-searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
-projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
-per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
-million dollars per hour this year as we release thirty-two text
-files per month, or 384 more Etexts in 1998 for a total of 1500+
-If these reach just 10% of the computerized population, then the
-total should reach over 150 billion Etexts given away.
-
-The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
-Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
-This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
-which is only 10% of the present number of computer users. 2001
-should have at least twice as many computer users as that, so it
-will require us reaching less than 5% of the users in 2001.
-
-
-We need your donations more than ever!
-
-
-All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/CMU": and are
-tax deductible to the extent allowable by law. (CMU = Carnegie-
-Mellon University).
-
-For these and other matters, please mail to:
-
-Project Gutenberg
-P. O. Box 2782
-Champaign, IL 61825
-
-When all other email fails try our Executive Director:
-Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>
-
-We would prefer to send you this information by email
-(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
-
-******
-If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
-FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
-[Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
-
-ftp uiarchive.cso.uiuc.edu
-login: anonymous
-password: your@login
-cd etext/etext90 through /etext96
-or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
-dir [to see files]
-get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
-GET INDEX?00.GUT
-for a list of books
-and
-GET NEW GUT for general information
-and
-MGET GUT* for newsletters.
-
-**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
-(Three Pages)
-
-
-***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
-Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
-They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
-your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
-someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
-fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
-disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
-you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
-
-*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
-By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
-this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
-a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
-sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
-you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
-medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
-
-ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
-This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
-tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
-Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
-Carnegie-Mellon University (the "Project"). Among other
-things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
-on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
-distribute it in the United States without permission and
-without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
-below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
-under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
-
-To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
-efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
-works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
-medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
-things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
-disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
-codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
-But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
-[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
-etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
-legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
-UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
-INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
-OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
-POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
-
-If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
-receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
-you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
-time to the person you received it from. If you received it
-on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
-such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
-copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
-choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
-receive it electronically.
-
-THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
-TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
-PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
-
-Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
-the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
-above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
-may have other legal rights.
-
-INDEMNITY
-You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
-officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
-and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
-indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
-[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
-or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
-
-DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
-You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
-disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
-"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
-or:
-
-[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
- requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
- etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
- if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
- binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
- including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
- cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
- *EITHER*:
-
- [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
- does *not* contain characters other than those
- intended by the author of the work, although tilde
- (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
- be used to convey punctuation intended by the
- author, and additional characters may be used to
- indicate hypertext links; OR
-
- [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
- no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
- form by the program that displays the etext (as is
- the case, for instance, with most word processors);
- OR
-
- [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
- no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
- etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
- or other equivalent proprietary form).
-
-[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
- "Small Print!" statement.
-
-[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
- net profits you derive calculated using the method you
- already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
- don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
- payable to "Project Gutenberg Association/Carnegie-Mellon
- University" within the 60 days following each
- date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
- your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
-
-WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
-The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
-scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
-free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
-you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
-Association / Carnegie-Mellon University".
-
-*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
-
-
-
-
-
-Lilith was first published in 1895
-This etext was compiled and prepared by John Bechard, an American
-living in London, England (JaBBechard@aol.com)
-
-
-
-
-
-Lilith
-
-by George MacDonald
-
-
-
-
-I took a walk on Spaulding's Farm the other afternoon. I saw the
-setting sun lighting up the opposite side of a stately pine wood.
-Its golden rays straggled into the aisles of the wood as into some
-noble hall. I was impressed as if some ancient and altogether
-admirable and shining family had settled there in that part of the
-land called Concord, unknown to me,--to whom the sun was servant,--
-who had not gone into society in the village,--who had not been
-called on. I saw their park, their pleasure-ground, beyond through
-the wood, in Spaulding's cranberry-meadow. The pines furnished them
-with gables as they grew. Their house was not obvious to vision;
-their trees grew through it. I do not know whether I heard the sounds
-of a suppressed hilarity or not. They seemed to recline on the
-sunbeams. They have sons and daughters. They are quite well. The
-farmer's cart-path, which leads directly through their hall, does not
-in the least put them out,--as the muddy bottom of a pool is sometimes
-seen through the reflected skies. They never heard of Spaulding,
-and do not know that he is their neighbor,--notwithstanding I heard
-him whistle as he drove his team through the house. Nothing can equal
-the serenity of their lives. Their coat of arms is simply a lichen.
-I saw it painted on the pines and oaks. Their attics were in the tops
-of the trees. They are of no politics. There was no noise of labor.
-I did not perceive that they were weaving or spinning. Yet I did
-detect, when the wind lulled and hearing was done away, the finest
-imaginable sweet musical hum,--as of a distant hive in May, which
-perchance was the sound of their thinking. They had no idle thoughts,
-and no one without could see their work, for their industry was not
-as in knots and excrescences embayed.
-
-But I find it difficult to remember them. They fade irrevocably
-out of my mind even now while I speak and endeavor to recall them,
-and recollect myself. It is only after a long and serious effort
-to recollect my best thoughts that I become again aware of their
-cohabitancy. If it were not for such families as this, I think I
-should move out of Concord.
-
-Thoreau: "WALKING."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-THE LIBRARY
-
-I had just finished my studies at Oxford, and was taking a brief
-holiday from work before assuming definitely the management of the
-estate. My father died when I was yet a child; my mother followed
-him within a year; and I was nearly as much alone in the world as a
-man might find himself.
-
-I had made little acquaintance with the history of my ancestors.
-Almost the only thing I knew concerning them was, that a notable
-number of them had been given to study. I had myself so far
-inherited the tendency as to devote a good deal of my time, though,
-I confess, after a somewhat desultory fashion, to the physical
-sciences. It was chiefly the wonder they woke that drew me. I was
-constantly seeing, and on the outlook to see, strange analogies, not
-only between the facts of different sciences of the same order,
-or between physical and metaphysical facts, but between physical
-hypotheses and suggestions glimmering out of the metaphysical dreams
-into which I was in the habit of falling. I was at the same time
-much given to a premature indulgence of the impulse to turn
-hypothesis into theory. Of my mental peculiarities there is no
-occasion to say more.
-
-The house as well as the family was of some antiquity, but no
-description of it is necessary to the understanding of my narrative.
-It contained a fine library, whose growth began before the invention
-of printing, and had continued to my own time, greatly influenced,
-of course, by changes of taste and pursuit. Nothing surely can more
-impress upon a man the transitory nature of possession than his
-succeeding to an ancient property! Like a moving panorama mine has
-passed from before many eyes, and is now slowly flitting from before
-my own.
-
-The library, although duly considered in many alterations of the
-house and additions to it, had nevertheless, like an encroaching
-state, absorbed one room after another until it occupied the greater
-part of the ground floor. Its chief room was large, and the walls
-of it were covered with books almost to the ceiling; the rooms
-into which it overflowed were of various sizes and shapes, and
-communicated in modes as various--by doors, by open arches, by short
-passages, by steps up and steps down.
-
-In the great room I mainly spent my time, reading books of science,
-old as well as new; for the history of the human mind in relation
-to supposed knowledge was what most of all interested me. Ptolemy,
-Dante, the two Bacons, and Boyle were even more to me than Darwin or
-Maxwell, as so much nearer the vanished van breaking into the dark
-of ignorance.
-
-In the evening of a gloomy day of August I was sitting in my usual
-place, my back to one of the windows, reading. It had rained the
-greater part of the morning and afternoon, but just as the sun was
-setting, the clouds parted in front of him, and he shone into the
-room. I rose and looked out of the window. In the centre of the
-great lawn the feathering top of the fountain column was filled with
-his red glory. I turned to resume my seat, when my eye was caught
-by the same glory on the one picture in the room--a portrait, in a
-sort of niche or little shrine sunk for it in the expanse of
-book-filled shelves. I knew it as the likeness of one of my
-ancestors, but had never even wondered why it hung there alone,
-and not in the gallery, or one of the great rooms, among the other
-family portraits. The direct sunlight brought out the painting
-wonderfully; for the first time I seemed to see it, and for the
-first time it seemed to respond to my look. With my eyes full of
-the light reflected from it, something, I cannot tell what, made me
-turn and cast a glance to the farther end of the room, when I saw,
-or seemed to see, a tall figure reaching up a hand to a bookshelf.
-The next instant, my vision apparently rectified by the comparative
-dusk, I saw no one, and concluded that my optic nerves had been
-momentarily affected from within.
-
-I resumed my reading, and would doubtless have forgotten the vague,
-evanescent impression, had it not been that, having occasion a
-moment after to consult a certain volume, I found but a gap in the
-row where it ought to have stood, and the same instant remembered
-that just there I had seen, or fancied I saw, the old man in search
-of a book. I looked all about the spot but in vain. The next
-morning, however, there it was, just where I had thought to find it!
-I knew of no one in the house likely to be interested in such a book.
-
-Three days after, another and yet odder thing took place.
-
-In one of the walls was the low, narrow door of a closet, containing
-some of the oldest and rarest of the books. It was a very thick
-door, with a projecting frame, and it had been the fancy of some
-ancestor to cross it with shallow shelves, filled with book-backs
-only. The harmless trick may be excused by the fact that the titles
-on the sham backs were either humorously original, or those of books
-lost beyond hope of recovery. I had a great liking for the masked
-door.
-
-To complete the illusion of it, some inventive workman apparently
-had shoved in, on the top of one of the rows, a part of a volume
-thin enough to lie between it and the bottom of the next shelf:
-he had cut away diagonally a considerable portion, and fixed
-the remnant with one of its open corners projecting beyond the
-book-backs. The binding of the mutilated volume was limp vellum,
-and one could open the corner far enough to see that it was
-manuscript upon parchment.
-
-Happening, as I sat reading, to raise my eyes from the page, my
-glance fell upon this door, and at once I saw that the book
-described, if book it may be called, was gone. Angrier than any
-worth I knew in it justified, I rang the bell, and the butler
-appeared. When I asked him if he knew what had befallen it, he
-turned pale, and assured me he did not. I could less easily doubt
-his word than my own eyes, for he had been all his life in the
-family, and a more faithful servant never lived. He left on me
-the impression, nevertheless, that he could have said something more.
-
-In the afternoon I was again reading in the library, and coming to
-a point which demanded reflection, I lowered the book and let my
-eyes go wandering. The same moment I saw the back of a slender
-old man, in a long, dark coat, shiny as from much wear, in the act
-of disappearing through the masked door into the closet beyond. I
-darted across the room, found the door shut, pulled it open, looked
-into the closet, which had no other issue, and, seeing nobody,
-concluded, not without uneasiness, that I had had a recurrence of
-my former illusion, and sat down again to my reading.
-
-Naturally, however, I could not help feeling a little nervous, and
-presently glancing up to assure myself that I was indeed alone,
-started again to my feet, and ran to the masked door--for there was
-the mutilated volume in its place! I laid hold of it and pulled: it
-was firmly fixed as usual!
-
-I was now utterly bewildered. I rang the bell; the butler came;
-I told him all I had seen, and he told me all he knew.
-
-He had hoped, he said, that the old gentleman was going to be
-forgotten; it was well no one but myself had seen him. He had
-heard a good deal about him when first he served in the house, but
-by degrees he had ceased to be mentioned, and he had been very
-careful not to allude to him.
-
-"The place was haunted by an old gentleman, was it?" I said.
-
-He answered that at one time everybody believed it, but the fact
-that I had never heard of it seemed to imply that the thing had
-come to an end and was forgotten.
-
-I questioned him as to what he had seen of the old gentleman.
-
-He had never seen him, he said, although he had been in the house
-from the day my father was eight years old. My grandfather would
-never hear a word on the matter, declaring that whoever alluded to
-it should be dismissed without a moment's warning: it was nothing
-but a pretext of the maids, he said, for running into the arms of
-the men! but old Sir Ralph believed in nothing he could not see or
-lay hold of. Not one of the maids ever said she had seen the
-apparition, but a footman had left the place because of it.
-
-An ancient woman in the village had told him a legend concerning a
-Mr. Raven, long time librarian to "that Sir Upward whose portrait
-hangs there among the books." Sir Upward was a great reader, she
-said--not of such books only as were wholesome for men to read, but
-of strange, forbidden, and evil books; and in so doing, Mr. Raven,
-who was probably the devil himself, encouraged him. Suddenly they
-both disappeared, and Sir Upward was never after seen or heard of,
-but Mr. Raven continued to show himself at uncertain intervals in
-the library. There were some who believed he was not dead; but both
-he and the old woman held it easier to believe that a dead man might
-revisit the world he had left, than that one who went on living for
-hundreds of years should be a man at all.
-
-He had never heard that Mr. Raven meddled with anything in the
-house, but be might perhaps consider himself privileged in regard
-to the books. How the old woman had learned so much about him he
-could not tell; but the description she gave of him corresponded
-exactly with the figure I had just seen.
-
-"I hope it was but a friendly call on the part of the old gentleman!"
-he concluded, with a troubled smile.
-
-I told him I had no objection to any number of visits from
-Mr. Raven, but it would be well he should keep to his resolution
-of saying nothing about him to the servants. Then I asked him if
-he had ever seen the mutilated volume out of its place; he answered
-that he never had, and had always thought it a fixture. With that
-he went to it, and gave it a pull: it seemed immovable.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-THE MIRROR
-
-Nothing more happened for some days. I think it was about a week
-after, when what I have now to tell took place.
-
-I had often thought of the manuscript fragment, and repeatedly
-tried to discover some way of releasing it, but in vain: I could
-not find out what held it fast.
-
-But I had for some time intended a thorough overhauling of the books
-in the closet, its atmosphere causing me uneasiness as to their
-condition. One day the intention suddenly became a resolve, and
-I was in the act of rising from my chair to make a beginning, when
-I saw the old librarian moving from the door of the closet toward
-the farther end of the room. I ought rather to say only that
-I caught sight of something shadowy from which I received the
-impression of a slight, stooping man, in a shabby dress-coat reaching
-almost to his heels, the tails of which, disparting a little as he
-walked, revealed thin legs in black stockings, and large feet in
-wide, slipper-like shoes.
-
-At once I followed him: I might be following a shadow, but I
-never doubted I was following something. He went out of the
-library into the hall, and across to the foot of the great
-staircase, then up the stairs to the first floor, where lay the
-chief rooms. Past these rooms, I following close, he continued
-his way, through a wide corridor, to the foot of a narrower stair
-leading to the second floor. Up that he went also, and when I
-reached the top, strange as it may seem, I found myself in a region
-almost unknown to me. I never had brother or sister to incite to
-such romps as make children familiar with nook and cranny; I was a
-mere child when my guardian took me away; and I had never seen the
-house again until, about a month before, I returned to take
-possession.
-
-Through passage after passage we came to a door at the bottom of
-a winding wooden stair, which we ascended. Every step creaked under
-my foot, but I heard no sound from that of my guide. Somewhere in
-the middle of the stair I lost sight of him, and from the top of it
-the shadowy shape was nowhere visible. I could not even imagine I
-saw him. The place was full of shadows, but he was not one of them.
-
-I was in the main garret, with huge beams and rafters over my head,
-great spaces around me, a door here and there in sight, and long
-vistas whose gloom was thinned by a few lurking cobwebbed windows
-and small dusky skylights. I gazed with a strange mingling of awe
-and pleasure: the wide expanse of garret was my own, and unexplored!
-
-In the middle of it stood an unpainted inclosure of rough planks,
-the door of which was ajar. Thinking Mr. Raven might be there, I
-pushed the door, and entered.
-
-The small chamber was full of light, but such as dwells in places
-deserted: it had a dull, disconsolate look, as if it found itself
-of no use, and regretted having come. A few rather dim sunrays,
-marking their track through the cloud of motes that had just been
-stirred up, fell upon a tall mirror with a dusty face, old-fashioned
-and rather narrow--in appearance an ordinary glass. It had an ebony
-frame, on the top of which stood a black eagle, with outstretched
-wings, in his beak a golden chain, from whose end hung a black ball.
-
-I had been looking at rather than into the mirror, when suddenly
-I became aware that it reflected neither the chamber nor my own
-person. I have an impression of having seen the wall melt away,
-but what followed is enough to account for any uncertainty:--could
-I have mistaken for a mirror the glass that protected a wonderful
-picture?
-
-I saw before me a wild country, broken and heathy. Desolate hills
-of no great height, but somehow of strange appearance, occupied
-the middle distance; along the horizon stretched the tops of a
-far-off mountain range; nearest me lay a tract of moorland, flat
-and melancholy.
-
-Being short-sighted, I stepped closer to examine the texture of a
-stone in the immediate foreground, and in the act espied, hopping
-toward me with solemnity, a large and ancient raven, whose purply
-black was here and there softened with gray. He seemed looking for
-worms as he came. Nowise astonished at the appearance of a live
-creature in a picture, I took another step forward to see him
-better, stumbled over something--doubtless the frame of the mirror--
-and stood nose to beak with the bird: I was in the open air, on a
-houseless heath!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-THE RAVEN
-
-I turned and looked behind me: all was vague and uncertain, as when
-one cannot distinguish between fog and field, between cloud and
-mountain-side. One fact only was plain--that I saw nothing I knew.
-Imagining myself involved in a visual illusion, and that touch would
-correct sight, I stretched my arms and felt about me, walking in
-this direction and that, if haply, where I could see nothing, I
-might yet come in contact with something; but my search was vain.
-Instinctively then, as to the only living thing near me, I turned
-to the raven, which stood a little way off, regarding me with an
-expression at once respectful and quizzical. Then the absurdity
-of seeking counsel from such a one struck me, and I turned again,
-overwhelmed with bewilderment, not unmingled with fear. Had I
-wandered into a region where both the material and psychical
-relations of our world had ceased to hold? Might a man at any
-moment step beyond the realm of order, and become the sport of the
-lawless? Yet I saw the raven, felt the ground under my feet, and
-heard a sound as of wind in the lowly plants around me!
-
-"How DID I get here?" I said--apparently aloud, for the question
-was immediately answered.
-
-"You came through the door," replied an odd, rather harsh voice.
-
-I looked behind, then all about me, but saw no human shape. The
-terror that madness might be at hand laid hold upon me: must
-I henceforth place no confidence either in my senses or my
-consciousness? The same instant I knew it was the raven that had
-spoken, for he stood looking up at me with an air of waiting. The
-sun was not shining, yet the bird seemed to cast a shadow, and
-the shadow seemed part of himself.
-
-I beg my reader to aid me in the endeavour to make myself
-intelligible--if here understanding be indeed possible between us.
-I was in a world, or call it a state of things, an economy of
-conditions, an idea of existence, so little correspondent with the
-ways and modes of this world--which we are apt to think the only
-world, that the best choice I can make of word or phrase is but
-an adumbration of what I would convey. I begin indeed to fear that
-I have undertaken an impossibility, undertaken to tell what I
-cannot tell because no speech at my command will fit the forms in
-my mind. Already I have set down statements I would gladly change
-did I know how to substitute a truer utterance; but as often as I
-try to fit the reality with nearer words, I find myself in danger
-of losing the things themselves, and feel like one in process of
-awaking from a dream, with the thing that seemed familiar gradually
-yet swiftly changing through a succession of forms until its very
-nature is no longer recognisable.
-
-I bethought me that a bird capable of addressing a man must have
-the right of a man to a civil answer; perhaps, as a bird, even a
-greater claim.
-
-A tendency to croak caused a certain roughness in his speech, but
-his voice was not disagreeable, and what he said, although conveying
-little enlightenment, did not sound rude.
-
-"I did not come through any door," I rejoined.
-
-"I saw you come through it!--saw you with my own ancient eyes!"
-asserted the raven, positively but not disrespectfully.
-
-"I never saw any door!" I persisted.
-
-"Of course not!" he returned; "all the doors you had yet seen--and
-you haven't seen many--were doors in; here you came upon a door out!
-The strange thing to you," he went on thoughtfully, "will be, that
-the more doors you go out of, the farther you get in!"
-
-"Oblige me by telling me where I am."
-
-"That is impossible. You know nothing about whereness. The only
-way to come to know where you are is to begin to make yourself at
-home."
-
-"How am I to begin that where everything is so strange?"
-
-"By doing something."
-
-"What?"
-
-"Anything; and the sooner you begin the better! for until you are
-at home, you will find it as difficult to get out as it is to get
-in."
-
-"I have, unfortunately, found it too easy to get in; once out I
-shall not try again!"
-
-"You have stumbled in, and may, possibly, stumble out again. Whether
-you have got in UNFORTUNATELY remains to be seen."
-
-"Do you never go out, sir?"
-
-"When I please I do, but not often, or for long. Your world is
-such a half-baked sort of place, it is at once so childish and so
-self-satisfied--in fact, it is not sufficiently developed for an
-old raven--at your service!"
-
-"Am I wrong, then, in presuming that a man is superior to a bird?"
-
-"That is as it may be. We do not waste our intellects in
-generalising, but take man or bird as we find him.--I think it
-is now my turn to ask you a question!"
-
-"You have the best of rights," I replied, "in the fact that you
-CAN do so!"
-
-"Well answered!" he rejoined. "Tell me, then, who you are--if
-you happen to know."
-
-"How should I help knowing? I am myself, and must know!"
-
-"If you know you are yourself, you know that you are not somebody
-else; but do you know that you are yourself? Are you sure you
-are not your own father?--or, excuse me, your own fool?--Who are
-you, pray?"
-
-I became at once aware that I could give him no notion of who
-I was. Indeed, who was I? It would be no answer to say I was who!
-Then I understood that I did not know myself, did not know what I
-was, had no grounds on which to determine that I was one and not
-another. As for the name I went by in my own world, I had forgotten
-it, and did not care to recall it, for it meant nothing, and what
-it might be was plainly of no consequence here. I had indeed almost
-forgotten that there it was a custom for everybody to have a name!
-So I held my peace, and it was my wisdom; for what should I say to a
-creature such as this raven, who saw through accident into entity?
-
-"Look at me," he said, "and tell me who I am."
-
-As he spoke, he turned his back, and instantly I knew him. He was
-no longer a raven, but a man above the middle height with a stoop,
-very thin, and wearing a long black tail-coat. Again he turned,
-and I saw him a raven.
-
-"I have seen you before, sir," I said, feeling foolish rather than
-surprised.
-
-"How can you say so from seeing me behind?" he rejoined. "Did you
-ever see yourself behind? You have never seen yourself at all!
---Tell me now, then, who I am."
-
-"I humbly beg your pardon," I answered: "I believe you were once
-the librarian of our house, but more WHO I do not know."
-
-"Why do you beg my pardon?"
-
-"Because I took you for a raven," I said--seeing him before me as
-plainly a raven as bird or man could look.
-
-"You did me no wrong," he returned. "Calling me a raven, or
-thinking me one, you allowed me existence, which is the sum of what
-one can demand of his fellow-beings. Therefore, in return, I will
-give you a lesson:--No one can say he is himself, until first he
-knows that he IS, and then what HIMSELF is. In fact, nobody is
-himself, and himself is nobody. There is more in it than you can
-see now, but not more than you need to see. You have, I fear, got
-into this region too soon, but none the less you must get to be at
-home in it; for home, as you may or may not know, is the only place
-where you can go out and in. There are places you can go into, and
-places you can go out of; but the one place, if you do but find it,
-where you may go out and in both, is home."
-
-He turned to walk away, and again I saw the librarian. He did not
-appear to have changed, only to have taken up his shadow. I know
-this seems nonsense, but I cannot help it.
-
-I gazed after him until I saw him no more; but whether distance hid
-him, or he disappeared among the heather, I cannot tell.
-
-Could it be that I was dead, I thought, and did not know it? Was
-I in what we used to call the world beyond the grave? and must I
-wander about seeking my place in it? How was I to find myself at
-home? The raven said I must do something: what could I do here?--
-And would that make me somebody? for now, alas, I was nobody!
-
-I took the way Mr. Raven had gone, and went slowly after him.
-Presently I saw a wood of tall slender pine-trees, and turned toward
-it. The odour of it met me on my way, and I made haste to bury
-myself in it.
-
-Plunged at length in its twilight glooms, I spied before me
-something with a shine, standing between two of the stems. It
-had no colour, but was like the translucent trembling of the hot
-air that rises, in a radiant summer noon, from the sun-baked ground,
-vibrant like the smitten chords of a musical instrument. What it
-was grew no plainer as I went nearer, and when I came close up, I
-ceased to see it, only the form and colour of the trees beyond
-seemed strangely uncertain. I would have passed between the stems,
-but received a slight shock, stumbled, and fell. When I rose, I
-saw before me the wooden wall of the garret chamber. I turned, and
-there was the mirror, on whose top the black eagle seemed but that
-moment to have perched.
-
-Terror seized me, and I fled. Outside the chamber the wide garret
-spaces had an UNCANNY look. They seemed to have long been waiting
-for something; it had come, and they were waiting again! A shudder
-went through me on the winding stair: the house had grown strange
-to me! something was about to leap upon me from behind! I darted
-down the spiral, struck against the wall and fell, rose and ran. On
-the next floor I lost my way, and had gone through several passages
-a second time ere I found the head of the stair. At the top of the
-great stair I had come to myself a little, and in a few moments I
-sat recovering my breath in the library.
-
-Nothing should ever again make me go up that last terrible stair!
-The garret at the top of it pervaded the whole house! It sat upon
-it, threatening to crush me out of it! The brooding brain of the
-building, it was full of mysterious dwellers, one or other of whom
-might any moment appear in the library where I sat! I was nowhere
-safe! I would let, I would sell the dreadful place, in which an
-aërial portal stood ever open to creatures whose life was other than
-human! I would purchase a crag in Switzerland, and thereon build a
-wooden nest of one story with never a garret above it, guarded by
-some grand old peak that would send down nothing worse than a few
-tons of whelming rock!
-
-I knew all the time that my thinking was foolish, and was even aware
-of a certain undertone of contemptuous humour in it; but suddenly it
-was checked, and I seemed again to hear the croak of the raven.
-
-"If I know nothing of my own garret," I thought, "what is there to
-secure me against my own brain? Can I tell what it is even now
-generating?--what thought it may present me the next moment, the
-next month, or a year away? What is at the heart of my brain? What
-is behind my THINK? Am I there at all?--Who, what am I?"
-
-I could no more answer the question now than when the raven put it
-to me in--at--"Where in?--where at?" I said, and gave myself up as
-knowing anything of myself or the universe.
-
-I started to my feet, hurried across the room to the masked door,
-where the mutilated volume, sticking out from the flat of soulless,
-bodiless, non-existent books, appeared to beckon me, went down on
-my knees, and opened it as far as its position would permit, but
-could see nothing. I got up again, lighted a taper, and peeping as
-into a pair of reluctant jaws, perceived that the manuscript was
-verse. Further I could not carry discovery. Beginnings of lines
-were visible on the left-hand page, and ends of lines on the other;
-but I could not, of course, get at the beginning and end of a single
-line, and was unable, in what I could read, to make any guess at
-the sense. The mere words, however, woke in me feelings which to
-describe was, from their strangeness, impossible. Some dreams, some
-poems, some musical phrases, some pictures, wake feelings such as
-one never had before, new in colour and form--spiritual sensations,
-as it were, hitherto unproved: here, some of the phrases, some of
-the senseless half-lines, some even of the individual words affected
-me in similar fashion--as with the aroma of an idea, rousing in me
-a great longing to know what the poem or poems might, even yet in
-their mutilation, hold or suggest.
-
-I copied out a few of the larger shreds attainable, and tried hard
-to complete some of the lines, but without the least success. The
-only thing I gained in the effort was so much weariness that, when
-I went to bed, I fell asleep at once and slept soundly.
-
-In the morning all that horror of the empty garret spaces had left
-me.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-SOMEWHERE OR NOWHERE?
-
-The sun was very bright, but I doubted if the day would long be
-fine, and looked into the milky sapphire I wore, to see whether the
-star in it was clear. It was even less defined than I had expected.
-I rose from the breakfast-table, and went to the window to glance at
-the stone again. There had been heavy rain in the night, and on the
-lawn was a thrush breaking his way into the shell of a snail.
-
-As I was turning my ring about to catch the response of the star
-to the sun, I spied a keen black eye gazing at me out of the milky
-misty blue. The sight startled me so that I dropped the ring, and
-when I picked it up the eye was gone from it. The same moment the
-sun was obscured; a dark vapour covered him, and in a minute or two
-the whole sky was clouded. The air had grown sultry, and a gust
-of wind came suddenly. A moment more and there was a flash of
-lightning, with a single sharp thunder-clap. Then the rain fell
-in torrents.
-
-I had opened the window, and stood there looking out at the
-precipitous rain, when I descried a raven walking toward me over
-the grass, with solemn gait, and utter disregard of the falling
-deluge. Suspecting who he was, I congratulated myself that I was
-safe on the ground-floor. At the same time I had a conviction that,
-if I were not careful, something would happen.
-
-He came nearer and nearer, made a profound bow, and with a sudden
-winged leap stood on the window-sill. Then he stepped over the
-ledge, jumped down into the room, and walked to the door. I thought
-he was on his way to the library, and followed him, determined, if
-he went up the stair, not to take one step after him. He turned,
-however, neither toward the library nor the stair, but to a little
-door that gave upon a grass-patch in a nook between two portions
-of the rambling old house. I made haste to open it for him. He
-stepped out into its creeper-covered porch, and stood looking at
-the rain, which fell like a huge thin cataract; I stood in the door
-behind him. The second flash came, and was followed by a lengthened
-roll of more distant thunder. He turned his head over his shoulder
-and looked at me, as much as to say, "You hear that?" then swivelled
-it round again, and anew contemplated the weather, apparently with
-approbation. So human were his pose and carriage and the way he
-kept turning his head, that I remarked almost involuntarily,
-
-"Fine weather for the worms, Mr. Raven!"
-
-"Yes," he answered, in the rather croaky voice I had learned to
-know, "the ground will be nice for them to get out and in!--It must
-be a grand time on the steppes of Uranus!" he added, with a glance
-upward; "I believe it is raining there too; it was, all the last
-week!"
-
-"Why should that make it a grand time?" I asked.
-
-"Because the animals there are all burrowers," he answered, "--like
-the field-mice and the moles here.--They will be, for ages to come."
-
-"How do you know that, if I may be so bold?" I rejoined.
-
-"As any one would who had been there to see," he replied. "It is a
-great sight, until you get used to it, when the earth gives a heave,
-and out comes a beast. You might think it a hairy elephant or a
-deinotherium--but none of the animals are the same as we have ever
-had here. I was almost frightened myself the first time I saw the
-dry-bog-serpent come wallowing out--such a head and mane! and SUCH
-eyes!--but the shower is nearly over. It will stop directly after
-the next thunder-clap. There it is!"
-
-A flash came with the words, and in about half a minute the thunder.
-Then the rain ceased.
-
-"Now we should be going!" said the raven, and stepped to the front
-of the porch.
-
-"Going where?" I asked.
-
-"Going where we have to go," he answered. "You did not surely think
-you had got home? I told you there was no going out and in at
-pleasure until you were at home!"
-
-"I do not want to go," I said.
-
-"That does not make any difference--at least not much," he answered.
-"This is the way!"
-
-"I am quite content where I am."
-
-"You think so, but you are not. Come along."
-
-He hopped from the porch onto the grass, and turned, waiting.
-
-"I will not leave the house to-day," I said with obstinacy.
-
-"You will come into the garden!" rejoined the raven.
-
-"I give in so far," I replied, and stepped from the porch.
-
-The sun broke through the clouds, and the raindrops flashed and
-sparkled on the grass. The raven was walking over it.
-
-"You will wet your feet!" I cried.
-
-"And mire my beak," he answered, immediately plunging it deep in the
-sod, and drawing out a great wriggling red worm. He threw back his
-head, and tossed it in the air. It spread great wings, gorgeous in
-red and black, and soared aloft.
-
-"Tut! tut!" I exclaimed; "you mistake, Mr. Raven: worms are not the
-larvæ of butterflies!"
-
-"Never mind," he croaked; "it will do for once! I'm not a reading
-man at present, but sexton at the--at a certain graveyard--cemetery,
-more properly--in--at--no matter where!"
-
-"I see! you can't keep your spade still: and when you have nothing
-to bury, you must dig something up! Only you should mind what it
-is before you make it fly! No creature should be allowed to forget
-what and where it came from!"
-
-"Why?" said the raven.
-
-"Because it will grow proud, and cease to recognise its superiors."
-
-No man knows it when he is making an idiot of himself.
-
-"Where DO the worms come from?" said the raven, as if suddenly grown
-curious to know.
-
-"Why, from the earth, as you have just seen!" I answered.
-
-"Yes, last!" he replied. "But they can't have come from it first--
-for that will never go back to it!" he added, looking up.
-
-I looked up also, but could see nothing save a little dark cloud,
-the edges of which were red, as if with the light of the sunset.
-
-"Surely the sun is not going down!" I exclaimed, struck with
-amazement.
-
-"Oh, no!" returned the raven. "That red belongs to the worm."
-
-"You see what comes of making creatures forget their origin!" I
-cried with some warmth.
-
-"It is well, surely, if it be to rise higher and grow larger!" he
-returned. "But indeed I only teach them to find it!"
-
-"Would you have the air full of worms?"
-
-"That is the business of a sexton. If only the rest of the clergy
-understood it as well!"
-
-In went his beak again through the soft turf, and out came the
-wriggling worm. He tossed it in the air, and away it flew.
-
-I looked behind me, and gave a cry of dismay: I had but that moment
-declared I would not leave the house, and already I was a stranger
-in the strange land!
-
-"What right have you to treat me so, Mr. Raven?" I said with deep
-offence. "Am I, or am I not, a free agent?"
-
-"A man is as free as he chooses to make himself, never an atom
-freer," answered the raven.
-
-"You have no right to make me do things against my will!"
-
-"When you have a will, you will find that no one can."
-
-"You wrong me in the very essence of my individuality!" I persisted.
-
-"If you were an individual I could not, therefore now I do not. You
-are but beginning to become an individual."
-
-All about me was a pine-forest, in which my eyes were already
-searching deep, in the hope of discovering an unaccountable glimmer,
-and so finding my way home. But, alas! how could I any longer call
-that house HOME, where every door, every window opened into OUT, and
-even the garden I could not keep inside!
-
-I suppose I looked discomfited.
-
-"Perhaps it may comfort you," said the raven, "to be told that you
-have not yet left your house, neither has your house left you. At
-the same time it cannot contain you, or you inhabit it!"
-
-"I do not understand you," I replied. "Where am I?"
-
-"In the region of the seven dimensions," he answered, with a curious
-noise in his throat, and a flutter of his tail. "You had better
-follow me carefully now for a moment, lest you should hurt some
-one!"
-
-"There is nobody to hurt but yourself, Mr. Raven! I confess I should
-rather like to hurt you!"
-
-"That you see nobody is where the danger lies. But you see that
-large tree to your left, about thirty yards away?"
-
-"Of course I do: why should I not?" I answered testily.
-
-"Ten minutes ago you did not see it, and now you do not know where
-it stands!"
-
-"I do."
-
-"Where do you think it stands?"
-
-"Why THERE, where you know it is!"
-
-"Where is THERE?"
-
-"You bother me with your silly questions!" I cried. "I am growing
-tired of you!"
-
-"That tree stands on the hearth of your kitchen, and grows nearly
-straight up its chimney," he said.
-
-"Now I KNOW you are making game of me!" I answered, with a laugh
-of scorn.
-
-"Was I making game of you when you discovered me looking out of your
-star-sapphire yesterday?"
-
-"That was this morning--not an hour ago!"
-
-"I have been widening your horizon longer than that, Mr. Vane; but
-never mind!"
-
-"You mean you have been making a fool of me!" I said, turning from
-him.
-
-"Excuse me: no one can do that but yourself!"
-
-"And I decline to do it."
-
-"You mistake."
-
-"How?"
-
-"In declining to acknowledge yourself one already. You make yourself
-such by refusing what is true, and for that you will sorely punish
-yourself."
-
-"How, again?"
-
-"By believing what is not true."
-
-"Then, if I walk to the other side of that tree, I shall walk
-through the kitchen fire?"
-
-"Certainly. You would first, however, walk through the lady at the
-piano in the breakfast-room. That rosebush is close by her. You
-would give her a terrible start!"
-
-"There is no lady in the house!"
-
-"Indeed! Is not your housekeeper a lady? She is counted such in
-a certain country where all are servants, and the liveries one and
-multitudinous!"
-
-"She cannot use the piano, anyhow!"
-
-"Her niece can: she is there--a well-educated girl and a capital
-musician."
-
-"Excuse me; I cannot help it: you seem to me to be talking sheer
-nonsense!"
-
-"If you could but hear the music! Those great long heads of wild
-hyacinth are inside the piano, among the strings of it, and give
-that peculiar sweetness to her playing!--Pardon me: I forgot your
-deafness!"
-
-"Two objects," I said, "cannot exist in the same place at the same
-time!"
-
-"Can they not? I did not know!--I remember now they do teach that
-with you. It is a great mistake--one of the greatest ever wiseacre
-made! No man of the universe, only a man of the world could have
-said so!"
-
-"You a librarian, and talk such rubbish!" I cried. "Plainly, you
-did not read many of the books in your charge!"
-
-"Oh, yes! I went through all in your library--at the time, and
-came out at the other side not much the wiser. I was a bookworm
-then, but when I came to know it, I woke among the butterflies. To
-be sure I have given up reading for a good many years--ever since I
-was made sexton.--There! I smell Grieg's Wedding March in the
-quiver of those rose-petals!"
-
-I went to the rose-bush and listened hard, but could not hear the
-thinnest ghost of a sound; I only smelt something I had never before
-smelt in any rose. It was still rose-odour, but with a difference,
-caused, I suppose, by the Wedding March.
-
-When I looked up, there was the bird by my side.
-
-"Mr. Raven," I said, "forgive me for being so rude: I was irritated.
-Will you kindly show me my way home? I must go, for I have an
-appointment with my bailiff. One must not break faith with his
-servants!"
-
-"You cannot break what was broken days ago!" he answered.
-
-"Do show me the way," I pleaded.
-
-"I cannot," he returned. "To go back, you must go through yourself,
-and that way no man can show another."
-
-Entreaty was vain. I must accept my fate! But how was life to be
-lived in a world of which I had all the laws to learn? There would,
-however, be adventure! that held consolation; and whether I found
-my way home or not, I should at least have the rare advantage of
-knowing two worlds!
-
-I had never yet done anything to justify my existence; my former
-world was nothing the better for my sojourn in it: here, however,
-I must earn, or in some way find, my bread! But I reasoned that,
-as I was not to blame in being here, I might expect to be taken care
-of here as well as there! I had had nothing to do with getting into
-the world I had just left, and in it I had found myself heir to a
-large property! If that world, as I now saw, had a claim upon me
-because I had eaten, and could eat again, upon this world I had a
-claim because I must eat--when it would in return have a claim on
-me!
-
-"There is no hurry," said the raven, who stood regarding me; "we do
-not go much by the clock here. Still, the sooner one begins to do
-what has to be done, the better! I will take you to my wife."
-
-"Thank you. Let us go!" I answered, and immediately he led the way.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-THE OLD CHURCH
-
-I followed him deep into the pine-forest. Neither of us said much
-while yet the sacred gloom of it closed us round. We came to larger
-and yet larger trees--older, and more individual, some of them
-grotesque with age. Then the forest grew thinner.
-
-"You see that hawthorn?" said my guide at length, pointing with
-his beak.
-
-I looked where the wood melted away on the edge of an open heath.
-
-"I see a gnarled old man, with a great white head," I answered.
-
-"Look again," he rejoined: "it is a hawthorn."
-
-"It seems indeed an ancient hawthorn; but this is not the season
-for the hawthorn to blossom!" I objected.
-
-"The season for the hawthorn to blossom," he replied, "is when
-the hawthorn blossoms. That tree is in the ruins of the church
-on your home-farm. You were going to give some directions to the
-bailiff about its churchyard, were you not, the morning of the
-thunder?"
-
-"I was going to tell him I wanted it turned into a wilderness of
-rose-trees, and that the plough must never come within three yards
-of it."
-
-"Listen!" said the raven, seeming to hold his breath.
-
-I listened, and heard--was it the sighing of a far-off musical
-wind--or the ghost of a music that had once been glad? Or did I
-indeed hear anything?
-
-"They go there still," said the raven.
-
-"Who goes there? and where do they go?" I asked.
-
-"Some of the people who used to pray there, go to the ruins still,"
-he replied. "But they will not go much longer, I think."
-
-"What makes them go now?"
-
-"They need help from each other to get their thinking done, and
-their feelings hatched, so they talk and sing together; and then,
-they say, the big thought floats out of their hearts like a great
-ship out of the river at high water."
-
-"Do they pray as well as sing?"
-
-"No; they have found that each can best pray in his own silent
-heart.--Some people are always at their prayers.--Look! look! There
-goes one!"
-
-He pointed right up into the air. A snow-white pigeon was mounting,
-with quick and yet quicker wing-flap, the unseen spiral of an
-ethereal stair. The sunshine flashed quivering from its wings.
-
-"I see a pigeon!" I said.
-
-"Of course you see a pigeon," rejoined the raven, "for there is the
-pigeon! I see a prayer on its way.--I wonder now what heart is that
-dove's mother! Some one may have come awake in my cemetery!"
-
-"How can a pigeon be a prayer?" I said. "I understand, of course,
-how it should be a fit symbol or likeness for one; but a live pigeon
-to come out of a heart!"
-
-"It MUST puzzle you! It cannot fail to do so!"
-
-"A prayer is a thought, a thing spiritual!" I pursued.
-
-"Very true! But if you understood any world besides your own, you
-would understand your own much better.--When a heart is really
-alive, then it is able to think live things. There is one heart all
-whose thoughts are strong, happy creatures, and whose very dreams
-are lives. When some pray, they lift heavy thoughts from the
-ground, only to drop them on it again; others send up their prayers
-in living shapes, this or that, the nearest likeness to each. All
-live things were thoughts to begin with, and are fit therefore to
-be used by those that think. When one says to the great Thinker:--
-"Here is one of thy thoughts: I am thinking it now!" that is a
-prayer--a word to the big heart from one of its own little hearts.--
-Look, there is another!"
-
-This time the raven pointed his beak downward--to something at the
-foot of a block of granite. I looked, and saw a little flower. I
-had never seen one like it before, and cannot utter the feeling it
-woke in me by its gracious, trusting form, its colour, and its odour
-as of a new world that was yet the old. I can only say that it
-suggested an anemone, was of a pale rose-hue, and had a golden heart.
-
-"That is a prayer-flower," said the raven.
-
-"I never saw such a flower before!" I rejoined.
-
-"There is no other such. Not one prayer-flower is ever quite like
-another," he returned.
-
-"How do you know it a prayer-flower?" I asked.
-
-"By the expression of it," he answered. "More than that I cannot
-tell you. If you know it, you know it; if you do not, you do not."
-
-"Could you not teach me to know a prayer-flower when I see it?" I
-said.
-
-"I could not. But if I could, what better would you be? you would
-not know it of YOURSELF and ITself! Why know the name of a thing
-when the thing itself you do not know? Whose work is it but your
-own to open your eyes? But indeed the business of the universe is
-to make such a fool of you that you will know yourself for one, and
-so begin to be wise!"
-
-But I did see that the flower was different from any flower I had
-ever seen before; therefore I knew that I must be seeing a shadow
-of the prayer in it; and a great awe came over me to think of the
-heart listening to the flower.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-THE SEXTON'S COTTAGE
-
-We had been for some time walking over a rocky moorland covered
-with dry plants and mosses, when I descried a little cottage in the
-farthest distance. The sun was not yet down, but he was wrapt in a
-gray cloud. The heath looked as if it had never been warm, and the
-wind blew strangely cold, as if from some region where it was always
-night.
-
-"Here we are at last!" said the raven. "What a long way it is! In
-half the time I could have gone to Paradise and seen my cousin--him,
-you remember, who never came back to Noah! Dear! dear! it is almost
-winter!"
-
-"Winter!" I cried; "it seems but half a day since we left home!"
-
-"That is because we have travelled so fast," answered the raven. "In
-your world you cannot pull up the plumb-line you call gravitation,
-and let the world spin round under your feet! But here is my wife's
-house! She is very good to let me live with her, and call it the
-sexton's cottage!"
-
-"But where is your churchyard--your cemetery--where you make your
-graves, I mean?" said I, seeing nothing but the flat heath.
-
-The raven stretched his neck, held out his beak horizontally, turned
-it slowly round to all the points of the compass, and said nothing.
-
-I followed the beak with my eyes, and lo, without church or graves,
-all was a churchyard! Wherever the dreary wind swept, there was
-the raven's cemetery! He was sexton of all he surveyed! lord of all
-that was laid aside! I stood in the burial-ground of the universe;
-its compass the unenclosed heath, its wall the gray horizon, low
-and starless! I had left spring and summer, autumn and sunshine
-behind me, and come to the winter that waited for me! I had set
-out in the prime of my youth, and here I was already!--But I mistook.
-The day might well be long in that region, for it contained the
-seasons. Winter slept there, the night through, in his winding-sheet
-of ice; with childlike smile, Spring came awake in the dawn; at
-noon, Summer blazed abroad in her gorgeous beauty; with the
-slow-changing afternoon, old Autumn crept in, and died at the
-first breath of the vaporous, ghosty night.
-
-As we drew near the cottage, the clouded sun was rushing down the
-steepest slope of the west, and he sank while we were yet a few
-yards from the door. The same instant I was assailed by a cold
-that seemed almost a material presence, and I struggled across the
-threshold as if from the clutches of an icy death. A wind swelled
-up on the moor, and rushed at the door as with difficulty I closed
-it behind me. Then all was still, and I looked about me.
-
-A candle burned on a deal table in the middle of the room, and the
-first thing I saw was the lid of a coffin, as I thought, set up
-against the wall; but it opened, for it was a door, and a woman
-entered. She was all in white--as white as new-fallen snow; and
-her face was as white as her dress, but not like snow, for at once
-it suggested warmth. I thought her features were perfect, but her
-eyes made me forget them. The life of her face and her whole person
-was gathered and concentrated in her eyes, where it became light.
-It might have been coming death that made her face luminous, but the
-eyes had life in them for a nation--large, and dark with a darkness
-ever deepening as I gazed. A whole night-heaven lay condensed in
-each pupil; all the stars were in its blackness, and flashed; while
-round it for a horizon lay coiled an iris of the eternal twilight.
-What any eye IS, God only knows: her eyes must have been coming
-direct out of his own! the still face might be a primeval perfection;
-the live eyes were a continuous creation.
-
-"Here is Mr. Vane, wife!" said the raven.
-
-"He is welcome," she answered, in a low, rich, gentle voice.
-Treasures of immortal sound seemed to he buried in it.
-
-I gazed, and could not speak.
-
-"I knew you would be glad to see him!" added the raven.
-
-She stood in front of the door by which she had entered, and did
-not come nearer.
-
-"Will he sleep?" she asked.
-
-"I fear not," he replied; "he is neither weary nor heavy laden."
-
-"Why then have you brought him?"
-
-"I have my fears it may prove precipitate."
-
-"I do not quite understand you," I said, with an uneasy foreboding
-as to what she meant, but a vague hope of some escape. "Surely a
-man must do a day's work first!"
-
-I gazed into the white face of the woman, and my heart fluttered.
-She returned my gaze in silence.
-
-"Let me first go home," I resumed, "and come again after I have
-found or made, invented, or at least discovered something!"
-
-"He has not yet learned that the day begins with sleep!" said the
-woman, turning to her husband. "Tell him he must rest before he can
-do anything!"
-
-"Men," he answered, "think so much of having done, that they fall
-asleep upon it. They cannot empty an egg but they turn into the
-shell, and lie down!"
-
-The words drew my eyes from the woman to the raven.
-
-I saw no raven, but the librarian--the same slender elderly man,
-in a rusty black coat, large in the body and long in the tails. I
-had seen only his back before; now for the first time I saw his
-face. It was so thin that it showed the shape of the bones under
-it, suggesting the skulls his last-claimed profession must have made
-him familiar with. But in truth I had never before seen a face so
-alive, or a look so keen or so friendly as that in his pale blue
-eyes, which yet had a haze about them as if they had done much
-weeping.
-
-"You knew I was not a raven!" he said with a smile.
-
-"I knew you were Mr. Raven," I replied; "but somehow I thought you
-a bird too!"
-
-"What made you think me a bird?"
-
-"You looked a raven, and I saw you dig worms out of the earth with
-your beak."
-
-"And then?"
-
-"Toss them in the air."
-"And then?"
-
-"They grew butterflies, and flew away."
-
-"Did you ever see a raven do that? I told you I was a sexton!"
-
-"Does a sexton toss worms in the air, and turn them into butterflies?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"I never saw one do it!"
-
-"You saw me do it!--But I am still librarian in your house, for I
-never was dismissed, and never gave up the office. Now I am
-librarian here as well."
-
-"But you have just told me you were sexton here!"
-
-"So I am. It is much the same profession. Except you are a true
-sexton, books are but dead bodies to you, and a library nothing but
-a catacomb!"
-
-"You bewilder me!"
-
-"That's all right!"
-
-A few moments he stood silent. The woman, moveless as a statue,
-stood silent also by the coffin-door.
-
-"Upon occasion," said the sexton at length, "it is more convenient
-to put one's bird-self in front. Every one, as you ought to know,
-has a beast-self--and a bird-self, and a stupid fish-self, ay, and
-a creeping serpent-self too--which it takes a deal of crushing to
-kill! In truth he has also a tree-self and a crystal-self, and I
-don't know how many selves more--all to get into harmony. You can
-tell what sort a man is by his creature that comes oftenest to the
-front."
-
-He turned to his wife, and I considered him more closely. He was
-above the ordinary height, and stood more erect than when last I saw
-him. His face was, like his wife's, very pale; its nose handsomely
-encased the beak that had retired within it; its lips were very
-thin, and even they had no colour, but their curves were beautiful,
-and about them quivered a shadowy smile that had humour in it as
-well as love and pity.
-
-"We are in want of something to eat and drink, wife," he said; "we
-have come a long way!"
-
-"You know, husband," she answered, "we can give only to him that
-asks."
-
-She turned her unchanging face and radiant eyes upon mine.
-
-"Please give me something to eat, Mrs. Raven," I said, "and
-something--what you will--to quench my thirst."
-
-"Your thirst must be greater before you can have what will quench
-it," she replied; "but what I can give you, I will gladly."
-
-She went to a cupboard in the wall, brought from it bread and wine,
-and set them on the table.
-
-We sat down to the perfect meal; and as I ate, the bread and wine
-seemed to go deeper than the hunger and thirst. Anxiety and
-discomfort vanished; expectation took their place.
-
-I grew very sleepy, and now first felt weary.
-
-"I have earned neither food nor sleep, Mrs. Raven," I said, "but
-you have given me the one freely, and now I hope you will give me
-the other, for I sorely need it."
-
-"Sleep is too fine a thing ever to be earned," said the sexton;
-"it must be given and accepted, for it is a necessity. But it would
-be perilous to use this house as a half-way hostelry--for the repose
-of a night, that is, merely."
-
-A wild-looking little black cat jumped on his knee as he spoke.
-He patted it as one pats a child to make it go to sleep: he seemed
-to me patting down the sod upon a grave--patting it lovingly, with
-an inward lullaby.
-
-"Here is one of Mara's kittens!" he said to his wife: "will you
-give it something and put it out? she may want it!"
-
-The woman took it from him gently, gave it a little piece of bread,
-and went out with it, closing the door behind her.
-
-"How then am I to make use of your hospitality?" I asked.
-
-"By accepting it to the full," he answered.
-
-"I do not understand."
-
-"In this house no one wakes of himself."
-
-"Why?"
-
-"Because no one anywhere ever wakes of himself. You can wake
-yourself no more than you can make yourself."
-
-"Then perhaps you or Mrs. Raven would kindly call me!" I said, still
-nowise understanding, but feeling afresh that vague foreboding.
-
-"We cannot."
-
-"How dare I then go to sleep?" I cried.
-
-"If you would have the rest of this house, you must not trouble
-yourself about waking. You must go to sleep heartily, altogether
-and outright."
-My soul sank within me.
-
-The sexton sat looking me in the face. His eyes seemed to say,
-"Will you not trust me?" I returned his gaze, and answered,
-
-"I will."
-
-"Then come," he said; "I will show you your couch."
-
-As we rose, the woman came in. She took up the candle, turned to
-the inner door, and led the way. I went close behind her, and the
-sexton followed.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-THE CEMETERY
-
-The air as of an ice-house met me crossing the threshold. The
-door fell-to behind us. The sexton said something to his wife
-that made her turn toward us.--What a change had passed upon her!
-It was as if the splendour of her eyes had grown too much for them
-to hold, and, sinking into her countenance, made it flash with a
-loveliness like that of Beatrice in the white rose of the redeemed.
-Life itself, life eternal, immortal, streamed from it, an unbroken
-lightning. Even her hands shone with a white radiance, every
-"pearl-shell helmet" gleaming like a moonstone. Her beauty was
-overpowering; I was glad when she turned it from me.
-
-But the light of the candle reached such a little way, that at first
-I could see nothing of the place. Presently, however, it fell on
-something that glimmered, a little raised from the floor. Was it
-a bed? Could live thing sleep in such a mortal cold? Then surely
-it was no wonder it should not wake of itself! Beyond that appeared
-a fainter shine; and then I thought I descried uncertain gleams on
-every side.
-
-A few paces brought us to the first; it was a human form under a
-sheet, straight and still--whether of man or woman I could not tell,
-for the light seemed to avoid the face as we passed.
-
-I soon perceived that we were walking along an aisle of couches,
-on almost every one of which, with its head to the passage, lay
-something asleep or dead, covered with a sheet white as snow. My
-soul grew silent with dread. Through aisle after aisle we went,
-among couches innumerable. I could see only a few of them at
-once, but they were on all sides, vanishing, as it seemed, in the
-infinite.--Was it here lay my choice of a bed? Must I go to sleep
-among the unwaking, with no one to rouse me? Was this the sexton's
-library? were these his books? Truly it was no half-way house, this
-chamber of the dead!
-
-"One of the cellars I am placed to watch!" remarked Mr. Raven--in
-a low voice, as if fearing to disturb his silent guests. "Much
-wine is set here to ripen!--But it is dark for a stranger!" he added.
-
-"The moon is rising; she will soon be here," said his wife, and
-her clear voice, low and sweet, sounded of ancient sorrow long
-bidden adieu.
-
-Even as she spoke the moon looked in at an opening in the wall, and
-a thousand gleams of white responded to her shine. But not yet
-could I descry beginning or end of the couches. They stretched away
-and away, as if for all the disparted world to sleep upon. For
-along the far receding narrow ways, every couch stood by itself, and
-on each slept a lonely sleeper. I thought at first their sleep was
-death, but I soon saw it was something deeper still--a something I
-did not know.
-
-The moon rose higher, and shone through other openings, but I
-could never see enough of the place at once to know its shape or
-character; now it would resemble a long cathedral nave, now a huge
-barn made into a dwelling of tombs. She looked colder than any
-moon in the frostiest night of the world, and where she shone direct
-upon them, cast a bluish, icy gleam on the white sheets and the
-pallid countenances--but it might be the faces that made the moon
-so cold!
-
-Of such as I could see, all were alike in the brotherhood of death,
-all unlike in the character and history recorded upon them. Here
-lay a man who had died--for although this was not death, I have no
-other name to give it--in the prime of manly strength; his dark
-beard seemed to flow like a liberated stream from the glacier of
-his frozen countenance; his forehead was smooth as polished marble;
-a shadow of pain lingered about his lips, but only a shadow. On
-the next couch lay the form of a girl, passing lovely to behold.
-The sadness left on her face by parting was not yet absorbed in
-perfect peace, but absolute submission possessed the placid features,
-which bore no sign of wasting disease, of "killing care or grief
-of heart": if pain had been there, it was long charmed asleep, never
-again to wake. Many were the beautiful that there lay very still--
-some of them mere children; but I did not see one infant. The
-most beautiful of all was a lady whose white hair, and that alone,
-suggested her old when first she fell asleep. On her stately
-countenance rested--not submission, but a right noble acquiescence,
-an assurance, firm as the foundations of the universe, that all was
-as it should be. On some faces lingered the almost obliterated
-scars of strife, the marrings of hopeless loss, the fading shadows
-of sorrows that had seemed inconsolable: the aurora of the great
-morning had not yet quite melted them away; but those faces were
-few, and every one that bore such brand of pain seemed to plead,
-"Pardon me: I died only yesterday!" or, "Pardon me: I died but a
-century ago!" That some had been dead for ages I knew, not merely
-by their unutterable repose, but by something for which I have
-neither word nor symbol.
-
-We came at last to three empty couches, immediately beyond which
-lay the form of a beautiful woman, a little past the prime of life.
-One of her arms was outside the sheet, and her hand lay with the
-palm upward, in its centre a dark spot. Next to her was the
-stalwart figure of a man of middle age. His arm too was outside
-the sheet, the strong hand almost closed, as if clenched on the grip
-of a sword. I thought he must be a king who had died fighting for
-the truth.
-
-"Will you hold the candle nearer, wife?" whispered the sexton,
-bending down to examine the woman's hand.
-
-"It heals well," he murmured to himself: "the nail found in her
-nothing to hurt!"
-
-At last I ventured to speak.
-
-"Are they not dead?" I asked softly.
-
-"I cannot answer you," he replied in a subdued voice. "I almost
-forget what they mean by DEAD in the old world. If I said a person
-was dead, my wife would understand one thing, and you would imagine
-another.--This is but one of my treasure vaults," he went on, "and
-all my guests are not laid in vaults: out there on the moor they
-lie thick as the leaves of a forest after the first blast of your
-winter--thick, let me say rather, as if the great white rose of
-heaven had shed its petals over it. All night the moon reads their
-faces, and smiles."
-
-"But why leave them in the corrupting moonlight?" I asked.
-
-"Our moon," he answered, "is not like yours--the old cinder of a
-burnt-out world; her beams embalm the dead, not corrupt them. You
-observe that here the sexton lays his dead on the earth; be buries
-very few under it! In your world he lays huge stones on them,
-as if to keep them down; I watch for the hour to ring the
-resurrection-bell, and wake those that are still asleep. Your
-sexton looks at the clock to know when to ring the dead-alive to
-church; I hearken for the cock on the spire to crow; `AWAKE, THOU
-THAT SLEEPEST, AND ARISE FROM THE DEAD!'"
-
-I began to conclude that the self-styled sexton was in truth an
-insane parson: the whole thing was too mad! But how was I to get
-away from it? I was helpless! In this world of the dead, the
-raven and his wife were the only living I had yet seen: whither
-should I turn for help? I was lost in a space larger than
-imagination; for if here two things, or any parts of them, could
-occupy the same space, why not twenty or ten thousand?--But I dared
-not think further in that direction.
-
-"You seem in your dead to see differences beyond my perception!" I
-ventured to remark.
-
-"None of those you see," he answered, "are in truth quite dead yet,
-and some have but just begun to come alive and die. Others had
-begun to die, that is to come alive, long before they came to us;
-and when such are indeed dead, that instant they will wake and leave
-us. Almost every night some rise and go. But I will not say more,
-for I find my words only mislead you!--This is the couch that has
-been waiting for you," he ended, pointing to one of the three.
-
-"Why just this?" I said, beginning to tremble, and anxious by
-parley to delay.
-
-"For reasons which one day you will be glad to know," he answered.
-
-"Why not know them now?"
-
-"That also you will know when you wake."
-
-"But these are all dead, and I am alive!" I objected, shuddering.
-
-"Not much," rejoined the sexton with a smile, "--not nearly enough!
-Blessed be the true life that the pauses between its throbs are not
-death!"
-
-"The place is too cold to let one sleep!" I said.
-
-"Do these find it so?" he returned. "They sleep well--or will soon.
-Of cold they feel not a breath: it heals their wounds.--Do not be a
-coward, Mr. Vane. Turn your back on fear, and your face to whatever
-may come. Give yourself up to the night, and you will rest indeed.
-Harm will not come to you, but a good you cannot foreknow."
-
-The sexton and I stood by the side of the couch, his wife, with the
-candle in her hand, at the foot of it. Her eyes were full of light,
-but her face was again of a still whiteness; it was no longer radiant.
-
-"Would they have me make of a charnel-house my bed-chamber?" I
-cried aloud. "I will not. I will lie abroad on the heath; it
-cannot be colder there!"
-
-"I have just told you that the dead are there also,
-
- `Thick as autumnal leaves that strow the brooks
- In Vallombrosa,'"
-
-said the librarian.
-
-"I will NOT," I cried again; and in the compassing dark, the two
-gleamed out like spectres that waited on the dead; neither answered
-me; each stood still and sad, and looked at the other.
-
-"Be of good comfort; we watch the flock of the great shepherd,"
-said the sexton to his wife.
-
-Then he turned to me.
-
-"Didst thou not find the air of the place pure and sweet when thou
-enteredst it?" he asked.
-
-"Yes; but oh, so cold!" I answered.
-
-"Then know," he returned, and his voice was stern, "that thou who
-callest thyself alive, hast brought into this chamber the odours
-of death, and its air will not be wholesome for the sleepers until
-thou art gone from it!"
-
-They went farther into the great chamber, and I was left alone in
-the moonlight with the dead.
-
-I turned to escape.
-
-What a long way I found it back through the dead! At first I was
-too angry to be afraid, but as I grew calm, the still shapes grew
-terrible. At last, with loud offence to the gracious silence, I
-ran, I fled wildly, and, bursting out, flung-to the door behind me.
-It closed with an awful silence.
-
-I stood in pitch-darkness. Feeling about me, I found a door, opened
-it, and was aware of the dim light of a lamp. I stood in my library,
-with the handle of the masked door in my hand.
-
-Had I come to myself out of a vision?--or lost myself by going back
-to one? Which was the real--what I now saw, or what I had just
-ceased to see? Could both be real, interpenetrating yet unmingling?
-
-I threw myself on a couch, and fell asleep.
-
-In the library was one small window to the east, through which, at
-this time of the year, the first rays of the sun shone upon a mirror
-whence they were reflected on the masked door: when I woke, there
-they shone, and thither they drew my eyes. With the feeling that
-behind it must lie the boundless chamber I had left by that door,
-I sprang to my feet, and opened it. The light, like an eager hound,
-shot before me into the closet, and pounced upon the gilded edges
-of a large book.
-
-"What idiot," I cried, "has put that book in the shelf the wrong
-way?"
-
-But the gilded edges, reflecting the light a second time, flung it
-on a nest of drawers in a dark corner, and I saw that one of them
-was half open.
-
-"More meddling!" I cried, and went to close the drawer.
-
-It contained old papers, and seemed more than full, for it would
-not close. Taking the topmost one out, I perceived that it was
-in my father's writing and of some length. The words on which first
-my eyes fell, at once made me eager to learn what it contained. I
-carried it to the library, sat down in one of the western windows,
-and read what follows.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-MY FATHER'S MANUSCRIPT
-
-I am filled with awe of what I have to write. The sun is shining
-golden above me; the sea lies blue beneath his gaze; the same world
-sends its growing things up to the sun, and its flying things into
-the air which I have breathed from my infancy; but I know the
-outspread splendour a passing show, and that at any moment it may,
-like the drop-scene of a stage, be lifted to reveal more wonderful
-things.
-
-Shortly after my father's death, I was seated one morning in the
-library. I had been, somewhat listlessly, regarding the portrait
-that hangs among the books, which I knew only as that of a distant
-ancestor, and wishing I could learn something of its original. Then
-I had taken a book from the shelves and begun to read.
-
-Glancing up from it, I saw coming toward me--not between me and
-the door, but between me and the portrait--a thin pale man in rusty
-black. He looked sharp and eager, and had a notable nose, at once
-reminding me of a certain jug my sisters used to call Mr. Crow.
-
-"Finding myself in your vicinity, Mr. Vane, I have given myself the
-pleasure of calling," he said, in a peculiar but not disagreeable
-voice. "Your honoured grandfather treated me--I may say it without
-presumption--as a friend, having known me from childhood as his
-father's librarian."
-
-It did not strike me at the time how old the man must be.
-
-"May I ask where you live now, Mr. Crow?" I said.
-
-He smiled an amused smile.
-
-"You nearly hit my name," he rejoined, "which shows the family
-insight. You have seen me before, but only once, and could not
-then have heard it!"
-
-"Where was that?"
-
-"In this very room. You were quite a child, however!"
-
-I could not be sure that I remembered him, but for a moment I
-fancied I did, and I begged him to set me right as to his name.
-
-"There is such a thing as remembering without recognising the memory
-in it," he remarked. "For my name--which you have near enough--it
-used to be Raven."
-
-I had heard the name, for marvellous tales had brought it me.
-
-"It is very kind of you to come and see me," I said. "Will you not
-sit down?"
-
-He seated himself at once.
-
-"You knew my father, then, I presume?"
-
-"I knew him," he answered with a curious smile, "but he did not
-care about my acquaintance, and we never met.--That gentleman,
-however," he added, pointing to the portrait,--"old Sir Up'ard,
-his people called him,--was in his day a friend of mine yet more
-intimate than ever your grandfather became."
-
-Then at length I began to think the interview a strange one. But
-in truth it was hardly stranger that my visitor should remember
-Sir Upward, than that he should have been my great-grandfather's
-librarian!
-
-"I owe him much," he continued; "for, although I had read many more
-books than he, yet, through the special direction of his studies, he
-was able to inform me of a certain relation of modes which I should
-never have discovered of myself, and could hardly have learned from
-any one else."
-
-"Would you mind telling me all about that?" I said.
-
-"By no means--as much at least as I am able: there are not such
-things as wilful secrets," he answered--and went on.
-
-"That closet held his library--a hundred manuscripts or so, for
-printing was not then invented. One morning I sat there, working
-at a catalogue of them, when he looked in at the door, and said,
-`Come.' I laid down my pen and followed him--across the great hall,
-down a steep rough descent, and along an underground passage to a
-tower he had lately built, consisting of a stair and a room at the
-top of it. The door of this room had a tremendous lock, which he
-undid with the smallest key I ever saw. I had scarcely crossed
-the threshold after him, when, to my eyes, he began to dwindle, and
-grew less and less. All at once my vision seemed to come right, and
-I saw that he was moving swiftly away from me. In a minute more he
-was the merest speck in the distance, with the tops of blue mountains
-beyond him, clear against a sky of paler blue. I recognised the
-country, for I had gone there and come again many a time, although
-I had never known this way to it.
-
-"Many years after, when the tower had long disappeared, I taught
-one of his descendants what Sir Upward had taught me; and now and
-then to this day I use your house when I want to go the nearest
-way home. I must indeed--without your leave, for which I ask your
-pardon--have by this time well established a right of way through
-it--not from front to back, but from bottom to top!"
-
-"You would have me then understand, Mr. Raven," I said, "that you
-go through my house into another world, heedless of disparting
-space?"
-
-"That I go through it is an incontrovertible acknowledgement of
-space," returned the old librarian.
-
-"Please do not quibble, Mr. Raven," I rejoined. "Please to take my
-question as you know I mean it."
-
-"There is in your house a door, one step through which carries me
-into a world very much another than this."
-
-"A better?"
-
-"Not throughout; but so much another that most of its physical, and
-many of its mental laws are different from those of this world. As
-for moral laws, they must everywhere be fundamentally the same."
-
-"You try my power of belief!" I said.
-
-"You take me for a madman, probably?"
-
-"You do not look like one."
-
-"A liar then?"
-
-"You give me no ground to think you such."
-
-"Only you do not believe me?"
-
-"I will go out of that door with you if you like: I believe in you
-enough to risk the attempt."
-
-"The blunder all my children make!" he murmured. "The only door out
-is the door in!"
-
-I began to think he must be crazy. He sat silent for a moment, his
-head resting on his hand, his elbow on the table, and his eyes on
-the books before him.
-
-"A book," he said louder, "is a door in, and therefore a door out.--I
-see old Sir Up'ard," he went on, closing his eyes, "and my heart
-swells with love to him:--what world is he in?"
-
-"The world of your heart!" I replied; "--that is, the idea of him
-is there."
-
-"There is one world then at least on which your hall-door does not
-open?"
-
-"I grant you so much; but the things in that world are not things to
-have and to hold."
-
-"Think a little farther," he rejoined: "did anything ever become
-yours, except by getting into that world?--The thought is beyond
-you, however, at present!--I tell you there are more worlds, and
-more doors to them, than you will think of in many years!"
-
-He rose, left the library, crossed the hall, and went straight up
-to the garret, familiar evidently with every turn. I followed,
-studying his back. His hair hung down long and dark, straight and
-glossy. His coat was wide and reached to his heels. His shoes
-seemed too large for him.
-
-In the garret a light came through at the edges of the great roofing
-slabs, and showed us parts where was no flooring, and we must step
-from joist to joist: in the middle of one of these spaces rose a
-partition, with a door: through it I followed Mr. Raven into a small,
-obscure chamber, whose top contracted as it rose, and went slanting
-through the roof.
-
-"That is the door I spoke of," he said, pointing to an oblong mirror
-that stood on the floor and leaned against the wall. I went in
-front of it, and saw our figures dimly reflected in its dusty face.
-There was something about it that made me uneasy. It looked
-old-fashioned and neglected, but, notwithstanding its ordinary
-seeming, the eagle, perched with outstretched wings on the top,
-appeared threatful.
-
-"As a mirror," said the librarian, "it has grown dingy with age;
-but that is no matter: its doorness depends on the light."
-
-"Light!" I rejoined; "there is no light here!"
-
-He did not answer me, but began to pull at a little chain on the
-opposite wall. I heard a creaking: the top of the chamber was
-turning slowly round. He ceased pulling, looked at his watch, and
-began to pull again.
-
-"We arrive almost to the moment!" he said; "it is on the very stroke
-of noon!"
-
-The top went creaking and revolving for a minute or so. Then he
-pulled two other chains, now this, now that, and returned to the
-first. A moment more and the chamber grew much clearer: a patch of
-sunlight had fallen upon a mirror on the wall opposite that against
-which the other leaned, and on the dust I saw the path of the
-reflected rays to the mirror on the ground. But from the latter
-none were returned; they seemed to go clean through; there was
-nowhere in the chamber a second patch of light!
-
-"Where are the sunrays gone?" I cried.
-
-"That I cannot tell," returned Mr. Raven; "--back, perhaps, to where
-they came from first. They now belong, I fancy, to a sense not yet
-developed in us."
-
-He then talked of the relations of mind to matter, and of senses
-to qualities, in a way I could only a little understand, whence he
-went on to yet stranger things which I could not at all comprehend.
-He spoke much about dimensions, telling me that there were many
-more than three, some of them concerned with powers which were indeed
-in us, but of which as yet we knew absolutely nothing. His words,
-however, I confess, took little more hold of me than the light did
-of the mirror, for I thought he hardly knew what he was saying.
-
-Suddenly I was aware that our forms had gone from the mirror, which
-seemed full of a white mist. As I gazed I saw, growing gradually
-visible beyond the mist, the tops of a range of mountains, which
-became clearer and clearer. Soon the mist vanished entirely,
-uncovering the face of a wide heath, on which, at some distance,
-was the figure of a man moving swiftly away. I turned to address
-my companion; he was no longer by my side. I looked again at the
-form in the mirror, and recognised the wide coat flying, the black
-hair lifting in a wind that did not touch me. I rushed in terror
-from the place.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-I REPENT
-
-I laid the manuscript down, consoled to find that my father had
-had a peep into that mysterious world, and that he knew Mr. Raven.
-
-Then I remembered that I had never heard the cause or any
-circumstance of my father's death, and began to believe that he
-must at last have followed Mr. Raven, and not come back; whereupon
-I speedily grew ashamed of my flight. What wondrous facts might
-I not by this time have gathered concerning life and death, and
-wide regions beyond ordinary perception! Assuredly the Ravens were
-good people, and a night in their house would nowise have hurt me!
-They were doubtless strange, but it was faculty in which the one
-was peculiar, and beauty in which the other was marvellous! And I
-had not believed in them! had treated them as unworthy of my
-confidence, as harbouring a design against me! The more I thought
-of my behaviour to them, the more disgusted I became with myself.
-Why should I have feared such dead? To share their holy rest was
-an honour of which I had proved myself unworthy! What harm could
-that sleeping king, that lady with the wound in her palm, have done
-me? I fell a longing after the sweet and stately stillness of their
-two countenances, and wept. Weeping I threw myself on a couch, and
-suddenly fell asleep.
-
-As suddenly I woke, feeling as if some one had called me. The
-house was still as an empty church. A blackbird was singing on
-the lawn. I said to myself, "I will go and tell them I am ashamed,
-and will do whatever they would have me do!" I rose, and went
-straight up the stairs to the garret.
-
-The wooden chamber was just as when first I saw it, the mirror
-dimly reflecting everything before it. It was nearly noon, and
-the sun would be a little higher than when first I came: I must
-raise the hood a little, and adjust the mirrors accordingly! If I
-had but been in time to see Mr. Raven do it!
-
-I pulled the chains, and let the light fall on the first mirror.
-I turned then to the other: there were the shapes of the former
-vision--distinguishable indeed, but tremulous like a landscape in
-a pool ruffled by "a small pipling wind!" I touched the glass; it
-was impermeable.
-
-Suspecting polarisation as the thing required, I shifted and shifted
-the mirrors, changing their relation, until at last, in a great
-degree, so far as I was concerned, by chance, things came right
-between them, and I saw the mountains blue and steady and clear. I
-stepped forward, and my feet were among the heather.
-
-All I knew of the way to the cottage was that we had gone through
-a pine-forest. I passed through many thickets and several small
-fir-woods, continually fancying afresh that I recognised something
-of the country; but I had come upon no forest, and now the sun was
-near the horizon, and the air had begun to grow chill with the
-coming winter, when, to my delight, I saw a little black object
-coming toward me: it was indeed the raven!
-
-I hastened to meet him.
-
-"I beg your pardon, sir, for my rudeness last night," I said. "Will
-you take me with you now? I heartily confess I do not deserve it."
-
-"Ah!" he returned, and looked up. Then, after a brief pause, "My
-wife does not expect you to-night," he said. "She regrets that
-we at all encouraged your staying last week."
-
-"Take me to her that I may tell her how sorry I am," I begged
-humbly.
-
-"It is of no use," he answered. "Your night was not come then, or
-you would not have left us. It is not come now, and I cannot show
-you the way. The dead were rejoicing under their daisies--they
-all lie among the roots of the flowers of heaven--at the thought
-of your delight when the winter should be past, and the morning
-with its birds come: ere you left them, they shivered in their beds.
-When the spring of the universe arrives,--but that cannot be for
-ages yet! how many, I do not know--and do not care to know."
-
-"Tell me one thing, I beg of you, Mr. Raven: is my father with
-you? Have you seen him since he left the world?"
-
-"Yes; he is with us, fast asleep. That was he you saw with his
-arm on the coverlet, his hand half closed."
-
-"Why did you not tell me? That I should have been so near him,
-and not know!"
-
-"And turn your back on him!" corrected the raven.
-
-"I would have lain down at once had I known!"
-
-"I doubt it. Had you been ready to lie down, you would have known
-him!--Old Sir Up'ard," he went on, "and your twice great-grandfather,
-both are up and away long ago. Your great-grandfather has been with
-us for many a year; I think he will soon begin to stir. You saw
-him last night, though of course you did not know him."
-
-"Why OF COURSE?"
-
-"Because he is so much nearer waking than you. No one who will not
-sleep can ever wake."
-
-"I do not at all understand you!"
-
-"You turned away, and would not understand!"
-I held my peace.--But if I did not say something, he would go!
-
-"And my grandfather--is he also with you?" I asked.
-
-"No; he is still in the Evil Wood, fighting the dead."
-
-"Where is the Evil Wood, that I may find him?"
-
-"You will not find him; but you will hardly miss the wood. It is
-the place where those who will not sleep, wake up at night, to kill
-their dead and bury them."
-
-"I cannot understand you!"
-
-"Naturally not. Neither do I understand you; I can read neither
-your heart nor your face. When my wife and I do not understand
-our children, it is because there is not enough of them to be
-understood. God alone can understand foolishness."
-
-"Then," I said, feeling naked and very worthless, "will you be so
-good as show me the nearest way home? There are more ways than one,
-I know, for I have gone by two already."
-
-"There are indeed many ways."
-
-"Tell me, please, how to recognise the nearest."
-
-"I cannot," answered the raven; "you and I use the same words with
-different meanings. We are often unable to tell people what they
-NEED to know, because they WANT to know something else, and would
-therefore only misunderstand what we said. Home is ever so far
-away in the palm of your hand, and how to get there it is of no use
-to tell you. But you will get there; you must get there; you have
-to get there. Everybody who is not at home, has to go home. You
-thought you were at home where I found you: if that had been your
-home, you could not have left it. Nobody can leave home. And nobody
-ever was or ever will be at home without having gone there."
-
-"Enigma treading on enigma!" I exclaimed. "I did not come here to
-be asked riddles."
-
-"No; but you came, and found the riddles waiting for you! Indeed
-you are yourself the only riddle. What you call riddles are truths,
-and seem riddles because you are not true."
-
-"Worse and worse!" I cried.
-
-"And you MUST answer the riddles!" he continued. "They will go on
-asking themselves until you understand yourself. The universe is
-a riddle trying to get out, and you are holding your door hard
-against it."
-
-"Will you not in pity tell me what I am to do--where I must go?"
-
-"How should I tell YOUR to-do, or the way to it?"
-
-"If I am not to go home, at least direct me to some of my kind."
-
-"I do not know of any. The beings most like you are in that
-direction."
-
-He pointed with his beak. I could see nothing but the setting sun,
-which blinded me.
-
-"Well," I said bitterly, "I cannot help feeling hardly treated--taken
-from my home, abandoned in a strange world, and refused instruction
-as to where I am to go or what I am to do!"
-
-"You forget," said the raven, "that, when I brought you and you
-declined my hospitality, you reached what you call home in safety:
-now you are come of yourself! Good night."
-
-He turned and walked slowly away, with his beak toward the ground.
-I stood dazed. It was true I had come of myself, but had I not
-come with intent of atonement? My heart was sore, and in my brain
-was neither quest nor purpose, hope nor desire. I gazed after the
-raven, and would have followed him, but felt it useless.
-
-All at once he pounced on a spot, throwing the whole weight of his
-body on his bill, and for some moments dug vigorously. Then with
-a flutter of his wings he threw back his head, and something shot
-from his bill, cast high in the air. That moment the sun set, and
-the air at once grew very dusk, but the something opened into a
-soft radiance, and came pulsing toward me like a fire-fly, but with
-a much larger and a yellower light. It flew over my head. I turned
-and followed it.
-
-Here I interrupt my narrative to remark that it involves a constant
-struggle to say what cannot be said with even an approach to
-precision, the things recorded being, in their nature and in that
-of the creatures concerned in them, so inexpressibly different from
-any possible events of this economy, that I can present them only
-by giving, in the forms and language of life in this world, the
-modes in which they affected me--not the things themselves, but the
-feelings they woke in me. Even this much, however, I do with a
-continuous and abiding sense of failure, finding it impossible to
-present more than one phase of a multitudinously complicated
-significance, or one concentric sphere of a graduated embodiment.
-A single thing would sometimes seem to be and mean many things, with
-an uncertain identity at the heart of them, which kept constantly
-altering their look. I am indeed often driven to set down what I
-know to be but a clumsy and doubtful representation of the mere
-feeling aimed at, none of the communicating media of this world
-being fit to convey it, in its peculiar strangeness, with even an
-approach to clearness or certainty. Even to one who knew the region
-better than myself, I should have no assurance of transmitting the
-reality of my experience in it. While without a doubt, for instance,
-that I was actually regarding a scene of activity, I might be, at
-the same moment, in my consciousness aware that I was perusing a
-metaphysical argument.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-THE BAD BURROW
-
-As the air grew black and the winter closed swiftly around me, the
-fluttering fire blazed out more luminous, and arresting its flight,
-hovered waiting. So soon as I came under its radiance, it flew
-slowly on, lingering now and then above spots where the ground was
-rocky. Every time I looked up, it seemed to have grown larger, and
-at length gave me an attendant shadow. Plainly a bird-butterfly,
-it flew with a certain swallowy double. Its wings were very large,
-nearly square, and flashed all the colours of the rainbow. Wondering
-at their splendour, I became so absorbed in their beauty that I
-stumbled over a low rock, and lay stunned. When I came to myself,
-the creature was hovering over my head, radiating the whole chord
-of light, with multitudinous gradations and some kinds of colour I
-had never before seen. I rose and went on, but, unable to take my
-eyes off the shining thing to look to my steps, I struck my foot
-against a stone. Fearing then another fall, I sat down to watch
-the little glory, and a great longing awoke in me to have it in my
-hand. To my unspeakable delight, it began to sink toward me. Slowly
-at first, then swiftly it sank, growing larger as it came nearer.
-I felt as if the treasure of the universe were giving itself to me--
-put out my hand, and had it. But the instant I took it, its light
-went out; all was dark as pitch; a dead book with boards outspread
-lay cold and heavy in my hand. I threw it in the air--only to hear
-it fall among the heather. Burying my face in my hands, I sat in
-motionless misery.
-
-But the cold grew so bitter that, fearing to be frozen, I got up.
-The moment I was on my feet, a faint sense of light awoke in me.
-"Is it coming to life?" I cried, and a great pang of hope shot
-through me. Alas, no! it was the edge of a moon peering up keen
-and sharp over a level horizon! She brought me light--but no
-guidance! SHE would not hover over me, would not wait on my
-faltering steps! She could but offer me an ignorant choice!
-
-With a full face she rose, and I began to see a little about me.
-Westward of her, and not far from me, a range of low hills broke
-the horizon-line: I set out for it.
-
-But what a night I had to pass ere I reached it! The moon seemed
-to know something, for she stared at me oddly. Her look was indeed
-icy-cold, but full of interest, or at least curiosity. She was not
-the same moon I had known on the earth; her face was strange to me,
-and her light yet stranger. Perhaps it came from an unknown sun!
-Every time I looked up, I found her staring at me with all her might!
-At first I was annoyed, as at the rudeness of a fellow creature; but
-soon I saw or fancied a certain wondering pity in her gaze: why was
-I out in her night? Then first I knew what an awful thing it was to
-be awake in the universe: I WAS, and could not help it!
-
-As I walked, my feet lost the heather, and trod a bare spongy soil,
-something like dry, powdery peat. To my dismay it gave a momentary
-heave under me; then presently I saw what seemed the ripple of an
-earthquake running on before me, shadowy in the low moon. It passed
-into the distance; but, while yet I stared after it, a single wave
-rose up, and came slowly toward me. A yard or two away it burst,
-and from it, with a scramble and a bound, issued an animal like a
-tiger. About his mouth and ears hung clots of mould, and his eyes
-winked and flamed as he rushed at me, showing his white teeth in a
-soundless snarl. I stood fascinated, unconscious of either courage
-or fear. He turned his head to the ground, and plunged into it.
-
-"That moon is affecting my brain," I said as I resumed my journey.
-"What life can be here but the phantasmic--the stuff of which dreams
-are made? I am indeed walking in a vain show!"
-
-Thus I strove to keep my heart above the waters of fear, nor knew
-that she whom I distrusted was indeed my defence from the realities
-I took for phantoms: her light controlled the monsters, else had
-I scarce taken a second step on the hideous ground. "I will not
-be appalled by that which only seems!" I said to myself, yet felt
-it a terrible thing to walk on a sea where such fishes disported
-themselves below. With that, a step or two from me, the head of
-a worm began to come slowly out of the earth, as big as that of a
-polar bear and much resembling it, with a white mane to its red neck.
-The drawing wriggles with which its huge length extricated itself
-were horrible, yet I dared not turn my eyes from them. The moment
-its tail was free, it lay as if exhausted, wallowing in feeble effort
-to burrow again.
-
-"Does it live on the dead," I wondered, "and is it unable to hurt
-the living? If they scent their prey and come out, why do they leave
-me unharmed?"
-
-I know now it was that the moon paralysed them.
-
-All the night through as I walked, hideous creatures, no two
-alike, threatened me. In some of them, beauty of colour enhanced
-loathliness of shape: one large serpent was covered from head to
-distant tail with feathers of glorious hues.
-
-I became at length so accustomed to their hurtless menaces that I
-fell to beguiling the way with the invention of monstrosities, never
-suspecting that I owed each moment of life to the staring moon.
-Though hers was no primal radiance, it so hampered the evil things,
-that I walked in safety. For light is yet light, if but the last
-of a countless series of reflections! How swiftly would not my feet
-have carried me over the restless soil, had I known that, if still
-within their range when her lamp ceased to shine on the cursed spot,
-I should that moment be at the mercy of such as had no mercy, the
-centre of a writhing heap of hideousness, every individual of it as
-terrible as before it had but seemed! Fool of ignorance, I watched
-the descent of the weary, solemn, anxious moon down the widening
-vault above me, with no worse uneasiness than the dread of losing
-my way--where as yet I had indeed no way to lose.
-
-I was drawing near the hills I had made my goal, and she was now not
-far from their sky-line, when the soundless wallowing ceased, and
-the burrow lay motionless and bare. Then I saw, slowly walking over
-the light soil, the form of a woman. A white mist floated about her,
-now assuming, now losing to reassume the shape of a garment, as it
-gathered to her or was blown from her by a wind that dogged her steps.
-
-She was beautiful, but with such a pride at once and misery on her
-countenance that I could hardly believe what yet I saw. Up and down
-she walked, vainly endeavouring to lay hold of the mist and wrap it
-around her. The eyes in the beautiful face were dead, and on her
-left side was a dark spot, against which she would now and then press
-her hand, as if to stifle pain or sickness. Her hair hung nearly to
-her feet, and sometimes the wind would so mix it with the mist that
-I could not distinguish the one from the other; but when it fell
-gathering together again, it shone a pale gold in the moonlight.
-
-Suddenly pressing both hands on her heart, she fell to the ground,
-and the mist rose from her and melted in the air. I ran to her.
-But she began to writhe in such torture that I stood aghast. A
-moment more and her legs, hurrying from her body, sped away serpents.
->From her shoulders fled her arms as in terror, serpents also. Then
-something flew up from her like a bat, and when I looked again, she
-was gone. The ground rose like the sea in a storm; terror laid hold
-upon me; I turned to the hills and ran.
-
-I was already on the slope of their base, when the moon sank behind
-one of their summits, leaving me in its shadow. Behind me rose a
-waste and sickening cry, as of frustrate desire--the only sound I
-had heard since the fall of the dead butterfly; it made my heart
-shake like a flag in the wind. I turned, saw many dark objects
-bounding after me, and made for the crest of a ridge on which the
-moon still shone. She seemed to linger there that I might see to
-defend myself. Soon I came in sight of her, and climbed the faster.
-
-Crossing the shadow of a rock, I heard the creatures panting at my
-heels. But just as the foremost threw himself upon me with a snarl
-of greedy hate, we rushed into the moon together. She flashed out
-an angry light, and he fell from me a bodiless blotch. Strength came
-to me, and I turned on the rest. But one by one as they darted into
-the light, they dropped with a howl; and I saw or fancied a strange
-smile on the round face above me.
-
-I climbed to the top of the ridge: far away shone the moon, sinking
-to a low horizon. The air was pure and strong. I descended a little
-way, found it warmer, and sat down to wait the dawn.
-
-The moon went below, and the world again was dark.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-THE EVIL WOOD
-
-I fell fast asleep, and when I woke the sun was rising. I went to
-the top again, and looked back: the hollow I had crossed in the
-moonlight lay without sign of life. Could it be that the calm expanse
-before me swarmed with creatures of devouring greed?
-
-I turned and looked over the land through which my way must lie. It
-seemed a wide desert, with a patch of a different colour in the
-distance that might be a forest. Sign of presence, human or animal,
-was none--smoke or dust or shadow of cultivation. Not a cloud floated
-in the clear heaven; no thinnest haze curtained any segment of its
-circling rim.
-
-I descended, and set out for the imaginable forest: something alive
-might be there; on this side of it could not well be anything!
-
-When I reached the plain, I found it, as far as my sight could go,
-of rock, here flat and channeled, there humped and pinnacled--
-evidently the wide bed of a vanished river, scored by innumerable
-water-runs, without a trace of moisture in them. Some of the channels
-bore a dry moss, and some of the rocks a few lichens almost as hard
-as themselves. The air, once "filled with pleasant noise of waters,"
-was silent as death. It took me the whole day to reach the patch,--
-which I found indeed a forest--but not a rudiment of brook or runnel
-had I crossed! Yet through the glowing noon I seemed haunted by an
-aural mirage, hearing so plainly the voice of many waters that I
-could hardly believe the opposing testimony of my eyes.
-
-The sun was approaching the horizon when I left the river-bed, and
-entered the forest. Sunk below the tree-tops, and sending his rays
-between their pillar-like boles, he revealed a world of blessed
-shadows waiting to receive me. I had expected a pine-wood, but
-here were trees of many sorts, some with strong resemblances to
-trees I knew, others with marvellous differences from any I had
-ever seen. I threw myself beneath the boughs of what seemed a
-eucalyptus in blossom: its flowers had a hard calyx much resembling
-a skull, the top of which rose like a lid to let the froth-like
-bloom-brain overfoam its cup. From beneath the shadow of its
-falchion-leaves my eyes went wandering into deep after deep of the
-forest.
-
-Soon, however, its doors and windows began to close, shutting up
-aisle and corridor and roomier glade. The night was about me, and
-instant and sharp the cold. Again what a night I found it! How
-shall I make my reader share with me its wild ghostiness?
-
-The tree under which I lay rose high before it branched, but the
-boughs of it bent so low that they seemed ready to shut me in as
-I leaned against the smooth stem, and let my eyes wander through
-the brief twilight of the vanishing forest. Presently, to my
-listless roving gaze, the varied outlines of the clumpy foliage
-began to assume or imitate--say rather SUGGEST other shapes than
-their own. A light wind began to blow; it set the boughs of a
-neighbour tree rocking, and all their branches aswing, every twig
-and every leaf blending its individual motion with the sway of its
-branch and the rock of its bough. Among its leafy shapes was a
-pack of wolves that struggled to break from a wizard's leash:
-greyhounds would not have strained so savagely! I watched them
-with an interest that grew as the wind gathered force, and their
-motions life.
-
-Another mass of foliage, larger and more compact, presented my
-fancy with a group of horses' heads and forequarters projecting
-caparisoned from their stalls. Their necks kept moving up and down,
-with an impatience that augmented as the growing wind broke their
-vertical rhythm with a wilder swaying from side to side. What
-heads they were! how gaunt, how strange!--several of them bare
-skulls--one with the skin tight on its bones! One had lost the
-under jaw and hung low, looking unutterably weary--but now and
-then hove high as if to ease the bit. Above them, at the end of
-a branch, floated erect the form of a woman, waving her arms in
-imperious gesture. The definiteness of these and other leaf masses
-first surprised and then discomposed me: what if they should overpower
-my brain with seeming reality? But the twilight became darkness;
-the wind ceased; every shape was shut up in the night; I fell asleep.
-
-It was still dark when I began to be aware of a far-off, confused,
-rushing noise, mingled with faint cries. It grew and grew until a
-tumult as of gathering multitudes filled the wood. On all sides
-at once the sounds drew nearer; the spot where I lay seemed the
-centre of a commotion that extended throughout the forest. I scarce
-moved hand or foot lest I should betray my presence to hostile
-things.
-
-The moon at length approached the forest, and came slowly into it:
-with her first gleam the noises increased to a deafening uproar,
-and I began to see dim shapes about me. As she ascended and grew
-brighter, the noises became yet louder, and the shapes clearer. A
-furious battle was raging around me. Wild cries and roars of rage,
-shock of onset, struggle prolonged, all mingled with words articulate,
-surged in my ears. Curses and credos, snarls and sneers, laughter
-and mockery, sacred names and howls of hate, came huddling in chaotic
-interpenetration. Skeletons and phantoms fought in maddest confusion.
-Swords swept through the phantoms: they only shivered. Maces crashed
-on the skeletons, shattering them hideously: not one fell or ceased
-to fight, so long as a single joint held two bones together. Bones
-of men and horses lay scattered and heaped; grinding and crunching
-them under foot fought the skeletons. Everywhere charged the
-bone-gaunt white steeds; everywhere on foot or on wind-blown misty
-battle-horses, raged and ravened and raved the indestructible
-spectres; weapons and hoofs clashed and crushed; while skeleton jaws
-and phantom-throats swelled the deafening tumult with the war-cry
-of every opinion, bad or good, that had bred strife, injustice,
-cruelty in any world. The holiest words went with the most hating
-blow. Lie-distorted truths flew hurtling in the wind of javelins
-and bones. Every moment some one would turn against his comrades,
-and fight more wildly than before, THE TRUTH! THE TRUTH! still his
-cry. One I noted who wheeled ever in a circle, and smote on all
-sides. Wearied out, a pair would sit for a minute side by side,
-then rise and renew the fierce combat. None stooped to comfort the
-fallen, or stepped wide to spare him.
-
-The moon shone till the sun rose, and all the night long I had
-glimpses of a woman moving at her will above the strife-tormented
-multitude, now on this front now on that, one outstretched arm
-urging the fight, the other pressed against her side. "Ye are men:
-slay one another!" she shouted. I saw her dead eyes and her dark
-spot, and recalled what I had seen the night before.
-
-Such was the battle of the dead, which I saw and heard as I lay
-under the tree.
-
-Just before sunrise, a breeze went through the forest, and a voice
-cried, "Let the dead bury their dead!" At the word the contending
-thousands dropped noiseless, and when the sun looked in, he saw
-never a bone, but here and there a withered branch.
-
-I rose and resumed my journey, through as quiet a wood as ever grew
-out of the quiet earth. For the wind of the morning had ceased when
-the sun appeared, and the trees were silent. Not a bird sang, not
-a squirrel, mouse, or weasel showed itself, not a belated moth flew
-athwart my path. But as I went I kept watch over myself, nor dared
-let my eyes rest on any forest-shape. All the time I seemed to hear
-faint sounds of mattock and spade and hurtling bones: any moment
-my eyes might open on things I would not see! Daylight prudence
-muttered that perhaps, to appear, ten thousand phantoms awaited only
-my consenting fancy.
-In the middle of the afternoon I came out of the wood--to find before
-me a second net of dry water-courses. I thought at first that I
-had wandered from my attempted line, and reversed my direction; but
-I soon saw it was not so, and concluded presently that I had come
-to another branch of the same river-bed. I began at once to cross
-it, and was in the bottom of a wide channel when the sun set.
-
-I sat down to await the moon, and growing sleepy, stretched myself
-on the moss. The moment my head was down, I heard the sounds of
-rushing streams--all sorts of sweet watery noises. The veiled melody
-of the molten music sang me into a dreamless sleep, and when I woke
-the sun was already up, and the wrinkled country widely visible.
-Covered with shadows it lay striped and mottled like the skin of
-some wild animal. As the sun rose the shadows diminished, and it
-seemed as if the rocks were re-absorbing the darkness that had oozed
-out of them during the night.
-
-Hitherto I had loved my Arab mare and my books more, I fear, than
-live man or woman; now at length my soul was athirst for a human
-presence, and I longed even after those inhabitants of this alien
-world whom the raven had so vaguely described as nearest my sort.
-With heavy yet hoping heart, and mind haunted by a doubt whether I
-was going in any direction at all, I kept wearily travelling
-"north-west and by south."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-FRIENDS AND FOES
-
-Coming, in one of the channels, upon what seemed a little shrub,
-the outlying picket, I trusted, of an army behind it, I knelt to
-look at it closer. It bore a small fruit, which, as I did not
-recognise it, I feared to gather and eat. Little I thought that
-I was watched from behind the rocks by hundreds of eyes eager with
-the question whether I would or would not take it.
-
-I came to another plant somewhat bigger, then to another larger
-still, and at length to clumps of a like sort; by which time I saw
-that they were not shrubs but dwarf-trees. Before I reached the
-bank of this second branch of the river-bed, I found the channels
-so full of them that it was with difficulty I crossed such as I
-could not jump. In one I heard a great rush, as of a multitude of
-birds from an ivied wall, but saw nothing.
-
-I came next to some large fruit-bearing trees, but what they bore
-looked coarse. They stood on the edge of a hollow, which evidently
-had once been the basin of a lake. From the left a forest seemed
-to flow into and fill it; but while the trees above were of many
-sorts, those in the hollow were almost entirely fruit-bearing.
-
-I went a few yards down the slope of grass mingled with moss, and
-stretched myself upon it weary. A little farther down stood a
-tiny tree full of rosiest apples no bigger than small cherries,
-its top close to my hand; I pulled and ate one of them. Finding
-it delicious, I was in the act of taking another, when a sudden
-shouting of children, mingled with laughter clear and sweet as the
-music of a brook, startled me with delight.
-
-"He likes our apples! He likes our apples! He's a good giant!
-He's a good giant!" cried many little voices.
-
-"He's a giant!" objected one.
-
-"He IS rather big," assented another, "but littleness isn't
-everything! It won't keep you from growing big and stupid except
-you take care!"
-
-I rose on my elbow and stared. Above and about and below me stood
-a multitude of children, apparently of all ages, some just able to
-run alone, and some about twelve or thirteen. Three or four seemed
-older. They stood in a small knot, a little apart, and were less
-excited than the rest. The many were chattering in groups, declaiming
-and contradicting, like a crowd of grown people in a city, only with
-greater merriment, better manners, and more sense.
-
-I gathered that, by the approach of my hand to a second apple, they
-knew that I liked the first; but how from that they argued me good,
-I did not see, nor wondered that one of them at least should suggest
-caution. I did not open my mouth, for I was afraid of frightening
-them, and sure I should learn more by listening than by asking
-questions. For I understood nearly all they said--at which I was
-not surprised: to understand is not more wonderful than to love.
-
-There came a movement and slight dispersion among them, and presently
-a sweet, innocent-looking, lovingly roguish little fellow handed me
-a huge green apple. Silence fell on the noisy throng; all waited
-expectant.
-
-"Eat, good giant," he said.
-
-I sat up, took the apple, smiled thanks, and would have eaten; but
-the moment I bit into it, I flung it far away.
-
-Again rose a shout of delight; they flung themselves upon me, so as
-nearly to smother me; they kissed my face and hands; they laid hold
-of my legs; they clambered about my arms and shoulders, embracing my
-head and neck. I came to the ground at last, overwhelmed with the
-lovely little goblins.
-
-"Good, good giant!" they cried. "We knew you would come! Oh you
-dear, good, strong giant!"
-
-The babble of their talk sprang up afresh, and ever the jubilant
-shout would rise anew from hundreds of clear little throats.
-
-Again came a sudden silence. Those around me drew back; those atop
-of me got off and began trying to set me on my feet. Upon their
-sweet faces, concern had taken the place of merriment.
-
-"Get up, good giant!" said a little girl. "Make haste! much haste!
-He saw you throw his apple away!"
-
-Before she ended, I was on my feet. She stood pointing up the
-slope. On the brow of it was a clownish, bad-looking fellow, a few
-inches taller than myself. He looked hostile, but I saw no reason
-to fear him, for he had no weapon, and my little friends had vanished
-every one.
-
-He began to descend, and I, in the hope of better footing and
-position, to go up. He growled like a beast as he turned toward me.
-
-Reaching a more level spot, I stood and waited for him. As he came
-near, he held out his hand. I would have taken it in friendly
-fashion, but he drew it back, threatened a blow, and held it out
-again. Then I understood him to claim the apple I had flung away,
-whereupon I made a grimace of dislike and a gesture of rejection.
-
-He answered with a howl of rage that seemed to say, "Do you dare
-tell me my apple was not fit to eat?"
-
-"One bad apple may grow on the best tree," I said.
-
-Whether he perceived my meaning I cannot tell, but he made a stride
-nearer, and I stood on my guard. He delayed his assault, however,
-until a second giant, much like him, who had been stealing up behind
-me, was close enough, when he rushed upon me. I met him with a good
-blow in the face, but the other struck me on the back of the head,
-and between them I was soon overpowered.
-
-They dragged me into the wood above the valley, where their tribe
-lived--in wretched huts, built of fallen branches and a few stones.
-Into one of these they pushed me, there threw me on the ground, and
-kicked me. A woman was present, who looked on with indifference.
-
-I may here mention that during my captivity I hardly learned to
-distinguish the women from the men, they differed so little. Often
-I wondered whether I had not come upon a sort of fungoid people,
-with just enough mind to give them motion and the expressions of
-anger and greed. Their food, which consisted of tubers, bulbs, and
-fruits, was to me inexpressibly disagreeable, but nothing offended
-them so much as to show dislike to it. I was cuffed by the women
-and kicked by the men because I would not swallow it.
-
-I lay on the floor that night hardly able to move, but I slept a
-good deal, and woke a little refreshed. In the morning they dragged
-me to the valley, and tying my feet, with a long rope, to a tree,
-put a flat stone with a saw-like edge in my left hand. I shifted it
-to the right; they kicked me, and put it again in the left; gave me
-to understand that I was to scrape the bark off every branch that
-had no fruit on it; kicked me once more, and left me.
-
-I set about the dreary work in the hope that by satisfying them I
-should be left very much to myself--to make my observations and
-choose my time for escape. Happily one of the dwarf-trees grew
-close by me, and every other minute I plucked and ate a small fruit,
-which wonderfully refreshed and strengthened me.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-THE LITTLE ONES
-
-I had been at work but a few moments, when I heard small voices near
-me, and presently the Little Ones, as I soon found they called
-themselves, came creeping out from among the tiny trees that like
-brushwood filled the spaces between the big ones. In a minute
-there were scores and scores about me. I made signs that the giants
-had but just left me, and were not far off; but they laughed, and
-told me the wind was quite clean.
-
-"They are too blind to see us," they said, and laughed like a
-multitude of sheep-bells.
-
-"Do you like that rope about your ankles?" asked one.
-
-"I want them to think I cannot take it off," I replied.
-
-"They can scarcely see their own feet!" he rejoined. "Walk with
-short steps and they will think the rope is all right."
-
-As he spoke, he danced with merriment.
-
-One of the bigger girls got down on her knees to untie the clumsy
-knot. I smiled, thinking those pretty fingers could do nothing with
-it, but in a moment it was loose.
-
-They then made me sit down, and fed me with delicious little fruits;
-after which the smaller of them began to play with me in the wildest
-fashion, so that it was impossible for me to resume my work. When
-the first grew tired, others took their places, and this went on
-until the sun was setting, and heavy steps were heard approaching.
-The little people started from me, and I made haste to put the rope
-round my ankles.
-
-"We must have a care," said the girl who had freed me; "a crush of
-one of their horrid stumpy feet might kill a very little one!"
-
-"Can they not perceive you at all then?"
-
-"They might see something move; and if the children were in a heap
-on the top of you, as they were a moment ago, it would be terrible;
-for they hate every live thing but themselves.--Not that they are
-much alive either!"
-
-She whistled like a bird. The next instant not one of them was to
-be seen or heard, and the girl herself had disappeared.
-
-It was my master, as doubtless he counted himself, come to take me
-home. He freed my ankles, and dragged me to the door of his hut;
-there he threw me on the ground, again tied my feet, gave me a kick,
-and left me.
-
-Now I might at once have made my escape; but at length I had friends,
-and could not think of leaving them. They were so charming, so full
-of winsome ways, that I must see more of them! I must know them
-better! "To-morrow," I said to myself with delight, "I shall see
-them again!" But from the moment there was silence in the huts until
-I fell asleep, I heard them whispering all about me, and knew that
-I was lovingly watched by a multitude. After that, I think they
-hardly ever left me quite alone.
-
-I did not come to know the giants at all, and I believe there was
-scarcely anything in them to know. They never became in the least
-friendly, but they were much too stupid to invent cruelties. Often
-I avoided a bad kick by catching the foot and giving its owner a
-fall, upon which he never, on that occasion, renewed his attempt.
-
-But the little people were constantly doing and saying things that
-pleased, often things that surprised me. Every day I grew more loath
-to leave them. While I was at work, they would keep coming and going,
-amusing and delighting me, and taking all the misery, and much of
-the weariness out of my monotonous toil. Very soon I loved them more
-than I can tell. They did not know much, but they were very wise,
-and seemed capable of learning anything. I had no bed save the bare
-ground, but almost as often as I woke, it was in a nest of children--
-one or other of them in my arms, though which I seldom could
-tell until the light came, for they ordered the succession among
-themselves. When one crept into my bosom, unconsciously I clasped
-him there, and the rest lay close around me, the smaller nearer. It
-is hardly necessary to say that I did not suffer much from the
-nightly cold! The first thing they did in the morning, and the last
-before sunset, was to bring the good giant plenty to eat.
-
-One morning I was surprised on waking to find myself alone. As I
-came to my senses, however, I heard subdued sounds of approach, and
-presently the girl already mentioned, the tallest and gravest of
-the community, and regarded by all as their mother, appeared from
-the wood, followed by the multitude in jubilation manifest--but
-silent lest they should rouse the sleeping giant at whose door I
-lay. She carried a boy-baby in her arms: hitherto a girl-baby,
-apparently about a year old, had been the youngest. Three of the
-bigger girls were her nurses, but they shared their treasure with
-all the rest. Among the Little Ones, dolls were unknown; the bigger
-had the smaller, and the smaller the still less, to tend and play
-with.
-
-Lona came to me and laid the infant in my arms. The baby opened
-his eyes and looked at me, closed them again, and fell asleep.
-
-"He loves you already!" said the girl.
-
-"Where did you find him?" I asked.
-
-"In the wood, of course," she answered, her eyes beaming with delight,
-"--where we always find them. Isn't he a beauty? We've been out
-all night looking for him. Sometimes it is not easy to find!"
-
-"How do you know when there is one to find?" I asked.
-
-"I cannot tell," she replied. "Every one makes haste to tell the
-other, but we never find out who told first. Sometimes I think one
-must have said it asleep, and another heard it half-awake. When
-there is a baby in the wood, no one can stop to ask questions; and
-when we have found it, then it is too late."
-
-"Do more boy or girl babies come to the wood?"
-
-"They don't come to the wood; we go to the wood and find them."
-
-"Are there more boys or girls of you now?"
-
-I had found that to ask precisely the same question twice, made
-them knit their brows.
-
-"I do not know," she answered.
-
-"You can count them, surely!"
-
-"We never do that. We shouldn't like to be counted."
-
-"Why?"
-
-"It wouldn't be smooth. We would rather not know."
-
-"Where do the babies come from first?"
-
-"From the wood--always. There is no other place they can come from."
-
-She knew where they came from last, and thought nothing else was to
-be known about their advent.
-
-"How often do you find one?"
-
-"Such a happy thing takes all the glad we've got, and we forget the
-last time. You too are glad to have him--are you not, good giant?"
-
-"Yes, indeed, I am!" I answered. "But how do you feed him?"
-
-"I will show you," she rejoined, and went away--to return directly
-with two or three ripe little plums. She put one to the baby's lips.
-
-"He would open his mouth if he were awake," she said, and took him
-in her arms.
-
-She squeezed a drop to the surface, and again held the fruit to the
-baby's lips. Without waking he began at once to suck it, and she
-went on slowly squeezing until nothing but skin and stone were left.
-
-"There!" she cried, in a tone of gentle triumph. "A big-apple world
-it would be with nothing for the babies! We wouldn't stop in it--
-would we, darling? We would leave it to the bad giants!"
-
-"But what if you let the stone into the baby's mouth when you were
-feeding him?" I said.
-
-"No mother would do that," she replied. "I shouldn't be fit to have
-a baby!"
-
-I thought what a lovely woman she would grow. But what became of
-them when they grew up? Where did they go? That brought me again
-to the question--where did they come from first?
-
-"Will you tell me where you lived before?" I said.
-
-"Here," she replied.
-
-"Have you NEVER lived anywhere else?" I ventured.
-
-"Never. We all came from the wood. Some think we dropped out of
-the trees."
-
-"How is it there are so many of you quite little?"
-
-"I don't understand. Some are less and some are bigger. I am very
-big."
-
-"Baby will grow bigger, won't he?"
-
-"Of course he will!"
-
-"And will you grow bigger?"
-
-"I don't think so. I hope not. I am the biggest. It frightens me
-sometimes."
-
-"Why should it frighten you?"
-
-She gave me no answer.
-
-"How old are you?" I resumed.
-
-"I do not know what you mean. We are all just that."
-
-"How big will the baby grow?"
-
-"I cannot tell.--Some," she added, with a trouble in her voice,
-"begin to grow after we think they have stopped.--That is a frightful
-thing. We don't talk about it!"
-
-"What makes it frightful?"
-
-She was silent for a moment, then answered,
-
-"We fear they may be beginning to grow giants."
-
-"Why should you fear that?"
-
-"Because it is so terrible.--I don't want to talk about it!"
-
-She pressed the baby to her bosom with such an anxious look that I
-dared not further question her.
-
-Before long I began to perceive in two or three of the smaller
-children some traces of greed and selfishness, and noted that the
-bigger girls cast on these a not infrequent glance of anxiety.
-
-None of them put a hand to my work: they would do nothing for the
-giants! But they never relaxed their loving ministrations to me.
-They would sing to me, one after another, for hours; climb the tree
-to reach my mouth and pop fruit into it with their dainty little
-fingers; and they kept constant watch against the approach of a giant.
-
-Sometimes they would sit and tell me stories--mostly very childish,
-and often seeming to mean hardly anything. Now and then they would
-call a general assembly to amuse me. On one such occasion a moody
-little fellow sang me a strange crooning song, with a refrain so
-pathetic that, although unintelligible to me, it caused the tears
-to run down my face. This phenomenon made those who saw it regard
-me with much perplexity. Then first I bethought myself that I had
-not once, in that world, looked on water, falling or lying or
-running. Plenty there had been in some long vanished age--that was
-plain enough--but the Little Ones had never seen any before they saw
-my tears! They had, nevertheless, it seemed, some dim, instinctive
-perception of their origin; for a very small child went up to the
-singer, shook his clenched pud in his face, and said something like
-this: "'Ou skeeze ze juice out of ze good giant's seeberries! Bad
-giant!"
-
-"How is it," I said one day to Lona, as she sat with the baby in
-her arms at the foot of my tree, "that I never see any children
-among the giants?"
-
-She stared a little, as if looking in vain for some sense in the
-question, then replied,
-
-"They are giants; there are no little ones."
-
-"Have they never any children?" I asked.
-
-"No; there are never any in the wood for them. They do not love
-them. If they saw ours, they would stamp them."
-
-"Is there always the same number of the giants then? I thought,
-before I had time to know better, that they were your fathers and
-mothers."
-
-She burst into the merriest laughter, and said,
-
-"No, good giant; WE are THEIR firsters."
-
-But as she said it, the merriment died out of her, and she looked
-scared.
-
-I stopped working, and gazed at her, bewildered.
-
-"How CAN that be?" I exclaimed.
-
-"I do not say; I do not understand," she answered. "But we were
-here and they not. They go from us. I am sorry, but we cannot help
-it. THEY could have helped it."
-
-"How long have you been here?" I asked, more and more puzzled--in
-the hope of some side-light on the matter.
-
-"Always, I think," she replied. "I think somebody made us always."
-
-I turned to my scraping.
-
-She saw I did not understand.
-
-"The giants were not made always," she resumed. "If a Little One
-doesn't care, he grows greedy, and then lazy, and then big, and then
-stupid, and then bad. The dull creatures don't know that they come
-from us. Very few of them believe we are anywhere. They say
-NONSENSE!--Look at little Blunty: he is eating one of their apples!
-He will be the next! Oh! oh! he will soon be big and bad and ugly,
-and not know it!"
-
-The child stood by himself a little way off, eating an apple nearly
-as big as his head. I had often thought he did not look so good as
-the rest; now he looked disgusting.
-
-"I will take the horrid thing from him!" I cried.
-
-"It is no use," she answered sadly. "We have done all we can, and
-it is too late! We were afraid he was growing, for he would not
-believe anything told him; but when he refused to share his berries,
-and said he had gathered them for himself, then we knew it! He is
-a glutton, and there is no hope of him.--It makes me sick to see him
-eat!"
-
-"Could not some of the boys watch him, and not let him touch the
-poisonous things?"
-
-"He may have them if he will: it is all one--to eat the apples, and
-to be a boy that would eat them if he could. No; he must go to the
-giants! He belongs to them. You can see how much bigger he is than
-when first you came! He is bigger since yesterday."
-
-"He is as like that hideous green lump in his hand as boy could look!"
-
-"It suits what he is making himself."
-
-"His head and it might change places!"
-
-"Perhaps they do!"
-
-"Does he want to be a giant?"
-
-"He hates the giants, but he is making himself one all the same: he
-likes their apples! Oh baby, baby, he was just such a darling as
-you when we found him!"
-
-"He will be very miserable when he finds himself a giant!"
-
-"Oh, no; he will like it well enough! That is the worst of it."
-
-"Will he hate the Little Ones?"
-
-"He will be like the rest; he will not remember us--most likely
-will not believe there are Little Ones. He will not care; he will
-eat his apples."
-
-"Do tell me how it will come about. I understand your world so
-little! I come from a world where everything is different."
-
-"I do not know about WORLD. What is it? What more but a word in
-your beautiful big mouth?--That makes it something!"
-
-"Never mind about the word; tell me what next will happen to Blunty."
-
-"He will wake one morning and find himself a giant--not like you,
-good giant, but like any other bad giant. You will hardly know him,
-but I will tell you which. He will think he has been a giant always,
-and will not know you, or any of us. The giants have lost themselves,
-Peony says, and that is why they never smile. I wonder whether they
-are not glad because they are bad, or bad because they are not glad.
-But they can't be glad when they have no babies! I wonder what BAD
-means, good giant!"
-
-"I wish I knew no more about it than you!" I returned. "But I try
-to be good, and mean to keep on trying."
-
-"So do I--and that is how I know you are good."
-
-A long pause followed.
-
-"Then you do not know where the babies come from into the wood?" I
-said, making one attempt more.
-
-"There is nothing to know there," she answered. "They are in the
-wood; they grow there."
-
-"Then how is it you never find one before it is quite grown?" I
-asked.
-
-She knitted her brows and was silent a moment:
-
-"They're not there till they're finished," she said.
-
-"It is a pity the little sillies can't speak till they've forgotten
-everything they had to tell!" I remarked.
-
-"Little Tolma, the last before this baby, looked as if she had
-something to tell, when I found her under a beech-tree, sucking her
-thumb, but she hadn't. She only looked up at me--oh, so sweetly!
-SHE will never go bad and grow big! When they begin to grow big
-they care for nothing but bigness; and when they cannot grow any
-bigger, they try to grow fatter. The bad giants are very proud of
-being fat."
-
-"So they are in my world," I said; "only they do not say FAT there,
-they say RICH."
-
-"In one of their houses," continued Lona, "sits the biggest and
-fattest of them--so proud that nobody can see him; and the giants
-go to his house at certain times, and call out to him, and tell him
-how fat he is, and beg him to make them strong to eat more and grow
-fat like him."
-
-The rumour at length reached my ears that Blunty had vanished. I
-saw a few grave faces among the bigger ones, but he did not seem to
-be much missed.
-
-The next morning Lona came to me and whispered,
-
-"Look! look there--by that quince-tree: that is the giant that was
-Blunty!--Would you have known him?"
-
-"Never," I answered. "--But now you tell me, I could fancy it might
-be Blunty staring through a fog! He DOES look stupid!"
-
-"He is for ever eating those apples now!" she said. "That is what
-comes of Little Ones that WON'T be little!"
-
-"They call it growing-up in my world!" I said to myself. "If only
-she would teach me to grow the other way, and become a Little
-One!--Shall I ever be able to laugh like them?"
-
-I had had the chance, and had flung it from me! Blunty and I were
-alike! He did not know his loss, and I had to be taught mine!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-A CRISIS
-
-For a time I had no desire save to spend my life with the Little
-Ones. But soon other thoughts and feelings began to influence me.
-First awoke the vague sense that I ought to be doing something; that
-I was not meant for the fattening of boors! Then it came to me that
-I was in a marvellous world, of which it was assuredly my business
-to discover the ways and laws; and that, if I would do anything in
-return for the children's goodness, I must learn more about them
-than they could tell me, and to that end must be free. Surely, I
-thought, no suppression of their growth can be essential to their
-loveliness and truth and purity! Not in any world could the
-possibility exist of such a discord between constitution and its
-natural outcome! Life and law cannot be so at variance that
-perfection must be gained by thwarting development! But the growth
-of the Little Ones WAS arrested! something interfered with it:
-what was it? Lona seemed the eldest of them, yet not more than
-fifteen, and had been long in charge of a multitude, in semblance
-and mostly in behaviour merest children, who regarded her as their
-mother! Were they growing at all? I doubted it. Of time they
-had scarcely the idea; of their own age they knew nothing! Lona
-herself thought she had lived always! Full of wisdom and empty of
-knowledge, she was at once their Love and their Law! But what seemed
-to me her ignorance might in truth be my own lack of insight! Her
-one anxiety plainly was, that her Little Ones should not grow, and
-change into bad giants! Their "good giant" was bound to do his best
-for them: without more knowledge of their nature, and some knowledge
-of their history, he could do nothing, and must therefore leave
-them! They would only be as they were before; they had in no way
-become dependent on me; they were still my protectors, I was not
-theirs; my presence but brought them more in danger of their idiotic
-neighbours! I longed to teach them many things: I must first
-understand more of those I would teach! Knowledge no doubt made
-bad people worse, but it must make good people better! I was
-convinced they would learn mathematics; and might they not be taught
-to write down the dainty melodies they murmured and forgot?
-
-The conclusion was, that I must rise and continue my travels, in
-the hope of coming upon some elucidation of the fortunes and destiny
-of the bewitching little creatures.
-
-My design, however, would not so soon have passed into action, but
-for what now occurred.
-
-To prepare them for my temporary absence, I was one day telling
-them while at work that I would long ago have left the bad giants,
-but that I loved the Little Ones so much--when, as by one accord,
-they came rushing and crowding upon me; they scrambled over each
-other and up the tree and dropped on my head, until I was nearly
-smothered. With three very little ones in my arms, one on each
-shoulder clinging to my neck, one standing straight up on my head,
-four or five holding me fast by the legs, others grappling my body
-and arms, and a multitude climbing and descending upon these, I was
-helpless as one overwhelmed by lava. Absorbed in the merry struggle,
-not one of them saw my tyrant coming until he was almost upon me.
-With just one cry of "Take care, good giant!" they ran from me like
-mice, they dropped from me like hedgehogs, they flew from me up the
-tree like squirrels, and the same moment, sharp round the stem came
-the bad giant, and dealt me such a blow on the head with a stick that
-I fell to the ground. The children told me afterwards that they
-sent him "such a many bumps of big apples and stones" that he was
-frightened, and ran blundering home.
-
-When I came to myself it was night. Above me were a few pale stars
-that expected the moon. I thought I was alone. My head ached badly,
-and I was terribly athirst.
-
-I turned wearily on my side. The moment my ear touched the ground,
-I heard the gushing and gurgling of water, and the soft noises made
-me groan with longing. At once I was amid a multitude of silent
-children, and delicious little fruits began to visit my lips. They
-came and came until my thirst was gone.
-
-Then I was aware of sounds I had never heard there before; the air
-was full of little sobs.
-
-I tried to sit up. A pile of small bodies instantly heaped itself
-at my back. Then I struggled to my feet, with much pushing and
-pulling from the Little Ones, who were wonderfully strong for their
-size.
-
-"You must go away, good giant," they said. "When the bad giants see
-you hurt, they will all trample on you."
-
-"I think I must," I answered.
-
-"Go and grow strong, and come again," they said.
-
-"I will," I replied--and sat down.
-
-"Indeed you must go at once!" whispered Lona, who had been supporting
-me, and now knelt beside me.
-
-"I listened at his door," said one of the bigger boys, "and heard
-the bad giant say to his wife that he had found you idle, talking
-to a lot of moles and squirrels, and when he beat you, they tried
-to kill him. He said you were a wizard, and they must knock you,
-or they would have no peace."
-
-"I will go at once," I said, "and come back as soon as I have found
-out what is wanted to make you bigger and stronger."
-
-"We don't want to be bigger," they answered, looking very serious.
-"We WON'T grow bad giants!--We are strong now; you don't know how
-much strong!"
-
-It was no use holding them out a prospect that had not any attraction
-for them! I said nothing more, but rose and moved slowly up the
-slope of the valley. At once they formed themselves into a long
-procession; some led the way, some walked with me helping me, and
-the rest followed. They kept feeding me as we went.
-
-"You are broken," they said, "and much red juice has run out of you:
-put some in."
-
-When we reached the edge of the valley, there was the moon just
-lifting her forehead over the rim of the horizon.
-
-"She has come to take care of you, and show you the way," said Lona.
-
-I questioned those about me as we walked, and learned there was a
-great place with a giant-girl for queen. When I asked if it was a
-city, they said they did not know. Neither could they tell how far
-off, or in what direction it was, or what was the giant-girl's name;
-all they knew was, that she hated the Little Ones, and would like
-to kill them, only she could not find them. I asked how they knew
-that; Lona answered that she had always known it. If the giant-girl
-came to look for them, they must hide hard, she said. When I told
-them I should go and ask her why she hated them, they cried out,
-
-"No, no! she will kill you, good giant; she will kill you! She is
-an awful bad-giant witch!"
-
-I asked them where I was to go then. They told me that, beyond
-the baby-forest, away where the moon came from, lay a smooth green
-country, pleasant to the feet, without rocks or trees. But when I
-asked how I was to set out for it,
-
-"The moon will tell you, we think," they said.
-
-They were taking me up the second branch of the river bed: when they
-saw that the moon had reached her height, they stopped to return.
-
-"We have never gone so far from our trees before," they said. "Now
-mind you watch how you go, that you may see inside your eyes how to
-come back to us."
-
-"And beware of the giant-woman that lives in the desert," said one
-of the bigger girls as they were turning, "I suppose you have heard
-of her!"
-
-"No," I answered.
-
-"Then take care not to go near her. She is called the Cat-woman.
-She is awfully ugly--AND SCRATCHES."
-
-As soon as the bigger ones stopped, the smaller had begun to run
-back. The others now looked at me gravely for a moment, and then
-walked slowly away. Last to leave me, Lona held up the baby to be
-kissed, gazed in my eyes, whispered, "The Cat-woman will not hurt
-YOU," and went without another word. I stood a while, gazing after
-them through the moonlight, then turned and, with a heavy heart,
-began my solitary journey. Soon the laughter of the Little Ones
-overtook me, like sheep-bells innumerable, rippling the air, and
-echoing in the rocks about me. I turned again, and again gazed
-after them: they went gamboling along, with never a care in their
-sweet souls. But Lona walked apart with her baby.
-
-Pondering as I went, I recalled many traits of my little friends.
-
-Once when I suggested that they should leave the country of the bad
-giants, and go with me to find another, they answered, "But that
-would be to NOT ourselves!"--so strong in them was the love of place
-that their country seemed essential to their very being! Without
-ambition or fear, discomfort or greed, they had no motive to desire
-any change; they knew of nothing amiss; and, except their babies,
-they had never had a chance of helping any one but myself:--How were
-they to grow? But again, Why should they grow? In seeking to
-improve their conditions, might I not do them harm, and only harm?
-To enlarge their minds after the notions of my world--might it not
-be to distort and weaken them? Their fear of growth as a possible
-start for gianthood might be instinctive!
-
-The part of philanthropist is indeed a dangerous one; and the man
-who would do his neighbour good must first study how not to do him
-evil, and must begin by pulling the beam out of his own eye.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-A STRANGE HOSTESS
-
-I travelled on attended by the moon. As usual she was full--I had
-never seen her other--and to-night as she sank I thought I perceived
-something like a smile on her countenance.
-
-When her under edge was a little below the horizon, there appeared
-in the middle of her disc, as if it had been painted upon it, a
-cottage, through the open door and window of which she shone; and
-with the sight came the conviction that I was expected there. Almost
-immediately the moon was gone, and the cottage had vanished; the
-night was rapidly growing dark, and my way being across a close
-succession of small ravines, I resolved to remain where I was and
-expect the morning. I stretched myself, therefore, in a sandy
-hollow, made my supper off the fruits the children had given me at
-parting, and was soon asleep.
-
-I woke suddenly, saw above me constellations unknown to my former
-world, and had lain for a while gazing at them, when I became aware
-of a figure seated on the ground a little way from and above me. I
-was startled, as one is on discovering all at once that he is not
-alone. The figure was between me and the sky, so that I saw its
-outline well. From where I lay low in the hollow, it seemed larger
-than human.
-
-It moved its head, and then first I saw that its back was toward me.
-
-"Will you not come with me?" said a sweet, mellow voice, unmistakably
-a woman's.
-
-Wishing to learn more of my hostess,
-
-"I thank you," I replied, "but I am not uncomfortable here. Where
-would you have me go? I like sleeping in the open air."
-
-"There is no hurt in the air," she returned; "but the creatures
-that roam the night in these parts are not such as a man would
-willingly have about him while he sleeps."
-
-"I have not been disturbed," I said.
-
-"No; I have been sitting by you ever since you lay down."
-
-"That is very kind of you! How came you to know I was here? Why
-do you show me such favour?"
-
-"I saw you," she answered, still with her back to me, "in the light
-of the moon, just as she went down. I see badly in the day, but
-at night perfectly. The shadow of my house would have hidden you,
-but both its doors were open. I was out on the waste, and saw you
-go into this hollow. You were asleep, however, before I could reach
-you, and I was not willing to disturb you. People are frightened
-if I come on them suddenly. They call me the Cat-woman. It is not
-my name."
-
-I remembered what the children had told me--that she was very ugly,
-and scratched. But her voice was gentle, and its tone a little
-apologetic: she could not be a bad giantess!
-
-"You shall not hear it from me," I answered, "Please tell me what
-I MAY call you!"
-
-"When you know me, call me by the name that seems to you to fit me,"
-she replied: "that will tell me what sort you are. People do not
-often give me the right one. It is well when they do."
-
-"I suppose, madam, you live in the cottage I saw in the heart of
-the moon?"
-
-"I do. I live there alone, except when I have visitors. It is a
-poor place, but I do what I can for my guests, and sometimes their
-sleep is sweet to them."
-
-Her voice entered into me, and made me feel strangely still.
-
-"I will go with you, madam," I said, rising.
-
-She rose at once, and without a glance behind her led the way. I
-could see her just well enough to follow. She was taller than
-myself, but not so tall as I had thought her. That she never turned
-her face to me made me curious--nowise apprehensive, her voice rang
-so true. But how was I to fit her with a name who could not see her?
-I strove to get alongside of her, but failed: when I quickened my
-pace she quickened hers, and kept easily ahead of me. At length I
-did begin to grow a little afraid. Why was she so careful not to be
-seen? Extraordinary ugliness would account for it: she might fear
-terrifying me! Horror of an inconceivable monstrosity began to
-assail me: was I following through the dark an unheard of hideousness?
-Almost I repented of having accepted her hospitality.
-
-Neither spoke, and the silence grew unbearable. I MUST break it!
-
-"I want to find my way," I said, "to a place I have heard of, but
-whose name I have not yet learned. Perhaps you can tell it me!"
-
-"Describe it, then, and I will direct you. The stupid Bags know
-nothing, and the careless little Lovers forget almost everything."
-
-"Where do those live?"
-
-"You are just come from them!"
-
-"I never heard those names before!"
-
-"You would not hear them. Neither people knows its own name!"
-
-"Strange!"
-
-"Perhaps so! but hardly any one anywhere knows his own name! It
-would make many a fine gentleman stare to hear himself addressed by
-what is really his name!"
-
-I held my peace, beginning to wonder what my name might be.
-
-"What now do you fancy yours?" she went on, as if aware of my thought.
-"But, pardon me, it is a matter of no consequence."
-
-I had actually opened my mouth to answer her, when I discovered that
-my name was gone from me. I could not even recall the first letter
-of it! This was the second time I had been asked my name and could
-not tell it!
-
-"Never mind," she said; "it is not wanted. Your real name, indeed,
-is written on your forehead, but at present it whirls about so
-irregularly that nobody can read it. I will do my part to steady
-it. Soon it will go slower, and, I hope, settle at last."
-
-This startled me, and I was silent.
-
-We had left the channels and walked a long time, but no sign of the
-cottage yet appeared.
-
-"The Little Ones told me," I said at length, "of a smooth green
-country, pleasant to the feet!"
-
-"Yes?" she returned.
-
-"They told me too of a girl giantess that was queen somewhere: is
-that her country?"
-
-"There is a city in that grassy land," she replied, "where a woman
-is princess. The city is called Bulika. But certainly the princess
-is not a girl! She is older than this world, and came to it from
-yours--with a terrible history, which is not over yet. She is an
-evil person, and prevails much with the Prince of the Power of the
-Air. The people of Bulika were formerly simple folk, tilling the
-ground and pasturing sheep. She came among them, and they received
-her hospitably. She taught them to dig for diamonds and opals and
-sell them to strangers, and made them give up tillage and pasturage
-and build a city. One day they found a huge snake and killed it;
-which so enraged her that she declared herself their princess, and
-became terrible to them. The name of the country at that time was
-THE LAND OF WATERS; for the dry channels, of which you have crossed
-so many, were then overflowing with live torrents; and the valley,
-where now the Bags and the Lovers have their fruit-trees, was a lake
-that received a great part of them. But the wicked princess gathered
-up in her lap what she could of the water over the whole country,
-closed it in an egg, and carried it away. Her lap, however, would
-not hold more than half of it; and the instant she was gone, what
-she had not yet taken fled away underground, leaving the country
-as dry and dusty as her own heart. Were it not for the waters under
-it, every living thing would long ago have perished from it. For
-where no water is, no rain falls; and where no rain falls, no springs
-rise. Ever since then, the princess has lived in Bulika, holding
-the inhabitants in constant terror, and doing what she can to keep
-them from multiplying. Yet they boast and believe themselves a
-prosperous, and certainly are a self-satisfied people--good at
-bargaining and buying, good at selling and cheating; holding well
-together for a common interest, and utterly treacherous where
-interests clash; proud of their princess and her power, and despising
-every one they get the better of; never doubting themselves the most
-honourable of all the nations, and each man counting himself better
-than any other. The depth of their worthlessness and height of their
-vainglory no one can understand who has not been there to see, who
-has not learned to know the miserable misgoverned and self-deceived
-creatures."
-
-"I thank you, madam. And now, if you please, will you tell me
-something about the Little Ones--the Lovers? I long heartily to
-serve them. Who and what are they? and how do they come to be there?
-Those children are the greatest wonder I have found in this world
-of wonders."
-
-"In Bulika you may, perhaps, get some light on those matters. There
-is an ancient poem in the library of the palace, I am told, which
-of course no one there can read, but in which it is plainly written
-that after the Lovers have gone through great troubles and learned
-their own name, they will fill the land, and make the giants their
-slaves."
-
-"By that time they will have grown a little, will they not?" I said.
-
-"Yes, they will have grown; yet I think too they will not have grown.
-It is possible to grow and not to grow, to grow less and to grow
-bigger, both at once--yes, even to grow by means of not growing!"
-
-"Your words are strange, madam!" I rejoined. "But I have heard it
-said that some words, because they mean more, appear to mean less!"
-
-"That is true, and such words HAVE to be understood. It were well
-for the princess of Bulika if she heard what the very silence of
-the land is shouting in her ears all day long! But she is far too
-clever to understand anything."
-
-"Then I suppose, when the little Lovers are grown, their land will
-have water again?"
-
-"Not exactly so: when they are thirsty enough, they will have water,
-and when they have water, they will grow. To grow, they must have
-water. And, beneath, it is flowing still."
-
-"I have heard that water twice," I said; "--once when I lay down
-to wait for the moon--and when I woke the sun was shining! and once
-when I fell, all but killed by the bad giant. Both times came the
-voices of the water, and healed me."
-
-The woman never turned her head, and kept always a little before me,
-but I could hear every word that left her lips, and her voice much
-reminded me of the woman's in the house of death. Much of what she
-said, I did not understand, and therefore cannot remember. But I
-forgot that I had ever been afraid of her.
-
-We went on and on, and crossed yet a wide tract of sand before
-reaching the cottage. Its foundation stood in deep sand, but I
-could see that it was a rock. In character the cottage resembled
-the sexton's, but had thicker walls. The door, which was heavy and
-strong, opened immediately into a large bare room, which had two
-little windows opposite each other, without glass. My hostess walked
-in at the open door out of which the moon had looked, and going
-straight to the farthest corner, took a long white cloth from the
-floor, and wound it about her head and face. Then she closed the
-other door, in at which the moon had looked, trimmed a small horn
-lantern that stood on the hearth, and turned to receive me.
-
-"You are very welcome, Mr. Vane!" she said, calling me by the name
-I had forgotten. "Your entertainment will be scanty, but, as the
-night is not far spent, and the day not at hand, it is better you
-should be indoors. Here you will be safe, and a little lack is not
-a great misery."
-
-"I thank you heartily, madam," I replied. "But, seeing you know the
-name I could not tell you, may I not now know yours?"
-
-"My name is Mara," she answered.
-
-Then I remembered the sexton and the little black cat.
-
-"Some people," she went on, "take me for Lot's wife, lamenting over
-Sodom; and some think I am Rachel, weeping for her children; but I
-am neither of those."
-
-"I thank you again, Mara," I said. "--May I lie here on your floor
-till the morning?"
-
-"At the top of that stair," she answered, "you will find a bed--on
-which some have slept better than they expected, and some have waked
-all the night and slept all the next day. It is not a very soft
-one, but it is better than the sand--and there are no hyenas sniffing
-about it!"
-
-The stair, narrow and steep, led straight up from the room to an
-unceiled and unpartitioned garret, with one wide, low dormer window.
-Close under the sloping roof stood a narrow bed, the sight of which
-with its white coverlet made me shiver, so vividly it recalled the
-couches in the chamber of death. On the table was a dry loaf, and
-beside it a cup of cold water. To me, who had tasted nothing but
-fruit for months, they were a feast.
-
-"I must leave you in the dark," my hostess called from the bottom
-of the stair. "This lantern is all the light I have, and there are
-things to do to-night."
-
-"It is of no consequence, thank you, madam," I returned. "To eat
-and drink, to lie down and sleep, are things that can be done in
-the dark."
-
-"Rest in peace," she said.
-
-I ate up the loaf, drank the water every drop, and laid myself down.
-The bed was hard, the covering thin and scanty, and the night cold:
-I dreamed that I lay in the chamber of death, between the warrior
-and the lady with the healing wound.
-
-I woke in the middle of the night, thinking I heard low noises of
-wild animals.
-
-"Creatures of the desert scenting after me, I suppose!" I said to
-myself, and, knowing I was safe, would have gone to sleep again. But
-that instant a rough purring rose to a howl under my window, and I
-sprang from my bed to see what sort of beast uttered it.
-
-Before the door of the cottage, in the full radiance of the moon, a
-tall woman stood, clothed in white, with her back toward me. She
-was stooping over a large white animal like a panther, patting and
-stroking it with one hand, while with the other she pointed to the
-moon half-way up the heaven, then drew a perpendicular line to the
-horizon. Instantly the creature darted off with amazing swiftness
-in the direction indicated. For a moment my eyes followed it, then
-sought the woman; but she was gone, and not yet had I seen her face!
-Again I looked after the animal, but whether I saw or only fancied
-a white speck in the distance, I could not tell.--What did it mean?
-What was the monster-cat sent off to do? I shuddered, and went back
-to my bed. Then I remembered that, when I lay down in the sandy
-hollow outside, the moon was setting; yet here she was, a few hours
-after, shining in all her glory! "Everything is uncertain here,"
-I said to myself, "--even the motions of the heavenly bodies!"
-
-I learned afterward that there were several moons in the service of
-this world, but the laws that ruled their times and different orbits
-I failed to discover.
-
-Again I fell asleep, and slept undisturbed.
-
-When I went down in the morning, I found bread and water waiting me,
-the loaf so large that I ate only half of it. My hostess sat muffled
-beside me while I broke my fast, and except to greet me when I
-entered, never opened her mouth until I asked her to instruct me
-how to arrive at Bulika. She then told me to go up the bank of the
-river-bed until it disappeared; then verge to the right until I came
-to a forest--in which I might spend a night, but which I must leave
-with my face to the rising moon. Keeping in the same direction, she
-said, until I reached a running stream, I must cross that at right
-angles, and go straight on until I saw the city on the horizon.
-
-I thanked her, and ventured the remark that, looking out of the
-window in the night, I was astonished to see her messenger understand
-her so well, and go so straight and so fast in the direction she
-had indicated.
-
-"If I had but that animal of yours to guide me--" I went on, hoping
-to learn something of its mission, but she interrupted me, saying,
-
-"It was to Bulika she went--the shortest way."
-
-"How wonderfully intelligent she looked!"
-
-"Astarte knows her work well enough to be sent to do it," she
-answered.
-
-"Have you many messengers like her?"
-
-"As many as I require."
-
-"Are they hard to teach?"
-
-"They need no teaching. They are all of a certain breed, but not
-one of the breed is like another. Their origin is so natural it
-would seem to you incredible."
-
-"May I not know it?"
-
-"A new one came to me last night--from your head while you slept."
-
-I laughed.
-
-"All in this world seem to love mystery!" I said to myself. "Some
-chance word of mine suggested an idea--and in this form she embodies
-the small fact!"
-
-"Then the creature is mine!" I cried.
-"Not at all!" she answered. "That only can be ours in whose existence
-our will is a factor."
-
-"Ha! a metaphysician too!" I remarked inside, and was silent.
-
-"May I take what is left of the loaf?" I asked presently.
-
-"You will want no more to-day," she replied.
-
-"To-morrow I may!" I rejoined.
-
-She rose and went to the door, saying as she went,
-
-"It has nothing to do with to-morrow--but you may take it if you
-will."
-
-She opened the door, and stood holding it. I rose, taking up the
-bread--but lingered, much desiring to see her face.
-
-"Must I go, then?" I asked.
-
-"No one sleeps in my house two nights together!" she answered.
-
-"I thank you, then, for your hospitality, and bid you farewell!"
-I said, and turned to go.
-
-"The time will come when you must house with me many days and many
-nights," she murmured sadly through her muffling.
-
-"Willingly," I replied.
-
-"Nay, NOT willingly!" she answered.
-
-I said to myself that she was right--I would not willingly be her
-guest a second time! but immediately my heart rebuked me, and I had
-scarce crossed the threshold when I turned again.
-
-She stood in the middle of the room; her white garments lay like
-foamy waves at her feet, and among them the swathings of her face:
-it was lovely as a night of stars. Her great gray eyes looked up
-to heaven; tears were flowing down her pale cheeks. She reminded
-me not a little of the sexton's wife, although the one looked as if
-she had not wept for thousands of years, and the other as if she
-wept constantly behind the wrappings of her beautiful head. Yet
-something in the very eyes that wept seemed to say, "Weeping may
-endure for a night, but joy cometh in the morning."
-
-I had bowed my head for a moment, about to kneel and beg her
-forgiveness, when, looking up in the act, I found myself outside
-a doorless house. I went round and round it, but could find no
-entrance.
-
-I had stopped under one of the windows, on the point of calling
-aloud my repentant confession, when a sudden wailing, howling scream
-invaded my ears, and my heart stood still. Something sprang from
-the window above my head, and lighted beyond me. I turned, and saw
-a large gray cat, its hair on end, shooting toward the river-bed.
-I fell with my face in the sand, and seemed to hear within the house
-the gentle sobbing of one who suffered but did not repent.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-A GRUESOME DANCE
-
-I rose to resume my journey, and walked many a desert mile. How
-I longed for a mountain, or even a tall rock, from whose summit I
-might see across the dismal plain or the dried-up channels to some
-bordering hope! Yet what could such foresight have availed me?
-That which is within a man, not that which lies beyond his vision,
-is the main factor in what is about to befall him: the operation
-upon him is the event. Foreseeing is not understanding, else surely
-the prophecy latent in man would come oftener to the surface!
-
-The sun was half-way to the horizon when I saw before me a rugged
-rocky ascent; but ere I reached it my desire to climb was over, and
-I longed to lie down. By that time the sun was almost set, and the
-air had begun to grow dark. At my feet lay a carpet of softest,
-greenest moss, couch for a king: I threw myself upon it, and
-weariness at once began to ebb, for, the moment my head was down,
-the third time I heard below me many waters, playing broken airs
-and ethereal harmonies with the stones of their buried channels.
-Loveliest chaos of music-stuff the harp aquarian kept sending up to
-my ears! What might not a Händel have done with that ever-recurring
-gurgle and bell-like drip, to the mingling and mutually destructive
-melodies their common refrain!
-
-As I lay listening, my eyes went wandering up and down the rocky
-slope abrupt above me, reading on its face the record that down
-there, ages ago, rushed a cataract, filling the channels that had
-led me to its foot. My heart swelled at the thought of the splendid
-tumult, where the waves danced revelling in helpless fall, to mass
-their music in one organ-roar below. But soon the hidden brooks
-lulled me to sleep, and their lullabies mingled with my dreams.
-
-I woke before the sun, and eagerly climbed to see what lay beyond.
-Alas, nothing but a desert of finest sand! Not a trace was left
-of the river that had plunged adown the rocks! The powdery drift
-had filled its course to the level of the dreary expanse! As I
-looked back I saw that the river had divided into two branches as
-it fell, that whose bank I had now followed to the foot of the rocky
-scaur, and that which first I crossed to the Evil Wood. The wood
-I descried between the two on the far horizon. Before me and to
-the left, the desert stretched beyond my vision, but far to the
-right I could see a lift in the sky-line, giving hope of the forest
-to which my hostess had directed me.
-
-I sat down, and sought in my pocket the half-loaf I had brought with
-me--then first to understand what my hostess had meant concerning
-it. Verily the bread was not for the morrow: it had shrunk and
-hardened to a stone! I threw it away, and set out again.
-
-About noon I came to a few tamarisk and juniper trees, and then to
-a few stunted firs. As I went on, closer thickets and larger firs
-met me, and at length I was in just such a forest of pines and other
-trees as that in which the Little Ones found their babies, and
-believed I had returned upon a farther portion of the same. But
-what mattered WHERE while EVERYWHERE was the same as NOWHERE! I had
-not yet, by doing something in it, made ANYWHERE into a place! I
-was not yet alive; I was only dreaming I lived! I was but a
-consciousness with an outlook! Truly I had been nothing else in
-the world I had left, but now I knew the fact! I said to myself
-that if in this forest I should catch the faint gleam of the mirror,
-I would turn far aside lest it should entrap me unawares, and give
-me back to my old existence: here I might learn to be something by
-doing something! I could not endure the thought of going back, with
-so many beginnings and not an end achieved. The Little Ones would
-meet what fate was appointed them; the awful witch I should never
-meet; the dead would ripen and arise without me; I should but wake
-to know that I had dreamed, and that all my going was nowhither! I
-would rather go on and on than come to such a close!
-
-I went deeper into the wood: I was weary, and would rest in it.
-
-The trees were now large, and stood in regular, almost geometric,
-fashion, with roomy spaces between. There was little undergrowth,
-and I could see a long way in every direction. The forest was like
-a great church, solemn and silent and empty, for I met nothing on
-two feet or four that day. Now and then, it is true, some swift
-thing, and again some slow thing, would cross the space on which
-my eye happened that moment to settle; but it was always at some
-distance, and only enhanced the sense of wideness and vacancy. I
-heard a few birds, and saw plenty of butterflies, some of marvellously
-gorgeous colouring and combinations of colour, some of a pure and
-dazzling whiteness.
-
-Coming to a spot where the pines stood farther apart and gave room
-for flowering shrubs, and hoping it a sign of some dwelling near, I
-took the direction where yet more and more roses grew, for I was
-hungry after the voice and face of my kind--after any live soul,
-indeed, human or not, which I might in some measure understand.
-What a hell of horror, I thought, to wander alone, a bare existence
-never going out of itself, never widening its life in another life,
-but, bound with the cords of its poor peculiarities, lying an eternal
-prisoner in the dungeon of its own being! I began to learn that it
-was impossible to live for oneself even, save in the presence of
-others--then, alas, fearfully possible! evil was only through good!
-selfishness but a parasite on the tree of life! In my own world
-I had the habit of solitary song; here not a crooning murmur ever
-parted my lips! There I sang without thinking; here I thought
-without singing! there I had never had a bosom-friend; here the
-affection of an idiot would be divinely welcome! "If only I had
-a dog to love!" I sighed--and regarded with wonder my past self,
-which preferred the company of book or pen to that of man or woman;
-which, if the author of a tale I was enjoying appeared, would wish
-him away that I might return to his story. I had chosen the dead
-rather than the living, the thing thought rather than the thing
-thinking! "Any man," I said now, "is more than the greatest of
-books!" I had not cared for my live brothers and sisters, and now
-I was left without even the dead to comfort me!
-
-The wood thinned yet more, and the pines grew yet larger, sending
-up huge stems, like columns eager to support the heavens. More
-trees of other kinds appeared; the forest was growing richer! The
-roses wore now trees, and their flowers of astonishing splendour.
-
-Suddenly I spied what seemed a great house or castle; but its forms
-were so strangely indistinct, that I could not be certain it was
-more than a chance combination of tree-shapes. As I drew nearer,
-its lines yet held together, but neither they nor the body of it
-grew at all more definite; and when at length I stood in front of
-it, I remained as doubtful of its nature as before. House or castle
-habitable, it certainly was not; it might be a ruin overgrown with
-ivy and roses! Yet of building hid in the foliage, not the poorest
-wall-remnant could I discern. Again and again I seemed to descry what
-must be building, but it always vanished before closer inspection.
-Could it be, I pondered, that the ivy had embraced a huge edifice
-and consumed it, and its interlaced branches retained the shapes of
-the walls it had assimilated?--I could be sure of nothing concerning
-the appearance.
-
-Before me was a rectangular vacancy--the ghost of a doorway without
-a door: I stepped through it, and found myself in an open space like
-a great hall, its floor covered with grass and flowers, its walls
-and roof of ivy and vine, mingled with roses.
-
-There could be no better place in which to pass the night! I
-gathered a quantity of withered leaves, laid them in a corner, and
-threw myself upon them. A red sunset filled the hall, the night
-was warm, and my couch restful; I lay gazing up at the live ceiling,
-with its tracery of branches and twigs, its clouds of foliage, and
-peeping patches of loftier roof. My eyes went wading about as if
-tangled in it, until the sun was down, and the sky beginning to grow
-dark. Then the red roses turned black, and soon the yellow and
-white alone were visible. When they vanished, the stars came instead,
-hanging in the leaves like live topazes, throbbing and sparkling
-and flashing many colours: I was canopied with a tree from Aladdin's
-cave!
-
-Then I discovered that it was full of nests, whence tiny heads,
-nearly indistinguishable, kept popping out with a chirp or two, and
-disappearing again. For a while there were rustlings and stirrings
-and little prayers; but as the darkness grew, the small heads became
-still, and at last every feathered mother had her brood quiet
-under her wings, the talk in the little beds was over, and God's
-bird-nursery at rest beneath the waves of sleep. Once more a few
-flutterings made me look up: an owl went sailing across. I had only
-a glimpse of him, but several times felt the cool wafture of his
-silent wings. The mother birds did not move again; they saw that
-he was looking for mice, not children.
-
-About midnight I came wide awake, roused by a revelry, whose noises
-were yet not loud. Neither were they distant; they were close to
-me, but attenuate. My eyes were so dazzled, however, that for a
-while I could see nothing; at last they came to themselves.
-
-I was lying on my withered leaves in the corner of a splendid hall.
-Before me was a crowd of gorgeously dressed men and gracefully robed
-women, none of whom seemed to see me. In dance after dance they
-vaguely embodied the story of life, its meetings, its passions, its
-partings. A student of Shakspere, I had learned something of every
-dance alluded to in his plays, and hence partially understood several
-of those I now saw--the minuet, the pavin, the hey, the coranto,
-the lavolta. The dancers were attired in fashion as ancient as
-their dances.
-
-A moon had risen while I slept, and was shining through the
-countless-windowed roof; but her light was crossed by so many
-shadows that at first I could distinguish almost nothing of the
-faces of the multitude; I could not fail, however, to perceive
-that there was something odd about them: I sat up to see them
-better.--Heavens! could I call them faces? They were skull fronts!
---hard, gleaming bone, bare jaws, truncated noses, lipless teeth
-which could no more take part in any smile! Of these, some flashed
-set and white and murderous; others were clouded with decay, broken
-and gapped, coloured of the earth in which they seemed so long to
-have lain! Fearfuller yet, the eye-sockets were not empty; in each
-was a lidless living eye! In those wrecks of faces, glowed or
-flashed or sparkled eyes of every colour, shape, and expression. The
-beautiful, proud eye, dark and lustrous, condescending to whatever
-it rested upon, was the more terrible; the lovely, languishing eye,
-the more repulsive; while the dim, sad eyes, less at variance with
-their setting, were sad exceedingly, and drew the heart in spite of
-the horror out of which they gazed.
-
-I rose and went among the apparitions, eager to understand something
-of their being and belongings. Were they souls, or were they and
-their rhythmic motions but phantasms of what had been? By look
-nor by gesture, not by slightest break in the measure, did they
-show themselves aware of me; I was not present to them: how much were
-they in relation to each other? Surely they saw their companions
-as I saw them! Or was each only dreaming itself and the rest?
-Did they know each how they appeared to the others--a death with
-living eyes? Had they used their faces, not for communication,
-not to utter thought and feeling, not to share existence with their
-neighbours, but to appear what they wished to appear, and conceal
-what they were? and, having made their faces masks, were they
-therefore deprived of those masks, and condemned to go without faces
-until they repented?
-
-"How long must they flaunt their facelessness in faceless eyes?" I
-wondered. "How long will the frightful punition endure? Have they
-at length begun to love and be wise? Have they yet yielded to the
-shame that has found them?"
-
-I heard not a word, saw not a movement of one naked mouth. Were
-they because of lying bereft of speech? With their eyes they spoke
-as if longing to be understood: was it truth or was it falsehood
-that spoke in their eyes? They seemed to know one another: did
-they see one skull beautiful, and another plain? Difference must
-be there, and they had had long study of skulls!
-
-My body was to theirs no obstacle: was I a body, and were they but
-forms? or was I but a form, and were they bodies? The moment one
-of the dancers came close against me, that moment he or she was
-on the other side of me, and I could tell, without seeing, which,
-whether man or woman, had passed through my house.
-
-On many of the skulls the hair held its place, and however dressed,
-or in itself however beautiful, to my eyes looked frightful on the
-bones of the forehead and temples. In such case, the outer ear
-often remained also, and at its tip, the jewel of the ear as Sidney
-calls it, would hang, glimmering, gleaming, or sparkling, pearl or
-opal or diamond--under the night of brown or of raven locks, the
-sunrise of golden ripples, or the moonshine of pale, interclouded,
-fluffy cirri--lichenous all on the ivory-white or damp-yellow naked
-bone. I looked down and saw the daintily domed instep; I looked
-up and saw the plump shoulders basing the spring of the round full
-neck--which withered at half-height to the fluted shaft of a gibbose
-cranium.
-
-The music became wilder, the dance faster and faster; eyes flared
-and flashed, jewels twinkled and glittered, casting colour and fire
-on the pallid grins that glode through the hall, weaving a ghastly
-rhythmic woof in intricate maze of multitudinous motion, when sudden
-came a pause, and every eye turned to the same spot:--in the doorway
-stood a woman, perfect in form, in holding, and in hue, regarding
-the company as from the pedestal of a goddess, while the dancers
-stood "like one forbid," frozen to a new death by the vision of a
-life that killed. "Dead things, I live!" said her scornful glance.
-Then, at once, like leaves in which an instant wind awakes, they
-turned each to another, and broke afresh into melodious consorted
-motion, a new expression in their eyes, late solitary, now filled
-with the interchange of a common triumph. "Thou also," they seemed
-to say, "wilt soon become weak as we! thou wilt soon become like
-unto us!" I turned mine again to the woman--and saw upon her side
-a small dark shadow.
-
-She had seen the change in the dead stare; she looked down; she
-understood the talking eyes; she pressed both her lovely hands on
-the shadow, gave a smothered cry, and fled. The birds moved rustling
-in their nests, and a flash of joy lit up the eyes of the dancers,
-when suddenly a warm wind, growing in strength as it swept through
-the place, blew out every light. But the low moon yet glimmered
-on the horizon with "sick assay" to shine, and a turbid radiance
-yet gleamed from so many eyes, that I saw well enough what followed.
-As if each shape had been but a snow-image, it began to fall to
-pieces, ruining in the warm wind. In papery flakes the flesh peeled
-from its bones, dropping like soiled snow from under its garments;
-these fell fluttering in rags and strips, and the whole white
-skeleton, emerging from garment and flesh together, stood bare and
-lank amid the decay that littered the floor. A faint rattling
-shiver went through the naked company; pair after pair the lamping
-eyes went out; and the darkness grew round me with the loneliness.
-For a moment the leaves were still swept fluttering all one way;
-then the wind ceased, and the owl floated silent through the silent
-night.
-
-Not for a moment had I been afraid. It is true that whoever would
-cross the threshold of any world, must leave fear behind him; but,
-for myself, I could claim no part in its absence. No conscious
-courage was operant in me; simply, I was not afraid. I neither
-knew why I was not afraid, nor wherefore I might have been afraid.
-I feared not even fear--which of all dangers is the most dangerous.
-
-I went out into the wood, at once to resume my journey. Another
-moon was rising, and I turned my face toward it.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-A GROTESQUE TRAGEDY
-
-I had not gone ten paces when I caught sight of a strange-looking
-object, and went nearer to know what it might be. I found it a
-mouldering carriage of ancient form, ruinous but still upright on
-its heavy wheels. On each side of the pole, still in its place,
-lay the skeleton of a horse; from their two grim white heads ascended
-the shrivelled reins to the hand of the skeleton-coachman seated
-on his tattered hammer-cloth; both doors had fallen away; within
-sat two skeletons, each leaning back in its corner.
-
-Even as I looked, they started awake, and with a cracking rattle
-of bones, each leaped from the door next it. One fell and lay;
-the other stood a moment, its structure shaking perilously; then
-with difficulty, for its joints were stiff, crept, holding by the
-back of the carriage, to the opposite side, the thin leg-bones
-seeming hardly strong enough to carry its weight, where, kneeling
-by the other, it sought to raise it, almost falling itself again
-in the endeavour.
-
-The prostrate one rose at length, as by a sudden effort, to the
-sitting posture. For a few moments it turned its yellowish skull
-to this side and that; then, heedless of its neighbour, got upon
-its feet by grasping the spokes of the hind wheel. Half erected
-thus, it stood with its back to the other, both hands holding one
-of its knee-joints. With little less difficulty and not a few
-contortions, the kneeling one rose next, and addressed its companion.
-
-"Have you hurt yourself, my lord?" it said, in a voice that sounded
-far-off, and ill-articulated as if blown aside by some spectral wind.
-
-"Yes, I have," answered the other, in like but rougher tone. "You
-would do nothing to help me, and this cursed knee is out!"
-
-"I did my best, my lord."
-
-"No doubt, my lady, for it was bad! I thought I should never find
-my feet again!--But, bless my soul, madam! are you out in your
-bones?"
-
-She cast a look at herself.
-
-"I have nothing else to be out in," she returned; "--and YOU at
-least cannot complain! But what on earth does it mean? Am I
-dreaming?"
-
-"YOU may be dreaming, madam--I cannot tell; but this knee of mine
-forbids me the grateful illusion.--Ha! I too, I perceive, have
-nothing to walk in but bones!--Not so unbecoming to a man, however!
-I trust to goodness they are not MY bones! every one aches worse
-than another, and this loose knee worst of all! The bed must have
-been damp--and I too drunk to know it!"
-
-"Probably, my lord of Cokayne!"
-
-"What! what!--You make me think I too am dreaming--aches and all!
-How do YOU know the title my roistering bullies give me? I don't
-remember you!--Anyhow, you have no right to take liberties! My
-name is--I am lord----tut, tut! What do you call me when I'm--I
-mean when you are sober? I cannot--at the moment,--Why, what IS my
-name?--I must have been VERY drunk when I went to bed! I often am!"
-
-"You come so seldom to mine, that I do not know, my lord; but I may
-take your word for THAT!"
-
-"I hope so!"
-
-"--if for nothing else!"
-"Hoity toity! I never told you a lie in my life!"
-
-"You never told me anything but lies."
-
-"Upon my honour!--Why, I never saw the woman before!"
-
-"You knew me well enough to lie to, my lord!"
-
-"I do seem to begin to dream I have met you before, but, upon my
-oath, there is nothing to know you by! Out of your clothes, who
-is to tell who you may not be?--One thing I MAY swear--that I never
-saw you so much undressed before!--By heaven, I have no recollection
-of you!"
-
-"I am glad to hear it: my recollections of you are the less
-distasteful!--Good morning, my lord!"
-
-She turned away, hobbled, clacking, a few paces, and stood again.
-
-"You are just as heartless as--as--any other woman, madam!--Where
-in this hell of a place shall I find my valet?--What was the cursed
-name I used to call the fool?"
-
-He turned his bare noddle this way and that on its creaking pivot,
-still holding his knee with both hands.
-"I will be your valet for once, my lord," said the lady, turning
-once more to him. "--What can I do for you? It is not easy to
-tell!"
-
-"Tie my leg on, of course, you fool! Can't you see it is all but
-off? Heigho, my dancing days!"
-
-She looked about with her eyeless sockets and found a piece of
-fibrous grass, with which she proceeded to bind together the
-adjoining parts that had formed the knee. When she had done, he
-gave one or two carefully tentative stamps.
-
-"You used to stamp rather differently, my lord!" she said, as she
-rose from her knees.
-
-"Eh? what!--Now I look at you again, it seems to me I used to hate
-you!--Eh?"
-
-"Naturally, my lord! You hated a good many people!--your wife, of
-course, among the rest!"
-
-"Ah, I begin, I be-gin---- But--I must have been a long time
-somewhere!--I really forget!--There! your damned, miserable bit of
-grass is breaking!--We used to get on PRETTY well together--eh?"
-
-"Not that I remember, my lord. The only happy moments I had in your
-company were scattered over the first week of our marriage."
-
-"Was that the way of it? Ha! ha!--Well, it's over now, thank
-goodness!"
-
-"I wish I could believe it! Why were we sitting there in that
-carriage together? It wakes apprehension!"
-
-"I think we were divorced, my lady!"
-
-"Hardly enough: we are still together!"
-
-"A sad truth, but capable of remedy: the forest seems of some
-extent!"
-
-"I doubt! I doubt!"
-
-"I am sorry I cannot think of a compliment to pay you--without
-lying, that is. To judge by your figure and complexion you have
-lived hard since I saw you last! I cannot surely be QUITE so naked
-as your ladyship!--I beg your pardon, madam! I trust you will take
-it I am but jesting in a dream! It is of no consequence, however;
-dreaming or waking, all's one--all merest appearance! You can't be
-certain of anything, and that's as good as knowing there is nothing!
-Life may teach any fool that!"
-
-"It has taught me the fool I was to love you!"
-
-"You were not the only fool to do that! Women had a trick of falling
-in love with me:--I had forgotten that you were one of them!"
-"I did love you, my lord--a little--at one time!"
-
-"Ah, there was your mistake, my lady! You should have loved me
-much, loved me devotedly, loved me savagely--loved me eternally!
-Then I should have tired of you the sooner, and not hated you
-so much afterward!--But let bygones be bygones!--WHERE are we?
-Locality is the question! To be or not to be, is NOT the question!"
-
-"We are in the other world, I presume!"
-
-"Granted!--but in which or what sort of other world? This can't be
-hell!"
-
-"It must: there's marriage in it! You and I are damned in each
-other."
-
-"Then I'm not like Othello, damned in a fair wife!--Oh, I remember
-my Shakspeare, madam!"
-
-She picked up a broken branch that had fallen into a bush, and
-steadying herself with it, walked away, tossing her little skull.
-
-"Give that stick to me," cried her late husband; "I want it more
-than you."
-
-She returned him no answer.
-
-"You mean to make me beg for it?"
-
-"Not at all, my lord. I mean to keep it," she replied, continuing
-her slow departure.
-
-"Give it me at once; I mean to have it! I require it."
-
-"Unfortunately, I think I require it myself!" returned the lady,
-walking a little quicker, with a sharper cracking of her joints and
-clinking of her bones.
-
-He started to follow her, but nearly fell: his knee-grass had burst,
-and with an oath he stopped, grasping his leg again.
-
-"Come and tie it up properly!" he would have thundered, but he only
-piped and whistled!
-
-She turned and looked at him.
-
-"Come and tie it up instantly!" he repeated.
-
-She walked a step or two farther from him.
-
-"I swear I will not touch you!" he cried.
-
-"Swear on, my lord! there is no one here to believe you. But, pray,
-do not lose your temper, or you will shake yourself to pieces, and
-where to find string enough to tie up all your crazy joints, is more
-than I can tell."
-She came back, and knelt once more at his side--first, however,
-laying the stick in dispute beyond his reach and within her own.
-
-The instant she had finished retying the joint, he made a grab at
-her, thinking, apparently, to seize her by the hair; but his hard
-fingers slipped on the smooth poll.
-
-"Disgusting!" he muttered, and laid hold of her upper arm-bone.
-
-"You will break it!" she said, looking up from her knees.
-
-"I will, then!" he answered, and began to strain at it.
-
-"I shall not tie your leg again the next time it comes loose!" she
-threatened.
-
-He gave her arm a vicious twist, but happily her bones were in
-better condition than his. She stretched her other hand toward
-the broken branch.
-
-"That's right: reach me the stick!" he grinned.
-
-She brought it round with such a swing that one of the bones of the sounder leg snapped. He fell, choking with curses. The lady laughed.
-
-"Now you will have to wear splints always!" she said; "such dry bones
-never mend!"
-
-"You devil!" he cried.
-
-"At your service, my lord! Shall I fetch you a couple of wheel-spokes?
-Neat--but heavy, I fear!"
-
-He turned his bone-face aside, and did not answer, but lay and
-groaned. I marvelled he had not gone to pieces when he fell. The
-lady rose and walked away--not all ungracefully, I thought.
-
-"What can come of it?" I said to myself. "These are too wretched
-for any world, and this cannot be hell, for the Little Ones are in
-it, and the sleepers too! What can it all mean? Can things ever
-come right for skeletons?"
-
-"There are words too big for you and me: ALL is one of them, and
-EVER is another," said a voice near me which I knew.
-
-I looked about, but could not see the speaker.
-
-"You are not in hell," it resumed. "Neither am I in hell. But
-those skeletons are in hell!"
-
-Ere he ended I caught sight of the raven on the bough of a beech,
-right over my head. The same moment he left it, and alighting on
-the ground, stood there, the thin old man of the library, with long
-nose and long coat.
-
-"The male was never a gentleman," he went on, "and in the bony stage
-of retrogression, with his skeleton through his skin, and his
-character outside his manners, does not look like one. The female
-is less vulgar, and has a little heart. But, the restraints of
-society removed, you see them now just as they are and always were!"
-
-"Tell me, Mr. Raven, what will become of them," I said.
-
-"We shall see," he replied. "In their day they were the handsomest
-couple at court; and now, even in their dry bones, they seem to
-regard their former repute as an inalienable possession; to see
-their faces, however, may yet do something for them! They felt
-themselves rich too while they had pockets, but they have already
-begun to feel rather pinched! My lord used to regard my lady as a
-worthless encumbrance, for he was tired of her beauty and had spent
-her money; now he needs her to cobble his joints for him! These
-changes have roots of hope in them. Besides, they cannot now get
-far away from each other, and they see none else of their own kind:
-they must at last grow weary of their mutual repugnance, and begin
-to love one another! for love, not hate, is deepest in what Love
-`loved into being.'"
-
-"I saw many more of their kind an hour ago, in the hall close by!"
-I said.
-
-"Of their kind, but not of their sort," he answered. "For many years
-these will see none such as you saw last night. Those are centuries
-in advance of these. You saw that those could even dress themselves
-a little! It is true they cannot yet retain their clothes so long
-as they would--only, at present, for a part of the night; but they
-are pretty steadily growing more capable, and will by and by develop
-faces; for every grain of truthfulness adds a fibre to the show of
-their humanity. Nothing but truth can appear; and whatever is must
-seem."
-
-"Are they upheld by this hope?" I asked.
-
-"They are upheld by hope, but they do not in the least know their
-hope; to understand it, is yet immeasurably beyond them," answered
-Mr. Raven.
-
-His unexpected appearance had caused me no astonishment. I was like
-a child, constantly wondering, and surprised at nothing.
-
-"Did you come to find me, sir?" I asked.
-
-"Not at all," he replied. "I have no anxiety about you. Such as
-you always come back to us."
-
-"Tell me, please, who am I such as?" I said.
-
-"I cannot make my friend the subject of conversation," he answered,
-with a smile.
-
-"But when that friend is present!" I urged.
-
-"I decline the more strongly," he rejoined.
-
-"But when that friend asks you!" I persisted.
-
-"Then most positively I refuse," he returned.
-
-"Why?"
-
-"Because he and I would be talking of two persons as if they were
-one and the same. Your consciousness of yourself and my knowledge
-of you are far apart!"
-
-The lapels of his coat flew out, and the lappets lifted, and I
-thought the metamorphosis of HOMO to CORVUS was about to take place
-before my eyes. But the coat closed again in front of him, and he
-added, with seeming inconsequence,
-
-"In this world never trust a person who has once deceived you.
-Above all, never do anything such a one may ask you to do."
-
-"I will try to remember," I answered; "--but I may forget!"
-
-"Then some evil that is good for you will follow."
-
-"And if I remember?"
-
-"Some evil that is not good for you, will not follow."
-
-The old man seemed to sink to the ground, and immediately I saw the
-raven several yards from me, flying low and fast.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-DEAD OR ALIVE?
-
-I went walking on, still facing the moon, who, not yet high, was
-staring straight into the forest. I did not know what ailed her,
-but she was dark and dented, like a battered disc of old copper,
-and looked dispirited and weary. Not a cloud was nigh to keep her
-company, and the stars were too bright for her. "Is this going to
-last for ever?" she seemed to say. She was going one way and I was
-going the other, yet through the wood we went a long way together.
-We did not commune much, for my eyes were on the ground; but her
-disconsolate look was fixed on me: I felt without seeing it. A
-long time we were together, I and the moon, walking side by side,
-she the dull shine, and I the live shadow.
-
-Something on the ground, under a spreading tree, caught my eye with
-its whiteness, and I turned toward it. Vague as it was in the
-shadow of the foliage, it suggested, as I drew nearer, a human body.
-"Another skeleton!" I said to myself, kneeling and laying my hand
-upon it. A body it was, however, and no skeleton, though as nearly
-one as body could well be. It lay on its side, and was very cold--
-not cold like a stone, but cold like that which was once alive, and
-is alive no more. The closer I looked at it, the oftener I touched
-it, the less it seemed possible it should be other than dead. For
-one bewildered moment, I fancied it one of the wild dancers, a
-ghostly Cinderella, perhaps, that had lost her way home, and perished
-in the strange night of an out-of-door world! It was quite naked,
-and so worn that, even in the shadow, I could, peering close, have
-counted without touching them, every rib in its side. All its bones,
-indeed, were as visible as if tight-covered with only a thin elastic
-leather. Its beautiful yet terrible teeth, unseemly disclosed by
-the retracted lips, gleamed ghastly through the dark. Its hair was
-longer than itself, thick and very fine to the touch, and black as
-night.
-
-It was the body of a tall, probably graceful woman.--How had she
-come there? Not of herself, and already in such wasted condition,
-surely! Her strength must have failed her; she had fallen, and
-lain there until she died of hunger! But how, even so, could she
-be thus emaciated? And how came she to be naked? Where were the
-savages to strip and leave her? or what wild beasts would have taken
-her garments? That her body should have been left was not wonderful!
-
-I rose to my feet, stood, and considered. I must not, could not let
-her lie exposed and forsaken! Natural reverence forbade it. Even
-the garment of a woman claims respect; her body it were impossible
-to leave uncovered! Irreverent eyes might look on it! Brutal claws
-might toss it about! Years would pass ere the friendly rains washed
-it into the soil!--But the ground was hard, almost solid with
-interlacing roots, and I had but my bare hands!
-
-At first it seemed plain that she had not long been dead: there
-was not a sign of decay about her! But then what had the slow
-wasting of life left of her to decay?
-
-Could she be still alive? Might she not? What if she were! Things
-went very strangely in this strange world! Even then there would
-be little chance of bringing her back, but I must know she was dead
-before I buried her!
-
-As I left the forest-hall, I had spied in the doorway a bunch of
-ripe grapes, and brought it with me, eating as I came: a few were
-yet left on the stalk, and their juice might possibly revive her!
-Anyhow it was all I had with which to attempt her rescue! The mouth
-was happily a little open; but the head was in such an awkward
-position that, to move the body, I passed my arm under the shoulder
-on which it lay, when I found the pine-needles beneath it warm:
-she could not have been any time dead, and MIGHT still be alive,
-though I could discern no motion of the heart, or any indication
-that she breathed! One of her hands was clenched hard, apparently
-inclosing something small. I squeezed a grape into her mouth, but
-no swallowing followed.
-
-To do for her all I could, I spread a thick layer of pine-needles
-and dry leaves, laid one of my garments over it, warm from my body,
-lifted her upon it, and covered her with my clothes and a great heap
-of leaves: I would save the little warmth left in her, hoping an
-increase to it when the sun came back. Then I tried another grape,
-but could perceive no slightest movement of mouth or throat.
-
-"Doubt," I said to myself, "may be a poor encouragement to do
-anything, but it is a bad reason for doing nothing." So tight was
-the skin upon her bones that I dared not use friction.
-
-I crept into the heap of leaves, got as close to her as I could,
-and took her in my arms. I had not much heat left in me, but what
-I had I would share with her! Thus I spent what remained of the
-night, sleepless, and longing for the sun. Her cold seemed to
-radiate into me, but no heat to pass from me to her.
-
-Had I fled from the beautiful sleepers, I thought, each on her "dim,
-straight" silver couch, to lie alone with such a bedfellow! I had
-refused a lovely privilege: I was given over to an awful duty!
-Beneath the sad, slow-setting moon, I lay with the dead, and watched
-for the dawn.
-
-The darkness had given way, and the eastern horizon was growing
-dimly clearer, when I caught sight of a motion rather than of
-anything that moved--not far from me, and close to the ground. It
-was the low undulating of a large snake, which passed me in an
-unswerving line. Presently appeared, making as it seemed for the
-same point, what I took for a roebuck-doe and her calf. Again a
-while, and two creatures like bear-cubs came, with three or four
-smaller ones behind them. The light was now growing so rapidly that
-when, a few minutes after, a troop of horses went trotting past, I
-could see that, although the largest of them were no bigger than the
-smallest Shetland pony, they must yet be full-grown, so perfect were
-they in form, and so much had they all the ways and action of great
-horses. They were of many breeds. Some seemed models of cart-horses,
-others of chargers, hunters, racers. Dwarf cattle and small
-elephants followed.
-
-"Why are the children not here!" I said to myself. "The moment I am
-free of this poor woman, I must go back and fetch them!"
-
-Where were the creatures going? What drew them? Was this an exodus,
-or a morning habit? I must wait for the sun! Till he came I must
-not leave the woman!
-I laid my hand on the body, and could not help thinking it felt a
-trifle warmer. It might have gained a little of the heat I had lost!
-it could hardly have generated any! What reason for hope there was
-had not grown less!
-
-The forehead of the day began to glow, and soon the sun came peering
-up, as if to see for the first time what all this stir of a new
-world was about. At sight of his great innocent splendour, I rose
-full of life, strong against death. Removing the handkerchief I
-had put to protect the mouth and eyes from the pine-needles, I
-looked anxiously to see whether I had found a priceless jewel, or
-but its empty case.
-
-The body lay motionless as when I found it. Then first, in the
-morning light, I saw how drawn and hollow was the face, how sharp
-were the bones under the skin, how every tooth shaped itself through
-the lips. The human garment was indeed worn to its threads, but
-the bird of heaven might yet be nestling within, might yet awake to
-motion and song!
-
-But the sun was shining on her face! I re-arranged the handkerchief,
-laid a few leaves lightly over it, and set out to follow the
-creatures. Their main track was well beaten, and must have long
-been used--likewise many of the tracks that, joining it from both
-sides, merged in, and broadened it. The trees retreated as I went,
-and the grass grew thicker. Presently the forest was gone, and a
-wide expanse of loveliest green stretched away to the horizon.
-Through it, along the edge of the forest, flowed a small river, and
-to this the track led. At sight of the water a new though undefined
-hope sprang up in me. The stream looked everywhere deep, and was
-full to the brim, but nowhere more than a few yards wide. A bluish
-mist rose from it, vanishing as it rose. On the opposite side, in
-the plentiful grass, many small animals were feeding. Apparently
-they slept in the forest, and in the morning sought the plain,
-swimming the river to reach it. I knelt and would have drunk, but
-the water was hot, and had a strange metallic taste.
-
-I leapt to my feet: here was the warmth I sought--the first necessity
-of life! I sped back to my helpless charge.
-
-Without well considering my solitude, no one will understand what
-seemed to lie for me in the redemption of this woman from death.
-"Prove what she may," I thought with myself, "I shall at least be
-lonely no more!" I had found myself such poor company that now first
-I seemed to know what hope was. This blessed water would expel the
-cold death, and drown my desolation!
-
-I bore her to the stream. Tall as she was, I found her marvellously
-light, her bones were so delicate, and so little covered them. I
-grew yet more hopeful when I found her so far from stiff that I
-could carry her on one arm, like a sleeping child, leaning against
-my shoulder. I went softly, dreading even the wind of my motion,
-and glad there was no other.
-
-The water was too hot to lay her at once in it: the shock might
-scare from her the yet fluttering life! I laid her on the bank,
-and dipping one of my garments, began to bathe the pitiful form.
-So wasted was it that, save from the plentifulness and blackness of
-the hair, it was impossible even to conjecture whether she was young
-or old. Her eyelids were just not shut, which made her look dead
-the more: there was a crack in the clouds of her night, at which no
-sun shone through!
-
-The longer I went on bathing the poor bones, the less grew my hope
-that they would ever again be clothed with strength, that ever those
-eyelids would lift, and a soul look out; still I kept bathing
-continuously, allowing no part time to grow cold while I bathed
-another; and gradually the body became so much warmer, that at last
-I ventured to submerge it: I got into the stream and drew it in,
-holding the face above the water, and letting the swift, steady
-current flow all about the rest. I noted, but was able to conclude
-nothing from the fact, that, for all the heat, the shut hand never
-relaxed its hold.
-
-After about ten minutes, I lifted it out and laid it again on the
-bank, dried it, and covered it as well as I could, then ran to the
-forest for leaves.
-
-The grass and soil were dry and warm; and when I returned I thought
-it had scarcely lost any of the heat the water had given it. I
-spread the leaves upon it, and ran for more--then for a third and
-a fourth freight.
-
-I could now leave it and go to explore, in the hope of discovering
-some shelter. I ran up the stream toward some rocky hills I saw in
-that direction, which were not far off.
-
-When I reached them, I found the river issuing full grown from a rock
-at the bottom of one of them. To my fancy it seemed to have run down
-a stair inside, an eager cataract, at every landing wild to get out,
-but only at the foot finding a door of escape.
-
-It did not fill the opening whence it rushed, and I crept through
-into a little cave, where I learned that, instead of hurrying
-tumultuously down a stair, it rose quietly from the ground at the
-back like the base of a large column, and ran along one side, nearly
-filling a deep, rather narrow channel. I considered the place, and
-saw that, if I could find a few fallen boughs long enough to lie
-across the channel, and large enough to bear a little weight without
-bending much, I might, with smaller branches and plenty of leaves,
-make upon them a comfortable couch, which the stream under would
-keep constantly warm. Then I ran back to see how my charge fared.
-
-She was lying as I had left her. The heat had not brought her to
-life, but neither had it developed anything to check farther hope.
-I got a few boulders out of the channel, and arranged them at her
-feet and on both sides of her.
-
-Running again to the wood, I had not to search long ere I found
-some small boughs fit for my purpose--mostly of beech, their dry
-yellow leaves yet clinging to them. With these I had soon laid
-the floor of a bridge-bed over the torrent. I crossed the boughs
-with smaller branches, interlaced these with twigs, and buried
-all deep in leaves and dry moss.
-
-When thus at length, after not a few journeys to the forest, I had
-completed a warm, dry, soft couch, I took the body once more, and
-set out with it for the cave. It was so light that now and then
-as I went I almost feared lest, when I laid it down, I should find
-it a skeleton after all; and when at last I did lay it gently on
-the pathless bridge, it was a greater relief to part with that fancy
-than with the weight. Once more I covered the body with a thick
-layer of leaves; and trying again to feed her with a grape, found
-to my joy that I could open the mouth a little farther. The grape,
-indeed, lay in it unheeded, but I hoped some of the juice might find
-its way down.
-
-After an hour or two on the couch, she was no longer cold. The
-warmth of the brook had interpenetrated her frame--truly it was
-but a frame!--and she was warm to the touch;--not, probably, with the
-warmth of life, but with a warmth which rendered it more possible,
-if she were alive, that she might live. I had read of one in a
-trance lying motionless for weeks!
-
-In that cave, day after day, night after night, seven long days and
-nights, I sat or lay, now waking now sleeping, but always watching.
-Every morning I went out and bathed in the hot stream, and every
-morning felt thereupon as if I had eaten and drunk--which experience gave me courage to lay her in it also every day. Once as I did so,
-a shadow of discoloration on her left side gave me a terrible shock,
-but the next morning it had vanished, and I continued the treatment--
-every morning, after her bath, putting a fresh grape in her mouth.
-
-I too ate of the grapes and other berries I found in the forest;
-but I believed that, with my daily bath in that river, I could have
-done very well without eating at all.
-
-Every time I slept, I dreamed of finding a wounded angel, who,
-unable to fly, remained with me until at last she loved me and would
-not leave me; and every time I woke, it was to see, instead of an
-angel-visage with lustrous eyes, the white, motionless, wasted face
-upon the couch. But Adam himself, when first he saw her asleep,
-could not have looked more anxiously for Eve's awaking than I
-watched for this woman's. Adam knew nothing of himself, perhaps
-nothing of his need of another self; I, an alien from my fellows,
-had learned to love what I had lost! Were this one wasted shred of
-womanhood to disappear, I should have nothing in me but a consuming
-hunger after life! I forgot even the Little Ones: things were not
-amiss with them! here lay what might wake and be a woman! might
-actually open eyes, and look out of them upon me!
-
-Now first I knew what solitude meant--now that I gazed on one who
-neither saw nor heard, neither moved nor spoke. I saw now that a
-man alone is but a being that may become a man--that he is but a
-need, and therefore a possibility. To be enough for himself, a being
-must be an eternal, self-existent worm! So superbly constituted,
-so simply complicate is man; he rises from and stands upon such a
-pedestal of lower physical organisms and spiritual structures, that
-no atmosphere will comfort or nourish his life, less divine than
-that offered by other souls; nowhere but in other lives can he
-breathe. Only by the reflex of other lives can he ripen his
-specialty, develop the idea of himself, the individuality that
-distinguishes him from every other. Were all men alike, each would
-still have an individuality, secured by his personal consciousness,
-but there would be small reason why there should be more than two or
-three such; while, for the development of the differences which make
-a large and lofty unity possible, and which alone can make millions
-into a church, an endless and measureless influence and reaction
-are indispensable. A man to be perfect--complete, that is, in having
-reached the spiritual condition of persistent and universal growth,
-which is the mode wherein he inherits the infinitude of his Father--
-must have the education of a world of fellow-men. Save for the hope
-of the dawn of life in the form beside me, I should have fled for
-fellowship to the beasts that grazed and did not speak. Better to
-go about with them--infinitely better--than to live alone! But
-with the faintest prospect of a woman to my friend, I, poorest of
-creatures, was yet a possible man!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-THE WHITE LEECH
-
-I woke one morning from a profound sleep, with one of my hands very
-painful. The back of it was much swollen, and in the centre of
-the swelling was a triangular wound, like the bite of a leech. As
-the day went on, the swelling subsided, and by the evening the hurt
-was all but healed. I searched the cave, turning over every stone
-of any size, but discovered nothing I could imagine capable of
-injuring me.
-
-Slowly the days passed, and still the body never moved, never opened
-its eyes. It could not be dead, for assuredly it manifested no
-sign of decay, and the air about it was quite pure. Moreover, I
-could imagine that the sharpest angles of the bones had begun to
-disappear, that the form was everywhere a little rounder, and the
-skin had less of the parchment-look: if such change was indeed
-there, life must be there! the tide which had ebbed so far toward
-the infinite, must have begun again to flow! Oh joy to me, if
-the rising ripples of life's ocean were indeed burying under lovely
-shape the bones it had all but forsaken! Twenty times a day I
-looked for evidence of progress, and twenty times a day I doubted--
-sometimes even despaired; but the moment I recalled the mental
-picture of her as I found her, hope revived.
-
-Several weeks had passed thus, when one night, after lying a long
-time awake, I rose, thinking to go out and breathe the cooler air;
-for, although from the running of the stream it was always fresh
-in the cave, the heat was not seldom a little oppressive. The moon
-outside was full, the air within shadowy clear, and naturally I
-cast a lingering look on my treasure ere I went. "Bliss eternal!"
-I cried aloud, "do I see her eyes?" Great orbs, dark as if cut from
-the sphere of a starless night, and luminous by excess of darkness,
-seemed to shine amid the glimmering whiteness of her face. I stole
-nearer, my heart beating so that I feared the noise of it startling
-her. I bent over her. Alas, her eyelids were close shut! Hope
-and Imagination had wrought mutual illusion! my heart's desire would
-never be! I turned away, threw myself on the floor of the cave,
-and wept. Then I bethought me that her eyes had been a little open,
-and that now the awful chink out of which nothingness had peered,
-was gone: it might be that she had opened them for a moment, and
-was again asleep!--it might be she was awake and holding them close!
-In either case, life, less or more, must have shut them! I was
-comforted, and fell fast asleep.
-
-That night I was again bitten, and awoke with a burning thirst.
-
-In the morning I searched yet more thoroughly, but again in vain.
-The wound was of the same character, and, as before, was nearly well
-by the evening. I concluded that some large creature of the leech
-kind came occasionally from the hot stream. "But, if blood be its
-object," I said to myself, "so long as I am there, I need hardly
-fear for my treasure!"
-
-That same morning, when, having peeled a grape as usual and taken
-away the seeds, I put it in her mouth, her lips made a slight
-movement of reception, and I KNEW she lived!
-
-My hope was now so much stronger that I began to think of some
-attire for her: she must be able to rise the moment she wished! I
-betook myself therefore to the forest, to investigate what material
-it might afford, and had hardly begun to look when fibrous skeletons,
-like those of the leaves of the prickly pear, suggested themselves
-as fit for the purpose. I gathered a stock of them, laid them to
-dry in the sun, pulled apart the reticulated layers, and of these
-had soon begun to fashion two loose garments, one to hang from her
-waist, the other from her shoulders. With the stiletto-point of an
-aloe-leaf and various filaments, I sewed together three thicknesses
-of the tissue.
-
-During the week that followed, there was no farther sign except
-that she more evidently took the grapes. But indeed all the signs
-became surer: plainly she was growing plumper, and her skin fairer.
-Still she did not open her eyes; and the horrid fear would at times
-invade me, that her growth was of some hideous fungoid nature, the
-few grapes being nowise sufficient to account for it.
-
-Again I was bitten; and now the thing, whatever it was, began to
-pay me regular visits at intervals of three days. It now generally
-bit me in the neck or the arm, invariably with but one bite, always
-while I slept, and never, even when I slept, in the daytime. Hour
-after hour would I lie awake on the watch, but never heard it coming,
-or saw sign of its approach. Neither, I believe, did I ever feel
-it bite me. At length I became so hopeless of catching it, that
-I no longer troubled myself either to look for it by day, or lie
-in wait for it at night. I knew from my growing weakness that I
-was losing blood at a dangerous rate, but I cared little for that:
-in sight of my eyes death was yielding to life; a soul was gathering
-strength to save me from loneliness; we would go away together, and
-I should speedily recover!
-
-The garments were at length finished, and, contemplating my handiwork
-with no small satisfaction, I proceeded to mat layers of the fibre
-into sandals.
-
-One night I woke suddenly, breathless and faint, and longing after
-air, and had risen to crawl from the cave, when a slight rustle in
-the leaves of the couch set me listening motionless.
-
-"I caught the vile thing," said a feeble voice, in my mother-tongue;
-"I caught it in the very act!"
-
-She was alive! she spoke! I dared not yield to my transport lest I
-should terrify her.
-
-"What creature?" I breathed, rather than said.
-
-"The creature," she answered, "that was biting you."
-
-"What was it?"
-
-"A great white leech."
-
-"How big?" I pursued, forcing myself to be calm.
-
-"Not far from six feet long, I should think," she answered.
-
-"You have saved my life, perhaps!--But how could you touch the
-horrid thing! How brave of you!" I cried.
-
-"I did!" was all her answer, and I thought she shuddered.
-
-"Where is it? What could you do with such a monster?"
-
-"I threw it in the river."
-
-"Then it will come again, I fear!"
-
-"I do not think I could have killed it, even had I known how!--I
-heard you moaning, and got up to see what disturbed you; saw the
-frightful thing at your neck, and pulled it away. But I could not
-hold it, and was hardly able to throw it from me. I only heard it
-splash in the water!"
-
-"We'll kill it next time!" I said; but with that I turned faint,
-sought the open air, but fell.
-
-When I came to myself the sun was up. The lady stood a little way
-off, looking, even in the clumsy attire I had fashioned for her, at
-once grand and graceful. I HAD seen those glorious eyes! Through
-the night they had shone! Dark as the darkness primeval, they now
-outshone the day! She stood erect as a column, regarding me. Her
-pale cheek indicated no emotion, only question. I rose.
-
-"We must be going!" I said. "The white leech----"
-
-I stopped: a strange smile had flickered over her beautiful face.
-
-"Did you find me there?" she asked, pointing to the cave.
-
-"No; I brought you there," I replied.
-
-"You brought me?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"From where?"
-
-"From the forest."
-
-"What have you done with my clothes--and my jewels?"
-
-"You had none when I found you."
-
-"Then why did you not leave me?"
-
-"Because I hoped you were not dead."
-
-"Why should you have cared?"
-
-"Because I was very lonely, and wanted you to live."
-
-"You would have kept me enchanted for my beauty!" she said, with
-proud scorn.
-
-Her words and her look roused my indignation.
-
-"There was no beauty left in you," I said.
-
-"Why, then, again, did you not let me alone?"
-
-"Because you were of my own kind."
-
-"Of YOUR kind?" she cried, in a tone of utter contempt.
-
-"I thought so, but find I was mistaken!"
-
-"Doubtless you pitied me!"
-
-"Never had woman more claim on pity, or less on any other feeling!"
-
-With an expression of pain, mortification, and anger unutterable,
-she turned from me and stood silent. Starless night lay profound
-in the gulfs of her eyes: hate of him who brought it back had slain
-their splendour. The light of life was gone from them.
-
-"Had you failed to rouse me, what would you have done?" she asked
-suddenly without moving.
-
-"I would have buried it."
-
-"It! What?--You would have buried THIS?" she exclaimed, flashing
-round upon me in a white fury, her arms thrown out, and her eyes
-darting forks of cold lightning.
-
-"Nay; that I saw not! That, weary weeks of watching and tending
-have brought back to you," I answered--for with such a woman I
-must be plain! "Had I seen the smallest sign of decay, I would at
-once have buried you."
-
-"Dog of a fool!" she cried, "I was but in a trance--Samoil! what
-a fate!--Go and fetch the she-savage from whom you borrowed this
-hideous disguise."
-
-"I made it for you. It is hideous, but I did my best."
-
-She drew herself up to her tall height.
-
-"How long have I been insensible?" she demanded. "A woman could
-not have made that dress in a day!"
-
-"Not in twenty days," I rejoined, "hardly in thirty!"
-
-"Ha! How long do you pretend I have lain unconscious?--Answer me at
-once."
-
-"I cannot tell how long you had lain when I found you, but there
-was nothing left of you save skin and bone: that is more than three
-months ago.--Your hair was beautiful, nothing else! I have done
-for it what I could."
-
-"My poor hair!" she said, and brought a great armful of it round
-from behind her; "--it will be more than a three-months' care to
-bring YOU to life again!--I suppose I must thank you, although I
-cannot say I am grateful!"
-
-"There is no need, madam: I would have done the same for any
-woman--yes, or for any man either!"
-
-"How is it my hair is not tangled?" she said, fondling it.
-
-"It always drifted in the current."
-
-"How?--What do you mean?"
-
-"I could not have brought you to life but by bathing you in the hot
-river every morning."
-
-She gave a shudder of disgust, and stood for a while with her gaze
-fixed on the hurrying water. Then she turned to me:
-
-"We must understand each other!" she said. "--You have done me
-the two worst of wrongs--compelled me to live, and put me to shame:
-neither of them can I pardon!"
-
-She raised her left hand, and flung it out as if repelling me.
-Something ice-cold struck me on the forehead. When I came to myself,
-I was on the ground, wet and shivering.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-GONE!--BUT HOW?
-
-I rose, and looked around me, dazed at heart. For a moment I could
-not see her: she was gone, and loneliness had returned like the
-cloud after the rain! She whom I brought back from the brink of
-the grave, had fled from me, and left me with desolation! I dared
-not one moment remain thus hideously alone. Had I indeed done her a
-wrong? I must devote my life to sharing the burden I had compelled
-her to resume!
-
-I descried her walking swiftly over the grass, away from the river,
-took one plunge for a farewell restorative, and set out to follow
-her. The last visit of the white leech, and the blow of the woman,
-had enfeebled me, but already my strength was reviving, and I kept
-her in sight without difficulty.
-
-"Is this, then, the end?" I said as I went, and my heart brooded
-a sad song. Her angry, hating eyes haunted me. I could understand
-her resentment at my having forced life upon her, but how had I
-further injured her? Why should she loathe me? Could modesty
-itself be indignant with true service? How should the proudest
-woman, conscious of my every action, cherish against me the least
-sense of disgracing wrong? How reverently had I not touched her! As
-a father his motherless child, I had borne and tended her! Had all my
-labour, all my despairing hope gone to redeem only ingratitude? "No,"
-I answered myself; "beauty must have a heart! However profoundly
-hidden, it must be there! The deeper buried, the stronger and truer
-will it wake at last in its beautiful grave! To rouse that heart
-were a better gift to her than the happiest life! It would be to
-give her a nobler, a higher life!"
-
-She was ascending a gentle slope before me, walking straight and
-steady as one that knew whither, when I became aware that she was
-increasing the distance between us. I summoned my strength, and
-it came in full tide. My veins filled with fresh life! My body
-seemed to become ethereal, and, following like an easy wind, I
-rapidly overtook her.
-
-Not once had she looked behind. Swiftly she moved, like a Greek
-goddess to rescue, but without haste. I was within three yards of
-her, when she turned sharply, yet with grace unbroken, and stood.
-Fatigue or heat she showed none. Her paleness was not a pallor, but
-a pure whiteness; her breathing was slow and deep. Her eyes seemed
-to fill the heavens, and give light to the world. It was nearly
-noon, but the sense was upon me as of a great night in which an
-invisible dew makes the stars look large.
-
-"Why do you follow me?" she asked, quietly but rather sternly, as
-if she had never before seen me.
-
-"I have lived so long," I answered, "on the mere hope of your eyes,
-that I must want to see them again!"
-
-"You WILL not be spared!" she said coldly. "I command you to stop
-where you stand."
-
-"Not until I see you in a place of safety will I leave you," I
-replied.
-
-"Then take the consequences," she said, and resumed her swift-gliding
-walk.
-
-But as she turned she cast on me a glance, and I stood as if run
-through with a spear. Her scorn had failed: she would kill me with
-her beauty!
-
-Despair restored my volition; the spell broke; I ran, and overtook
-her.
-
-"Have pity upon me!" I cried.
-
-She gave no heed. I followed her like a child whose mother pretends
-to abandon him. "I will be your slave!" I said, and laid my hand
-on her arm.
-
-She turned as if a serpent had bit her. I cowered before the blaze
-of her eyes, but could not avert my own.
-
-"Pity me," I cried again.
-
-She resumed her walking.
-
-The whole day I followed her. The sun climbed the sky, seemed to
-pause on its summit, went down the other side. Not a moment did
-she pause, not a moment did I cease to follow. She never turned
-her head, never relaxed her pace.
-
-The sun went below, and the night came up. I kept close to her:
-if I lost sight of her for a moment, it would be for ever!
-
-All day long we had been walking over thick soft grass: abruptly
-she stopped, and threw herself upon it. There was yet light enough
-to show that she was utterly weary. I stood behind her, and gazed
-down on her for a moment.
-
-Did I love her? I knew she was not good! Did I hate her? I could
-not leave her! I knelt beside her.
-
-"Begone! Do not dare touch me," she cried.
-
-Her arms lay on the grass by her sides as if paralyzed.
-
-Suddenly they closed about my neck, rigid as those of the
-torture-maiden. She drew down my face to hers, and her lips clung
-to my cheek. A sting of pain shot somewhere through me, and pulsed.
-I could not stir a hair's breadth. Gradually the pain ceased. A
-slumberous weariness, a dreamy pleasure stole over me, and then I
-knew nothing.
-
-All at once I came to myself. The moon was a little way above the
-horizon, but spread no radiance; she was but a bright thing set in
-blackness. My cheek smarted; I put my hand to it, and found a wet
-spot. My neck ached: there again was a wet spot! I sighed heavily,
-and felt very tired. I turned my eyes listlessly around me--and
-saw what had become of the light of the moon: it was gathered about
-the lady! she stood in a shimmering nimbus! I rose and staggered
-toward her.
-
-"Down!" she cried imperiously, as to a rebellious dog. "Follow me
-a step if you dare!"
-
-"I will!" I murmured, with an agonised effort.
-
-"Set foot within the gates of my city, and my people will stone you:
-they do not love beggars!"
-
-I was deaf to her words. Weak as water, and half awake, I did not
-know that I moved, but the distance grew less between us. She took
-one step back, raised her left arm, and with the clenched hand
-seemed to strike me on the forehead. I received as it were a blow
-from an iron hammer, and fell.
-
-I sprang to my feet, cold and wet, but clear-headed and strong. Had
-the blow revived me? it had left neither wound nor pain!--But how
-came I wet?--I could not have lain long, for the moon was no higher!
-
-The lady stood some yards away, her back toward me. She was doing
-something, I could not distinguish what. Then by her sudden gleam
-I knew she had thrown off her garments, and stood white in the dazed
-moon. One moment she stood--and fell forward.
-
-A streak of white shot away in a swift-drawn line. The same instant
-the moon recovered herself, shining out with a full flash, and I
-saw that the streak was a long-bodied thing, rushing in great,
-low-curved bounds over the grass. Dark spots seemed to run like a
-stream adown its back, as if it had been fleeting along under the
-edge of a wood, and catching the shadows of the leaves.
-
-"God of mercy!" I cried, "is the terrible creature speeding to the
-night-infolded city?" and I seemed to hear from afar the sudden
-burst and spread of outcrying terror, as the pale savage bounded
-from house to house, rending and slaying.
-
-While I gazed after it fear-stricken, past me from behind, like a
-swift, all but noiseless arrow, shot a second large creature, pure
-white. Its path was straight for the spot where the lady had fallen,
-and, as I thought, lay. My tongue clave to the roof of my mouth.
-I sprang forward pursuing the beast. But in a moment the spot I
-made for was far behind it.
-
-"It was well," I thought, "that I could not cry out: if she had
-risen, the monster would have been upon her!"
-
-But when I reached the place, no lady was there; only the garments
-she had dropped lay dusk in the moonlight.
-
-I stood staring after the second beast. It tore over the ground
-with yet greater swiftness than the former--in long, level, skimming
-leaps, the very embodiment of wasteless speed. It followed the line
-the other had taken, and I watched it grow smaller and smaller, until
-it disappeared in the uncertain distance.
-
-But where was the lady? Had the first beast surprised her, creeping
-upon her noiselessly? I had heard no shriek! and there had not been
-time to devour her! Could it have caught her up as it ran, and
-borne her away to its den? So laden it could not have run so fast!
-and I should have seen that it carried something!
-
-Horrible doubts began to wake in me. After a thorough but fruitless
-search, I set out in the track of the two animals.
-
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI
-
-THE FUGITIVE MOTHER
-
-As I hastened along, a cloud came over the moon, and from the
-gray dark suddenly emerged a white figure, clasping a child to her
-bosom, and stooping as she ran. She was on a line parallel with
-my own, but did not perceive me as she hurried along, terror and
-anxiety in every movement of her driven speed.
-
-"She is chased!" I said to myself. "Some prowler of this terrible
-night is after her!"
-
-To follow would have added to her fright: I stepped into her track
-to stop her pursuer.
-
-As I stood for a moment looking after her through the dusk, behind
-me came a swift, soft-footed rush, and ere I could turn, something
-sprang over my head, struck me sharply on the forehead, and knocked
-me down. I was up in an instant, but all I saw of my assailant was a
-vanishing whiteness. I ran after the beast, with the blood trickling
-from my forehead; but had run only a few steps, when a shriek of
-despair tore the quivering night. I ran the faster, though I could
-not but fear it must already be too late.
-
-In a minute or two I spied a low white shape approaching me through
-the vapour-dusted moonlight. It must be another beast, I thought at
-first, for it came slowly, almost crawling, with strange, floundering
-leaps, as of a creature in agony! I drew aside from its path, and
-waited. As it neared me, I saw it was going on three legs, carrying
-its left fore-paw high from the ground. It had many dark, oval spots
-on a shining white skin, and was attended by a low rushing sound,
-as of water falling upon grass. As it went by me, I saw something
-streaming from the lifted paw.
-
-"It is blood!" I said to myself, "some readier champion than I has
-wounded the beast!" But, strange to tell, such a pity seized me at
-sight of the suffering creature, that, though an axe had been in my
-hand I could not have struck at it. In a broken succession of
-hobbling leaps it went out of sight, its blood, as it seemed, still
-issuing in a small torrent, which kept flowing back softly through
-the grass beside me. "If it go on bleeding like that," I thought,
-"it will soon be hurtless!"
-
-I went on, for I might yet be useful to the woman, and hoped also to
-see her deliverer.
-
-I descried her a little way off, seated on the grass, with her child
-in her lap.
-
-"Can I do anything for you?" I asked.
-
-At the sound of my voice she started violently, and would have risen.
-I threw myself on the ground.
-
-"You need not be frightened," I said. "I was following the beast
-when happily you found a nearer protector! It passed me now with its
-foot bleeding so much that by this time it must be all but dead!"
-
-"There is little hope of that!" she answered, trembling. "Do you
-not know whose beast she is?"
-
-Now I had certain strange suspicions, but I answered that I knew
-nothing of the brute, and asked what had become of her champion.
-
-"What champion?" she rejoined. "I have seen no one."
-
-"Then how came the monster to grief?"
-
-"I pounded her foot with a stone--as hard as I could strike. Did
-you not hear her cry?"
-
-"Well, you are a brave woman!" I answered. "I thought it was you
-gave the cry!"
-
-"It was the leopardess."
-
-"I never heard such a sound from the throat of an animal! it was
-like the scream of a woman in torture!"
-
-"My voice was gone; I could not have shrieked to save my baby! When
-I saw the horrid mouth at my darling's little white neck, I caught
-up a stone and mashed her lame foot."
-
-"Tell me about the creature," I said; "I am a stranger in these
-parts."
-
-"You will soon know about her if you are going to Bulika!" she
-answered. "Now, I must never go back there!"
-
-"Yes, I am going to Bulika," I said, "--to see the princess."
-
-"Have a care; you had better not go!--But perhaps you are--! The
-princess is a very good, kind woman!"
-
-I heard a little movement. Clouds had by this time gathered so thick
-over the moon that I could scarcely see my companion: I feared she
-was rising to run from me.
-
-"You are in no danger of any sort from me," I said. "What oath
-would you like me to take?"
-
-"I know by your speech that you are not of the people of Bulika,"
-she replied; "I will trust you!--I am not of them, either, else I
-should not be able: they never trust any one--If only I could see
-you! But I like your voice!--There, my darling is asleep! The foul
-beast has not hurt her!--Yes: it was my baby she was after!" she
-went on, caressing the child. "And then she would have torn her
-mother to pieces for carrying her off!--Some say the princess has
-two white leopardesses," she continued: "I know only one--with spots.
-Everybody knows HER! If the princess hear of a baby, she sends her
-immediately to suck its blood, and then it either dies or grows up
-an idiot. I would have gone away with my baby, but the princess was
-from home, and I thought I might wait until I was a little stronger.
-But she must have taken the beast with her, and been on her way home
-when I left, and come across my track. I heard the SNIFF-SNUFF of
-the leopardess behind me, and ran;--oh, how I ran!--But my darling
-will not die! There is no mark on her!"
-
-"Where are you taking her?"
-
-"Where no one ever tells!"
-
-"Why is the princess so cruel?"
-
-"There is an old prophecy that a child will be the death of her.
-That is why she will listen to no offer of marriage, they say."
-
-"But what will become of her country if she kill all the babies?"
-
-"She does not care about her country. She sends witches around to
-teach the women spells that keep babies away, and give them horrible
-things to eat. Some say she is in league with the Shadows to put
-an end to the race. At night we hear the questing beast, and lie
-awake and shiver. She can tell at once the house where a baby is
-coming, and lies down at the door, watching to get in. There are
-words that have power to shoo her away, only they do not always
-work--But here I sit talking, and the beast may by this time have
-got home, and her mistress be sending the other after us!"
-
-As thus she ended, she rose in haste.
-
-"I do not think she will ever get home.--Let me carry the baby for
-you!" I said, as I rose also.
-
-She returned me no answer, and when I would have taken it, only
-clasped it the closer.
-
-"I cannot think," I said, walking by her side, "how the brute could
-be bleeding so much!"
-
-"Take my advice, and don't go near the palace," she answered. "There
-are sounds in it at night as if the dead were trying to shriek, but
-could not open their mouths!"
-
-She bade me an abrupt farewell. Plainly she did not want more of
-my company; so I stood still, and heard her footsteps die away on
-the grass.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII
-
-BULIKA
-
-I had lost all notion of my position, and was walking about in pure,
-helpless impatience, when suddenly I found myself in the path of
-the leopardess, wading in the blood from her paw. It ran against
-my ankles with the force of a small brook, and I got out of it the
-more quickly because of an unshaped suspicion in my mind as to whose
-blood it might be. But I kept close to the sound of it, walking up
-the side of the stream, for it would guide me in the direction of
-Bulika.
-
-I soon began to reflect, however, that no leopardess, no elephant,
-no hugest animal that in our world preceded man, could keep such a
-torrent flowing, except every artery in its body were open, and its
-huge system went on filling its vessels from fields and lakes and
-forests as fast as they emptied themselves: it could not be blood!
-I dipped a finger in it, and at once satisfied myself that it was
-not. In truth, however it might have come there, it was a softly
-murmuring rivulet of water that ran, without channel, over the grass!
-But sweet as was its song, I dared not drink of it; I kept walking
-on, hoping after the light, and listening to the familiar sound so
-long unheard--for that of the hot stream was very different. The
-mere wetting of my feet in it, however, had so refreshed me, that I
-went on without fatigue till the darkness began to grow thinner,
-and I knew the sun was drawing nigh. A few minutes more, and I
-could discern, against the pale aurora, the wall-towers of a
-city--seemingly old as time itself. Then I looked down to get a
-sight of the brook.
-
-It was gone. I had indeed for a long time noted its sound growing
-fainter, but at last had ceased to attend to it. I looked back:
-the grass in its course lay bent as it had flowed, and here and
-there glimmered a small pool. Toward the city, there was no trace
-of it. Near where I stood, the flow of its fountain must at least
-have paused!
-
-Around the city were gardens, growing many sorts of vegetables,
-hardly one of which I recognised. I saw no water, no flowers, no
-sign of animals. The gardens came very near the walls, but were
-separated from them by huge heaps of gravel and refuse thrown from
-the battlements.
-
-I went up to the nearest gate, and found it but half-closed, nowise
-secured, and without guard or sentinel. To judge by its hinges, it
-could not be farther opened or shut closer. Passing through, I
-looked down a long ancient street. It was utterly silent, and with
-scarce an indication in it of life present. Had I come upon a dead
-city? I turned and went out again, toiled a long way over the
-dust-heaps, and crossed several roads, each leading up to a gate: I
-would not re-enter until some of the inhabitants should be stirring.
-
-What was I there for? what did I expect or hope to find? what did I
-mean to do?
-
-I must see, if but once more, the woman I had brought to life! I did
-not desire her society: she had waked in me frightful suspicions; and
-friendship, not to say love, was wildly impossible between us! But
-her presence had had a strange influence upon me, and in her presence
-I must resist, and at the same time analyse that influence! The
-seemingly inscrutable in her I would fain penetrate: to understand
-something of her mode of being would be to look into marvels such as
-imagination could never have suggested! In this I was too daring:
-a man must not, for knowledge, of his own will encounter temptation!
-On the other hand, I had reinstated an evil force about to perish,
-and was, to the extent of my opposing faculty, accountable for what
-mischief might ensue! I had learned that she was the enemy of
-children: the Little Ones might be in her danger! It was in the
-hope of finding out something of their history that I had left them;
-on that I had received a little light: I must have more; I must
-learn how to protect them!
-
-Hearing at length a little stir in the place, I walked through the
-next gate, and thence along a narrow street of tall houses to a
-little square, where I sat down on the base of a pillar with a
-hideous bat-like creature atop. Ere long, several of the inhabitants
-came sauntering past. I spoke to one: he gave me a rude stare and
-ruder word, and went on.
-
-I got up and went through one narrow street after another, gradually
-filling with idlers, and was not surprised to see no children. By
-and by, near one of the gates, I encountered a group of young men
-who reminded me not a little of the bad giants. They came about me
-staring, and presently began to push and hustle me, then to throw
-things at me. I bore it as well as I could, wishing not to provoke
-enmity where wanted to remain for a while. Oftener than once or
-twice I appealed to passers-by whom I fancied more benevolent-looking,
-but none would halt a moment to listen to me. I looked poor, and that
-was enough: to the citizens of Bulika, as to house-dogs, poverty was
-an offence! Deformity and sickness were taxed; and no legislation
-of their princess was more heartily approved of than what tended to
-make poverty subserve wealth.
-
-I took to my heels at last, and no one followed me beyond the gate.
-A lumbering fellow, however, who sat by it eating a hunch of bread,
-picked up a stone to throw after me, and happily, in his stupid
-eagerness, threw, not the stone but the bread. I took it, and he
-did not dare follow to reclaim it: beyond the walls they were cowards
-every one. I went off a few hundred yards, threw myself down, ate
-the bread, fell asleep, and slept soundly in the grass, where the
-hot sunlight renewed my strength.
-
-It was night when I woke. The moon looked down on me in friendly
-fashion, seeming to claim with me old acquaintance. She was very
-bright, and the same moon, I thought, that saw me through the terrors
-of my first night in that strange world. A cold wind blew from the
-gate, bringing with it an evil odour; but it did not chill me, for
-the sun had plenished me with warmth. I crept again into the city.
-There I found the few that were still in the open air crouched in
-corners to escape the shivering blast.
-
-I was walking slowly through the long narrow street, when, just
-before me, a huge white thing bounded across it, with a single flash
-in the moonlight, and disappeared. I turned down the next opening,
-eager to get sight of it again.
-
-It was a narrow lane, almost too narrow to pass through, but it led
-me into a wider street. The moment I entered the latter, I saw
-on the opposite side, in the shadow, the creature I had followed,
-itself following like a dog what I took for a man. Over his shoulder,
-every other moment, he glanced at the animal behind him, but neither
-spoke to it, nor attempted to drive it away. At a place where he
-had to cross a patch of moonlight, I saw that he cast no shadow,
-and was himself but a flat superficial shadow, of two dimensions.
-He was, nevertheless, an opaque shadow, for he not merely darkened
-any object on the other side of him, but rendered it, in fact,
-invisible. In the shadow he was blacker than the shadow; in the
-moonlight he looked like one who had drawn his shadow up about him,
-for not a suspicion of it moved beside or under him; while the
-gleaming animal, which followed so close at his heels as to seem
-the white shadow of his blackness, and which I now saw to be a
-leopardess, drew her own gliding shadow black over the ground by
-her side. When they passed together from the shadow into the
-moonlight, the Shadow deepened in blackness, the animal flashed
-into radiance. I was at the moment walking abreast of them on
-the opposite side, my bare feet sounding on the flat stones: the
-leopardess never turned head or twitched ear; the shadow seemed
-once to look at me, for I lost his profile, and saw for a second
-only a sharp upright line. That instant the wind found me and blew
-through me: I shuddered from head to foot, and my heart went from
-wall to wall of my bosom, like a pebble in a child's rattle.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII
-
-A WOMAN OF BULIKA
-
-I turned aside into an alley, and sought shelter in a small archway.
-In the mouth of it I stopped, and looked out at the moonlight which
-filled the alley. The same instant a woman came gliding in after
-me, turned, trembling, and looked out also. A few seconds passed;
-then a huge leopard, its white skin dappled with many blots, darted
-across the archway. The woman pressed close to me, and my heart
-filled with pity. I put my arm round her.
-
-"If the brute come here, I will lay hold of it," I said, "and you
-must run."
-
-"Thank you!" she murmured.
-
-"Have you ever seen it before?" I asked.
-
-"Several times," she answered, still trembling. "She is a pet of
-the princess's. You are a stranger, or you would know her!"
-
-"I am a stranger," I answered. "But is she, then, allowed to run
-loose?"
-
-"She is kept in a cage, her mouth muzzled, and her feet in gloves
-of crocodile leather. Chained she is too; but she gets out often,
-and sucks the blood of any child she can lay hold of. Happily there
-are not many mothers in Bulika!"
-
-Here she burst into tears.
-
-"I wish I were at home!" she sobbed. "The princess returned only
-last night, and there is the leopardess out already! How am I to
-get into the house? It is me she is after, I know! She will be
-lying at my own door, watching for me!--But I am a fool to talk to
-a stranger!"
-
-"All strangers are not bad!" I said. "The beast shall not touch
-you till she has done with me, and by that time you will be in. You
-are happy to have a house to go to! What a terrible wind it is!"
-
-"Take me home safe, and I will give you shelter from it," she
-rejoined. "But we must wait a little!"
-
-I asked her many questions. She told me the people never did
-anything except dig for precious stones in their cellars. They
-were rich, and had everything made for them in other towns.
-
-"Why?" I asked.
-
-"Because it is a disgrace to work," she answered. "Everybody in
-Bulika knows that!"
-
-I asked how they were rich if none of them earned money. She replied
-that their ancestors had saved for them, and they never spent. When
-they wanted money they sold a few of their gems.
-
-"But there must be some poor!" I said.
-
-"I suppose there must be, but we never think of such people. When
-one goes poor, we forget him. That is how we keep rich. We mean
-to be rich always."
-
-"But when you have dug up all your precious stones and sold them,
-you will have to spend your money, and one day you will have none
-left!"
-
-"We have so many, and there are so many still in the ground, that
-that day will never come," she replied.
-
-"Suppose a strange people were to fall upon you, and take everything
-you have!"
-
-"No strange people will dare; they are all horribly afraid of our
-princess. She it is who keeps us safe and free and rich!"
-
-Every now and then as she spoke, she would stop and look behind
-her.
-
-I asked why her people had such a hatred of strangers. She answered
-that the presence of a stranger defiled the city.
-
-"How is that?" I said.
-
-"Because we are more ancient and noble than any other nation.--
-Therefore," she added, "we always turn strangers out before night."
-
-"How, then, can you take me into your house?" I asked.
-
-"I will make an exception of you," she replied.
-
-"Is there no place in the city for the taking in of strangers?"
-
-"Such a place would be pulled down, and its owner burned. How is
-purity to be preserved except by keeping low people at a proper
-distance? Dignity is such a delicate thing!"
-
-She told me that their princess had reigned for thousands of years;
-that she had power over the air and the water as well as the earth--
-and, she believed, over the fire too; that she could do what she
-pleased, and was answerable to nobody.
-
-When at length she was willing to risk the attempt, we took our way
-through lanes and narrow passages, and reached her door without
-having met a single live creature. It was in a wider street, between
-two tall houses, at the top of a narrow, steep stair, up which she
-climbed slowly, and I followed. Ere we reached the top, however,
-she seemed to take fright, and darted up the rest of the steps: I
-arrived just in time to have the door closed in my face, and stood
-confounded on the landing, where was about length enough, between
-the opposite doors of the two houses, for a man to lie down.
-
-Weary, and not scrupling to defile Bulika with my presence, I took
-advantage of the shelter, poor as it was.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV
-
-THE WHITE LEOPARDESS
-
-At the foot of the stair lay the moonlit street, and I could hear
-the unwholesome, inhospitable wind blowing about below. But not a
-breath of it entered my retreat, and I was composing myself to rest,
-when suddenly my eyes opened, and there was the head of the shining
-creature I had seen following the Shadow, just rising above the
-uppermost step! The moment she caught sight of my eyes, she stopped
-and began to retire, tail foremost. I sprang up; whereupon, having
-no room to turn, she threw herself backward, head over tail, scrambled
-to her feet, and in a moment was down the stair and gone. I followed
-her to the bottom, and looked all up and down the street. Not seeing
-her, I went back to my hard couch.
-
-There were, then, two evil creatures prowling about the city, one
-with, and one without spots! I was not inclined to risk much for
-man or woman in Bulika, but the life of a child might well be worth
-such a poor one as mine, and I resolved to keep watch at that door
-the rest of the night.
-
-Presently I heard the latch move, slow, slow: I looked up, and
-seeing the door half-open, rose and slid softly in. Behind it
-stood, not the woman I had befriended, but the muffled woman of
-the desert. Without a word she led me a few steps to an empty
-stone-paved chamber, and pointed to a rug on the floor. I wrapped
-myself in it, and once more lay down. She shut the door of the room,
-and I heard the outer door open and close again. There was no light
-save what came from the moonlit air.
-
-As I lay sleepless, I began to hear a stifled moaning. It went on
-for a good while, and then came the cry of a child, followed by a
-terrible shriek. I sprang up and darted into the passage: from
-another door in it came the white leopardess with a new-born baby
-in her mouth, carrying it like a cub of her own. I threw myself
-upon her, and compelled her to drop the infant, which fell on the
-stone slabs with a piteous wail.
-
-At the cry appeared the muffled woman. She stepped over us, the
-beast and myself, where we lay struggling in the narrow passage,
-took up the child, and carried it away. Returning, she lifted me
-off the animal, opened the door, and pushed me gently out. At my
-heels followed the leopardess.
-
-"She too has failed me!" thought I; "--given me up to the beast to
-be settled with at her leisure! But we shall have a tussle for it!"
-
-I ran down the stair, fearing she would spring on my back, but she
-followed me quietly. At the foot I turned to lay hold of her, but
-she sprang over my head; and when again I turned to face her, she
-was crouching at my feet! I stooped and stroked her lovely white
-skin; she responded by licking my bare feet with her hard dry tongue.
-Then I patted and fondled her, a well of tenderness overflowing in
-my heart: she might be treacherous too, but if I turned from every
-show of love lest it should be feigned, how was I ever to find the
-real love which must be somewhere in every world?
-
-I stood up; she rose, and stood beside me.
-
-A bulky object fell with a heavy squelch in the middle of the street,
-a few yards from us. I ran to it, and found a pulpy mass, with just
-form enough left to show it the body of a woman. It must have been
-thrown from some neighbouring window! I looked around me: the
-Shadow was walking along the other side of the way, with the white
-leopardess again at his heel!
-
-I followed and gained upon them, urging in my heart for the leopardess
-that probably she was not a free agent. When I got near them,
-however, she turned and flew at me with such a hideous snarl, that
-instinctively I drew back: instantly she resumed her place behind
-the Shadow. Again I drew near; again she flew at me, her eyes
-flaming like live emeralds. Once more I made the experiment: she
-snapped at me like a dog, and bit me. My heart gave way, and I
-uttered a cry; whereupon the creature looked round with a glance that
-plainly meant--"Why WOULD you make me do it?"
-
-I turned away angry with myself: I had been losing my time ever
-since I entered the place! night as it was I would go straight to
-the palace! From the square I had seen it--high above the heart
-of the city, compassed with many defences, more a fortress than a
-palace!
-
-But I found its fortifications, like those of the city, much
-neglected, and partly ruinous. For centuries, clearly, they had
-been of no account! It had great and strong gates, with something
-like a drawbridge to them over a rocky chasm; but they stood open,
-and it was hard to believe that water had ever occupied the hollow
-before them. All was so still that sleep seemed to interpenetrate
-the structure, causing the very moonlight to look discordantly awake.
-I must either enter like a thief, or break a silence that rendered
-frightful the mere thought of a sound!
-
-Like an outcast dog I was walking about the walls, when I came to
-a little recess with a stone bench: I took refuge in it from the
-wind, lay down, and in spite of the cold fell fast asleep.
-
-I was wakened by something leaping upon me, and licking my face with
-the rough tongue of a feline animal. "It is the white leopardess!"
-I thought. "She is come to suck my blood!--and why should she not
-have it?--it would cost me more to defend than to yield it!" So I
-lay still, expecting a shoot of pain. But the pang did not arrive;
-a pleasant warmth instead began to diffuse itself through me.
-Stretched at my back, she lay as close to me as she could lie, the
-heat of her body slowly penetrating mine, and her breath, which had
-nothing of the wild beast in it, swathing my head and face in a
-genial atmosphere. A full conviction that her intention toward me
-was good, gained possession of me. I turned like a sleepy boy,
-threw my arm over her, and sank into profound unconsciousness.
-
-When I began to come to myself, I fancied I lay warm and soft in my
-own bed. "Is it possible I am at home?" I thought. The well-known
-scents of the garden seemed to come crowding in. I rubbed my eyes,
-and looked out: I lay on a bare stone, in the heart of a hateful
-city!
-
-I sprang from the bench. Had I indeed had a leopardess for my
-bedfellow, or had I but dreamed it? She had but just left me, for
-the warmth of her body was with me yet!
-
-I left the recess with a new hope, as strong as it was shapeless.
-One thing only was clear to me: I must find the princess! Surely
-I had some power with her, if not over her! Had I not saved her
-life, and had she not prolonged it at the expense of my vitality?
-The reflection gave me courage to encounter her, be she what she
-might.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV
-
-THE PRINCESS
-
-Making a circuit of the castle, I came again to the open gates,
-crossed the ravine-like moat, and found myself in a paved court,
-planted at regular intervals with towering trees like poplars. In
-the centre was one taller than the rest, whose branches, near the
-top, spread a little and gave it some resemblance to a palm. Between
-their great stems I got glimpses of the palace, which was of a style
-strange to me, but suggested Indian origin. It was long and low,
-with lofty towers at the corners, and one huge dome in the middle,
-rising from the roof to half the height of the towers. The main
-entrance was in the centre of the front--a low arch that seemed
-half an ellipse. No one was visible, the doors stood wide open,
-and I went unchallenged into a large hall, in the form of a longish
-ellipse. Toward one side stood a cage, in which couched, its head
-on its paws, a huge leopardess, chained by a steel collar, with
-its mouth muzzled and its paws muffled. It was white with dark
-oval spots, and lay staring out of wide-open eyes, with canoe-shaped
-pupils, and great green irids. It appeared to watch me, but not
-an eyeball, not a foot, not a whisker moved, and its tail stretched
-out behind it rigid as an iron bar. I could not tell whether it
-was a live thing or not.
-
->From this vestibule two low passages led; I took one of them, and
-found it branch into many, all narrow and irregular. At a spot
-where was scarce room for two to pass, a page ran against me. He
-started back in terror, but having scanned me, gathered impudence,
-puffed himself out, and asked my business.
-
-"To see the princess," I answered.
-
-"A likely thing!" he returned. "I have not seen her highness this
-morning myself!"
-
-I caught him by the back of the neck, shook him, and said, "Take me
-to her at once, or I will drag you with me till I find her. She
-shall know how her servants receive her visitors."
-
-He gave a look at me, and began to pull like a blind man's dog,
-leading me thus to a large kitchen, where were many servants, feebly
-busy, and hardly awake. I expected them to fall upon me and drive
-me out, but they stared instead, with wide eyes--not at me, but
-at something behind me, and grew more ghastly as they stared. I
-turned my head, and saw the white leopardess, regarding them in a
-way that might have feared stouter hearts.
-
-Presently, however, one of them, seeing, I suppose, that attack was
-not imminent, began to recover himself; I turned to him, and let the
-boy go.
-
-"Take me to the princess," I said.
-
-"She has not yet left her room, your lordship," he replied.
-
-"Let her know that I am here, waiting audience of her."
-
-"Will your lordship please to give me your name?"
-
-"Tell her that one who knows the white leech desires to see her."
-
-"She will kill me if I take such a message: I must not. I dare not."
-
-"You refuse?"
-
-He cast a glance at my attendant, and went.
-
-The others continued staring--too much afraid of her to take their
-eyes off her. I turned to the graceful creature, where she stood,
-her muzzle dropped to my heel, white as milk, a warm splendour in
-the gloomy place, and stooped and patted her. She looked up at me;
-the mere movement of her head was enough to scatter them in all
-directions. She rose on her hind legs, and put her paws on my
-shoulders; I threw my arms round her. She pricked her ears, broke
-from me, and was out of sight in a moment.
-
-The man I had sent to the princess entered.
-
-"Please to come this way, my lord," he said.
-
-My heart gave a throb, as if bracing itself to the encounter. I
-followed him through many passages, and was at last shown into a
-room so large and so dark that its walls were invisible. A single
-spot on the floor reflected a little light, but around that spot
-all was black. I looked up, and saw at a great height an oval
-aperture in the roof, on the periphery of which appeared the joints
-between blocks of black marble. The light on the floor showed
-close fitting slabs of the same material. I found afterward that
-the elliptical wall as well was of black marble, absorbing the
-little light that reached it. The roof was the long half of an
-ellipsoid, and the opening in it was over one of the foci of the
-ellipse of the floor. I fancied I caught sight of reddish lines,
-but when I would have examined them, they were gone.
-
-All at once, a radiant form stood in the centre of the darkness,
-flashing a splendour on every side. Over a robe of soft white, her
-hair streamed in a cataract, black as the marble on which it fell.
-Her eyes were a luminous blackness; her arms and feet like warm
-ivory. She greeted me with the innocent smile of a girl--and in
-face, figure, and motion seemed but now to have stepped over the
-threshold of womanhood. "Alas," thought I, "ill did I reckon my
-danger! Can this be the woman I rescued--she who struck me, scorned
-me, left me?" I stood gazing at her out of the darkness; she stood
-gazing into it, as if searching for me.
-
-She disappeared. "She will not acknowledge me!" I thought. But
-the next instant her eyes flashed out of the dark straight into
-mine. She had descried me and come to me!
-
-"You have found me at last!" she said, laying her hand on my
-shoulder. "I knew you would!"
-
-My frame quivered with conflicting consciousnesses, to analyse
-which I had no power. I was simultaneously attracted and repelled:
-each sensation seemed either.
-
-"You shiver!" she said. "This place is cold for you! Come."
-
-I stood silent: she had struck me dumb with beauty; she held me
-dumb with sweetness.
-
-Taking me by the hand, she drew me to the spot of light, and again
-flashed upon me. An instant she stood there.
-
-"You have grown brown since last I saw you," she said.
-
-"This is almost the first roof I have been under since you left me,"
-I replied.
-
-"Whose was the other?" she rejoined.
-
-"I do not know the woman's name."
-
-"I would gladly learn it! The instinct of hospitality is not strong
-in my people!"
-She took me again by the hand, and led me through the darkness many
-steps to a curtain of black. Beyond it was a white stair, up which
-she conducted me to a beautiful chamber.
-
-"How you must miss the hot flowing river!" she said. "But there
-is a bath in the corner with no white leeches in it! At the foot
-of your couch you will find a garment. When you come down, I shall
-be in the room to your left at the foot of the stair."
-
-I stood as she left me, accusing my presumption: how was I to treat
-this lovely woman as a thing of evil, who behaved to me like a
-sister?--Whence the marvellous change in her? She left me with
-a blow; she received me almost with an embrace! She had reviled
-me; she said she knew I would follow and find her! Did she know my
-doubts concerning her--how much I should want explained? COULD she
-explain all? Could I believe her if she did? As to her hospitality,
-I had surely earned and might accept that--at least until I came to
-a definite judgment concerning her!
-
-Could such beauty as I saw, and such wickedness as I suspected, exist
-in the same person? If they could, HOW was it possible? Unable
-to answer the former question, I must let the latter wait!
-
-Clear as crystal, the water in the great white bath sent a sparkling
-flash from the corner where it lay sunk in the marble floor, and
-seemed to invite me to its embrace. Except the hot stream, two
-draughts in the cottage of the veiled woman, and the pools in the
-track of the wounded leopardess, I had not seen water since leaving
-home: it looked a thing celestial. I plunged in.
-
-Immediately my brain was filled with an odour strange and delicate,
-which yet I did not altogether like. It made me doubt the princess
-afresh: had she medicated it? had she enchanted it? was she in any
-way working on me unlawfully? And how was there water in the palace,
-and not a drop in the city? I remembered the crushed paw of the
-leopardess, and sprang from the bath.
-
-What had I been bathing in? Again I saw the fleeing mother, again
-I heard the howl, again I saw the limping beast. But what matter
-whence it flowed? was not the water sweet? Was it not very water
-the pitcher-plant secreted from its heart, and stored for the weary
-traveller? Water came from heaven: what mattered the well where it
-gathered, or the spring whence it burst? But I did not re-enter the
-bath.
-
-I put on the robe of white wool, embroidered on the neck and hem,
-that lay ready for me, and went down the stair to the room whither
-my hostess had directed me. It was round, all of alabaster, and
-without a single window: the light came through everywhere, a soft,
-pearly shimmer rather than shine. Vague shadowy forms went flitting
-about over the walls and low dome, like loose rain-clouds over a
-grey-blue sky.
-
-The princess stood waiting me, in a robe embroidered with argentine
-rings and discs, rectangles and lozenges, close together--a silver
-mail. It fell unbroken from her neck and hid her feet, but its
-long open sleeves left her arms bare.
-
-In the room was a table of ivory, bearing cakes and fruit, an ivory
-jug of milk, a crystal jug of wine of a pale rose-colour, and a
-white loaf.
-
-"Here we do not kill to eat," she said; "but I think you will like
-what I can give you."
-
-I told her I could desire nothing better than what I saw. She
-seated herself on a couch by the table, and made me a sign to sit
-by her.
-
-She poured me out a bowlful of milk, and, handing me the loaf, begged
-me to break from it such a piece as I liked. Then she filled from
-the wine-jug two silver goblets of grotesquely graceful workmanship.
-
-"You have never drunk wine like this!" she said.
-
-I drank, and wondered: every flower of Hybla and Hymettus must have
-sent its ghost to swell the soul of that wine!
-
-"And now that you will be able to listen," she went on, "I must do
-what I can to make myself intelligible to you. Our natures, however,
-are so different, that this may not be easy. Men and women live
-but to die; we, that is such as I--we are but a few--live to live
-on. Old age is to you a horror; to me it is a dear desire: the older
-we grow, the nearer we are to our perfection. Your perfection is a
-poor thing, comes soon, and lasts but a little while; ours is a
-ceaseless ripening. I am not yet ripe, and have lived thousands of
-your years--how many, I never cared to note. The everlasting will
-not be measured.
-
-"Many lovers have sought me; I have loved none of them: they sought
-but to enslave me; they sought me but as the men of my city seek
-gems of price.--When you found me, I found a man! I put you to the
-test; you stood it; your love was genuine!--It was, however, far
-from ideal--far from such love as I would have. You loved me truly,
-but not with true love. Pity has, but is not love. What woman of
-any world would return love for pity? Such love as yours was then,
-is hateful to me. I knew that, if you saw me as I am, you would
-love me--like the rest of them--to have and to hold: I would none
-of that either! I would be otherwise loved! I would have a love
-that outlived hopelessness, outmeasured indifference, hate, scorn!
-Therefore did I put on cruelty, despite, ingratitude. When I left
-you, I had shown myself such as you could at least no longer follow
-from pity: I was no longer in need of you! But you must satisfy
-my desire or set me free--prove yourself priceless or worthless!
-To satisfy the hunger of my love, you must follow me, looking for
-nothing, not gratitude, not even pity in return!--follow and find
-me, and be content with merest presence, with scantest forbearance!--
-I, not you, have failed; I yield the contest."
-
-She looked at me tenderly, and hid her face in her hands. But I
-had caught a flash and a sparkle behind the tenderness, and did
-not believe her. She laid herself out to secure and enslave me;
-she only fascinated me!
-
-"Beautiful princess," I said, "let me understand how you came to
-be found in such evil plight."
-
-"There are things I cannot explain," she replied, "until you have
-become capable of understanding them--which can only be when love
-is grown perfect. There are many things so hidden from you that
-you cannot even wish to know them; but any question you can put, I
-can in some measure answer.
-
-"I had set out to visit a part of my dominions occupied by a savage
-dwarf-people, strong and fierce, enemies to law and order, opposed
-to every kind of progress--an evil race. I went alone, fearing
-nothing, unaware of the least necessity for precaution. I did not
-know that upon the hot stream beside which you found me, a certain
-woman, by no means so powerful as myself, not being immortal, had
-cast what you call a spell--which is merely the setting in motion of
-a force as natural as any other, but operating primarily in a region
-beyond the ken of the mortal who makes use of the force.
-
-"I set out on my journey, reached the stream, bounded across it,----"
-
-A shadow of embarrassment darkened her cheek: I understood it, but
-showed no sign. Checked for the merest moment, she went on:
-
-"--you know what a step it is in parts!--But in the very act, an
-indescribable cold invaded me. I recognised at once the nature of
-the assault, and knew it could affect me but temporarily. By sheer
-force of will I dragged myself to the wood--nor knew anything more
-until I saw you asleep, and the horrible worm at your neck. I crept
-out, dragged the monster from you, and laid my lips to the wound.
-You began to wake; I buried myself among the leaves."
-
-She rose, her eyes flashing as never human eyes flashed, and threw
-her arms high over her head.
-
-"What you have made me is yours!" she cried. "I will repay you as
-never yet did woman! My power, my beauty, my love are your own:
-take them."
-
-She dropt kneeling beside me, laid her arms across my knees, and
-looked up in my face.
-
-Then first I noted on her left hand a large clumsy glove. In my
-mind's eye I saw hair and claws under it, but I knew it was a hand
-shut hard--perhaps badly bruised. I glanced at the other: it was
-lovely as hand could be, and I felt that, if I did less than loathe
-her, I should love her. Not to dally with usurping emotions, I
-turned my eyes aside.
-
-She started to her feet. I sat motionless, looking down.
-
-"To me she may be true!" said my vanity. For a moment I was tempted
-to love a lie.
-
-An odour, rather than the gentlest of airy pulses, was fanning me.
-I glanced up. She stood erect before me, waving her lovely arms
-in seemingly mystic fashion.
-
-A frightful roar made my heart rebound against the walls of its
-cage. The alabaster trembled as if it would shake into shivers.
-The princess shuddered visibly.
-
-"My wine was too strong for you!" she said, in a quavering voice;
-"I ought not to have let you take a full draught! Go and sleep now,
-and when you wake ask me what you please.--I will go with you: come."
-
-As she preceded me up the stair,--
-
-"I do not wonder that roar startled you!" she said. "It startled
-me, I confess: for a moment I feared she had escaped. But that is
-impossible."
-
-The roar seemed to me, however--I could not tell why--to come from
-the WHITE leopardess, and to be meant for me, not the princess.
-
-With a smile she left me at the door of my room, but as she turned
-I read anxiety on her beautiful face.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI
-
-A BATTLE ROYAL
-
-I threw myself on the bed, and began to turn over in my mind the
-tale she had told me. She had forgotten herself, and, by a single
-incautious word, removed one perplexity as to the condition in which
-I found her in the forest! The leopardess BOUNDED over; the princess
-lay prostrate on the bank: the running stream had dissolved her
-self-enchantment! Her own account of the object of her journey
-revealed the danger of the Little Ones then imminent: I had saved
-the life of their one fearful enemy!
-
-I had but reached this conclusion when I fell asleep. The lovely
-wine may not have been quite innocent.
-
-When I opened my eyes, it was night. A lamp, suspended from the
-ceiling, cast a clear, although soft light through the chamber. A
-delicious languor infolded me. I seemed floating, far from land,
-upon the bosom of a twilight sea. Existence was in itself pleasure.
-I had no pain. Surely I was dying!
-
-No pain!--ah, what a shoot of mortal pain was that! what a sickening
-sting! It went right through my heart! Again! That was sharpness
-itself!--and so sickening! I could not move my hand to lay it on
-my heart; something kept it down!
-
-The pain was dying away, but my whole body seemed paralysed. Some
-evil thing was upon me!--something hateful! I would have struggled,
-but could not reach a struggle. My will agonised, but in vain, to
-assert itself. I desisted, and lay passive. Then I became aware
-of a soft hand on my face, pressing my head into the pillow, and
-of a heavy weight lying across me.
-
-I began to breathe more freely; the weight was gone from my chest;
-I opened my eyes.
-
-The princess was standing above me on the bed, looking out into
-the room, with the air of one who dreamed. Her great eyes were
-clear and calm. Her mouth wore a look of satisfied passion; she
-wiped from it a streak of red.
-
-She caught my gaze, bent down, and struck me on the eyes with the
-handkerchief in her hand: it was like drawing the edge of a knife
-across them, and for a moment or two I was blind.
-
-I heard a dull heavy sound, as of a large soft-footed animal
-alighting from a little jump. I opened my eyes, and saw the great
-swing of a long tail as it disappeared through the half-open doorway.
-I sprang after it.
-
-The creature had vanished quite. I shot down the stair, and into
-the hall of alabaster. The moon was high, and the place like the
-inside of a faint, sun-blanched moon. The princess was not there.
-I must find her: in her presence I might protect myself; out of it
-I could not! I was a tame animal for her to feed upon; a human
-fountain for a thirst demoniac! She showed me favour the more easily
-to use me! My waking eyes did not fear her, but they would close,
-and she would come! Not seeing her, I felt her everywhere, for she
-might be anywhere--might even now be waiting me in some secret cavern
-of sleep! Only with my eyes upon her could I feel safe from her!
-
-Outside the alabaster hall it was pitch-dark, and I had to grope my
-way along with hands and feet. At last I felt a curtain, put it
-aside, and entered the black hall. There I found a great silent
-assembly. How it was visible I neither saw nor could imagine, for
-the walls, the floor, the roof, were shrouded in what seemed an
-infinite blackness, blacker than the blackest of moonless, starless
-nights; yet my eyes could separate, although vaguely, not a few of
-the individuals in the mass interpenetrated and divided, as well as
-surrounded, by the darkness. It seemed as if my eyes would never
-come quite to themselves. I pressed their balls and looked and
-looked again, but what I saw would not grow distinct. Blackness
-mingled with form, silence and undefined motion possessed the wide
-space. All was a dim, confused dance, filled with recurrent glimpses
-of shapes not unknown to me. Now appeared a woman, with glorious
-eyes looking out of a skull; now an armed figure on a skeleton horse;
-now one now another of the hideous burrowing phantasms. I could
-trace no order and little relation in the mingling and crossing
-currents and eddies. If I seemed to catch the shape and rhythm of
-a dance, it was but to see it break, and confusion prevail. With
-the shifting colours of the seemingly more solid shapes, mingled a
-multitude of shadows, independent apparently of originals, each
-moving after its own free shadow-will. I looked everywhere for the
-princess, but throughout the wildly changing kaleidoscopic scene,
-could not see her nor discover indication of her presence. Where
-was she? What might she not be doing? No one took the least notice
-of me as I wandered hither and thither seeking her. At length
-losing hope, I turned away to look elsewhere. Finding the wall,
-and keeping to it with my hand, for even then I could not see it,
-I came, groping along, to a curtained opening into the vestibule.
-
-Dimly moonlighted, the cage of the leopardess was the arena of what
-seemed a desperate although silent struggle. Two vastly differing
-forms, human and bestial, with entangled confusion of mingling bodies
-and limbs, writhed and wrestled in closest embrace. It had lasted
-but an instant when I saw the leopardess out of the cage, walking
-quietly to the open door. As I hastened after her I threw a glance
-behind me: there was the leopardess in the cage, couching motionless
-as when I saw her first.
-
-The moon, half-way up the sky, was shining round and clear; the
-bodiless shadow I had seen the night before, was walking through the
-trees toward the gate; and after him went the leopardess, swinging
-her tail. I followed, a little way off, as silently as they, and
-neither of them once looked round. Through the open gate we went
-down to the city, lying quiet as the moonshine upon it. The face
-of the moon was very still, and its stillness looked like that of
-expectation.
-
-The Shadow took his way straight to the stair at the top of which
-I had lain the night before. Without a pause he went up, and the
-leopardess followed. I quickened my pace, but, a moment after,
-heard a cry of horror. Then came the fall of something soft and
-heavy between me and the stair, and at my feet lay a body,
-frightfully blackened and crushed, but still recognisable as that
-of the woman who had led me home and shut me out. As I stood
-petrified, the spotted leopardess came bounding down the stair with
-a baby in her mouth. I darted to seize her ere she could turn at
-the foot; but that instant, from behind me, the white leopardess,
-like a great bar of glowing silver, shot through the moonlight, and
-had her by the neck. She dropped the child; I caught it up, and
-stood to watch the battle between them.
-
-What a sight it was--now the one, now the other uppermost, both too
-intent for any noise beyond a low growl, a whimpered cry, or a snarl
-of hate--followed by a quicker scrambling of claws, as each, worrying
-and pushing and dragging, struggled for foothold on the pavement!
-The spotted leopardess was larger than the white, and I was anxious
-for my friend; but I soon saw that, though neither stronger nor
-more active, the white leopardess had the greater endurance. Not
-once did she lose her hold on the neck of the other. From the
-spotted throat at length issued a howl of agony, changing, by
-swift-crowded gradations, into the long-drawn CRESCENDO of a woman's
-uttermost wail. The white one relaxed her jaws; the spotted one
-drew herself away, and rose on her hind legs. Erect in the
-moonlight stood the princess, a confused rush of shadows careering
-over her whiteness--the spots of the leopard crowding, hurrying,
-fleeing to the refuge of her eyes, where merging they vanished.
-The last few, outsped and belated, mingled with the cloud of her
-streamy hair, leaving her radiant as the moon when a legion of
-little vapours has flown, wind-hunted, off her silvery disc--save
-that, adown the white column of her throat, a thread of blood still
-trickled from every wound of her adversary's terrible teeth. She
-turned away, took a few steps with the gait of a Hecate, fell,
-covered afresh with her spots, and fled at a long, stretching gallop.
-
-The white leopardess turned also, sprang upon me, pulled my arms
-asunder, caught the baby as it fell, and flew with it along the
-street toward the gate
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII
-
-THE SILENT FOUNTAIN
-
-I turned and followed the spotted leopardess, catching but one
-glimpse of her as she tore up the brow of the hill to the gate of
-the palace. When I reached the entrance-hall, the princess was
-just throwing the robe around her which she had left on the floor.
-The blood had ceased to flow from her wounds, and had dried in the
-wind of her flight.
-
-When she saw me, a flash of anger crossed her face, and she turned
-her head aside. Then, with an attempted smile, she looked at me,
-and said,
-
-"I have met with a small accident! Happening to hear that the
-cat-woman was again in the city, I went down to send her away. But
-she had one of her horrid creatures with her: it sprang upon me,
-and had its claws in my neck before I could strike it!"
-
-She gave a shiver, and I could not help pitying her, although I
-knew she lied, for her wounds were real, and her face reminded me
-of how she looked in the cave. My heart began to reproach me that
-I had let her fight unaided, and I suppose I looked the compassion
-I felt.
-
-"Child of folly!" she said, with another attempted smile, "--not
-crying, surely!--Wait for me here; I am going into the black hall
-for a moment. I want you to get me something for my scratches."
-
-But I followed her close. Out of my sight I feared her.
-
-The instant the princess entered, I heard a buzzing sound as of
-many low voices, and, one portion after another, the assembly began
-to be shiftingly illuminated, as by a ray that went travelling from
-spot to spot. Group after group would shine out for a space, then
-sink back into the general vagueness, while another part of the vast
-company would grow momently bright.
-
-Some of the actions going on when thus illuminated, were not unknown
-to me; I had been in them, or had looked on them, and so had the
-princess: present with every one of them I now saw her. The
-skull-headed dancers footed the grass in the forest-hall: there was
-the princess looking in at the door! The fight went on in the Evil
-Wood: there was the princess urging it! Yet I was close behind her
-all the time, she standing motionless, her head sunk on her bosom.
-The confused murmur continued, the confused commotion of colours
-and shapes; and still the ray went shifting and showing. It settled
-at last on the hollow in the heath, and there was the princess,
-walking up and down, and trying in vain to wrap the vapour around
-her! Then first I was startled at what I saw: the old librarian
-walked up to her, and stood for a moment regarding her; she fell;
-her limbs forsook her and fled; her body vanished.
-
-A wild shriek rang through the echoing place, and with the fall of
-her eidolon, the princess herself, till then standing like a statue
-in front of me, fell heavily, and lay still. I turned at once
-and went out: not again would I seek to restore her! As I stood
-trembling beside the cage, I knew that in the black ellipsoid I had
-been in the brain of the princess!--I saw the tail of the leopardess
-quiver once.
-
-While still endeavouring to compose myself, I heard the voice of
-the princess beside me.
-
-"Come now," she said; "I will show you what I want you to do for me."
-
-She led the way into the court. I followed in dazed compliance.
-
-The moon was near the zenith, and her present silver seemed brighter
-than the gold of the absent sun. She brought me through the trees
-to the tallest of them, the one in the centre. It was not quite
-like the rest, for its branches, drawing their ends together at the
-top, made a clump that looked from beneath like a fir-cone. The
-princess stood close under it, gazing up, and said, as if talking
-to herself,
-
-"On the summit of that tree grows a tiny blossom which would at once
-heal my scratches! I might be a dove for a moment and fetch it,
-but I see a little snake in the leaves whose bite would be worse to
-a dove than the bite of a tiger to me!--How I hate that cat-woman!"
-
-She turned to me quickly, saying with one of her sweetest smiles,
-
-"Can you climb?"
-
-The smile vanished with the brief question, and her face changed
-to a look of sadness and suffering. I ought to have left her to
-suffer, but the way she put her hand to her wounded neck went to
-my heart.
-
-I considered the tree. All the way up to the branches, were
-projections on the stem like the remnants on a palm of its fallen
-leaves.
-
-"I can climb that tree," I answered.
-
-"Not with bare feet!" she returned.
-
-In my haste to follow the leopardess disappearing, I had left my
-sandals in my room.
-
-"It is no matter," I said; "I have long gone barefoot!"
-
-Again I looked at the tree, and my eyes went wandering up the stem
-until my sight lost itself in the branches. The moon shone like
-silvery foam here and there on the rugged bole, and a little rush
-of wind went through the top with a murmurous sound as of water
-falling softly into water. I approached the tree to begin my ascent
-of it. The princess stopped me.
-
-"I cannot let you attempt it with your feet bare!" she insisted.
-"A fall from the top would kill you!"
-
-"So would a bite from the snake!" I answered--not believing, I
-confess, that there was any snake.
-
-"It would not hurt YOU!" she replied. "--Wait a moment."
-
-She tore from her garment the two wide borders that met in front,
-and kneeling on one knee, made me put first my left foot, then my
-right on the other, and bound them about with the thick embroidered
-strips.
-
-"You have left the ends hanging, princess!" I said.
-
-"I have nothing to cut them off with; but they are not long enough
-to get entangled," she replied.
-
-I turned to the tree, and began to climb.
-
-Now in Bulika the cold after sundown was not so great as in certain
-other parts of the country--especially about the sexton's cottage;
-yet when I had climbed a little way, I began to feel very cold, grew
-still colder as I ascended, and became coldest of all when I got
-among the branches. Then I shivered, and seemed to have lost my
-hands and feet.
-
-There was hardly any wind, and the branches did not sway in the
-least, yet, as I approached the summit, I became aware of a peculiar
-unsteadiness: every branch on which I placed foot or laid hold,
-seemed on the point of giving way. When my head rose above the
-branches near the top, and in the open moonlight I began to look
-about for the blossom, that instant I found myself drenched from
-head to foot. The next, as if plunged in a stormy water, I was
-flung about wildly, and felt myself sinking. Tossed up and down,
-tossed this way and tossed that way, rolled over and over, checked,
-rolled the other way and tossed up again, I was sinking lower and
-lower. Gasping and gurgling and choking, I fell at last upon a
-solid bottom.
-
-"I told you so!" croaked a voice in my ear.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII
-
-I AM SILENCED
-
-I rubbed the water out of my eyes, and saw the raven on the edge
-of a huge stone basin. With the cold light of the dawn reflected
-from his glossy plumage, he stood calmly looking down upon me. I lay
-on my back in water, above which, leaning on my elbows, I just lifted
-my face. I was in the basin of the large fountain constructed by my
-father in the middle of the lawn. High over me glimmered the thick,
-steel-shiny stalk, shooting, with a torrent uprush, a hundred feet
-into the air, to spread in a blossom of foam.
-
-Nettled at the coolness of the raven's remark,
-
-"You told me nothing!" I said.
-
-"I told you to do nothing any one you distrusted asked you!"
-
-"Tut! how was mortal to remember that?"
-
-"You will not forget the consequences of having forgotten it!"
-replied Mr. Raven, who stood leaning over the margin of the basin,
-and stretched his hand across to me.
-
-I took it, and was immediately beside him on the lawn, dripping
-and streaming.
-
-"You must change your clothes at once!" he said. "A wetting does
-not signify where you come from--though at present such an accident
-is unusual; here it has its inconveniences!"
-
-He was again a raven, walking, with something stately in his step,
-toward the house, the door of which stood open.
-
-"I have not much to change!" I laughed; for I had flung aside my
-robe to climb the tree.
-
-"It is a long time since I moulted a feather!" said the raven.
-
-In the house no one seemed awake. I went to my room, found a
-dressing-gown, and descended to the library.
-
-As I entered, the librarian came from the closet. I threw myself
-on a couch. Mr. Raven drew a chair to my side and sat down. For
-a minute or two neither spoke. I was the first to break the silence.
-
-"What does it all mean?" I said.
-
-"A good question!" he rejoined: "nobody knows what anything is; a
-man can learn only what a thing means! Whether he do, depends on
-the use he is making of it."
-
-"I have made no use of anything yet!"
-
-"Not much; but you know the fact, and that is something! Most
-people take more than a lifetime to learn that they have learned
-nothing, and done less! At least you have not been without the
-desire to be of use!"
-
-"I did want to do something for the children--the precious Little
-Ones, I mean."
-
-"I know you did--and started the wrong way!"
-
-"I did not know the right way."
-
-"That is true also--but you are to blame that you did not."
-
-"I am ready to believe whatever you tell me--as soon as I understand
-what it means."
-
-"Had you accepted our invitation, you would have known the right
-way. When a man will not act where he is, he must go far to find
-his work."
-
-"Indeed I have gone far, and got nowhere, for I have not found my
-work! I left the children to learn how to serve them, and have only
-learned the danger they are in."
-
-"When you were with them, you were where you could help them: you
-left your work to look for it! It takes a wise man to know when to
-go away; a fool may learn to go back at once!"
-
-"Do you mean, sir, I could have done something for the Little Ones
-by staying with them?"
-
-"Could you teach them anything by leaving them?"
-
-"No; but how could I teach them? I did not know how to begin.
-Besides, they were far ahead of me!"
-
-"That is true. But you were not a rod to measure them with!
-Certainly, if they knew what you know, not to say what you might
-have known, they would be ahead of you--out of sight ahead! but you
-saw they were not growing--or growing so slowly that they had not
-yet developed the idea of growing! they were even afraid of
-growing!--You had never seen children remain children!"
-
-"But surely I had no power to make them grow!"
-
-"You might have removed some of the hindrances to their growing!"
-
-"What are they? I do not know them. I did think perhaps it was
-the want of water!"
-
-"Of course it is! they have none to cry with!"
-
-"I would gladly have kept them from requiring any for that purpose!"
-
-"No doubt you would--the aim of all stupid philanthropists! Why,
-Mr. Vane, but for the weeping in it, your world would never have
-become worth saving! You confess you thought it might be water they
-wanted: why did not you dig them a well or two?"
-
-"That never entered my mind!"
-
-"Not when the sounds of the waters under the earth entered your
-ears?"
-
-"I believe it did once. But I was afraid of the giants for them.
-That was what made me bear so much from the brutes myself!"
-
-"Indeed you almost taught the noble little creatures to be afraid
-of the stupid Bags! While they fed and comforted and worshipped
-you, all the time you submitted to be the slave of bestial men!
-You gave the darlings a seeming coward for their hero! A worse
-wrong you could hardly have done them. They gave you their hearts;
-you owed them your soul!--You might by this time have made the Bags
-hewers of wood and drawers of water to the Little Ones!"
-
-"I fear what you say is true, Mr. Raven! But indeed I was afraid
-that more knowledge might prove an injury to them--render them less
-innocent, less lovely."
-
-"They had given you no reason to harbour such a fear!"
-
-"Is not a little knowledge a dangerous thing?"
-
-"That is one of the pet falsehoods of your world! Is man's greatest
-knowledge more than a little? or is it therefore dangerous? The
-fancy that knowledge is in itself a great thing, would make any
-degree of knowledge more dangerous than any amount of ignorance.
-To know all things would not be greatness."
-
-"At least it was for love of them, not from cowardice that I served
-the giants!"
-
-"Granted. But you ought to have served the Little Ones, not the
-giants! You ought to have given the Little Ones water; then they
-would soon have taught the giants their true position. In the
-meantime you could yourself have made the giants cut down two-thirds
-of their coarse fruit-trees to give room to the little delicate
-ones! You lost your chance with the Lovers, Mr. Vane! You
-speculated about them instead of helping them!"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX
-
-THE PERSIAN CAT
-
-I sat in silence and shame. What he said was true: I had not been
-a wise neighbour to the Little Ones!
-
-Mr. Raven resumed:
-
-"You wronged at the same time the stupid creatures themselves. For
-them slavery would have been progress. To them a few such lessons
-as you could have given them with a stick from one of their own
-trees, would have been invaluable."
-
-"I did not know they were cowards!"
-
-"What difference does that make? The man who grounds his action on
-another's cowardice, is essentially a coward himself.--I fear worse
-will come of it! By this time the Little Ones might have been able
-to protect themselves from the princess, not to say the giants--they
-were always fit enough for that; as it was they laughed at them!
-but now, through your relations with her,----"
-
-"I hate her!" I cried.
-
-"Did you let her know you hated her?"
-
-Again I was silent.
-
-"Not even to her have you been faithful!--But hush! we were followed
-from the fountain, I fear!"
-
-"No living creature did I see!--except a disreputable-looking cat
-that bolted into the shrubbery."
-
-"It was a magnificent Persian--so wet and draggled, though, as to
-look what she was--worse than disreputable!"
-
-"What do you mean, Mr. Raven?" I cried, a fresh horror taking me
-by the throat. "--There was a beautiful blue Persian about the
-house, but she fled at the very sound of water!--Could she have
-been after the goldfish?"
-
-"We shall see!" returned the librarian. "I know a little about
-cats of several sorts, and there is that in the room which will
-unmask this one, or I am mistaken in her."
-
-He rose, went to the door of the closet, brought from it the
-mutilated volume, and sat down again beside me. I stared at the
-book in his hand: it was a whole book, entire and sound!
-
-"Where was the other half of it?" I gasped.
-
-"Sticking through into my library," he answered.
-
-I held my peace. A single question more would have been a plunge
-into a bottomless sea, and there might be no time!
-
-"Listen," he said: "I am going to read a stanza or two. There is
-one present who, I imagine, will hardly enjoy the reading!"
-
-He opened the vellum cover, and turned a leaf or two. The parchment
-was discoloured with age, and one leaf showed a dark stain over
-two-thirds of it. He slowly turned this also, and seemed looking
-for a certain passage in what appeared a continuous poem. Somewhere
-about the middle of the book he began to read.
-
-But what follows represents--not what he read, only the impression
-it made upon me. The poem seemed in a language I had never before
-heard, which yet I understood perfectly, although I could not write
-the words, or give their meaning save in poor approximation. These
-fragments, then, are the shapes which those he read have finally
-taken in passing again through my brain:--
-
- "But if I found a man that could believe
- In what he saw not, felt not, and yet knew,
- From him I should take substance, and receive
- Firmness and form relate to touch and view;
- Then should I clothe me in the likeness true
- Of that idea where his soul did cleave!"
-
-He turned a leaf and read again:--
-
- "In me was every woman. I had power
- Over the soul of every living man,
- Such as no woman ever had in dower--
- Could what no woman ever could, or can;
- All women, I, the woman, still outran,
- Outsoared, outsank, outreigned, in hall or bower.
-
- "For I, though me he neither saw nor heard,
- Nor with his hand could touch finger of mine,
- Although not once my breath had ever stirred
- A hair of him, could trammel brain and spine
- With rooted bonds which Death could not untwine--
- Or life, though hope were evermore deferred."
-
-Again he paused, again turned a leaf, and again began:--
-
- "For by his side I lay, a bodiless thing;
- I breathed not, saw not, felt not, only thought,
- And made him love me--with a hungering
- After he knew not what--if it was aught
- Or but a nameless something that was wrought
- By him out of himself; for I did sing
-
- "A song that had no sound into his soul;
- I lay a heartless thing against his heart,
- Giving him nothing where he gave his whole
- Being to clothe me human, every part:
- That I at last into his sense might dart,
- Thus first into his living mind I stole.
-
- "Ah, who was ever conquering Love but I!
- Who else did ever throne in heart of man!
- To visible being, with a gladsome cry
- Waking, life's tremor through me throbbing ran!"
-
-A strange, repulsive feline wail arose somewhere in the room. I
-started up on my elbow and stared about me, but could see nothing.
-
-Mr. Raven turned several leaves, and went on:--
-
- "Sudden I woke, nor knew the ghastly fear
- That held me--not like serpent coiled about,
- But like a vapour moist, corrupt, and drear,
- Filling heart, soul, and breast and brain throughout;
- My being lay motionless in sickening doubt,
- Nor dared to ask how came the horror here.
-
- "My past entire I knew, but not my now;
- I understood nor what I was, nor where;
- I knew what I had been: still on my brow
- I felt the touch of what no more was there!
- I was a fainting, dead, yet live Despair;
- A life that flouted life with mop and mow!
-
- "That I was a queen I knew right well,
- And sometimes wore a splendour on my head
- Whose flashing even dead darkness could not quell--
- The like on neck and arms and girdle-stead;
- And men declared a light my closed eyes shed
- That killed the diamond in its silver cell."
-
-Again I heard the ugly cry of feline pain. Again I looked, but saw
-neither shape nor motion. Mr. Raven seemed to listen a moment, but
-again turned several pages, and resumed:--
-
- "Hideously wet, my hair of golden hue
- Fouled my fair hands: to have it swiftly shorn
- I had given my rubies, all for me dug new--
- No eyes had seen, and such no waist had worn!
- For a draught of water from a drinking horn,
- For one blue breath, I had given my sapphires blue!
-
- "Nay, I had given my opals for a smock,
- A peasant-maiden's garment, coarse and clean:
- My shroud was rotting! Once I heard a cock
- Lustily crow upon the hillock green
- Over my coffin. Dulled by space between,
- Came back an answer like a ghostly mock."
-
-Once more arose the bestial wail.
-
-"I thought some foul thing was in the room!" said the librarian,
-casting a glance around him; but instantly he turned a leaf or two,
-and again read:--
-
- "For I had bathed in milk and honey-dew,
- In rain from roses shook, that ne'er touched earth,
- And ointed me with nard of amber hue;
- Never had spot me spotted from my birth,
- Or mole, or scar of hurt, or fret of dearth;
- Never one hair superfluous on me grew.
-
- "Fleeing cold whiteness, I would sit alone--
- Not in the sun--I feared his bronzing light,
- But in his radiance back around me thrown
- By fulgent mirrors tempering his might;
- Thus bathing in a moon-bath not too bright,
- My skin I tinted slow to ivory tone.
-
- "But now, all round was dark, dark all within!
- My eyes not even gave out a phantom-flash;
- My fingers sank in pulp through pulpy skin;
- My body lay death-weltered in a mash
- Of slimy horrors----"
-
-With a fearsome yell, her clammy fur staring in clumps, her tail
-thick as a cable, her eyes flashing green as a chrysoprase, her
-distended claws entangling themselves so that she floundered across
-the carpet, a huge white cat rushed from somewhere, and made for
-the chimney. Quick as thought the librarian threw the manuscript
-between her and the hearth. She crouched instantly, her eyes fixed
-on the book. But his voice went on as if still he read, and his
-eyes seemed also fixed on the book:--
-
- "Ah, the two worlds! so strangely are they one,
- And yet so measurelessly wide apart!
- Oh, had I lived the bodiless alone
- And from defiling sense held safe my heart,
- Then had I scaped the canker and the smart,
- Scaped life-in-death, scaped misery's endless moan!"
-
-At these words such a howling, such a prolonged yell of agony burst
-from the cat, that we both stopped our ears. When it ceased,
-Mr. Raven walked to the fire-place, took up the book, and, standing
-between the creature and the chimney, pointed his finger at her for
-a moment. She lay perfectly still. He took a half-burnt stick
-from the hearth, drew with it some sign on the floor, put the
-manuscript back in its place, with a look that seemed to say, "Now
-we have her, I think!" and, returning to the cat, stood over her
-and said, in a still, solemn voice:--
-
-"Lilith, when you came here on the way to your evil will, you
-little thought into whose hands you were delivering yourself!--
-Mr. Vane, when God created me,--not out of Nothing, as say the
-unwise, but out of His own endless glory--He brought me an angelic
-splendour to be my wife: there she lies! For her first thought
-was POWER; she counted it slavery to be one with me, and bear
-children for Him who gave her being. One child, indeed, she bore;
-then, puffed with the fancy that she had created her, would have
-me fall down and worship her! Finding, however, that I would but
-love and honour, never obey and worship her, she poured out her
-blood to escape me, fled to the army of the aliens, and soon had
-so ensnared the heart of the great Shadow, that he became her slave,
-wrought her will, and made her queen of Hell. How it is with her
-now, she best knows, but I know also. The one child of her body
-she fears and hates, and would kill, asserting a right, which is a
-lie, over what God sent through her into His new world. Of creating,
-she knows no more than the crystal that takes its allotted shape,
-or the worm that makes two worms when it is cloven asunder. Vilest
-of God's creatures, she lives by the blood and lives and souls of
-men. She consumes and slays, but is powerless to destroy as to
-create."
-
-The animal lay motionless, its beryl eyes fixed flaming on the man:
-his eyes on hers held them fixed that they could not move from his.
-
-"Then God gave me another wife--not an angel but a woman--who is to
-this as light is to darkness."
-
-The cat gave a horrible screech, and began to grow bigger. She
-went on growing and growing. At last the spotted leopardess uttered
-a roar that made the house tremble. I sprang to my feet. I do not
-think Mr. Raven started even with his eyelids.
-
-"It is but her jealousy that speaks," he said, "jealousy self-kindled,
-foiled and fruitless; for here I am, her master now whom she, would
-not have for her husband! while my beautiful Eve yet lives, hoping
-immortally! Her hated daughter lives also, but beyond her evil ken,
-one day to be what she counts her destruction--for even Lilith
-shall be saved by her childbearing. Meanwhile she exults that my
-human wife plunged herself and me in despair, and has borne me a
-countless race of miserables; but my Eve repented, and is now
-beautiful as never was woman or angel, while her groaning, travailing
-world is the nursery of our Father's children. I too have repented,
-and am blessed.--Thou, Lilith, hast not yet repented; but thou
-must.--Tell me, is the great Shadow beautiful? Knowest thou how
-long thou wilt thyself remain beautiful?--Answer me, if thou knowest."
-
-Then at last I understood that Mr. Raven was indeed Adam, the old
-and the new man; and that his wife, ministering in the house of the
-dead, was Eve, the mother of us all, the lady of the New Jerusalem.
-
-The leopardess reared; the flickering and fleeing of her spots began;
-the princess at length stood radiant in her perfect shape.
-
-"I AM beautiful--and immortal!" she said--and she looked the goddess
-she would be.
-
-"As a bush that burns, and is consumed," answered he who had been
-her husband. "--What is that under thy right hand?"
-
-For her arm lay across her bosom, and her hand was pressed to her
-side.
-
-A swift pang contorted her beautiful face, and passed.
-
-"It is but a leopard-spot that lingers! it will quickly follow
-those I have dismissed," she answered.
-
-"Thou art beautiful because God created thee, but thou art the slave
-of sin: take thy hand from thy side."
-
-Her hand sank away, and as it dropt she looked him in the eyes with
-a quailing fierceness that had in it no surrender.
-
-He gazed a moment at the spot.
-
-"It is not on the leopard; it is in the woman!" he said. "Nor will
-it leave thee until it hath eaten to thy heart, and thy beauty
-hath flowed from thee through the open wound!"
-
-She gave a glance downward, and shivered.
-
-"Lilith," said Adam, and his tone had changed to a tender beseeching,
-"hear me, and repent, and He who made thee will cleanse thee!"
-
-Her hand returned quivering to her side. Her face grew dark. She
-gave the cry of one from whom hope is vanishing. The cry passed
-into a howl. She lay writhing on the floor, a leopardess covered
-with spots.
-
-"The evil thou meditatest," Adam resumed, "thou shalt never compass,
-Lilith, for Good and not Evil is the Universe. The battle between
-them may last for countless ages, but it must end: how will it fare
-with thee when Time hath vanished in the dawn of the eternal morn?
-Repent, I beseech thee; repent, and be again an angel of God!"
-
-She rose, she stood upright, a woman once more, and said,
-
-"I will not repent. I will drink the blood of thy child."
-My eyes were fastened on the princess; but when Adam spoke, I turned
-to him: he stood towering above her; the form of his visage was
-altered, and his voice was terrible.
-
-"Down!" he cried; "or by the power given me I will melt thy very
-bones."
-
-She flung herself on the floor, dwindled and dwindled, and was again
-a gray cat. Adam caught her up by the skin of her neck, bore her
-to the closet, and threw her in. He described a strange figure on
-the threshold, and closing the door, locked it.
-
-Then he returned to my side the old librarian, looking sad and worn,
-and furtively wiping tears from his eyes.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX
-
-ADAM EXPLAINS
-
-"We must be on our guard," he said, "or she will again outwit us.
-She would befool the very elect!"
-
-"How are we to be on our guard?" I asked.
-
-"Every way," he answered. "She fears, therefore hates her child, and
-is in this house on her way to destroy her. The birth of children
-is in her eyes the death of their parents, and every new generation
-the enemy of the last. Her daughter appears to her an open channel
-through which her immortality--which yet she counts self-inherent--is
-flowing fast away: to fill it up, almost from her birth she has
-pursued her with an utter enmity. But the result of her machinations
-hitherto is, that in the region she claims as her own, has appeared
-a colony of children, to which that daughter is heart and head and
-sheltering wings. My Eve longed after the child, and would have
-been to her as a mother to her first-born, but we were then unfit
-to train her: she was carried into the wilderness, and for ages
-we knew nothing of her fate. But she was divinely fostered, and
-had young angels for her playmates; nor did she ever know care until
-she found a baby in the wood, and the mother-heart in her awoke.
-One by one she has found many children since, and that heart is not
-yet full. Her family is her absorbing charge, and never children
-were better mothered. Her authority over them is without appeal,
-but it is unknown to herself, and never comes to the surface except
-in watchfulness and service. She has forgotten the time when she
-lived without them, and thinks she came herself from the wood, the
-first of the family.
-
-"You have saved the life of her and their enemy; therefore your life
-belongs to her and them. The princess was on her way to destroy
-them, but as she crossed that stream, vengeance overtook her, and
-she would have died had you not come to her aid. You did; and ere
-now she would have been raging among the Little Ones, had she dared
-again cross the stream. But there was yet a way to the blessed
-little colony through the world of the three dimensions; only, from
-that, by the slaying of her former body, she had excluded herself,
-and except in personal contact with one belonging to it, could not
-re-enter it. You provided the opportunity: never, in all her long
-years, had she had one before. Her hand, with lightest touch, was
-on one or other of your muffled feet, every step as you climbed. In
-that little chamber, she is now watching to leave it as soon as ever
-she may."
-
-"She cannot know anything about the door!--she cannot at least know
-how to open it!" I said; but my heart was not so confident as my
-words.
-
-"Hush, hush!" whispered the librarian, with uplifted hand; "she can
-hear through anything!--You must go at once, and make your way to
-my wife's cottage. I will remain to keep guard over her."
-
-"Let me go to the Little Ones!" I cried.
-
-"Beware of that, Mr. Vane. Go to my wife, and do as she tells you."
-
-His advice did not recommend itself: why haste to encounter
-measureless delay? If not to protect the children, why go at all?
-Alas, even now I believed him only enough to ask him questions,
-not to obey him!
-
-"Tell me first, Mr. Raven," I said, "why, of all places, you have
-shut her up there! The night I ran from your house, it was
-immediately into that closet!"
-
-"The closet is no nearer our cottage, and no farther from it, than
-any or every other place."
-
-"But," I returned, hard to persuade where I could not understand,
-"how is it then that, when you please, you take from that same door
-a whole book where I saw and felt only a part of one? The other
-part, you have just told me, stuck through into your library: when
-you put it again on the shelf, will it not again stick through into
-that? Must not then the two places, in which parts of the same
-volume can at the same moment exist, lie close together? Or can
-one part of the book be in space, or SOMEWHERE, and the other out
-of space, or NOWHERE?"
-
-"I am sorry I cannot explain the thing to you," he answered; "but
-there is no provision in you for understanding it. Not merely,
-therefore, is the phenomenon inexplicable to you, but the very nature
-of it is inapprehensible by you. Indeed I but partially apprehend
-it myself. At the same time you are constantly experiencing things
-which you not only do not, but cannot understand. You think you
-understand them, but your understanding of them is only your being
-used to them, and therefore not surprised at them. You accept them,
-not because you understand them, but because you must accept them:
-they are there, and have unavoidable relations with you! The fact is,
-no man understands anything; when he knows he does not understand,
-that is his first tottering step--not toward understanding, but
-toward the capability of one day understanding. To such things as
-these you are not used, therefore you do not fancy you understand
-them. Neither I nor any man can here help you to understand; but
-I may, perhaps, help you a little to believe!"
-
-He went to the door of the closet, gave a low whistle, and stood
-listening. A moment after, I heard, or seemed to hear, a soft whir
-of wings, and, looking up, saw a white dove perch for an instant on
-the top of the shelves over the portrait, thence drop to Mr. Raven's
-shoulder, and lay her head against his cheek. Only by the motions
-of their two heads could I tell that they were talking together;
-I heard nothing. Neither had I moved my eyes from them, when
-suddenly she was not there, and Mr. Raven came back to his seat.
-
-"Why did you whistle?" I asked. "Surely sound here is not sound
-there!"
-
-"You are right," he answered. "I whistled that you might know I
-called her. Not the whistle, but what the whistle meant reached
-her.--There is not a minute to lose: you must go!"
-
-"I will at once!" I replied, and moved for the door.
-
-"You will sleep to-night at my hostelry!" he said--not as a question,
-but in a tone of mild authority.
-
-"My heart is with the children," I replied. "But if you insist----"
-
-"I do insist. You can otherwise effect nothing.--I will go with
-you as far as the mirror, and see you off."
-
-He rose. There came a sudden shock in the closet. Apparently the
-leopardess had flung herself against the heavy door. I looked at
-my companion.
-
-"Come; come!" he said.
-
-Ere we reached the door of the library, a howling yell came after
-us, mingled with the noise of claws that scored at the hard oak.
-I hesitated, and half turned.
-
-"To think of her lying there alone," I murmured, "--with that
-terrible wound!"
-
-"Nothing will ever close that wound," he answered, with a sigh.
-"It must eat into her heart! Annihilation itself is no death to
-evil. Only good where evil was, is evil dead. An evil thing must
-live with its evil until it chooses to be good. That alone is the
-slaying of evil."
-
-I held my peace until a sound I did not understand overtook us.
-
-"If she should break loose!" I cried.
-
-"Make haste!" he rejoined. "I shall hurry down the moment you are
-gone, and I have disarranged the mirrors."
-
-We ran, and reached the wooden chamber breathless. Mr. Raven seized
-the chains and adjusted the hood. Then he set the mirrors in their
-proper relation, and came beside me in front of the standing one.
-Already I saw the mountain range emerging from the mist.
-
-Between us, wedging us asunder, darted, with the yell of a demon,
-the huge bulk of the spotted leopardess. She leaped through the
-mirror as through an open window, and settled at once into a low,
-even, swift gallop.
-
-I cast a look of dismay at my companion, and sprang through to follow
-her. He came after me leisurely.
-
-"You need not run," he called; "you cannot overtake her. This is
-our way."
-
-As he spoke he turned in the opposite direction.
-
-"She has more magic at her finger-tips than I care to know!" he
-added quietly.
-
-"We must do what we can!" I said, and ran on, but sickening as I
-saw her dwindle in the distance, stopped, and went back to him.
-
-"Doubtless we must," he answered. "But my wife has warned Mara,
-and she will do her part; you must sleep first: you have given me
-your word!"
-
-"Nor do I mean to break it. But surely sleep is not the first thing!
-Surely, surely, action takes precedence of repose!"
-
-"A man can do nothing he is not fit to do.--See! did I not tell
-you Mara would do her part?"
-
-I looked whither he pointed, and saw a white spot moving at an acute
-angle with the line taken by the leopardess.
-
-"There she is!" he cried. "The spotted leopardess is strong, but
-the white is stronger!"
-
-"I have seen them fight: the combat did not appear decisive as to
-that."
-
-"How should such eyes tell which have never slept? The princess did
-not confess herself beaten--that she never does--but she fled! When
-she confesses her last hope gone, that it is indeed hard to kick
-against the goad, then will her day begin to dawn! Come; come! He
-who cannot act must make haste to sleep!"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXI
-
-THE SEXTON'S OLD HORSE
-
-I stood and watched the last gleam of the white leopardess melt away,
-then turned to follow my guide--but reluctantly. What had I to do
-with sleep? Surely reason was the same in every world, and what
-reason could there be in going to sleep with the dead, when the hour
-was calling the live man? Besides, no one would wake me, and how
-could I be certain of waking early--of waking at all?--the sleepers
-in that house let morning glide into noon, and noon into night, nor
-ever stirred! I murmured, but followed, for I knew not what else
-to do.
-
-The librarian walked on in silence, and I walked silent as he. Time
-and space glided past us. The sun set; it began to grow dark, and
-I felt in the air the spreading cold of the chamber of death. My
-heart sank lower and lower. I began to lose sight of the lean,
-long-coated figure, and at length could no more hear his swishing
-stride through the heather. But then I heard instead the
-slow-flapping wings of the raven; and, at intervals, now a firefly,
-now a gleaming butterfly rose into the rayless air.
-
-By and by the moon appeared, slow crossing the far horizon.
-
-"You are tired, are you not, Mr. Vane?" said the raven, alighting
-on a stone. "You must make acquaintance with the horse that will
-carry you in the morning!"
-
-He gave a strange whistle through his long black beak. A spot
-appeared on the face of the half-risen moon. To my ears came
-presently the drumming of swift, soft-galloping hoofs, and in a
-minute or two, out of the very disc of the moon, low-thundered the
-terrible horse. His mane flowed away behind him like the crest of
-a wind-fighting wave, torn seaward in hoary spray, and the whisk
-of his tail kept blinding the eye of the moon. Nineteen hands he
-seemed, huge of bone, tight of skin, hard of muscle--a steed the
-holy Death himself might choose on which to ride abroad and slay!
-The moon seemed to regard him with awe; in her scary light he looked
-a very skeleton, loosely roped together. Terrifically large, he
-moved with the lightness of a winged insect. As he drew near, his
-speed slackened, and his mane and tail drifted about him settling.
-
-Now I was not merely a lover of horses, but I loved every horse I
-saw. I had never spent money except upon horses, and had never
-sold a horse. The sight of this mighty one, terrible to look at,
-woke in me longing to possess him. It was pure greed, nay, rank
-covetousness, an evil thing in all the worlds. I do not mean that
-I could have stolen him, but that, regardless of his proper place,
-I would have bought him if I could. I laid my hands on him, and
-stroked the protuberant bones that humped a hide smooth and thin,
-and shiny as satin--so shiny that the very shape of the moon was
-reflected in it; I fondled his sharp-pointed ears, whispered words
-in them, and breathed into his red nostrils the breath of a man's
-life. He in return breathed into mine the breath of a horse's life,
-and we loved one another. What eyes he had! Blue-filmy like the
-eyes of the dead, behind each was a glowing coal! The raven, with
-wings half extended, looked on pleased at my love-making to his
-magnificent horse.
-
-"That is well! be friends with him," he said: "he will carry you
-all the better to-morrow!--Now we must hurry home!"
-
-My desire to ride the horse had grown passionate.
-
-"May I not mount him at once, Mr. Raven?" I cried.
-
-"By all means!" he answered. "Mount, and ride him home."
-
-The horse bent his head over my shoulder lovingly. I twisted my
-hands in his mane and scrambled onto his back, not without aid from
-certain protuberant bones.
-
-"He would outspeed any leopard in creation!" I cried.
-
-"Not that way at night," answered the raven; "the road is difficult.--
-But come; loss now will be gain then! To wait is harder than to
-run, and its meed is the fuller. Go on, my son--straight to the
-cottage. I shall be there as soon as you. It will rejoice my
-wife's heart to see son of hers on that horse!"
-
-I sat silent. The horse stood like a block of marble.
-
-"Why do you linger?" asked the raven.
-
-"I long so much to ride after the leopardess," I answered, "that I
-can scarce restrain myself!"
-
-"You have promised!"
-
-"My debt to the Little Ones appears, I confess, a greater thing than
-my bond to you."
-
-"Yield to the temptation and you will bring mischief upon them--and
-on yourself also."
-
-"What matters it for me? I love them; and love works no evil. I
-will go."
-
-But the truth was, I forgot the children, infatuate with the horse.
-
-Eyes flashed through the darkness, and I knew that Adam stood in his
-own shape beside me. I knew also by his voice that he repressed an
-indignation almost too strong for him.
-
-"Mr. Vane," he said, "do you not know why you have not yet done
-anything worth doing?"
-
-"Because I have been a fool," I answered.
-
-"Wherein?"
-
-"In everything."
-
-"Which do you count your most indiscreet action?"
-
-"Bringing the princess to life: I ought to have left her to her
-just fate."
-
-"Nay, now you talk foolishly! You could not have done otherwise
-than you did, not knowing she was evil!--But you never brought any
-one to life! How could you, yourself dead?"
-
-"I dead?" I cried.
-
-"Yes," he answered; "and you will be dead, so long as you refuse to
-die."
-
-"Back to the old riddling!" I returned scornfully.
-
-"Be persuaded, and go home with me," he continued gently. "The
-most--nearly the only foolish thing you ever did, was to run from
-our dead."
-
-I pressed the horse's ribs, and he was off like a sudden wind. I
-gave him a pat on the side of the neck, and he went about in a
-sharp-driven curve, "close to the ground, like a cat when scratchingly
-she wheels about after a mouse," leaning sideways till his mane
-swept the tops of the heather.
-
-Through the dark I heard the wings of the raven. Five quick flaps
-I heard, and he perched on the horse's head. The horse checked
-himself instantly, ploughing up the ground with his feet.
-
-"Mr. Vane," croaked the raven, "think what you are doing! Twice
-already has evil befallen you--once from fear, and once from
-heedlessness: breach of word is far worse; it is a crime."
-
-"The Little Ones are in frightful peril, and I brought it upon them!"
-I cried. "--But indeed I will not break my word to you. I will
-return, and spend in your house what nights--what days--what years
-you please."
-
-"I tell you once more you will do them other than good if you go
-to-night," he insisted.
-
-But a false sense of power, a sense which had no root and was merely
-vibrated into me from the strength of the horse, had, alas, rendered
-me too stupid to listen to anything he said!
-
-"Would you take from me my last chance of reparation?" I cried.
-"This time there shall be no shirking! It is my duty, and I will
-go--if I perish for it!"
-
-"Go, then, foolish boy!" he returned, with anger in his croak. "Take
-the horse, and ride to failure! May it be to humility!"
-
-He spread his wings and flew. Again I pressed the lean ribs under
-me.
-
-"After the spotted leopardess!" I whispered in his ear.
-
-He turned his head this way and that, snuffing the air; then started,
-and went a few paces in a slow, undecided walk. Suddenly he
-quickened his walk; broke into a trot; began to gallop, and in a
-few moments his speed was tremendous. He seemed to see in the
-dark; never stumbled, not once faltered, not once hesitated. I sat
-as on the ridge of a wave. I felt under me the play of each
-individual muscle: his joints were so elastic, and his every
-movement glided so into the next, that not once did he jar me. His
-growing swiftness bore him along until he flew rather than ran.
-The wind met and passed us like a tornado.
-
-Across the evil hollow we sped like a bolt from an arblast. No
-monster lifted its neck; all knew the hoofs that thundered over
-their heads! We rushed up the hills, we shot down their farther
-slopes; from the rocky chasms of the river-bed he did not swerve;
-he held on over them his fierce, terrible gallop. The moon, half-way
-up the heaven, gazed with a solemn trouble in her pale countenance.
-Rejoicing in the power of my steed and in the pride of my life, I
-sat like a king and rode.
-
-We were near the middle of the many channels, my horse every other
-moment clearing one, sometimes two in his stride, and now and then
-gathering himself for a great bounding leap, when the moon reached
-the key-stone of her arch. Then came a wonder and a terror: she
-began to descend rolling like the nave of Fortune's wheel bowled by
-the gods, and went faster and faster. Like our own moon, this one
-had a human face, and now the broad forehead now the chin was
-uppermost as she rolled. I gazed aghast.
-
-Across the ravines came the howling of wolves. An ugly fear began
-to invade the hollow places of my heart; my confidence was on the
-wane! The horse maintained his headlong swiftness, with ears
-pricked forward, and thirsty nostrils exulting in the wind his
-career created. But there was the moon jolting like an old
-chariot-wheel down the hill of heaven, with awful boding! She
-rolled at last over the horizon-edge and disappeared, carrying all
-her light with her.
-
-The mighty steed was in the act of clearing a wide shallow channel
-when we were caught in the net of the darkness. His head dropped;
-its impetus carried his helpless bulk across, but he fell in a heap
-on the margin, and where he fell he lay. I got up, kneeled beside
-him, and felt him all over. Not a bone could I find broken, but he
-was a horse no more. I sat down on the body, and buried my face in
-my hands.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXII
-
-THE LOVERS AND THE BAGS
-
-Bitterly cold grew the night. The body froze under me. The cry
-of the wolves came nearer; I heard their feet soft-padding on the
-rocky ground; their quick panting filled the air. Through the
-darkness I saw the many glowing eyes; their half-circle contracted
-around me. My time was come! I sprang to my feet.--Alas, I had not
-even a stick!
-
-They came in a rush, their eyes flashing with fury of greed, their
-black throats agape to devour me. I stood hopelessly waiting them.
-One moment they halted over the horse--then came at me.
-
-With a sound of swiftness all but silence, a cloud of green eyes
-came down on their flank. The heads that bore them flew at the
-wolves with a cry feebler yet fiercer than their howling snarl, and
-by the cry I knew them: they were cats, led by a huge gray one. I
-could see nothing of him but his eyes, yet I knew him--and so knew
-his colour and bigness. A terrific battle followed, whose tale
-alone came to me through the night. I would have fled, for surely
-it was but a fight which should have me!--only where was the use?
-my first step would be a fall! and my foes of either kind could both
-see and scent me in the dark!
-
-All at once I missed the howling, and the caterwauling grew wilder.
-Then came the soft padding, and I knew it meant flight: the cats
-had defeated the wolves! In a moment the sharpest of sharp teeth
-were in my legs; a moment more and the cats were all over me in a
-live cataract, biting wherever they could bite, furiously scratching
-me anywhere and everywhere. A multitude clung to my body; I could
-not flee. Madly I fell on the hateful swarm, every finger instinct
-with destruction. I tore them off me, I throttled at them in vain:
-when I would have flung them from me, they clung to my hands like
-limpets. I trampled them under my feet, thrust my fingers in their
-eyes, caught them in jaws stronger than theirs, but could not rid
-myself of one. Without cease they kept discovering upon me space
-for fresh mouthfuls; they hauled at my skin with the widespread,
-horribly curved pincers of clutching claws; they hissed and spat in
-my face--but never touched it until, in my despair, I threw myself
-on the ground, when they forsook my body, and darted at my face.
-I rose, and immediately they left it, the more to occupy themselves
-with my legs. In an agony I broke from them and ran, careless
-whither, cleaving the solid dark. They accompanied me in a
-surrounding torrent, now rubbing, now leaping up against me, but
-tormenting me no more. When I fell, which was often, they gave me
-time to rise; when from fear of falling I slackened my pace, they
-flew afresh at my legs. All that miserable night they kept me
-running--but they drove me by a comparatively smooth path, for I
-tumbled into no gully, and passing the Evil Wood without seeing it,
-left it behind in the dark. When at length the morning appeared,
-I was beyond the channels, and on the verge of the orchard valley.
-In my joy I would have made friends with my persecutors, but not a
-cat was to be seen. I threw myself on the moss, and fell fast asleep.
-
-I was waked by a kick, to find myself bound hand and foot, once more
-the thrall of the giants!
-
-"What fitter?" I said to myself; "to whom else should I belong?"
-and I laughed in the triumph of self-disgust. A second kick stopped
-my false merriment; and thus recurrently assisted by my captors, I
-succeeded at length in rising to my feet.
-
-Six of them were about me. They undid the rope that tied my legs
-together, attached a rope to each of them, and dragged me away. I
-walked as well as I could, but, as they frequently pulled both ropes
-at once, I fell repeatedly, whereupon they always kicked me up again.
-Straight to my old labour they took me, tied my leg-ropes to a tree,
-undid my arms, and put the hateful flint in my left hand. Then
-they lay down and pelted me with fallen fruit and stones, but seldom
-hit me. If I could have freed my legs, and got hold of a stick I
-spied a couple of yards from me, I would have fallen upon all six
-of them! "But the Little Ones will come at night!" I said to myself,
-and was comforted.
-
-All day I worked hard. When the darkness came, they tied my hands,
-and left me fast to the tree. I slept a good deal, but woke often,
-and every time from a dream of lying in the heart of a heap of
-children. With the morning my enemies reappeared, bringing their
-kicks and their bestial company.
-
-It was about noon, and I was nearly failing from fatigue and hunger,
-when I heard a sudden commotion in the brushwood, followed by a
-burst of the bell-like laughter so dear to my heart. I gave a loud
-cry of delight and welcome. Immediately rose a trumpeting as of baby-elephants, a neighing as of foals, and a bellowing as of calves,
-and through the bushes came a crowd of Little Ones, on diminutive
-horses, on small elephants, on little bears; but the noises came
-from the riders, not the animals. Mingled with the mounted ones
-walked the bigger of the boys and girls, among the latter a woman with
-a baby crowing in her arms. The giants sprang to their lumbering
-feet, but were instantly saluted with a storm of sharp stones; the
-horses charged their legs; the bears rose and hugged them at the
-waist; the elephants threw their trunks round their necks, pulled
-them down, and gave them such a trampling as they had sometimes
-given, but never received before. In a moment my ropes were undone,
-and I was in the arms, seemingly innumerable, of the Little Ones.
-For some time I saw no more of the giants.
-
-They made me sit down, and my Lona came, and without a word began
-to feed me with the loveliest red and yellow fruits. I sat and ate,
-the whole colony mounting guard until I had done. Then they brought
-up two of the largest of their elephants, and having placed them
-side by side, hooked their trunks and tied their tails together.
-The docile creatures could have untied their tails with a single
-shake, and unhooked their trunks by forgetting them; but tails and
-trunks remained as their little masters had arranged them, and it
-was clear the elephants understood that they must keep their bodies
-parallel. I got up, and laid myself in the hollow between their
-two backs; when the wise animals, counteracting the weight that
-pushed them apart, leaned against each other, and made for me a most
-comfortable litter. My feet, it is true, projected beyond their
-tails, but my head lay pillowed on an ear of each. Then some of
-the smaller children, mounting for a bodyguard, ranged themselves
-in a row along the back of each of my bearers; the whole assembly
-formed itself in train; and the procession began to move.
-
-Whither they were carrying me, I did not try to conjecture; I yielded
-myself to their pleasure, almost as happy as they. Chattering and
-laughing and playing glad tricks innumerable at first, the moment
-they saw I was going to sleep, they became still as judges.
-
-I woke: a sudden musical uproar greeted the opening of my eyes.
-
-We were travelling through the forest in which they found the babies,
-and which, as I had suspected, stretched all the way from the valley
-to the hot stream.
-
-A tiny girl sat with her little feet close to my face, and looked
-down at me coaxingly for a while, then spoke, the rest seeming to
-hang on her words.
-
-"We make a petisson to king," she said.
-
-"What is it, my darling?" I asked.
-
-"Sut eyes one minute," she answered.
-
-"Certainly I will! Here goes!" I replied, and shut my eyes close.
-
-"No, no! not fore I tell oo!" she cried.
-
-I opened them again, and we talked and laughed together for quite
-another hour.
-
-"Close eyes!" she said suddenly.
-
-I closed my eyes, and kept them close. The elephants stood still.
-I heard a soft scurry, a little rustle, and then a silence--for in
-that world SOME silences ARE heard.
-
-"Open eyes!" twenty voices a little way off shouted at once; but
-when I obeyed, not a creature was visible except the elephants that
-bore me. I knew the children marvellously quick in getting out of
-the way--the giants had taught them that; but when I raised myself,
-and looking about in the open shrubless forest, could descry neither
-hand nor heel, I stared in "blank astonishment."
-
-The sun was set, and it was fast getting dark, yet presently a
-multitude of birds began to sing. I lay down to listen, pretty
-sure that, if I left them alone, the hiders would soon come out
-again.
-
-The singing grew to a little storm of bird-voices. "Surely the
-children must have something to do with it!--And yet how could they
-set the birds singing?" I said to myself as I lay and listened.
-Soon, however, happening to look up into the tree under which my
-elephants stood, I thought I spied a little motion among the leaves,
-and looked more keenly. Sudden white spots appeared in the dark
-foliage, the music died down, a gale of childish laughter rippled
-the air, and white spots came out in every direction: the trees were
-full of children! In the wildest merriment they began to descend,
-some dropping from bough to bough so rapidly that I could scarce
-believe they had not fallen. I left my litter, and was instantly
-surrounded--a mark for all the artillery of their jubilant fun.
-With stately composure the elephants walked away to bed.
-
-"But," said I, when their uproarious gladness had had scope for a
-while, "how is it that I never before heard you sing like the birds?
-Even when I thought it must be you, I could hardly believe it!"
-
-"Ah," said one of the wildest, "but we were not birds then! We
-were run-creatures, not fly-creatures! We had our hide-places in
-the bushes then; but when we came to no-bushes, only trees, we had
-to build nests! When we built nests, we grew birds, and when we
-were birds, we had to do birds! We asked them to teach us their
-noises, and they taught us, and now we are real birds!--Come and
-see my nest. It's not big enough for king, but it's big enough for
-king to see me in it!"
-
-I told him I could not get up a tree without the sun to show me the
-way; when he came, I would try.
-
-"Kings seldom have wings!" I added.
-
-"King! king!" cried one, "oo knows none of us hasn't no wings--foolis
-feddery tings! Arms and legs is better."
-
-"That is true. I can get up without wings--and carry straws in my
-mouth too, to build my nest with!"
-
-"Oo knows!" he answered, and went away sucking his thumb.
-
-A moment after, I heard him calling out of his nest, a great way
-up a walnut tree of enormous size,
-
-"Up adain, king! Dood night! I seepy!"
-
-And I heard no more of him till he woke me in the morning.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIII
-
-LONA'S NARRATIVE
-
-I lay down by a tree, and one and one or in little groups, the
-children left me and climbed to their nests. They were always so
-tired at night and so rested in the morning, that they were equally
-glad to go to sleep and to get up again. I, although tired also,
-lay awake: Lona had not bid me good night, and I was sure she would
-come.
-
-I had been struck, the moment I saw her again, with her resemblance
-to the princess, and could not doubt her the daughter of whom Adam
-had told me; but in Lona the dazzling beauty of Lilith was softened
-by childlikeness, and deepened by the sense of motherhood. "She is
-occupied probably," I said to myself, "with the child of the woman
-I met fleeing!" who, she had already told me, was not half mother
-enough.
-
-She came at length, sat down beside me, and after a few moments
-of silent delight, expressed mainly by stroking my face and hands,
-began to tell me everything that had befallen since I went. The
-moon appeared as we talked, and now and then, through the leaves,
-lighted for a quivering moment her beautiful face--full of thought,
-and a care whose love redeemed and glorified it. How such a child
-should have been born of such a mother--such a woman of such a
-princess, was hard to understand; but then, happily, she had two
-parents--say rather, three! She drew my heart by what in me was
-likest herself, and I loved her as one who, grow to what perfection
-she might, could only become the more a child. I knew now that I
-loved her when I left her, and that the hope of seeing her again
-had been my main comfort. Every word she spoke seemed to go straight
-to my heart, and, like the truth itself, make it purer.
-
-She told me that after I left the orchard valley, the giants began
-to believe a little more in the actual existence of their neighbours,
-and became in consequence more hostile to them. Sometimes the
-Little Ones would see them trampling furiously, perceiving or
-imagining some indication of their presence, while they indeed
-stood beside, and laughed at their foolish rage. By and by, however,
-their animosity assumed a more practical shape: they began to
-destroy the trees on whose fruit the Little Ones lived. This drove
-the mother of them all to meditate counteraction. Setting the
-sharpest of them to listen at night, she learned that the giants
-thought I was hidden somewhere near, intending, as soon as I
-recovered my strength, to come in the dark and kill them sleeping.
-Thereupon she concluded that the only way to stop the destruction
-was to give them ground for believing that they had abandoned the
-place. The Little Ones must remove into the forest--beyond the
-range of the giants, but within reach of their own trees, which they
-must visit by night! The main objection to the plan was, that the
-forest had little or no undergrowth to shelter--or conceal them if
-necessary.
-
-But she reflected that where birds, there the Little Ones could
-find habitation. They had eager sympathies with all modes of life,
-and could learn of the wildest creatures: why should they not take
-refuge from the cold and their enemies in the tree-tops? why not,
-having lain in the low brushwood, seek now the lofty foliage? why
-not build nests where it would not serve to scoop hollows? All that
-the birds could do, the Little Ones could learn--except, indeed, to
-fly!
-
-She spoke to them on the subject, and they heard with approval.
-They could already climb the trees, and they had often watched the
-birds building their nests! The trees of the forest, although
-large, did not look bad! They went up much nearer the sky than
-those of the giants, and spread out their arms--some even stretched
-them down--as if inviting them to come and live with them! Perhaps,
-in the top of the tallest, they might find that bird that laid the
-baby-eggs, and sat upon them till they were ripe, then tumbled them
-down to let the little ones out! Yes; they would build sleep-houses
-in the trees, where no giant would see them, for never by any chance
-did one throw back his dull head to look up! Then the bad giants
-would be sure they had left the country, and the Little Ones would
-gather their own apples and pears and figs and mesples and peaches
-when they were asleep!
-
-Thus reasoned the Lovers, and eagerly adopted Lona's suggestion--with
-the result that they were soon as much at home in the tree-tops as
-the birds themselves, and that the giants came ere long to the
-conclusion that they had frightened them out of the country--whereupon
-they forgot their trees, and again almost ceased to believe in the
-existence of their small neighbours.
-
-Lona asked me whether I had not observed that many of the children
-were grown. I answered I had not, but could readily believe it.
-She assured me it was so, but said the certain evidence that their
-minds too had grown since their migration upward, had gone far in
-mitigation of the alarm the discovery had occasioned her.
-
-In the last of the short twilight, and later when the moon was
-shining, they went down to the valley, and gathered fruit enough
-to serve them the next day; for the giants never went out in the
-twilight: that to them was darkness; and they hated the moon: had
-they been able, they would have extinguished her. But soon the
-Little Ones found that fruit gathered in the night was not altogether
-good the next day; so the question arose whether it would not be
-better, instead of pretending to have left the country, to make
-the bad giants themselves leave it.
-
-They had already, she said, in exploring the forest, made
-acquaintance with the animals in it, and with most of them
-personally. Knowing therefore how strong as well as wise and
-docile some of them were, and how swift as well as manageable many
-others, they now set themselves to secure their aid against the
-giants, and with loving, playful approaches, had soon made more
-than friends of most of them, from the first addressing horse or
-elephant as Brother or Sister Elephant, Brother or Sister Horse,
-until before long they had an individual name for each. It was
-some little time longer before they said Brother or Sister Bear,
-but that came next, and the other day she had heard one little
-fellow cry, "Ah, Sister Serpent!" to a snake that bit him as he
-played with it too roughly. Most of them would have nothing to do
-with a caterpillar, except watch it through its changes; but when
-at length it came from its retirement with wings, all would
-immediately address it as Sister Butterfly, congratulating it on
-its metamorphosis--for which they used a word that meant something
-like REPENTANCE--and evidently regarding it as something sacred.
-
-One moonlit evening, as they were going to gather their fruit, they
-came upon a woman seated on the ground with a baby in her lap--the
-woman I had met on my way to Bulika. They took her for a giantess
-that had stolen one of their babies, for they regarded all babies as
-their property. Filled with anger they fell upon her multitudinously,
-beating her after a childish, yet sufficiently bewildering fashion.
-She would have fled, but a boy threw himself down and held her by
-the feet. Recovering her wits, she recognised in her assailants
-the children whose hospitality she sought, and at once yielded the
-baby. Lona appeared, and carried it away in her bosom.
-
-But while the woman noted that in striking her they were careful not
-to hurt the child, the Little Ones noted that, as she surrendered
-her, she hugged and kissed her just as they wanted to do, and came
-to the conclusion that she must be a giantess of the same kind as
-the good giant. The moment Lona had the baby, therefore, they
-brought the mother fruit, and began to show her every sort of
-childish attention.
-
-Now the woman had been in perplexity whither to betake herself, not
-daring to go back to the city, because the princess was certain
-to find out who had lamed her leopardess: delighted with the
-friendliness of the little people, she resolved to remain with them
-for the present: she would have no trouble with her infant, and
-might find some way of returning to her husband, who was rich in
-money and gems, and very seldom unkind to her.
-
-Here I must supplement, partly from conjecture, what Lona told me
-about the woman. With the rest of the inhabitants of Bulika, she
-was aware of the tradition that the princess lived in terror of
-the birth of an infant destined to her destruction. They were
-all unacquainted, however, with the frightful means by which she
-preserved her youth and beauty; and her deteriorating physical
-condition requiring a larger use of those means, they took the
-apparent increase of her hostility to children for a sign that she
-saw her doom approaching. This, although no one dreamed of any
-attempt against her, nourished in them hopes of change.
-
-Now arose in the mind of the woman the idea of furthering the
-fulfilment of the shadowy prediction, or of using the myth at least
-for her own restoration to her husband. For what seemed more
-probable than that the fate foretold lay with these very children?
-They were marvellously brave, and the Bulikans cowards, in abject
-terror of animals! If she could rouse in the Little Ones the
-ambition of taking the city, then in the confusion of the attack,
-she would escape from the little army, reach her house unrecognised,
-and there lying hidden, await the result!
-
-Should the children now succeed in expelling the giants, she would
-begin at once, while they were yet flushed with victory, to suggest
-the loftier aim! By disposition, indeed, they were unfit for
-warfare; they hardly ever quarrelled, and never fought; loved every
-live thing, and hated either to hurt or to suffer. Still, they
-were easily influenced, and could certainly be taught any exercise
-within their strength!--At once she set some of the smaller ones
-throwing stones at a mark; and soon they were all engrossed with
-the new game, and growing skilful in it.
-
-The first practical result was their use of stones in my rescue.
-While gathering fruit, they found me asleep, went home, held a
-council, came the next day with their elephants and horses,
-overwhelmed the few giants watching me, and carried me off. Jubilant
-over their victory, the smaller boys were childishly boastful, the
-bigger boys less ostentatious, while the girls, although their eyes
-flashed more, were not so talkative as usual. The woman of Bulika
-no doubt felt encouraged.
-
-We talked the greater part of the night, chiefly about the growth
-of the children, and what it might indicate. With Lona's power
-of recognising truth I had long been familiar; now I began to be
-astonished at her practical wisdom. Probably, had I been more of
-a child myself, I should have wondered less.
-
-It was yet far from morning when I became aware of a slight
-fluttering and scrambling. I rose on my elbow, and looking about
-me, saw many Little Ones descend from their nests. They disappeared,
-and in a few moments all was again still.
-
-"What are they doing?" I asked.
-
-"They think," answered Lona, "that, stupid as they are, the giants
-will search the wood, and they are gone to gather stones with which
-to receive them. Stones are not plentiful in the forest, and they
-have to scatter far to find enow. They will carry them to their
-nests, and from the trees attack the giants as they come within
-reach. Knowing their habits, they do not expect them before the
-morning. If they do come, it will be the opening of a war of
-expulsion: one or the other people must go. The result, however,
-is hardly doubtful. We do not mean to kill them; indeed, their
-skulls are so thick that I do not think we could!--not that killing
-would do them much harm; they are so little alive! If one were
-killed, his giantess would not remember him beyond three days!"
-
-"Do the children then throw so well that the thing MIGHT happen?"
-I asked.
-
-"Wait till you see them!" she answered, with a touch of pride.
-"--But I have not yet told you," she went on, "of a strange thing
-that happened the night before last!--We had come home from gathering
-our fruit, and were asleep in our nests, when we were roused by
-the horrid noises of beasts fighting. The moon was bright, and
-in a moment our trees glittered with staring little eyes, watching
-two huge leopardesses, one perfectly white, the other covered with
-black spots, which worried and tore each other with I do not know
-how many teeth and claws. To judge by her back, the spotted creature
-must have been climbing a tree when the other sprang upon her. When
-first I saw them, they were just under my own tree, rolling over
-and over each other. I got down on the lowest branch, and saw them
-perfectly. The children enjoyed the spectacle, siding some with
-this one, some with that, for we had never seen such beasts before,
-and thought they were only at play. But by degrees their roaring
-and growling almost ceased, and I saw that they were in deadly
-earnest, and heartily wished neither might be left able to climb a
-tree. But when the children saw the blood pouring from their flanks
-and throats, what do you think they did? They scurried down to
-comfort them, and gathering in a great crowd about the terrible
-creatures, began to pat and stroke them. Then I got down as well,
-for they were much too absorbed to heed my calling to them; but
-before I could reach them, the white one stopped fighting, and sprang
-among them with such a hideous yell that they flew up into the trees
-like birds. Before I got back into mine, the wicked beasts were
-at it again tooth and claw. Then Whitey had the best of it; Spotty
-ran away as fast as she could run, and Whitey came and lay down at
-the foot of my tree. But in a minute or two she was up again, and
-walking about as if she thought Spotty might be lurking somewhere.
-I waked often, and every time I looked out, I saw her. In the
-morning she went away."
-
-"I know both the beasts," I said. "Spotty is a bad beast. She
-hates the children, and would kill every one of them. But Whitey
-loves them. She ran at them only to frighten them away, lest Spotty
-should get hold of any of them. No one needs be afraid of Whitey!"
-
-By this time the Little Ones were coming back, and with much noise,
-for they had no care to keep quiet now that they were at open war
-with the giants, and laden with good stones. They mounted to their
-nests again, though with difficulty because of their burdens, and
-in a minute were fast asleep. Lona retired to her tree. I lay
-where I was, and slept the better that I thought most likely the
-white leopardess was still somewhere in the wood.
-
-I woke soon after the sun, and lay pondering. Two hours passed, and
-then in truth the giants began to appear, in straggling companies of
-three and four, until I counted over a hundred of them. The children
-were still asleep, and to call them would draw the attention of
-the giants: I would keep quiet so long as they did not discover me.
-But by and by one came blundering upon me, stumbled, fell, and rose
-again. I thought he would pass heedless, but he began to search
-about. I sprang to my feet, and struck him in the middle of his
-huge body. The roar he gave roused the children, and a storm as
-of hail instantly came on, of which not a stone struck me, and not
-one missed the giant. He fell and lay. Others drew near, and the
-storm extended, each purblind creature becoming, as he entered the
-range of a garrisoned tree, a target for converging stones. In a
-short time almost every giant was prostrate, and a jubilant pæan of
-bird-song rose from the tops of fifty trees.
-
-Many elephants came hurrying up, and the children descending the
-trees like monkeys, in a moment every elephant had three or four of
-them on his back, and thus loaded, began to walk over the giants,
-who lay and roared. Losing patience at length with their noise,
-the elephants gave them a few blows of their trunks, and left them.
-
-Until night the bad giants remained where they had fallen, silent
-and motionless. The next morning they had disappeared every one,
-and the children saw no more of them. They removed to the other end
-of the orchard valley, and never after ventured into the forest.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIV
-
-PREPARATION
-
-Victory thus gained, the woman of Bulika began to speak about the
-city, and talked much of its defenceless condition, of the wickedness
-of its princess, of the cowardice of its inhabitants. In a few
-days the children chattered of nothing but Bulika, although indeed
-they had not the least notion of what a city was. Then first I
-became aware of the design of the woman, although not yet of its
-motive.
-
-The idea of taking possession of the place, recommended itself
-greatly to Lona--and to me also. The children were now so rapidly
-developing faculty, that I could see no serious obstacle to the
-success of the enterprise. For the terrible Lilith--woman or
-leopardess, I knew her one vulnerable point, her doom through her
-daughter, and the influence the ancient prophecy had upon the
-citizens: surely whatever in the enterprise could be called risk, was
-worth taking! Successful,--and who could doubt their success?--must
-not the Little Ones, from a crowd of children, speedily become a
-youthful people, whose government and influence would be all for
-righteousness? Ruling the wicked with a rod of iron, would they
-not be the redemption of the nation?
-
-At the same time, I have to confess that I was not without views
-of personal advantage, not without ambition in the undertaking. It
-was just, it seemed to me, that Lona should take her seat on the
-throne that had been her mother's, and natural that she should make
-of me her consort and minister. For me, I would spend my life in
-her service; and between us, what might we not do, with such a core
-to it as the Little Ones, for the development of a noble state?
-
-I confess also to an altogether foolish dream of opening a commerce
-in gems between the two worlds--happily impossible, for it could
-have done nothing but harm to both.
-
-Calling to mind the appeal of Adam, I suggested to Lona that to
-find them water might perhaps expedite the growth of the Little
-Ones. She judged it prudent, however, to leave that alone for the
-present, as we did not know what its first consequences might be;
-while, in the course of time, it would almost certainly subject
-them to a new necessity.
-
-"They are what they are without it!" she said: "when we have the
-city, we will search for water!"
-
-We began, therefore, and pushed forward our preparations, constantly
-reviewing the merry troops and companies. Lona gave her attention
-chiefly to the commissariat, while I drilled the little soldiers,
-exercised them in stone-throwing, taught them the use of some other
-weapons, and did all I could to make warriors of them. The main
-difficulty was to get them to rally to their flag the instant the
-call was sounded. Most of them were armed with slings, some of the
-bigger boys with bows and arrows. The bigger girls carried
-aloe-spikes, strong as steel and sharp as needles, fitted to longish
-shafts--rather formidable weapons. Their sole duty was the charge
-of such as were too small to fight.
-
-Lona had herself grown a good deal, but did not seem aware of it:
-she had always been, as she still was, the tallest! Her hair was
-much longer, and she was become almost a woman, but not one beauty
-of childhood had she outgrown. When first we met after our long
-separation, she laid down her infant, put her arms round my neck,
-and clung to me silent, her face glowing with gladness: the child
-whimpered; she sprang to him, and had him in her bosom instantly.
-To see her with any thoughtless, obstinate, or irritable little one,
-was to think of a tender grandmother. I seemed to have known her
-for ages--for always--from before time began! I hardly remembered
-my mother, but in my mind's eye she now looked like Lona; and if I
-imagined sister or child, invariably she had the face of Lona! My
-every imagination flew to her; she was my heart's wife! She hardly
-ever sought me, but was almost always within sound of my voice. What
-I did or thought, I referred constantly to her, and rejoiced to
-believe that, while doing her work in absolute independence, she
-was most at home by my side. Never for me did she neglect the
-smallest child, and my love only quickened my sense of duty. To
-love her and to do my duty, seemed, not indeed one, but inseparable.
-She might suggest something I should do; she might ask me what she
-ought to do; but she never seemed to suppose that I, any more than
-she, would like to do, or could care about anything except what must
-be done. Her love overflowed upon me--not in caresses, but in a
-closeness of recognition which I can compare to nothing but the
-devotion of a divine animal.
-
-I never told her anything about her mother.
-
-The wood was full of birds, the splendour of whose plumage, while
-it took nothing from their song, seemed almost to make up for the
-lack of flowers--which, apparently, could not grow without water.
-Their glorious feathers being everywhere about in the forest, it
-came into my heart to make from them a garment for Lona. While I
-gathered, and bound them in overlapping rows, she watched me with
-evident appreciation of my choice and arrangement, never asking
-what I was fashioning, but evidently waiting expectant the result
-of my work. In a week or two it was finished--a long loose mantle,
-to fasten at the throat and waist, with openings for the arms.
-
-I rose and put it on her. She rose, took it off, and laid it at
-my feet--I imagine from a sense of propriety. I put it again on
-her shoulders, and showed her where to put her arms through. She
-smiled, looked at the feathers a little and stroked them--again
-took it off and laid it down, this time by her side. When she left
-me, she carried it with her, and I saw no more of it for some days.
-At length she came to me one morning wearing it, and carrying
-another garment which she had fashioned similarly, but of the dried
-leaves of a tough evergreen. It had the strength almost of leather,
-and the appearance of scale-armour. I put it on at once, and we
-always thereafter wore those garments when on horseback.
-
-For, on the outskirts of the forest, had appeared one day a troop
-of full-grown horses, with which, as they were nowise alarmed at
-creatures of a shape so different from their own, I had soon made
-friends, and two of the finest I had trained for Lona and myself.
-Already accustomed to ride a small one, her delight was great when
-first she looked down from the back of an animal of the giant kind;
-and the horse showed himself proud of the burden he bore. We
-exercised them every day until they had such confidence in us as
-to obey instantly and fear nothing; after which we always rode them
-at parade and on the march.
-
-The undertaking did indeed at times appear to me a foolhardy one,
-but the confidence of the woman of Bulika, real or simulated,
-always overcame my hesitancy. The princess's magic, she insisted,
-would prove powerless against the children; and as to any force she
-might muster, our animal-allies alone would assure our superiority:
-she was herself, she said, ready, with a good stick, to encounter
-any two men of Bulika. She confessed to not a little fear of the
-leopardess, but I was myself ready for her. I shrank, however, from
-carrying ALL the children with us.
-
-"Would it not be better," I said, "that you remained in the forest
-with your baby and the smallest of the Little Ones?"
-
-She answered that she greatly relied on the impression the sight of
-them would make on the women, especially the mothers.
-
-"When they see the darlings," she said, "their hearts will be taken
-by storm; and I must be there encouraging them to make a stand! If
-there be a remnant of hardihood in the place, it will be found among
-the women!"
-
-"YOU must not encumber yourself," I said to Lona, "with any of the
-children; you will be wanted everywhere!"
-
-For there were two babies besides the woman's, and even on horseback
-she had almost always one in her arms.
-
-"I do not remember ever being without a child to take care of," she
-answered; "but when we reach the city, it shall be as you wish!"
-
-Her confidence in one who had failed so unworthily, shamed me. But
-neither had I initiated the movement, nor had I any ground for
-opposing it; I had no choice, but must give it the best help I
-could! For myself, I was ready to live or die with Lona. Her
-humility as well as her trust humbled me, and I gave myself heartily
-to her purposes.
-
-Our way lying across a grassy plain, there was no need to take food
-for the horses, or the two cows which would accompany us for the
-infants; but the elephants had to be provided for. True, the grass
-was as good for them as for those other animals, but it was short,
-and with their one-fingered long noses, they could not pick enough
-for a single meal. We had, therefore, set the whole colony to
-gather grass and make hay, of which the elephants themselves could
-carry a quantity sufficient to last them several days, with the
-supplement of what we would gather fresh every time we halted. For
-the bears we stored nuts, and for ourselves dried plenty of fruits.
-We had caught and tamed several more of the big horses, and now
-having loaded them and the elephants with these provisions, we were
-prepared to set out.
-
-Then Lona and I held a general review, and I made them a little
-speech. I began by telling them that I had learned a good deal
-about them, and knew now where they came from.
-"We did not come from anywhere," they cried, interrupting me; "we
-are here!"
-
-I told them that every one of them had a mother of his own, like
-the mother of the last baby; that I believed they had all been
-brought from Bulika when they were so small that they could not
-now remember it; that the wicked princess there was so afraid of
-babies, and so determined to destroy them, that their mothers had
-to carry them away and leave them where she could not find them;
-and that now we were going to Bulika, to find their mothers, and
-deliver them from the bad giantess.
-
-"But I must tell you," I continued, "that there is danger before us,
-for, as you know, we may have to fight hard to take the city."
-
-"We can fight! we are ready!" cried the boys.
-
-"Yes, you can," I returned, "and I know you will: mothers are worth
-fighting for! Only mind, you must all keep together."
-
-"Yes, yes; we'll take care of each other," they answered. "Nobody
-shall touch one of us but his own mother!"
-
-"You must mind, every one, to do immediately what your officers tell
-you!"
-
-"We will, we will!--Now we're quite ready! Let us go!"
-
-"Another thing you must not forget," I went on: "when you strike,
-be sure you make it a downright swinging blow; when you shoot an
-arrow, draw it to the head; when you sling a stone, sling it strong
-and straight."
-
-"That we will!" they cried with jubilant, fearless shout.
-
-"Perhaps you will be hurt!"
-
-"We don't mind that!--Do we, boys?"
-
-"Not a bit!"
-
-"Some of you may very possibly be killed!" I said.
-
-"I don't mind being killed!" cried one of the finest of the smaller
-boys: he rode a beautiful little bull, which galloped and jumped like
-a horse.
-
-"I don't either! I don't either!" came from all sides.
-
-Then Lona, queen and mother and sister of them all, spoke from her
-big horse by my side:
-
-"I would give my life," she said, "to have my mother! She might
-kill me if she liked! I should just kiss her and die!"
-
-"Come along, boys!" cried a girl. "We're going to our mothers!"
-
-A pang went through my heart.--But I could not draw back; it would
-be moral ruin to the Little Ones!
-
-
-
-
-Chapter XXXV
-
-THE LITTLE ONES IN BULIKA
-
-It was early in the morning when we set out, making, between the
-blue sky and the green grass, a gallant show on the wide plain. We
-would travel all the morning, and rest the afternoon; then go on at
-night, rest the next day, and start again in the short twilight.
-The latter part of our journey we would endeavour so to divide as
-to arrive at the city with the first of the morning, and be already
-inside the gates when discovered.
-
-It seemed as if all the inhabitants of the forest would migrate with
-us. A multitude of birds flew in front, imagining themselves, no
-doubt, the leading division; great companies of butterflies and
-other insects played about our heads; and a crowd of four-footed
-creatures followed us. These last, when night came, left us almost
-all; but the birds and the butterflies, the wasps and the
-dragon-flies, went with us to the very gates of the city.
-
-We halted and slept soundly through the afternoon: it was our first
-real march, but none were tired. In the night we went faster,
-because it was cold. Many fell asleep on the backs of their beasts,
-and woke in the morning quite fresh. None tumbled off. Some rode
-shaggy, shambling bears, which yet made speed enough, going as fast
-as the elephants. Others were mounted on different kinds of deer,
-and would have been racing all the way had I not prevented it.
-Those atop of the hay on the elephants, unable to see the animals
-below them, would keep talking to them as long as they were awake.
-Once, when we had halted to feed, I heard a little fellow, as he
-drew out the hay to give him, commune thus with his "darling beast":
-
-"Nosy dear, I am digging you out of the mountain, and shall soon
-get down to you: be patient; I'm a coming! Very soon now you'll
-send up your nose to look for me, and then we'll kiss like good
-elephants, we will!"
-
-The same night there burst out such a tumult of elephant-trumpeting,
-horse-neighing, and child-imitation, ringing far over the silent
-levels, that, uncertain how near the city might not be, I quickly
-stilled the uproar lest it should give warning of our approach.
-
-Suddenly, one morning, the sun and the city rose, as it seemed,
-together. To the children the walls appeared only a great mass of
-rock, but when I told them the inside was full of nests of stone,
-I saw apprehension and dislike at once invade their hearts: for the
-first time in their lives, I believe--many of them long little
-lives--they knew fear. The place looked to them bad: how were they
-to find mothers in such a place? But they went on bravely, for they
-had confidence in Lona--and in me too, little as I deserved it.
-
-We rode through the sounding archway. Sure never had such a
-drumming of hoofs, such a padding of paws and feet been heard on
-its old pavement! The horses started and looked scared at the echo
-of their own steps; some halted a moment, some plunged wildly and
-wheeled about; but they were soon quieted, and went on. Some of the
-Little Ones shivered, and all were still as death. The three girls
-held closer the infants they carried. All except the bears and
-butterflies manifested fear.
-
-On the countenance of the woman lay a dark anxiety; nor was I myself
-unaffected by the general dread, for the whole army was on my hands
-and on my conscience: I had brought it up to the danger whose shadow
-was now making itself felt! But I was supported by the thought of
-the coming kingdom of the Little Ones, with the bad giants its
-slaves, and the animals its loving, obedient friends! Alas, I who
-dreamed thus, had not myself learned to obey! Untrusting, unfaithful
-obstinacy had set me at the head of that army of innocents! I was
-myself but a slave, like any king in the world I had left who does
-or would do only what pleases him! But Lona rode beside me a child
-indeed, therefore a free woman--calm, silent, watchful, not a whit
-afraid!
-
-We were nearly in the heart of the city before any of its inhabitants
-became aware of our presence. But now windows began to open, and
-sleepy heads to look out. Every face wore at first a dull stare of
-wonderless astonishment, which, as soon as the starers perceived
-the animals, changed to one of consternation. In spite of their
-fear, however, when they saw that their invaders were almost all
-children, the women came running into the streets, and the men
-followed. But for a time all of them kept close to the houses,
-leaving open the middle of the way, for they durst not approach the
-animals.
-
-At length a boy, who looked about five years old, and was full of
-the idea of his mother, spying in the crowd a woman whose face
-attracted him, threw himself upon her from his antelope, and clung
-about her neck; nor was she slow to return his embrace and kisses.
-But the hand of a man came over her shoulder, and seized him by
-the neck. Instantly a girl ran her sharp spear into the fellow's
-arm. He sent forth a savage howl, and immediately stabbed by two
-or three more, fled yelling.
-
-"They are just bad giants!" said Lona, her eyes flashing as she
-drove her horse against one of unusual height who, having stirred
-up the little manhood in him, stood barring her way with a club.
-He dared not abide the shock, but slunk aside, and the next moment
-went down, struck by several stones. Another huge fellow, avoiding
-my charger, stepped suddenly, with a speech whose rudeness alone
-was intelligible, between me and the boy who rode behind me. The
-boy told him to address the king; the giant struck his little horse
-on the head with a hammer, and he fell. Before the brute could
-strike again, however, one of the elephants behind laid him
-prostrate, and trampled on him so that he did not attempt to get
-up until hundreds of feet had walked over him, and the army was
-gone by.
-
-But at sight of the women what a dismay clouded the face of Lona!
-Hardly one of them was even pleasant to look upon! Were her
-darlings to find mothers among such as these?
-
-Hardly had we halted in the central square, when two girls rode up
-in anxious haste, with the tidings that two of the boys had been
-hurried away by some women. We turned at once, and then first
-discovered that the woman we befriended had disappeared with her
-baby.
-
-But at the same moment we descried a white leopardess come bounding
-toward us down a narrow lane that led from the square to the palace.
-The Little Ones had not forgotten the fight of the two leopardesses
-in the forest: some of them looked terrified, and their ranks began
-to waver; but they remembered the order I had just given them, and
-stood fast.
-
-We stopped to see the result; when suddenly a small boy, called Odu,
-remarkable for his speed and courage, who had heard me speak of the
-goodness of the white leopardess, leaped from the back of his bear,
-which went shambling after him, and ran to meet her. The leopardess,
-to avoid knocking him down, pulled herself up so suddenly that she
-went rolling over and over: when she recovered her feet she found
-the child on her back. Who could doubt the subjugation of a people
-which saw an urchin of the enemy bestride an animal of which they
-lived in daily terror? Confident of the effect on the whole army,
-we rode on.
-
-As we stopped at the house to which our guides led us, we heard a
-scream; I sprang down, and thundered at the door. My horse came
-and pushed me away with his nose, turned about, and had begun to
-batter the door with his heels, when up came little Odu on the
-leopardess, and at sight of her he stood still, trembling. But she
-too had heard the cry, and forgetting the child on her back, threw
-herself at the door; the boy was dashed against it, and fell
-senseless. Before I could reach him, Lona had him in her arms, and
-as soon as he came to himself, set him on the back of his bear,
-which had still followed him.
-
-When the leopardess threw herself the third time against the door,
-it gave way, and she darted in. We followed, but she had already
-vanished. We sprang up a stair, and went all over the house, to
-find no one. Darting down again, we spied a door under the stair,
-and got into a labyrinth of excavations. We had not gone far,
-however, when we met the leopardess with the child we sought across
-her back.
-
-He told us that the woman he took for his mother threw him into a
-hole, saying she would give him to the leopardess. But the
-leopardess was a good one, and took him out.
-
-Following in search of the other boy, we got into the next house
-more easily, but to find, alas, that we were too late: one of the
-savages had just killed the little captive! It consoled Lona,
-however, to learn which he was, for she had been expecting him to
-grow a bad giant, from which worst of fates death had saved him.
-The leopardess sprang upon his murderer, took him by the throat,
-dragged him into the street, and followed Lona with him, like a cat
-with a great rat in her jaws.
-
-"Let us leave the horrible place," said Lona; "there are no mothers
-here! This people is not worth delivering."
-
-The leopardess dropped her burden, and charged into the crowd, this
-way and that, wherever it was thickest. The slaves cried out and
-ran, tumbling over each other in heaps.
-
-When we got back to the army, we found it as we had left it, standing
-in order and ready.
-
-But I was far from easy: the princess gave no sign, and what she
-might be plotting we did not know! Watch and ward must be kept the
-night through!
-
-The Little Ones were such hardy creatures that they could repose
-anywhere: we told them to lie down with their animals where they
-were, and sleep till they were called. In one moment they were
-down, and in another lapt in the music of their sleep, a sound as
-of water over grass, or a soft wind among leaves. Their animals
-slept more lightly, ever on the edge of waking. The bigger boys
-and girls walked softly hither and thither among the dreaming
-multitude. All was still; the whole wicked place appeared at rest.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVI
-
-MOTHER AND DAUGHTER
-
-Lona was so disgusted with the people, and especially with the
-women, that she wished to abandon the place as soon as possible; I,
-on the contrary, felt very strongly that to do so would be to fail
-wilfully where success was possible; and, far worse, to weaken the
-hearts of the Little Ones, and so bring them into much greater
-danger. If we retreated, it was certain the princess would not
-leave us unassailed! if we encountered her, the hope of the prophecy
-went with us! Mother and daughter must meet: it might be that
-Lona's loveliness would take Lilith's heart by storm! if she
-threatened violence, I should be there between them! If I found
-that I had no other power over her, I was ready, for the sake of my
-Lona, to strike her pitilessly on the closed hand! I knew she was
-doomed: most likely it was decreed that her doom should now be
-brought to pass through us!
-
-Still without hint of the relation in which she stood to the
-princess, I stated the case to Lona as it appeared to me. At once
-she agreed to accompany me to the palace.
-
->From the top of one of its great towers, the princess had, in the
-early morning, while the city yet slept, descried the approach of the
-army of the Little Ones. The sight awoke in her an over-mastering
-terror: she had failed in her endeavour to destroy them, and they
-were upon her! The prophecy was about to be fulfilled!
-
-When she came to herself, she descended to the black hall, and
-seated herself in the north focus of the ellipse, under the opening
-in the roof.
-
-For she must think! Now what she called THINKING required a clear
-consciousness of herself, not as she was, but as she chose to
-believe herself; and to aid her in the realisation of this
-consciousness, she had suspended, a little way from and above her,
-itself invisible in the darkness of the hall, a mirror to receive
-the full sunlight reflected from her person. For the resulting
-vision of herself in the splendour of her beauty, she sat waiting
-the meridional sun.
-
-Many a shadow moved about her in the darkness, but as often as, with
-a certain inner eye which she had, she caught sight of one, she
-refused to regard it. Close under the mirror stood the Shadow which
-attended her walks, but, self-occupied, him she did not see.
-
-The city was taken; the inhabitants were cowering in terror; the
-Little Ones and their strange cavalry were encamped in the square;
-the sun shone upon the princess, and for a few minutes she saw
-herself glorious. The vision passed, but she sat on. The night was
-now come, and darkness clothed and filled the glass, yet she did not
-move. A gloom that swarmed with shadows, wallowed in the palace;
-the servants shivered and shook, but dared not leave it because of
-the beasts of the Little Ones; all night long the princess sat
-motionless: she must see her beauty again! she must try again to
-think! But courage and will had grown weary of her, and would dwell
-with her no more!
-
-In the morning we chose twelve of the tallest and bravest of the
-boys to go with us to the palace. We rode our great horses, and
-they small horses and elephants.
-
-The princess sat waiting the sun to give her the joy of her own
-presence. The tide of the light was creeping up the shore of the
-sky, but until the sun stood overhead, not a ray could enter the
-black hall.
-
-He rose to our eyes, and swiftly ascended. As we climbed the steep
-way to the palace, he climbed the dome of its great hall. He looked
-in at the eye of it--and with sudden radiance the princess flashed
-upon her own sight. But she sprang to her feet with a cry of
-despair: alas her whiteness! the spot covered half her side, and
-was black as the marble around her! She clutched her robe, and
-fell back in her chair. The Shadow glided out, and she saw him go.
-
-We found the gate open as usual, passed through the paved grove up
-to the palace door, and entered the vestibule. There in her cage
-lay the spotted leopardess, apparently asleep or lifeless. The
-Little Ones paused a moment to look at her. She leaped up rampant
-against the cage. The horses reared and plunged; the elephants
-retreated a step. The next instant she fell supine, writhed in
-quivering spasms, and lay motionless. We rode into the great hall.
-
-The princess yet leaned back in her chair in the shaft of sunlight,
-when from the stones of the court came to her ears the noise of the
-horses' hoofs. She started, listened, and shook: never had such
-sound been heard in her palace! She pressed her hand to her side,
-and gasped. The trampling came nearer and nearer; it entered the
-hall itself; moving figures that were not shadows approached her
-through the darkness!
-
-For us, we saw a splendour, a glorious woman centring the dark.
-Lona sprang from her horse, and bounded to her. I sprang from mine,
-and followed Lona.
-
-"Mother! mother!" she cried, and her clear, lovely voice echoed in
-the dome.
-
-The princess shivered; her face grew almost black with hate, her
-eyebrows met on her forehead. She rose to her feet, and stood.
-
-"Mother! mother!" cried Lona again, as she leaped on the daïs, and
-flung her arms around the princess.
-
-An instant more and I should have reached them!--in that instant
-I saw Lona lifted high, and dashed on the marble floor. Oh, the
-horrible sound of her fall! At my feet she fell, and lay still.
-The princess sat down with the smile of a demoness.
-
-I dropped on my knees beside Lona, raised her from the stones, and
-pressed her to my bosom. With indignant hate I glanced at the
-princess; she answered me with her sweetest smile. I would have
-sprung upon her, taken her by the throat, and strangled her, but
-love of the child was stronger than hate of the mother, and I
-clasped closer my precious burden. Her arms hung helpless; her
-blood trickled over my hands, and fell on the floor with soft, slow
-little plashes.
-
-The horses scented it--mine first, then the small ones. Mine
-reared, shivering and wild-eyed, went about, and thundered blindly
-down the dark hall, with the little horses after him. Lona's stood
-gazing down at his mistress, and trembling all over. The boys flung
-themselves from their horses' backs, and they, not seeing the black
-wall before them, dashed themselves, with mine, to pieces against
-it. The elephants came on to the foot of the daïs, and stopped,
-wildly trumpeting; the Little Ones sprang upon it, and stood
-horrified; the princess lay back in her seat, her face that of a
-corpse, her eyes alone alive, wickedly flaming. She was again
-withered and wasted to what I found in the wood, and her side was
-as if a great branding hand had been laid upon it. But Lona saw
-nothing, and I saw but Lona.
-
-"Mother! mother!" she sighed, and her breathing ceased.
-
-I carried her into the court: the sun shone upon a white face, and
-the pitiful shadow of a ghostly smile. Her head hung back. She was
-"dead as earth."
-
-I forgot the Little Ones, forgot the murdering princess, forgot
-the body in my arms, and wandered away, looking for my Lona. The
-doors and windows were crowded with brute-faces jeering at me, but
-not daring to speak, for they saw the white leopardess behind me,
-hanging her head close at my heel. I spurned her with my foot.
-She held back a moment, and followed me again.
-
-I reached the square: the little army was gone! Its emptiness roused
-me. Where were the Little Ones, HER Little Ones? I had lost her
-children! I stared helpless about me, staggered to the pillar, and
-sank upon its base.
-
-But as I sat gazing on the still countenance, it seemed to smile a
-live momentary smile. I never doubted it an illusion, yet believed
-what it said: I should yet see her alive! It was not she, it was I
-who was lost, and she would find me!
-
-I rose to go after the Little Ones, and instinctively sought the
-gate by which we had entered. I looked around me, but saw nothing
-of the leopardess.
-
-The street was rapidly filling with a fierce crowd. They saw me
-encumbered with my dead, but for a time dared not assail me. Ere
-I reached the gate, however, they had gathered courage. The women
-began to hustle me; I held on heedless. A man pushed against my
-sacred burden: with a kick I sent him away howling. But the crowd
-pressed upon me, and fearing for the dead that was beyond hurt, I
-clasped my treasure closer, and freed my right arm. That instant,
-however, a commotion arose in the street behind me; the crowd broke;
-and through it came the Little Ones I had left in the palace. Ten
-of them were upon four of the elephants; on the two other elephants
-lay the princess, bound hand and foot, and quite still, save that
-her eyes rolled in their ghastly sockets. The two other Little Ones
-rode behind her on Lona's horse. Every now and then the wise
-creatures that bore her threw their trunks behind and felt her
-cords.
-
-I walked on in front, and out of the city. What an end to the
-hopes with which I entered the evil place! We had captured the bad
-princess, and lost our all-beloved queen! My life was bare! my
-heart was empty!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVII
-
-THE SHADOW
-
-A murmur of pleasure from my companions roused me: they had caught
-sight of their fellows in the distance! The two on Lona's horse
-rode on to join them. They were greeted with a wavering shout--which
-immediately died away. As we drew near, the sound of their sobs
-reached us like the breaking of tiny billows.
-
-When I came among them, I saw that something dire had befallen them:
-on their childish faces was the haggard look left by some strange
-terror. No possible grief could have wrought the change. A few of
-them came slowly round me, and held out their arms to take my burden.
-I yielded it; the tender hopelessness of the smile with which they
-received it, made my heart swell with pity in the midst of its own
-desolation. In vain were their sobs over their mother-queen; in
-vain they sought to entice from her some recognition of their love;
-in vain they kissed and fondled her as they bore her away: she would
-not wake! On each side one carried an arm, gently stroking it; as
-many as could get near, put their arms under her body; those who
-could not, crowded around the bearers. On a spot where the grass
-grew thicker and softer they laid her down, and there all the Little
-Ones gathered sobbing.
-
-Outside the crowd stood the elephants, and I near them, gazing at
-my Lona over the many little heads between. Those next me caught
-sight of the princess, and stared trembling. Odu was the first to
-speak.
-
-"I have seen that woman before!" he whispered to his next neighbour.
-"It was she who fought the white leopardess, the night they woke us
-with their yelling!"
-
-"Silly!" returned his companion. "That was a wild beast, with
-spots!"
-
-"Look at her eyes!" insisted Odu. "I know she is a bad giantess,
-but she is a wild beast all the same. I know she is the spotted
-one!"
-
-The other took a step nearer; Odu drew him back with a sharp pull.
-
-"Don't look at her!" he cried, shrinking away, yet fascinated by the
-hate-filled longing in her eyes. "She would eat you up in a moment!
-It was HER shadow! She is the wicked princess!"
-
-"That cannot be! they said she was beautiful!"
-
-"Indeed it is the princess!" I interposed. "Wickedness has made her
-ugly!"
-
-She heard, and what a look was hers!
-
-"It was very wrong of me to run away!" said Odu thoughtfully.
-
-"What made you run away?" I asked. "I expected to find you where I
-left you!"
-
-He did not reply at once.
-
-"I don't know what made me run," answered another. "I was
-frightened!"
-
-"It was a man that came down the hill from the palace," said a third.
-
-"How did he frighten you?"
-
-"I don't know."
-
-"He wasn't a man," said Odu; "he was a shadow; he had no thick to
-him!"
-
-"Tell me more about him."
-
-"He came down the hill very black, walking like a bad giant, but
-spread flat. He was nothing but blackness. We were frightened the
-moment we saw him, but we did not run away; we stood and watched him.
-He came on as if he would walk over us. But before he reached us,
-he began to spread and spread, and grew bigger end bigger, till at
-last he was so big that he went out of our sight, and we saw him no
-more, and then he was upon us!"
-
-"What do you mean by that?"
-
-"He was all black through between us, and we could not see one
-another; and then he was inside us."
-
-"How did you know he was inside you?"
-
-"He did me quite different. I felt like bad. I was not Odu any
-more--not the Odu I knew. I wanted to tear Sozo to pieces--not
-really, but like!"
-
-He turned and hugged Sozo.
-
-"It wasn't me, Sozo," he sobbed. "Really, deep down, it was Odu,
-loving you always! And Odu came up, and knocked Naughty away. I
-grew sick, and thought I must kill myself to get out of the black.
-Then came a horrible laugh that had heard my think, and it set the
-air trembling about me. And then I suppose I ran away, but I did
-not know I had run away until I found myself running, fast as could,
-and all the rest running too. I would have stopped, but I never
-thought of it until I was out of the gate among the grass. Then I
-knew that I had run away from a shadow that wanted to be me and
-wasn't, and that I was the Odu that loved Sozo. It was the shadow
-that got into me, and hated him from inside me; it was not my own
-self me! And now I know that I ought not to have run away! But
-indeed I did not quite know what I was doing until it was done! My
-legs did it, I think: they grew frightened, and forgot me, and ran
-away! Naughty legs! There! and there!"
-
-Thus ended Odu, with a kick to each of his naughty legs.
-
-"What became of the shadow?" I asked.
-
-"I do not know," he answered. "I suppose he went home into the
-night where there is no moon."
-
-I fell a wondering where Lona was gone, and dropping on the grass,
-took the dead thing in my lap, and whispered in its ear, "Where
-are you, Lona? I love you!" But its lips gave no answer. I kissed
-them, not quite cold, laid the body down again, and appointing a
-guard over it, rose to provide for the safety of Lona's people
-during the night.
-
-Before the sun went down, I had set a watch over the princess
-outside the camp, and sentinels round it: intending to walk about
-it myself all night long, I told the rest of the army to go to sleep.
-They threw themselves on the grass and were asleep in a moment.
-
-When the moon rose I caught a glimpse of something white; it was
-the leopardess. She swept silently round the sleeping camp, and I
-saw her pass three times between the princess and the Little Ones.
-Thereupon I made the watch lie down with the others, and stretched
-myself beside the body of Lona.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVIII
-
-TO THE HOUSE OF BITTERNESS
-
-In the morning we set out, and made for the forest as fast as we
-could. I rode Lona's horse, and carried her body. I would take it
-to her father: he would give it a couch in the chamber of his dead!
-or, if he would not, seeing she had not come of herself, I would
-watch it in the desert until it mouldered away! But I believed he
-would, for surely she had died long ago! Alas, how bitterly must
-I not humble myself before him!
-
-To Adam I must take Lilith also. I had no power to make her repent!
-I had hardly a right to slay her--much less a right to let her loose
-in the world! and surely I scarce merited being made for ever her
-gaoler!
-
-Again and again, on the way, I offered her food; but she answered
-only with a look of hungering hate. Her fiery eyes kept rolling to
-and fro, nor ever closed, I believe, until we reached the other side
-of the hot stream. After that they never opened until we came to
-the House of Bitterness.
-
-One evening, as we were camping for the night, I saw a little girl
-go up to her, and ran to prevent mischief. But ere I could reach
-them, the child had put something to the lips of the princess, and
-given a scream of pain.
-
-"Please, king," she whimpered, "suck finger. Bad giantess make hole
-in it!"
-
-I sucked the tiny finger.
-
-"Well now!" she cried, and a minute after was holding a second fruit
-to a mouth greedy of other fare. But this time she snatched her
-hand quickly away, and the fruit fell to the ground. The child's
-name was Luva.
-
-The next day we crossed the hot stream. Again on their own ground,
-the Little Ones were jubilant. But their nests were still at a
-great distance, and that day we went no farther than the ivy-hall,
-where, because of its grapes, I had resolved to spend the night.
-When they saw the great clusters, at once they knew them good,
-rushed upon them, ate eagerly, and in a few minutes were all fast
-asleep on the green floor and in the forest around the hall. Hoping
-again to see the dance, and expecting the Little Ones to sleep
-through it, I had made them leave a wide space in the middle. I
-lay down among them, with Lona by my side, but did not sleep.
-
-The night came, and suddenly the company was there. I was wondering
-with myself whether, night after night, they would thus go on
-dancing to all eternity, and whether I should not one day have to
-join them because of my stiff-neckedness, when the eyes of the
-children came open, and they sprang to their feet, wide awake.
-Immediately every one caught hold of a dancer, and away they went,
-bounding and skipping. The spectres seemed to see and welcome them:
-perhaps they knew all about the Little Ones, for they had themselves
-long been on their way back to childhood! Anyhow, their innocent
-gambols must, I thought, bring refreshment to weary souls who, their
-present taken from them and their future dark, had no life save
-the shadow of their vanished past. Many a merry but never a rude
-prank did the children play; and if they did at times cause a
-momentary jar in the rhythm of the dance, the poor spectres, who
-had nothing to smile withal, at least manifested no annoyance.
-
-Just ere the morning began to break, I started to see the skeleton-princess in the doorway, her eyes open and glowing, the
-fearful spot black on her side. She stood for a moment, then came
-gliding in, as if she would join the dance. I sprang to my feet.
-A cry of repugnant fear broke from the children, and the lights
-vanished. But the low moon looked in, and I saw them clinging to
-each other. The ghosts were gone--at least they were no longer
-visible. The princess too had disappeared. I darted to the spot
-where I had left her: she lay with her eyes closed, as if she had
-never moved. I returned to the hall. The Little Ones were already
-on the floor, composing themselves to sleep.
-
-The next morning, as we started, we spied, a little way from us,
-two skeletons moving about in a thicket. The Little Ones broke
-their ranks, and ran to them. I followed; and, although now walking
-at ease, without splint or ligature, I was able to recognise the
-pair I had before seen in that neighbourhood. The children at once
-made friends with them, laying hold of their arms, and stroking
-the bones of their long fingers; and it was plain the poor creatures
-took their attentions kindly. The two seemed on excellent terms
-with each other. Their common deprivation had drawn them together!
-the loss of everything had been the beginning of a new life to them!
-
-Perceiving that they had gathered handfuls of herbs, and were
-looking for more--presumably to rub their bones with, for in what
-other way could nourishment reach their system so rudimentary?--the
-Little Ones, having keenly examined those they held, gathered of
-the same sorts, and filled the hands the skeletons held out to
-receive them. Then they bid them goodbye, promising to come and
-see them again, and resumed their journey, saying to each other they
-had not known there were such nice people living in the same forest.
-
-When we came to the nest-village, I remained there a night with them,
-to see them resettled; for Lona still looked like one just dead, and
-there seemed no need of haste.
-
-The princess had eaten nothing, and her eyes remained shut: fearing
-she might die ere we reached the end of our journey, I went to her
-in the night, and laid my bare arm upon her lips. She bit into it
-so fiercely that I cried out. How I got away from her I do not know,
-but I came to myself lying beyond her reach. It was then morning,
-and immediately I set about our departure.
-
-Choosing twelve Little Ones, not of the biggest and strongest, but
-of the sweetest and merriest, I mounted them on six elephants, and
-took two more of the wise CLUMSIES, as the children called them, to
-bear the princess. I still rode Lona's horse, and carried her body
-wrapt in her cloak before me. As nearly as I could judge I took
-the direct way, across the left branch of the river-bed, to the
-House of Bitterness, where I hoped to learn how best to cross the
-broader and rougher branch, and how to avoid the basin of monsters:
-I dreaded the former for the elephants, the latter for the children.
-
-I had one terrible night on the way--the third, passed in the desert
-between the two branches of the dead river.
-
-We had stopped the elephants in a sheltered place, and there let
-the princess slip down between them, to lie on the sand until the
-morning. She seemed quite dead, but I did not think she was. I
-laid myself a little way from her, with the body of Lona by my other
-side, thus to keep watch at once over the dead and the dangerous.
-The moon was half-way down the west, a pale, thoughtful moon,
-mottling the desert with shadows. Of a sudden she was eclipsed,
-remaining visible, but sending forth no light: a thick, diaphanous
-film covered her patient beauty, and she looked troubled. The film
-swept a little aside, and I saw the edge of it against her
-clearness--the jagged outline of a bat-like wing, torn and hooked.
-Came a cold wind with a burning sting--and Lilith was upon me. Her
-hands were still bound, but with her teeth she pulled from my
-shoulder the cloak Lona made for me, and fixed them in my flesh. I
-lay as one paralysed.
-
-Already the very life seemed flowing from me into her, when I
-remembered, and struck her on the hand. She raised her head with a
-gurgling shriek, and I felt her shiver. I flung her from me, and
-sprang to my feet.
-
-She was on her knees, and rocked herself to and fro. A second blast
-of hot-stinging cold enveloped us; the moon shone out clear, and I
-saw her face--gaunt and ghastly, besmeared with red.
-
-"Down, devil!" I cried.
-
-"Where are you taking me?" she asked, with the voice of a dull echo
-from a sepulchre.
-
-"To your first husband," I answered.
-
-"He will kill me!" she moaned.
-
-"At least he will take you off my hands!"
-
-"Give me my daughter," she suddenly screamed, grinding her teeth.
-
-"Never! Your doom is upon you at last!"
-
-"Loose my hands for pity's sake!" she groaned. "I am in torture.
-The cords are sunk in my flesh."
-
-"I dare not. Lie down!" I said.
-
-She threw herself on the ground like a log.
-
-The rest of the night passed in peace, and in the morning she again
-seemed dead.
-
-Before evening we came in sight of the House of Bitterness, and the
-next moment one of the elephants came alongside of my horse.
-
-"Please, king, you are not going to that place?" whispered the
-Little One who rode on his neck.
-
-"Indeed I am! We are going to stay the night there," I answered.
-
-"Oh, please, don't! That must be where the cat-woman lives!"
-
-"If you had ever seen her, you would not call her by that name!"
-
-"Nobody ever sees her: she has lost her face! Her head is back and
-side all round."
-
-"She hides her face from dull, discontented people!--Who taught you
-to call her the cat-woman?"
-
-"I heard the bad giants call her so."
-
-"What did they say about her?"
-
-"That she had claws to her toes."
-
-"It is not true. I know the lady. I spent a night at her house."
-
-"But she MAY have claws to her toes! You might see her feet, and
-her claws be folded up inside their cushions!"
-
-"Then perhaps you think that I have claws to my toes?"
-
-"Oh, no; that can't be! you are good!"
-
-"The giants might have told you so!" I pursued.
-
-"We shouldn't believe them about you!"
-
-"Are the giants good?"
-
-"No; they love lying."
-
-"Then why do you believe them about her? I know the lady is good;
-she cannot have claws."
-
-"Please how do you know she is good?"
-
-"How do you know I am good?"
-
-I rode on, while he waited for his companions, and told them what
-I had said.
-
-They hastened after me, and when they came up,--
-
-"I would not take you to her house if I did not believe her good,"
-I said.
-
-"We know you would not," they answered.
-
-"If I were to do something that frightened you--what would you say?"
-
-"The beasts frightened us sometimes at first, but they never hurt
-us!" answered one.
-
-"That was before we knew them!" added another.
-
-"Just so!" I answered. "When you see the woman in that cottage, you
-will know that she is good. You may wonder at what she does, but
-she will always be good. I know her better than you know me. She
-will not hurt you,--or if she does,----"
-
-"Ah, you are not sure about it, king dear! You think she MAY hurt
-us!"
-
-"I am sure she will never be unkind to you, even if she do hurt you!"
-
-They were silent for a while.
-
-"I'm not afraid of being hurt--a little!--a good deal!" cried Odu.
-"But I should not like scratches in the dark! The giants say the
-cat-woman has claw-feet all over her house!"
-
-"I am taking the princess to her," I said.
-
-"Why?"
-
-"Because she is her friend."
-
-"How can she be good then?"
-
-"Little Tumbledown is a friend of the princess," I answered; "so is
-Luva: I saw them both, more than once, trying to feed her with
-grapes!"
-
-"Little Tumbledown is good! Luva is very good!"
-
-"That is why they are her friends."
-
-"Will the cat-woman--I mean the woman that isn't the cat-woman, and
-has no claws to her toes--give her grapes?"
-
-"She is more likely to give her scratches!"
-
-"Why?--You say she is her friend!"
-
-"That is just why.--A friend is one who gives us what we need, and
-the princess is sorely in need of a terrible scratching."
-
-They were silent again.
-
-"If any of you are afraid," I said, "you may go home; I shall not
-prevent you. But I cannot take one with me who believes the giants
-rather than me, or one who will call a good lady the cat-woman!"
-
-"Please, king," said one, "I'm so afraid of being afraid!"
-
-"My boy," I answered, "there is no harm in being afraid. The only
-harm is in doing what Fear tells you. Fear is not your master!
-Laugh in his face and he will run away."
-
-"There she is--in the door waiting for us!" cried one, and put his
-hands over his eyes.
-
-"How ugly she is!" cried another, and did the same.
-
-"You do not see her," I said; "her face is covered!"
-
-"She has no face!" they answered.
-
-"She has a very beautiful face. I saw it once.--It is indeed as
-beautiful as Lona's!" I added with a sigh.
-
-"Then what makes her hide it?"
-
-"I think I know:--anyhow, she has some good reason for it!"
-
-"I don't like the cat-woman! she is frightful!"
-
-"You cannot like, and you ought not to dislike what you have never
-seen.--Once more, you must not call her the cat-woman!"
-
-"What are we to call her then, please?"
-
-"Lady Mara."
-
-"That is a pretty name!" said a girl; "I will call her `lady Mara';
-then perhaps she will show me her beautiful face!"
-
-Mara, drest and muffled in white, was indeed standing in the doorway
-to receive us.
-
-"At last!" she said. "Lilith's hour has been long on the way, but it
-is come! Everything comes. Thousands of years have I waited--and
-not in vain!"
-
-She came to me, took my treasure from my arms, carried it into the
-house, and returning, took the princess. Lilith shuddered, but
-made no resistance. The beasts lay down by the door. We followed
-our hostess, the Little Ones looking very grave. She laid the
-princess on a rough settle at one side of the room, unbound her,
-and turned to us.
-
-"Mr. Vane," she said, "and you, Little Ones, I thank you! This
-woman would not yield to gentler measures; harder must have their
-turn. I must do what I can to make her repent!"
-
-The pitiful-hearted Little Ones began to sob sorely.
-
-"Will you hurt her very much, lady Mara?" said the girl I have just
-mentioned, putting her warm little hand in mine.
-
-"Yes; I am afraid I must; I fear she will make me!" answered Mara.
-"It would be cruel to hurt her too little. It would have all to be
-done again, only worse."
-
-"May I stop with her?"
-
-"No, my child. She loves no one, therefore she cannot be WITH any
-one. There is One who will be with her, but she will not be with
-Him."
-
-"Will the shadow that came down the hill be with her?"
-
-"The great Shadow will be in her, I fear, but he cannot be WITH her,
-or with any one. She will know I am beside her, but that will not
-comfort her."
-
-"Will you scratch her very deep?" asked Odu, going near, and putting
-his hand in hers. "Please, don't make the red juice come!"
-
-She caught him up, turned her back to the rest of us, drew the
-muffling down from her face, and held him at arms' length that he
-might see her.
-
-As if his face had been a mirror, I saw in it what he saw. For
-one moment he stared, his little mouth open; then a divine wonder
-arose in his countenance, and swiftly changed to intense delight.
-For a minute he gazed entranced, then she set him down. Yet a
-moment he stood looking up at her, lost in contemplation--then ran
-to us with the face of a prophet that knows a bliss he cannot tell.
-Mara rearranged her mufflings, and turned to the other children.
-
-"You must eat and drink before you go to sleep," she said; "you have
-had a long journey!"
-
-She set the bread of her house before them, and a jug of cold water.
-They had never seen bread before, and this was hard and dry, but
-they ate it without sign of distaste. They had never seen water
-before, but they drank without demur, one after the other looking
-up from the draught with a face of glad astonishment. Then she led
-away the smallest, and the rest went trooping after her. With her
-own gentle hands, they told me, she put them to bed on the floor of
-the garret.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIX
-
-THAT NIGHT
-
-Their night was a troubled one, and they brought a strange report
-of it into the day. Whether the fear of their sleep came out into
-their waking, or their waking fear sank with them into their dreams,
-awake or asleep they were never at rest from it. All night something
-seemed going on in the house--something silent, something terrible,
-something they were not to know. Never a sound awoke; the darkness
-was one with the silence, and the silence was the terror.
-
-Once, a frightful wind filled the house, and shook its inside, they
-said, so that it quivered and trembled like a horse shaking himself;
-but it was a silent wind that made not even a moan in their chamber,
-and passed away like a soundless sob.
-
-They fell asleep. But they woke again with a great start. They
-thought the house was filling with water such as they had been
-drinking. It came from below, and swelled up until the garret was
-full of it to the very roof. But it made no more sound than the
-wind, and when it sank away, they fell asleep dry and warm.
-
-The next time they woke, all the air, they said, inside and out,
-was full of cats. They swarmed--up and down, along and across,
-everywhere about the room. They felt their claws trying to get
-through the night-gowns lady Mara had put on them, but they could
-not; and in the morning not one of them had a scratch. Through
-the dark suddenly, came the only sound they heard the night long--the
-far-off howl of the huge great-grandmother-cat in the desert: she
-must have been calling her little ones, they thought, for that
-instant the cats stopped, and all was still. Once more they fell
-fast asleep, and did not wake till the sun was rising.
-
-Such was the account the children gave of their experiences. But
-I was with the veiled woman and the princess all through the night:
-something of what took place I saw; much I only felt; and there was
-more which eye could not see, and heart only could in a measure
-understand.
-
-As soon as Mara left the room with the children, my eyes fell on
-the white leopardess: I thought we had left her behind us, but there
-she was, cowering in a corner. Apparently she was in mortal terror
-of what she might see. A lamp stood on the high chimney-piece, and
-sometimes the room seemed full of lamp-shadows, sometimes of cloudy
-forms. The princess lay on the settle by the wall, and seemed never
-to have moved hand or foot. It was a fearsome waiting.
-
-When Mara returned, she drew the settle with Lilith upon it to the
-middle of the room, then sat down opposite me, at the other side of
-the hearth. Between us burned a small fire.
-
-Something terrible was on its way! The cloudy presences flickered
-and shook. A silvery creature like a slowworm came crawling out
-from among them, slowly crossed the clay floor, and crept into the
-fire. We sat motionless. The something came nearer.
-
-But the hours passed, midnight drew nigh, and there was no change.
-The night was very still. Not a sound broke the silence, not a
-rustle from the fire, not a crack from board or beam. Now and again
-I felt a sort of heave, but whether in the earth or in the air or
-in the waters under the earth, whether in my own body or in my
-soul--whether it was anywhere, I could not tell. A dread sense of
-judgment was upon me. But I was not afraid, for I had ceased to
-care for aught save the thing that must be done.
-
-Suddenly it was midnight. The muffled woman rose, turned toward
-the settle, and slowly unwound the long swathes that hid her face:
-they dropped on the ground, and she stepped over them. The feet of
-the princess were toward the hearth; Mara went to her head, and
-turning, stood behind it. Then I saw her face. It was lovely
-beyond speech--white and sad, heart-and-soul sad, but not unhappy,
-and I knew it never could be unhappy. Great tears were running down
-her cheeks: she wiped them away with her robe; her countenance grew
-very still, and she wept no more. But for the pity in every line
-of her expression, she would have seemed severe. She laid her hand
-on the head of the princess--on the hair that grew low on the
-forehead, and stooping, breathed on the sallow brow. The body
-shuddered.
-
-"Will you turn away from the wicked things you have been doing so
-long?" said Mara gently.
-
-The princess did not answer. Mara put the question again, in the
-same soft, inviting tone.
-
-Still there was no sign of hearing. She spoke the words a third
-time.
-
-Then the seeming corpse opened its mouth and answered, its words
-appearing to frame themselves of something else than sound.--I
-cannot shape the thing further: sounds they were not, yet they were
-words to me.
-
-"I will not," she said. "I will be myself and not another!"
-
-"Alas, you are another now, not yourself! Will you not be your real
-self?"
-
-"I will be what I mean myself now."
-
-"If you were restored, would you not make what amends you could for
-the misery you have caused?"
-
-"I would do after my nature."
-
-"You do not know it: your nature is good, and you do evil!"
-
-"I will do as my Self pleases--as my Self desires."
-
-"You will do as the Shadow, overshadowing your Self inclines you?"
-
-"I will do what I will to do."
-
-"You have killed your daughter, Lilith!"
-
-"I have killed thousands. She is my own!"
-
-"She was never yours as you are another's."
-
-"I am not another's; I am my own, and my daughter is mine."
-
-"Then, alas, your hour is come!"
-
-"I care not. I am what I am; no one can take from me myself!"
-
-"You are not the Self you imagine."
-
-"So long as I feel myself what it pleases me to think myself, I care
-not. I am content to be to myself what I would be. What I choose
-to seem to myself makes me what I am. My own thought makes me me;
-my own thought of myself is me. Another shall not make me!"
-
-"But another has made you, and can compel you to see what you have
-made yourself. You will not be able much longer to look to yourself
-anything but what he sees you! You will not much longer have
-satisfaction in the thought of yourself. At this moment you are
-aware of the coming change!"
-
-"No one ever made me. I defy that Power to unmake me from a free
-woman! You are his slave, and I defy you! You may be able to
-torture me--I do not know, but you shall not compel me to anything
-against my will!"
-
-"Such a compulsion would be without value. But there is a light
-that goes deeper than the will, a light that lights up the darkness
-behind it: that light can change your will, can make it truly yours
-and not another's--not the Shadow's. Into the created can pour
-itself the creating will, and so redeem it!"
-
-"That light shall not enter me: I hate it!--Begone, slave!"
-
-"I am no slave, for I love that light, and will with the deeper
-will which created mine. There is no slave but the creature that
-wills against its creator. Who is a slave but her who cries, `I am
-free,' yet cannot cease to exist!"
-
-"You speak foolishness from a cowering heart! You imagine me given
-over to you: I defy you! I hold myself against you! What I choose
-to be, you cannot change. I will not be what you think me--what you
-say I am!"
-
-"I am sorry: you must suffer!"
-
-"But be free!"
-
-"She alone is free who would make free; she loves not freedom who
-would enslave: she is herself a slave. Every life, every will,
-every heart that came within your ken, you have sought to subdue:
-you are the slave of every slave you have made--such a slave that
-you do not know it!--See your own self!"
-
-She took her hand from the head of the princess, and went two
-backward paces from her.
-
-A soundless presence as of roaring flame possessed the house--
-the same, I presume, that was to the children a silent wind.
-Involuntarily I turned to the hearth: its fire was a still small
-moveless glow. But I saw the worm-thing come creeping out,
-white-hot, vivid as incandescent silver, the live heart of essential
-fire. Along the floor it crawled toward the settle, going very
-slow. Yet more slowly it crept up on it, and laid itself, as
-unwilling to go further, at the feet of the princess. I rose and
-stole nearer. Mara stood motionless, as one that waits an event
-foreknown. The shining thing crawled on to a bare bony foot: it
-showed no suffering, neither was the settle scorched where the worm
-had lain. Slowly, very slowly, it crept along her robe until it
-reached her bosom, where it disappeared among the folds.
-
-The face of the princess lay stonily calm, the eyelids closed as
-over dead eyes; and for some minutes nothing followed. At length,
-on the dry, parchment-like skin, began to appear drops as of the
-finest dew: in a moment they were as large as seed-pearls, ran
-together, and began to pour down in streams. I darted forward to
-snatch the worm from the poor withered bosom, and crush it with my
-foot. But Mara, Mother of Sorrow, stepped between, and drew aside
-the closed edges of the robe: no serpent was there--no searing trail;
-the creature had passed in by the centre of the black spot, and was
-piercing through the joints and marrow to the thoughts and intents
-of the heart. The princess gave one writhing, contorted shudder,
-and I knew the worm was in her secret chamber.
-
-"She is seeing herself!" said Mara; and laying her hand on my arm,
-she drew me three paces from the settle.
-
-Of a sudden the princess bent her body upward in an arch, then
-sprang to the floor, and stood erect. The horror in her face made
-me tremble lest her eyes should open, and the sight of them overwhelm
-me. Her bosom heaved and sank, but no breath issued. Her hair hung
-and dripped; then it stood out from her head and emitted sparks;
-again hung down, and poured the sweat of her torture on the floor.
-
-I would have thrown my arms about her, but Mara stopped me.
-
-"You cannot go near her," she said. "She is far away from us, afar
-in the hell of her self-consciousness. The central fire of the
-universe is radiating into her the knowledge of good and evil, the
-knowledge of what she is. She sees at last the good she is not,
-the evil she is. She knows that she is herself the fire in which
-she is burning, but she does not know that the Light of Life is the
-heart of that fire. Her torment is that she is what she is. Do
-not fear for her; she is not forsaken. No gentler way to help her
-was left. Wait and watch."
-
-It may have been five minutes or five years that she stood thus--I
-cannot tell; but at last she flung herself on her face.
-
-Mara went to her, and stood looking down upon her. Large tears
-fell from her eyes on the woman who had never wept, and would not
-weep.
-
-"Will you change your way?" she said at length.
-
-"Why did he make me such?" gasped Lilith. "I would have made
-myself--oh, so different! I am glad it was he that made me and not
-I myself! He alone is to blame for what I am! Never would I have
-made such a worthless thing! He meant me such that I might know it
-and be miserable! I will not be made any longer!"
-
-"Unmake yourself, then," said Mara.
-
-"Alas, I cannot! You know it, and mock me! How often have I not
-agonised to cease, but the tyrant keeps me being! I curse him!--Now
-let him kill me!"
-
-The words came in jets as from a dying fountain.
-
-"Had he not made you," said Mara, gently and slowly, "you could not
-even hate him. But he did not make you such. You have made
-yourself what you are.--Be of better cheer: he can remake you."
-
-"I will not be remade!"
-
-"He will not change you; he will only restore you to what you were."
-
-"I will not be aught of his making."
-
-"Are you not willing to have that set right which you have set
-wrong?"
-
-She lay silent; her suffering seemed abated.
-
-"If you are willing, put yourself again on the settle."
-
-"I will not," she answered, forcing the words through her clenched
-teeth.
-
-A wind seemed to wake inside the house, blowing without sound or
-impact; and a water began to rise that had no lap in its ripples,
-no sob in its swell. It was cold, but it did not benumb. Unseen
-and noiseless it came. It smote no sense in me, yet I knew it
-rising. I saw it lift at last and float her. Gently it bore her,
-unable to resist, and left rather than laid her on the settle. Then
-it sank swiftly away.
-
-The strife of thought, accusing and excusing, began afresh, and
-gathered fierceness. The soul of Lilith lay naked to the torture
-of pure interpenetrating inward light. She began to moan, and sigh
-deep sighs, then murmur as holding colloquy with a dividual self:
-her queendom was no longer whole; it was divided against itself.
-One moment she would exult as over her worst enemy, and weep; the
-next she would writhe as in the embrace of a friend whom her soul
-hated, and laugh like a demon. At length she began what seemed a
-tale about herself, in a language so strange, and in forms so
-shadowy, that I could but here and there understand a little. Yet
-the language seemed the primeval shape of one I knew well, and the
-forms to belong to dreams which had once been mine, but refused to
-be recalled. The tale appeared now and then to touch upon things
-that Adam had read from the disparted manuscript, and often to make
-allusion to influences and forces--vices too, I could not help
-suspecting--with which I was unacquainted.
-
-She ceased, and again came the horror in her hair, the sparkling
-and flowing alternate. I sent a beseeching look to Mara.
-
-"Those, alas, are not the tears of repentance!" she said. "The
-true tears gather in the eyes. Those are far more bitter, and not
-so good. Self-loathing is not sorrow. Yet it is good, for it marks
-a step in the way home, and in the father's arms the prodigal
-forgets the self he abominates. Once with his father, he is to
-himself of no more account. It will be so with her."
-
-She went nearer and said,
-
-"Will you restore that which you have wrongfully taken?"
-
-"I have taken nothing," answered the princess, forcing out the words
-in spite of pain, "that I had not the right to take. My power to
-take manifested my right."
-
-Mara left her.
-
-Gradually my soul grew aware of an invisible darkness, a something
-more terrible than aught that had yet made itself felt. A horrible
-Nothingness, a Negation positive infolded her; the border of its
-being that was yet no being, touched me, and for one ghastly instant
-I seemed alone with Death Absolute! It was not the absence of
-everything I felt, but the presence of Nothing. The princess dashed
-herself from the settle to the floor with an exceeding great and
-bitter cry. It was the recoil of Being from Annihilation.
-
-"For pity's sake," she shrieked, "tear my heart out, but let me
-live!"
-
-With that there fell upon her, and upon us also who watched with
-her, the perfect calm as of a summer night. Suffering had all but
-reached the brim of her life's cup, and a hand had emptied it! She
-raised her head, half rose, and looked around her. A moment more,
-and she stood erect, with the air of a conqueror: she had won the
-battle! Dareful she had met her spiritual foes; they had withdrawn
-defeated! She raised her withered arm above her head, a pæan of
-unholy triumph in her throat--when suddenly her eyes fixed in a
-ghastly stare.--What was she seeing?
-
-I looked, and saw: before her, cast from unseen heavenly mirror,
-stood the reflection of herself, and beside it a form of splendent
-beauty, She trembled, and sank again on the floor helpless. She
-knew the one what God had intended her to be, the other what she
-had made herself.
-
-The rest of the night she lay motionless altogether.
-
-With the gray dawn growing in the room, she rose, turned to Mara,
-and said, in prideful humility, "You have conquered. Let me go into
-the wilderness and bewail myself."
-
-Mara saw that her submission was not feigned, neither was it real.
-She looked at her a moment, and returned:
-
-"Begin, then, and set right in the place of wrong."
-
-"I know not how," she replied--with the look of one who foresaw and
-feared the answer.
-
-"Open thy hand, and let that which is in it go."
-
-A fierce refusal seemed to struggle for passage, but she kept it
-prisoned.
-
-"I cannot," she said. "I have no longer the power. Open it for
-me."
-
-She held out the offending hand. It was more a paw than a hand. It
-seemed to me plain that she could not open it.
-
-Mara did not even look at it.
-
-"You must open it yourself," she said quietly.
-
-"I have told you I cannot!"
-
-"You can if you will--not indeed at once, but by persistent effort.
-What you have done, you do not yet wish undone--do not yet intend
-to undo!"
-
-"You think so, I dare say," rejoined the princess with a flash of
-insolence, "but I KNOW that I cannot open my hand!"
-
-"I know you better than you know yourself, and I know you can. You
-have often opened it a little way. Without trouble and pain you
-cannot open it quite, but you CAN open it. At worst you could beat
-it open! I pray you, gather your strength, and open it wide."
-
-"I will not try what I know impossible. It would be the part of a
-fool!"
-
-"Which you have been playing all your life! Oh, you are hard to
-teach!"
-
-Defiance reappeared on the face of the princess. She turned her back
-on Mara, saying, "I know what you have been tormenting me for! You
-have not succeeded, nor shall you succeed! You shall yet find me
-stronger than you think! I will yet be mistress of myself! I am
-still what I have always known myself--queen of Hell, and mistress
-of the worlds!"
-
-Then came the most fearful thing of all. I did not know what it
-was; I knew myself unable to imagine it; I knew only that if it
-came near me I should die of terror! I now know that it was LIFE
-IN DEATH--life dead, yet existent; and I knew that Lilith had had
-glimpses, but only glimpses of it before: it had never been with
-her until now.
-
-She stood as she had turned. Mara went and sat down by the fire.
-Fearing to stand alone with the princess, I went also and sat again
-by the hearth. Something began to depart from me. A sense of cold,
-yet not what we call cold, crept, not into, but out of my being,
-and pervaded it. The lamp of life and the eternal fire seemed dying
-together, and I about to be left with naught but the consciousness
-that I had been alive. Mercifully, bereavement did not go so far,
-and my thought went back to Lilith.
-
-Something was taking place in her which we did not know. We knew
-we did not feel what she felt, but we knew we felt something of the
-misery it caused her. The thing itself was in her, not in us; its
-reflex, her misery, reached us, and was again reflected in us: she
-was in the outer darkness, we present with her who was in it! We
-were not in the outer darkness; had we been, we could not have been
-WITH her; we should have been timelessly, spacelessly, absolutely
-apart. The darkness knows neither the light nor itself; only the
-light knows itself and the darkness also. None but God hates evil
-and understands it.
-
-Something was gone from her, which then first, by its absence, she
-knew to have been with her every moment of her wicked years. The
-source of life had withdrawn itself; all that was left her of
-conscious being was the dregs of her dead and corrupted life.
-
-She stood rigid. Mara buried her head in her hands. I gazed on
-the face of one who knew existence but not love--knew nor life,
-nor joy, nor good; with my eyes I saw the face of a live death!
-She knew life only to know that it was dead, and that, in her,
-death lived. It was not merely that life had ceased in her, but
-that she was consciously a dead thing. She had killed her life,
-and was dead--and knew it. She must DEATH IT for ever and ever!
-She had tried her hardest to unmake herself, and could not! she was
-a dead life! she could not cease! she must BE! In her face I saw
-and read beyond its misery--saw in its dismay that the dismay behind
-it was more than it could manifest. It sent out a livid gloom;
-the light that was in her was darkness, and after its kind it shone.
-She was what God could not have created. She had usurped beyond
-her share in self-creation, and her part had undone His! She saw
-now what she had made, and behold, it was not good! She was as a
-conscious corpse, whose coffin would never come to pieces, never
-set her free! Her bodily eyes stood wide open, as if gazing into
-the heart of horror essential--her own indestructible evil. Her
-right hand also was now clenched--upon existent Nothing--her
-inheritance!
-
-But with God all things are possible: He can save even the rich!
-
-Without change of look, without sign of purpose, Lilith walked
-toward Mara. She felt her coming, and rose to meet her.
-
-"I yield," said the princess. "I cannot hold out. I am defeated.
---Not the less, I cannot open my hand."
-
-"Have you tried?"
-
-"I am trying now with all my might."
-
-"I will take you to my father. You have wronged him worst of the
-created, therefore he best of the created can help you."
-
-"How can HE help me?"
-
-"He will forgive you."
-
-"Ah, if he would but help me to cease! Not even that am I capable
-of! I have no power over myself; I am a slave! I acknowledge it.
-Let me die."
-
-"A slave thou art that shall one day be a child!" answered
-Mara.--"Verily, thou shalt die, but not as thou thinkest. Thou
-shalt die out of death into life. Now is the Life for, that never
-was against thee!"
-
-Like her mother, in whom lay the motherhood of all the world, Mara
-put her arms around Lilith, and kissed her on the forehead. The
-fiery-cold misery went out of her eyes, and their fountains filled.
-She lifted, and bore her to her own bed in a corner of the room,
-laid her softly upon it, and closed her eyes with caressing hands.
-
-Lilith lay and wept. The Lady of Sorrow went to the door and opened
-it.
-
-Morn, with the Spring in her arms, waited outside. Softly they
-stole in at the opened door, with a gentle wind in the skirts of
-their garments. It flowed and flowed about Lilith, rippling the
-unknown, upwaking sea of her life eternal; rippling and to ripple
-it, until at length she who had been but as a weed cast on the
-dry sandy shore to wither, should know herself an inlet of the
-everlasting ocean, henceforth to flow into her for ever, and ebb
-no more. She answered the morning wind with reviving breath,
-and began to listen. For in the skirts of the wind had come the
-rain--the soft rain that heals the mown, the many-wounded
-grass--soothing it with the sweetness of all music, the hush that
-lives between music and silence. It bedewed the desert places
-around the cottage, and the sands of Lilith's heart heard it, and
-drank it in. When Mara returned to sit by her bed, her tears were
-flowing softer than the rain, and soon she was fast asleep.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XL
-
-THE HOUSE OF DEATH
-
-The Mother of Sorrows rose, muffled her face, and went to call the
-Little Ones. They slept as if all the night they had not moved, but
-the moment she spoke they sprang to their feet, fresh as if new-made.
-Merrily down the stair they followed her, and she brought them where
-the princess lay, her tears yet flowing as she slept. Their glad
-faces grew grave. They looked from the princess out on the rain,
-then back at the princess.
-
-"The sky is falling!" said one.
-
-"The white juice is running out of the princess!" cried another,
-with an awed look.
-
-"Is it rivers?" asked Odu, gazing at the little streams that flowed
-adown her hollow cheeks.
-
-"Yes," answered Mara, "--the most wonderful of all rivers."
-
-"I thought rivers was bigger, and rushed, like a lot of Little Ones,
-making loud noises!" he returned, looking at me, from whom alone he
-had heard of rivers.
-
-"Look at the rivers of the sky!" said Mara. "See how they come
-down to wake up the waters under the earth! Soon will the rivers
-be flowing everywhere, merry and loud, like thousands and thousands
-of happy children. Oh, how glad they will make you, Little Ones!
-You have never seen any, and do not know how lovely is the water!"
-
-"That will be the glad of the ground that the princess is grown
-good," said Odu. "See the glad of the sky!"
-
-"Are the rivers the glad of the princess?" asked Luva. "They are
-not her juice, for they are not red!"
-
-"They are the juice inside the juice," answered Mara.
-
-Odu put one finger to his eye, looked at it, and shook his head.
-
-"Princess will not bite now!" said Luva.
-
-"No; she will never do that again," replied Mara. "--But now we
-must take her nearer home."
-
-"Is that a nest?" asked Sozo.
-
-"Yes; a very big nest. But we must take her to another place first."
-
-"What is that?"
-
-"It is the biggest room in all this world.--But I think it is going
-to be pulled down: it will soon be too full of little nests.--Go
-and get your clumsies."
-
-"Please are there any cats in it?"
-
-"Not one. The nests are too full of lovely dreams for one cat to
-get in."
-
-"We shall be ready in a minute," said Odu, and ran out, followed by
-all except Luva.
-
-Lilith was now awake, and listening with a sad smile.
-
-"But her rivers are running so fast!" said Luva, who stood by her
-side and seemed unable to take her eyes from her face. "Her robe
-is all--I don't know what. Clumsies won't like it!"
-
-"They won't mind it," answered Mara. "Those rivers are so clean
-that they make the whole world clean."
-
-I had fallen asleep by the fire, but for some time had been awake
-and listening, and now rose.
-
-"It is time to mount, Mr. Vane," said our hostess.
-
-"Tell me, please," I said, "is there not a way by which to avoid
-the channels and the den of monsters?"
-
-"There is an easy way across the river-bed, which I will show you,"
-she answered; "but you must pass once more through the monsters."
-
-"I fear for the children," I said.
-
-"Fear will not once come nigh them," she rejoined.
-
-We left the cottage. The beasts stood waiting about the door. Odu
-was already on the neck of one of the two that were to carry the
-princess. I mounted Lona's horse; Mara brought her body, and gave
-it me in my arms. When she came out again with the princess, a cry
-of delight arose from the children: she was no longer muffled!
-Gazing at her, and entranced with her loveliness, the boys forgot
-to receive the princess from her; but the elephants took Lilith
-tenderly with their trunks, one round her body and one round her
-knees, and, Mara helping, laid her along between them.
-
-"Why does the princess want to go?" asked a small boy. "She would
-keep good if she staid here!"
-
-"She wants to go, and she does not want to go: we are helping her,"
-answered Mara. "She will not keep good here."
-
-"What are you helping her to do?" he went on.
-
-"To go where she will get more help--help to open her hand, which
-has been closed for a thousand years."
-
-"So long? Then she has learned to do without it: why should she
-open it now?"
-
-"Because it is shut upon something that is not hers."
-
-"Please, lady Mara, may we have some of your very dry bread before
-we go?" said Luva.
-
-Mara smiled, and brought them four loaves and a great jug of water.
-
-"We will eat as we go," they said. But they drank the water with
-delight.
-
-"I think," remarked one of them, "it must be elephant-juice! It
-makes me so strong!"
-
-We set out, the Lady of Sorrow walking with us, more beautiful than
-the sun, and the white leopardess following her. I thought she
-meant but to put us in the path across the channels, but I soon
-found she was going with us all the way. Then I would have
-dismounted that she might ride, but she would not let me.
-
-"I have no burden to carry," she said. "The children and I will
-walk together."
-
-It was the loveliest of mornings; the sun shone his brightest, and
-the wind blew his sweetest, but they did not comfort the desert,
-for it had no water.
-
-We crossed the channels without difficulty, the children gamboling
-about Mara all the way, but did not reach the top of the ridge over
-the bad burrow until the sun was already in the act of disappearing.
-Then I made the Little Ones mount their elephants, for the moon
-might be late, and I could not help some anxiety about them.
-
-The Lady of Sorrow now led the way by my side; the elephants
-followed--the two that bore the princess in the centre; the
-leopardess brought up the rear; and just as we reached the frightful
-margin, the moon looked up and showed the shallow basin lying before
-us untroubled. Mara stepped into it; not a movement answered her
-tread or the feet of my horse. But the moment that the elephants
-carrying the princess touched it, the seemingly solid earth began
-to heave and boil, and the whole dread brood of the hellish nest was
-commoved. Monsters uprose on all sides, every neck at full length,
-every beak and claw outstretched, every mouth agape. Long-billed
-heads, horribly jawed faces, knotty tentacles innumerable, went out
-after Lilith. She lay in an agony of fear, nor dared stir a finger.
-Whether the hideous things even saw the children, I doubt; certainly
-not one of them touched a child; not one loathly member passed the
-live rampart of her body-guard, to lay hold of her.
-
-"Little Ones," I cried, "keep your elephants close about the
-princess. Be brave; they will not touch you."
-
-"What will not touch us? We don't know what to be brave at!" they
-answered; and I perceived they were unaware of one of the deformities
-around them.
-
-"Never mind then," I returned; "only keep close."
-
-They were panoplied in their blindness! Incapacity to see was their
-safety. What they could nowise be aware of, could not hurt them.
-
-But the hideous forms I saw that night! Mara was a few paces in
-front of me when a solitary, bodiless head bounced on the path
-between us. The leopardess came rushing under the elephants from
-behind, and would have seized it, but, with frightful contortions of
-visage and a loathsome howl, it gave itself a rapid rotatory twist,
-sprang from her, and buried itself in the ground. The death in my
-arms assoiling me from fear, I regarded them all unmoved, although
-never, sure, was elsewhere beheld such a crew accursed!
-
-Mara still went in front of me, and the leopardess now walked close
-behind her, shivering often, for it was very cold, when suddenly
-the ground before me to my left began to heave, and a low wave of
-earth came slinking toward us. It rose higher as it drew hear; out
-of it slouched a dreadful head with fleshy tubes for hair, and
-opening a great oval mouth, snapped at me. The leopardess sprang,
-but fell baffled beyond it.
-
-Almost under our feet, shot up the head of an enormous snake, with
-a lamping wallowing glare in its eyes. Again the leopardess rushed
-to the attack, but found nothing. At a third monster she darted
-with like fury, and like failure--then sullenly ceased to heed
-the phantom-horde. But I understood the peril and hastened the
-crossing--the rather that the moon was carrying herself strangely.
-Even as she rose she seemed ready to drop and give up the attempt
-as hopeless; and since, I saw her sink back once fully her own
-breadth. The arc she made was very low, and now she had begun to
-descend rapidly.
-
-We were almost over, when, between us and the border of the basin,
-arose a long neck, on the top of which, like the blossom of some
-Stygian lily, sat what seemed the head of a corpse, its mouth half
-open, and full of canine teeth. I went on; it retreated, then drew
-aside. The lady stepped on the firm land, but the leopardess
-between us, roused once more, turned, and flew at the throat of
-the terror. I remained where I was to see the elephants, with the
-princess and the children, safe on the bank. Then I turned to look
-after the leopardess. That moment the moon went down, For an instant
-I saw the leopardess and the snake-monster convolved in a cloud of
-dust; then darkness hid them. Trembling with fright, my horse
-wheeled, and in three bounds overtook the elephants.
-
-As we came up with them, a shapeless jelly dropped on the princess.
-A white dove dropped immediately on the jelly, stabbing it with its
-beak. It made a squelching, sucking sound, and fell off. Then I
-heard the voice of a woman talking with Mara, and I knew the voice.
-
-"I fear she is dead!" said Mara.
-
-"I will send and find her," answered the mother. "But why, Mara,
-shouldst thou at all fear for her or for any one? Death cannot hurt
-her who dies doing the work given her to do."
-
-"I shall miss her sorely; she is good and wise. Yet I would not
-have her live beyond her hour!"
-
-"She has gone down with the wicked; she will rise with the righteous.
-We shall see her again ere very long."
-
-"Mother," I said, although I did not see her, "we come to you many,
-but most of us are Little Ones. Will you be able to receive us all?"
-
-"You are welcome every one," she answered. "Sooner or later all
-will be little ones, for all must sleep in my house! It is well
-with those that go to sleep young and willing!--My husband is even
-now preparing her couch for Lilith. She is neither young nor quite
-willing, but it is well indeed that she is come."
-
-I heard no more. Mother and daughter had gone away together through
-the dark. But we saw a light in the distance, and toward it we
-went stumbling over the moor.
-
-Adam stood in the door, holding the candle to guide us, and talking
-with his wife, who, behind him, laid bread and wine on the table
-within.
-
-"Happy children," I heard her say, "to have looked already on the
-face of my daughter! Surely it is the loveliest in the great
-world!"
-
-When we reached the door, Adam welcomed us almost merrily. He set
-the candle on the threshold, and going to the elephants, would have
-taken the princess to carry her in; but she repulsed him, and
-pushing her elephants asunder, stood erect between them. They
-walked from beside her, and left her with him who had been her
-husband--ashamed indeed of her gaunt uncomeliness, but unsubmissive.
-He stood with a welcome in his eyes that shone through their
-severity.
-
-"We have long waited for thee, Lilith!" he said.
-
-She returned him no answer.
-
-Eve and her daughter came to the door.
-
-"The mortal foe of my children!" murmured Eve, standing radiant in
-her beauty.
-
-"Your children are no longer in her danger," said Mara; "she has
-turned from evil."
-
-"Trust her not hastily, Mara," answered her mother; "she has deceived
-a multitude!"
-
-"But you will open to her the mirror of the Law of Liberty, mother,
-that she may go into it, and abide in it! She consents to open
-her hand and restore: will not the great Father restore her to
-inheritance with His other children?"
-
-"I do not know Him!" murmured Lilith, in a voice of fear and doubt.
-
-"Therefore it is that thou art miserable," said Adam.
-
-"I will go back whence I came!" she cried, and turned, wringing her
-hands, to depart.
-
-"That is indeed what I would have thee do, where I would have thee
-go--to Him from whom thou camest! In thy agony didst thou not cry
-out for Him?"
-
-"I cried out for Death--to escape Him and thee!"
-
-"Death is even now on his way to lead thee to Him. Thou knowest
-neither Death nor the Life that dwells in Death! Both befriend thee.
-I am dead, and would see thee dead, for I live and love thee. Thou
-art weary and heavy-laden: art thou not ashamed? Is not the being
-thou hast corrupted become to thee at length an evil thing? Wouldst
-thou yet live on in disgrace eternal? Cease thou canst not: wilt
-thou not be restored and BE?"
-
-She stood silent with bowed head.
-
-"Father," said Mara, "take her in thine arms, and carry her to her
-couch. There she will open her hand, and die into life."
-
-"I will walk," said the princess.
-
-Adam turned and led the way. The princess walked feebly after him
-into the cottage.
-
-Then Eve came out to me where I sat with Lona in my bosom. She
-reached up her arms, took her from me, and carried her in. I
-dismounted, and the children also. The horse and the elephants
-stood shivering; Mara patted and stroked them every one; they lay
-down and fell asleep. She led us into the cottage, and gave the
-Little Ones of the bread and wine on the table. Adam and Lilith
-were standing there together, but silent both.
-
-Eve came from the chamber of death, where she had laid Lona down,
-and offered of the bread and wine to the princess.
-
-"Thy beauty slays me! It is death I would have, not food!" said
-Lilith, and turned from her.
-
-"This food will help thee to die," answered Eve.
-
-But Lilith would not taste of it.
-
-"If thou wilt nor eat nor drink, Lilith," said Adam, "come and see
-the place where thou shalt lie in peace."
-
-He led the way through the door of death, and she followed
-submissive. But when her foot crossed the threshold she drew it
-back, and pressed her hand to her bosom, struck through with the
-cold immortal.
-
-A wild blast fell roaring on the roof, and died away in a moan.
-She stood ghastly with terror.
-
-"It is he!" said her voiceless lips: I read their motion.
-
-"Who, princess!" I whispered.
-
-"The great Shadow," she murmured.
-
-"Here he cannot enter," said Adam. "Here he can hurt no one. Over
-him also is power given me."
-
-"Are the children in the house?" asked Lilith, and at the word the
-heart of Eve began to love her.
-
-"He never dared touch a child," she said. "Nor have you either
-ever hurt a child. Your own daughter you have but sent into the
-loveliest sleep, for she was already a long time dead when you slew
-her. And now Death shall be the atonemaker; you shall sleep
-together."
-
-"Wife," said Adam, "let us first put the children to bed, that she
-may see them safe!"
-
-He came back to fetch them. As soon as he was gone, the princess
-knelt to Eve, clasped her knees, and said,
-
-"Beautiful Eve, persuade your husband to kill me: to you he will
-listen! Indeed I would but cannot open my hand."
-
-"You cannot die without opening it. To kill you would not serve
-you," answered Eve. "But indeed he cannot! no one can kill you but
-the Shadow; and whom he kills never knows she is dead, but lives to
-do his will, and thinks she is doing her own."
-
-"Show me then to my grave; I am so weary I can live no longer. I
-must go to the Shadow--yet I would not!"
-
-She did not, could not understand!
-
-She struggled to rise, but fell at the feet of Eve. The Mother
-lifted, and carried her inward.
-
-I followed Adam and Mara and the children into the chamber of death.
-We passed Eve with Lilith in her arms, and went farther in.
-
-"You shall not go to the Shadow," I heard Eve say, as we passed
-them. "Even now is his head under my heel!"
-
-The dim light in Adam's hand glimmered on the sleeping faces, and
-as he went on, the darkness closed over them. The very air seemed
-dead: was it because none of the sleepers breathed it? Profoundest
-sleep filled the wide place. It was as if not one had waked since
-last I was there, for the forms I had then noted lay there still.
-My father was just as I had left him, save that he seemed yet nearer
-to a perfect peace. The woman beside him looked younger.
-
-The darkness, the cold, the silence, the still air, the faces of
-the lovely dead, made the hearts of the children beat softly, but
-their little tongues would talk--with low, hushed voices.
-
-"What a curious place to sleep in!" said one, "I would rather be
-in my nest!"
-"It is SO cold!" said another.
-
-"Yes, it is cold," answered our host; "but you will not be cold in
-your sleep."
-
-"Where are our nests?" asked more than one, looking round and seeing
-no couch unoccupied.
-
-"Find places, and sleep where you choose," replied Adam.
-
-Instantly they scattered, advancing fearlessly beyond the light,
-but we still heard their gentle voices, and it was plain they saw
-where I could not.
-
-"Oh," cried one, "here is such a beautiful lady!--may I sleep beside
-her? I will creep in quietly, and not wake her."
-
-"Yes, you may," answered the voice of Eve behind us; and we came to
-the couch while the little fellow was yet creeping slowly and softly
-under the sheet. He laid his head beside the lady's, looked up at
-us, and was still. His eyelids fell; he was asleep.
-
-We went a little farther, and there was another who had climbed up
-on the couch of a woman.
-
-"Mother! mother!" he cried, kneeling over her, his face close to
-hers. "--She's so cold she can't speak," he said, looking up to us;
-"but I will soon make her warm!"
-
-He lay down, and pressing close to her, put his little arm over her.
-In an instant he too was asleep, smiling an absolute content.
-
-We came to a third Little One; it was Luva. She stood on tiptoe,
-leaning over the edge of a couch.
-
-"My own mother wouldn't have me," she said softly: "will you?"
-
-Receiving no reply, she looked up at Eve. The great mother lifted
-her to the couch, and she got at once under the snowy covering.
-
-Each of the Little Ones had by this time, except three of the boys,
-found at least an unobjecting bedfellow, and lay still and white
-beside a still, white woman. The little orphans had adopted
-mothers! One tiny girl had chosen a father to sleep with, and that
-was mine. A boy lay by the side of the beautiful matron with the
-slow-healing hand. On the middle one of the three couches hitherto
-unoccupied, lay Lona.
-
-Eve set Lilith down beside it. Adam pointed to the vacant couch
-on Lona's right hand, and said,
-
-"There, Lilith, is the bed I have prepared for you!"
-
-She glanced at her daughter lying before her like a statue carved
-in semi-transparent alabaster, and shuddered from head to foot. "How
-cold it is!" she murmured.
-
-"You will soon begin to find comfort in the cold," answered Adam.
-
-"Promises to the dying are easy!" she said.
-
-"But I know it: I too have slept. I am dead!"
-
-"I believed you dead long ago; but I see you alive!"
-
-"More alive than you know, or are able to understand. I was scarce
-alive when first you knew me. Now I have slept, and am awake; I am
-dead, and live indeed!"
-
-"I fear that child," she said, pointing to Lona: "she will rise and
-terrify me!"
-
-"She is dreaming love to you."
-
-"But the Shadow!" she moaned; "I fear the Shadow! he will be wroth
-with me!"
-
-"He at sight of whom the horses of heaven start and rear, dares not
-disturb one dream in this quiet chamber!"
-
-"I shall dream then?"
-
-"You will dream."
-
-"What dreams?"
-
-"That I cannot tell, but none HE can enter into. When the Shadow
-comes here, it will be to lie down and sleep also.--His hour will
-come, and he knows it will."
-
-"How long shall I sleep?"
-
-"You and he will be the last to wake in the morning of the universe."
-
-The princess lay down, drew the sheet over her, stretched herself
-out straight, and lay still with open eyes.
-
-Adam turned to his daughter. She drew near.
-
-"Lilith," said Mara, "you will not sleep, if you lie there a thousand
-years, until you have opened your hand, and yielded that which is
-not yours to give or to withhold."
-
-"I cannot," she answered. "I would if I could, and gladly, for I
-am weary, and the shadows of death are gathering about me."
-
-"They will gather and gather, but they cannot infold you while yet
-your hand remains unopened. You may think you are dead, but it will
-be only a dream; you may think you have come awake, but it will still
-be only a dream. Open your hand, and you will sleep indeed--then
-wake indeed."
-
-"I am trying hard, but the fingers have grown together and into the
-palm."
-
-"I pray you put forth the strength of your will. For the love of
-life, draw together your forces and break its bonds!"
-
-"I have struggled in vain; I can do no more. I am very weary, and
-sleep lies heavy upon my lids."
-
-"The moment you open your hand, you will sleep. Open it, and make
-an end."
-
-A tinge of colour arose in the parchment-like face; the contorted
-hand trembled with agonised effort. Mara took it, and sought to
-aid her.
-
-"Hold, Mara!" cried her father. "There is danger!"
-
-The princess turned her eyes upon Eve, beseechingly.
-
-"There was a sword I once saw in your husband's hands," she murmured.
-"I fled when I saw it. I heard him who bore it say it would divide
-whatever was not one and indivisible!"
-
-"I have the sword," said Adam. "The angel gave it me when he left
-the gate."
-
-"Bring it, Adam," pleaded Lilith, "and cut me off this hand that I
-may sleep."
-
-"I will," he answered.
-
-He gave the candle to Eve, and went. The princess closed her eyes.
-
-In a few minutes Adam returned with an ancient weapon in his hand.
-The scabbard looked like vellum grown dark with years, but the hilt
-shone like gold that nothing could tarnish. He drew out the blade.
-It flashed like a pale blue northern streamer, and the light of it
-made the princess open her eyes. She saw the sword, shuddered, and
-held out her hand. Adam took it. The sword gleamed once, there
-was one little gush of blood, and he laid the severed hand in Mara's
-lap. Lilith had given one moan, and was already fast asleep. Mara
-covered the arm with the sheet, and the three turned away.
-
-"Will you not dress the wound?" I said.
-
-"A wound from that sword," answered Adam, "needs no dressing. It
-is healing and not hurt."
-
-"Poor lady!" I said, "she will wake with but one hand!"
-
-"Where the dead deformity clung," replied Mara, "the true, lovely
-hand is already growing."
-
-We heard a childish voice behind us, and turned again. The candle
-in Eve's hand shone on the sleeping face of Lilith, and the waking
-faces of the three Little Ones, grouped on the other side of her
-couch.
-"How beautiful she is grown!" said one of them.
-
-"Poor princess!" said another; "I will sleep with her. She will
-not bite any more!"
-
-As he spoke he climbed into her bed, and was immediately fast asleep.
-Eve covered him with the sheet.
-
-"I will go on her other side," said the third. "She shall have two
-to kiss her when she wakes!"
-
-"And I am left alone!" said the first mournfully.
-
-"I will put you to bed," said Eve.
-
-She gave the candle to her husband, and led the child away.
-
-We turned once more to go back to the cottage. I was very sad, for
-no one had offered me a place in the house of the dead. Eve joined
-us as we went, and walked on before with her husband. Mara by my
-side carried the hand of Lilith in the lap of her robe.
-
-"Ah, you have found her!" we heard Eve say as we stepped into the
-cottage.
-
-The door stood open; two elephant-trunks came through it out of the
-night beyond.
-
-"I sent them with the lantern," she went on to her husband, "to look
-for Mara's leopardess: they have brought her."
-
-I followed Adam to the door, and between us we took the white
-creature from the elephants, and carried her to the chamber we had
-just left, the women preceding us, Eve with the light, and Mara
-still carrying the hand. There we laid the beauty across the feet
-of the princess, her fore-paws outstretched, and her head couching
-between them.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLI
-
-I AM SENT
-
-Then I turned and said to Eve,
-
-"Mother, one couch next to Lona is empty: I know I am unworthy, but
-may I not sleep this night in your chamber with my dead? Will you
-not pardon both my cowardice and my self-confidence, and take me in?
-I give me up. I am sick of myself, and would fain sleep the sleep!"
-
-"The couch next to Lona is the one already prepared for you," she
-answered; "but something waits to be done ere you sleep."
-
-"I am ready," I replied.
-
-"How do you know you can do it?" she asked with a smile.
-
-"Because you require it," I answered. "What is it?"
-
-She turned to Adam:
-
-"Is he forgiven, husband?"
-
-"From my heart."
-
-"Then tell him what he has to do."
-
-Adam turned to his daughter.
-
-"Give me that hand, Mara, my child."
-
-She held it out to him in her lap. He took it tenderly.
-
-"Let us go to the cottage," he said to me; "there I will instruct
-you."
-
-As we went, again arose a sudden stormful blast, mingled with a
-great flapping on the roof, but it died away as before in a deep
-moan.
-
-When the door of the death-chamber was closed behind us, Adam seated
-himself, and I stood before him.
-
-"You will remember," he said, "how, after leaving my daughter's
-house, you came to a dry rock, bearing the marks of an ancient
-cataract; you climbed that rock, and found a sandy desert: go to
-that rock now, and from its summit walk deep into the desert. But
-go not many steps ere you lie down, and listen with your head on
-the sand. If you hear the murmur of water beneath, go a little
-farther, and listen again. If you still hear the sound, you are
-in the right direction. Every few yards you must stop, lie down,
-and hearken. If, listening thus, at any time you hear no sound of
-water, you are out of the way, and must hearken in every direction
-until you hear it again. Keeping with the sound, and careful not
-to retrace your steps, you will soon hear it louder, and the growing
-sound will lead you to where it is loudest: that is the spot you
-seek. There dig with the spade I will give you, and dig until you
-come to moisture: in it lay the hand, cover it to the level of the
-desert, and come home.--But give good heed, and carry the hand with
-care. Never lay it down, in what place of seeming safety soever;
-let nothing touch it; stop nor turn aside for any attempt to bar
-your way; never look behind you; speak to no one, answer no one,
-walk straight on.--It is yet dark, and the morning is far distant,
-but you must set out at once."
-
-He gave me the hand, and brought me a spade.
-
-"This is my gardening spade," he said; "with it I have brought many
-a lovely thing to the sun."
-
-I took it, and went out into the night.
-
-It was very cold, and pitch-dark. To fall would be a dread thing,
-and the way I had to go was a difficult one even in the broad
-sunlight! But I had not set myself the task, and the minute I
-started I learned that I was left to no chance: a pale light broke
-from the ground at every step, and showed me where next to set my
-foot. Through the heather and the low rocks I walked without once
-even stumbling. I found the bad burrow quite still; not a wave
-arose, not a head appeared as I crossed it.
-
-A moon came, and herself showed me the easy way: toward morning I was
-almost over the dry channels of the first branch of the river-bed,
-and not far, I judged, from Mara's cottage.
-
-The moon was very low, and the sun not yet up, when I saw before me
-in the path, here narrowed by rocks, a figure covered from head to
-foot as with a veil of moonlit mist. I kept on my way as if I saw
-nothing. The figure threw aside its veil.
-
-"Have you forgotten me already?" said the princess--or what seemed
-she.
-
-I neither hesitated nor answered; I walked straight on.
-
-"You meant then to leave me in that horrible sepulchre! Do you not
-yet understand that where I please to be, there I am? Take my hand:
-I am alive as you!"
-
-I was on the point of saying, "Give me your left hand," but bethought
-myself, held my peace, and steadily advanced.
-
-"Give me my hand," she suddenly shrieked, "or I will tear you in
-pieces: you are mine!"
-
-She flung herself upon me. I shuddered, but did not falter. Nothing
-touched me, and I saw her no more.
-
-With measured tread along the path, filling it for some distance,
-came a body of armed men. I walked through them--nor know whether
-they gave way to me, or were bodiless things. But they turned and
-followed me; I heard and felt their march at my very heels; but I
-cast no look behind, and the sound of their steps and the clash of
-their armour died away.
-
-A little farther on, the moon being now close to the horizon and
-the way in deep shadow, I descried, seated where the path was so
-narrow that I could not pass her, a woman with muffled face.
-
-"Ah," she said, "you are come at last! I have waited here for you
-an hour or more! You have done well! Your trial is over. My father
-sent me to meet you that you might have a little rest on the way.
-Give me your charge, and lay your head in my lap; I will take good
-care of both until the sun is well risen. I am not bitterness
-always, neither to all men!"
-
-Her words were terrible with temptation, for I was very weary. And
-what more likely to be true! If I were, through slavish obedience
-to the letter of the command and lack of pure insight, to trample
-under my feet the very person of the Lady of Sorrow! My heart grew
-faint at the thought, then beat as if it would burst my bosom.
-
-Nevertheless my will hardened itself against my heart, and my step
-did not falter. I took my tongue between my teeth lest I should
-unawares answer, and kept on my way. If Adam had sent her, he could
-not complain that I would not heed her! Nor would the Lady of Sorrow
-love me the less that even she had not been able to turn me aside!
-
-Just ere I reached the phantom, she pulled the covering from her
-face: great indeed was her loveliness, but those were not Mara's
-eyes! no lie could truly or for long imitate them! I advanced as if
-the thing were not there, and my foot found empty room.
-
-I had almost reached the other side when a Shadow--I think it was
-The Shadow, barred my way. He seemed to have a helmet upon his head,
-but as I drew closer I perceived it was the head itself I saw--so
-distorted as to bear but a doubtful resemblance to the human. A
-cold wind smote me, dank and sickening--repulsive as the air of a
-charnel-house; firmness forsook my joints, and my limbs trembled as
-if they would drop in a helpless heap. I seemed to pass through
-him, but I think now that he passed through me: for a moment I was
-as one of the damned. Then a soft wind like the first breath of a
-new-born spring greeted me, and before me arose the dawn.
-
-My way now led me past the door of Mara's cottage. It stood wide
-open, and upon the table I saw a loaf of bread and a pitcher of
-water. In or around the cottage was neither howl nor wail.
-
-I came to the precipice that testified to the vanished river. I
-climbed its worn face, and went on into the desert. There at last,
-after much listening to and fro, I determined the spot where the
-hidden water was loudest, hung Lilith's hand about my neck, and began
-to dig. It was a long labour, for I had to make a large hole because
-of the looseness of the sand; but at length I threw up a damp
-spadeful. I flung the sexton-tool on the verge, and laid down the
-hand. A little water was already oozing from under its fingers. I
-sprang out, and made haste to fill the grave. Then, utterly
-fatigued, I dropped beside it, and fell asleep.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLII
-
-I SLEEP THE SLEEP
-
-When I woke, the ground was moist about me, and my track to the
-grave was growing a quicksand. In its ancient course the river was
-swelling, and had begun to shove at its burden. Soon it would be
-roaring down the precipice, and, divided in its fall, rushing with
-one branch to resubmerge the orchard valley, with the other to drown
-perhaps the monster horde, and between them to isle the Evil Wood.
-I set out at once on my return to those who sent me.
-
-When I came to the precipice, I took my way betwixt the branches,
-for I would pass again by the cottage of Mara, lest she should have
-returned: I longed to see her once more ere I went to sleep; and
-now I knew where to cross the channels, even if the river should
-have overtaken me and filled them. But when I reached it, the door
-stood open still; the bread and the water were still on the table;
-and deep silence was within and around it. I stopped and called
-aloud at the door, but no voice replied, and I went my way.
-
-A little farther, I came where sat a grayheaded man on the sand,
-weeping.
-
-"What ails you, sir?" I asked. "Are you forsaken?"
-
-"I weep," he answered, "because they will not let me die. I have
-been to the house of death, and its mistress, notwithstanding my
-years, refuses me. Intercede for me, sir, if you know her, I pray
-you."
-
-"Nay, sir," I replied, "that I cannot; for she refuses none whom it
-is lawful for her to receive."
-
-"How know you this of her? You have never sought death! you are
-much too young to desire it!"
-
-"I fear your words may indicate that, were you young again, neither
-would you desire it."
-
-"Indeed, young sir, I would not! and certain I am that you cannot."
-
-"I may not be old enough to desire to die, but I am young enough to
-desire to live indeed! Therefore I go now to learn if she will at
-length take me in. You wish to die because you do not care to live:
-she will not open her door to you, for no one can die who does not
-long to live."
-
-"It ill becomes your youth to mock a friendless old man. Pray,
-cease your riddles!"
-
-"Did not then the Mother tell you something of the same sort?"
-
-"In truth I believe she did; but I gave little heed to her excuses."
-
-"Ah, then, sir," I rejoined, "it is but too plain you have not yet
-learned to die, and I am heartily grieved for you. Such had I too
-been but for the Lady of Sorrow. I am indeed young, but I have wept
-many tears; pardon me, therefore, if I presume to offer counsel:--Go
-to the Lady of Sorrow, and `take with both hands'* what she will
-give you. Yonder lies her cottage. She is not in it now, but her
-door stands open, and there is bread and water on her table. Go in;
-sit down; eat of the bread; drink of the water; and wait there until
-she appear. Then ask counsel of her, for she is true, and her
-wisdom is great."
-
-He fell to weeping afresh, and I left him weeping. What I said, I
-fear he did not heed. But Mara would find him!
-
-The sun was down, and the moon unrisen, when I reached the abode of
-the monsters, but it was still as a stone till I passed over. Then
-I heard a noise of many waters, and a great cry behind me, but I
-did not turn my head.
-
-Ere I reached the house of death, the cold was bitter and the
-darkness dense; and the cold and the darkness were one, and entered
-into my bones together. But the candle of Eve, shining from the
-window, guided me, and kept both frost and murk from my heart.
-
-The door stood open, and the cottage lay empty. I sat down
-disconsolate.
-
-And as I sat, there grew in me such a sense of loneliness as never
-yet in my wanderings had I felt. Thousands were near me, not one
-was with me! True, it was I who was dead, not they; but, whether
-by their life or by my death, we were divided! They were alive,
-but I was not dead enough even to know them alive: doubt WOULD come.
-They were, at best, far from me, and helpers I had none to lay me
-beside them!
-
-Never before had I known, or truly imagined desolation! In vain I
-took myself to task, saying the solitude was but a seeming: I was
-awake, and they slept--that was all! it was only that they lay so
-still and did not speak! they were with me now, and soon, soon I
-should be with them!
-
-I dropped Adam's old spade, and the dull sound of its fall on the
-clay floor seemed reverberated from the chamber beyond: a childish
-terror seized me; I sat and stared at the coffin-door.--But father
-Adam, mother Eve, sister Mara would soon come to me, and then--
-welcome the cold world and the white neighbours! I forgot my fears,
-lived a little, and loved my dead.
-
-Something did move in the chamber of the dead! There came from it
-what was LIKE a dim, far-off sound, yet was not what I knew as sound.
-My soul sprang into my ears. Was it a mere thrill of the dead air,
-too slight to be heard, but quivering in every spiritual sense? I
-KNEW without hearing, without feeling it!
-
-The something was coming! it drew nearer! In the bosom of my
-desertion awoke an infant hope. The noiseless thrill reached the
-coffin-door--became sound, and smote on my ear.
-
-The door began to move--with a low, soft creaking of its hinges. It
-was opening! I ceased to listen, and stared expectant.
-
-It opened a little way, and a face came into the opening. It was
-Lona's. Its eyes were closed, but the face itself was upon me, and
-seemed to see me. It was white as Eve's, white as Mara's, but did
-not shine like their faces. She spoke, and her voice was like a
-sleepy night-wind in the grass.
-
-"Are you coming, king?" it said. "I cannot rest until you are with
-me, gliding down the river to the great sea, and the beautiful
-dream-land. The sleepiness is full of lovely things: come and see
-them."
-
-"Ah, my darling!" I cried. "Had I but known!--I thought you were
-dead!"
-
-She lay on my bosom--cold as ice frozen to marble. She threw her
-arms, so white, feebly about me, and sighed--
-
-"Carry me back to my bed, king. I want to sleep."
-
-I bore her to the death-chamber, holding her tight lest she should
-dissolve out of my arms. Unaware that I saw, I carried her straight
-to her couch.
-
-"Lay me down," she said, "and cover me from the warm air; it hurts--a
-little. Your bed is there, next to mine. I shall see you when I
-wake."
-
-She was already asleep. I threw myself on my couch--blessed as
-never was man on the eve of his wedding.
-
-"Come, sweet cold," I said, "and still my heart speedily."
-
-But there came instead a glimmer of light in the chamber, and I saw
-the face of Adam approaching. He had not the candle, yet I saw him.
-At the side of Lona's couch, he looked down on her with a questioning
-smile, and then greeted me across it.
-
-"We have been to the top of the hill to hear the waters on their
-way," he said. "They will be in the den of the monsters to-night.--
-But why did you not await our return?"
-
-"My child could not sleep," I answered.
-
-"She is fast asleep!" he rejoined.
-
-"Yes, now!" I said; "but she was awake when I laid her down."
-
-"She was asleep all the time!" he insisted. "She was perhaps
-dreaming about you--and came to you?"
-
-"She did."
-
-"And did you not see that her eyes were closed?"
-
-"Now I think of it, I did."
-
-"If you had looked ere you laid her down, you would have seen her
-asleep on the couch."
-
-"That would have been terrible!"
-
-"You would only have found that she was no longer in your arms."
-
-"That would have been worse!"
-
-"It is, perhaps, to think of; but to see it would not have troubled
-you."
-
-"Dear father," I said, "how is it that I am not sleepy? I thought
-I should go to sleep like the Little Ones the moment I laid my head
-down!"
-
-"Your hour is not quite come. You must have food ere you sleep."
-
-"Ah, I ought not to have lain down without your leave, for I cannot
-sleep without your help! I will get up at once!"
-
-But I found my own weight more than I could move.
-
-"There is no need: we will serve you here," he answered. "--You do
-not feel cold, do you?"
-
-"Not too cold to lie still, but perhaps too cold to eat!"
-
-He came to the side of my couch, bent over me, and breathed on my
-heart. At once I was warm.
-
-As he left me, I heard a voice, and knew it was the Mother's. She
-was singing, and her song was sweet and soft and low, and I thought
-she sat by my bed in the dark; but ere it ceased, her song soared
-aloft, and seemed to come from the throat of a woman-angel, high
-above all the region of larks, higher than man had ever yet lifted
-up his heart. I heard every word she sang, but could keep only
-this:--
-
- "Many a wrong, and its curing song;
- Many a road, and many an inn;
- Room to roam, but only one home
- For all the world to win!"
-
-and I thought I had heard the song before.
-
-Then the three came to my couch together, bringing me bread and wine,
-and I sat up to partake of it. Adam stood on one side of me, Eve
-and Mara on the other.
-
-"You are good indeed, father Adam, mother Eve, sister Mara," I said,
-"to receive me! In my soul I am ashamed and sorry!"
-
-"We knew you would come again!" answered Eve.
-
-"How could you know it?" I returned.
-
-"Because here was I, born to look after my brothers and sisters!"
-answered Mara with a smile.
-
-"Every creature must one night yield himself and lie down," answered
-Adam: "he was made for liberty, and must not be left a slave!"
-
-"It will be late, I fear, ere all have lain down!" I said.
-
-"There is no early or late here," he rejoined. "For him the true
-time then first begins who lays himself down. Men are not coming
-home fast; women are coming faster. A desert, wide and dreary,
-parts him who lies down to die from him who lies down to live. The
-former may well make haste, but here is no haste."
-
-"To our eyes," said Eve, "you were coming all the time: we knew Mara
-would find you, and you must come!"
-
-"How long is it since my father lay down?" I asked.
-
-"I have told you that years are of no consequence in this house,"
-answered Adam; "we do not heed them. Your father will wake when his
-morning comes. Your mother, next to whom you are lying,----"
-
-"Ah, then, it IS my mother!" I exclaimed.
-
-"Yes--she with the wounded hand," he assented; "--she will be up
-and away long ere your morning is ripe."
-
-"I am sorry."
-
-"Rather be glad."
-
-"It must be a sight for God Himself to see such a woman come awake!"
-
-"It is indeed a sight for God, a sight that makes her Maker glad!
-He sees of the travail of His soul, and is satisfied!--Look at her
-once more, and sleep."
-
-He let the rays of his candle fall on her beautiful face.
-
-"She looks much younger!" I said.
-
-"She IS much younger," he replied. "Even Lilith already begins to
-look younger!"
-
-I lay down, blissfully drowsy.
-
-"But when you see your mother again," he continued, "you will not
-at first know her. She will go on steadily growing younger until
-she reaches the perfection of her womanhood--a splendour beyond
-foresight. Then she will open her eyes, behold on one side her
-husband, on the other her son--and rise and leave them to go to a
-father and a brother more to her than they."
-
-I heard as one in a dream. I was very cold, but already the cold
-caused me no suffering. I felt them put on me the white garment of
-the dead. Then I forgot everything. The night about me was pale
-with sleeping faces, but I was asleep also, nor knew that I slept.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIII
-
-THE DREAMS THAT CAME
-
-I grew aware of existence, aware also of the profound, the infinite
-cold. I was intensely blessed--more blessed, I know, than my heart,
-imagining, can now recall. I could not think of warmth with the
-least suggestion of pleasure. I knew that I had enjoyed it, but
-could not remember how. The cold had soothed every care, dissolved
-every pain, comforted every sorrow. COMFORTED? Nay; sorrow was
-swallowed up in the life drawing nigh to restore every good and
-lovely thing a hundredfold! I lay at peace, full of the quietest
-expectation, breathing the damp odours of Earth's bountiful bosom,
-aware of the souls of primroses, daisies and snowdrops, patiently
-waiting in it for the Spring.
-
-How convey the delight of that frozen, yet conscious sleep! I had
-no more to stand up! had only to lie stretched out and still! How
-cold I was, words cannot tell; yet I grew colder and colder--and
-welcomed the cold yet more and more. I grew continuously less
-conscious of myself, continuously more conscious of bliss,
-unimaginable yet felt. I had neither made it nor prayed for it: it
-was mine in virtue of existence! and existence was mine in virtue
-of a Will that dwelt in mine.
-
-Then the dreams began to arrive--and came crowding.--I lay naked on
-a snowy peak. The white mist heaved below me like a billowy sea.
-The cold moon was in the air with me, and above the moon and me
-the colder sky, in which the moon and I dwelt. I was Adam, waiting
-for God to breathe into my nostrils the breath of life.--I was not
-Adam, but a child in the bosom of a mother white with a radiant
-whiteness. I was a youth on a white horse, leaping from cloud to
-cloud of a blue heaven, hasting calmly to some blessed goal. For
-centuries I dreamed--or was it chiliads? or only one long night?--But
-why ask? for time had nothing to do with me; I was in the land of
-thought--farther in, higher up than the seven dimensions, the ten
-senses: I think I was where I am--in the heart of God.--I dreamed
-away dim cycles in the centre of a melting glacier, the spectral
-moon drawing nearer and nearer, the wind and the welter of a torrent
-growing in my ears. I lay and heard them: the wind and the water
-and the moon sang a peaceful waiting for a redemption drawing nigh.
-I dreamed cycles, I say, but, for aught I knew or can tell, they were
-the solemn, æonian march of a second, pregnant with eternity.
-
-Then, of a sudden, but not once troubling my conscious bliss, all
-the wrongs I had ever done, from far beyond my earthly memory down
-to the present moment, were with me. Fully in every wrong lived
-the conscious I, confessing, abjuring, lamenting the dead, making
-atonement with each person I had injured, hurt, or offended. Every
-human soul to which I had caused a troubled thought, was now grown
-unspeakably dear to me, and I humbled myself before it, agonising
-to cast from between us the clinging offence. I wept at the feet
-of the mother whose commands I had slighted; with bitter shame I
-confessed to my father that I had told him two lies, and long
-forgotten them: now for long had remembered them, and kept them in
-memory to crush at last at his feet. I was the eager slave of all
-whom I had thus or anyhow wronged. Countless services I devised to
-render them! For this one I would build such a house as had never
-grown from the ground! for that one I would train such horses as
-had never yet been seen in any world! For a third I would make such
-a garden as had never bloomed, haunted with still pools, and alive
-with running waters! I would write songs to make their hearts
-swell, and tales to make them glow! I would turn the forces of the
-world into such channels of invention as to make them laugh with the
-joy of wonder! Love possessed me! Love was my life! Love was to
-me, as to him that made me, all in all!
-
-Suddenly I found myself in a solid blackness, upon which the ghost
-of light that dwells in the caverns of the eyes could not cast one
-fancied glimmer. But my heart, which feared nothing and hoped
-infinitely, was full of peace. I lay imagining what the light would
-be when it came, and what new creation it would bring with it--when,
-suddenly, without conscious volition, I sat up and stared about me.
-
-The moon was looking in at the lowest, horizontal, crypt-like windows
-of the death-chamber, her long light slanting, I thought, across
-the fallen, but still ripening sheaves of the harvest of the great
-husbandman.--But no; that harvest was gone! Gathered in, or swept
-away by chaotic storm, not a sacred sheaf was there! My dead were
-gone! I was alone!--In desolation dread lay depths yet deeper than
-I had hitherto known!--Had there never been any ripening dead? Had
-I but dreamed them and their loveliness? Why then these walls? why
-the empty couches? No; they were all up! they were all abroad in
-the new eternal day, and had forgotten me! They had left me behind,
-and alone! Tenfold more terrible was the tomb its inhabitants away!
-The quiet ones had made me quiet with their presence--had pervaded
-my mind with their blissful peace; now I had no friend, and my lovers
-were far from me! A moment I sat and stared horror-stricken. I had
-been alone with the moon on a mountain top in the sky; now I was
-alone with her in a huge cenotaph: she too was staring about, seeking
-her dead with ghastly gaze! I sprang to my feet, and staggered from
-the fearful place.
-
-The cottage was empty. I ran out into the night.
-
-No moon was there! Even as I left the chamber, a cloudy rampart
-had risen and covered her. But a broad shimmer came from far over
-the heath, mingled with a ghostly murmuring music, as if the moon
-were raining a light that plashed as it fell. I ran stumbling
-across the moor, and found a lovely lake, margined with reeds and
-rushes: the moon behind the cloud was gazing upon the monsters' den,
-full of clearest, brightest water, and very still.--But the musical
-murmur went on, filling the quiet air, and drawing me after it.
-
-I walked round the border of the little mere, and climbed the range
-of hills. What a sight rose to my eyes! The whole expanse where,
-with hot, aching feet, I had crossed and recrossed the deep-scored
-channels and ravines of the dry river-bed, was alive with streams,
-with torrents, with still pools--"a river deep and wide"! How the
-moon flashed on the water! how the water answered the moon with
-flashes of its own--white flashes breaking everywhere from its
-rock-encountered flow! And a great jubilant song arose from its
-bosom, the song of new-born liberty. I stood a moment gazing, and
-my heart also began to exult: my life was not all a failure! I had
-helped to set this river free!--My dead were not lost! I had but to
-go after and find them! I would follow and follow until I came
-whither they had gone! Our meeting might be thousands of years
-away, but at last--AT LAST I should hold them! Wherefore else did
-the floods clap their hands?
-
-I hurried down the hill: my pilgrimage was begun! In what direction
-to turn my steps I knew not, but I must go and go till I found my
-living dead! A torrent ran swift and wide at the foot of the range:
-I rushed in, it laid no hold upon me; I waded through it. The next
-I sprang across; the third I swam; the next I waded again.
-
-I stopped to gaze on the wondrous loveliness of the ceaseless flash
-and flow, and to hearken to the multitudinous broken music. Every
-now and then some incipient air would seem about to draw itself clear
-of the dulcet confusion, only to merge again in the consorted roar.
-At moments the world of waters would invade as if to overwhelm me--not
-with the force of its seaward rush, or the shouting of its liberated
-throng, but with the greatness of the silence wandering into sound.
-
-As I stood lost in delight, a hand was laid on my shoulder. I
-turned, and saw a man in the prime of strength, beautiful as if
-fresh from the heart of the glad creator, young like him who cannot
-grow old. I looked: it was Adam. He stood large and grand, clothed
-in a white robe, with the moon in his hair.
-
-"Father," I cried, "where is she? Where are the dead? Is the great
-resurrection come and gone? The terror of my loneliness was upon me;
-I could not sleep without my dead; I ran from the desolate chamber.
---Whither shall I go to find them?"
-
-"You mistake, my son," he answered, in a voice whose very breath
-was consolation. "You are still in the chamber of death, still
-upon your couch, asleep and dreaming, with the dead around you."
-
-"Alas! when I but dream how am I to know it? The dream best dreamed
-is the likest to the waking truth!"
-
-"When you are quite dead, you will dream no false dream. The soul
-that is true can generate nothing that is not true, neither can the
-false enter it."
-
-"But, sir," I faltered, "how am I to distinguish betwixt the true
-and the false where both alike seem real?"
-
-"Do you not understand?" he returned, with a smile that might have
-slain all the sorrows of all his children. "You CANNOT perfectly
-distinguish between the true and the false while you are not yet
-quite dead; neither indeed will you when you are quite dead--that
-is, quite alive, for then the false will never present itself. At
-this moment, believe me, you are on your bed in the house of death."
-
-"I am trying hard to believe you, father. I do indeed believe you,
-although I can neither see nor feel the truth of what you say."
-
-"You are not to blame that you cannot. And because even in a dream
-you believe me, I will help you.--Put forth your left hand open,
-and close it gently: it will clasp the hand of your Lona, who lies
-asleep where you lie dreaming you are awake."
-
-I put forth my hand: it closed on the hand of Lona, firm and soft
-and deathless.
-
-"But, father," I cried, "she is warm!"
-
-"Your hand is as warm to hers. Cold is a thing unknown in our
-country. Neither she nor you are yet in the fields of home, but
-each to each is alive and warm and healthful."
-
-Then my heart was glad. But immediately supervened a sharp-stinging
-doubt.
-
-"Father," I said, "forgive me, but how am I to know surely that this
-also is not a part of the lovely dream in which I am now walking
-with thyself?"
-
-"Thou doubtest because thou lovest the truth. Some would willingly
-believe life but a phantasm, if only it might for ever afford them
-a world of pleasant dreams: thou art not of such! Be content for
-a while not to know surely. The hour will come, and that ere long,
-when, being true, thou shalt behold the very truth, and doubt will
-be for ever dead. Scarce, then, wilt thou be able to recall the
-features of the phantom. Thou wilt then know that which thou canst
-not now dream. Thou hast not yet looked the Truth in the face, hast
-as yet at best but seen him through a cloud. That which thou seest
-not, and never didst see save in a glass darkly--that which, indeed,
-never can be known save by its innate splendour shining straight
-into pure eyes--that thou canst not but doubt, and art blameless in
-doubting until thou seest it face to face, when thou wilt no longer
-be able to doubt it. But to him who has once seen even a shadow
-only of the truth, and, even but hoping he has seen it when it is
-present no longer, tries to obey it--to him the real vision, the
-Truth himself, will come, and depart no more, but abide with him
-for ever."
-
-"I think I see, father," I said; "I think I understand."
-
-"Then remember, and recall. Trials yet await thee, heavy, of a
-nature thou knowest not now. Remember the things thou hast seen.
-Truly thou knowest not those things, but thou knowest what they have
-seemed, what they have meant to thee! Remember also the things thou
-shalt yet see. Truth is all in all; and the truth of things lies,
-at once hid and revealed, in their seeming."
-
-"How can that be, father?" I said, and raised my eyes with the
-question; for I had been listening with downbent head, aware of
-nothing but the voice of Adam.
-
-He was gone; in my ears was nought but the sounding silence of the
-swift-flowing waters. I stretched forth my hands to find him, but
-no answering touch met their seeking. I was alone--alone in the
-land of dreams! To myself I seemed wide awake, but I believed I was
-in a dream, because he had told me so.
-
-Even in a dream, however, the dreamer must do something! he cannot
-sit down and refuse to stir until the dream grow weary of him and
-depart: I took up my wandering, and went on.
-
-Many channels I crossed, and came to a wider space of rock; there,
-dreaming I was weary, I laid myself down, and longed to be awake.
-
-I was about to rise and resume my journey, when I discovered that I
-lay beside a pit in the rock, whose mouth was like that of a grave.
-It was deep and dark; I could see no bottom.
-
-Now in the dreams of my childhood I had found that a fall invariably
-woke me, and would, therefore, when desiring to discontinue a dream,
-seek some eminence whence to cast myself down that I might wake:
-with one glance at the peaceful heavens, and one at the rushing
-waters, I rolled myself over the edge of the pit.
-
-For a moment consciousness left me. When it returned, I stood in
-the garret of my own house, in the little wooden chamber of the cowl
-and the mirror.
-
-Unspeakable despair, hopelessness blank and dreary, invaded me with
-the knowledge: between me and my Lona lay an abyss impassable!
-stretched a distance no chain could measure! Space and Time and
-Mode of Being, as with walls of adamant unscalable, impenetrable,
-shut me in from that gulf! True, it might yet be in my power to
-pass again through the door of light, and journey back to the chamber
-of the dead; and if so, I was parted from that chamber only by a
-wide heath, and by the pale, starry night betwixt me and the sun,
-which alone could open for me the mirror-door, and was now far away
-on the other side of the world! but an immeasurably wider gulf sank
-between us in this--that she was asleep and I was awake! that I was
-no longer worthy to share with her that sleep, and could no longer
-hope to awake from it with her! For truly I was much to blame: I
-had fled from my dream! The dream was not of my making, any more
-than was my life: I ought to have seen it to the end! and in fleeing
-from it, I had left the holy sleep itself behind me!--I would go
-back to Adam, tell him the truth, and bow to his decree!
-
-I crept to my chamber, threw myself on my bed, and passed a dreamless
-night.
-
-I rose, and listlessly sought the library. On the way I met no one;
-the house seemed dead. I sat down with a book to await the noontide:
-not a sentence could I understand! The mutilated manuscript offered
-itself from the masked door: the sight of it sickened me; what to me
-was the princess with her devilry!
-
-I rose and looked out of a window. It was a brilliant morning. With
-a great rush the fountain shot high, and fell roaring back. The sun
-sat in its feathery top. Not a bird sang, not a creature was to
-be seen. Raven nor librarian came near me. The world was dead
-about me. I took another book, sat down again, and went on waiting.
-
-Noon was near. I went up the stairs to the dumb, shadowy roof. I
-closed behind me the door into the wooden chamber, and turned to
-open the door out of a dreary world.
-
-I left the chamber with a heart of stone. Do what I might, all was
-fruitless. I pulled the chains; adjusted and re-adjusted the hood;
-arranged and re-arranged the mirrors; no result followed. I waited
-and waited to give the vision time; it would not come; the mirror
-stood blank; nothing lay in its dim old depth but the mirror
-opposite and my haggard face.
-
-I went back to the library. There the books were hateful to me--for
-I had once loved them.
-
-That night I lay awake from down-lying to uprising, and the next
-day renewed my endeavours with the mystic door. But all was yet in
-vain. How the hours went I cannot think. No one came nigh me; not
-a sound from the house below entered my ears. Not once did I feel
-weary--only desolate, drearily desolate.
-
-I passed a second sleepless night. In the morning I went for the
-last time to the chamber in the roof, and for the last time sought
-an open door: there was none. My heart died within me. I had lost
-my Lona!
-
-Was she anywhere? had she ever been, save in the mouldering cells
-of my brain? "I must die one day," I thought, "and then, straight
-from my death-bed, I will set out to find her! If she is not, I
-will go to the Father and say--`Even thou canst not help me: let me
-cease, I pray thee!'"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIV
-
-THE WAKING
-
-The fourth night I seemed to fall asleep, and that night woke indeed.
-I opened my eyes and knew, although all was dark around me, that I
-lay in the house of death, and that every moment since there I fell
-asleep I had been dreaming, and now first was awake. "At last!" I
-said to my heart, and it leaped for joy. I turned my eyes; Lona
-stood by my couch, waiting for me! I had never lost her!--only for
-a little time lost the sight of her! Truly I needed not have
-lamented her so sorely!
-
-It was dark, as I say, but I saw her: SHE was not dark! Her eyes
-shone with the radiance of the Mother's, and the same light issued
-from her face--nor from her face only, for her death-dress, filled
-with the light of her body now tenfold awake in the power of its
-resurrection, was white as snow and glistering. She fell asleep a
-girl; she awoke a woman, ripe with the loveliness of the life
-essential. I folded her in my arms, and knew that I lived indeed.
-
-"I woke first!" she said, with a wondering smile.
-
-"You did, my love, and woke me!"
-
-"I only looked at you and waited," she answered.
-
-The candle came floating toward us through the dark, and in a few
-moments Adam and Eve and Mara were with us. They greeted us with a
-quiet good-morning and a smile: they were used to such wakings!
-
-"I hope you have had a pleasant darkness!" said the Mother.
-
-"Not very," I answered, "but the waking from it is heavenly."
-
-"It is but begun," she rejoined; "you are hardly yet awake!"
-
-"He is at least clothed-upon with Death, which is the radiant garment
-of Life," said Adam.
-
-He embraced Lona his child, put an arm around me, looked a moment
-or two inquiringly at the princess, and patted the head of the
-leopardess.
-
-"I think we shall meet you two again before long," he said, looking
-first at Lona, then at me.
-
-"Have we to die again?" I asked.
-
-"No," he answered, with a smile like the Mother's; "you have died
-into life, and will die no more; you have only to keep dead. Once
-dying as we die here, all the dying is over. Now you have only to
-live, and that you must, with all your blessed might. The more you
-live, the stronger you become to live."
-
-"But shall I not grow weary with living so strong?" I said. "What
-if I cease to live with all my might?"
-
-"It needs but the will, and the strength is there!" said the Mother.
-"Pure life has no weakness to grow weary withal. THE Life keeps
-generating ours.--Those who will not die, die many times, die
-constantly, keep dying deeper, never have done dying; here all is
-upwardness and love and gladness."
-
-She ceased with a smile and a look that seemed to say, "We are
-mother and son; we understand each other! Between us no farewell
-is possible."
-
-Mara kissed me on the forehead, and said, gayly,
-
-"I told you, brother, all would be well!--When next you would
-comfort, say, `What will be well, is even now well.'"
-
-She gave a little sigh, and I thought it meant, "But they will not
-believe you!"
-
-"--You know me now!" she ended, with a smile like her mother's.
-
-"I know you!" I answered: "you are the voice that cried in the
-wilderness before ever the Baptist came! you are the shepherd whose
-wolves hunt the wandering sheep home ere the shadow rise and the
-night grow dark!"
-
-"My work will one day be over," she said, "and then I shall be glad
-with the gladness of the great shepherd who sent me."
-
-"All the night long the morning is at hand," said Adam.
-
-"What is that flapping of wings I hear?" I asked.
-
-"The Shadow is hovering," replied Adam: "there is one here whom he
-counts his own! But ours once, never more can she be his!"
-
-I turned to look on the faces of my father and mother, and kiss them
-ere we went: their couches were empty save of the Little Ones who
-had with love's boldness appropriated their hospitality! For an
-instant that awful dream of desolation overshadowed me, and I turned
-aside.
-
-"What is it, my heart?" said Lona.
-
-"Their empty places frightened me," I answered.
-
-"They are up and away long ago," said Adam. "They kissed you ere
-they went, and whispered, `Come soon.'"
-
-"And I neither to feel nor hear them!" I murmured.
-
-"How could you--far away in your dreary old house! You thought the
-dreadful place had you once more! Now go and find them.--Your
-parents, my child," he added, turning to Lona, "must come and find
-you!"
-
-The hour of our departure was at hand. Lona went to the couch of
-the mother who had slain her, and kissed her tenderly--then laid
-herself in her father's arms.
-
-"That kiss will draw her homeward, my Lona!" said Adam.
-
-"Who were her parents?" asked Lona.
-
-"My father," answered Adam, "is her father also."
-
-She turned and laid her hand in mine.
-
-I kneeled and humbly thanked the three for helping me to die. Lona
-knelt beside me, and they all breathed upon us.
-
-"Hark! I hear the sun," said Adam.
-
-I listened: he was coming with the rush as of a thousand times ten
-thousand far-off wings, with the roar of a molten and flaming world
-millions upon millions of miles away. His approach was a crescendo
-chord of a hundred harmonies.
-
-The three looked at each other and smiled, and that smile went
-floating heavenward a three-petaled flower, the family's morning
-thanksgiving. From their mouths and their faces it spread over
-their bodies and shone through their garments. Ere I could say,
-"Lo, they change!" Adam and Eve stood before me the angels of the
-resurrection, and Mara was the Magdalene with them at the sepulchre.
-The countenance of Adam was like lightning, and Eve held a napkin
-that flung flakes of splendour about the place.
-
-A wind began to moan in pulsing gusts.
-
-"You hear his wings now!" said Adam; and I knew he did not mean the
-wings of the morning.
-
-"It is the great Shadow stirring to depart," he went on. "Wretched
-creature, he has himself within him, and cannot rest!"
-
-"But is there not in him something deeper yet?" I asked.
-
-"Without a substance," he answered, "a shadow cannot be--yea, or
-without a light behind the substance!"
-
-He listened for a moment, then called out, with a glad smile, "Hark
-to the golden cock! Silent and motionless for millions of years has
-he stood on the clock of the universe; now at last he is flapping
-his wings! now will he begin to crow! and at intervals will men hear
-him until the dawn of the day eternal."
-
-I listened. Far away--as in the heart of an æonian silence, I heard
-the clear jubilant outcry of the golden throat. It hurled defiance
-at death and the dark; sang infinite hope, and coming calm. It was
-the "expectation of the creature" finding at last a voice; the cry
-of a chaos that would be a kingdom!
-
-Then I heard a great flapping.
-
-"The black bat is flown!" said Mara.
-
-"Amen, golden cock, bird of God!" cried Adam, and the words rang
-through the house of silence, and went up into the airy regions.
-
-At his AMEN--like doves arising on wings of silver from among the
-potsherds, up sprang the Little Ones to their knees on their beds,
-calling aloud,
-
-"Crow! crow again, golden cock!"--as if they had both seen and heard
-him in their dreams.
-
-Then each turned and looked at the sleeping bedfellow, gazed a
-moment with loving eyes, kissed the silent companion of the night,
-and sprang from the couch. The Little Ones who had lain down beside
-my father and mother gazed blank and sad for a moment at their
-empty places, then slid slowly to the floor. There they fell each
-into the other's arms, as if then first, each by the other's eyes,
-assured they were alive and awake. Suddenly spying Lona, they came
-running, radiant with bliss, to embrace her. Odu, catching sight of
-the leopardess on the feet of the princess, bounded to her next, and
-throwing an arm over the great sleeping head, fondled and kissed it.
-
-"Wake up, wake up, darling!" he cried; "it is time to wake!"
-
-The leopardess did not move.
-
-"She has slept herself cold!" he said to Mara, with an upcast look
-of appealing consternation.
-
-"She is waiting for the princess to wake, my child," said Mara.
-
-Odu looked at the princess, and saw beside her, still asleep, two
-of his companions. He flew at them.
-
-"Wake up! wake up!" he cried, and pushed and pulled, now this one,
-now that.
-
-But soon he began to look troubled, and turned to me with misty eyes.
-
-"They will not wake!" he said. "And why are they so cold?"
-
-"They too are waiting for the princess," I answered.
-
-He stretched across, and laid his hand on her face.
-
-"She is cold too! What is it?" he cried--and looked round in
-wondering dismay.
-
-Adam went to him.
-
-"Her wake is not ripe yet," he said: "she is busy forgetting. When
-she has forgotten enough to remember enough, then she will soon be
-ripe, and wake."
-
-"And remember?"
-
-"Yes--but not too much at once though."
-
-"But the golden cock has crown!" argued the child, and fell again
-upon his companions.
-
-"Peter! Peter! Crispy!" he cried. "Wake up, Peter! wake up, Crispy!
-We are all awake but you two! The gold cock has crown SO loud! The
-sun is awake and coming! Oh, why WON'T you wake?"
-
-But Peter would not wake, neither would Crispy, and Odu wept outright
-at last.
-
-"Let them sleep, darling!" said Adam. "You would not like the
-princess to wake and find nobody? They are quite happy. So is the
-leopardess."
-
-He was comforted, and wiped his eyes as if he had been all his life
-used to weeping and wiping, though now first he had tears wherewith
-to weep--soon to be wiped altogether away.
-
-We followed Eve to the cottage. There she offered us neither bread
-nor wine, but stood radiantly desiring our departure. So, with never
-a word of farewell, we went out. The horse and the elephants were
-at the door, waiting for us. We were too happy to mount them, and
-they followed us.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLV
-
-THE JOURNEY HOME
-
-It had ceased to be dark; we walked in a dim twilight, breathing
-through the dimness the breath of the spring. A wondrous change had
-passed upon the world--or was it not rather that a change more
-marvellous had taken place in us? Without light enough in the sky
-or the air to reveal anything, every heather-bush, every small shrub,
-every blade of grass was perfectly visible--either by light that
-went out from it, as fire from the bush Moses saw in the desert, or
-by light that went out of our eyes. Nothing cast a shadow; all
-things interchanged a little light. Every growing thing showed me,
-by its shape and colour, its indwelling idea--the informing thought,
-that is, which was its being, and sent it out. My bare feet seemed
-to love every plant they trod upon. The world and my being, its
-life and mine, were one. The microcosm and macrocosm were at length
-atoned, at length in harmony! I lived in everything; everything
-entered and lived in me. To be aware of a thing, was to know its
-life at once and mine, to know whence we came, and where we were at
-home--was to know that we are all what we are, because Another is
-what he is! Sense after sense, hitherto asleep, awoke in me--sense
-after sense indescribable, because no correspondent words, no
-likenesses or imaginations exist, wherewithal to describe them.
-Full indeed--yet ever expanding, ever making room to receive--was
-the conscious being where things kept entering by so many open
-doors! When a little breeze brushing a bush of heather set its
-purple bells a ringing, I was myself in the joy of the bells, myself
-in the joy of the breeze to which responded their sweet TIN-TINNING**,
-myself in the joy of the sense, and of the soul that received all
-the joys together. To everything glad I lent the hall of my being
-wherein to revel. I was a peaceful ocean upon which the ground-swell
-of a living joy was continually lifting new waves; yet was the joy
-ever the same joy, the eternal joy, with tens of thousands of
-changing forms. Life was a cosmic holiday.
-
-Now I knew that life and truth were one; that life mere and pure
-is in itself bliss; that where being is not bliss, it is not life,
-but life-in-death. Every inspiration of the dark wind that blew
-where it listed, went out a sigh of thanksgiving. At last I was!
-I lived, and nothing could touch my life! My darling walked beside
-me, and we were on our way home to the Father!
-
-So much was ours ere ever the first sun rose upon our freedom: what
-must not the eternal day bring with it!
-
-We came to the fearful hollow where once had wallowed the monsters
-of the earth: it was indeed, as I had beheld it in my dream, a
-lovely lake. I gazed into its pellucid depths. A whirlpool had
-swept out the soil in which the abortions burrowed, and at the
-bottom lay visible the whole horrid brood: a dim greenish light
-pervaded the crystalline water, and revealed every hideous form
-beneath it. Coiled in spires, folded in layers, knotted on
-themselves, or "extended long and large," they weltered in motionless
-heaps--shapes more fantastic in ghoulish, blasting dismay, than ever
-wine-sodden brain of exhausted poet fevered into misbeing. He who
-dived in the swirling Maelstrom saw none to compare with them in
-horror: tentacular convolutions, tumid bulges, glaring orbs of
-sepian deformity, would have looked to him innocence beside such
-incarnations of hatefulness--every head the wicked flower that,
-bursting from an abominable stalk, perfected its evil significance.
-
-Not one of them moved as we passed. But they were not dead. So
-long as exist men and women of unwholesome mind, that lake will still
-be peopled with loathsomenesses.
-
-But hark the herald of the sun, the auroral wind, softly trumpeting
-his approach! The master-minister of the human tabernacle is at
-hand! Heaping before his prow a huge ripple-fretted wave of crimson
-and gold, he rushes aloft, as if new launched from the urging hand
-of his maker into the upper sea--pauses, and looks down on the
-world. White-raving storm of molten metals, he is but a coal from
-the altar of the Father's never-ending sacrifice to his children.
-See every little flower straighten its stalk, lift up its neck, and
-with outstretched head stand expectant: something more than the sun,
-greater than the light, is coming, is coming--none the less surely
-coming that it is long upon the road! What matters to-day, or
-to-morrow, or ten thousand years to Life himself, to Love himself!
-He is coming, is coming, and the necks of all humanity are stretched
-out to see him come! Every morning will they thus outstretch
-themselves, every evening will they droop and wait--until he comes.
---Is this but an air-drawn vision? When he comes, will he indeed
-find them watching thus?
-
-It was a glorious resurrection-morning. The night had been spent in
-preparing it!
-
-The children went gamboling before, and the beasts came after us.
-Fluttering butterflies, darting dragon-flies hovered or shot hither
-and thither about our heads, a cloud of colours and flashes, now
-descending upon us like a snow-storm of rainbow flakes, now rising
-into the humid air like a rolling vapour of embodied odours. It was
-a summer-day more like itself, that is, more ideal, than ever man
-that had not died found summer-day in any world. I walked on the
-new earth, under the new heaven, and found them the same as the old,
-save that now they opened their minds to me, and I saw into them.
-Now, the soul of everything I met came out to greet me and make
-friends with me, telling me we came from the same, and meant the
-same. I was going to him, they said, with whom they always were,
-and whom they always meant; they were, they said, lightnings that
-took shape as they flashed from him to his. The dark rocks drank
-like sponges the rays that showered upon them; the great world soaked
-up the light, and sent out the living. Two joy-fires were Lona
-and I. Earth breathed heavenward her sweet-savoured smoke; we
-breathed homeward our longing desires. For thanksgiving, our very
-consciousness was that.
-
-We came to the channels, once so dry and wearyful: they ran and
-flashed and foamed with living water that shouted in its gladness!
-Far as the eye could see, all was a rushing, roaring, dashing river
-of water made vocal by its rocks.
-
-We did not cross it, but "walked in glory and in joy" up its right
-bank, until we reached the great cataract at the foot of the sandy
-desert, where, roaring and swirling and dropping sheer, the river
-divided into its two branches. There we climbed the height--and
-found no desert: through grassy plains, between grassy banks, flowed
-the deep, wide, silent river full to the brim. Then first to the
-Little Ones was revealed the glory of God in the limpid flow of
-water. Instinctively they plunged and swam, and the beasts followed
-them.
-
-The desert rejoiced and blossomed as the rose. Wide forests had
-sprung up, their whole undergrowth flowering shrubs peopled with
-song-birds. Every thicket gave birth to a rivulet, and every rivulet
-to its water-song.
-
-The place of the buried hand gave no sign. Beyond and still beyond,
-the river came in full volume from afar. Up and up we went, now
-along grassy margin, and now through forest of gracious trees. The
-grass grew sweeter and its flowers more lovely and various as we
-went; the trees grew larger, and the wind fuller of messages.
-
-We came at length to a forest whose trees were greater, grander, and
-more beautiful than any we had yet seen. Their live pillars upheaved
-a thick embowed roof, betwixt whose leaves and blossoms hardly a
-sunbeam filtered. Into the rafters of this aerial vault the children
-climbed, and through them went scrambling and leaping in a land of
-bloom, shouting to the unseen elephants below, and hearing them
-trumpet their replies. The conversations between them Lona
-understood while I but guessed at them blunderingly. The Little Ones
-chased the squirrels, and the squirrels, frolicking, drew them
-on--always at length allowing themselves to be caught and petted.
-Often would some bird, lovely in plumage and form, light upon one of
-them, sing a song of what was coming, and fly away. Not one monkey
-of any sort could they see.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLVI
-
-THE CITY
-
-Lona and I, who walked below, heard at last a great shout overhead,
-and in a moment or two the Little Ones began to come dropping down
-from the foliage with the news that, climbing to the top of a tree
-yet taller than the rest, they had descried, far across the plain, a
-curious something on the side of a solitary mountain--which mountain,
-they said, rose and rose, until the sky gathered thick to keep it
-down, and knocked its top off.
-
-"It may be a city," they said, "but it is not at all like Bulika."
-
-I went up to look, and saw a great city, ascending into blue clouds,
-where I could not distinguish mountain from sky and cloud, or rocks
-from dwellings. Cloud and mountain and sky, palace and precipice
-mingled in a seeming chaos of broken shadow and shine.
-
-I descended, the Little Ones came with me, and together we sped on
-faster. They grew yet merrier as they went, leading the way, and
-never looking behind them. The river grew lovelier and lovelier,
-until I knew that never before had I seen real water. Nothing in
-this world is more than LIKE it.
-
-By and by we could from the plain see the city among the blue clouds.
-But other clouds were gathering around a lofty tower--or was it a
-rock?--that stood above the city, nearer the crest of the mountain.
-Gray, and dark gray, and purple, they writhed in confused, contrariant
-motions, and tossed up a vaporous foam, while spots in them gyrated
-like whirlpools. At length issued a dazzling flash, which seemed
-for a moment to play about the Little Ones in front of us. Blinding
-darkness followed, but through it we heard their voices, low with
-delight.
-
-"Did you see?"
-
-"I saw."
-
-"What did you see?"
-
-"The beautifullest man."
-
-"I heard him speak!"
-
-"I didn't: what did he say?"
-
-Here answered the smallest and most childish of the voices--that of
-Luva:--
-
-"He said, `'Ou's all mine's, 'ickle ones: come along!'"
-
-I had seen the lightning, but heard no words; Lona saw and heard
-with the children. A second flash came, and my eyes, though not
-my ears, were opened. The great quivering light was compact of
-angel-faces. They lamped themselves visible, and vanished.
-
-A third flash came; its substance and radiance were human.
-
-"I see my mother!" I cried.
-
-"I see lots o' mothers!" said Luva.
-
-Once more the cloud flashed--all kinds of creatures--horses and
-elephants, lions and dogs--oh, such beasts! And such birds!--great
-birds whose wings gleamed singly every colour gathered in sunset
-or rainbow! little birds whose feathers sparkled as with all the
-precious stones of the hoarding earth!--silvery cranes; red
-flamingoes; opal pigeons; peacocks gorgeous in gold and green and
-blue; jewelly humming birds!--great-winged butterflies; lithe-volumed
-creeping things--all in one heavenly flash!
-
-"I see that serpents grow birds here, as caterpillars used to grow
-butterflies!" remarked Lona.
-
-"I saw my white pony, that died when I was a child.--I needn't have
-been so sorry; I should just have waited!" I said.
-
-Thunder, clap or roll, there had been none. And now came a sweet
-rain, filling the atmosphere with a caressing coolness. We breathed
-deep, and stepped out with stronger strides. The falling drops
-flashed the colours of all the waked up gems of the earth, and a
-mighty rainbow spanned the city.
-
-The blue clouds gathered thicker; the rain fell in torrents; the
-children exulted and ran; it was all we could do to keep them in
-sight.
-
-With silent, radiant roll, the river swept onward, filling to the
-margin its smooth, soft, yielding channel. For, instead of rock or
-shingle or sand, it flowed over grass in which grew primroses and
-daisies, crocuses and narcissi, pimpernels and anemones, a starry
-multitude, large and bright through the brilliant water. The river
-had gathered no turbid cloudiness from the rain, not even a tinge
-of yellow or brown; the delicate mass shone with the pale berylline
-gleam that ascended from its deep, dainty bed.
-
-Drawing nearer to the mountain, we saw that the river came from its
-very peak, and rushed in full volume through the main street of the
-city. It descended to the gate by a stair of deep and wide steps,
-mingled of porphyry and serpentine, which continued to the foot of
-the mountain. There arriving we found shallower steps on both banks,
-leading up to the gate, and along the ascending street. Without the
-briefest halt, the Little Ones ran straight up the stair to the
-gate, which stood open.
-
-Outside, on the landing, sat the portress, a woman-angel of dark
-visage, leaning her shadowed brow on her idle hand. The children
-rushed upon her, covering her with caresses, and ere she understood,
-they had taken heaven by surprise, and were already in the city,
-still mounting the stair by the side of the descending torrent. A
-great angel, attended by a company of shining ones, came down to
-meet and receive them, but merrily evading them all, up still they
-ran. In merry dance, however, a group of woman-angels descended
-upon them, and in a moment they were fettered in heavenly arms. The
-radiants carried them away, and I saw them no more.
-
-"Ah!" said the mighty angel, continuing his descent to meet us who
-were now almost at the gate and within hearing of his words, "this
-is well! these are soldiers to take heaven itself by storm!--I hear
-of a horde of black bats on the frontiers: these will make short
-work with such!"
-
-Seeing the horse and the elephants clambering up behind us--
-
-"Take those animals to the royal stables," he added; "there tend
-them; then turn them into the king's forest."
-
-"Welcome home!" he said to us, bending low with the sweetest smile.
-
-Immediately he turned and led the way higher. The scales of his
-armour flashed like flakes of lightning.
-
-Thought cannot form itself to tell what I felt, thus received by
-the officers of heaven***. All I wanted and knew not, must be on
-its way to me!
-
-We stood for a moment at the gate whence issued roaring the radiant
-river. I know not whence came the stones that fashioned it, but
-among them I saw the prototypes of all the gems I had loved on
-earth--far more beautiful than they, for these were living stones
---such in which I saw, not the intent alone, but the intender too;
-not the idea alone, but the imbodier present, the operant outsender:
-nothing in this kingdom was dead; nothing was mere; nothing only a
-thing.
-
-We went up through the city and passed out. There was no wall on
-the upper side, but a huge pile of broken rocks, upsloping like the
-moraine of an eternal glacier; and through the openings between the
-rocks, the river came billowing out. On their top I could dimly
-discern what seemed three or four great steps of a stair,
-disappearing in a cloud white as snow; and above the steps I saw,
-but with my mind's eye only, as it were a grand old chair, the
-throne of the Ancient of Days. Over and under and between those
-steps issued, plenteously, unceasingly new-born, the river of the
-water of life.
-
-The great angel could guide us no farther: those rocks we must ascend
-alone!
-
-My heart beating with hope and desire, I held faster the hand of my
-Lona, and we began to climb; but soon we let each other go, to use
-hands as well as feet in the toilsome ascent of the huge stones.
-At length we drew near the cloud, which hung down the steps like
-the borders of a garment, passed through the fringe, and entered
-the deep folds. A hand, warm and strong, laid hold of mine, and
-drew me to a little door with a golden lock. The door opened; the
-hand let mine go, and pushed me gently through. I turned quickly,
-and saw the board of a large book in the act of closing behind me.
-I stood alone in my library.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLVII
-
-THE "ENDLESS ENDING"
-
-As yet I have not found Lona, but Mara is much with me. She has
-taught me many things, and is teaching me more.
-
-Can it be that that last waking also was in the dream? that I am
-still in the chamber of death, asleep and dreaming, not yet ripe
-enough to wake? Or can it be that I did not go to sleep outright
-and heartily, and so have come awake too soon? If that waking was
-itself but a dream, surely it was a dream of a better waking yet
-to come, and I have not been the sport of a false vision! Such a
-dream must have yet lovelier truth at the heart of its dreaming!
-
-In moments of doubt I cry,
-
-"Could God Himself create such lovely things as I dreamed?"
-
-"Whence then came thy dream?" answers Hope.
-
-"Out of my dark self, into the light of my consciousness."
-
-"But whence first into thy dark self?" rejoins Hope.
-
-"My brain was its mother, and the fever in my blood its father."
-
-"Say rather," suggests Hope, "thy brain was the violin whence it
-issued, and the fever in thy blood the bow that drew it forth.--But
-who made the violin? and who guided the bow across its strings?
-Say rather, again--who set the song birds each on its bough in the
-tree of life, and startled each in its order from its perch? Whence
-came the fantasia? and whence the life that danced thereto? Didst
-THOU say, in the dark of thy own unconscious self, `Let beauty be;
-let truth seem!' and straightway beauty was, and truth but seemed?"
-
-Man dreams and desires; God broods and wills and quickens.
-
-When a man dreams his own dream, he is the sport of his dream; when
-Another gives it him, that Other is able to fulfil it.
-
-I have never again sought the mirror. The hand sent me back: I
-will not go out again by that door! "All the days of my appointed
-time will I wait till my change come."
-
-Now and then, when I look round on my books, they seem to waver as
-if a wind rippled their solid mass, and another world were about to
-break through. Sometimes when I am abroad, a like thing takes place;
-the heavens and the earth, the trees and the grass appear for a
-moment to shake as if about to pass away; then, lo, they have
-settled again into the old familiar face! At times I seem to hear
-whisperings around me, as if some that loved me were talking of me;
-but when I would distinguish the words, they cease, and all is very
-still. I know not whether these things rise in my brain, or enter
-it from without. I do not seek them; they come, and I let them go.
-
-Strange dim memories, which will not abide identification, often,
-through misty windows of the past, look out upon me in the broad
-daylight, but I never dream now. It may be, notwithstanding, that,
-when most awake, I am only dreaming the more! But when I wake at
-last into that life which, as a mother her child, carries this life
-in its bosom, I shall know that I wake, and shall doubt no more.
-
-I wait; asleep or awake, I wait.
-
-Novalis says, "Our life is no dream, but it should and will perhaps
-become one."
-
-
-
-
-*Chapter 42: William Law.
-
-**Chapter 45: Tin tin sonando con sì dolce nota
- Che 'l ben disposto spirito d' amor turge.
- DEL PARADISO, x. 142.
-
-***Chapter 46: Oma' vedrai di sì fatti uficiali.
- Del Purgatorio, ii. 30.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of The Project Gutenberg Etext of Lilith, George MacDonald
-
diff --git a/old/lilth10.zip b/old/lilth10.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index c6eb139..0000000
--- a/old/lilth10.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/lilth11.txt b/old/lilth11.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 08a4ef5..0000000
--- a/old/lilth11.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11539 +0,0 @@
-***The Project Gutenberg Etext of Lilith, by George MacDonald***
-#5 in our series by George MacDonald
-
-
-Copyright laws are changing all over the world, be sure to check
-the copyright laws for your country before posting these files!!
-
-Please take a look at the important information in this header.
-We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
-electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
-
-
-**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
-
-**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
-
-*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
-
-Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
-further information is included below. We need your donations.
-
-
-Lilith
-
-by George MacDonald
-
-February, 1999 [Etext #1640]
-
-
-***The Project Gutenberg Etext of Lilith, by George MacDonald***
-******This file should be named lilth11.txt or lilth11.zip******
-
-Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, lilth12.txt
-VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, lilth10a.txt
-
-
-This etext was compiled and prepared by John Bechard, an American
-living in London, England (JaBBechard@aol.com)
-
-Project Gutenberg Etexts are usually created from multiple editions,
-all of which are in the Public Domain in the United States, unless a
-copyright notice is included. Therefore, we do NOT keep these books
-in compliance with any particular paper edition, usually otherwise.
-
-
-We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
-of the official release dates, for time for better editing.
-
-Please note: neither this list nor its contents are final till
-midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
-The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
-Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
-preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
-and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
-up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
-in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
-a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
-look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
-new copy has at least one byte more or less.
-
-
-Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
-
-We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
-fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
-to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
-searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
-projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
-per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
-million dollars per hour this year as we release thirty-two text
-files per month, or 384 more Etexts in 1998 for a total of 1500+
-If these reach just 10% of the computerized population, then the
-total should reach over 150 billion Etexts given away.
-
-The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
-Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
-This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
-which is only 10% of the present number of computer users. 2001
-should have at least twice as many computer users as that, so it
-will require us reaching less than 5% of the users in 2001.
-
-
-We need your donations more than ever!
-
-
-All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/CMU": and are
-tax deductible to the extent allowable by law. (CMU = Carnegie-
-Mellon University).
-
-For these and other matters, please mail to:
-
-Project Gutenberg
-P. O. Box 2782
-Champaign, IL 61825
-
-When all other email fails try our Executive Director:
-Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>
-
-We would prefer to send you this information by email
-(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
-
-******
-If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
-FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
-[Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
-
-ftp uiarchive.cso.uiuc.edu
-login: anonymous
-password: your@login
-cd etext/etext90 through /etext96
-or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
-dir [to see files]
-get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
-GET INDEX?00.GUT
-for a list of books
-and
-GET NEW GUT for general information
-and
-MGET GUT* for newsletters.
-
-**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
-(Three Pages)
-
-
-***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
-Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
-They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
-your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
-someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
-fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
-disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
-you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
-
-*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
-By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
-this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
-a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
-sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
-you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
-medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
-
-ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
-This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
-tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
-Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
-Carnegie-Mellon University (the "Project"). Among other
-things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
-on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
-distribute it in the United States without permission and
-without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
-below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
-under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
-
-To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
-efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
-works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
-medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
-things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
-disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
-codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
-But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
-[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
-etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
-legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
-UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
-INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
-OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
-POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
-
-If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
-receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
-you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
-time to the person you received it from. If you received it
-on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
-such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
-copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
-choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
-receive it electronically.
-
-THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
-TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
-PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
-
-Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
-the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
-above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
-may have other legal rights.
-
-INDEMNITY
-You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
-officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
-and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
-indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
-[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
-or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
-
-DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
-You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
-disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
-"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
-or:
-
-[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
- requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
- etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
- if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
- binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
- including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
- cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
- *EITHER*:
-
- [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
- does *not* contain characters other than those
- intended by the author of the work, although tilde
- (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
- be used to convey punctuation intended by the
- author, and additional characters may be used to
- indicate hypertext links; OR
-
- [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
- no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
- form by the program that displays the etext (as is
- the case, for instance, with most word processors);
- OR
-
- [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
- no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
- etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
- or other equivalent proprietary form).
-
-[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
- "Small Print!" statement.
-
-[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
- net profits you derive calculated using the method you
- already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
- don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
- payable to "Project Gutenberg Association/Carnegie-Mellon
- University" within the 60 days following each
- date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
- your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
-
-WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
-The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
-scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
-free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
-you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
-Association / Carnegie-Mellon University".
-
-*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
-
-
-
-
-
-Lilith was first published in 1895
-This etext was compiled and prepared by John Bechard, an American
-living in London, England (JaBBechard@aol.com)
-
-
-
-
-
-Lilith
-
-by George MacDonald
-
-
-
-
-I took a walk on Spaulding's Farm the other afternoon. I saw the
-setting sun lighting up the opposite side of a stately pine wood.
-Its golden rays straggled into the aisles of the wood as into some
-noble hall. I was impressed as if some ancient and altogether
-admirable and shining family had settled there in that part of the
-land called Concord, unknown to me,--to whom the sun was servant,--
-who had not gone into society in the village,--who had not been
-called on. I saw their park, their pleasure-ground, beyond through
-the wood, in Spaulding's cranberry-meadow. The pines furnished them
-with gables as they grew. Their house was not obvious to vision;
-their trees grew through it. I do not know whether I heard the sounds
-of a suppressed hilarity or not. They seemed to recline on the
-sunbeams. They have sons and daughters. They are quite well. The
-farmer's cart-path, which leads directly through their hall, does not
-in the least put them out,--as the muddy bottom of a pool is sometimes
-seen through the reflected skies. They never heard of Spaulding,
-and do not know that he is their neighbor,--notwithstanding I heard
-him whistle as he drove his team through the house. Nothing can equal
-the serenity of their lives. Their coat of arms is simply a lichen.
-I saw it painted on the pines and oaks. Their attics were in the tops
-of the trees. They are of no politics. There was no noise of labor.
-I did not perceive that they were weaving or spinning. Yet I did
-detect, when the wind lulled and hearing was done away, the finest
-imaginable sweet musical hum,--as of a distant hive in May, which
-perchance was the sound of their thinking. They had no idle thoughts,
-and no one without could see their work, for their industry was not
-as in knots and excrescences embayed.
-
-But I find it difficult to remember them. They fade irrevocably
-out of my mind even now while I speak and endeavor to recall them,
-and recollect myself. It is only after a long and serious effort
-to recollect my best thoughts that I become again aware of their
-cohabitancy. If it were not for such families as this, I think I
-should move out of Concord.
-
-Thoreau: "WALKING."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-THE LIBRARY
-
-I had just finished my studies at Oxford, and was taking a brief
-holiday from work before assuming definitely the management of the
-estate. My father died when I was yet a child; my mother followed
-him within a year; and I was nearly as much alone in the world as a
-man might find himself.
-
-I had made little acquaintance with the history of my ancestors.
-Almost the only thing I knew concerning them was, that a notable
-number of them had been given to study. I had myself so far
-inherited the tendency as to devote a good deal of my time, though,
-I confess, after a somewhat desultory fashion, to the physical
-sciences. It was chiefly the wonder they woke that drew me. I was
-constantly seeing, and on the outlook to see, strange analogies, not
-only between the facts of different sciences of the same order,
-or between physical and metaphysical facts, but between physical
-hypotheses and suggestions glimmering out of the metaphysical dreams
-into which I was in the habit of falling. I was at the same time
-much given to a premature indulgence of the impulse to turn
-hypothesis into theory. Of my mental peculiarities there is no
-occasion to say more.
-
-The house as well as the family was of some antiquity, but no
-description of it is necessary to the understanding of my narrative.
-It contained a fine library, whose growth began before the invention
-of printing, and had continued to my own time, greatly influenced,
-of course, by changes of taste and pursuit. Nothing surely can more
-impress upon a man the transitory nature of possession than his
-succeeding to an ancient property! Like a moving panorama mine has
-passed from before many eyes, and is now slowly flitting from before
-my own.
-
-The library, although duly considered in many alterations of the
-house and additions to it, had nevertheless, like an encroaching
-state, absorbed one room after another until it occupied the greater
-part of the ground floor. Its chief room was large, and the walls
-of it were covered with books almost to the ceiling; the rooms
-into which it overflowed were of various sizes and shapes, and
-communicated in modes as various--by doors, by open arches, by short
-passages, by steps up and steps down.
-
-In the great room I mainly spent my time, reading books of science,
-old as well as new; for the history of the human mind in relation
-to supposed knowledge was what most of all interested me. Ptolemy,
-Dante, the two Bacons, and Boyle were even more to me than Darwin or
-Maxwell, as so much nearer the vanished van breaking into the dark
-of ignorance.
-
-In the evening of a gloomy day of August I was sitting in my usual
-place, my back to one of the windows, reading. It had rained the
-greater part of the morning and afternoon, but just as the sun was
-setting, the clouds parted in front of him, and he shone into the
-room. I rose and looked out of the window. In the centre of the
-great lawn the feathering top of the fountain column was filled with
-his red glory. I turned to resume my seat, when my eye was caught
-by the same glory on the one picture in the room--a portrait, in a
-sort of niche or little shrine sunk for it in the expanse of
-book-filled shelves. I knew it as the likeness of one of my
-ancestors, but had never even wondered why it hung there alone,
-and not in the gallery, or one of the great rooms, among the other
-family portraits. The direct sunlight brought out the painting
-wonderfully; for the first time I seemed to see it, and for the
-first time it seemed to respond to my look. With my eyes full of
-the light reflected from it, something, I cannot tell what, made me
-turn and cast a glance to the farther end of the room, when I saw,
-or seemed to see, a tall figure reaching up a hand to a bookshelf.
-The next instant, my vision apparently rectified by the comparative
-dusk, I saw no one, and concluded that my optic nerves had been
-momentarily affected from within.
-
-I resumed my reading, and would doubtless have forgotten the vague,
-evanescent impression, had it not been that, having occasion a
-moment after to consult a certain volume, I found but a gap in the
-row where it ought to have stood, and the same instant remembered
-that just there I had seen, or fancied I saw, the old man in search
-of a book. I looked all about the spot but in vain. The next
-morning, however, there it was, just where I had thought to find it!
-I knew of no one in the house likely to be interested in such a book.
-
-Three days after, another and yet odder thing took place.
-
-In one of the walls was the low, narrow door of a closet, containing
-some of the oldest and rarest of the books. It was a very thick
-door, with a projecting frame, and it had been the fancy of some
-ancestor to cross it with shallow shelves, filled with book-backs
-only. The harmless trick may be excused by the fact that the titles
-on the sham backs were either humorously original, or those of books
-lost beyond hope of recovery. I had a great liking for the masked
-door.
-
-To complete the illusion of it, some inventive workman apparently
-had shoved in, on the top of one of the rows, a part of a volume
-thin enough to lie between it and the bottom of the next shelf:
-he had cut away diagonally a considerable portion, and fixed
-the remnant with one of its open corners projecting beyond the
-book-backs. The binding of the mutilated volume was limp vellum,
-and one could open the corner far enough to see that it was
-manuscript upon parchment.
-
-Happening, as I sat reading, to raise my eyes from the page, my
-glance fell upon this door, and at once I saw that the book
-described, if book it may be called, was gone. Angrier than any
-worth I knew in it justified, I rang the bell, and the butler
-appeared. When I asked him if he knew what had befallen it, he
-turned pale, and assured me he did not. I could less easily doubt
-his word than my own eyes, for he had been all his life in the
-family, and a more faithful servant never lived. He left on me
-the impression, nevertheless, that he could have said something more.
-
-In the afternoon I was again reading in the library, and coming to
-a point which demanded reflection, I lowered the book and let my
-eyes go wandering. The same moment I saw the back of a slender
-old man, in a long, dark coat, shiny as from much wear, in the act
-of disappearing through the masked door into the closet beyond. I
-darted across the room, found the door shut, pulled it open, looked
-into the closet, which had no other issue, and, seeing nobody,
-concluded, not without uneasiness, that I had had a recurrence of
-my former illusion, and sat down again to my reading.
-
-Naturally, however, I could not help feeling a little nervous, and
-presently glancing up to assure myself that I was indeed alone,
-started again to my feet, and ran to the masked door--for there was
-the mutilated volume in its place! I laid hold of it and pulled: it
-was firmly fixed as usual!
-
-I was now utterly bewildered. I rang the bell; the butler came;
-I told him all I had seen, and he told me all he knew.
-
-He had hoped, he said, that the old gentleman was going to be
-forgotten; it was well no one but myself had seen him. He had
-heard a good deal about him when first he served in the house, but
-by degrees he had ceased to be mentioned, and he had been very
-careful not to allude to him.
-
-"The place was haunted by an old gentleman, was it?" I said.
-
-He answered that at one time everybody believed it, but the fact
-that I had never heard of it seemed to imply that the thing had
-come to an end and was forgotten.
-
-I questioned him as to what he had seen of the old gentleman.
-
-He had never seen him, he said, although he had been in the house
-from the day my father was eight years old. My grandfather would
-never hear a word on the matter, declaring that whoever alluded to
-it should be dismissed without a moment's warning: it was nothing
-but a pretext of the maids, he said, for running into the arms of
-the men! but old Sir Ralph believed in nothing he could not see or
-lay hold of. Not one of the maids ever said she had seen the
-apparition, but a footman had left the place because of it.
-
-An ancient woman in the village had told him a legend concerning a
-Mr. Raven, long time librarian to "that Sir Upward whose portrait
-hangs there among the books." Sir Upward was a great reader, she
-said--not of such books only as were wholesome for men to read, but
-of strange, forbidden, and evil books; and in so doing, Mr. Raven,
-who was probably the devil himself, encouraged him. Suddenly they
-both disappeared, and Sir Upward was never after seen or heard of,
-but Mr. Raven continued to show himself at uncertain intervals in
-the library. There were some who believed he was not dead; but both
-he and the old woman held it easier to believe that a dead man might
-revisit the world he had left, than that one who went on living for
-hundreds of years should be a man at all.
-
-He had never heard that Mr. Raven meddled with anything in the
-house, but he might perhaps consider himself privileged in regard
-to the books. How the old woman had learned so much about him he
-could not tell; but the description she gave of him corresponded
-exactly with the figure I had just seen.
-
-"I hope it was but a friendly call on the part of the old gentleman!"
-he concluded, with a troubled smile.
-
-I told him I had no objection to any number of visits from
-Mr. Raven, but it would be well he should keep to his resolution
-of saying nothing about him to the servants. Then I asked him if
-he had ever seen the mutilated volume out of its place; he answered
-that he never had, and had always thought it a fixture. With that
-he went to it, and gave it a pull: it seemed immovable.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-THE MIRROR
-
-Nothing more happened for some days. I think it was about a week
-after, when what I have now to tell took place.
-
-I had often thought of the manuscript fragment, and repeatedly
-tried to discover some way of releasing it, but in vain: I could
-not find out what held it fast.
-
-But I had for some time intended a thorough overhauling of the books
-in the closet, its atmosphere causing me uneasiness as to their
-condition. One day the intention suddenly became a resolve, and
-I was in the act of rising from my chair to make a beginning, when
-I saw the old librarian moving from the door of the closet toward
-the farther end of the room. I ought rather to say only that
-I caught sight of something shadowy from which I received the
-impression of a slight, stooping man, in a shabby dress-coat reaching
-almost to his heels, the tails of which, disparting a little as he
-walked, revealed thin legs in black stockings, and large feet in
-wide, slipper-like shoes.
-
-At once I followed him: I might be following a shadow, but I
-never doubted I was following something. He went out of the
-library into the hall, and across to the foot of the great
-staircase, then up the stairs to the first floor, where lay the
-chief rooms. Past these rooms, I following close, he continued
-his way, through a wide corridor, to the foot of a narrower stair
-leading to the second floor. Up that he went also, and when I
-reached the top, strange as it may seem, I found myself in a region
-almost unknown to me. I never had brother or sister to incite to
-such romps as make children familiar with nook and cranny; I was a
-mere child when my guardian took me away; and I had never seen the
-house again until, about a month before, I returned to take
-possession.
-
-Through passage after passage we came to a door at the bottom of
-a winding wooden stair, which we ascended. Every step creaked under
-my foot, but I heard no sound from that of my guide. Somewhere in
-the middle of the stair I lost sight of him, and from the top of it
-the shadowy shape was nowhere visible. I could not even imagine I
-saw him. The place was full of shadows, but he was not one of them.
-
-I was in the main garret, with huge beams and rafters over my head,
-great spaces around me, a door here and there in sight, and long
-vistas whose gloom was thinned by a few lurking cobwebbed windows
-and small dusky skylights. I gazed with a strange mingling of awe
-and pleasure: the wide expanse of garret was my own, and unexplored!
-
-In the middle of it stood an unpainted inclosure of rough planks,
-the door of which was ajar. Thinking Mr. Raven might be there, I
-pushed the door, and entered.
-
-The small chamber was full of light, but such as dwells in places
-deserted: it had a dull, disconsolate look, as if it found itself
-of no use, and regretted having come. A few rather dim sunrays,
-marking their track through the cloud of motes that had just been
-stirred up, fell upon a tall mirror with a dusty face, old-fashioned
-and rather narrow--in appearance an ordinary glass. It had an ebony
-frame, on the top of which stood a black eagle, with outstretched
-wings, in his beak a golden chain, from whose end hung a black ball.
-
-I had been looking at rather than into the mirror, when suddenly
-I became aware that it reflected neither the chamber nor my own
-person. I have an impression of having seen the wall melt away,
-but what followed is enough to account for any uncertainty:--could
-I have mistaken for a mirror the glass that protected a wonderful
-picture?
-
-I saw before me a wild country, broken and heathy. Desolate hills
-of no great height, but somehow of strange appearance, occupied
-the middle distance; along the horizon stretched the tops of a
-far-off mountain range; nearest me lay a tract of moorland, flat
-and melancholy.
-
-Being short-sighted, I stepped closer to examine the texture of a
-stone in the immediate foreground, and in the act espied, hopping
-toward me with solemnity, a large and ancient raven, whose purply
-black was here and there softened with gray. He seemed looking for
-worms as he came. Nowise astonished at the appearance of a live
-creature in a picture, I took another step forward to see him
-better, stumbled over something--doubtless the frame of the mirror--
-and stood nose to beak with the bird: I was in the open air, on a
-houseless heath!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-THE RAVEN
-
-I turned and looked behind me: all was vague and uncertain, as when
-one cannot distinguish between fog and field, between cloud and
-mountain-side. One fact only was plain--that I saw nothing I knew.
-Imagining myself involved in a visual illusion, and that touch would
-correct sight, I stretched my arms and felt about me, walking in
-this direction and that, if haply, where I could see nothing, I
-might yet come in contact with something; but my search was vain.
-Instinctively then, as to the only living thing near me, I turned
-to the raven, which stood a little way off, regarding me with an
-expression at once respectful and quizzical. Then the absurdity
-of seeking counsel from such a one struck me, and I turned again,
-overwhelmed with bewilderment, not unmingled with fear. Had I
-wandered into a region where both the material and psychical
-relations of our world had ceased to hold? Might a man at any
-moment step beyond the realm of order, and become the sport of the
-lawless? Yet I saw the raven, felt the ground under my feet, and
-heard a sound as of wind in the lowly plants around me!
-
-"How DID I get here?" I said--apparently aloud, for the question
-was immediately answered.
-
-"You came through the door," replied an odd, rather harsh voice.
-
-I looked behind, then all about me, but saw no human shape. The
-terror that madness might be at hand laid hold upon me: must
-I henceforth place no confidence either in my senses or my
-consciousness? The same instant I knew it was the raven that had
-spoken, for he stood looking up at me with an air of waiting. The
-sun was not shining, yet the bird seemed to cast a shadow, and
-the shadow seemed part of himself.
-
-I beg my reader to aid me in the endeavour to make myself
-intelligible--if here understanding be indeed possible between us.
-I was in a world, or call it a state of things, an economy of
-conditions, an idea of existence, so little correspondent with the
-ways and modes of this world--which we are apt to think the only
-world, that the best choice I can make of word or phrase is but
-an adumbration of what I would convey. I begin indeed to fear that
-I have undertaken an impossibility, undertaken to tell what I
-cannot tell because no speech at my command will fit the forms in
-my mind. Already I have set down statements I would gladly change
-did I know how to substitute a truer utterance; but as often as I
-try to fit the reality with nearer words, I find myself in danger
-of losing the things themselves, and feel like one in process of
-awaking from a dream, with the thing that seemed familiar gradually
-yet swiftly changing through a succession of forms until its very
-nature is no longer recognisable.
-
-I bethought me that a bird capable of addressing a man must have
-the right of a man to a civil answer; perhaps, as a bird, even a
-greater claim.
-
-A tendency to croak caused a certain roughness in his speech, but
-his voice was not disagreeable, and what he said, although conveying
-little enlightenment, did not sound rude.
-
-"I did not come through any door," I rejoined.
-
-"I saw you come through it!--saw you with my own ancient eyes!"
-asserted the raven, positively but not disrespectfully.
-
-"I never saw any door!" I persisted.
-
-"Of course not!" he returned; "all the doors you had yet seen--and
-you haven't seen many--were doors in; here you came upon a door out!
-The strange thing to you," he went on thoughtfully, "will be, that
-the more doors you go out of, the farther you get in!"
-
-"Oblige me by telling me where I am."
-
-"That is impossible. You know nothing about whereness. The only
-way to come to know where you are is to begin to make yourself at
-home."
-
-"How am I to begin that where everything is so strange?"
-
-"By doing something."
-
-"What?"
-
-"Anything; and the sooner you begin the better! for until you are
-at home, you will find it as difficult to get out as it is to get
-in."
-
-"I have, unfortunately, found it too easy to get in; once out I
-shall not try again!"
-
-"You have stumbled in, and may, possibly, stumble out again. Whether
-you have got in UNFORTUNATELY remains to be seen."
-
-"Do you never go out, sir?"
-
-"When I please I do, but not often, or for long. Your world is
-such a half-baked sort of place, it is at once so childish and so
-self-satisfied--in fact, it is not sufficiently developed for an
-old raven--at your service!"
-
-"Am I wrong, then, in presuming that a man is superior to a bird?"
-
-"That is as it may be. We do not waste our intellects in
-generalising, but take man or bird as we find him.--I think it
-is now my turn to ask you a question!"
-
-"You have the best of rights," I replied, "in the fact that you
-CAN do so!"
-
-"Well answered!" he rejoined. "Tell me, then, who you are--if
-you happen to know."
-
-"How should I help knowing? I am myself, and must know!"
-
-"If you know you are yourself, you know that you are not somebody
-else; but do you know that you are yourself? Are you sure you
-are not your own father?--or, excuse me, your own fool?--Who are
-you, pray?"
-
-I became at once aware that I could give him no notion of who
-I was. Indeed, who was I? It would be no answer to say I was who!
-Then I understood that I did not know myself, did not know what I
-was, had no grounds on which to determine that I was one and not
-another. As for the name I went by in my own world, I had forgotten
-it, and did not care to recall it, for it meant nothing, and what
-it might be was plainly of no consequence here. I had indeed almost
-forgotten that there it was a custom for everybody to have a name!
-So I held my peace, and it was my wisdom; for what should I say to a
-creature such as this raven, who saw through accident into entity?
-
-"Look at me," he said, "and tell me who I am."
-
-As he spoke, he turned his back, and instantly I knew him. He was
-no longer a raven, but a man above the middle height with a stoop,
-very thin, and wearing a long black tail-coat. Again he turned,
-and I saw him a raven.
-
-"I have seen you before, sir," I said, feeling foolish rather than
-surprised.
-
-"How can you say so from seeing me behind?" he rejoined. "Did you
-ever see yourself behind? You have never seen yourself at all!
---Tell me now, then, who I am."
-
-"I humbly beg your pardon," I answered: "I believe you were once
-the librarian of our house, but more WHO I do not know."
-
-"Why do you beg my pardon?"
-
-"Because I took you for a raven," I said--seeing him before me as
-plainly a raven as bird or man could look.
-
-"You did me no wrong," he returned. "Calling me a raven, or
-thinking me one, you allowed me existence, which is the sum of what
-one can demand of his fellow-beings. Therefore, in return, I will
-give you a lesson:--No one can say he is himself, until first he
-knows that he IS, and then what HIMSELF is. In fact, nobody is
-himself, and himself is nobody. There is more in it than you can
-see now, but not more than you need to see. You have, I fear, got
-into this region too soon, but none the less you must get to be at
-home in it; for home, as you may or may not know, is the only place
-where you can go out and in. There are places you can go into, and
-places you can go out of; but the one place, if you do but find it,
-where you may go out and in both, is home."
-
-He turned to walk away, and again I saw the librarian. He did not
-appear to have changed, only to have taken up his shadow. I know
-this seems nonsense, but I cannot help it.
-
-I gazed after him until I saw him no more; but whether distance hid
-him, or he disappeared among the heather, I cannot tell.
-
-Could it be that I was dead, I thought, and did not know it? Was
-I in what we used to call the world beyond the grave? and must I
-wander about seeking my place in it? How was I to find myself at
-home? The raven said I must do something: what could I do here?--
-And would that make me somebody? for now, alas, I was nobody!
-
-I took the way Mr. Raven had gone, and went slowly after him.
-Presently I saw a wood of tall slender pine-trees, and turned toward
-it. The odour of it met me on my way, and I made haste to bury
-myself in it.
-
-Plunged at length in its twilight glooms, I spied before me
-something with a shine, standing between two of the stems. It
-had no colour, but was like the translucent trembling of the hot
-air that rises, in a radiant summer noon, from the sun-baked ground,
-vibrant like the smitten chords of a musical instrument. What it
-was grew no plainer as I went nearer, and when I came close up, I
-ceased to see it, only the form and colour of the trees beyond
-seemed strangely uncertain. I would have passed between the stems,
-but received a slight shock, stumbled, and fell. When I rose, I
-saw before me the wooden wall of the garret chamber. I turned, and
-there was the mirror, on whose top the black eagle seemed but that
-moment to have perched.
-
-Terror seized me, and I fled. Outside the chamber the wide garret
-spaces had an UNCANNY look. They seemed to have long been waiting
-for something; it had come, and they were waiting again! A shudder
-went through me on the winding stair: the house had grown strange
-to me! something was about to leap upon me from behind! I darted
-down the spiral, struck against the wall and fell, rose and ran. On
-the next floor I lost my way, and had gone through several passages
-a second time ere I found the head of the stair. At the top of the
-great stair I had come to myself a little, and in a few moments I
-sat recovering my breath in the library.
-
-Nothing should ever again make me go up that last terrible stair!
-The garret at the top of it pervaded the whole house! It sat upon
-it, threatening to crush me out of it! The brooding brain of the
-building, it was full of mysterious dwellers, one or other of whom
-might any moment appear in the library where I sat! I was nowhere
-safe! I would let, I would sell the dreadful place, in which an
-aërial portal stood ever open to creatures whose life was other than
-human! I would purchase a crag in Switzerland, and thereon build a
-wooden nest of one story with never a garret above it, guarded by
-some grand old peak that would send down nothing worse than a few
-tons of whelming rock!
-
-I knew all the time that my thinking was foolish, and was even aware
-of a certain undertone of contemptuous humour in it; but suddenly it
-was checked, and I seemed again to hear the croak of the raven.
-
-"If I know nothing of my own garret," I thought, "what is there to
-secure me against my own brain? Can I tell what it is even now
-generating?--what thought it may present me the next moment, the
-next month, or a year away? What is at the heart of my brain? What
-is behind my THINK? Am I there at all?--Who, what am I?"
-
-I could no more answer the question now than when the raven put it
-to me in--at--"Where in?--where at?" I said, and gave myself up as
-knowing anything of myself or the universe.
-
-I started to my feet, hurried across the room to the masked door,
-where the mutilated volume, sticking out from the flat of soulless,
-bodiless, non-existent books, appeared to beckon me, went down on
-my knees, and opened it as far as its position would permit, but
-could see nothing. I got up again, lighted a taper, and peeping as
-into a pair of reluctant jaws, perceived that the manuscript was
-verse. Further I could not carry discovery. Beginnings of lines
-were visible on the left-hand page, and ends of lines on the other;
-but I could not, of course, get at the beginning and end of a single
-line, and was unable, in what I could read, to make any guess at
-the sense. The mere words, however, woke in me feelings which to
-describe was, from their strangeness, impossible. Some dreams, some
-poems, some musical phrases, some pictures, wake feelings such as
-one never had before, new in colour and form--spiritual sensations,
-as it were, hitherto unproved: here, some of the phrases, some of
-the senseless half-lines, some even of the individual words affected
-me in similar fashion--as with the aroma of an idea, rousing in me
-a great longing to know what the poem or poems might, even yet in
-their mutilation, hold or suggest.
-
-I copied out a few of the larger shreds attainable, and tried hard
-to complete some of the lines, but without the least success. The
-only thing I gained in the effort was so much weariness that, when
-I went to bed, I fell asleep at once and slept soundly.
-
-In the morning all that horror of the empty garret spaces had left
-me.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-SOMEWHERE OR NOWHERE?
-
-The sun was very bright, but I doubted if the day would long be
-fine, and looked into the milky sapphire I wore, to see whether the
-star in it was clear. It was even less defined than I had expected.
-I rose from the breakfast-table, and went to the window to glance at
-the stone again. There had been heavy rain in the night, and on the
-lawn was a thrush breaking his way into the shell of a snail.
-
-As I was turning my ring about to catch the response of the star
-to the sun, I spied a keen black eye gazing at me out of the milky
-misty blue. The sight startled me so that I dropped the ring, and
-when I picked it up the eye was gone from it. The same moment the
-sun was obscured; a dark vapour covered him, and in a minute or two
-the whole sky was clouded. The air had grown sultry, and a gust
-of wind came suddenly. A moment more and there was a flash of
-lightning, with a single sharp thunder-clap. Then the rain fell
-in torrents.
-
-I had opened the window, and stood there looking out at the
-precipitous rain, when I descried a raven walking toward me over
-the grass, with solemn gait, and utter disregard of the falling
-deluge. Suspecting who he was, I congratulated myself that I was
-safe on the ground-floor. At the same time I had a conviction that,
-if I were not careful, something would happen.
-
-He came nearer and nearer, made a profound bow, and with a sudden
-winged leap stood on the window-sill. Then he stepped over the
-ledge, jumped down into the room, and walked to the door. I thought
-he was on his way to the library, and followed him, determined, if
-he went up the stair, not to take one step after him. He turned,
-however, neither toward the library nor the stair, but to a little
-door that gave upon a grass-patch in a nook between two portions
-of the rambling old house. I made haste to open it for him. He
-stepped out into its creeper-covered porch, and stood looking at
-the rain, which fell like a huge thin cataract; I stood in the door
-behind him. The second flash came, and was followed by a lengthened
-roll of more distant thunder. He turned his head over his shoulder
-and looked at me, as much as to say, "You hear that?" then swivelled
-it round again, and anew contemplated the weather, apparently with
-approbation. So human were his pose and carriage and the way he
-kept turning his head, that I remarked almost involuntarily,
-
-"Fine weather for the worms, Mr. Raven!"
-
-"Yes," he answered, in the rather croaky voice I had learned to
-know, "the ground will be nice for them to get out and in!--It must
-be a grand time on the steppes of Uranus!" he added, with a glance
-upward; "I believe it is raining there too; it was, all the last
-week!"
-
-"Why should that make it a grand time?" I asked.
-
-"Because the animals there are all burrowers," he answered, "--like
-the field-mice and the moles here.--They will be, for ages to come."
-
-"How do you know that, if I may be so bold?" I rejoined.
-
-"As any one would who had been there to see," he replied. "It is a
-great sight, until you get used to it, when the earth gives a heave,
-and out comes a beast. You might think it a hairy elephant or a
-deinotherium--but none of the animals are the same as we have ever
-had here. I was almost frightened myself the first time I saw the
-dry-bog-serpent come wallowing out--such a head and mane! and SUCH
-eyes!--but the shower is nearly over. It will stop directly after
-the next thunder-clap. There it is!"
-
-A flash came with the words, and in about half a minute the thunder.
-Then the rain ceased.
-
-"Now we should be going!" said the raven, and stepped to the front
-of the porch.
-
-"Going where?" I asked.
-
-"Going where we have to go," he answered. "You did not surely think
-you had got home? I told you there was no going out and in at
-pleasure until you were at home!"
-
-"I do not want to go," I said.
-
-"That does not make any difference--at least not much," he answered.
-"This is the way!"
-
-"I am quite content where I am."
-
-"You think so, but you are not. Come along."
-
-He hopped from the porch onto the grass, and turned, waiting.
-
-"I will not leave the house to-day," I said with obstinacy.
-
-"You will come into the garden!" rejoined the raven.
-
-"I give in so far," I replied, and stepped from the porch.
-
-The sun broke through the clouds, and the raindrops flashed and
-sparkled on the grass. The raven was walking over it.
-
-"You will wet your feet!" I cried.
-
-"And mire my beak," he answered, immediately plunging it deep in the
-sod, and drawing out a great wriggling red worm. He threw back his
-head, and tossed it in the air. It spread great wings, gorgeous in
-red and black, and soared aloft.
-
-"Tut! tut!" I exclaimed; "you mistake, Mr. Raven: worms are not the
-larvæ of butterflies!"
-
-"Never mind," he croaked; "it will do for once! I'm not a reading
-man at present, but sexton at the--at a certain graveyard--cemetery,
-more properly--in--at--no matter where!"
-
-"I see! you can't keep your spade still: and when you have nothing
-to bury, you must dig something up! Only you should mind what it
-is before you make it fly! No creature should be allowed to forget
-what and where it came from!"
-
-"Why?" said the raven.
-
-"Because it will grow proud, and cease to recognise its superiors."
-
-No man knows it when he is making an idiot of himself.
-
-"Where DO the worms come from?" said the raven, as if suddenly grown
-curious to know.
-
-"Why, from the earth, as you have just seen!" I answered.
-
-"Yes, last!" he replied. "But they can't have come from it first--
-for that will never go back to it!" he added, looking up.
-
-I looked up also, but could see nothing save a little dark cloud,
-the edges of which were red, as if with the light of the sunset.
-
-"Surely the sun is not going down!" I exclaimed, struck with
-amazement.
-
-"Oh, no!" returned the raven. "That red belongs to the worm."
-
-"You see what comes of making creatures forget their origin!" I
-cried with some warmth.
-
-"It is well, surely, if it be to rise higher and grow larger!" he
-returned. "But indeed I only teach them to find it!"
-
-"Would you have the air full of worms?"
-
-"That is the business of a sexton. If only the rest of the clergy
-understood it as well!"
-
-In went his beak again through the soft turf, and out came the
-wriggling worm. He tossed it in the air, and away it flew.
-
-I looked behind me, and gave a cry of dismay: I had but that moment
-declared I would not leave the house, and already I was a stranger
-in the strange land!
-
-"What right have you to treat me so, Mr. Raven?" I said with deep
-offence. "Am I, or am I not, a free agent?"
-
-"A man is as free as he chooses to make himself, never an atom
-freer," answered the raven.
-
-"You have no right to make me do things against my will!"
-
-"When you have a will, you will find that no one can."
-
-"You wrong me in the very essence of my individuality!" I persisted.
-
-"If you were an individual I could not, therefore now I do not. You
-are but beginning to become an individual."
-
-All about me was a pine-forest, in which my eyes were already
-searching deep, in the hope of discovering an unaccountable glimmer,
-and so finding my way home. But, alas! how could I any longer call
-that house HOME, where every door, every window opened into OUT, and
-even the garden I could not keep inside!
-
-I suppose I looked discomfited.
-
-"Perhaps it may comfort you," said the raven, "to be told that you
-have not yet left your house, neither has your house left you. At
-the same time it cannot contain you, or you inhabit it!"
-
-"I do not understand you," I replied. "Where am I?"
-
-"In the region of the seven dimensions," he answered, with a curious
-noise in his throat, and a flutter of his tail. "You had better
-follow me carefully now for a moment, lest you should hurt some
-one!"
-
-"There is nobody to hurt but yourself, Mr. Raven! I confess I should
-rather like to hurt you!"
-
-"That you see nobody is where the danger lies. But you see that
-large tree to your left, about thirty yards away?"
-
-"Of course I do: why should I not?" I answered testily.
-
-"Ten minutes ago you did not see it, and now you do not know where
-it stands!"
-
-"I do."
-
-"Where do you think it stands?"
-
-"Why THERE, where you know it is!"
-
-"Where is THERE?"
-
-"You bother me with your silly questions!" I cried. "I am growing
-tired of you!"
-
-"That tree stands on the hearth of your kitchen, and grows nearly
-straight up its chimney," he said.
-
-"Now I KNOW you are making game of me!" I answered, with a laugh
-of scorn.
-
-"Was I making game of you when you discovered me looking out of your
-star-sapphire yesterday?"
-
-"That was this morning--not an hour ago!"
-
-"I have been widening your horizon longer than that, Mr. Vane; but
-never mind!"
-
-"You mean you have been making a fool of me!" I said, turning from
-him.
-
-"Excuse me: no one can do that but yourself!"
-
-"And I decline to do it."
-
-"You mistake."
-
-"How?"
-
-"In declining to acknowledge yourself one already. You make yourself
-such by refusing what is true, and for that you will sorely punish
-yourself."
-
-"How, again?"
-
-"By believing what is not true."
-
-"Then, if I walk to the other side of that tree, I shall walk
-through the kitchen fire?"
-
-"Certainly. You would first, however, walk through the lady at the
-piano in the breakfast-room. That rosebush is close by her. You
-would give her a terrible start!"
-
-"There is no lady in the house!"
-
-"Indeed! Is not your housekeeper a lady? She is counted such in
-a certain country where all are servants, and the liveries one and
-multitudinous!"
-
-"She cannot use the piano, anyhow!"
-
-"Her niece can: she is there--a well-educated girl and a capital
-musician."
-
-"Excuse me; I cannot help it: you seem to me to be talking sheer
-nonsense!"
-
-"If you could but hear the music! Those great long heads of wild
-hyacinth are inside the piano, among the strings of it, and give
-that peculiar sweetness to her playing!--Pardon me: I forgot your
-deafness!"
-
-"Two objects," I said, "cannot exist in the same place at the same
-time!"
-
-"Can they not? I did not know!--I remember now they do teach that
-with you. It is a great mistake--one of the greatest ever wiseacre
-made! No man of the universe, only a man of the world could have
-said so!"
-
-"You a librarian, and talk such rubbish!" I cried. "Plainly, you
-did not read many of the books in your charge!"
-
-"Oh, yes! I went through all in your library--at the time, and
-came out at the other side not much the wiser. I was a bookworm
-then, but when I came to know it, I woke among the butterflies. To
-be sure I have given up reading for a good many years--ever since I
-was made sexton.--There! I smell Grieg's Wedding March in the
-quiver of those rose-petals!"
-
-I went to the rose-bush and listened hard, but could not hear the
-thinnest ghost of a sound; I only smelt something I had never before
-smelt in any rose. It was still rose-odour, but with a difference,
-caused, I suppose, by the Wedding March.
-
-When I looked up, there was the bird by my side.
-
-"Mr. Raven," I said, "forgive me for being so rude: I was irritated.
-Will you kindly show me my way home? I must go, for I have an
-appointment with my bailiff. One must not break faith with his
-servants!"
-
-"You cannot break what was broken days ago!" he answered.
-
-"Do show me the way," I pleaded.
-
-"I cannot," he returned. "To go back, you must go through yourself,
-and that way no man can show another."
-
-Entreaty was vain. I must accept my fate! But how was life to be
-lived in a world of which I had all the laws to learn? There would,
-however, be adventure! that held consolation; and whether I found
-my way home or not, I should at least have the rare advantage of
-knowing two worlds!
-
-I had never yet done anything to justify my existence; my former
-world was nothing the better for my sojourn in it: here, however,
-I must earn, or in some way find, my bread! But I reasoned that,
-as I was not to blame in being here, I might expect to be taken care
-of here as well as there! I had had nothing to do with getting into
-the world I had just left, and in it I had found myself heir to a
-large property! If that world, as I now saw, had a claim upon me
-because I had eaten, and could eat again, upon this world I had a
-claim because I must eat--when it would in return have a claim on
-me!
-
-"There is no hurry," said the raven, who stood regarding me; "we do
-not go much by the clock here. Still, the sooner one begins to do
-what has to be done, the better! I will take you to my wife."
-
-"Thank you. Let us go!" I answered, and immediately he led the way.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-THE OLD CHURCH
-
-I followed him deep into the pine-forest. Neither of us said much
-while yet the sacred gloom of it closed us round. We came to larger
-and yet larger trees--older, and more individual, some of them
-grotesque with age. Then the forest grew thinner.
-
-"You see that hawthorn?" said my guide at length, pointing with
-his beak.
-
-I looked where the wood melted away on the edge of an open heath.
-
-"I see a gnarled old man, with a great white head," I answered.
-
-"Look again," he rejoined: "it is a hawthorn."
-
-"It seems indeed an ancient hawthorn; but this is not the season
-for the hawthorn to blossom!" I objected.
-
-"The season for the hawthorn to blossom," he replied, "is when
-the hawthorn blossoms. That tree is in the ruins of the church
-on your home-farm. You were going to give some directions to the
-bailiff about its churchyard, were you not, the morning of the
-thunder?"
-
-"I was going to tell him I wanted it turned into a wilderness of
-rose-trees, and that the plough must never come within three yards
-of it."
-
-"Listen!" said the raven, seeming to hold his breath.
-
-I listened, and heard--was it the sighing of a far-off musical
-wind--or the ghost of a music that had once been glad? Or did I
-indeed hear anything?
-
-"They go there still," said the raven.
-
-"Who goes there? and where do they go?" I asked.
-
-"Some of the people who used to pray there, go to the ruins still,"
-he replied. "But they will not go much longer, I think."
-
-"What makes them go now?"
-
-"They need help from each other to get their thinking done, and
-their feelings hatched, so they talk and sing together; and then,
-they say, the big thought floats out of their hearts like a great
-ship out of the river at high water."
-
-"Do they pray as well as sing?"
-
-"No; they have found that each can best pray in his own silent
-heart.--Some people are always at their prayers.--Look! look! There
-goes one!"
-
-He pointed right up into the air. A snow-white pigeon was mounting,
-with quick and yet quicker wing-flap, the unseen spiral of an
-ethereal stair. The sunshine flashed quivering from its wings.
-
-"I see a pigeon!" I said.
-
-"Of course you see a pigeon," rejoined the raven, "for there is the
-pigeon! I see a prayer on its way.--I wonder now what heart is that
-dove's mother! Some one may have come awake in my cemetery!"
-
-"How can a pigeon be a prayer?" I said. "I understand, of course,
-how it should be a fit symbol or likeness for one; but a live pigeon
-to come out of a heart!"
-
-"It MUST puzzle you! It cannot fail to do so!"
-
-"A prayer is a thought, a thing spiritual!" I pursued.
-
-"Very true! But if you understood any world besides your own, you
-would understand your own much better.--When a heart is really
-alive, then it is able to think live things. There is one heart all
-whose thoughts are strong, happy creatures, and whose very dreams
-are lives. When some pray, they lift heavy thoughts from the
-ground, only to drop them on it again; others send up their prayers
-in living shapes, this or that, the nearest likeness to each. All
-live things were thoughts to begin with, and are fit therefore to
-be used by those that think. When one says to the great Thinker:--
-"Here is one of thy thoughts: I am thinking it now!" that is a
-prayer--a word to the big heart from one of its own little hearts.--
-Look, there is another!"
-
-This time the raven pointed his beak downward--to something at the
-foot of a block of granite. I looked, and saw a little flower. I
-had never seen one like it before, and cannot utter the feeling it
-woke in me by its gracious, trusting form, its colour, and its odour
-as of a new world that was yet the old. I can only say that it
-suggested an anemone, was of a pale rose-hue, and had a golden heart.
-
-"That is a prayer-flower," said the raven.
-
-"I never saw such a flower before!" I rejoined.
-
-"There is no other such. Not one prayer-flower is ever quite like
-another," he returned.
-
-"How do you know it a prayer-flower?" I asked.
-
-"By the expression of it," he answered. "More than that I cannot
-tell you. If you know it, you know it; if you do not, you do not."
-
-"Could you not teach me to know a prayer-flower when I see it?" I
-said.
-
-"I could not. But if I could, what better would you be? you would
-not know it of YOURSELF and ITself! Why know the name of a thing
-when the thing itself you do not know? Whose work is it but your
-own to open your eyes? But indeed the business of the universe is
-to make such a fool of you that you will know yourself for one, and
-so begin to be wise!"
-
-But I did see that the flower was different from any flower I had
-ever seen before; therefore I knew that I must be seeing a shadow
-of the prayer in it; and a great awe came over me to think of the
-heart listening to the flower.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-THE SEXTON'S COTTAGE
-
-We had been for some time walking over a rocky moorland covered
-with dry plants and mosses, when I descried a little cottage in the
-farthest distance. The sun was not yet down, but he was wrapt in a
-gray cloud. The heath looked as if it had never been warm, and the
-wind blew strangely cold, as if from some region where it was always
-night.
-
-"Here we are at last!" said the raven. "What a long way it is! In
-half the time I could have gone to Paradise and seen my cousin--him,
-you remember, who never came back to Noah! Dear! dear! it is almost
-winter!"
-
-"Winter!" I cried; "it seems but half a day since we left home!"
-
-"That is because we have travelled so fast," answered the raven. "In
-your world you cannot pull up the plumb-line you call gravitation,
-and let the world spin round under your feet! But here is my wife's
-house! She is very good to let me live with her, and call it the
-sexton's cottage!"
-
-"But where is your churchyard--your cemetery--where you make your
-graves, I mean?" said I, seeing nothing but the flat heath.
-
-The raven stretched his neck, held out his beak horizontally, turned
-it slowly round to all the points of the compass, and said nothing.
-
-I followed the beak with my eyes, and lo, without church or graves,
-all was a churchyard! Wherever the dreary wind swept, there was
-the raven's cemetery! He was sexton of all he surveyed! lord of all
-that was laid aside! I stood in the burial-ground of the universe;
-its compass the unenclosed heath, its wall the gray horizon, low
-and starless! I had left spring and summer, autumn and sunshine
-behind me, and come to the winter that waited for me! I had set
-out in the prime of my youth, and here I was already!--But I mistook.
-The day might well be long in that region, for it contained the
-seasons. Winter slept there, the night through, in his winding-sheet
-of ice; with childlike smile, Spring came awake in the dawn; at
-noon, Summer blazed abroad in her gorgeous beauty; with the
-slow-changing afternoon, old Autumn crept in, and died at the
-first breath of the vaporous, ghosty night.
-
-As we drew near the cottage, the clouded sun was rushing down the
-steepest slope of the west, and he sank while we were yet a few
-yards from the door. The same instant I was assailed by a cold
-that seemed almost a material presence, and I struggled across the
-threshold as if from the clutches of an icy death. A wind swelled
-up on the moor, and rushed at the door as with difficulty I closed
-it behind me. Then all was still, and I looked about me.
-
-A candle burned on a deal table in the middle of the room, and the
-first thing I saw was the lid of a coffin, as I thought, set up
-against the wall; but it opened, for it was a door, and a woman
-entered. She was all in white--as white as new-fallen snow; and
-her face was as white as her dress, but not like snow, for at once
-it suggested warmth. I thought her features were perfect, but her
-eyes made me forget them. The life of her face and her whole person
-was gathered and concentrated in her eyes, where it became light.
-It might have been coming death that made her face luminous, but the
-eyes had life in them for a nation--large, and dark with a darkness
-ever deepening as I gazed. A whole night-heaven lay condensed in
-each pupil; all the stars were in its blackness, and flashed; while
-round it for a horizon lay coiled an iris of the eternal twilight.
-What any eye IS, God only knows: her eyes must have been coming
-direct out of his own! the still face might be a primeval perfection;
-the live eyes were a continuous creation.
-
-"Here is Mr. Vane, wife!" said the raven.
-
-"He is welcome," she answered, in a low, rich, gentle voice.
-Treasures of immortal sound seemed to he buried in it.
-
-I gazed, and could not speak.
-
-"I knew you would be glad to see him!" added the raven.
-
-She stood in front of the door by which she had entered, and did
-not come nearer.
-
-"Will he sleep?" she asked.
-
-"I fear not," he replied; "he is neither weary nor heavy laden."
-
-"Why then have you brought him?"
-
-"I have my fears it may prove precipitate."
-
-"I do not quite understand you," I said, with an uneasy foreboding
-as to what she meant, but a vague hope of some escape. "Surely a
-man must do a day's work first!"
-
-I gazed into the white face of the woman, and my heart fluttered.
-She returned my gaze in silence.
-
-"Let me first go home," I resumed, "and come again after I have
-found or made, invented, or at least discovered something!"
-
-"He has not yet learned that the day begins with sleep!" said the
-woman, turning to her husband. "Tell him he must rest before he can
-do anything!"
-
-"Men," he answered, "think so much of having done, that they fall
-asleep upon it. They cannot empty an egg but they turn into the
-shell, and lie down!"
-
-The words drew my eyes from the woman to the raven.
-
-I saw no raven, but the librarian--the same slender elderly man,
-in a rusty black coat, large in the body and long in the tails. I
-had seen only his back before; now for the first time I saw his
-face. It was so thin that it showed the shape of the bones under
-it, suggesting the skulls his last-claimed profession must have made
-him familiar with. But in truth I had never before seen a face so
-alive, or a look so keen or so friendly as that in his pale blue
-eyes, which yet had a haze about them as if they had done much
-weeping.
-
-"You knew I was not a raven!" he said with a smile.
-
-"I knew you were Mr. Raven," I replied; "but somehow I thought you
-a bird too!"
-
-"What made you think me a bird?"
-
-"You looked a raven, and I saw you dig worms out of the earth with
-your beak."
-
-"And then?"
-
-"Toss them in the air."
-"And then?"
-
-"They grew butterflies, and flew away."
-
-"Did you ever see a raven do that? I told you I was a sexton!"
-
-"Does a sexton toss worms in the air, and turn them into butterflies?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"I never saw one do it!"
-
-"You saw me do it!--But I am still librarian in your house, for I
-never was dismissed, and never gave up the office. Now I am
-librarian here as well."
-
-"But you have just told me you were sexton here!"
-
-"So I am. It is much the same profession. Except you are a true
-sexton, books are but dead bodies to you, and a library nothing but
-a catacomb!"
-
-"You bewilder me!"
-
-"That's all right!"
-
-A few moments he stood silent. The woman, moveless as a statue,
-stood silent also by the coffin-door.
-
-"Upon occasion," said the sexton at length, "it is more convenient
-to put one's bird-self in front. Every one, as you ought to know,
-has a beast-self--and a bird-self, and a stupid fish-self, ay, and
-a creeping serpent-self too--which it takes a deal of crushing to
-kill! In truth he has also a tree-self and a crystal-self, and I
-don't know how many selves more--all to get into harmony. You can
-tell what sort a man is by his creature that comes oftenest to the
-front."
-
-He turned to his wife, and I considered him more closely. He was
-above the ordinary height, and stood more erect than when last I saw
-him. His face was, like his wife's, very pale; its nose handsomely
-encased the beak that had retired within it; its lips were very
-thin, and even they had no colour, but their curves were beautiful,
-and about them quivered a shadowy smile that had humour in it as
-well as love and pity.
-
-"We are in want of something to eat and drink, wife," he said; "we
-have come a long way!"
-
-"You know, husband," she answered, "we can give only to him that
-asks."
-
-She turned her unchanging face and radiant eyes upon mine.
-
-"Please give me something to eat, Mrs. Raven," I said, "and
-something--what you will--to quench my thirst."
-
-"Your thirst must be greater before you can have what will quench
-it," she replied; "but what I can give you, I will gladly."
-
-She went to a cupboard in the wall, brought from it bread and wine,
-and set them on the table.
-
-We sat down to the perfect meal; and as I ate, the bread and wine
-seemed to go deeper than the hunger and thirst. Anxiety and
-discomfort vanished; expectation took their place.
-
-I grew very sleepy, and now first felt weary.
-
-"I have earned neither food nor sleep, Mrs. Raven," I said, "but
-you have given me the one freely, and now I hope you will give me
-the other, for I sorely need it."
-
-"Sleep is too fine a thing ever to be earned," said the sexton;
-"it must be given and accepted, for it is a necessity. But it would
-be perilous to use this house as a half-way hostelry--for the repose
-of a night, that is, merely."
-
-A wild-looking little black cat jumped on his knee as he spoke.
-He patted it as one pats a child to make it go to sleep: he seemed
-to me patting down the sod upon a grave--patting it lovingly, with
-an inward lullaby.
-
-"Here is one of Mara's kittens!" he said to his wife: "will you
-give it something and put it out? she may want it!"
-
-The woman took it from him gently, gave it a little piece of bread,
-and went out with it, closing the door behind her.
-
-"How then am I to make use of your hospitality?" I asked.
-
-"By accepting it to the full," he answered.
-
-"I do not understand."
-
-"In this house no one wakes of himself."
-
-"Why?"
-
-"Because no one anywhere ever wakes of himself. You can wake
-yourself no more than you can make yourself."
-
-"Then perhaps you or Mrs. Raven would kindly call me!" I said, still
-nowise understanding, but feeling afresh that vague foreboding.
-
-"We cannot."
-
-"How dare I then go to sleep?" I cried.
-
-"If you would have the rest of this house, you must not trouble
-yourself about waking. You must go to sleep heartily, altogether
-and outright."
-My soul sank within me.
-
-The sexton sat looking me in the face. His eyes seemed to say,
-"Will you not trust me?" I returned his gaze, and answered,
-
-"I will."
-
-"Then come," he said; "I will show you your couch."
-
-As we rose, the woman came in. She took up the candle, turned to
-the inner door, and led the way. I went close behind her, and the
-sexton followed.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-THE CEMETERY
-
-The air as of an ice-house met me crossing the threshold. The
-door fell-to behind us. The sexton said something to his wife
-that made her turn toward us.--What a change had passed upon her!
-It was as if the splendour of her eyes had grown too much for them
-to hold, and, sinking into her countenance, made it flash with a
-loveliness like that of Beatrice in the white rose of the redeemed.
-Life itself, life eternal, immortal, streamed from it, an unbroken
-lightning. Even her hands shone with a white radiance, every
-"pearl-shell helmet" gleaming like a moonstone. Her beauty was
-overpowering; I was glad when she turned it from me.
-
-But the light of the candle reached such a little way, that at first
-I could see nothing of the place. Presently, however, it fell on
-something that glimmered, a little raised from the floor. Was it
-a bed? Could live thing sleep in such a mortal cold? Then surely
-it was no wonder it should not wake of itself! Beyond that appeared
-a fainter shine; and then I thought I descried uncertain gleams on
-every side.
-
-A few paces brought us to the first; it was a human form under a
-sheet, straight and still--whether of man or woman I could not tell,
-for the light seemed to avoid the face as we passed.
-
-I soon perceived that we were walking along an aisle of couches,
-on almost every one of which, with its head to the passage, lay
-something asleep or dead, covered with a sheet white as snow. My
-soul grew silent with dread. Through aisle after aisle we went,
-among couches innumerable. I could see only a few of them at
-once, but they were on all sides, vanishing, as it seemed, in the
-infinite.--Was it here lay my choice of a bed? Must I go to sleep
-among the unwaking, with no one to rouse me? Was this the sexton's
-library? were these his books? Truly it was no half-way house, this
-chamber of the dead!
-
-"One of the cellars I am placed to watch!" remarked Mr. Raven--in
-a low voice, as if fearing to disturb his silent guests. "Much
-wine is set here to ripen!--But it is dark for a stranger!" he added.
-
-"The moon is rising; she will soon be here," said his wife, and
-her clear voice, low and sweet, sounded of ancient sorrow long
-bidden adieu.
-
-Even as she spoke the moon looked in at an opening in the wall, and
-a thousand gleams of white responded to her shine. But not yet
-could I descry beginning or end of the couches. They stretched away
-and away, as if for all the disparted world to sleep upon. For
-along the far receding narrow ways, every couch stood by itself, and
-on each slept a lonely sleeper. I thought at first their sleep was
-death, but I soon saw it was something deeper still--a something I
-did not know.
-
-The moon rose higher, and shone through other openings, but I
-could never see enough of the place at once to know its shape or
-character; now it would resemble a long cathedral nave, now a huge
-barn made into a dwelling of tombs. She looked colder than any
-moon in the frostiest night of the world, and where she shone direct
-upon them, cast a bluish, icy gleam on the white sheets and the
-pallid countenances--but it might be the faces that made the moon
-so cold!
-
-Of such as I could see, all were alike in the brotherhood of death,
-all unlike in the character and history recorded upon them. Here
-lay a man who had died--for although this was not death, I have no
-other name to give it--in the prime of manly strength; his dark
-beard seemed to flow like a liberated stream from the glacier of
-his frozen countenance; his forehead was smooth as polished marble;
-a shadow of pain lingered about his lips, but only a shadow. On
-the next couch lay the form of a girl, passing lovely to behold.
-The sadness left on her face by parting was not yet absorbed in
-perfect peace, but absolute submission possessed the placid features,
-which bore no sign of wasting disease, of "killing care or grief
-of heart": if pain had been there, it was long charmed asleep, never
-again to wake. Many were the beautiful that there lay very still--
-some of them mere children; but I did not see one infant. The
-most beautiful of all was a lady whose white hair, and that alone,
-suggested her old when first she fell asleep. On her stately
-countenance rested--not submission, but a right noble acquiescence,
-an assurance, firm as the foundations of the universe, that all was
-as it should be. On some faces lingered the almost obliterated
-scars of strife, the marrings of hopeless loss, the fading shadows
-of sorrows that had seemed inconsolable: the aurora of the great
-morning had not yet quite melted them away; but those faces were
-few, and every one that bore such brand of pain seemed to plead,
-"Pardon me: I died only yesterday!" or, "Pardon me: I died but a
-century ago!" That some had been dead for ages I knew, not merely
-by their unutterable repose, but by something for which I have
-neither word nor symbol.
-
-We came at last to three empty couches, immediately beyond which
-lay the form of a beautiful woman, a little past the prime of life.
-One of her arms was outside the sheet, and her hand lay with the
-palm upward, in its centre a dark spot. Next to her was the
-stalwart figure of a man of middle age. His arm too was outside
-the sheet, the strong hand almost closed, as if clenched on the grip
-of a sword. I thought he must be a king who had died fighting for
-the truth.
-
-"Will you hold the candle nearer, wife?" whispered the sexton,
-bending down to examine the woman's hand.
-
-"It heals well," he murmured to himself: "the nail found in her
-nothing to hurt!"
-
-At last I ventured to speak.
-
-"Are they not dead?" I asked softly.
-
-"I cannot answer you," he replied in a subdued voice. "I almost
-forget what they mean by DEAD in the old world. If I said a person
-was dead, my wife would understand one thing, and you would imagine
-another.--This is but one of my treasure vaults," he went on, "and
-all my guests are not laid in vaults: out there on the moor they
-lie thick as the leaves of a forest after the first blast of your
-winter--thick, let me say rather, as if the great white rose of
-heaven had shed its petals over it. All night the moon reads their
-faces, and smiles."
-
-"But why leave them in the corrupting moonlight?" I asked.
-
-"Our moon," he answered, "is not like yours--the old cinder of a
-burnt-out world; her beams embalm the dead, not corrupt them. You
-observe that here the sexton lays his dead on the earth; be buries
-very few under it! In your world he lays huge stones on them,
-as if to keep them down; I watch for the hour to ring the
-resurrection-bell, and wake those that are still asleep. Your
-sexton looks at the clock to know when to ring the dead-alive to
-church; I hearken for the cock on the spire to crow; `AWAKE, THOU
-THAT SLEEPEST, AND ARISE FROM THE DEAD!'"
-
-I began to conclude that the self-styled sexton was in truth an
-insane parson: the whole thing was too mad! But how was I to get
-away from it? I was helpless! In this world of the dead, the
-raven and his wife were the only living I had yet seen: whither
-should I turn for help? I was lost in a space larger than
-imagination; for if here two things, or any parts of them, could
-occupy the same space, why not twenty or ten thousand?--But I dared
-not think further in that direction.
-
-"You seem in your dead to see differences beyond my perception!" I
-ventured to remark.
-
-"None of those you see," he answered, "are in truth quite dead yet,
-and some have but just begun to come alive and die. Others had
-begun to die, that is to come alive, long before they came to us;
-and when such are indeed dead, that instant they will wake and leave
-us. Almost every night some rise and go. But I will not say more,
-for I find my words only mislead you!--This is the couch that has
-been waiting for you," he ended, pointing to one of the three.
-
-"Why just this?" I said, beginning to tremble, and anxious by
-parley to delay.
-
-"For reasons which one day you will be glad to know," he answered.
-
-"Why not know them now?"
-
-"That also you will know when you wake."
-
-"But these are all dead, and I am alive!" I objected, shuddering.
-
-"Not much," rejoined the sexton with a smile, "--not nearly enough!
-Blessed be the true life that the pauses between its throbs are not
-death!"
-
-"The place is too cold to let one sleep!" I said.
-
-"Do these find it so?" he returned. "They sleep well--or will soon.
-Of cold they feel not a breath: it heals their wounds.--Do not be a
-coward, Mr. Vane. Turn your back on fear, and your face to whatever
-may come. Give yourself up to the night, and you will rest indeed.
-Harm will not come to you, but a good you cannot foreknow."
-
-The sexton and I stood by the side of the couch, his wife, with the
-candle in her hand, at the foot of it. Her eyes were full of light,
-but her face was again of a still whiteness; it was no longer radiant.
-
-"Would they have me make of a charnel-house my bed-chamber?" I
-cried aloud. "I will not. I will lie abroad on the heath; it
-cannot be colder there!"
-
-"I have just told you that the dead are there also,
-
- `Thick as autumnal leaves that strow the brooks
- In Vallombrosa,'"
-
-said the librarian.
-
-"I will NOT," I cried again; and in the compassing dark, the two
-gleamed out like spectres that waited on the dead; neither answered
-me; each stood still and sad, and looked at the other.
-
-"Be of good comfort; we watch the flock of the great shepherd,"
-said the sexton to his wife.
-
-Then he turned to me.
-
-"Didst thou not find the air of the place pure and sweet when thou
-enteredst it?" he asked.
-
-"Yes; but oh, so cold!" I answered.
-
-"Then know," he returned, and his voice was stern, "that thou who
-callest thyself alive, hast brought into this chamber the odours
-of death, and its air will not be wholesome for the sleepers until
-thou art gone from it!"
-
-They went farther into the great chamber, and I was left alone in
-the moonlight with the dead.
-
-I turned to escape.
-
-What a long way I found it back through the dead! At first I was
-too angry to be afraid, but as I grew calm, the still shapes grew
-terrible. At last, with loud offence to the gracious silence, I
-ran, I fled wildly, and, bursting out, flung-to the door behind me.
-It closed with an awful silence.
-
-I stood in pitch-darkness. Feeling about me, I found a door, opened
-it, and was aware of the dim light of a lamp. I stood in my library,
-with the handle of the masked door in my hand.
-
-Had I come to myself out of a vision?--or lost myself by going back
-to one? Which was the real--what I now saw, or what I had just
-ceased to see? Could both be real, interpenetrating yet unmingling?
-
-I threw myself on a couch, and fell asleep.
-
-In the library was one small window to the east, through which, at
-this time of the year, the first rays of the sun shone upon a mirror
-whence they were reflected on the masked door: when I woke, there
-they shone, and thither they drew my eyes. With the feeling that
-behind it must lie the boundless chamber I had left by that door,
-I sprang to my feet, and opened it. The light, like an eager hound,
-shot before me into the closet, and pounced upon the gilded edges
-of a large book.
-
-"What idiot," I cried, "has put that book in the shelf the wrong
-way?"
-
-But the gilded edges, reflecting the light a second time, flung it
-on a nest of drawers in a dark corner, and I saw that one of them
-was half open.
-
-"More meddling!" I cried, and went to close the drawer.
-
-It contained old papers, and seemed more than full, for it would
-not close. Taking the topmost one out, I perceived that it was
-in my father's writing and of some length. The words on which first
-my eyes fell, at once made me eager to learn what it contained. I
-carried it to the library, sat down in one of the western windows,
-and read what follows.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-MY FATHER'S MANUSCRIPT
-
-I am filled with awe of what I have to write. The sun is shining
-golden above me; the sea lies blue beneath his gaze; the same world
-sends its growing things up to the sun, and its flying things into
-the air which I have breathed from my infancy; but I know the
-outspread splendour a passing show, and that at any moment it may,
-like the drop-scene of a stage, be lifted to reveal more wonderful
-things.
-
-Shortly after my father's death, I was seated one morning in the
-library. I had been, somewhat listlessly, regarding the portrait
-that hangs among the books, which I knew only as that of a distant
-ancestor, and wishing I could learn something of its original. Then
-I had taken a book from the shelves and begun to read.
-
-Glancing up from it, I saw coming toward me--not between me and
-the door, but between me and the portrait--a thin pale man in rusty
-black. He looked sharp and eager, and had a notable nose, at once
-reminding me of a certain jug my sisters used to call Mr. Crow.
-
-"Finding myself in your vicinity, Mr. Vane, I have given myself the
-pleasure of calling," he said, in a peculiar but not disagreeable
-voice. "Your honoured grandfather treated me--I may say it without
-presumption--as a friend, having known me from childhood as his
-father's librarian."
-
-It did not strike me at the time how old the man must be.
-
-"May I ask where you live now, Mr. Crow?" I said.
-
-He smiled an amused smile.
-
-"You nearly hit my name," he rejoined, "which shows the family
-insight. You have seen me before, but only once, and could not
-then have heard it!"
-
-"Where was that?"
-
-"In this very room. You were quite a child, however!"
-
-I could not be sure that I remembered him, but for a moment I
-fancied I did, and I begged him to set me right as to his name.
-
-"There is such a thing as remembering without recognising the memory
-in it," he remarked. "For my name--which you have near enough--it
-used to be Raven."
-
-I had heard the name, for marvellous tales had brought it me.
-
-"It is very kind of you to come and see me," I said. "Will you not
-sit down?"
-
-He seated himself at once.
-
-"You knew my father, then, I presume?"
-
-"I knew him," he answered with a curious smile, "but he did not
-care about my acquaintance, and we never met.--That gentleman,
-however," he added, pointing to the portrait,--"old Sir Up'ard,
-his people called him,--was in his day a friend of mine yet more
-intimate than ever your grandfather became."
-
-Then at length I began to think the interview a strange one. But
-in truth it was hardly stranger that my visitor should remember
-Sir Upward, than that he should have been my great-grandfather's
-librarian!
-
-"I owe him much," he continued; "for, although I had read many more
-books than he, yet, through the special direction of his studies, he
-was able to inform me of a certain relation of modes which I should
-never have discovered of myself, and could hardly have learned from
-any one else."
-
-"Would you mind telling me all about that?" I said.
-
-"By no means--as much at least as I am able: there are not such
-things as wilful secrets," he answered--and went on.
-
-"That closet held his library--a hundred manuscripts or so, for
-printing was not then invented. One morning I sat there, working
-at a catalogue of them, when he looked in at the door, and said,
-`Come.' I laid down my pen and followed him--across the great hall,
-down a steep rough descent, and along an underground passage to a
-tower he had lately built, consisting of a stair and a room at the
-top of it. The door of this room had a tremendous lock, which he
-undid with the smallest key I ever saw. I had scarcely crossed
-the threshold after him, when, to my eyes, he began to dwindle, and
-grew less and less. All at once my vision seemed to come right, and
-I saw that he was moving swiftly away from me. In a minute more he
-was the merest speck in the distance, with the tops of blue mountains
-beyond him, clear against a sky of paler blue. I recognised the
-country, for I had gone there and come again many a time, although
-I had never known this way to it.
-
-"Many years after, when the tower had long disappeared, I taught
-one of his descendants what Sir Upward had taught me; and now and
-then to this day I use your house when I want to go the nearest
-way home. I must indeed--without your leave, for which I ask your
-pardon--have by this time well established a right of way through
-it--not from front to back, but from bottom to top!"
-
-"You would have me then understand, Mr. Raven," I said, "that you
-go through my house into another world, heedless of disparting
-space?"
-
-"That I go through it is an incontrovertible acknowledgement of
-space," returned the old librarian.
-
-"Please do not quibble, Mr. Raven," I rejoined. "Please to take my
-question as you know I mean it."
-
-"There is in your house a door, one step through which carries me
-into a world very much another than this."
-
-"A better?"
-
-"Not throughout; but so much another that most of its physical, and
-many of its mental laws are different from those of this world. As
-for moral laws, they must everywhere be fundamentally the same."
-
-"You try my power of belief!" I said.
-
-"You take me for a madman, probably?"
-
-"You do not look like one."
-
-"A liar then?"
-
-"You give me no ground to think you such."
-
-"Only you do not believe me?"
-
-"I will go out of that door with you if you like: I believe in you
-enough to risk the attempt."
-
-"The blunder all my children make!" he murmured. "The only door out
-is the door in!"
-
-I began to think he must be crazy. He sat silent for a moment, his
-head resting on his hand, his elbow on the table, and his eyes on
-the books before him.
-
-"A book," he said louder, "is a door in, and therefore a door out.--I
-see old Sir Up'ard," he went on, closing his eyes, "and my heart
-swells with love to him:--what world is he in?"
-
-"The world of your heart!" I replied; "--that is, the idea of him
-is there."
-
-"There is one world then at least on which your hall-door does not
-open?"
-
-"I grant you so much; but the things in that world are not things to
-have and to hold."
-
-"Think a little farther," he rejoined: "did anything ever become
-yours, except by getting into that world?--The thought is beyond
-you, however, at present!--I tell you there are more worlds, and
-more doors to them, than you will think of in many years!"
-
-He rose, left the library, crossed the hall, and went straight up
-to the garret, familiar evidently with every turn. I followed,
-studying his back. His hair hung down long and dark, straight and
-glossy. His coat was wide and reached to his heels. His shoes
-seemed too large for him.
-
-In the garret a light came through at the edges of the great roofing
-slabs, and showed us parts where was no flooring, and we must step
-from joist to joist: in the middle of one of these spaces rose a
-partition, with a door: through it I followed Mr. Raven into a small,
-obscure chamber, whose top contracted as it rose, and went slanting
-through the roof.
-
-"That is the door I spoke of," he said, pointing to an oblong mirror
-that stood on the floor and leaned against the wall. I went in
-front of it, and saw our figures dimly reflected in its dusty face.
-There was something about it that made me uneasy. It looked
-old-fashioned and neglected, but, notwithstanding its ordinary
-seeming, the eagle, perched with outstretched wings on the top,
-appeared threatful.
-
-"As a mirror," said the librarian, "it has grown dingy with age;
-but that is no matter: its doorness depends on the light."
-
-"Light!" I rejoined; "there is no light here!"
-
-He did not answer me, but began to pull at a little chain on the
-opposite wall. I heard a creaking: the top of the chamber was
-turning slowly round. He ceased pulling, looked at his watch, and
-began to pull again.
-
-"We arrive almost to the moment!" he said; "it is on the very stroke
-of noon!"
-
-The top went creaking and revolving for a minute or so. Then he
-pulled two other chains, now this, now that, and returned to the
-first. A moment more and the chamber grew much clearer: a patch of
-sunlight had fallen upon a mirror on the wall opposite that against
-which the other leaned, and on the dust I saw the path of the
-reflected rays to the mirror on the ground. But from the latter
-none were returned; they seemed to go clean through; there was
-nowhere in the chamber a second patch of light!
-
-"Where are the sunrays gone?" I cried.
-
-"That I cannot tell," returned Mr. Raven; "--back, perhaps, to where
-they came from first. They now belong, I fancy, to a sense not yet
-developed in us."
-
-He then talked of the relations of mind to matter, and of senses
-to qualities, in a way I could only a little understand, whence he
-went on to yet stranger things which I could not at all comprehend.
-He spoke much about dimensions, telling me that there were many
-more than three, some of them concerned with powers which were indeed
-in us, but of which as yet we knew absolutely nothing. His words,
-however, I confess, took little more hold of me than the light did
-of the mirror, for I thought he hardly knew what he was saying.
-
-Suddenly I was aware that our forms had gone from the mirror, which
-seemed full of a white mist. As I gazed I saw, growing gradually
-visible beyond the mist, the tops of a range of mountains, which
-became clearer and clearer. Soon the mist vanished entirely,
-uncovering the face of a wide heath, on which, at some distance,
-was the figure of a man moving swiftly away. I turned to address
-my companion; he was no longer by my side. I looked again at the
-form in the mirror, and recognised the wide coat flying, the black
-hair lifting in a wind that did not touch me. I rushed in terror
-from the place.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-I REPENT
-
-I laid the manuscript down, consoled to find that my father had
-had a peep into that mysterious world, and that he knew Mr. Raven.
-
-Then I remembered that I had never heard the cause or any
-circumstance of my father's death, and began to believe that he
-must at last have followed Mr. Raven, and not come back; whereupon
-I speedily grew ashamed of my flight. What wondrous facts might
-I not by this time have gathered concerning life and death, and
-wide regions beyond ordinary perception! Assuredly the Ravens were
-good people, and a night in their house would nowise have hurt me!
-They were doubtless strange, but it was faculty in which the one
-was peculiar, and beauty in which the other was marvellous! And I
-had not believed in them! had treated them as unworthy of my
-confidence, as harbouring a design against me! The more I thought
-of my behaviour to them, the more disgusted I became with myself.
-Why should I have feared such dead? To share their holy rest was
-an honour of which I had proved myself unworthy! What harm could
-that sleeping king, that lady with the wound in her palm, have done
-me? I fell a longing after the sweet and stately stillness of their
-two countenances, and wept. Weeping I threw myself on a couch, and
-suddenly fell asleep.
-
-As suddenly I woke, feeling as if some one had called me. The
-house was still as an empty church. A blackbird was singing on
-the lawn. I said to myself, "I will go and tell them I am ashamed,
-and will do whatever they would have me do!" I rose, and went
-straight up the stairs to the garret.
-
-The wooden chamber was just as when first I saw it, the mirror
-dimly reflecting everything before it. It was nearly noon, and
-the sun would be a little higher than when first I came: I must
-raise the hood a little, and adjust the mirrors accordingly! If I
-had but been in time to see Mr. Raven do it!
-
-I pulled the chains, and let the light fall on the first mirror.
-I turned then to the other: there were the shapes of the former
-vision--distinguishable indeed, but tremulous like a landscape in
-a pool ruffled by "a small pipling wind!" I touched the glass; it
-was impermeable.
-
-Suspecting polarisation as the thing required, I shifted and shifted
-the mirrors, changing their relation, until at last, in a great
-degree, so far as I was concerned, by chance, things came right
-between them, and I saw the mountains blue and steady and clear. I
-stepped forward, and my feet were among the heather.
-
-All I knew of the way to the cottage was that we had gone through
-a pine-forest. I passed through many thickets and several small
-fir-woods, continually fancying afresh that I recognised something
-of the country; but I had come upon no forest, and now the sun was
-near the horizon, and the air had begun to grow chill with the
-coming winter, when, to my delight, I saw a little black object
-coming toward me: it was indeed the raven!
-
-I hastened to meet him.
-
-"I beg your pardon, sir, for my rudeness last night," I said. "Will
-you take me with you now? I heartily confess I do not deserve it."
-
-"Ah!" he returned, and looked up. Then, after a brief pause, "My
-wife does not expect you to-night," he said. "She regrets that
-we at all encouraged your staying last week."
-
-"Take me to her that I may tell her how sorry I am," I begged
-humbly.
-
-"It is of no use," he answered. "Your night was not come then, or
-you would not have left us. It is not come now, and I cannot show
-you the way. The dead were rejoicing under their daisies--they
-all lie among the roots of the flowers of heaven--at the thought
-of your delight when the winter should be past, and the morning
-with its birds come: ere you left them, they shivered in their beds.
-When the spring of the universe arrives,--but that cannot be for
-ages yet! how many, I do not know--and do not care to know."
-
-"Tell me one thing, I beg of you, Mr. Raven: is my father with
-you? Have you seen him since he left the world?"
-
-"Yes; he is with us, fast asleep. That was he you saw with his
-arm on the coverlet, his hand half closed."
-
-"Why did you not tell me? That I should have been so near him,
-and not know!"
-
-"And turn your back on him!" corrected the raven.
-
-"I would have lain down at once had I known!"
-
-"I doubt it. Had you been ready to lie down, you would have known
-him!--Old Sir Up'ard," he went on, "and your twice great-grandfather,
-both are up and away long ago. Your great-grandfather has been with
-us for many a year; I think he will soon begin to stir. You saw
-him last night, though of course you did not know him."
-
-"Why OF COURSE?"
-
-"Because he is so much nearer waking than you. No one who will not
-sleep can ever wake."
-
-"I do not at all understand you!"
-
-"You turned away, and would not understand!"
-I held my peace.--But if I did not say something, he would go!
-
-"And my grandfather--is he also with you?" I asked.
-
-"No; he is still in the Evil Wood, fighting the dead."
-
-"Where is the Evil Wood, that I may find him?"
-
-"You will not find him; but you will hardly miss the wood. It is
-the place where those who will not sleep, wake up at night, to kill
-their dead and bury them."
-
-"I cannot understand you!"
-
-"Naturally not. Neither do I understand you; I can read neither
-your heart nor your face. When my wife and I do not understand
-our children, it is because there is not enough of them to be
-understood. God alone can understand foolishness."
-
-"Then," I said, feeling naked and very worthless, "will you be so
-good as show me the nearest way home? There are more ways than one,
-I know, for I have gone by two already."
-
-"There are indeed many ways."
-
-"Tell me, please, how to recognise the nearest."
-
-"I cannot," answered the raven; "you and I use the same words with
-different meanings. We are often unable to tell people what they
-NEED to know, because they WANT to know something else, and would
-therefore only misunderstand what we said. Home is ever so far
-away in the palm of your hand, and how to get there it is of no use
-to tell you. But you will get there; you must get there; you have
-to get there. Everybody who is not at home, has to go home. You
-thought you were at home where I found you: if that had been your
-home, you could not have left it. Nobody can leave home. And nobody
-ever was or ever will be at home without having gone there."
-
-"Enigma treading on enigma!" I exclaimed. "I did not come here to
-be asked riddles."
-
-"No; but you came, and found the riddles waiting for you! Indeed
-you are yourself the only riddle. What you call riddles are truths,
-and seem riddles because you are not true."
-
-"Worse and worse!" I cried.
-
-"And you MUST answer the riddles!" he continued. "They will go on
-asking themselves until you understand yourself. The universe is
-a riddle trying to get out, and you are holding your door hard
-against it."
-
-"Will you not in pity tell me what I am to do--where I must go?"
-
-"How should I tell YOUR to-do, or the way to it?"
-
-"If I am not to go home, at least direct me to some of my kind."
-
-"I do not know of any. The beings most like you are in that
-direction."
-
-He pointed with his beak. I could see nothing but the setting sun,
-which blinded me.
-
-"Well," I said bitterly, "I cannot help feeling hardly treated--taken
-from my home, abandoned in a strange world, and refused instruction
-as to where I am to go or what I am to do!"
-
-"You forget," said the raven, "that, when I brought you and you
-declined my hospitality, you reached what you call home in safety:
-now you are come of yourself! Good night."
-
-He turned and walked slowly away, with his beak toward the ground.
-I stood dazed. It was true I had come of myself, but had I not
-come with intent of atonement? My heart was sore, and in my brain
-was neither quest nor purpose, hope nor desire. I gazed after the
-raven, and would have followed him, but felt it useless.
-
-All at once he pounced on a spot, throwing the whole weight of his
-body on his bill, and for some moments dug vigorously. Then with
-a flutter of his wings he threw back his head, and something shot
-from his bill, cast high in the air. That moment the sun set, and
-the air at once grew very dusk, but the something opened into a
-soft radiance, and came pulsing toward me like a fire-fly, but with
-a much larger and a yellower light. It flew over my head. I turned
-and followed it.
-
-Here I interrupt my narrative to remark that it involves a constant
-struggle to say what cannot be said with even an approach to
-precision, the things recorded being, in their nature and in that
-of the creatures concerned in them, so inexpressibly different from
-any possible events of this economy, that I can present them only
-by giving, in the forms and language of life in this world, the
-modes in which they affected me--not the things themselves, but the
-feelings they woke in me. Even this much, however, I do with a
-continuous and abiding sense of failure, finding it impossible to
-present more than one phase of a multitudinously complicated
-significance, or one concentric sphere of a graduated embodiment.
-A single thing would sometimes seem to be and mean many things, with
-an uncertain identity at the heart of them, which kept constantly
-altering their look. I am indeed often driven to set down what I
-know to be but a clumsy and doubtful representation of the mere
-feeling aimed at, none of the communicating media of this world
-being fit to convey it, in its peculiar strangeness, with even an
-approach to clearness or certainty. Even to one who knew the region
-better than myself, I should have no assurance of transmitting the
-reality of my experience in it. While without a doubt, for instance,
-that I was actually regarding a scene of activity, I might be, at
-the same moment, in my consciousness aware that I was perusing a
-metaphysical argument.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-THE BAD BURROW
-
-As the air grew black and the winter closed swiftly around me, the
-fluttering fire blazed out more luminous, and arresting its flight,
-hovered waiting. So soon as I came under its radiance, it flew
-slowly on, lingering now and then above spots where the ground was
-rocky. Every time I looked up, it seemed to have grown larger, and
-at length gave me an attendant shadow. Plainly a bird-butterfly,
-it flew with a certain swallowy double. Its wings were very large,
-nearly square, and flashed all the colours of the rainbow. Wondering
-at their splendour, I became so absorbed in their beauty that I
-stumbled over a low rock, and lay stunned. When I came to myself,
-the creature was hovering over my head, radiating the whole chord
-of light, with multitudinous gradations and some kinds of colour I
-had never before seen. I rose and went on, but, unable to take my
-eyes off the shining thing to look to my steps, I struck my foot
-against a stone. Fearing then another fall, I sat down to watch
-the little glory, and a great longing awoke in me to have it in my
-hand. To my unspeakable delight, it began to sink toward me. Slowly
-at first, then swiftly it sank, growing larger as it came nearer.
-I felt as if the treasure of the universe were giving itself to me--
-put out my hand, and had it. But the instant I took it, its light
-went out; all was dark as pitch; a dead book with boards outspread
-lay cold and heavy in my hand. I threw it in the air--only to hear
-it fall among the heather. Burying my face in my hands, I sat in
-motionless misery.
-
-But the cold grew so bitter that, fearing to be frozen, I got up.
-The moment I was on my feet, a faint sense of light awoke in me.
-"Is it coming to life?" I cried, and a great pang of hope shot
-through me. Alas, no! it was the edge of a moon peering up keen
-and sharp over a level horizon! She brought me light--but no
-guidance! SHE would not hover over me, would not wait on my
-faltering steps! She could but offer me an ignorant choice!
-
-With a full face she rose, and I began to see a little about me.
-Westward of her, and not far from me, a range of low hills broke
-the horizon-line: I set out for it.
-
-But what a night I had to pass ere I reached it! The moon seemed
-to know something, for she stared at me oddly. Her look was indeed
-icy-cold, but full of interest, or at least curiosity. She was not
-the same moon I had known on the earth; her face was strange to me,
-and her light yet stranger. Perhaps it came from an unknown sun!
-Every time I looked up, I found her staring at me with all her might!
-At first I was annoyed, as at the rudeness of a fellow creature; but
-soon I saw or fancied a certain wondering pity in her gaze: why was
-I out in her night? Then first I knew what an awful thing it was to
-be awake in the universe: I WAS, and could not help it!
-
-As I walked, my feet lost the heather, and trod a bare spongy soil,
-something like dry, powdery peat. To my dismay it gave a momentary
-heave under me; then presently I saw what seemed the ripple of an
-earthquake running on before me, shadowy in the low moon. It passed
-into the distance; but, while yet I stared after it, a single wave
-rose up, and came slowly toward me. A yard or two away it burst,
-and from it, with a scramble and a bound, issued an animal like a
-tiger. About his mouth and ears hung clots of mould, and his eyes
-winked and flamed as he rushed at me, showing his white teeth in a
-soundless snarl. I stood fascinated, unconscious of either courage
-or fear. He turned his head to the ground, and plunged into it.
-
-"That moon is affecting my brain," I said as I resumed my journey.
-"What life can be here but the phantasmic--the stuff of which dreams
-are made? I am indeed walking in a vain show!"
-
-Thus I strove to keep my heart above the waters of fear, nor knew
-that she whom I distrusted was indeed my defence from the realities
-I took for phantoms: her light controlled the monsters, else had
-I scarce taken a second step on the hideous ground. "I will not
-be appalled by that which only seems!" I said to myself, yet felt
-it a terrible thing to walk on a sea where such fishes disported
-themselves below. With that, a step or two from me, the head of
-a worm began to come slowly out of the earth, as big as that of a
-polar bear and much resembling it, with a white mane to its red neck.
-The drawing wriggles with which its huge length extricated itself
-were horrible, yet I dared not turn my eyes from them. The moment
-its tail was free, it lay as if exhausted, wallowing in feeble effort
-to burrow again.
-
-"Does it live on the dead," I wondered, "and is it unable to hurt
-the living? If they scent their prey and come out, why do they leave
-me unharmed?"
-
-I know now it was that the moon paralysed them.
-
-All the night through as I walked, hideous creatures, no two
-alike, threatened me. In some of them, beauty of colour enhanced
-loathliness of shape: one large serpent was covered from head to
-distant tail with feathers of glorious hues.
-
-I became at length so accustomed to their hurtless menaces that I
-fell to beguiling the way with the invention of monstrosities, never
-suspecting that I owed each moment of life to the staring moon.
-Though hers was no primal radiance, it so hampered the evil things,
-that I walked in safety. For light is yet light, if but the last
-of a countless series of reflections! How swiftly would not my feet
-have carried me over the restless soil, had I known that, if still
-within their range when her lamp ceased to shine on the cursed spot,
-I should that moment be at the mercy of such as had no mercy, the
-centre of a writhing heap of hideousness, every individual of it as
-terrible as before it had but seemed! Fool of ignorance, I watched
-the descent of the weary, solemn, anxious moon down the widening
-vault above me, with no worse uneasiness than the dread of losing
-my way--where as yet I had indeed no way to lose.
-
-I was drawing near the hills I had made my goal, and she was now not
-far from their sky-line, when the soundless wallowing ceased, and
-the burrow lay motionless and bare. Then I saw, slowly walking over
-the light soil, the form of a woman. A white mist floated about her,
-now assuming, now losing to reassume the shape of a garment, as it
-gathered to her or was blown from her by a wind that dogged her steps.
-
-She was beautiful, but with such a pride at once and misery on her
-countenance that I could hardly believe what yet I saw. Up and down
-she walked, vainly endeavouring to lay hold of the mist and wrap it
-around her. The eyes in the beautiful face were dead, and on her
-left side was a dark spot, against which she would now and then press
-her hand, as if to stifle pain or sickness. Her hair hung nearly to
-her feet, and sometimes the wind would so mix it with the mist that
-I could not distinguish the one from the other; but when it fell
-gathering together again, it shone a pale gold in the moonlight.
-
-Suddenly pressing both hands on her heart, she fell to the ground,
-and the mist rose from her and melted in the air. I ran to her.
-But she began to writhe in such torture that I stood aghast. A
-moment more and her legs, hurrying from her body, sped away serpents.
->From her shoulders fled her arms as in terror, serpents also. Then
-something flew up from her like a bat, and when I looked again, she
-was gone. The ground rose like the sea in a storm; terror laid hold
-upon me; I turned to the hills and ran.
-
-I was already on the slope of their base, when the moon sank behind
-one of their summits, leaving me in its shadow. Behind me rose a
-waste and sickening cry, as of frustrate desire--the only sound I
-had heard since the fall of the dead butterfly; it made my heart
-shake like a flag in the wind. I turned, saw many dark objects
-bounding after me, and made for the crest of a ridge on which the
-moon still shone. She seemed to linger there that I might see to
-defend myself. Soon I came in sight of her, and climbed the faster.
-
-Crossing the shadow of a rock, I heard the creatures panting at my
-heels. But just as the foremost threw himself upon me with a snarl
-of greedy hate, we rushed into the moon together. She flashed out
-an angry light, and he fell from me a bodiless blotch. Strength came
-to me, and I turned on the rest. But one by one as they darted into
-the light, they dropped with a howl; and I saw or fancied a strange
-smile on the round face above me.
-
-I climbed to the top of the ridge: far away shone the moon, sinking
-to a low horizon. The air was pure and strong. I descended a little
-way, found it warmer, and sat down to wait the dawn.
-
-The moon went below, and the world again was dark.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-THE EVIL WOOD
-
-I fell fast asleep, and when I woke the sun was rising. I went to
-the top again, and looked back: the hollow I had crossed in the
-moonlight lay without sign of life. Could it be that the calm expanse
-before me swarmed with creatures of devouring greed?
-
-I turned and looked over the land through which my way must lie. It
-seemed a wide desert, with a patch of a different colour in the
-distance that might be a forest. Sign of presence, human or animal,
-was none--smoke or dust or shadow of cultivation. Not a cloud floated
-in the clear heaven; no thinnest haze curtained any segment of its
-circling rim.
-
-I descended, and set out for the imaginable forest: something alive
-might be there; on this side of it could not well be anything!
-
-When I reached the plain, I found it, as far as my sight could go,
-of rock, here flat and channeled, there humped and pinnacled--
-evidently the wide bed of a vanished river, scored by innumerable
-water-runs, without a trace of moisture in them. Some of the channels
-bore a dry moss, and some of the rocks a few lichens almost as hard
-as themselves. The air, once "filled with pleasant noise of waters,"
-was silent as death. It took me the whole day to reach the patch,--
-which I found indeed a forest--but not a rudiment of brook or runnel
-had I crossed! Yet through the glowing noon I seemed haunted by an
-aural mirage, hearing so plainly the voice of many waters that I
-could hardly believe the opposing testimony of my eyes.
-
-The sun was approaching the horizon when I left the river-bed, and
-entered the forest. Sunk below the tree-tops, and sending his rays
-between their pillar-like boles, he revealed a world of blessed
-shadows waiting to receive me. I had expected a pine-wood, but
-here were trees of many sorts, some with strong resemblances to
-trees I knew, others with marvellous differences from any I had
-ever seen. I threw myself beneath the boughs of what seemed a
-eucalyptus in blossom: its flowers had a hard calyx much resembling
-a skull, the top of which rose like a lid to let the froth-like
-bloom-brain overfoam its cup. From beneath the shadow of its
-falchion-leaves my eyes went wandering into deep after deep of the
-forest.
-
-Soon, however, its doors and windows began to close, shutting up
-aisle and corridor and roomier glade. The night was about me, and
-instant and sharp the cold. Again what a night I found it! How
-shall I make my reader share with me its wild ghostiness?
-
-The tree under which I lay rose high before it branched, but the
-boughs of it bent so low that they seemed ready to shut me in as
-I leaned against the smooth stem, and let my eyes wander through
-the brief twilight of the vanishing forest. Presently, to my
-listless roving gaze, the varied outlines of the clumpy foliage
-began to assume or imitate--say rather SUGGEST other shapes than
-their own. A light wind began to blow; it set the boughs of a
-neighbour tree rocking, and all their branches aswing, every twig
-and every leaf blending its individual motion with the sway of its
-branch and the rock of its bough. Among its leafy shapes was a
-pack of wolves that struggled to break from a wizard's leash:
-greyhounds would not have strained so savagely! I watched them
-with an interest that grew as the wind gathered force, and their
-motions life.
-
-Another mass of foliage, larger and more compact, presented my
-fancy with a group of horses' heads and forequarters projecting
-caparisoned from their stalls. Their necks kept moving up and down,
-with an impatience that augmented as the growing wind broke their
-vertical rhythm with a wilder swaying from side to side. What
-heads they were! how gaunt, how strange!--several of them bare
-skulls--one with the skin tight on its bones! One had lost the
-under jaw and hung low, looking unutterably weary--but now and
-then hove high as if to ease the bit. Above them, at the end of
-a branch, floated erect the form of a woman, waving her arms in
-imperious gesture. The definiteness of these and other leaf masses
-first surprised and then discomposed me: what if they should overpower
-my brain with seeming reality? But the twilight became darkness;
-the wind ceased; every shape was shut up in the night; I fell asleep.
-
-It was still dark when I began to be aware of a far-off, confused,
-rushing noise, mingled with faint cries. It grew and grew until a
-tumult as of gathering multitudes filled the wood. On all sides
-at once the sounds drew nearer; the spot where I lay seemed the
-centre of a commotion that extended throughout the forest. I scarce
-moved hand or foot lest I should betray my presence to hostile
-things.
-
-The moon at length approached the forest, and came slowly into it:
-with her first gleam the noises increased to a deafening uproar,
-and I began to see dim shapes about me. As she ascended and grew
-brighter, the noises became yet louder, and the shapes clearer. A
-furious battle was raging around me. Wild cries and roars of rage,
-shock of onset, struggle prolonged, all mingled with words articulate,
-surged in my ears. Curses and credos, snarls and sneers, laughter
-and mockery, sacred names and howls of hate, came huddling in chaotic
-interpenetration. Skeletons and phantoms fought in maddest confusion.
-Swords swept through the phantoms: they only shivered. Maces crashed
-on the skeletons, shattering them hideously: not one fell or ceased
-to fight, so long as a single joint held two bones together. Bones
-of men and horses lay scattered and heaped; grinding and crunching
-them under foot fought the skeletons. Everywhere charged the
-bone-gaunt white steeds; everywhere on foot or on wind-blown misty
-battle-horses, raged and ravened and raved the indestructible
-spectres; weapons and hoofs clashed and crushed; while skeleton jaws
-and phantom-throats swelled the deafening tumult with the war-cry
-of every opinion, bad or good, that had bred strife, injustice,
-cruelty in any world. The holiest words went with the most hating
-blow. Lie-distorted truths flew hurtling in the wind of javelins
-and bones. Every moment some one would turn against his comrades,
-and fight more wildly than before, THE TRUTH! THE TRUTH! still his
-cry. One I noted who wheeled ever in a circle, and smote on all
-sides. Wearied out, a pair would sit for a minute side by side,
-then rise and renew the fierce combat. None stooped to comfort the
-fallen, or stepped wide to spare him.
-
-The moon shone till the sun rose, and all the night long I had
-glimpses of a woman moving at her will above the strife-tormented
-multitude, now on this front now on that, one outstretched arm
-urging the fight, the other pressed against her side. "Ye are men:
-slay one another!" she shouted. I saw her dead eyes and her dark
-spot, and recalled what I had seen the night before.
-
-Such was the battle of the dead, which I saw and heard as I lay
-under the tree.
-
-Just before sunrise, a breeze went through the forest, and a voice
-cried, "Let the dead bury their dead!" At the word the contending
-thousands dropped noiseless, and when the sun looked in, he saw
-never a bone, but here and there a withered branch.
-
-I rose and resumed my journey, through as quiet a wood as ever grew
-out of the quiet earth. For the wind of the morning had ceased when
-the sun appeared, and the trees were silent. Not a bird sang, not
-a squirrel, mouse, or weasel showed itself, not a belated moth flew
-athwart my path. But as I went I kept watch over myself, nor dared
-let my eyes rest on any forest-shape. All the time I seemed to hear
-faint sounds of mattock and spade and hurtling bones: any moment
-my eyes might open on things I would not see! Daylight prudence
-muttered that perhaps, to appear, ten thousand phantoms awaited only
-my consenting fancy.
-
-In the middle of the afternoon I came out of the wood--to find before
-me a second net of dry water-courses. I thought at first that I
-had wandered from my attempted line, and reversed my direction; but
-I soon saw it was not so, and concluded presently that I had come
-to another branch of the same river-bed. I began at once to cross
-it, and was in the bottom of a wide channel when the sun set.
-
-I sat down to await the moon, and growing sleepy, stretched myself
-on the moss. The moment my head was down, I heard the sounds of
-rushing streams--all sorts of sweet watery noises. The veiled melody
-of the molten music sang me into a dreamless sleep, and when I woke
-the sun was already up, and the wrinkled country widely visible.
-Covered with shadows it lay striped and mottled like the skin of
-some wild animal. As the sun rose the shadows diminished, and it
-seemed as if the rocks were re-absorbing the darkness that had oozed
-out of them during the night.
-
-Hitherto I had loved my Arab mare and my books more, I fear, than
-live man or woman; now at length my soul was athirst for a human
-presence, and I longed even after those inhabitants of this alien
-world whom the raven had so vaguely described as nearest my sort.
-With heavy yet hoping heart, and mind haunted by a doubt whether I
-was going in any direction at all, I kept wearily travelling
-"north-west and by south."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-FRIENDS AND FOES
-
-Coming, in one of the channels, upon what seemed a little shrub,
-the outlying picket, I trusted, of an army behind it, I knelt to
-look at it closer. It bore a small fruit, which, as I did not
-recognise it, I feared to gather and eat. Little I thought that
-I was watched from behind the rocks by hundreds of eyes eager with
-the question whether I would or would not take it.
-
-I came to another plant somewhat bigger, then to another larger
-still, and at length to clumps of a like sort; by which time I saw
-that they were not shrubs but dwarf-trees. Before I reached the
-bank of this second branch of the river-bed, I found the channels
-so full of them that it was with difficulty I crossed such as I
-could not jump. In one I heard a great rush, as of a multitude of
-birds from an ivied wall, but saw nothing.
-
-I came next to some large fruit-bearing trees, but what they bore
-looked coarse. They stood on the edge of a hollow, which evidently
-had once been the basin of a lake. From the left a forest seemed
-to flow into and fill it; but while the trees above were of many
-sorts, those in the hollow were almost entirely fruit-bearing.
-
-I went a few yards down the slope of grass mingled with moss, and
-stretched myself upon it weary. A little farther down stood a
-tiny tree full of rosiest apples no bigger than small cherries,
-its top close to my hand; I pulled and ate one of them. Finding
-it delicious, I was in the act of taking another, when a sudden
-shouting of children, mingled with laughter clear and sweet as the
-music of a brook, startled me with delight.
-
-"He likes our apples! He likes our apples! He's a good giant!
-He's a good giant!" cried many little voices.
-
-"He's a giant!" objected one.
-
-"He IS rather big," assented another, "but littleness isn't
-everything! It won't keep you from growing big and stupid except
-you take care!"
-
-I rose on my elbow and stared. Above and about and below me stood
-a multitude of children, apparently of all ages, some just able to
-run alone, and some about twelve or thirteen. Three or four seemed
-older. They stood in a small knot, a little apart, and were less
-excited than the rest. The many were chattering in groups, declaiming
-and contradicting, like a crowd of grown people in a city, only with
-greater merriment, better manners, and more sense.
-
-I gathered that, by the approach of my hand to a second apple, they
-knew that I liked the first; but how from that they argued me good,
-I did not see, nor wondered that one of them at least should suggest
-caution. I did not open my mouth, for I was afraid of frightening
-them, and sure I should learn more by listening than by asking
-questions. For I understood nearly all they said--at which I was
-not surprised: to understand is not more wonderful than to love.
-
-There came a movement and slight dispersion among them, and presently
-a sweet, innocent-looking, lovingly roguish little fellow handed me
-a huge green apple. Silence fell on the noisy throng; all waited
-expectant.
-
-"Eat, good giant," he said.
-
-I sat up, took the apple, smiled thanks, and would have eaten; but
-the moment I bit into it, I flung it far away.
-
-Again rose a shout of delight; they flung themselves upon me, so as
-nearly to smother me; they kissed my face and hands; they laid hold
-of my legs; they clambered about my arms and shoulders, embracing my
-head and neck. I came to the ground at last, overwhelmed with the
-lovely little goblins.
-
-"Good, good giant!" they cried. "We knew you would come! Oh you
-dear, good, strong giant!"
-
-The babble of their talk sprang up afresh, and ever the jubilant
-shout would rise anew from hundreds of clear little throats.
-
-Again came a sudden silence. Those around me drew back; those atop
-of me got off and began trying to set me on my feet. Upon their
-sweet faces, concern had taken the place of merriment.
-
-"Get up, good giant!" said a little girl. "Make haste! much haste!
-He saw you throw his apple away!"
-
-Before she ended, I was on my feet. She stood pointing up the
-slope. On the brow of it was a clownish, bad-looking fellow, a few
-inches taller than myself. He looked hostile, but I saw no reason
-to fear him, for he had no weapon, and my little friends had vanished
-every one.
-
-He began to descend, and I, in the hope of better footing and
-position, to go up. He growled like a beast as he turned toward me.
-
-Reaching a more level spot, I stood and waited for him. As he came
-near, he held out his hand. I would have taken it in friendly
-fashion, but he drew it back, threatened a blow, and held it out
-again. Then I understood him to claim the apple I had flung away,
-whereupon I made a grimace of dislike and a gesture of rejection.
-
-He answered with a howl of rage that seemed to say, "Do you dare
-tell me my apple was not fit to eat?"
-
-"One bad apple may grow on the best tree," I said.
-
-Whether he perceived my meaning I cannot tell, but he made a stride
-nearer, and I stood on my guard. He delayed his assault, however,
-until a second giant, much like him, who had been stealing up behind
-me, was close enough, when he rushed upon me. I met him with a good
-blow in the face, but the other struck me on the back of the head,
-and between them I was soon overpowered.
-
-They dragged me into the wood above the valley, where their tribe
-lived--in wretched huts, built of fallen branches and a few stones.
-Into one of these they pushed me, there threw me on the ground, and
-kicked me. A woman was present, who looked on with indifference.
-
-I may here mention that during my captivity I hardly learned to
-distinguish the women from the men, they differed so little. Often
-I wondered whether I had not come upon a sort of fungoid people,
-with just enough mind to give them motion and the expressions of
-anger and greed. Their food, which consisted of tubers, bulbs, and
-fruits, was to me inexpressibly disagreeable, but nothing offended
-them so much as to show dislike to it. I was cuffed by the women
-and kicked by the men because I would not swallow it.
-
-I lay on the floor that night hardly able to move, but I slept a
-good deal, and woke a little refreshed. In the morning they dragged
-me to the valley, and tying my feet, with a long rope, to a tree,
-put a flat stone with a saw-like edge in my left hand. I shifted it
-to the right; they kicked me, and put it again in the left; gave me
-to understand that I was to scrape the bark off every branch that
-had no fruit on it; kicked me once more, and left me.
-
-I set about the dreary work in the hope that by satisfying them I
-should be left very much to myself--to make my observations and
-choose my time for escape. Happily one of the dwarf-trees grew
-close by me, and every other minute I plucked and ate a small fruit,
-which wonderfully refreshed and strengthened me.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-THE LITTLE ONES
-
-I had been at work but a few moments, when I heard small voices near
-me, and presently the Little Ones, as I soon found they called
-themselves, came creeping out from among the tiny trees that like
-brushwood filled the spaces between the big ones. In a minute
-there were scores and scores about me. I made signs that the giants
-had but just left me, and were not far off; but they laughed, and
-told me the wind was quite clean.
-
-"They are too blind to see us," they said, and laughed like a
-multitude of sheep-bells.
-
-"Do you like that rope about your ankles?" asked one.
-
-"I want them to think I cannot take it off," I replied.
-
-"They can scarcely see their own feet!" he rejoined. "Walk with
-short steps and they will think the rope is all right."
-
-As he spoke, he danced with merriment.
-
-One of the bigger girls got down on her knees to untie the clumsy
-knot. I smiled, thinking those pretty fingers could do nothing with
-it, but in a moment it was loose.
-
-They then made me sit down, and fed me with delicious little fruits;
-after which the smaller of them began to play with me in the wildest
-fashion, so that it was impossible for me to resume my work. When
-the first grew tired, others took their places, and this went on
-until the sun was setting, and heavy steps were heard approaching.
-The little people started from me, and I made haste to put the rope
-round my ankles.
-
-"We must have a care," said the girl who had freed me; "a crush of
-one of their horrid stumpy feet might kill a very little one!"
-
-"Can they not perceive you at all then?"
-
-"They might see something move; and if the children were in a heap
-on the top of you, as they were a moment ago, it would be terrible;
-for they hate every live thing but themselves.--Not that they are
-much alive either!"
-
-She whistled like a bird. The next instant not one of them was to
-be seen or heard, and the girl herself had disappeared.
-
-It was my master, as doubtless he counted himself, come to take me
-home. He freed my ankles, and dragged me to the door of his hut;
-there he threw me on the ground, again tied my feet, gave me a kick,
-and left me.
-
-Now I might at once have made my escape; but at length I had friends,
-and could not think of leaving them. They were so charming, so full
-of winsome ways, that I must see more of them! I must know them
-better! "To-morrow," I said to myself with delight, "I shall see
-them again!" But from the moment there was silence in the huts until
-I fell asleep, I heard them whispering all about me, and knew that
-I was lovingly watched by a multitude. After that, I think they
-hardly ever left me quite alone.
-
-I did not come to know the giants at all, and I believe there was
-scarcely anything in them to know. They never became in the least
-friendly, but they were much too stupid to invent cruelties. Often
-I avoided a bad kick by catching the foot and giving its owner a
-fall, upon which he never, on that occasion, renewed his attempt.
-
-But the little people were constantly doing and saying things that
-pleased, often things that surprised me. Every day I grew more loath
-to leave them. While I was at work, they would keep coming and going,
-amusing and delighting me, and taking all the misery, and much of
-the weariness out of my monotonous toil. Very soon I loved them more
-than I can tell. They did not know much, but they were very wise,
-and seemed capable of learning anything. I had no bed save the bare
-ground, but almost as often as I woke, it was in a nest of children--
-one or other of them in my arms, though which I seldom could
-tell until the light came, for they ordered the succession among
-themselves. When one crept into my bosom, unconsciously I clasped
-him there, and the rest lay close around me, the smaller nearer. It
-is hardly necessary to say that I did not suffer much from the
-nightly cold! The first thing they did in the morning, and the last
-before sunset, was to bring the good giant plenty to eat.
-
-One morning I was surprised on waking to find myself alone. As I
-came to my senses, however, I heard subdued sounds of approach, and
-presently the girl already mentioned, the tallest and gravest of
-the community, and regarded by all as their mother, appeared from
-the wood, followed by the multitude in jubilation manifest--but
-silent lest they should rouse the sleeping giant at whose door I
-lay. She carried a boy-baby in her arms: hitherto a girl-baby,
-apparently about a year old, had been the youngest. Three of the
-bigger girls were her nurses, but they shared their treasure with
-all the rest. Among the Little Ones, dolls were unknown; the bigger
-had the smaller, and the smaller the still less, to tend and play
-with.
-
-Lona came to me and laid the infant in my arms. The baby opened
-his eyes and looked at me, closed them again, and fell asleep.
-
-"He loves you already!" said the girl.
-
-"Where did you find him?" I asked.
-
-"In the wood, of course," she answered, her eyes beaming with delight,
-"--where we always find them. Isn't he a beauty? We've been out
-all night looking for him. Sometimes it is not easy to find!"
-
-"How do you know when there is one to find?" I asked.
-
-"I cannot tell," she replied. "Every one makes haste to tell the
-other, but we never find out who told first. Sometimes I think one
-must have said it asleep, and another heard it half-awake. When
-there is a baby in the wood, no one can stop to ask questions; and
-when we have found it, then it is too late."
-
-"Do more boy or girl babies come to the wood?"
-
-"They don't come to the wood; we go to the wood and find them."
-
-"Are there more boys or girls of you now?"
-
-I had found that to ask precisely the same question twice, made
-them knit their brows.
-
-"I do not know," she answered.
-
-"You can count them, surely!"
-
-"We never do that. We shouldn't like to be counted."
-
-"Why?"
-
-"It wouldn't be smooth. We would rather not know."
-
-"Where do the babies come from first?"
-
-"From the wood--always. There is no other place they can come from."
-
-She knew where they came from last, and thought nothing else was to
-be known about their advent.
-
-"How often do you find one?"
-
-"Such a happy thing takes all the glad we've got, and we forget the
-last time. You too are glad to have him--are you not, good giant?"
-
-"Yes, indeed, I am!" I answered. "But how do you feed him?"
-
-"I will show you," she rejoined, and went away--to return directly
-with two or three ripe little plums. She put one to the baby's lips.
-
-"He would open his mouth if he were awake," she said, and took him
-in her arms.
-
-She squeezed a drop to the surface, and again held the fruit to the
-baby's lips. Without waking he began at once to suck it, and she
-went on slowly squeezing until nothing but skin and stone were left.
-
-"There!" she cried, in a tone of gentle triumph. "A big-apple world
-it would be with nothing for the babies! We wouldn't stop in it--
-would we, darling? We would leave it to the bad giants!"
-
-"But what if you let the stone into the baby's mouth when you were
-feeding him?" I said.
-
-"No mother would do that," she replied. "I shouldn't be fit to have
-a baby!"
-
-I thought what a lovely woman she would grow. But what became of
-them when they grew up? Where did they go? That brought me again
-to the question--where did they come from first?
-
-"Will you tell me where you lived before?" I said.
-
-"Here," she replied.
-
-"Have you NEVER lived anywhere else?" I ventured.
-
-"Never. We all came from the wood. Some think we dropped out of
-the trees."
-
-"How is it there are so many of you quite little?"
-
-"I don't understand. Some are less and some are bigger. I am very
-big."
-
-"Baby will grow bigger, won't he?"
-
-"Of course he will!"
-
-"And will you grow bigger?"
-
-"I don't think so. I hope not. I am the biggest. It frightens me
-sometimes."
-
-"Why should it frighten you?"
-
-She gave me no answer.
-
-"How old are you?" I resumed.
-
-"I do not know what you mean. We are all just that."
-
-"How big will the baby grow?"
-
-"I cannot tell.--Some," she added, with a trouble in her voice,
-"begin to grow after we think they have stopped.--That is a frightful
-thing. We don't talk about it!"
-
-"What makes it frightful?"
-
-She was silent for a moment, then answered,
-
-"We fear they may be beginning to grow giants."
-
-"Why should you fear that?"
-
-"Because it is so terrible.--I don't want to talk about it!"
-
-She pressed the baby to her bosom with such an anxious look that I
-dared not further question her.
-
-Before long I began to perceive in two or three of the smaller
-children some traces of greed and selfishness, and noted that the
-bigger girls cast on these a not infrequent glance of anxiety.
-
-None of them put a hand to my work: they would do nothing for the
-giants! But they never relaxed their loving ministrations to me.
-They would sing to me, one after another, for hours; climb the tree
-to reach my mouth and pop fruit into it with their dainty little
-fingers; and they kept constant watch against the approach of a giant.
-
-Sometimes they would sit and tell me stories--mostly very childish,
-and often seeming to mean hardly anything. Now and then they would
-call a general assembly to amuse me. On one such occasion a moody
-little fellow sang me a strange crooning song, with a refrain so
-pathetic that, although unintelligible to me, it caused the tears
-to run down my face. This phenomenon made those who saw it regard
-me with much perplexity. Then first I bethought myself that I had
-not once, in that world, looked on water, falling or lying or
-running. Plenty there had been in some long vanished age--that was
-plain enough--but the Little Ones had never seen any before they saw
-my tears! They had, nevertheless, it seemed, some dim, instinctive
-perception of their origin; for a very small child went up to the
-singer, shook his clenched pud in his face, and said something like
-this: "'Ou skeeze ze juice out of ze good giant's seeberries! Bad
-giant!"
-
-"How is it," I said one day to Lona, as she sat with the baby in
-her arms at the foot of my tree, "that I never see any children
-among the giants?"
-
-She stared a little, as if looking in vain for some sense in the
-question, then replied,
-
-"They are giants; there are no little ones."
-
-"Have they never any children?" I asked.
-
-"No; there are never any in the wood for them. They do not love
-them. If they saw ours, they would stamp them."
-
-"Is there always the same number of the giants then? I thought,
-before I had time to know better, that they were your fathers and
-mothers."
-
-She burst into the merriest laughter, and said,
-
-"No, good giant; WE are THEIR firsters."
-
-But as she said it, the merriment died out of her, and she looked
-scared.
-
-I stopped working, and gazed at her, bewildered.
-
-"How CAN that be?" I exclaimed.
-
-"I do not say; I do not understand," she answered. "But we were
-here and they not. They go from us. I am sorry, but we cannot help
-it. THEY could have helped it."
-
-"How long have you been here?" I asked, more and more puzzled--in
-the hope of some side-light on the matter.
-
-"Always, I think," she replied. "I think somebody made us always."
-
-I turned to my scraping.
-
-She saw I did not understand.
-
-"The giants were not made always," she resumed. "If a Little One
-doesn't care, he grows greedy, and then lazy, and then big, and then
-stupid, and then bad. The dull creatures don't know that they come
-from us. Very few of them believe we are anywhere. They say
-NONSENSE!--Look at little Blunty: he is eating one of their apples!
-He will be the next! Oh! oh! he will soon be big and bad and ugly,
-and not know it!"
-
-The child stood by himself a little way off, eating an apple nearly
-as big as his head. I had often thought he did not look so good as
-the rest; now he looked disgusting.
-
-"I will take the horrid thing from him!" I cried.
-
-"It is no use," she answered sadly. "We have done all we can, and
-it is too late! We were afraid he was growing, for he would not
-believe anything told him; but when he refused to share his berries,
-and said he had gathered them for himself, then we knew it! He is
-a glutton, and there is no hope of him.--It makes me sick to see him
-eat!"
-
-"Could not some of the boys watch him, and not let him touch the
-poisonous things?"
-
-"He may have them if he will: it is all one--to eat the apples, and
-to be a boy that would eat them if he could. No; he must go to the
-giants! He belongs to them. You can see how much bigger he is than
-when first you came! He is bigger since yesterday."
-
-"He is as like that hideous green lump in his hand as boy could look!"
-
-"It suits what he is making himself."
-
-"His head and it might change places!"
-
-"Perhaps they do!"
-
-"Does he want to be a giant?"
-
-"He hates the giants, but he is making himself one all the same: he
-likes their apples! Oh baby, baby, he was just such a darling as
-you when we found him!"
-
-"He will be very miserable when he finds himself a giant!"
-
-"Oh, no; he will like it well enough! That is the worst of it."
-
-"Will he hate the Little Ones?"
-
-"He will be like the rest; he will not remember us--most likely
-will not believe there are Little Ones. He will not care; he will
-eat his apples."
-
-"Do tell me how it will come about. I understand your world so
-little! I come from a world where everything is different."
-
-"I do not know about WORLD. What is it? What more but a word in
-your beautiful big mouth?--That makes it something!"
-
-"Never mind about the word; tell me what next will happen to Blunty."
-
-"He will wake one morning and find himself a giant--not like you,
-good giant, but like any other bad giant. You will hardly know him,
-but I will tell you which. He will think he has been a giant always,
-and will not know you, or any of us. The giants have lost themselves,
-Peony says, and that is why they never smile. I wonder whether they
-are not glad because they are bad, or bad because they are not glad.
-But they can't be glad when they have no babies! I wonder what BAD
-means, good giant!"
-
-"I wish I knew no more about it than you!" I returned. "But I try
-to be good, and mean to keep on trying."
-
-"So do I--and that is how I know you are good."
-
-A long pause followed.
-
-"Then you do not know where the babies come from into the wood?" I
-said, making one attempt more.
-
-"There is nothing to know there," she answered. "They are in the
-wood; they grow there."
-
-"Then how is it you never find one before it is quite grown?" I
-asked.
-
-She knitted her brows and was silent a moment:
-
-"They're not there till they're finished," she said.
-
-"It is a pity the little sillies can't speak till they've forgotten
-everything they had to tell!" I remarked.
-
-"Little Tolma, the last before this baby, looked as if she had
-something to tell, when I found her under a beech-tree, sucking her
-thumb, but she hadn't. She only looked up at me--oh, so sweetly!
-SHE will never go bad and grow big! When they begin to grow big
-they care for nothing but bigness; and when they cannot grow any
-bigger, they try to grow fatter. The bad giants are very proud of
-being fat."
-
-"So they are in my world," I said; "only they do not say FAT there,
-they say RICH."
-
-"In one of their houses," continued Lona, "sits the biggest and
-fattest of them--so proud that nobody can see him; and the giants
-go to his house at certain times, and call out to him, and tell him
-how fat he is, and beg him to make them strong to eat more and grow
-fat like him."
-
-The rumour at length reached my ears that Blunty had vanished. I
-saw a few grave faces among the bigger ones, but he did not seem to
-be much missed.
-
-The next morning Lona came to me and whispered,
-
-"Look! look there--by that quince-tree: that is the giant that was
-Blunty!--Would you have known him?"
-
-"Never," I answered. "--But now you tell me, I could fancy it might
-be Blunty staring through a fog! He DOES look stupid!"
-
-"He is for ever eating those apples now!" she said. "That is what
-comes of Little Ones that WON'T be little!"
-
-"They call it growing-up in my world!" I said to myself. "If only
-she would teach me to grow the other way, and become a Little
-One!--Shall I ever be able to laugh like them?"
-
-I had had the chance, and had flung it from me! Blunty and I were
-alike! He did not know his loss, and I had to be taught mine!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-A CRISIS
-
-For a time I had no desire save to spend my life with the Little
-Ones. But soon other thoughts and feelings began to influence me.
-First awoke the vague sense that I ought to be doing something; that
-I was not meant for the fattening of boors! Then it came to me that
-I was in a marvellous world, of which it was assuredly my business
-to discover the ways and laws; and that, if I would do anything in
-return for the children's goodness, I must learn more about them
-than they could tell me, and to that end must be free. Surely, I
-thought, no suppression of their growth can be essential to their
-loveliness and truth and purity! Not in any world could the
-possibility exist of such a discord between constitution and its
-natural outcome! Life and law cannot be so at variance that
-perfection must be gained by thwarting development! But the growth
-of the Little Ones WAS arrested! something interfered with it:
-what was it? Lona seemed the eldest of them, yet not more than
-fifteen, and had been long in charge of a multitude, in semblance
-and mostly in behaviour merest children, who regarded her as their
-mother! Were they growing at all? I doubted it. Of time they
-had scarcely the idea; of their own age they knew nothing! Lona
-herself thought she had lived always! Full of wisdom and empty of
-knowledge, she was at once their Love and their Law! But what seemed
-to me her ignorance might in truth be my own lack of insight! Her
-one anxiety plainly was, that her Little Ones should not grow, and
-change into bad giants! Their "good giant" was bound to do his best
-for them: without more knowledge of their nature, and some knowledge
-of their history, he could do nothing, and must therefore leave
-them! They would only be as they were before; they had in no way
-become dependent on me; they were still my protectors, I was not
-theirs; my presence but brought them more in danger of their idiotic
-neighbours! I longed to teach them many things: I must first
-understand more of those I would teach! Knowledge no doubt made
-bad people worse, but it must make good people better! I was
-convinced they would learn mathematics; and might they not be taught
-to write down the dainty melodies they murmured and forgot?
-
-The conclusion was, that I must rise and continue my travels, in
-the hope of coming upon some elucidation of the fortunes and destiny
-of the bewitching little creatures.
-
-My design, however, would not so soon have passed into action, but
-for what now occurred.
-
-To prepare them for my temporary absence, I was one day telling
-them while at work that I would long ago have left the bad giants,
-but that I loved the Little Ones so much--when, as by one accord,
-they came rushing and crowding upon me; they scrambled over each
-other and up the tree and dropped on my head, until I was nearly
-smothered. With three very little ones in my arms, one on each
-shoulder clinging to my neck, one standing straight up on my head,
-four or five holding me fast by the legs, others grappling my body
-and arms, and a multitude climbing and descending upon these, I was
-helpless as one overwhelmed by lava. Absorbed in the merry struggle,
-not one of them saw my tyrant coming until he was almost upon me.
-With just one cry of "Take care, good giant!" they ran from me like
-mice, they dropped from me like hedgehogs, they flew from me up the
-tree like squirrels, and the same moment, sharp round the stem came
-the bad giant, and dealt me such a blow on the head with a stick that
-I fell to the ground. The children told me afterwards that they
-sent him "such a many bumps of big apples and stones" that he was
-frightened, and ran blundering home.
-
-When I came to myself it was night. Above me were a few pale stars
-that expected the moon. I thought I was alone. My head ached badly,
-and I was terribly athirst.
-
-I turned wearily on my side. The moment my ear touched the ground,
-I heard the gushing and gurgling of water, and the soft noises made
-me groan with longing. At once I was amid a multitude of silent
-children, and delicious little fruits began to visit my lips. They
-came and came until my thirst was gone.
-
-Then I was aware of sounds I had never heard there before; the air
-was full of little sobs.
-
-I tried to sit up. A pile of small bodies instantly heaped itself
-at my back. Then I struggled to my feet, with much pushing and
-pulling from the Little Ones, who were wonderfully strong for their
-size.
-
-"You must go away, good giant," they said. "When the bad giants see
-you hurt, they will all trample on you."
-
-"I think I must," I answered.
-
-"Go and grow strong, and come again," they said.
-
-"I will," I replied--and sat down.
-
-"Indeed you must go at once!" whispered Lona, who had been supporting
-me, and now knelt beside me.
-
-"I listened at his door," said one of the bigger boys, "and heard
-the bad giant say to his wife that he had found you idle, talking
-to a lot of moles and squirrels, and when he beat you, they tried
-to kill him. He said you were a wizard, and they must knock you,
-or they would have no peace."
-
-"I will go at once," I said, "and come back as soon as I have found
-out what is wanted to make you bigger and stronger."
-
-"We don't want to be bigger," they answered, looking very serious.
-"We WON'T grow bad giants!--We are strong now; you don't know how
-much strong!"
-
-It was no use holding them out a prospect that had not any attraction
-for them! I said nothing more, but rose and moved slowly up the
-slope of the valley. At once they formed themselves into a long
-procession; some led the way, some walked with me helping me, and
-the rest followed. They kept feeding me as we went.
-
-"You are broken," they said, "and much red juice has run out of you:
-put some in."
-
-When we reached the edge of the valley, there was the moon just
-lifting her forehead over the rim of the horizon.
-
-"She has come to take care of you, and show you the way," said Lona.
-
-I questioned those about me as we walked, and learned there was a
-great place with a giant-girl for queen. When I asked if it was a
-city, they said they did not know. Neither could they tell how far
-off, or in what direction it was, or what was the giant-girl's name;
-all they knew was, that she hated the Little Ones, and would like
-to kill them, only she could not find them. I asked how they knew
-that; Lona answered that she had always known it. If the giant-girl
-came to look for them, they must hide hard, she said. When I told
-them I should go and ask her why she hated them, they cried out,
-
-"No, no! she will kill you, good giant; she will kill you! She is
-an awful bad-giant witch!"
-
-I asked them where I was to go then. They told me that, beyond
-the baby-forest, away where the moon came from, lay a smooth green
-country, pleasant to the feet, without rocks or trees. But when I
-asked how I was to set out for it,
-
-"The moon will tell you, we think," they said.
-
-They were taking me up the second branch of the river bed: when they
-saw that the moon had reached her height, they stopped to return.
-
-"We have never gone so far from our trees before," they said. "Now
-mind you watch how you go, that you may see inside your eyes how to
-come back to us."
-
-"And beware of the giant-woman that lives in the desert," said one
-of the bigger girls as they were turning, "I suppose you have heard
-of her!"
-
-"No," I answered.
-
-"Then take care not to go near her. She is called the Cat-woman.
-She is awfully ugly--AND SCRATCHES."
-
-As soon as the bigger ones stopped, the smaller had begun to run
-back. The others now looked at me gravely for a moment, and then
-walked slowly away. Last to leave me, Lona held up the baby to be
-kissed, gazed in my eyes, whispered, "The Cat-woman will not hurt
-YOU," and went without another word. I stood a while, gazing after
-them through the moonlight, then turned and, with a heavy heart,
-began my solitary journey. Soon the laughter of the Little Ones
-overtook me, like sheep-bells innumerable, rippling the air, and
-echoing in the rocks about me. I turned again, and again gazed
-after them: they went gamboling along, with never a care in their
-sweet souls. But Lona walked apart with her baby.
-
-Pondering as I went, I recalled many traits of my little friends.
-
-Once when I suggested that they should leave the country of the bad
-giants, and go with me to find another, they answered, "But that
-would be to NOT ourselves!"--so strong in them was the love of place
-that their country seemed essential to their very being! Without
-ambition or fear, discomfort or greed, they had no motive to desire
-any change; they knew of nothing amiss; and, except their babies,
-they had never had a chance of helping any one but myself:--How were
-they to grow? But again, Why should they grow? In seeking to
-improve their conditions, might I not do them harm, and only harm?
-To enlarge their minds after the notions of my world--might it not
-be to distort and weaken them? Their fear of growth as a possible
-start for gianthood might be instinctive!
-
-The part of philanthropist is indeed a dangerous one; and the man
-who would do his neighbour good must first study how not to do him
-evil, and must begin by pulling the beam out of his own eye.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-A STRANGE HOSTESS
-
-I travelled on attended by the moon. As usual she was full--I had
-never seen her other--and to-night as she sank I thought I perceived
-something like a smile on her countenance.
-
-When her under edge was a little below the horizon, there appeared
-in the middle of her disc, as if it had been painted upon it, a
-cottage, through the open door and window of which she shone; and
-with the sight came the conviction that I was expected there. Almost
-immediately the moon was gone, and the cottage had vanished; the
-night was rapidly growing dark, and my way being across a close
-succession of small ravines, I resolved to remain where I was and
-expect the morning. I stretched myself, therefore, in a sandy
-hollow, made my supper off the fruits the children had given me at
-parting, and was soon asleep.
-
-I woke suddenly, saw above me constellations unknown to my former
-world, and had lain for a while gazing at them, when I became aware
-of a figure seated on the ground a little way from and above me. I
-was startled, as one is on discovering all at once that he is not
-alone. The figure was between me and the sky, so that I saw its
-outline well. From where I lay low in the hollow, it seemed larger
-than human.
-
-It moved its head, and then first I saw that its back was toward me.
-
-"Will you not come with me?" said a sweet, mellow voice, unmistakably
-a woman's.
-
-Wishing to learn more of my hostess,
-
-"I thank you," I replied, "but I am not uncomfortable here. Where
-would you have me go? I like sleeping in the open air."
-
-"There is no hurt in the air," she returned; "but the creatures
-that roam the night in these parts are not such as a man would
-willingly have about him while he sleeps."
-
-"I have not been disturbed," I said.
-
-"No; I have been sitting by you ever since you lay down."
-
-"That is very kind of you! How came you to know I was here? Why
-do you show me such favour?"
-
-"I saw you," she answered, still with her back to me, "in the light
-of the moon, just as she went down. I see badly in the day, but
-at night perfectly. The shadow of my house would have hidden you,
-but both its doors were open. I was out on the waste, and saw you
-go into this hollow. You were asleep, however, before I could reach
-you, and I was not willing to disturb you. People are frightened
-if I come on them suddenly. They call me the Cat-woman. It is not
-my name."
-
-I remembered what the children had told me--that she was very ugly,
-and scratched. But her voice was gentle, and its tone a little
-apologetic: she could not be a bad giantess!
-
-"You shall not hear it from me," I answered, "Please tell me what
-I MAY call you!"
-
-"When you know me, call me by the name that seems to you to fit me,"
-she replied: "that will tell me what sort you are. People do not
-often give me the right one. It is well when they do."
-
-"I suppose, madam, you live in the cottage I saw in the heart of
-the moon?"
-
-"I do. I live there alone, except when I have visitors. It is a
-poor place, but I do what I can for my guests, and sometimes their
-sleep is sweet to them."
-
-Her voice entered into me, and made me feel strangely still.
-
-"I will go with you, madam," I said, rising.
-
-She rose at once, and without a glance behind her led the way. I
-could see her just well enough to follow. She was taller than
-myself, but not so tall as I had thought her. That she never turned
-her face to me made me curious--nowise apprehensive, her voice rang
-so true. But how was I to fit her with a name who could not see her?
-I strove to get alongside of her, but failed: when I quickened my
-pace she quickened hers, and kept easily ahead of me. At length I
-did begin to grow a little afraid. Why was she so careful not to be
-seen? Extraordinary ugliness would account for it: she might fear
-terrifying me! Horror of an inconceivable monstrosity began to
-assail me: was I following through the dark an unheard of hideousness?
-Almost I repented of having accepted her hospitality.
-
-Neither spoke, and the silence grew unbearable. I MUST break it!
-
-"I want to find my way," I said, "to a place I have heard of, but
-whose name I have not yet learned. Perhaps you can tell it me!"
-
-"Describe it, then, and I will direct you. The stupid Bags know
-nothing, and the careless little Lovers forget almost everything."
-
-"Where do those live?"
-
-"You are just come from them!"
-
-"I never heard those names before!"
-
-"You would not hear them. Neither people knows its own name!"
-
-"Strange!"
-
-"Perhaps so! but hardly any one anywhere knows his own name! It
-would make many a fine gentleman stare to hear himself addressed by
-what is really his name!"
-
-I held my peace, beginning to wonder what my name might be.
-
-"What now do you fancy yours?" she went on, as if aware of my thought.
-"But, pardon me, it is a matter of no consequence."
-
-I had actually opened my mouth to answer her, when I discovered that
-my name was gone from me. I could not even recall the first letter
-of it! This was the second time I had been asked my name and could
-not tell it!
-
-"Never mind," she said; "it is not wanted. Your real name, indeed,
-is written on your forehead, but at present it whirls about so
-irregularly that nobody can read it. I will do my part to steady
-it. Soon it will go slower, and, I hope, settle at last."
-
-This startled me, and I was silent.
-
-We had left the channels and walked a long time, but no sign of the
-cottage yet appeared.
-
-"The Little Ones told me," I said at length, "of a smooth green
-country, pleasant to the feet!"
-
-"Yes?" she returned.
-
-"They told me too of a girl giantess that was queen somewhere: is
-that her country?"
-
-"There is a city in that grassy land," she replied, "where a woman
-is princess. The city is called Bulika. But certainly the princess
-is not a girl! She is older than this world, and came to it from
-yours--with a terrible history, which is not over yet. She is an
-evil person, and prevails much with the Prince of the Power of the
-Air. The people of Bulika were formerly simple folk, tilling the
-ground and pasturing sheep. She came among them, and they received
-her hospitably. She taught them to dig for diamonds and opals and
-sell them to strangers, and made them give up tillage and pasturage
-and build a city. One day they found a huge snake and killed it;
-which so enraged her that she declared herself their princess, and
-became terrible to them. The name of the country at that time was
-THE LAND OF WATERS; for the dry channels, of which you have crossed
-so many, were then overflowing with live torrents; and the valley,
-where now the Bags and the Lovers have their fruit-trees, was a lake
-that received a great part of them. But the wicked princess gathered
-up in her lap what she could of the water over the whole country,
-closed it in an egg, and carried it away. Her lap, however, would
-not hold more than half of it; and the instant she was gone, what
-she had not yet taken fled away underground, leaving the country
-as dry and dusty as her own heart. Were it not for the waters under
-it, every living thing would long ago have perished from it. For
-where no water is, no rain falls; and where no rain falls, no springs
-rise. Ever since then, the princess has lived in Bulika, holding
-the inhabitants in constant terror, and doing what she can to keep
-them from multiplying. Yet they boast and believe themselves a
-prosperous, and certainly are a self-satisfied people--good at
-bargaining and buying, good at selling and cheating; holding well
-together for a common interest, and utterly treacherous where
-interests clash; proud of their princess and her power, and despising
-every one they get the better of; never doubting themselves the most
-honourable of all the nations, and each man counting himself better
-than any other. The depth of their worthlessness and height of their
-vainglory no one can understand who has not been there to see, who
-has not learned to know the miserable misgoverned and self-deceived
-creatures."
-
-"I thank you, madam. And now, if you please, will you tell me
-something about the Little Ones--the Lovers? I long heartily to
-serve them. Who and what are they? and how do they come to be there?
-Those children are the greatest wonder I have found in this world
-of wonders."
-
-"In Bulika you may, perhaps, get some light on those matters. There
-is an ancient poem in the library of the palace, I am told, which
-of course no one there can read, but in which it is plainly written
-that after the Lovers have gone through great troubles and learned
-their own name, they will fill the land, and make the giants their
-slaves."
-
-"By that time they will have grown a little, will they not?" I said.
-
-"Yes, they will have grown; yet I think too they will not have grown.
-It is possible to grow and not to grow, to grow less and to grow
-bigger, both at once--yes, even to grow by means of not growing!"
-
-"Your words are strange, madam!" I rejoined. "But I have heard it
-said that some words, because they mean more, appear to mean less!"
-
-"That is true, and such words HAVE to be understood. It were well
-for the princess of Bulika if she heard what the very silence of
-the land is shouting in her ears all day long! But she is far too
-clever to understand anything."
-
-"Then I suppose, when the little Lovers are grown, their land will
-have water again?"
-
-"Not exactly so: when they are thirsty enough, they will have water,
-and when they have water, they will grow. To grow, they must have
-water. And, beneath, it is flowing still."
-
-"I have heard that water twice," I said; "--once when I lay down
-to wait for the moon--and when I woke the sun was shining! and once
-when I fell, all but killed by the bad giant. Both times came the
-voices of the water, and healed me."
-
-The woman never turned her head, and kept always a little before me,
-but I could hear every word that left her lips, and her voice much
-reminded me of the woman's in the house of death. Much of what she
-said, I did not understand, and therefore cannot remember. But I
-forgot that I had ever been afraid of her.
-
-We went on and on, and crossed yet a wide tract of sand before
-reaching the cottage. Its foundation stood in deep sand, but I
-could see that it was a rock. In character the cottage resembled
-the sexton's, but had thicker walls. The door, which was heavy and
-strong, opened immediately into a large bare room, which had two
-little windows opposite each other, without glass. My hostess walked
-in at the open door out of which the moon had looked, and going
-straight to the farthest corner, took a long white cloth from the
-floor, and wound it about her head and face. Then she closed the
-other door, in at which the moon had looked, trimmed a small horn
-lantern that stood on the hearth, and turned to receive me.
-
-"You are very welcome, Mr. Vane!" she said, calling me by the name
-I had forgotten. "Your entertainment will be scanty, but, as the
-night is not far spent, and the day not at hand, it is better you
-should be indoors. Here you will be safe, and a little lack is not
-a great misery."
-
-"I thank you heartily, madam," I replied. "But, seeing you know the
-name I could not tell you, may I not now know yours?"
-
-"My name is Mara," she answered.
-
-Then I remembered the sexton and the little black cat.
-
-"Some people," she went on, "take me for Lot's wife, lamenting over
-Sodom; and some think I am Rachel, weeping for her children; but I
-am neither of those."
-
-"I thank you again, Mara," I said. "--May I lie here on your floor
-till the morning?"
-
-"At the top of that stair," she answered, "you will find a bed--on
-which some have slept better than they expected, and some have waked
-all the night and slept all the next day. It is not a very soft
-one, but it is better than the sand--and there are no hyenas sniffing
-about it!"
-
-The stair, narrow and steep, led straight up from the room to an
-unceiled and unpartitioned garret, with one wide, low dormer window.
-Close under the sloping roof stood a narrow bed, the sight of which
-with its white coverlet made me shiver, so vividly it recalled the
-couches in the chamber of death. On the table was a dry loaf, and
-beside it a cup of cold water. To me, who had tasted nothing but
-fruit for months, they were a feast.
-
-"I must leave you in the dark," my hostess called from the bottom
-of the stair. "This lantern is all the light I have, and there are
-things to do to-night."
-
-"It is of no consequence, thank you, madam," I returned. "To eat
-and drink, to lie down and sleep, are things that can be done in
-the dark."
-
-"Rest in peace," she said.
-
-I ate up the loaf, drank the water every drop, and laid myself down.
-The bed was hard, the covering thin and scanty, and the night cold:
-I dreamed that I lay in the chamber of death, between the warrior
-and the lady with the healing wound.
-
-I woke in the middle of the night, thinking I heard low noises of
-wild animals.
-
-"Creatures of the desert scenting after me, I suppose!" I said to
-myself, and, knowing I was safe, would have gone to sleep again. But
-that instant a rough purring rose to a howl under my window, and I
-sprang from my bed to see what sort of beast uttered it.
-
-Before the door of the cottage, in the full radiance of the moon, a
-tall woman stood, clothed in white, with her back toward me. She
-was stooping over a large white animal like a panther, patting and
-stroking it with one hand, while with the other she pointed to the
-moon half-way up the heaven, then drew a perpendicular line to the
-horizon. Instantly the creature darted off with amazing swiftness
-in the direction indicated. For a moment my eyes followed it, then
-sought the woman; but she was gone, and not yet had I seen her face!
-Again I looked after the animal, but whether I saw or only fancied
-a white speck in the distance, I could not tell.--What did it mean?
-What was the monster-cat sent off to do? I shuddered, and went back
-to my bed. Then I remembered that, when I lay down in the sandy
-hollow outside, the moon was setting; yet here she was, a few hours
-after, shining in all her glory! "Everything is uncertain here,"
-I said to myself, "--even the motions of the heavenly bodies!"
-
-I learned afterward that there were several moons in the service of
-this world, but the laws that ruled their times and different orbits
-I failed to discover.
-
-Again I fell asleep, and slept undisturbed.
-
-When I went down in the morning, I found bread and water waiting me,
-the loaf so large that I ate only half of it. My hostess sat muffled
-beside me while I broke my fast, and except to greet me when I
-entered, never opened her mouth until I asked her to instruct me
-how to arrive at Bulika. She then told me to go up the bank of the
-river-bed until it disappeared; then verge to the right until I came
-to a forest--in which I might spend a night, but which I must leave
-with my face to the rising moon. Keeping in the same direction, she
-said, until I reached a running stream, I must cross that at right
-angles, and go straight on until I saw the city on the horizon.
-
-I thanked her, and ventured the remark that, looking out of the
-window in the night, I was astonished to see her messenger understand
-her so well, and go so straight and so fast in the direction she
-had indicated.
-
-"If I had but that animal of yours to guide me--" I went on, hoping
-to learn something of its mission, but she interrupted me, saying,
-
-"It was to Bulika she went--the shortest way."
-
-"How wonderfully intelligent she looked!"
-
-"Astarte knows her work well enough to be sent to do it," she
-answered.
-
-"Have you many messengers like her?"
-
-"As many as I require."
-
-"Are they hard to teach?"
-
-"They need no teaching. They are all of a certain breed, but not
-one of the breed is like another. Their origin is so natural it
-would seem to you incredible."
-
-"May I not know it?"
-
-"A new one came to me last night--from your head while you slept."
-
-I laughed.
-
-"All in this world seem to love mystery!" I said to myself. "Some
-chance word of mine suggested an idea--and in this form she embodies
-the small fact!"
-
-"Then the creature is mine!" I cried.
-
-"Not at all!" she answered. "That only can be ours in whose existence
-our will is a factor."
-
-"Ha! a metaphysician too!" I remarked inside, and was silent.
-
-"May I take what is left of the loaf?" I asked presently.
-
-"You will want no more to-day," she replied.
-
-"To-morrow I may!" I rejoined.
-
-She rose and went to the door, saying as she went,
-
-"It has nothing to do with to-morrow--but you may take it if you
-will."
-
-She opened the door, and stood holding it. I rose, taking up the
-bread--but lingered, much desiring to see her face.
-
-"Must I go, then?" I asked.
-
-"No one sleeps in my house two nights together!" she answered.
-
-"I thank you, then, for your hospitality, and bid you farewell!"
-I said, and turned to go.
-
-"The time will come when you must house with me many days and many
-nights," she murmured sadly through her muffling.
-
-"Willingly," I replied.
-
-"Nay, NOT willingly!" she answered.
-
-I said to myself that she was right--I would not willingly be her
-guest a second time! but immediately my heart rebuked me, and I had
-scarce crossed the threshold when I turned again.
-
-She stood in the middle of the room; her white garments lay like
-foamy waves at her feet, and among them the swathings of her face:
-it was lovely as a night of stars. Her great gray eyes looked up
-to heaven; tears were flowing down her pale cheeks. She reminded
-me not a little of the sexton's wife, although the one looked as if
-she had not wept for thousands of years, and the other as if she
-wept constantly behind the wrappings of her beautiful head. Yet
-something in the very eyes that wept seemed to say, "Weeping may
-endure for a night, but joy cometh in the morning."
-
-I had bowed my head for a moment, about to kneel and beg her
-forgiveness, when, looking up in the act, I found myself outside
-a doorless house. I went round and round it, but could find no
-entrance.
-
-I had stopped under one of the windows, on the point of calling
-aloud my repentant confession, when a sudden wailing, howling scream
-invaded my ears, and my heart stood still. Something sprang from
-the window above my head, and lighted beyond me. I turned, and saw
-a large gray cat, its hair on end, shooting toward the river-bed.
-I fell with my face in the sand, and seemed to hear within the house
-the gentle sobbing of one who suffered but did not repent.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-A GRUESOME DANCE
-
-I rose to resume my journey, and walked many a desert mile. How
-I longed for a mountain, or even a tall rock, from whose summit I
-might see across the dismal plain or the dried-up channels to some
-bordering hope! Yet what could such foresight have availed me?
-That which is within a man, not that which lies beyond his vision,
-is the main factor in what is about to befall him: the operation
-upon him is the event. Foreseeing is not understanding, else surely
-the prophecy latent in man would come oftener to the surface!
-
-The sun was half-way to the horizon when I saw before me a rugged
-rocky ascent; but ere I reached it my desire to climb was over, and
-I longed to lie down. By that time the sun was almost set, and the
-air had begun to grow dark. At my feet lay a carpet of softest,
-greenest moss, couch for a king: I threw myself upon it, and
-weariness at once began to ebb, for, the moment my head was down,
-the third time I heard below me many waters, playing broken airs
-and ethereal harmonies with the stones of their buried channels.
-Loveliest chaos of music-stuff the harp aquarian kept sending up to
-my ears! What might not a Händel have done with that ever-recurring
-gurgle and bell-like drip, to the mingling and mutually destructive
-melodies their common refrain!
-
-As I lay listening, my eyes went wandering up and down the rocky
-slope abrupt above me, reading on its face the record that down
-there, ages ago, rushed a cataract, filling the channels that had
-led me to its foot. My heart swelled at the thought of the splendid
-tumult, where the waves danced revelling in helpless fall, to mass
-their music in one organ-roar below. But soon the hidden brooks
-lulled me to sleep, and their lullabies mingled with my dreams.
-
-I woke before the sun, and eagerly climbed to see what lay beyond.
-Alas, nothing but a desert of finest sand! Not a trace was left
-of the river that had plunged adown the rocks! The powdery drift
-had filled its course to the level of the dreary expanse! As I
-looked back I saw that the river had divided into two branches as
-it fell, that whose bank I had now followed to the foot of the rocky
-scaur, and that which first I crossed to the Evil Wood. The wood
-I descried between the two on the far horizon. Before me and to
-the left, the desert stretched beyond my vision, but far to the
-right I could see a lift in the sky-line, giving hope of the forest
-to which my hostess had directed me.
-
-I sat down, and sought in my pocket the half-loaf I had brought with
-me--then first to understand what my hostess had meant concerning
-it. Verily the bread was not for the morrow: it had shrunk and
-hardened to a stone! I threw it away, and set out again.
-
-About noon I came to a few tamarisk and juniper trees, and then to
-a few stunted firs. As I went on, closer thickets and larger firs
-met me, and at length I was in just such a forest of pines and other
-trees as that in which the Little Ones found their babies, and
-believed I had returned upon a farther portion of the same. But
-what mattered WHERE while EVERYWHERE was the same as NOWHERE! I had
-not yet, by doing something in it, made ANYWHERE into a place! I
-was not yet alive; I was only dreaming I lived! I was but a
-consciousness with an outlook! Truly I had been nothing else in
-the world I had left, but now I knew the fact! I said to myself
-that if in this forest I should catch the faint gleam of the mirror,
-I would turn far aside lest it should entrap me unawares, and give
-me back to my old existence: here I might learn to be something by
-doing something! I could not endure the thought of going back, with
-so many beginnings and not an end achieved. The Little Ones would
-meet what fate was appointed them; the awful witch I should never
-meet; the dead would ripen and arise without me; I should but wake
-to know that I had dreamed, and that all my going was nowhither! I
-would rather go on and on than come to such a close!
-
-I went deeper into the wood: I was weary, and would rest in it.
-
-The trees were now large, and stood in regular, almost geometric,
-fashion, with roomy spaces between. There was little undergrowth,
-and I could see a long way in every direction. The forest was like
-a great church, solemn and silent and empty, for I met nothing on
-two feet or four that day. Now and then, it is true, some swift
-thing, and again some slow thing, would cross the space on which
-my eye happened that moment to settle; but it was always at some
-distance, and only enhanced the sense of wideness and vacancy. I
-heard a few birds, and saw plenty of butterflies, some of marvellously
-gorgeous colouring and combinations of colour, some of a pure and
-dazzling whiteness.
-
-Coming to a spot where the pines stood farther apart and gave room
-for flowering shrubs, and hoping it a sign of some dwelling near, I
-took the direction where yet more and more roses grew, for I was
-hungry after the voice and face of my kind--after any live soul,
-indeed, human or not, which I might in some measure understand.
-What a hell of horror, I thought, to wander alone, a bare existence
-never going out of itself, never widening its life in another life,
-but, bound with the cords of its poor peculiarities, lying an eternal
-prisoner in the dungeon of its own being! I began to learn that it
-was impossible to live for oneself even, save in the presence of
-others--then, alas, fearfully possible! evil was only through good!
-selfishness but a parasite on the tree of life! In my own world
-I had the habit of solitary song; here not a crooning murmur ever
-parted my lips! There I sang without thinking; here I thought
-without singing! there I had never had a bosom-friend; here the
-affection of an idiot would be divinely welcome! "If only I had
-a dog to love!" I sighed--and regarded with wonder my past self,
-which preferred the company of book or pen to that of man or woman;
-which, if the author of a tale I was enjoying appeared, would wish
-him away that I might return to his story. I had chosen the dead
-rather than the living, the thing thought rather than the thing
-thinking! "Any man," I said now, "is more than the greatest of
-books!" I had not cared for my live brothers and sisters, and now
-I was left without even the dead to comfort me!
-
-The wood thinned yet more, and the pines grew yet larger, sending
-up huge stems, like columns eager to support the heavens. More
-trees of other kinds appeared; the forest was growing richer! The
-roses wore now trees, and their flowers of astonishing splendour.
-
-Suddenly I spied what seemed a great house or castle; but its forms
-were so strangely indistinct, that I could not be certain it was
-more than a chance combination of tree-shapes. As I drew nearer,
-its lines yet held together, but neither they nor the body of it
-grew at all more definite; and when at length I stood in front of
-it, I remained as doubtful of its nature as before. House or castle
-habitable, it certainly was not; it might be a ruin overgrown with
-ivy and roses! Yet of building hid in the foliage, not the poorest
-wall-remnant could I discern. Again and again I seemed to descry what
-must be building, but it always vanished before closer inspection.
-Could it be, I pondered, that the ivy had embraced a huge edifice
-and consumed it, and its interlaced branches retained the shapes of
-the walls it had assimilated?--I could be sure of nothing concerning
-the appearance.
-
-Before me was a rectangular vacancy--the ghost of a doorway without
-a door: I stepped through it, and found myself in an open space like
-a great hall, its floor covered with grass and flowers, its walls
-and roof of ivy and vine, mingled with roses.
-
-There could be no better place in which to pass the night! I
-gathered a quantity of withered leaves, laid them in a corner, and
-threw myself upon them. A red sunset filled the hall, the night
-was warm, and my couch restful; I lay gazing up at the live ceiling,
-with its tracery of branches and twigs, its clouds of foliage, and
-peeping patches of loftier roof. My eyes went wading about as if
-tangled in it, until the sun was down, and the sky beginning to grow
-dark. Then the red roses turned black, and soon the yellow and
-white alone were visible. When they vanished, the stars came instead,
-hanging in the leaves like live topazes, throbbing and sparkling
-and flashing many colours: I was canopied with a tree from Aladdin's
-cave!
-
-Then I discovered that it was full of nests, whence tiny heads,
-nearly indistinguishable, kept popping out with a chirp or two, and
-disappearing again. For a while there were rustlings and stirrings
-and little prayers; but as the darkness grew, the small heads became
-still, and at last every feathered mother had her brood quiet
-under her wings, the talk in the little beds was over, and God's
-bird-nursery at rest beneath the waves of sleep. Once more a few
-flutterings made me look up: an owl went sailing across. I had only
-a glimpse of him, but several times felt the cool wafture of his
-silent wings. The mother birds did not move again; they saw that
-he was looking for mice, not children.
-
-About midnight I came wide awake, roused by a revelry, whose noises
-were yet not loud. Neither were they distant; they were close to
-me, but attenuate. My eyes were so dazzled, however, that for a
-while I could see nothing; at last they came to themselves.
-
-I was lying on my withered leaves in the corner of a splendid hall.
-Before me was a crowd of gorgeously dressed men and gracefully robed
-women, none of whom seemed to see me. In dance after dance they
-vaguely embodied the story of life, its meetings, its passions, its
-partings. A student of Shakspere, I had learned something of every
-dance alluded to in his plays, and hence partially understood several
-of those I now saw--the minuet, the pavin, the hey, the coranto,
-the lavolta. The dancers were attired in fashion as ancient as
-their dances.
-
-A moon had risen while I slept, and was shining through the
-countless-windowed roof; but her light was crossed by so many
-shadows that at first I could distinguish almost nothing of the
-faces of the multitude; I could not fail, however, to perceive
-that there was something odd about them: I sat up to see them
-better.--Heavens! could I call them faces? They were skull fronts!
---hard, gleaming bone, bare jaws, truncated noses, lipless teeth
-which could no more take part in any smile! Of these, some flashed
-set and white and murderous; others were clouded with decay, broken
-and gapped, coloured of the earth in which they seemed so long to
-have lain! Fearfuller yet, the eye-sockets were not empty; in each
-was a lidless living eye! In those wrecks of faces, glowed or
-flashed or sparkled eyes of every colour, shape, and expression. The
-beautiful, proud eye, dark and lustrous, condescending to whatever
-it rested upon, was the more terrible; the lovely, languishing eye,
-the more repulsive; while the dim, sad eyes, less at variance with
-their setting, were sad exceedingly, and drew the heart in spite of
-the horror out of which they gazed.
-
-I rose and went among the apparitions, eager to understand something
-of their being and belongings. Were they souls, or were they and
-their rhythmic motions but phantasms of what had been? By look
-nor by gesture, not by slightest break in the measure, did they
-show themselves aware of me; I was not present to them: how much were
-they in relation to each other? Surely they saw their companions
-as I saw them! Or was each only dreaming itself and the rest?
-Did they know each how they appeared to the others--a death with
-living eyes? Had they used their faces, not for communication,
-not to utter thought and feeling, not to share existence with their
-neighbours, but to appear what they wished to appear, and conceal
-what they were? and, having made their faces masks, were they
-therefore deprived of those masks, and condemned to go without faces
-until they repented?
-
-"How long must they flaunt their facelessness in faceless eyes?" I
-wondered. "How long will the frightful punition endure? Have they
-at length begun to love and be wise? Have they yet yielded to the
-shame that has found them?"
-
-I heard not a word, saw not a movement of one naked mouth. Were
-they because of lying bereft of speech? With their eyes they spoke
-as if longing to be understood: was it truth or was it falsehood
-that spoke in their eyes? They seemed to know one another: did
-they see one skull beautiful, and another plain? Difference must
-be there, and they had had long study of skulls!
-
-My body was to theirs no obstacle: was I a body, and were they but
-forms? or was I but a form, and were they bodies? The moment one
-of the dancers came close against me, that moment he or she was
-on the other side of me, and I could tell, without seeing, which,
-whether man or woman, had passed through my house.
-
-On many of the skulls the hair held its place, and however dressed,
-or in itself however beautiful, to my eyes looked frightful on the
-bones of the forehead and temples. In such case, the outer ear
-often remained also, and at its tip, the jewel of the ear as Sidney
-calls it, would hang, glimmering, gleaming, or sparkling, pearl or
-opal or diamond--under the night of brown or of raven locks, the
-sunrise of golden ripples, or the moonshine of pale, interclouded,
-fluffy cirri--lichenous all on the ivory-white or damp-yellow naked
-bone. I looked down and saw the daintily domed instep; I looked
-up and saw the plump shoulders basing the spring of the round full
-neck--which withered at half-height to the fluted shaft of a gibbose
-cranium.
-
-The music became wilder, the dance faster and faster; eyes flared
-and flashed, jewels twinkled and glittered, casting colour and fire
-on the pallid grins that glode through the hall, weaving a ghastly
-rhythmic woof in intricate maze of multitudinous motion, when sudden
-came a pause, and every eye turned to the same spot:--in the doorway
-stood a woman, perfect in form, in holding, and in hue, regarding
-the company as from the pedestal of a goddess, while the dancers
-stood "like one forbid," frozen to a new death by the vision of a
-life that killed. "Dead things, I live!" said her scornful glance.
-Then, at once, like leaves in which an instant wind awakes, they
-turned each to another, and broke afresh into melodious consorted
-motion, a new expression in their eyes, late solitary, now filled
-with the interchange of a common triumph. "Thou also," they seemed
-to say, "wilt soon become weak as we! thou wilt soon become like
-unto us!" I turned mine again to the woman--and saw upon her side
-a small dark shadow.
-
-She had seen the change in the dead stare; she looked down; she
-understood the talking eyes; she pressed both her lovely hands on
-the shadow, gave a smothered cry, and fled. The birds moved rustling
-in their nests, and a flash of joy lit up the eyes of the dancers,
-when suddenly a warm wind, growing in strength as it swept through
-the place, blew out every light. But the low moon yet glimmered
-on the horizon with "sick assay" to shine, and a turbid radiance
-yet gleamed from so many eyes, that I saw well enough what followed.
-As if each shape had been but a snow-image, it began to fall to
-pieces, ruining in the warm wind. In papery flakes the flesh peeled
-from its bones, dropping like soiled snow from under its garments;
-these fell fluttering in rags and strips, and the whole white
-skeleton, emerging from garment and flesh together, stood bare and
-lank amid the decay that littered the floor. A faint rattling
-shiver went through the naked company; pair after pair the lamping
-eyes went out; and the darkness grew round me with the loneliness.
-For a moment the leaves were still swept fluttering all one way;
-then the wind ceased, and the owl floated silent through the silent
-night.
-
-Not for a moment had I been afraid. It is true that whoever would
-cross the threshold of any world, must leave fear behind him; but,
-for myself, I could claim no part in its absence. No conscious
-courage was operant in me; simply, I was not afraid. I neither
-knew why I was not afraid, nor wherefore I might have been afraid.
-I feared not even fear--which of all dangers is the most dangerous.
-
-I went out into the wood, at once to resume my journey. Another
-moon was rising, and I turned my face toward it.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-A GROTESQUE TRAGEDY
-
-I had not gone ten paces when I caught sight of a strange-looking
-object, and went nearer to know what it might be. I found it a
-mouldering carriage of ancient form, ruinous but still upright on
-its heavy wheels. On each side of the pole, still in its place,
-lay the skeleton of a horse; from their two grim white heads ascended
-the shrivelled reins to the hand of the skeleton-coachman seated
-on his tattered hammer-cloth; both doors had fallen away; within
-sat two skeletons, each leaning back in its corner.
-
-Even as I looked, they started awake, and with a cracking rattle
-of bones, each leaped from the door next it. One fell and lay;
-the other stood a moment, its structure shaking perilously; then
-with difficulty, for its joints were stiff, crept, holding by the
-back of the carriage, to the opposite side, the thin leg-bones
-seeming hardly strong enough to carry its weight, where, kneeling
-by the other, it sought to raise it, almost falling itself again
-in the endeavour.
-
-The prostrate one rose at length, as by a sudden effort, to the
-sitting posture. For a few moments it turned its yellowish skull
-to this side and that; then, heedless of its neighbour, got upon
-its feet by grasping the spokes of the hind wheel. Half erected
-thus, it stood with its back to the other, both hands holding one
-of its knee-joints. With little less difficulty and not a few
-contortions, the kneeling one rose next, and addressed its companion.
-
-"Have you hurt yourself, my lord?" it said, in a voice that sounded
-far-off, and ill-articulated as if blown aside by some spectral wind.
-
-"Yes, I have," answered the other, in like but rougher tone. "You
-would do nothing to help me, and this cursed knee is out!"
-
-"I did my best, my lord."
-
-"No doubt, my lady, for it was bad! I thought I should never find
-my feet again!--But, bless my soul, madam! are you out in your
-bones?"
-
-She cast a look at herself.
-
-"I have nothing else to be out in," she returned; "--and YOU at
-least cannot complain! But what on earth does it mean? Am I
-dreaming?"
-
-"YOU may be dreaming, madam--I cannot tell; but this knee of mine
-forbids me the grateful illusion.--Ha! I too, I perceive, have
-nothing to walk in but bones!--Not so unbecoming to a man, however!
-I trust to goodness they are not MY bones! every one aches worse
-than another, and this loose knee worst of all! The bed must have
-been damp--and I too drunk to know it!"
-
-"Probably, my lord of Cokayne!"
-
-"What! what!--You make me think I too am dreaming--aches and all!
-How do YOU know the title my roistering bullies give me? I don't
-remember you!--Anyhow, you have no right to take liberties! My
-name is--I am lord----tut, tut! What do you call me when I'm--I
-mean when you are sober? I cannot--at the moment,--Why, what IS my
-name?--I must have been VERY drunk when I went to bed! I often am!"
-
-"You come so seldom to mine, that I do not know, my lord; but I may
-take your word for THAT!"
-
-"I hope so!"
-
-"--if for nothing else!"
-"Hoity toity! I never told you a lie in my life!"
-
-"You never told me anything but lies."
-
-"Upon my honour!--Why, I never saw the woman before!"
-
-"You knew me well enough to lie to, my lord!"
-
-"I do seem to begin to dream I have met you before, but, upon my
-oath, there is nothing to know you by! Out of your clothes, who
-is to tell who you may not be?--One thing I MAY swear--that I never
-saw you so much undressed before!--By heaven, I have no recollection
-of you!"
-
-"I am glad to hear it: my recollections of you are the less
-distasteful!--Good morning, my lord!"
-
-She turned away, hobbled, clacking, a few paces, and stood again.
-
-"You are just as heartless as--as--any other woman, madam!--Where
-in this hell of a place shall I find my valet?--What was the cursed
-name I used to call the fool?"
-
-He turned his bare noddle this way and that on its creaking pivot,
-still holding his knee with both hands.
-
-"I will be your valet for once, my lord," said the lady, turning
-once more to him. "--What can I do for you? It is not easy to
-tell!"
-
-"Tie my leg on, of course, you fool! Can't you see it is all but
-off? Heigho, my dancing days!"
-
-She looked about with her eyeless sockets and found a piece of
-fibrous grass, with which she proceeded to bind together the
-adjoining parts that had formed the knee. When she had done, he
-gave one or two carefully tentative stamps.
-
-"You used to stamp rather differently, my lord!" she said, as she
-rose from her knees.
-
-"Eh? what!--Now I look at you again, it seems to me I used to hate
-you!--Eh?"
-
-"Naturally, my lord! You hated a good many people!--your wife, of
-course, among the rest!"
-
-"Ah, I begin, I be-gin---- But--I must have been a long time
-somewhere!--I really forget!--There! your damned, miserable bit of
-grass is breaking!--We used to get on PRETTY well together--eh?"
-
-"Not that I remember, my lord. The only happy moments I had in your
-company were scattered over the first week of our marriage."
-
-"Was that the way of it? Ha! ha!--Well, it's over now, thank
-goodness!"
-
-"I wish I could believe it! Why were we sitting there in that
-carriage together? It wakes apprehension!"
-
-"I think we were divorced, my lady!"
-
-"Hardly enough: we are still together!"
-
-"A sad truth, but capable of remedy: the forest seems of some
-extent!"
-
-"I doubt! I doubt!"
-
-"I am sorry I cannot think of a compliment to pay you--without
-lying, that is. To judge by your figure and complexion you have
-lived hard since I saw you last! I cannot surely be QUITE so naked
-as your ladyship!--I beg your pardon, madam! I trust you will take
-it I am but jesting in a dream! It is of no consequence, however;
-dreaming or waking, all's one--all merest appearance! You can't be
-certain of anything, and that's as good as knowing there is nothing!
-Life may teach any fool that!"
-
-"It has taught me the fool I was to love you!"
-
-"You were not the only fool to do that! Women had a trick of falling
-in love with me:--I had forgotten that you were one of them!"
-"I did love you, my lord--a little--at one time!"
-
-"Ah, there was your mistake, my lady! You should have loved me
-much, loved me devotedly, loved me savagely--loved me eternally!
-Then I should have tired of you the sooner, and not hated you
-so much afterward!--But let bygones be bygones!--WHERE are we?
-Locality is the question! To be or not to be, is NOT the question!"
-
-"We are in the other world, I presume!"
-
-"Granted!--but in which or what sort of other world? This can't be
-hell!"
-
-"It must: there's marriage in it! You and I are damned in each
-other."
-
-"Then I'm not like Othello, damned in a fair wife!--Oh, I remember
-my Shakspeare, madam!"
-
-She picked up a broken branch that had fallen into a bush, and
-steadying herself with it, walked away, tossing her little skull.
-
-"Give that stick to me," cried her late husband; "I want it more
-than you."
-
-She returned him no answer.
-
-"You mean to make me beg for it?"
-
-"Not at all, my lord. I mean to keep it," she replied, continuing
-her slow departure.
-
-"Give it me at once; I mean to have it! I require it."
-
-"Unfortunately, I think I require it myself!" returned the lady,
-walking a little quicker, with a sharper cracking of her joints and
-clinking of her bones.
-
-He started to follow her, but nearly fell: his knee-grass had burst,
-and with an oath he stopped, grasping his leg again.
-
-"Come and tie it up properly!" he would have thundered, but he only
-piped and whistled!
-
-She turned and looked at him.
-
-"Come and tie it up instantly!" he repeated.
-
-She walked a step or two farther from him.
-
-"I swear I will not touch you!" he cried.
-
-"Swear on, my lord! there is no one here to believe you. But, pray,
-do not lose your temper, or you will shake yourself to pieces, and
-where to find string enough to tie up all your crazy joints, is more
-than I can tell."
-
-She came back, and knelt once more at his side--first, however,
-laying the stick in dispute beyond his reach and within her own.
-
-The instant she had finished retying the joint, he made a grab at
-her, thinking, apparently, to seize her by the hair; but his hard
-fingers slipped on the smooth poll.
-
-"Disgusting!" he muttered, and laid hold of her upper arm-bone.
-
-"You will break it!" she said, looking up from her knees.
-
-"I will, then!" he answered, and began to strain at it.
-
-"I shall not tie your leg again the next time it comes loose!" she
-threatened.
-
-He gave her arm a vicious twist, but happily her bones were in
-better condition than his. She stretched her other hand toward
-the broken branch.
-
-"That's right: reach me the stick!" he grinned.
-
-She brought it round with such a swing that one of the bones of the sounder leg snapped. He fell, choking with curses. The lady laughed.
-
-"Now you will have to wear splints always!" she said; "such dry bones
-never mend!"
-
-"You devil!" he cried.
-
-"At your service, my lord! Shall I fetch you a couple of wheel-spokes?
-Neat--but heavy, I fear!"
-
-He turned his bone-face aside, and did not answer, but lay and
-groaned. I marvelled he had not gone to pieces when he fell. The
-lady rose and walked away--not all ungracefully, I thought.
-
-"What can come of it?" I said to myself. "These are too wretched
-for any world, and this cannot be hell, for the Little Ones are in
-it, and the sleepers too! What can it all mean? Can things ever
-come right for skeletons?"
-
-"There are words too big for you and me: ALL is one of them, and
-EVER is another," said a voice near me which I knew.
-
-I looked about, but could not see the speaker.
-
-"You are not in hell," it resumed. "Neither am I in hell. But
-those skeletons are in hell!"
-
-Ere he ended I caught sight of the raven on the bough of a beech,
-right over my head. The same moment he left it, and alighting on
-the ground, stood there, the thin old man of the library, with long
-nose and long coat.
-
-"The male was never a gentleman," he went on, "and in the bony stage
-of retrogression, with his skeleton through his skin, and his
-character outside his manners, does not look like one. The female
-is less vulgar, and has a little heart. But, the restraints of
-society removed, you see them now just as they are and always were!"
-
-"Tell me, Mr. Raven, what will become of them," I said.
-
-"We shall see," he replied. "In their day they were the handsomest
-couple at court; and now, even in their dry bones, they seem to
-regard their former repute as an inalienable possession; to see
-their faces, however, may yet do something for them! They felt
-themselves rich too while they had pockets, but they have already
-begun to feel rather pinched! My lord used to regard my lady as a
-worthless encumbrance, for he was tired of her beauty and had spent
-her money; now he needs her to cobble his joints for him! These
-changes have roots of hope in them. Besides, they cannot now get
-far away from each other, and they see none else of their own kind:
-they must at last grow weary of their mutual repugnance, and begin
-to love one another! for love, not hate, is deepest in what Love
-`loved into being.'"
-
-"I saw many more of their kind an hour ago, in the hall close by!"
-I said.
-
-"Of their kind, but not of their sort," he answered. "For many years
-these will see none such as you saw last night. Those are centuries
-in advance of these. You saw that those could even dress themselves
-a little! It is true they cannot yet retain their clothes so long
-as they would--only, at present, for a part of the night; but they
-are pretty steadily growing more capable, and will by and by develop
-faces; for every grain of truthfulness adds a fibre to the show of
-their humanity. Nothing but truth can appear; and whatever is must
-seem."
-
-"Are they upheld by this hope?" I asked.
-
-"They are upheld by hope, but they do not in the least know their
-hope; to understand it, is yet immeasurably beyond them," answered
-Mr. Raven.
-
-His unexpected appearance had caused me no astonishment. I was like
-a child, constantly wondering, and surprised at nothing.
-
-"Did you come to find me, sir?" I asked.
-
-"Not at all," he replied. "I have no anxiety about you. Such as
-you always come back to us."
-
-"Tell me, please, who am I such as?" I said.
-
-"I cannot make my friend the subject of conversation," he answered,
-with a smile.
-
-"But when that friend is present!" I urged.
-
-"I decline the more strongly," he rejoined.
-
-"But when that friend asks you!" I persisted.
-
-"Then most positively I refuse," he returned.
-
-"Why?"
-
-"Because he and I would be talking of two persons as if they were
-one and the same. Your consciousness of yourself and my knowledge
-of you are far apart!"
-
-The lapels of his coat flew out, and the lappets lifted, and I
-thought the metamorphosis of HOMO to CORVUS was about to take place
-before my eyes. But the coat closed again in front of him, and he
-added, with seeming inconsequence,
-
-"In this world never trust a person who has once deceived you.
-Above all, never do anything such a one may ask you to do."
-
-"I will try to remember," I answered; "--but I may forget!"
-
-"Then some evil that is good for you will follow."
-
-"And if I remember?"
-
-"Some evil that is not good for you, will not follow."
-
-The old man seemed to sink to the ground, and immediately I saw the
-raven several yards from me, flying low and fast.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-DEAD OR ALIVE?
-
-I went walking on, still facing the moon, who, not yet high, was
-staring straight into the forest. I did not know what ailed her,
-but she was dark and dented, like a battered disc of old copper,
-and looked dispirited and weary. Not a cloud was nigh to keep her
-company, and the stars were too bright for her. "Is this going to
-last for ever?" she seemed to say. She was going one way and I was
-going the other, yet through the wood we went a long way together.
-We did not commune much, for my eyes were on the ground; but her
-disconsolate look was fixed on me: I felt without seeing it. A
-long time we were together, I and the moon, walking side by side,
-she the dull shine, and I the live shadow.
-
-Something on the ground, under a spreading tree, caught my eye with
-its whiteness, and I turned toward it. Vague as it was in the
-shadow of the foliage, it suggested, as I drew nearer, a human body.
-"Another skeleton!" I said to myself, kneeling and laying my hand
-upon it. A body it was, however, and no skeleton, though as nearly
-one as body could well be. It lay on its side, and was very cold--
-not cold like a stone, but cold like that which was once alive, and
-is alive no more. The closer I looked at it, the oftener I touched
-it, the less it seemed possible it should be other than dead. For
-one bewildered moment, I fancied it one of the wild dancers, a
-ghostly Cinderella, perhaps, that had lost her way home, and perished
-in the strange night of an out-of-door world! It was quite naked,
-and so worn that, even in the shadow, I could, peering close, have
-counted without touching them, every rib in its side. All its bones,
-indeed, were as visible as if tight-covered with only a thin elastic
-leather. Its beautiful yet terrible teeth, unseemly disclosed by
-the retracted lips, gleamed ghastly through the dark. Its hair was
-longer than itself, thick and very fine to the touch, and black as
-night.
-
-It was the body of a tall, probably graceful woman.--How had she
-come there? Not of herself, and already in such wasted condition,
-surely! Her strength must have failed her; she had fallen, and
-lain there until she died of hunger! But how, even so, could she
-be thus emaciated? And how came she to be naked? Where were the
-savages to strip and leave her? or what wild beasts would have taken
-her garments? That her body should have been left was not wonderful!
-
-I rose to my feet, stood, and considered. I must not, could not let
-her lie exposed and forsaken! Natural reverence forbade it. Even
-the garment of a woman claims respect; her body it were impossible
-to leave uncovered! Irreverent eyes might look on it! Brutal claws
-might toss it about! Years would pass ere the friendly rains washed
-it into the soil!--But the ground was hard, almost solid with
-interlacing roots, and I had but my bare hands!
-
-At first it seemed plain that she had not long been dead: there
-was not a sign of decay about her! But then what had the slow
-wasting of life left of her to decay?
-
-Could she be still alive? Might she not? What if she were! Things
-went very strangely in this strange world! Even then there would
-be little chance of bringing her back, but I must know she was dead
-before I buried her!
-
-As I left the forest-hall, I had spied in the doorway a bunch of
-ripe grapes, and brought it with me, eating as I came: a few were
-yet left on the stalk, and their juice might possibly revive her!
-Anyhow it was all I had with which to attempt her rescue! The mouth
-was happily a little open; but the head was in such an awkward
-position that, to move the body, I passed my arm under the shoulder
-on which it lay, when I found the pine-needles beneath it warm:
-she could not have been any time dead, and MIGHT still be alive,
-though I could discern no motion of the heart, or any indication
-that she breathed! One of her hands was clenched hard, apparently
-inclosing something small. I squeezed a grape into her mouth, but
-no swallowing followed.
-
-To do for her all I could, I spread a thick layer of pine-needles
-and dry leaves, laid one of my garments over it, warm from my body,
-lifted her upon it, and covered her with my clothes and a great heap
-of leaves: I would save the little warmth left in her, hoping an
-increase to it when the sun came back. Then I tried another grape,
-but could perceive no slightest movement of mouth or throat.
-
-"Doubt," I said to myself, "may be a poor encouragement to do
-anything, but it is a bad reason for doing nothing." So tight was
-the skin upon her bones that I dared not use friction.
-
-I crept into the heap of leaves, got as close to her as I could,
-and took her in my arms. I had not much heat left in me, but what
-I had I would share with her! Thus I spent what remained of the
-night, sleepless, and longing for the sun. Her cold seemed to
-radiate into me, but no heat to pass from me to her.
-
-Had I fled from the beautiful sleepers, I thought, each on her "dim,
-straight" silver couch, to lie alone with such a bedfellow! I had
-refused a lovely privilege: I was given over to an awful duty!
-Beneath the sad, slow-setting moon, I lay with the dead, and watched
-for the dawn.
-
-The darkness had given way, and the eastern horizon was growing
-dimly clearer, when I caught sight of a motion rather than of
-anything that moved--not far from me, and close to the ground. It
-was the low undulating of a large snake, which passed me in an
-unswerving line. Presently appeared, making as it seemed for the
-same point, what I took for a roebuck-doe and her calf. Again a
-while, and two creatures like bear-cubs came, with three or four
-smaller ones behind them. The light was now growing so rapidly that
-when, a few minutes after, a troop of horses went trotting past, I
-could see that, although the largest of them were no bigger than the
-smallest Shetland pony, they must yet be full-grown, so perfect were
-they in form, and so much had they all the ways and action of great
-horses. They were of many breeds. Some seemed models of cart-horses,
-others of chargers, hunters, racers. Dwarf cattle and small
-elephants followed.
-
-"Why are the children not here!" I said to myself. "The moment I am
-free of this poor woman, I must go back and fetch them!"
-
-Where were the creatures going? What drew them? Was this an exodus,
-or a morning habit? I must wait for the sun! Till he came I must
-not leave the woman!
-I laid my hand on the body, and could not help thinking it felt a
-trifle warmer. It might have gained a little of the heat I had lost!
-it could hardly have generated any! What reason for hope there was
-had not grown less!
-
-The forehead of the day began to glow, and soon the sun came peering
-up, as if to see for the first time what all this stir of a new
-world was about. At sight of his great innocent splendour, I rose
-full of life, strong against death. Removing the handkerchief I
-had put to protect the mouth and eyes from the pine-needles, I
-looked anxiously to see whether I had found a priceless jewel, or
-but its empty case.
-
-The body lay motionless as when I found it. Then first, in the
-morning light, I saw how drawn and hollow was the face, how sharp
-were the bones under the skin, how every tooth shaped itself through
-the lips. The human garment was indeed worn to its threads, but
-the bird of heaven might yet be nestling within, might yet awake to
-motion and song!
-
-But the sun was shining on her face! I re-arranged the handkerchief,
-laid a few leaves lightly over it, and set out to follow the
-creatures. Their main track was well beaten, and must have long
-been used--likewise many of the tracks that, joining it from both
-sides, merged in, and broadened it. The trees retreated as I went,
-and the grass grew thicker. Presently the forest was gone, and a
-wide expanse of loveliest green stretched away to the horizon.
-Through it, along the edge of the forest, flowed a small river, and
-to this the track led. At sight of the water a new though undefined
-hope sprang up in me. The stream looked everywhere deep, and was
-full to the brim, but nowhere more than a few yards wide. A bluish
-mist rose from it, vanishing as it rose. On the opposite side, in
-the plentiful grass, many small animals were feeding. Apparently
-they slept in the forest, and in the morning sought the plain,
-swimming the river to reach it. I knelt and would have drunk, but
-the water was hot, and had a strange metallic taste.
-
-I leapt to my feet: here was the warmth I sought--the first necessity
-of life! I sped back to my helpless charge.
-
-Without well considering my solitude, no one will understand what
-seemed to lie for me in the redemption of this woman from death.
-"Prove what she may," I thought with myself, "I shall at least be
-lonely no more!" I had found myself such poor company that now first
-I seemed to know what hope was. This blessed water would expel the
-cold death, and drown my desolation!
-
-I bore her to the stream. Tall as she was, I found her marvellously
-light, her bones were so delicate, and so little covered them. I
-grew yet more hopeful when I found her so far from stiff that I
-could carry her on one arm, like a sleeping child, leaning against
-my shoulder. I went softly, dreading even the wind of my motion,
-and glad there was no other.
-
-The water was too hot to lay her at once in it: the shock might
-scare from her the yet fluttering life! I laid her on the bank,
-and dipping one of my garments, began to bathe the pitiful form.
-So wasted was it that, save from the plentifulness and blackness of
-the hair, it was impossible even to conjecture whether she was young
-or old. Her eyelids were just not shut, which made her look dead
-the more: there was a crack in the clouds of her night, at which no
-sun shone through!
-
-The longer I went on bathing the poor bones, the less grew my hope
-that they would ever again be clothed with strength, that ever those
-eyelids would lift, and a soul look out; still I kept bathing
-continuously, allowing no part time to grow cold while I bathed
-another; and gradually the body became so much warmer, that at last
-I ventured to submerge it: I got into the stream and drew it in,
-holding the face above the water, and letting the swift, steady
-current flow all about the rest. I noted, but was able to conclude
-nothing from the fact, that, for all the heat, the shut hand never
-relaxed its hold.
-
-After about ten minutes, I lifted it out and laid it again on the
-bank, dried it, and covered it as well as I could, then ran to the
-forest for leaves.
-
-The grass and soil were dry and warm; and when I returned I thought
-it had scarcely lost any of the heat the water had given it. I
-spread the leaves upon it, and ran for more--then for a third and
-a fourth freight.
-
-I could now leave it and go to explore, in the hope of discovering
-some shelter. I ran up the stream toward some rocky hills I saw in
-that direction, which were not far off.
-
-When I reached them, I found the river issuing full grown from a rock
-at the bottom of one of them. To my fancy it seemed to have run down
-a stair inside, an eager cataract, at every landing wild to get out,
-but only at the foot finding a door of escape.
-
-It did not fill the opening whence it rushed, and I crept through
-into a little cave, where I learned that, instead of hurrying
-tumultuously down a stair, it rose quietly from the ground at the
-back like the base of a large column, and ran along one side, nearly
-filling a deep, rather narrow channel. I considered the place, and
-saw that, if I could find a few fallen boughs long enough to lie
-across the channel, and large enough to bear a little weight without
-bending much, I might, with smaller branches and plenty of leaves,
-make upon them a comfortable couch, which the stream under would
-keep constantly warm. Then I ran back to see how my charge fared.
-
-She was lying as I had left her. The heat had not brought her to
-life, but neither had it developed anything to check farther hope.
-I got a few boulders out of the channel, and arranged them at her
-feet and on both sides of her.
-
-Running again to the wood, I had not to search long ere I found
-some small boughs fit for my purpose--mostly of beech, their dry
-yellow leaves yet clinging to them. With these I had soon laid
-the floor of a bridge-bed over the torrent. I crossed the boughs
-with smaller branches, interlaced these with twigs, and buried
-all deep in leaves and dry moss.
-
-When thus at length, after not a few journeys to the forest, I had
-completed a warm, dry, soft couch, I took the body once more, and
-set out with it for the cave. It was so light that now and then
-as I went I almost feared lest, when I laid it down, I should find
-it a skeleton after all; and when at last I did lay it gently on
-the pathless bridge, it was a greater relief to part with that fancy
-than with the weight. Once more I covered the body with a thick
-layer of leaves; and trying again to feed her with a grape, found
-to my joy that I could open the mouth a little farther. The grape,
-indeed, lay in it unheeded, but I hoped some of the juice might find
-its way down.
-
-After an hour or two on the couch, she was no longer cold. The
-warmth of the brook had interpenetrated her frame--truly it was
-but a frame!--and she was warm to the touch;--not, probably, with the
-warmth of life, but with a warmth which rendered it more possible,
-if she were alive, that she might live. I had read of one in a
-trance lying motionless for weeks!
-
-In that cave, day after day, night after night, seven long days and
-nights, I sat or lay, now waking now sleeping, but always watching.
-Every morning I went out and bathed in the hot stream, and every
-morning felt thereupon as if I had eaten and drunk--which experience
- gave me courage to lay her in it also every day. Once as I did so,
-a shadow of discoloration on her left side gave me a terrible shock,
-but the next morning it had vanished, and I continued the treatment--
-every morning, after her bath, putting a fresh grape in her mouth.
-
-I too ate of the grapes and other berries I found in the forest;
-but I believed that, with my daily bath in that river, I could have
-done very well without eating at all.
-
-Every time I slept, I dreamed of finding a wounded angel, who,
-unable to fly, remained with me until at last she loved me and would
-not leave me; and every time I woke, it was to see, instead of an
-angel-visage with lustrous eyes, the white, motionless, wasted face
-upon the couch. But Adam himself, when first he saw her asleep,
-could not have looked more anxiously for Eve's awaking than I
-watched for this woman's. Adam knew nothing of himself, perhaps
-nothing of his need of another self; I, an alien from my fellows,
-had learned to love what I had lost! Were this one wasted shred of
-womanhood to disappear, I should have nothing in me but a consuming
-hunger after life! I forgot even the Little Ones: things were not
-amiss with them! here lay what might wake and be a woman! might
-actually open eyes, and look out of them upon me!
-
-Now first I knew what solitude meant--now that I gazed on one who
-neither saw nor heard, neither moved nor spoke. I saw now that a
-man alone is but a being that may become a man--that he is but a
-need, and therefore a possibility. To be enough for himself, a being
-must be an eternal, self-existent worm! So superbly constituted,
-so simply complicate is man; he rises from and stands upon such a
-pedestal of lower physical organisms and spiritual structures, that
-no atmosphere will comfort or nourish his life, less divine than
-that offered by other souls; nowhere but in other lives can he
-breathe. Only by the reflex of other lives can he ripen his
-specialty, develop the idea of himself, the individuality that
-distinguishes him from every other. Were all men alike, each would
-still have an individuality, secured by his personal consciousness,
-but there would be small reason why there should be more than two or
-three such; while, for the development of the differences which make
-a large and lofty unity possible, and which alone can make millions
-into a church, an endless and measureless influence and reaction
-are indispensable. A man to be perfect--complete, that is, in having
-reached the spiritual condition of persistent and universal growth,
-which is the mode wherein he inherits the infinitude of his Father--
-must have the education of a world of fellow-men. Save for the hope
-of the dawn of life in the form beside me, I should have fled for
-fellowship to the beasts that grazed and did not speak. Better to
-go about with them--infinitely better--than to live alone! But
-with the faintest prospect of a woman to my friend, I, poorest of
-creatures, was yet a possible man!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-THE WHITE LEECH
-
-I woke one morning from a profound sleep, with one of my hands very
-painful. The back of it was much swollen, and in the centre of
-the swelling was a triangular wound, like the bite of a leech. As
-the day went on, the swelling subsided, and by the evening the hurt
-was all but healed. I searched the cave, turning over every stone
-of any size, but discovered nothing I could imagine capable of
-injuring me.
-
-Slowly the days passed, and still the body never moved, never opened
-its eyes. It could not be dead, for assuredly it manifested no
-sign of decay, and the air about it was quite pure. Moreover, I
-could imagine that the sharpest angles of the bones had begun to
-disappear, that the form was everywhere a little rounder, and the
-skin had less of the parchment-look: if such change was indeed
-there, life must be there! the tide which had ebbed so far toward
-the infinite, must have begun again to flow! Oh joy to me, if
-the rising ripples of life's ocean were indeed burying under lovely
-shape the bones it had all but forsaken! Twenty times a day I
-looked for evidence of progress, and twenty times a day I doubted--
-sometimes even despaired; but the moment I recalled the mental
-picture of her as I found her, hope revived.
-
-Several weeks had passed thus, when one night, after lying a long
-time awake, I rose, thinking to go out and breathe the cooler air;
-for, although from the running of the stream it was always fresh
-in the cave, the heat was not seldom a little oppressive. The moon
-outside was full, the air within shadowy clear, and naturally I
-cast a lingering look on my treasure ere I went. "Bliss eternal!"
-I cried aloud, "do I see her eyes?" Great orbs, dark as if cut from
-the sphere of a starless night, and luminous by excess of darkness,
-seemed to shine amid the glimmering whiteness of her face. I stole
-nearer, my heart beating so that I feared the noise of it startling
-her. I bent over her. Alas, her eyelids were close shut! Hope
-and Imagination had wrought mutual illusion! my heart's desire would
-never be! I turned away, threw myself on the floor of the cave,
-and wept. Then I bethought me that her eyes had been a little open,
-and that now the awful chink out of which nothingness had peered,
-was gone: it might be that she had opened them for a moment, and
-was again asleep!--it might be she was awake and holding them close!
-In either case, life, less or more, must have shut them! I was
-comforted, and fell fast asleep.
-
-That night I was again bitten, and awoke with a burning thirst.
-
-In the morning I searched yet more thoroughly, but again in vain.
-The wound was of the same character, and, as before, was nearly well
-by the evening. I concluded that some large creature of the leech
-kind came occasionally from the hot stream. "But, if blood be its
-object," I said to myself, "so long as I am there, I need hardly
-fear for my treasure!"
-
-That same morning, when, having peeled a grape as usual and taken
-away the seeds, I put it in her mouth, her lips made a slight
-movement of reception, and I KNEW she lived!
-
-My hope was now so much stronger that I began to think of some
-attire for her: she must be able to rise the moment she wished! I
-betook myself therefore to the forest, to investigate what material
-it might afford, and had hardly begun to look when fibrous skeletons,
-like those of the leaves of the prickly pear, suggested themselves
-as fit for the purpose. I gathered a stock of them, laid them to
-dry in the sun, pulled apart the reticulated layers, and of these
-had soon begun to fashion two loose garments, one to hang from her
-waist, the other from her shoulders. With the stiletto-point of an
-aloe-leaf and various filaments, I sewed together three thicknesses
-of the tissue.
-
-During the week that followed, there was no farther sign except
-that she more evidently took the grapes. But indeed all the signs
-became surer: plainly she was growing plumper, and her skin fairer.
-Still she did not open her eyes; and the horrid fear would at times
-invade me, that her growth was of some hideous fungoid nature, the
-few grapes being nowise sufficient to account for it.
-
-Again I was bitten; and now the thing, whatever it was, began to
-pay me regular visits at intervals of three days. It now generally
-bit me in the neck or the arm, invariably with but one bite, always
-while I slept, and never, even when I slept, in the daytime. Hour
-after hour would I lie awake on the watch, but never heard it coming,
-or saw sign of its approach. Neither, I believe, did I ever feel
-it bite me. At length I became so hopeless of catching it, that
-I no longer troubled myself either to look for it by day, or lie
-in wait for it at night. I knew from my growing weakness that I
-was losing blood at a dangerous rate, but I cared little for that:
-in sight of my eyes death was yielding to life; a soul was gathering
-strength to save me from loneliness; we would go away together, and
-I should speedily recover!
-
-The garments were at length finished, and, contemplating my handiwork
-with no small satisfaction, I proceeded to mat layers of the fibre
-into sandals.
-
-One night I woke suddenly, breathless and faint, and longing after
-air, and had risen to crawl from the cave, when a slight rustle in
-the leaves of the couch set me listening motionless.
-
-"I caught the vile thing," said a feeble voice, in my mother-tongue;
-"I caught it in the very act!"
-
-She was alive! she spoke! I dared not yield to my transport lest I
-should terrify her.
-
-"What creature?" I breathed, rather than said.
-
-"The creature," she answered, "that was biting you."
-
-"What was it?"
-
-"A great white leech."
-
-"How big?" I pursued, forcing myself to be calm.
-
-"Not far from six feet long, I should think," she answered.
-
-"You have saved my life, perhaps!--But how could you touch the
-horrid thing! How brave of you!" I cried.
-
-"I did!" was all her answer, and I thought she shuddered.
-
-"Where is it? What could you do with such a monster?"
-
-"I threw it in the river."
-
-"Then it will come again, I fear!"
-
-"I do not think I could have killed it, even had I known how!--I
-heard you moaning, and got up to see what disturbed you; saw the
-frightful thing at your neck, and pulled it away. But I could not
-hold it, and was hardly able to throw it from me. I only heard it
-splash in the water!"
-
-"We'll kill it next time!" I said; but with that I turned faint,
-sought the open air, but fell.
-
-When I came to myself the sun was up. The lady stood a little way
-off, looking, even in the clumsy attire I had fashioned for her, at
-once grand and graceful. I HAD seen those glorious eyes! Through
-the night they had shone! Dark as the darkness primeval, they now
-outshone the day! She stood erect as a column, regarding me. Her
-pale cheek indicated no emotion, only question. I rose.
-
-"We must be going!" I said. "The white leech----"
-
-I stopped: a strange smile had flickered over her beautiful face.
-
-"Did you find me there?" she asked, pointing to the cave.
-
-"No; I brought you there," I replied.
-
-"You brought me?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"From where?"
-
-"From the forest."
-
-"What have you done with my clothes--and my jewels?"
-
-"You had none when I found you."
-
-"Then why did you not leave me?"
-
-"Because I hoped you were not dead."
-
-"Why should you have cared?"
-
-"Because I was very lonely, and wanted you to live."
-
-"You would have kept me enchanted for my beauty!" she said, with
-proud scorn.
-
-Her words and her look roused my indignation.
-
-"There was no beauty left in you," I said.
-
-"Why, then, again, did you not let me alone?"
-
-"Because you were of my own kind."
-
-"Of YOUR kind?" she cried, in a tone of utter contempt.
-
-"I thought so, but find I was mistaken!"
-
-"Doubtless you pitied me!"
-
-"Never had woman more claim on pity, or less on any other feeling!"
-
-With an expression of pain, mortification, and anger unutterable,
-she turned from me and stood silent. Starless night lay profound
-in the gulfs of her eyes: hate of him who brought it back had slain
-their splendour. The light of life was gone from them.
-
-"Had you failed to rouse me, what would you have done?" she asked
-suddenly without moving.
-
-"I would have buried it."
-
-"It! What?--You would have buried THIS?" she exclaimed, flashing
-round upon me in a white fury, her arms thrown out, and her eyes
-darting forks of cold lightning.
-
-"Nay; that I saw not! That, weary weeks of watching and tending
-have brought back to you," I answered--for with such a woman I
-must be plain! "Had I seen the smallest sign of decay, I would at
-once have buried you."
-
-"Dog of a fool!" she cried, "I was but in a trance--Samoil! what
-a fate!--Go and fetch the she-savage from whom you borrowed this
-hideous disguise."
-
-"I made it for you. It is hideous, but I did my best."
-
-She drew herself up to her tall height.
-
-"How long have I been insensible?" she demanded. "A woman could
-not have made that dress in a day!"
-
-"Not in twenty days," I rejoined, "hardly in thirty!"
-
-"Ha! How long do you pretend I have lain unconscious?--Answer me at
-once."
-
-"I cannot tell how long you had lain when I found you, but there
-was nothing left of you save skin and bone: that is more than three
-months ago.--Your hair was beautiful, nothing else! I have done
-for it what I could."
-
-"My poor hair!" she said, and brought a great armful of it round
-from behind her; "--it will be more than a three-months' care to
-bring YOU to life again!--I suppose I must thank you, although I
-cannot say I am grateful!"
-
-"There is no need, madam: I would have done the same for any
-woman--yes, or for any man either!"
-
-"How is it my hair is not tangled?" she said, fondling it.
-
-"It always drifted in the current."
-
-"How?--What do you mean?"
-
-"I could not have brought you to life but by bathing you in the hot
-river every morning."
-
-She gave a shudder of disgust, and stood for a while with her gaze
-fixed on the hurrying water. Then she turned to me:
-
-"We must understand each other!" she said. "--You have done me
-the two worst of wrongs--compelled me to live, and put me to shame:
-neither of them can I pardon!"
-
-She raised her left hand, and flung it out as if repelling me.
-Something ice-cold struck me on the forehead. When I came to myself,
-I was on the ground, wet and shivering.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-GONE!--BUT HOW?
-
-I rose, and looked around me, dazed at heart. For a moment I could
-not see her: she was gone, and loneliness had returned like the
-cloud after the rain! She whom I brought back from the brink of
-the grave, had fled from me, and left me with desolation! I dared
-not one moment remain thus hideously alone. Had I indeed done her a
-wrong? I must devote my life to sharing the burden I had compelled
-her to resume!
-
-I descried her walking swiftly over the grass, away from the river,
-took one plunge for a farewell restorative, and set out to follow
-her. The last visit of the white leech, and the blow of the woman,
-had enfeebled me, but already my strength was reviving, and I kept
-her in sight without difficulty.
-
-"Is this, then, the end?" I said as I went, and my heart brooded
-a sad song. Her angry, hating eyes haunted me. I could understand
-her resentment at my having forced life upon her, but how had I
-further injured her? Why should she loathe me? Could modesty
-itself be indignant with true service? How should the proudest
-woman, conscious of my every action, cherish against me the least
-sense of disgracing wrong? How reverently had I not touched her! As
-a father his motherless child, I had borne and tended her! Had all my
-labour, all my despairing hope gone to redeem only ingratitude? "No,"
-I answered myself; "beauty must have a heart! However profoundly
-hidden, it must be there! The deeper buried, the stronger and truer
-will it wake at last in its beautiful grave! To rouse that heart
-were a better gift to her than the happiest life! It would be to
-give her a nobler, a higher life!"
-
-She was ascending a gentle slope before me, walking straight and
-steady as one that knew whither, when I became aware that she was
-increasing the distance between us. I summoned my strength, and
-it came in full tide. My veins filled with fresh life! My body
-seemed to become ethereal, and, following like an easy wind, I
-rapidly overtook her.
-
-Not once had she looked behind. Swiftly she moved, like a Greek
-goddess to rescue, but without haste. I was within three yards of
-her, when she turned sharply, yet with grace unbroken, and stood.
-Fatigue or heat she showed none. Her paleness was not a pallor, but
-a pure whiteness; her breathing was slow and deep. Her eyes seemed
-to fill the heavens, and give light to the world. It was nearly
-noon, but the sense was upon me as of a great night in which an
-invisible dew makes the stars look large.
-
-"Why do you follow me?" she asked, quietly but rather sternly, as
-if she had never before seen me.
-
-"I have lived so long," I answered, "on the mere hope of your eyes,
-that I must want to see them again!"
-
-"You WILL not be spared!" she said coldly. "I command you to stop
-where you stand."
-
-"Not until I see you in a place of safety will I leave you," I
-replied.
-
-"Then take the consequences," she said, and resumed her swift-gliding
-walk.
-
-But as she turned she cast on me a glance, and I stood as if run
-through with a spear. Her scorn had failed: she would kill me with
-her beauty!
-
-Despair restored my volition; the spell broke; I ran, and overtook
-her.
-
-"Have pity upon me!" I cried.
-
-She gave no heed. I followed her like a child whose mother pretends
-to abandon him. "I will be your slave!" I said, and laid my hand
-on her arm.
-
-She turned as if a serpent had bit her. I cowered before the blaze
-of her eyes, but could not avert my own.
-
-"Pity me," I cried again.
-
-She resumed her walking.
-
-The whole day I followed her. The sun climbed the sky, seemed to
-pause on its summit, went down the other side. Not a moment did
-she pause, not a moment did I cease to follow. She never turned
-her head, never relaxed her pace.
-
-The sun went below, and the night came up. I kept close to her:
-if I lost sight of her for a moment, it would be for ever!
-
-All day long we had been walking over thick soft grass: abruptly
-she stopped, and threw herself upon it. There was yet light enough
-to show that she was utterly weary. I stood behind her, and gazed
-down on her for a moment.
-
-Did I love her? I knew she was not good! Did I hate her? I could
-not leave her! I knelt beside her.
-
-"Begone! Do not dare touch me," she cried.
-
-Her arms lay on the grass by her sides as if paralyzed.
-
-Suddenly they closed about my neck, rigid as those of the
-torture-maiden. She drew down my face to hers, and her lips clung
-to my cheek. A sting of pain shot somewhere through me, and pulsed.
-I could not stir a hair's breadth. Gradually the pain ceased. A
-slumberous weariness, a dreamy pleasure stole over me, and then I
-knew nothing.
-
-All at once I came to myself. The moon was a little way above the
-horizon, but spread no radiance; she was but a bright thing set in
-blackness. My cheek smarted; I put my hand to it, and found a wet
-spot. My neck ached: there again was a wet spot! I sighed heavily,
-and felt very tired. I turned my eyes listlessly around me--and
-saw what had become of the light of the moon: it was gathered about
-the lady! she stood in a shimmering nimbus! I rose and staggered
-toward her.
-
-"Down!" she cried imperiously, as to a rebellious dog. "Follow me
-a step if you dare!"
-
-"I will!" I murmured, with an agonised effort.
-
-"Set foot within the gates of my city, and my people will stone you:
-they do not love beggars!"
-
-I was deaf to her words. Weak as water, and half awake, I did not
-know that I moved, but the distance grew less between us. She took
-one step back, raised her left arm, and with the clenched hand
-seemed to strike me on the forehead. I received as it were a blow
-from an iron hammer, and fell.
-
-I sprang to my feet, cold and wet, but clear-headed and strong. Had
-the blow revived me? it had left neither wound nor pain!--But how
-came I wet?--I could not have lain long, for the moon was no higher!
-
-The lady stood some yards away, her back toward me. She was doing
-something, I could not distinguish what. Then by her sudden gleam
-I knew she had thrown off her garments, and stood white in the dazed
-moon. One moment she stood--and fell forward.
-
-A streak of white shot away in a swift-drawn line. The same instant
-the moon recovered herself, shining out with a full flash, and I
-saw that the streak was a long-bodied thing, rushing in great,
-low-curved bounds over the grass. Dark spots seemed to run like a
-stream adown its back, as if it had been fleeting along under the
-edge of a wood, and catching the shadows of the leaves.
-
-"God of mercy!" I cried, "is the terrible creature speeding to the
-night-infolded city?" and I seemed to hear from afar the sudden
-burst and spread of outcrying terror, as the pale savage bounded
-from house to house, rending and slaying.
-
-While I gazed after it fear-stricken, past me from behind, like a
-swift, all but noiseless arrow, shot a second large creature, pure
-white. Its path was straight for the spot where the lady had fallen,
-and, as I thought, lay. My tongue clave to the roof of my mouth.
-I sprang forward pursuing the beast. But in a moment the spot I
-made for was far behind it.
-
-"It was well," I thought, "that I could not cry out: if she had
-risen, the monster would have been upon her!"
-
-But when I reached the place, no lady was there; only the garments
-she had dropped lay dusk in the moonlight.
-
-I stood staring after the second beast. It tore over the ground
-with yet greater swiftness than the former--in long, level, skimming
-leaps, the very embodiment of wasteless speed. It followed the line
-the other had taken, and I watched it grow smaller and smaller, until
-it disappeared in the uncertain distance.
-
-But where was the lady? Had the first beast surprised her, creeping
-upon her noiselessly? I had heard no shriek! and there had not been
-time to devour her! Could it have caught her up as it ran, and
-borne her away to its den? So laden it could not have run so fast!
-and I should have seen that it carried something!
-
-Horrible doubts began to wake in me. After a thorough but fruitless
-search, I set out in the track of the two animals.
-
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI
-
-THE FUGITIVE MOTHER
-
-As I hastened along, a cloud came over the moon, and from the
-gray dark suddenly emerged a white figure, clasping a child to her
-bosom, and stooping as she ran. She was on a line parallel with
-my own, but did not perceive me as she hurried along, terror and
-anxiety in every movement of her driven speed.
-
-"She is chased!" I said to myself. "Some prowler of this terrible
-night is after her!"
-
-To follow would have added to her fright: I stepped into her track
-to stop her pursuer.
-
-As I stood for a moment looking after her through the dusk, behind
-me came a swift, soft-footed rush, and ere I could turn, something
-sprang over my head, struck me sharply on the forehead, and knocked
-me down. I was up in an instant, but all I saw of my assailant was a
-vanishing whiteness. I ran after the beast, with the blood trickling
-from my forehead; but had run only a few steps, when a shriek of
-despair tore the quivering night. I ran the faster, though I could
-not but fear it must already be too late.
-
-In a minute or two I spied a low white shape approaching me through
-the vapour-dusted moonlight. It must be another beast, I thought at
-first, for it came slowly, almost crawling, with strange, floundering
-leaps, as of a creature in agony! I drew aside from its path, and
-waited. As it neared me, I saw it was going on three legs, carrying
-its left fore-paw high from the ground. It had many dark, oval spots
-on a shining white skin, and was attended by a low rushing sound,
-as of water falling upon grass. As it went by me, I saw something
-streaming from the lifted paw.
-
-"It is blood!" I said to myself, "some readier champion than I has
-wounded the beast!" But, strange to tell, such a pity seized me at
-sight of the suffering creature, that, though an axe had been in my
-hand I could not have struck at it. In a broken succession of
-hobbling leaps it went out of sight, its blood, as it seemed, still
-issuing in a small torrent, which kept flowing back softly through
-the grass beside me. "If it go on bleeding like that," I thought,
-"it will soon be hurtless!"
-
-I went on, for I might yet be useful to the woman, and hoped also to
-see her deliverer.
-
-I descried her a little way off, seated on the grass, with her child
-in her lap.
-
-"Can I do anything for you?" I asked.
-
-At the sound of my voice she started violently, and would have risen.
-I threw myself on the ground.
-
-"You need not be frightened," I said. "I was following the beast
-when happily you found a nearer protector! It passed me now with its
-foot bleeding so much that by this time it must be all but dead!"
-
-"There is little hope of that!" she answered, trembling. "Do you
-not know whose beast she is?"
-
-Now I had certain strange suspicions, but I answered that I knew
-nothing of the brute, and asked what had become of her champion.
-
-"What champion?" she rejoined. "I have seen no one."
-
-"Then how came the monster to grief?"
-
-"I pounded her foot with a stone--as hard as I could strike. Did
-you not hear her cry?"
-
-"Well, you are a brave woman!" I answered. "I thought it was you
-gave the cry!"
-
-"It was the leopardess."
-
-"I never heard such a sound from the throat of an animal! it was
-like the scream of a woman in torture!"
-
-"My voice was gone; I could not have shrieked to save my baby! When
-I saw the horrid mouth at my darling's little white neck, I caught
-up a stone and mashed her lame foot."
-
-"Tell me about the creature," I said; "I am a stranger in these
-parts."
-
-"You will soon know about her if you are going to Bulika!" she
-answered. "Now, I must never go back there!"
-
-"Yes, I am going to Bulika," I said, "--to see the princess."
-
-"Have a care; you had better not go!--But perhaps you are--! The
-princess is a very good, kind woman!"
-
-I heard a little movement. Clouds had by this time gathered so thick
-over the moon that I could scarcely see my companion: I feared she
-was rising to run from me.
-
-"You are in no danger of any sort from me," I said. "What oath
-would you like me to take?"
-
-"I know by your speech that you are not of the people of Bulika,"
-she replied; "I will trust you!--I am not of them, either, else I
-should not be able: they never trust any one--If only I could see
-you! But I like your voice!--There, my darling is asleep! The foul
-beast has not hurt her!--Yes: it was my baby she was after!" she
-went on, caressing the child. "And then she would have torn her
-mother to pieces for carrying her off!--Some say the princess has
-two white leopardesses," she continued: "I know only one--with spots.
-Everybody knows HER! If the princess hear of a baby, she sends her
-immediately to suck its blood, and then it either dies or grows up
-an idiot. I would have gone away with my baby, but the princess was
-from home, and I thought I might wait until I was a little stronger.
-But she must have taken the beast with her, and been on her way home
-when I left, and come across my track. I heard the SNIFF-SNUFF of
-the leopardess behind me, and ran;--oh, how I ran!--But my darling
-will not die! There is no mark on her!"
-
-"Where are you taking her?"
-
-"Where no one ever tells!"
-
-"Why is the princess so cruel?"
-
-"There is an old prophecy that a child will be the death of her.
-That is why she will listen to no offer of marriage, they say."
-
-"But what will become of her country if she kill all the babies?"
-
-"She does not care about her country. She sends witches around to
-teach the women spells that keep babies away, and give them horrible
-things to eat. Some say she is in league with the Shadows to put
-an end to the race. At night we hear the questing beast, and lie
-awake and shiver. She can tell at once the house where a baby is
-coming, and lies down at the door, watching to get in. There are
-words that have power to shoo her away, only they do not always
-work--But here I sit talking, and the beast may by this time have
-got home, and her mistress be sending the other after us!"
-
-As thus she ended, she rose in haste.
-
-"I do not think she will ever get home.--Let me carry the baby for
-you!" I said, as I rose also.
-
-She returned me no answer, and when I would have taken it, only
-clasped it the closer.
-
-"I cannot think," I said, walking by her side, "how the brute could
-be bleeding so much!"
-
-"Take my advice, and don't go near the palace," she answered. "There
-are sounds in it at night as if the dead were trying to shriek, but
-could not open their mouths!"
-
-She bade me an abrupt farewell. Plainly she did not want more of
-my company; so I stood still, and heard her footsteps die away on
-the grass.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII
-
-BULIKA
-
-I had lost all notion of my position, and was walking about in pure,
-helpless impatience, when suddenly I found myself in the path of
-the leopardess, wading in the blood from her paw. It ran against
-my ankles with the force of a small brook, and I got out of it the
-more quickly because of an unshaped suspicion in my mind as to whose
-blood it might be. But I kept close to the sound of it, walking up
-the side of the stream, for it would guide me in the direction of
-Bulika.
-
-I soon began to reflect, however, that no leopardess, no elephant,
-no hugest animal that in our world preceded man, could keep such a
-torrent flowing, except every artery in its body were open, and its
-huge system went on filling its vessels from fields and lakes and
-forests as fast as they emptied themselves: it could not be blood!
-I dipped a finger in it, and at once satisfied myself that it was
-not. In truth, however it might have come there, it was a softly
-murmuring rivulet of water that ran, without channel, over the grass!
-But sweet as was its song, I dared not drink of it; I kept walking
-on, hoping after the light, and listening to the familiar sound so
-long unheard--for that of the hot stream was very different. The
-mere wetting of my feet in it, however, had so refreshed me, that I
-went on without fatigue till the darkness began to grow thinner,
-and I knew the sun was drawing nigh. A few minutes more, and I
-could discern, against the pale aurora, the wall-towers of a
-city--seemingly old as time itself. Then I looked down to get a
-sight of the brook.
-
-It was gone. I had indeed for a long time noted its sound growing
-fainter, but at last had ceased to attend to it. I looked back:
-the grass in its course lay bent as it had flowed, and here and
-there glimmered a small pool. Toward the city, there was no trace
-of it. Near where I stood, the flow of its fountain must at least
-have paused!
-
-Around the city were gardens, growing many sorts of vegetables,
-hardly one of which I recognised. I saw no water, no flowers, no
-sign of animals. The gardens came very near the walls, but were
-separated from them by huge heaps of gravel and refuse thrown from
-the battlements.
-
-I went up to the nearest gate, and found it but half-closed, nowise
-secured, and without guard or sentinel. To judge by its hinges, it
-could not be farther opened or shut closer. Passing through, I
-looked down a long ancient street. It was utterly silent, and with
-scarce an indication in it of life present. Had I come upon a dead
-city? I turned and went out again, toiled a long way over the
-dust-heaps, and crossed several roads, each leading up to a gate: I
-would not re-enter until some of the inhabitants should be stirring.
-
-What was I there for? what did I expect or hope to find? what did I
-mean to do?
-
-I must see, if but once more, the woman I had brought to life! I did
-not desire her society: she had waked in me frightful suspicions; and
-friendship, not to say love, was wildly impossible between us! But
-her presence had had a strange influence upon me, and in her presence
-I must resist, and at the same time analyse that influence! The
-seemingly inscrutable in her I would fain penetrate: to understand
-something of her mode of being would be to look into marvels such as
-imagination could never have suggested! In this I was too daring:
-a man must not, for knowledge, of his own will encounter temptation!
-On the other hand, I had reinstated an evil force about to perish,
-and was, to the extent of my opposing faculty, accountable for what
-mischief might ensue! I had learned that she was the enemy of
-children: the Little Ones might be in her danger! It was in the
-hope of finding out something of their history that I had left them;
-on that I had received a little light: I must have more; I must
-learn how to protect them!
-
-Hearing at length a little stir in the place, I walked through the
-next gate, and thence along a narrow street of tall houses to a
-little square, where I sat down on the base of a pillar with a
-hideous bat-like creature atop. Ere long, several of the inhabitants
-came sauntering past. I spoke to one: he gave me a rude stare and
-ruder word, and went on.
-
-I got up and went through one narrow street after another, gradually
-filling with idlers, and was not surprised to see no children. By
-and by, near one of the gates, I encountered a group of young men
-who reminded me not a little of the bad giants. They came about me
-staring, and presently began to push and hustle me, then to throw
-things at me. I bore it as well as I could, wishing not to provoke
-enmity where wanted to remain for a while. Oftener than once or
-twice I appealed to passers-by whom I fancied more benevolent-looking,
-but none would halt a moment to listen to me. I looked poor, and that
-was enough: to the citizens of Bulika, as to house-dogs, poverty was
-an offence! Deformity and sickness were taxed; and no legislation
-of their princess was more heartily approved of than what tended to
-make poverty subserve wealth.
-
-I took to my heels at last, and no one followed me beyond the gate.
-A lumbering fellow, however, who sat by it eating a hunch of bread,
-picked up a stone to throw after me, and happily, in his stupid
-eagerness, threw, not the stone but the bread. I took it, and he
-did not dare follow to reclaim it: beyond the walls they were cowards
-every one. I went off a few hundred yards, threw myself down, ate
-the bread, fell asleep, and slept soundly in the grass, where the
-hot sunlight renewed my strength.
-
-It was night when I woke. The moon looked down on me in friendly
-fashion, seeming to claim with me old acquaintance. She was very
-bright, and the same moon, I thought, that saw me through the terrors
-of my first night in that strange world. A cold wind blew from the
-gate, bringing with it an evil odour; but it did not chill me, for
-the sun had plenished me with warmth. I crept again into the city.
-There I found the few that were still in the open air crouched in
-corners to escape the shivering blast.
-
-I was walking slowly through the long narrow street, when, just
-before me, a huge white thing bounded across it, with a single flash
-in the moonlight, and disappeared. I turned down the next opening,
-eager to get sight of it again.
-
-It was a narrow lane, almost too narrow to pass through, but it led
-me into a wider street. The moment I entered the latter, I saw
-on the opposite side, in the shadow, the creature I had followed,
-itself following like a dog what I took for a man. Over his shoulder,
-every other moment, he glanced at the animal behind him, but neither
-spoke to it, nor attempted to drive it away. At a place where he
-had to cross a patch of moonlight, I saw that he cast no shadow,
-and was himself but a flat superficial shadow, of two dimensions.
-He was, nevertheless, an opaque shadow, for he not merely darkened
-any object on the other side of him, but rendered it, in fact,
-invisible. In the shadow he was blacker than the shadow; in the
-moonlight he looked like one who had drawn his shadow up about him,
-for not a suspicion of it moved beside or under him; while the
-gleaming animal, which followed so close at his heels as to seem
-the white shadow of his blackness, and which I now saw to be a
-leopardess, drew her own gliding shadow black over the ground by
-her side. When they passed together from the shadow into the
-moonlight, the Shadow deepened in blackness, the animal flashed
-into radiance. I was at the moment walking abreast of them on
-the opposite side, my bare feet sounding on the flat stones: the
-leopardess never turned head or twitched ear; the shadow seemed
-once to look at me, for I lost his profile, and saw for a second
-only a sharp upright line. That instant the wind found me and blew
-through me: I shuddered from head to foot, and my heart went from
-wall to wall of my bosom, like a pebble in a child's rattle.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII
-
-A WOMAN OF BULIKA
-
-I turned aside into an alley, and sought shelter in a small archway.
-In the mouth of it I stopped, and looked out at the moonlight which
-filled the alley. The same instant a woman came gliding in after
-me, turned, trembling, and looked out also. A few seconds passed;
-then a huge leopard, its white skin dappled with many blots, darted
-across the archway. The woman pressed close to me, and my heart
-filled with pity. I put my arm round her.
-
-"If the brute come here, I will lay hold of it," I said, "and you
-must run."
-
-"Thank you!" she murmured.
-
-"Have you ever seen it before?" I asked.
-
-"Several times," she answered, still trembling. "She is a pet of
-the princess's. You are a stranger, or you would know her!"
-
-"I am a stranger," I answered. "But is she, then, allowed to run
-loose?"
-
-"She is kept in a cage, her mouth muzzled, and her feet in gloves
-of crocodile leather. Chained she is too; but she gets out often,
-and sucks the blood of any child she can lay hold of. Happily there
-are not many mothers in Bulika!"
-
-Here she burst into tears.
-
-"I wish I were at home!" she sobbed. "The princess returned only
-last night, and there is the leopardess out already! How am I to
-get into the house? It is me she is after, I know! She will be
-lying at my own door, watching for me!--But I am a fool to talk to
-a stranger!"
-
-"All strangers are not bad!" I said. "The beast shall not touch
-you till she has done with me, and by that time you will be in. You
-are happy to have a house to go to! What a terrible wind it is!"
-
-"Take me home safe, and I will give you shelter from it," she
-rejoined. "But we must wait a little!"
-
-I asked her many questions. She told me the people never did
-anything except dig for precious stones in their cellars. They
-were rich, and had everything made for them in other towns.
-
-"Why?" I asked.
-
-"Because it is a disgrace to work," she answered. "Everybody in
-Bulika knows that!"
-
-I asked how they were rich if none of them earned money. She replied
-that their ancestors had saved for them, and they never spent. When
-they wanted money they sold a few of their gems.
-
-"But there must be some poor!" I said.
-
-"I suppose there must be, but we never think of such people. When
-one goes poor, we forget him. That is how we keep rich. We mean
-to be rich always."
-
-"But when you have dug up all your precious stones and sold them,
-you will have to spend your money, and one day you will have none
-left!"
-
-"We have so many, and there are so many still in the ground, that
-that day will never come," she replied.
-
-"Suppose a strange people were to fall upon you, and take everything
-you have!"
-
-"No strange people will dare; they are all horribly afraid of our
-princess. She it is who keeps us safe and free and rich!"
-
-Every now and then as she spoke, she would stop and look behind
-her.
-
-I asked why her people had such a hatred of strangers. She answered
-that the presence of a stranger defiled the city.
-
-"How is that?" I said.
-
-"Because we are more ancient and noble than any other nation.--
-Therefore," she added, "we always turn strangers out before night."
-
-"How, then, can you take me into your house?" I asked.
-
-"I will make an exception of you," she replied.
-
-"Is there no place in the city for the taking in of strangers?"
-
-"Such a place would be pulled down, and its owner burned. How is
-purity to be preserved except by keeping low people at a proper
-distance? Dignity is such a delicate thing!"
-
-She told me that their princess had reigned for thousands of years;
-that she had power over the air and the water as well as the earth--
-and, she believed, over the fire too; that she could do what she
-pleased, and was answerable to nobody.
-
-When at length she was willing to risk the attempt, we took our way
-through lanes and narrow passages, and reached her door without
-having met a single live creature. It was in a wider street, between
-two tall houses, at the top of a narrow, steep stair, up which she
-climbed slowly, and I followed. Ere we reached the top, however,
-she seemed to take fright, and darted up the rest of the steps: I
-arrived just in time to have the door closed in my face, and stood
-confounded on the landing, where was about length enough, between
-the opposite doors of the two houses, for a man to lie down.
-
-Weary, and not scrupling to defile Bulika with my presence, I took
-advantage of the shelter, poor as it was.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV
-
-THE WHITE LEOPARDESS
-
-At the foot of the stair lay the moonlit street, and I could hear
-the unwholesome, inhospitable wind blowing about below. But not a
-breath of it entered my retreat, and I was composing myself to rest,
-when suddenly my eyes opened, and there was the head of the shining
-creature I had seen following the Shadow, just rising above the
-uppermost step! The moment she caught sight of my eyes, she stopped
-and began to retire, tail foremost. I sprang up; whereupon, having
-no room to turn, she threw herself backward, head over tail, scrambled
-to her feet, and in a moment was down the stair and gone. I followed
-her to the bottom, and looked all up and down the street. Not seeing
-her, I went back to my hard couch.
-
-There were, then, two evil creatures prowling about the city, one
-with, and one without spots! I was not inclined to risk much for
-man or woman in Bulika, but the life of a child might well be worth
-such a poor one as mine, and I resolved to keep watch at that door
-the rest of the night.
-
-Presently I heard the latch move, slow, slow: I looked up, and
-seeing the door half-open, rose and slid softly in. Behind it
-stood, not the woman I had befriended, but the muffled woman of
-the desert. Without a word she led me a few steps to an empty
-stone-paved chamber, and pointed to a rug on the floor. I wrapped
-myself in it, and once more lay down. She shut the door of the room,
-and I heard the outer door open and close again. There was no light
-save what came from the moonlit air.
-
-As I lay sleepless, I began to hear a stifled moaning. It went on
-for a good while, and then came the cry of a child, followed by a
-terrible shriek. I sprang up and darted into the passage: from
-another door in it came the white leopardess with a new-born baby
-in her mouth, carrying it like a cub of her own. I threw myself
-upon her, and compelled her to drop the infant, which fell on the
-stone slabs with a piteous wail.
-
-At the cry appeared the muffled woman. She stepped over us, the
-beast and myself, where we lay struggling in the narrow passage,
-took up the child, and carried it away. Returning, she lifted me
-off the animal, opened the door, and pushed me gently out. At my
-heels followed the leopardess.
-
-"She too has failed me!" thought I; "--given me up to the beast to
-be settled with at her leisure! But we shall have a tussle for it!"
-
-I ran down the stair, fearing she would spring on my back, but she
-followed me quietly. At the foot I turned to lay hold of her, but
-she sprang over my head; and when again I turned to face her, she
-was crouching at my feet! I stooped and stroked her lovely white
-skin; she responded by licking my bare feet with her hard dry tongue.
-Then I patted and fondled her, a well of tenderness overflowing in
-my heart: she might be treacherous too, but if I turned from every
-show of love lest it should be feigned, how was I ever to find the
-real love which must be somewhere in every world?
-
-I stood up; she rose, and stood beside me.
-
-A bulky object fell with a heavy squelch in the middle of the street,
-a few yards from us. I ran to it, and found a pulpy mass, with just
-form enough left to show it the body of a woman. It must have been
-thrown from some neighbouring window! I looked around me: the
-Shadow was walking along the other side of the way, with the white
-leopardess again at his heel!
-
-I followed and gained upon them, urging in my heart for the leopardess
-that probably she was not a free agent. When I got near them,
-however, she turned and flew at me with such a hideous snarl, that
-instinctively I drew back: instantly she resumed her place behind
-the Shadow. Again I drew near; again she flew at me, her eyes
-flaming like live emeralds. Once more I made the experiment: she
-snapped at me like a dog, and bit me. My heart gave way, and I
-uttered a cry; whereupon the creature looked round with a glance that
-plainly meant--"Why WOULD you make me do it?"
-
-I turned away angry with myself: I had been losing my time ever
-since I entered the place! night as it was I would go straight to
-the palace! From the square I had seen it--high above the heart
-of the city, compassed with many defences, more a fortress than a
-palace!
-
-But I found its fortifications, like those of the city, much
-neglected, and partly ruinous. For centuries, clearly, they had
-been of no account! It had great and strong gates, with something
-like a drawbridge to them over a rocky chasm; but they stood open,
-and it was hard to believe that water had ever occupied the hollow
-before them. All was so still that sleep seemed to interpenetrate
-the structure, causing the very moonlight to look discordantly awake.
-I must either enter like a thief, or break a silence that rendered
-frightful the mere thought of a sound!
-
-Like an outcast dog I was walking about the walls, when I came to
-a little recess with a stone bench: I took refuge in it from the
-wind, lay down, and in spite of the cold fell fast asleep.
-
-I was wakened by something leaping upon me, and licking my face with
-the rough tongue of a feline animal. "It is the white leopardess!"
-I thought. "She is come to suck my blood!--and why should she not
-have it?--it would cost me more to defend than to yield it!" So I
-lay still, expecting a shoot of pain. But the pang did not arrive;
-a pleasant warmth instead began to diffuse itself through me.
-Stretched at my back, she lay as close to me as she could lie, the
-heat of her body slowly penetrating mine, and her breath, which had
-nothing of the wild beast in it, swathing my head and face in a
-genial atmosphere. A full conviction that her intention toward me
-was good, gained possession of me. I turned like a sleepy boy,
-threw my arm over her, and sank into profound unconsciousness.
-
-When I began to come to myself, I fancied I lay warm and soft in my
-own bed. "Is it possible I am at home?" I thought. The well-known
-scents of the garden seemed to come crowding in. I rubbed my eyes,
-and looked out: I lay on a bare stone, in the heart of a hateful
-city!
-
-I sprang from the bench. Had I indeed had a leopardess for my
-bedfellow, or had I but dreamed it? She had but just left me, for
-the warmth of her body was with me yet!
-
-I left the recess with a new hope, as strong as it was shapeless.
-One thing only was clear to me: I must find the princess! Surely
-I had some power with her, if not over her! Had I not saved her
-life, and had she not prolonged it at the expense of my vitality?
-The reflection gave me courage to encounter her, be she what she
-might.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV
-
-THE PRINCESS
-
-Making a circuit of the castle, I came again to the open gates,
-crossed the ravine-like moat, and found myself in a paved court,
-planted at regular intervals with towering trees like poplars. In
-the centre was one taller than the rest, whose branches, near the
-top, spread a little and gave it some resemblance to a palm. Between
-their great stems I got glimpses of the palace, which was of a style
-strange to me, but suggested Indian origin. It was long and low,
-with lofty towers at the corners, and one huge dome in the middle,
-rising from the roof to half the height of the towers. The main
-entrance was in the centre of the front--a low arch that seemed
-half an ellipse. No one was visible, the doors stood wide open,
-and I went unchallenged into a large hall, in the form of a longish
-ellipse. Toward one side stood a cage, in which couched, its head
-on its paws, a huge leopardess, chained by a steel collar, with
-its mouth muzzled and its paws muffled. It was white with dark
-oval spots, and lay staring out of wide-open eyes, with canoe-shaped
-pupils, and great green irids. It appeared to watch me, but not
-an eyeball, not a foot, not a whisker moved, and its tail stretched
-out behind it rigid as an iron bar. I could not tell whether it
-was a live thing or not.
-
->From this vestibule two low passages led; I took one of them, and
-found it branch into many, all narrow and irregular. At a spot
-where was scarce room for two to pass, a page ran against me. He
-started back in terror, but having scanned me, gathered impudence,
-puffed himself out, and asked my business.
-
-"To see the princess," I answered.
-
-"A likely thing!" he returned. "I have not seen her highness this
-morning myself!"
-
-I caught him by the back of the neck, shook him, and said, "Take me
-to her at once, or I will drag you with me till I find her. She
-shall know how her servants receive her visitors."
-
-He gave a look at me, and began to pull like a blind man's dog,
-leading me thus to a large kitchen, where were many servants, feebly
-busy, and hardly awake. I expected them to fall upon me and drive
-me out, but they stared instead, with wide eyes--not at me, but
-at something behind me, and grew more ghastly as they stared. I
-turned my head, and saw the white leopardess, regarding them in a
-way that might have feared stouter hearts.
-
-Presently, however, one of them, seeing, I suppose, that attack was
-not imminent, began to recover himself; I turned to him, and let the
-boy go.
-
-"Take me to the princess," I said.
-
-"She has not yet left her room, your lordship," he replied.
-
-"Let her know that I am here, waiting audience of her."
-
-"Will your lordship please to give me your name?"
-
-"Tell her that one who knows the white leech desires to see her."
-
-"She will kill me if I take such a message: I must not. I dare not."
-
-"You refuse?"
-
-He cast a glance at my attendant, and went.
-
-The others continued staring--too much afraid of her to take their
-eyes off her. I turned to the graceful creature, where she stood,
-her muzzle dropped to my heel, white as milk, a warm splendour in
-the gloomy place, and stooped and patted her. She looked up at me;
-the mere movement of her head was enough to scatter them in all
-directions. She rose on her hind legs, and put her paws on my
-shoulders; I threw my arms round her. She pricked her ears, broke
-from me, and was out of sight in a moment.
-
-The man I had sent to the princess entered.
-
-"Please to come this way, my lord," he said.
-
-My heart gave a throb, as if bracing itself to the encounter. I
-followed him through many passages, and was at last shown into a
-room so large and so dark that its walls were invisible. A single
-spot on the floor reflected a little light, but around that spot
-all was black. I looked up, and saw at a great height an oval
-aperture in the roof, on the periphery of which appeared the joints
-between blocks of black marble. The light on the floor showed
-close fitting slabs of the same material. I found afterward that
-the elliptical wall as well was of black marble, absorbing the
-little light that reached it. The roof was the long half of an
-ellipsoid, and the opening in it was over one of the foci of the
-ellipse of the floor. I fancied I caught sight of reddish lines,
-but when I would have examined them, they were gone.
-
-All at once, a radiant form stood in the centre of the darkness,
-flashing a splendour on every side. Over a robe of soft white, her
-hair streamed in a cataract, black as the marble on which it fell.
-Her eyes were a luminous blackness; her arms and feet like warm
-ivory. She greeted me with the innocent smile of a girl--and in
-face, figure, and motion seemed but now to have stepped over the
-threshold of womanhood. "Alas," thought I, "ill did I reckon my
-danger! Can this be the woman I rescued--she who struck me, scorned
-me, left me?" I stood gazing at her out of the darkness; she stood
-gazing into it, as if searching for me.
-
-She disappeared. "She will not acknowledge me!" I thought. But
-the next instant her eyes flashed out of the dark straight into
-mine. She had descried me and come to me!
-
-"You have found me at last!" she said, laying her hand on my
-shoulder. "I knew you would!"
-
-My frame quivered with conflicting consciousnesses, to analyse
-which I had no power. I was simultaneously attracted and repelled:
-each sensation seemed either.
-
-"You shiver!" she said. "This place is cold for you! Come."
-
-I stood silent: she had struck me dumb with beauty; she held me
-dumb with sweetness.
-
-Taking me by the hand, she drew me to the spot of light, and again
-flashed upon me. An instant she stood there.
-
-"You have grown brown since last I saw you," she said.
-
-"This is almost the first roof I have been under since you left me,"
-I replied.
-
-"Whose was the other?" she rejoined.
-
-"I do not know the woman's name."
-
-"I would gladly learn it! The instinct of hospitality is not strong
-in my people!"
-She took me again by the hand, and led me through the darkness many
-steps to a curtain of black. Beyond it was a white stair, up which
-she conducted me to a beautiful chamber.
-
-"How you must miss the hot flowing river!" she said. "But there
-is a bath in the corner with no white leeches in it! At the foot
-of your couch you will find a garment. When you come down, I shall
-be in the room to your left at the foot of the stair."
-
-I stood as she left me, accusing my presumption: how was I to treat
-this lovely woman as a thing of evil, who behaved to me like a
-sister?--Whence the marvellous change in her? She left me with
-a blow; she received me almost with an embrace! She had reviled
-me; she said she knew I would follow and find her! Did she know my
-doubts concerning her--how much I should want explained? COULD she
-explain all? Could I believe her if she did? As to her hospitality,
-I had surely earned and might accept that--at least until I came to
-a definite judgment concerning her!
-
-Could such beauty as I saw, and such wickedness as I suspected, exist
-in the same person? If they could, HOW was it possible? Unable
-to answer the former question, I must let the latter wait!
-
-Clear as crystal, the water in the great white bath sent a sparkling
-flash from the corner where it lay sunk in the marble floor, and
-seemed to invite me to its embrace. Except the hot stream, two
-draughts in the cottage of the veiled woman, and the pools in the
-track of the wounded leopardess, I had not seen water since leaving
-home: it looked a thing celestial. I plunged in.
-
-Immediately my brain was filled with an odour strange and delicate,
-which yet I did not altogether like. It made me doubt the princess
-afresh: had she medicated it? had she enchanted it? was she in any
-way working on me unlawfully? And how was there water in the palace,
-and not a drop in the city? I remembered the crushed paw of the
-leopardess, and sprang from the bath.
-
-What had I been bathing in? Again I saw the fleeing mother, again
-I heard the howl, again I saw the limping beast. But what matter
-whence it flowed? was not the water sweet? Was it not very water
-the pitcher-plant secreted from its heart, and stored for the weary
-traveller? Water came from heaven: what mattered the well where it
-gathered, or the spring whence it burst? But I did not re-enter the
-bath.
-
-I put on the robe of white wool, embroidered on the neck and hem,
-that lay ready for me, and went down the stair to the room whither
-my hostess had directed me. It was round, all of alabaster, and
-without a single window: the light came through everywhere, a soft,
-pearly shimmer rather than shine. Vague shadowy forms went flitting
-about over the walls and low dome, like loose rain-clouds over a
-grey-blue sky.
-
-The princess stood waiting me, in a robe embroidered with argentine
-rings and discs, rectangles and lozenges, close together--a silver
-mail. It fell unbroken from her neck and hid her feet, but its
-long open sleeves left her arms bare.
-
-In the room was a table of ivory, bearing cakes and fruit, an ivory
-jug of milk, a crystal jug of wine of a pale rose-colour, and a
-white loaf.
-
-"Here we do not kill to eat," she said; "but I think you will like
-what I can give you."
-
-I told her I could desire nothing better than what I saw. She
-seated herself on a couch by the table, and made me a sign to sit
-by her.
-
-She poured me out a bowlful of milk, and, handing me the loaf, begged
-me to break from it such a piece as I liked. Then she filled from
-the wine-jug two silver goblets of grotesquely graceful workmanship.
-
-"You have never drunk wine like this!" she said.
-
-I drank, and wondered: every flower of Hybla and Hymettus must have
-sent its ghost to swell the soul of that wine!
-
-"And now that you will be able to listen," she went on, "I must do
-what I can to make myself intelligible to you. Our natures, however,
-are so different, that this may not be easy. Men and women live
-but to die; we, that is such as I--we are but a few--live to live
-on. Old age is to you a horror; to me it is a dear desire: the older
-we grow, the nearer we are to our perfection. Your perfection is a
-poor thing, comes soon, and lasts but a little while; ours is a
-ceaseless ripening. I am not yet ripe, and have lived thousands of
-your years--how many, I never cared to note. The everlasting will
-not be measured.
-
-"Many lovers have sought me; I have loved none of them: they sought
-but to enslave me; they sought me but as the men of my city seek
-gems of price.--When you found me, I found a man! I put you to the
-test; you stood it; your love was genuine!--It was, however, far
-from ideal--far from such love as I would have. You loved me truly,
-but not with true love. Pity has, but is not love. What woman of
-any world would return love for pity? Such love as yours was then,
-is hateful to me. I knew that, if you saw me as I am, you would
-love me--like the rest of them--to have and to hold: I would none
-of that either! I would be otherwise loved! I would have a love
-that outlived hopelessness, outmeasured indifference, hate, scorn!
-Therefore did I put on cruelty, despite, ingratitude. When I left
-you, I had shown myself such as you could at least no longer follow
-from pity: I was no longer in need of you! But you must satisfy
-my desire or set me free--prove yourself priceless or worthless!
-To satisfy the hunger of my love, you must follow me, looking for
-nothing, not gratitude, not even pity in return!--follow and find
-me, and be content with merest presence, with scantest forbearance!--
-I, not you, have failed; I yield the contest."
-
-She looked at me tenderly, and hid her face in her hands. But I
-had caught a flash and a sparkle behind the tenderness, and did
-not believe her. She laid herself out to secure and enslave me;
-she only fascinated me!
-
-"Beautiful princess," I said, "let me understand how you came to
-be found in such evil plight."
-
-"There are things I cannot explain," she replied, "until you have
-become capable of understanding them--which can only be when love
-is grown perfect. There are many things so hidden from you that
-you cannot even wish to know them; but any question you can put, I
-can in some measure answer.
-
-"I had set out to visit a part of my dominions occupied by a savage
-dwarf-people, strong and fierce, enemies to law and order, opposed
-to every kind of progress--an evil race. I went alone, fearing
-nothing, unaware of the least necessity for precaution. I did not
-know that upon the hot stream beside which you found me, a certain
-woman, by no means so powerful as myself, not being immortal, had
-cast what you call a spell--which is merely the setting in motion of
-a force as natural as any other, but operating primarily in a region
-beyond the ken of the mortal who makes use of the force.
-
-"I set out on my journey, reached the stream, bounded across it,----"
-
-A shadow of embarrassment darkened her cheek: I understood it, but
-showed no sign. Checked for the merest moment, she went on:
-
-"--you know what a step it is in parts!--But in the very act, an
-indescribable cold invaded me. I recognised at once the nature of
-the assault, and knew it could affect me but temporarily. By sheer
-force of will I dragged myself to the wood--nor knew anything more
-until I saw you asleep, and the horrible worm at your neck. I crept
-out, dragged the monster from you, and laid my lips to the wound.
-You began to wake; I buried myself among the leaves."
-
-She rose, her eyes flashing as never human eyes flashed, and threw
-her arms high over her head.
-
-"What you have made me is yours!" she cried. "I will repay you as
-never yet did woman! My power, my beauty, my love are your own:
-take them."
-
-She dropt kneeling beside me, laid her arms across my knees, and
-looked up in my face.
-
-Then first I noted on her left hand a large clumsy glove. In my
-mind's eye I saw hair and claws under it, but I knew it was a hand
-shut hard--perhaps badly bruised. I glanced at the other: it was
-lovely as hand could be, and I felt that, if I did less than loathe
-her, I should love her. Not to dally with usurping emotions, I
-turned my eyes aside.
-
-She started to her feet. I sat motionless, looking down.
-
-"To me she may be true!" said my vanity. For a moment I was tempted
-to love a lie.
-
-An odour, rather than the gentlest of airy pulses, was fanning me.
-I glanced up. She stood erect before me, waving her lovely arms
-in seemingly mystic fashion.
-
-A frightful roar made my heart rebound against the walls of its
-cage. The alabaster trembled as if it would shake into shivers.
-The princess shuddered visibly.
-
-"My wine was too strong for you!" she said, in a quavering voice;
-"I ought not to have let you take a full draught! Go and sleep now,
-and when you wake ask me what you please.--I will go with you: come."
-
-As she preceded me up the stair,--
-
-"I do not wonder that roar startled you!" she said. "It startled
-me, I confess: for a moment I feared she had escaped. But that is
-impossible."
-
-The roar seemed to me, however--I could not tell why--to come from
-the WHITE leopardess, and to be meant for me, not the princess.
-
-With a smile she left me at the door of my room, but as she turned
-I read anxiety on her beautiful face.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI
-
-A BATTLE ROYAL
-
-I threw myself on the bed, and began to turn over in my mind the
-tale she had told me. She had forgotten herself, and, by a single
-incautious word, removed one perplexity as to the condition in which
-I found her in the forest! The leopardess BOUNDED over; the princess
-lay prostrate on the bank: the running stream had dissolved her
-self-enchantment! Her own account of the object of her journey
-revealed the danger of the Little Ones then imminent: I had saved
-the life of their one fearful enemy!
-
-I had but reached this conclusion when I fell asleep. The lovely
-wine may not have been quite innocent.
-
-When I opened my eyes, it was night. A lamp, suspended from the
-ceiling, cast a clear, although soft light through the chamber. A
-delicious languor infolded me. I seemed floating, far from land,
-upon the bosom of a twilight sea. Existence was in itself pleasure.
-I had no pain. Surely I was dying!
-
-No pain!--ah, what a shoot of mortal pain was that! what a sickening
-sting! It went right through my heart! Again! That was sharpness
-itself!--and so sickening! I could not move my hand to lay it on
-my heart; something kept it down!
-
-The pain was dying away, but my whole body seemed paralysed. Some
-evil thing was upon me!--something hateful! I would have struggled,
-but could not reach a struggle. My will agonised, but in vain, to
-assert itself. I desisted, and lay passive. Then I became aware
-of a soft hand on my face, pressing my head into the pillow, and
-of a heavy weight lying across me.
-
-I began to breathe more freely; the weight was gone from my chest;
-I opened my eyes.
-
-The princess was standing above me on the bed, looking out into
-the room, with the air of one who dreamed. Her great eyes were
-clear and calm. Her mouth wore a look of satisfied passion; she
-wiped from it a streak of red.
-
-She caught my gaze, bent down, and struck me on the eyes with the
-handkerchief in her hand: it was like drawing the edge of a knife
-across them, and for a moment or two I was blind.
-
-I heard a dull heavy sound, as of a large soft-footed animal
-alighting from a little jump. I opened my eyes, and saw the great
-swing of a long tail as it disappeared through the half-open doorway.
-I sprang after it.
-
-The creature had vanished quite. I shot down the stair, and into
-the hall of alabaster. The moon was high, and the place like the
-inside of a faint, sun-blanched moon. The princess was not there.
-I must find her: in her presence I might protect myself; out of it
-I could not! I was a tame animal for her to feed upon; a human
-fountain for a thirst demoniac! She showed me favour the more easily
-to use me! My waking eyes did not fear her, but they would close,
-and she would come! Not seeing her, I felt her everywhere, for she
-might be anywhere--might even now be waiting me in some secret cavern
-of sleep! Only with my eyes upon her could I feel safe from her!
-
-Outside the alabaster hall it was pitch-dark, and I had to grope my
-way along with hands and feet. At last I felt a curtain, put it
-aside, and entered the black hall. There I found a great silent
-assembly. How it was visible I neither saw nor could imagine, for
-the walls, the floor, the roof, were shrouded in what seemed an
-infinite blackness, blacker than the blackest of moonless, starless
-nights; yet my eyes could separate, although vaguely, not a few of
-the individuals in the mass interpenetrated and divided, as well as
-surrounded, by the darkness. It seemed as if my eyes would never
-come quite to themselves. I pressed their balls and looked and
-looked again, but what I saw would not grow distinct. Blackness
-mingled with form, silence and undefined motion possessed the wide
-space. All was a dim, confused dance, filled with recurrent glimpses
-of shapes not unknown to me. Now appeared a woman, with glorious
-eyes looking out of a skull; now an armed figure on a skeleton horse;
-now one now another of the hideous burrowing phantasms. I could
-trace no order and little relation in the mingling and crossing
-currents and eddies. If I seemed to catch the shape and rhythm of
-a dance, it was but to see it break, and confusion prevail. With
-the shifting colours of the seemingly more solid shapes, mingled a
-multitude of shadows, independent apparently of originals, each
-moving after its own free shadow-will. I looked everywhere for the
-princess, but throughout the wildly changing kaleidoscopic scene,
-could not see her nor discover indication of her presence. Where
-was she? What might she not be doing? No one took the least notice
-of me as I wandered hither and thither seeking her. At length
-losing hope, I turned away to look elsewhere. Finding the wall,
-and keeping to it with my hand, for even then I could not see it,
-I came, groping along, to a curtained opening into the vestibule.
-
-Dimly moonlighted, the cage of the leopardess was the arena of what
-seemed a desperate although silent struggle. Two vastly differing
-forms, human and bestial, with entangled confusion of mingling bodies
-and limbs, writhed and wrestled in closest embrace. It had lasted
-but an instant when I saw the leopardess out of the cage, walking
-quietly to the open door. As I hastened after her I threw a glance
-behind me: there was the leopardess in the cage, couching motionless
-as when I saw her first.
-
-The moon, half-way up the sky, was shining round and clear; the
-bodiless shadow I had seen the night before, was walking through the
-trees toward the gate; and after him went the leopardess, swinging
-her tail. I followed, a little way off, as silently as they, and
-neither of them once looked round. Through the open gate we went
-down to the city, lying quiet as the moonshine upon it. The face
-of the moon was very still, and its stillness looked like that of
-expectation.
-
-The Shadow took his way straight to the stair at the top of which
-I had lain the night before. Without a pause he went up, and the
-leopardess followed. I quickened my pace, but, a moment after,
-heard a cry of horror. Then came the fall of something soft and
-heavy between me and the stair, and at my feet lay a body,
-frightfully blackened and crushed, but still recognisable as that
-of the woman who had led me home and shut me out. As I stood
-petrified, the spotted leopardess came bounding down the stair with
-a baby in her mouth. I darted to seize her ere she could turn at
-the foot; but that instant, from behind me, the white leopardess,
-like a great bar of glowing silver, shot through the moonlight, and
-had her by the neck. She dropped the child; I caught it up, and
-stood to watch the battle between them.
-
-What a sight it was--now the one, now the other uppermost, both too
-intent for any noise beyond a low growl, a whimpered cry, or a snarl
-of hate--followed by a quicker scrambling of claws, as each, worrying
-and pushing and dragging, struggled for foothold on the pavement!
-The spotted leopardess was larger than the white, and I was anxious
-for my friend; but I soon saw that, though neither stronger nor
-more active, the white leopardess had the greater endurance. Not
-once did she lose her hold on the neck of the other. From the
-spotted throat at length issued a howl of agony, changing, by
-swift-crowded gradations, into the long-drawn CRESCENDO of a woman's
-uttermost wail. The white one relaxed her jaws; the spotted one
-drew herself away, and rose on her hind legs. Erect in the
-moonlight stood the princess, a confused rush of shadows careering
-over her whiteness--the spots of the leopard crowding, hurrying,
-fleeing to the refuge of her eyes, where merging they vanished.
-The last few, outsped and belated, mingled with the cloud of her
-streamy hair, leaving her radiant as the moon when a legion of
-little vapours has flown, wind-hunted, off her silvery disc--save
-that, adown the white column of her throat, a thread of blood still
-trickled from every wound of her adversary's terrible teeth. She
-turned away, took a few steps with the gait of a Hecate, fell,
-covered afresh with her spots, and fled at a long, stretching gallop.
-
-The white leopardess turned also, sprang upon me, pulled my arms
-asunder, caught the baby as it fell, and flew with it along the
-street toward the gate
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII
-
-THE SILENT FOUNTAIN
-
-I turned and followed the spotted leopardess, catching but one
-glimpse of her as she tore up the brow of the hill to the gate of
-the palace. When I reached the entrance-hall, the princess was
-just throwing the robe around her which she had left on the floor.
-The blood had ceased to flow from her wounds, and had dried in the
-wind of her flight.
-
-When she saw me, a flash of anger crossed her face, and she turned
-her head aside. Then, with an attempted smile, she looked at me,
-and said,
-
-"I have met with a small accident! Happening to hear that the
-cat-woman was again in the city, I went down to send her away. But
-she had one of her horrid creatures with her: it sprang upon me,
-and had its claws in my neck before I could strike it!"
-
-She gave a shiver, and I could not help pitying her, although I
-knew she lied, for her wounds were real, and her face reminded me
-of how she looked in the cave. My heart began to reproach me that
-I had let her fight unaided, and I suppose I looked the compassion
-I felt.
-
-"Child of folly!" she said, with another attempted smile, "--not
-crying, surely!--Wait for me here; I am going into the black hall
-for a moment. I want you to get me something for my scratches."
-
-But I followed her close. Out of my sight I feared her.
-
-The instant the princess entered, I heard a buzzing sound as of
-many low voices, and, one portion after another, the assembly began
-to be shiftingly illuminated, as by a ray that went travelling from
-spot to spot. Group after group would shine out for a space, then
-sink back into the general vagueness, while another part of the vast
-company would grow momently bright.
-
-Some of the actions going on when thus illuminated, were not unknown
-to me; I had been in them, or had looked on them, and so had the
-princess: present with every one of them I now saw her. The
-skull-headed dancers footed the grass in the forest-hall: there was
-the princess looking in at the door! The fight went on in the Evil
-Wood: there was the princess urging it! Yet I was close behind her
-all the time, she standing motionless, her head sunk on her bosom.
-The confused murmur continued, the confused commotion of colours
-and shapes; and still the ray went shifting and showing. It settled
-at last on the hollow in the heath, and there was the princess,
-walking up and down, and trying in vain to wrap the vapour around
-her! Then first I was startled at what I saw: the old librarian
-walked up to her, and stood for a moment regarding her; she fell;
-her limbs forsook her and fled; her body vanished.
-
-A wild shriek rang through the echoing place, and with the fall of
-her eidolon, the princess herself, till then standing like a statue
-in front of me, fell heavily, and lay still. I turned at once
-and went out: not again would I seek to restore her! As I stood
-trembling beside the cage, I knew that in the black ellipsoid I had
-been in the brain of the princess!--I saw the tail of the leopardess
-quiver once.
-
-While still endeavouring to compose myself, I heard the voice of
-the princess beside me.
-
-"Come now," she said; "I will show you what I want you to do for me."
-
-She led the way into the court. I followed in dazed compliance.
-
-The moon was near the zenith, and her present silver seemed brighter
-than the gold of the absent sun. She brought me through the trees
-to the tallest of them, the one in the centre. It was not quite
-like the rest, for its branches, drawing their ends together at the
-top, made a clump that looked from beneath like a fir-cone. The
-princess stood close under it, gazing up, and said, as if talking
-to herself,
-
-"On the summit of that tree grows a tiny blossom which would at once
-heal my scratches! I might be a dove for a moment and fetch it,
-but I see a little snake in the leaves whose bite would be worse to
-a dove than the bite of a tiger to me!--How I hate that cat-woman!"
-
-She turned to me quickly, saying with one of her sweetest smiles,
-
-"Can you climb?"
-
-The smile vanished with the brief question, and her face changed
-to a look of sadness and suffering. I ought to have left her to
-suffer, but the way she put her hand to her wounded neck went to
-my heart.
-
-I considered the tree. All the way up to the branches, were
-projections on the stem like the remnants on a palm of its fallen
-leaves.
-
-"I can climb that tree," I answered.
-
-"Not with bare feet!" she returned.
-
-In my haste to follow the leopardess disappearing, I had left my
-sandals in my room.
-
-"It is no matter," I said; "I have long gone barefoot!"
-
-Again I looked at the tree, and my eyes went wandering up the stem
-until my sight lost itself in the branches. The moon shone like
-silvery foam here and there on the rugged bole, and a little rush
-of wind went through the top with a murmurous sound as of water
-falling softly into water. I approached the tree to begin my ascent
-of it. The princess stopped me.
-
-"I cannot let you attempt it with your feet bare!" she insisted.
-"A fall from the top would kill you!"
-
-"So would a bite from the snake!" I answered--not believing, I
-confess, that there was any snake.
-
-"It would not hurt YOU!" she replied. "--Wait a moment."
-
-She tore from her garment the two wide borders that met in front,
-and kneeling on one knee, made me put first my left foot, then my
-right on the other, and bound them about with the thick embroidered
-strips.
-
-"You have left the ends hanging, princess!" I said.
-
-"I have nothing to cut them off with; but they are not long enough
-to get entangled," she replied.
-
-I turned to the tree, and began to climb.
-
-Now in Bulika the cold after sundown was not so great as in certain
-other parts of the country--especially about the sexton's cottage;
-yet when I had climbed a little way, I began to feel very cold, grew
-still colder as I ascended, and became coldest of all when I got
-among the branches. Then I shivered, and seemed to have lost my
-hands and feet.
-
-There was hardly any wind, and the branches did not sway in the
-least, yet, as I approached the summit, I became aware of a peculiar
-unsteadiness: every branch on which I placed foot or laid hold,
-seemed on the point of giving way. When my head rose above the
-branches near the top, and in the open moonlight I began to look
-about for the blossom, that instant I found myself drenched from
-head to foot. The next, as if plunged in a stormy water, I was
-flung about wildly, and felt myself sinking. Tossed up and down,
-tossed this way and tossed that way, rolled over and over, checked,
-rolled the other way and tossed up again, I was sinking lower and
-lower. Gasping and gurgling and choking, I fell at last upon a
-solid bottom.
-
-"I told you so!" croaked a voice in my ear.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII
-
-I AM SILENCED
-
-I rubbed the water out of my eyes, and saw the raven on the edge
-of a huge stone basin. With the cold light of the dawn reflected
-from his glossy plumage, he stood calmly looking down upon me. I lay
-on my back in water, above which, leaning on my elbows, I just lifted
-my face. I was in the basin of the large fountain constructed by my
-father in the middle of the lawn. High over me glimmered the thick,
-steel-shiny stalk, shooting, with a torrent uprush, a hundred feet
-into the air, to spread in a blossom of foam.
-
-Nettled at the coolness of the raven's remark,
-
-"You told me nothing!" I said.
-
-"I told you to do nothing any one you distrusted asked you!"
-
-"Tut! how was mortal to remember that?"
-
-"You will not forget the consequences of having forgotten it!"
-replied Mr. Raven, who stood leaning over the margin of the basin,
-and stretched his hand across to me.
-
-I took it, and was immediately beside him on the lawn, dripping
-and streaming.
-
-"You must change your clothes at once!" he said. "A wetting does
-not signify where you come from--though at present such an accident
-is unusual; here it has its inconveniences!"
-
-He was again a raven, walking, with something stately in his step,
-toward the house, the door of which stood open.
-
-"I have not much to change!" I laughed; for I had flung aside my
-robe to climb the tree.
-
-"It is a long time since I moulted a feather!" said the raven.
-
-In the house no one seemed awake. I went to my room, found a
-dressing-gown, and descended to the library.
-
-As I entered, the librarian came from the closet. I threw myself
-on a couch. Mr. Raven drew a chair to my side and sat down. For
-a minute or two neither spoke. I was the first to break the silence.
-
-"What does it all mean?" I said.
-
-"A good question!" he rejoined: "nobody knows what anything is; a
-man can learn only what a thing means! Whether he do, depends on
-the use he is making of it."
-
-"I have made no use of anything yet!"
-
-"Not much; but you know the fact, and that is something! Most
-people take more than a lifetime to learn that they have learned
-nothing, and done less! At least you have not been without the
-desire to be of use!"
-
-"I did want to do something for the children--the precious Little
-Ones, I mean."
-
-"I know you did--and started the wrong way!"
-
-"I did not know the right way."
-
-"That is true also--but you are to blame that you did not."
-
-"I am ready to believe whatever you tell me--as soon as I understand
-what it means."
-
-"Had you accepted our invitation, you would have known the right
-way. When a man will not act where he is, he must go far to find
-his work."
-
-"Indeed I have gone far, and got nowhere, for I have not found my
-work! I left the children to learn how to serve them, and have only
-learned the danger they are in."
-
-"When you were with them, you were where you could help them: you
-left your work to look for it! It takes a wise man to know when to
-go away; a fool may learn to go back at once!"
-
-"Do you mean, sir, I could have done something for the Little Ones
-by staying with them?"
-
-"Could you teach them anything by leaving them?"
-
-"No; but how could I teach them? I did not know how to begin.
-Besides, they were far ahead of me!"
-
-"That is true. But you were not a rod to measure them with!
-Certainly, if they knew what you know, not to say what you might
-have known, they would be ahead of you--out of sight ahead! but you
-saw they were not growing--or growing so slowly that they had not
-yet developed the idea of growing! they were even afraid of
-growing!--You had never seen children remain children!"
-
-"But surely I had no power to make them grow!"
-
-"You might have removed some of the hindrances to their growing!"
-
-"What are they? I do not know them. I did think perhaps it was
-the want of water!"
-
-"Of course it is! they have none to cry with!"
-
-"I would gladly have kept them from requiring any for that purpose!"
-
-"No doubt you would--the aim of all stupid philanthropists! Why,
-Mr. Vane, but for the weeping in it, your world would never have
-become worth saving! You confess you thought it might be water they
-wanted: why did not you dig them a well or two?"
-
-"That never entered my mind!"
-
-"Not when the sounds of the waters under the earth entered your
-ears?"
-
-"I believe it did once. But I was afraid of the giants for them.
-That was what made me bear so much from the brutes myself!"
-
-"Indeed you almost taught the noble little creatures to be afraid
-of the stupid Bags! While they fed and comforted and worshipped
-you, all the time you submitted to be the slave of bestial men!
-You gave the darlings a seeming coward for their hero! A worse
-wrong you could hardly have done them. They gave you their hearts;
-you owed them your soul!--You might by this time have made the Bags
-hewers of wood and drawers of water to the Little Ones!"
-
-"I fear what you say is true, Mr. Raven! But indeed I was afraid
-that more knowledge might prove an injury to them--render them less
-innocent, less lovely."
-
-"They had given you no reason to harbour such a fear!"
-
-"Is not a little knowledge a dangerous thing?"
-
-"That is one of the pet falsehoods of your world! Is man's greatest
-knowledge more than a little? or is it therefore dangerous? The
-fancy that knowledge is in itself a great thing, would make any
-degree of knowledge more dangerous than any amount of ignorance.
-To know all things would not be greatness."
-
-"At least it was for love of them, not from cowardice that I served
-the giants!"
-
-"Granted. But you ought to have served the Little Ones, not the
-giants! You ought to have given the Little Ones water; then they
-would soon have taught the giants their true position. In the
-meantime you could yourself have made the giants cut down two-thirds
-of their coarse fruit-trees to give room to the little delicate
-ones! You lost your chance with the Lovers, Mr. Vane! You
-speculated about them instead of helping them!"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX
-
-THE PERSIAN CAT
-
-I sat in silence and shame. What he said was true: I had not been
-a wise neighbour to the Little Ones!
-
-Mr. Raven resumed:
-
-"You wronged at the same time the stupid creatures themselves. For
-them slavery would have been progress. To them a few such lessons
-as you could have given them with a stick from one of their own
-trees, would have been invaluable."
-
-"I did not know they were cowards!"
-
-"What difference does that make? The man who grounds his action on
-another's cowardice, is essentially a coward himself.--I fear worse
-will come of it! By this time the Little Ones might have been able
-to protect themselves from the princess, not to say the giants--they
-were always fit enough for that; as it was they laughed at them!
-but now, through your relations with her,----"
-
-"I hate her!" I cried.
-
-"Did you let her know you hated her?"
-
-Again I was silent.
-
-"Not even to her have you been faithful!--But hush! we were followed
-from the fountain, I fear!"
-
-"No living creature did I see!--except a disreputable-looking cat
-that bolted into the shrubbery."
-
-"It was a magnificent Persian--so wet and draggled, though, as to
-look what she was--worse than disreputable!"
-
-"What do you mean, Mr. Raven?" I cried, a fresh horror taking me
-by the throat. "--There was a beautiful blue Persian about the
-house, but she fled at the very sound of water!--Could she have
-been after the goldfish?"
-
-"We shall see!" returned the librarian. "I know a little about
-cats of several sorts, and there is that in the room which will
-unmask this one, or I am mistaken in her."
-
-He rose, went to the door of the closet, brought from it the
-mutilated volume, and sat down again beside me. I stared at the
-book in his hand: it was a whole book, entire and sound!
-
-"Where was the other half of it?" I gasped.
-
-"Sticking through into my library," he answered.
-
-I held my peace. A single question more would have been a plunge
-into a bottomless sea, and there might be no time!
-
-"Listen," he said: "I am going to read a stanza or two. There is
-one present who, I imagine, will hardly enjoy the reading!"
-
-He opened the vellum cover, and turned a leaf or two. The parchment
-was discoloured with age, and one leaf showed a dark stain over
-two-thirds of it. He slowly turned this also, and seemed looking
-for a certain passage in what appeared a continuous poem. Somewhere
-about the middle of the book he began to read.
-
-But what follows represents--not what he read, only the impression
-it made upon me. The poem seemed in a language I had never before
-heard, which yet I understood perfectly, although I could not write
-the words, or give their meaning save in poor approximation. These
-fragments, then, are the shapes which those he read have finally
-taken in passing again through my brain:--
-
- "But if I found a man that could believe
- In what he saw not, felt not, and yet knew,
- From him I should take substance, and receive
- Firmness and form relate to touch and view;
- Then should I clothe me in the likeness true
- Of that idea where his soul did cleave!"
-
-He turned a leaf and read again:--
-
- "In me was every woman. I had power
- Over the soul of every living man,
- Such as no woman ever had in dower--
- Could what no woman ever could, or can;
- All women, I, the woman, still outran,
- Outsoared, outsank, outreigned, in hall or bower.
-
- "For I, though me he neither saw nor heard,
- Nor with his hand could touch finger of mine,
- Although not once my breath had ever stirred
- A hair of him, could trammel brain and spine
- With rooted bonds which Death could not untwine--
- Or life, though hope were evermore deferred."
-
-Again he paused, again turned a leaf, and again began:--
-
- "For by his side I lay, a bodiless thing;
- I breathed not, saw not, felt not, only thought,
- And made him love me--with a hungering
- After he knew not what--if it was aught
- Or but a nameless something that was wrought
- By him out of himself; for I did sing
-
- "A song that had no sound into his soul;
- I lay a heartless thing against his heart,
- Giving him nothing where he gave his whole
- Being to clothe me human, every part:
- That I at last into his sense might dart,
- Thus first into his living mind I stole.
-
- "Ah, who was ever conquering Love but I!
- Who else did ever throne in heart of man!
- To visible being, with a gladsome cry
- Waking, life's tremor through me throbbing ran!"
-
-A strange, repulsive feline wail arose somewhere in the room. I
-started up on my elbow and stared about me, but could see nothing.
-
-Mr. Raven turned several leaves, and went on:--
-
- "Sudden I woke, nor knew the ghastly fear
- That held me--not like serpent coiled about,
- But like a vapour moist, corrupt, and drear,
- Filling heart, soul, and breast and brain throughout;
- My being lay motionless in sickening doubt,
- Nor dared to ask how came the horror here.
-
- "My past entire I knew, but not my now;
- I understood nor what I was, nor where;
- I knew what I had been: still on my brow
- I felt the touch of what no more was there!
- I was a fainting, dead, yet live Despair;
- A life that flouted life with mop and mow!
-
- "That I was a queen I knew right well,
- And sometimes wore a splendour on my head
- Whose flashing even dead darkness could not quell--
- The like on neck and arms and girdle-stead;
- And men declared a light my closed eyes shed
- That killed the diamond in its silver cell."
-
-Again I heard the ugly cry of feline pain. Again I looked, but saw
-neither shape nor motion. Mr. Raven seemed to listen a moment, but
-again turned several pages, and resumed:--
-
- "Hideously wet, my hair of golden hue
- Fouled my fair hands: to have it swiftly shorn
- I had given my rubies, all for me dug new--
- No eyes had seen, and such no waist had worn!
- For a draught of water from a drinking horn,
- For one blue breath, I had given my sapphires blue!
-
- "Nay, I had given my opals for a smock,
- A peasant-maiden's garment, coarse and clean:
- My shroud was rotting! Once I heard a cock
- Lustily crow upon the hillock green
- Over my coffin. Dulled by space between,
- Came back an answer like a ghostly mock."
-
-Once more arose the bestial wail.
-
-"I thought some foul thing was in the room!" said the librarian,
-casting a glance around him; but instantly he turned a leaf or two,
-and again read:--
-
- "For I had bathed in milk and honey-dew,
- In rain from roses shook, that ne'er touched earth,
- And ointed me with nard of amber hue;
- Never had spot me spotted from my birth,
- Or mole, or scar of hurt, or fret of dearth;
- Never one hair superfluous on me grew.
-
- "Fleeing cold whiteness, I would sit alone--
- Not in the sun--I feared his bronzing light,
- But in his radiance back around me thrown
- By fulgent mirrors tempering his might;
- Thus bathing in a moon-bath not too bright,
- My skin I tinted slow to ivory tone.
-
- "But now, all round was dark, dark all within!
- My eyes not even gave out a phantom-flash;
- My fingers sank in pulp through pulpy skin;
- My body lay death-weltered in a mash
- Of slimy horrors----"
-
-With a fearsome yell, her clammy fur staring in clumps, her tail
-thick as a cable, her eyes flashing green as a chrysoprase, her
-distended claws entangling themselves so that she floundered across
-the carpet, a huge white cat rushed from somewhere, and made for
-the chimney. Quick as thought the librarian threw the manuscript
-between her and the hearth. She crouched instantly, her eyes fixed
-on the book. But his voice went on as if still he read, and his
-eyes seemed also fixed on the book:--
-
- "Ah, the two worlds! so strangely are they one,
- And yet so measurelessly wide apart!
- Oh, had I lived the bodiless alone
- And from defiling sense held safe my heart,
- Then had I scaped the canker and the smart,
- Scaped life-in-death, scaped misery's endless moan!"
-
-At these words such a howling, such a prolonged yell of agony burst
-from the cat, that we both stopped our ears. When it ceased,
-Mr. Raven walked to the fire-place, took up the book, and, standing
-between the creature and the chimney, pointed his finger at her for
-a moment. She lay perfectly still. He took a half-burnt stick
-from the hearth, drew with it some sign on the floor, put the
-manuscript back in its place, with a look that seemed to say, "Now
-we have her, I think!" and, returning to the cat, stood over her
-and said, in a still, solemn voice:--
-
-"Lilith, when you came here on the way to your evil will, you
-little thought into whose hands you were delivering yourself!--
-Mr. Vane, when God created me,--not out of Nothing, as say the
-unwise, but out of His own endless glory--He brought me an angelic
-splendour to be my wife: there she lies! For her first thought
-was POWER; she counted it slavery to be one with me, and bear
-children for Him who gave her being. One child, indeed, she bore;
-then, puffed with the fancy that she had created her, would have
-me fall down and worship her! Finding, however, that I would but
-love and honour, never obey and worship her, she poured out her
-blood to escape me, fled to the army of the aliens, and soon had
-so ensnared the heart of the great Shadow, that he became her slave,
-wrought her will, and made her queen of Hell. How it is with her
-now, she best knows, but I know also. The one child of her body
-she fears and hates, and would kill, asserting a right, which is a
-lie, over what God sent through her into His new world. Of creating,
-she knows no more than the crystal that takes its allotted shape,
-or the worm that makes two worms when it is cloven asunder. Vilest
-of God's creatures, she lives by the blood and lives and souls of
-men. She consumes and slays, but is powerless to destroy as to
-create."
-
-The animal lay motionless, its beryl eyes fixed flaming on the man:
-his eyes on hers held them fixed that they could not move from his.
-
-"Then God gave me another wife--not an angel but a woman--who is to
-this as light is to darkness."
-
-The cat gave a horrible screech, and began to grow bigger. She
-went on growing and growing. At last the spotted leopardess uttered
-a roar that made the house tremble. I sprang to my feet. I do not
-think Mr. Raven started even with his eyelids.
-
-"It is but her jealousy that speaks," he said, "jealousy self-kindled,
-foiled and fruitless; for here I am, her master now whom she, would
-not have for her husband! while my beautiful Eve yet lives, hoping
-immortally! Her hated daughter lives also, but beyond her evil ken,
-one day to be what she counts her destruction--for even Lilith
-shall be saved by her childbearing. Meanwhile she exults that my
-human wife plunged herself and me in despair, and has borne me a
-countless race of miserables; but my Eve repented, and is now
-beautiful as never was woman or angel, while her groaning, travailing
-world is the nursery of our Father's children. I too have repented,
-and am blessed.--Thou, Lilith, hast not yet repented; but thou
-must.--Tell me, is the great Shadow beautiful? Knowest thou how
-long thou wilt thyself remain beautiful?--Answer me, if thou knowest."
-
-Then at last I understood that Mr. Raven was indeed Adam, the old
-and the new man; and that his wife, ministering in the house of the
-dead, was Eve, the mother of us all, the lady of the New Jerusalem.
-
-The leopardess reared; the flickering and fleeing of her spots began;
-the princess at length stood radiant in her perfect shape.
-
-"I AM beautiful--and immortal!" she said--and she looked the goddess
-she would be.
-
-"As a bush that burns, and is consumed," answered he who had been
-her husband. "--What is that under thy right hand?"
-
-For her arm lay across her bosom, and her hand was pressed to her
-side.
-
-A swift pang contorted her beautiful face, and passed.
-
-"It is but a leopard-spot that lingers! it will quickly follow
-those I have dismissed," she answered.
-
-"Thou art beautiful because God created thee, but thou art the slave
-of sin: take thy hand from thy side."
-
-Her hand sank away, and as it dropt she looked him in the eyes with
-a quailing fierceness that had in it no surrender.
-
-He gazed a moment at the spot.
-
-"It is not on the leopard; it is in the woman!" he said. "Nor will
-it leave thee until it hath eaten to thy heart, and thy beauty
-hath flowed from thee through the open wound!"
-
-She gave a glance downward, and shivered.
-
-"Lilith," said Adam, and his tone had changed to a tender beseeching,
-"hear me, and repent, and He who made thee will cleanse thee!"
-
-Her hand returned quivering to her side. Her face grew dark. She
-gave the cry of one from whom hope is vanishing. The cry passed
-into a howl. She lay writhing on the floor, a leopardess covered
-with spots.
-
-"The evil thou meditatest," Adam resumed, "thou shalt never compass,
-Lilith, for Good and not Evil is the Universe. The battle between
-them may last for countless ages, but it must end: how will it fare
-with thee when Time hath vanished in the dawn of the eternal morn?
-Repent, I beseech thee; repent, and be again an angel of God!"
-
-She rose, she stood upright, a woman once more, and said,
-
-"I will not repent. I will drink the blood of thy child."
-My eyes were fastened on the princess; but when Adam spoke, I turned
-to him: he stood towering above her; the form of his visage was
-altered, and his voice was terrible.
-
-"Down!" he cried; "or by the power given me I will melt thy very
-bones."
-
-She flung herself on the floor, dwindled and dwindled, and was again
-a gray cat. Adam caught her up by the skin of her neck, bore her
-to the closet, and threw her in. He described a strange figure on
-the threshold, and closing the door, locked it.
-
-Then he returned to my side the old librarian, looking sad and worn,
-and furtively wiping tears from his eyes.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX
-
-ADAM EXPLAINS
-
-"We must be on our guard," he said, "or she will again outwit us.
-She would befool the very elect!"
-
-"How are we to be on our guard?" I asked.
-
-"Every way," he answered. "She fears, therefore hates her child, and
-is in this house on her way to destroy her. The birth of children
-is in her eyes the death of their parents, and every new generation
-the enemy of the last. Her daughter appears to her an open channel
-through which her immortality--which yet she counts self-inherent--is
-flowing fast away: to fill it up, almost from her birth she has
-pursued her with an utter enmity. But the result of her machinations
-hitherto is, that in the region she claims as her own, has appeared
-a colony of children, to which that daughter is heart and head and
-sheltering wings. My Eve longed after the child, and would have
-been to her as a mother to her first-born, but we were then unfit
-to train her: she was carried into the wilderness, and for ages
-we knew nothing of her fate. But she was divinely fostered, and
-had young angels for her playmates; nor did she ever know care until
-she found a baby in the wood, and the mother-heart in her awoke.
-One by one she has found many children since, and that heart is not
-yet full. Her family is her absorbing charge, and never children
-were better mothered. Her authority over them is without appeal,
-but it is unknown to herself, and never comes to the surface except
-in watchfulness and service. She has forgotten the time when she
-lived without them, and thinks she came herself from the wood, the
-first of the family.
-
-"You have saved the life of her and their enemy; therefore your life
-belongs to her and them. The princess was on her way to destroy
-them, but as she crossed that stream, vengeance overtook her, and
-she would have died had you not come to her aid. You did; and ere
-now she would have been raging among the Little Ones, had she dared
-again cross the stream. But there was yet a way to the blessed
-little colony through the world of the three dimensions; only, from
-that, by the slaying of her former body, she had excluded herself,
-and except in personal contact with one belonging to it, could not
-re-enter it. You provided the opportunity: never, in all her long
-years, had she had one before. Her hand, with lightest touch, was
-on one or other of your muffled feet, every step as you climbed. In
-that little chamber, she is now watching to leave it as soon as ever
-she may."
-
-"She cannot know anything about the door!--she cannot at least know
-how to open it!" I said; but my heart was not so confident as my
-words.
-
-"Hush, hush!" whispered the librarian, with uplifted hand; "she can
-hear through anything!--You must go at once, and make your way to
-my wife's cottage. I will remain to keep guard over her."
-
-"Let me go to the Little Ones!" I cried.
-
-"Beware of that, Mr. Vane. Go to my wife, and do as she tells you."
-
-His advice did not recommend itself: why haste to encounter
-measureless delay? If not to protect the children, why go at all?
-Alas, even now I believed him only enough to ask him questions,
-not to obey him!
-
-"Tell me first, Mr. Raven," I said, "why, of all places, you have
-shut her up there! The night I ran from your house, it was
-immediately into that closet!"
-
-"The closet is no nearer our cottage, and no farther from it, than
-any or every other place."
-
-"But," I returned, hard to persuade where I could not understand,
-"how is it then that, when you please, you take from that same door
-a whole book where I saw and felt only a part of one? The other
-part, you have just told me, stuck through into your library: when
-you put it again on the shelf, will it not again stick through into
-that? Must not then the two places, in which parts of the same
-volume can at the same moment exist, lie close together? Or can
-one part of the book be in space, or SOMEWHERE, and the other out
-of space, or NOWHERE?"
-
-"I am sorry I cannot explain the thing to you," he answered; "but
-there is no provision in you for understanding it. Not merely,
-therefore, is the phenomenon inexplicable to you, but the very nature
-of it is inapprehensible by you. Indeed I but partially apprehend
-it myself. At the same time you are constantly experiencing things
-which you not only do not, but cannot understand. You think you
-understand them, but your understanding of them is only your being
-used to them, and therefore not surprised at them. You accept them,
-not because you understand them, but because you must accept them:
-they are there, and have unavoidable relations with you! The fact is,
-no man understands anything; when he knows he does not understand,
-that is his first tottering step--not toward understanding, but
-toward the capability of one day understanding. To such things as
-these you are not used, therefore you do not fancy you understand
-them. Neither I nor any man can here help you to understand; but
-I may, perhaps, help you a little to believe!"
-
-He went to the door of the closet, gave a low whistle, and stood
-listening. A moment after, I heard, or seemed to hear, a soft whir
-of wings, and, looking up, saw a white dove perch for an instant on
-the top of the shelves over the portrait, thence drop to Mr. Raven's
-shoulder, and lay her head against his cheek. Only by the motions
-of their two heads could I tell that they were talking together;
-I heard nothing. Neither had I moved my eyes from them, when
-suddenly she was not there, and Mr. Raven came back to his seat.
-
-"Why did you whistle?" I asked. "Surely sound here is not sound
-there!"
-
-"You are right," he answered. "I whistled that you might know I
-called her. Not the whistle, but what the whistle meant reached
-her.--There is not a minute to lose: you must go!"
-
-"I will at once!" I replied, and moved for the door.
-
-"You will sleep to-night at my hostelry!" he said--not as a question,
-but in a tone of mild authority.
-
-"My heart is with the children," I replied. "But if you insist----"
-
-"I do insist. You can otherwise effect nothing.--I will go with
-you as far as the mirror, and see you off."
-
-He rose. There came a sudden shock in the closet. Apparently the
-leopardess had flung herself against the heavy door. I looked at
-my companion.
-
-"Come; come!" he said.
-
-Ere we reached the door of the library, a howling yell came after
-us, mingled with the noise of claws that scored at the hard oak.
-I hesitated, and half turned.
-
-"To think of her lying there alone," I murmured, "--with that
-terrible wound!"
-
-"Nothing will ever close that wound," he answered, with a sigh.
-"It must eat into her heart! Annihilation itself is no death to
-evil. Only good where evil was, is evil dead. An evil thing must
-live with its evil until it chooses to be good. That alone is the
-slaying of evil."
-
-I held my peace until a sound I did not understand overtook us.
-
-"If she should break loose!" I cried.
-
-"Make haste!" he rejoined. "I shall hurry down the moment you are
-gone, and I have disarranged the mirrors."
-
-We ran, and reached the wooden chamber breathless. Mr. Raven seized
-the chains and adjusted the hood. Then he set the mirrors in their
-proper relation, and came beside me in front of the standing one.
-Already I saw the mountain range emerging from the mist.
-
-Between us, wedging us asunder, darted, with the yell of a demon,
-the huge bulk of the spotted leopardess. She leaped through the
-mirror as through an open window, and settled at once into a low,
-even, swift gallop.
-
-I cast a look of dismay at my companion, and sprang through to follow
-her. He came after me leisurely.
-
-"You need not run," he called; "you cannot overtake her. This is
-our way."
-
-As he spoke he turned in the opposite direction.
-
-"She has more magic at her finger-tips than I care to know!" he
-added quietly.
-
-"We must do what we can!" I said, and ran on, but sickening as I
-saw her dwindle in the distance, stopped, and went back to him.
-
-"Doubtless we must," he answered. "But my wife has warned Mara,
-and she will do her part; you must sleep first: you have given me
-your word!"
-
-"Nor do I mean to break it. But surely sleep is not the first thing!
-Surely, surely, action takes precedence of repose!"
-
-"A man can do nothing he is not fit to do.--See! did I not tell
-you Mara would do her part?"
-
-I looked whither he pointed, and saw a white spot moving at an acute
-angle with the line taken by the leopardess.
-
-"There she is!" he cried. "The spotted leopardess is strong, but
-the white is stronger!"
-
-"I have seen them fight: the combat did not appear decisive as to
-that."
-
-"How should such eyes tell which have never slept? The princess did
-not confess herself beaten--that she never does--but she fled! When
-she confesses her last hope gone, that it is indeed hard to kick
-against the goad, then will her day begin to dawn! Come; come! He
-who cannot act must make haste to sleep!"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXI
-
-THE SEXTON'S OLD HORSE
-
-I stood and watched the last gleam of the white leopardess melt away,
-then turned to follow my guide--but reluctantly. What had I to do
-with sleep? Surely reason was the same in every world, and what
-reason could there be in going to sleep with the dead, when the hour
-was calling the live man? Besides, no one would wake me, and how
-could I be certain of waking early--of waking at all?--the sleepers
-in that house let morning glide into noon, and noon into night, nor
-ever stirred! I murmured, but followed, for I knew not what else
-to do.
-
-The librarian walked on in silence, and I walked silent as he. Time
-and space glided past us. The sun set; it began to grow dark, and
-I felt in the air the spreading cold of the chamber of death. My
-heart sank lower and lower. I began to lose sight of the lean,
-long-coated figure, and at length could no more hear his swishing
-stride through the heather. But then I heard instead the
-slow-flapping wings of the raven; and, at intervals, now a firefly,
-now a gleaming butterfly rose into the rayless air.
-
-By and by the moon appeared, slow crossing the far horizon.
-
-"You are tired, are you not, Mr. Vane?" said the raven, alighting
-on a stone. "You must make acquaintance with the horse that will
-carry you in the morning!"
-
-He gave a strange whistle through his long black beak. A spot
-appeared on the face of the half-risen moon. To my ears came
-presently the drumming of swift, soft-galloping hoofs, and in a
-minute or two, out of the very disc of the moon, low-thundered the
-terrible horse. His mane flowed away behind him like the crest of
-a wind-fighting wave, torn seaward in hoary spray, and the whisk
-of his tail kept blinding the eye of the moon. Nineteen hands he
-seemed, huge of bone, tight of skin, hard of muscle--a steed the
-holy Death himself might choose on which to ride abroad and slay!
-The moon seemed to regard him with awe; in her scary light he looked
-a very skeleton, loosely roped together. Terrifically large, he
-moved with the lightness of a winged insect. As he drew near, his
-speed slackened, and his mane and tail drifted about him settling.
-
-Now I was not merely a lover of horses, but I loved every horse I
-saw. I had never spent money except upon horses, and had never
-sold a horse. The sight of this mighty one, terrible to look at,
-woke in me longing to possess him. It was pure greed, nay, rank
-covetousness, an evil thing in all the worlds. I do not mean that
-I could have stolen him, but that, regardless of his proper place,
-I would have bought him if I could. I laid my hands on him, and
-stroked the protuberant bones that humped a hide smooth and thin,
-and shiny as satin--so shiny that the very shape of the moon was
-reflected in it; I fondled his sharp-pointed ears, whispered words
-in them, and breathed into his red nostrils the breath of a man's
-life. He in return breathed into mine the breath of a horse's life,
-and we loved one another. What eyes he had! Blue-filmy like the
-eyes of the dead, behind each was a glowing coal! The raven, with
-wings half extended, looked on pleased at my love-making to his
-magnificent horse.
-
-"That is well! be friends with him," he said: "he will carry you
-all the better to-morrow!--Now we must hurry home!"
-
-My desire to ride the horse had grown passionate.
-
-"May I not mount him at once, Mr. Raven?" I cried.
-
-"By all means!" he answered. "Mount, and ride him home."
-
-The horse bent his head over my shoulder lovingly. I twisted my
-hands in his mane and scrambled onto his back, not without aid from
-certain protuberant bones.
-
-"He would outspeed any leopard in creation!" I cried.
-
-"Not that way at night," answered the raven; "the road is difficult.--
-But come; loss now will be gain then! To wait is harder than to
-run, and its meed is the fuller. Go on, my son--straight to the
-cottage. I shall be there as soon as you. It will rejoice my
-wife's heart to see son of hers on that horse!"
-
-I sat silent. The horse stood like a block of marble.
-
-"Why do you linger?" asked the raven.
-
-"I long so much to ride after the leopardess," I answered, "that I
-can scarce restrain myself!"
-
-"You have promised!"
-
-"My debt to the Little Ones appears, I confess, a greater thing than
-my bond to you."
-
-"Yield to the temptation and you will bring mischief upon them--and
-on yourself also."
-
-"What matters it for me? I love them; and love works no evil. I
-will go."
-
-But the truth was, I forgot the children, infatuate with the horse.
-
-Eyes flashed through the darkness, and I knew that Adam stood in his
-own shape beside me. I knew also by his voice that he repressed an
-indignation almost too strong for him.
-
-"Mr. Vane," he said, "do you not know why you have not yet done
-anything worth doing?"
-
-"Because I have been a fool," I answered.
-
-"Wherein?"
-
-"In everything."
-
-"Which do you count your most indiscreet action?"
-
-"Bringing the princess to life: I ought to have left her to her
-just fate."
-
-"Nay, now you talk foolishly! You could not have done otherwise
-than you did, not knowing she was evil!--But you never brought any
-one to life! How could you, yourself dead?"
-
-"I dead?" I cried.
-
-"Yes," he answered; "and you will be dead, so long as you refuse to
-die."
-
-"Back to the old riddling!" I returned scornfully.
-
-"Be persuaded, and go home with me," he continued gently. "The
-most--nearly the only foolish thing you ever did, was to run from
-our dead."
-
-I pressed the horse's ribs, and he was off like a sudden wind. I
-gave him a pat on the side of the neck, and he went about in a
-sharp-driven curve, "close to the ground, like a cat when scratchingly
-she wheels about after a mouse," leaning sideways till his mane
-swept the tops of the heather.
-
-Through the dark I heard the wings of the raven. Five quick flaps
-I heard, and he perched on the horse's head. The horse checked
-himself instantly, ploughing up the ground with his feet.
-
-"Mr. Vane," croaked the raven, "think what you are doing! Twice
-already has evil befallen you--once from fear, and once from
-heedlessness: breach of word is far worse; it is a crime."
-
-"The Little Ones are in frightful peril, and I brought it upon them!"
-I cried. "--But indeed I will not break my word to you. I will
-return, and spend in your house what nights--what days--what years
-you please."
-
-"I tell you once more you will do them other than good if you go
-to-night," he insisted.
-
-But a false sense of power, a sense which had no root and was merely
-vibrated into me from the strength of the horse, had, alas, rendered
-me too stupid to listen to anything he said!
-
-"Would you take from me my last chance of reparation?" I cried.
-"This time there shall be no shirking! It is my duty, and I will
-go--if I perish for it!"
-
-"Go, then, foolish boy!" he returned, with anger in his croak. "Take
-the horse, and ride to failure! May it be to humility!"
-
-He spread his wings and flew. Again I pressed the lean ribs under
-me.
-
-"After the spotted leopardess!" I whispered in his ear.
-
-He turned his head this way and that, snuffing the air; then started,
-and went a few paces in a slow, undecided walk. Suddenly he
-quickened his walk; broke into a trot; began to gallop, and in a
-few moments his speed was tremendous. He seemed to see in the
-dark; never stumbled, not once faltered, not once hesitated. I sat
-as on the ridge of a wave. I felt under me the play of each
-individual muscle: his joints were so elastic, and his every
-movement glided so into the next, that not once did he jar me. His
-growing swiftness bore him along until he flew rather than ran.
-The wind met and passed us like a tornado.
-
-Across the evil hollow we sped like a bolt from an arblast. No
-monster lifted its neck; all knew the hoofs that thundered over
-their heads! We rushed up the hills, we shot down their farther
-slopes; from the rocky chasms of the river-bed he did not swerve;
-he held on over them his fierce, terrible gallop. The moon, half-way
-up the heaven, gazed with a solemn trouble in her pale countenance.
-Rejoicing in the power of my steed and in the pride of my life, I
-sat like a king and rode.
-
-We were near the middle of the many channels, my horse every other
-moment clearing one, sometimes two in his stride, and now and then
-gathering himself for a great bounding leap, when the moon reached
-the key-stone of her arch. Then came a wonder and a terror: she
-began to descend rolling like the nave of Fortune's wheel bowled by
-the gods, and went faster and faster. Like our own moon, this one
-had a human face, and now the broad forehead now the chin was
-uppermost as she rolled. I gazed aghast.
-
-Across the ravines came the howling of wolves. An ugly fear began
-to invade the hollow places of my heart; my confidence was on the
-wane! The horse maintained his headlong swiftness, with ears
-pricked forward, and thirsty nostrils exulting in the wind his
-career created. But there was the moon jolting like an old
-chariot-wheel down the hill of heaven, with awful boding! She
-rolled at last over the horizon-edge and disappeared, carrying all
-her light with her.
-
-The mighty steed was in the act of clearing a wide shallow channel
-when we were caught in the net of the darkness. His head dropped;
-its impetus carried his helpless bulk across, but he fell in a heap
-on the margin, and where he fell he lay. I got up, kneeled beside
-him, and felt him all over. Not a bone could I find broken, but he
-was a horse no more. I sat down on the body, and buried my face in
-my hands.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXII
-
-THE LOVERS AND THE BAGS
-
-Bitterly cold grew the night. The body froze under me. The cry
-of the wolves came nearer; I heard their feet soft-padding on the
-rocky ground; their quick panting filled the air. Through the
-darkness I saw the many glowing eyes; their half-circle contracted
-around me. My time was come! I sprang to my feet.--Alas, I had not
-even a stick!
-
-They came in a rush, their eyes flashing with fury of greed, their
-black throats agape to devour me. I stood hopelessly waiting them.
-One moment they halted over the horse--then came at me.
-
-With a sound of swiftness all but silence, a cloud of green eyes
-came down on their flank. The heads that bore them flew at the
-wolves with a cry feebler yet fiercer than their howling snarl, and
-by the cry I knew them: they were cats, led by a huge gray one. I
-could see nothing of him but his eyes, yet I knew him--and so knew
-his colour and bigness. A terrific battle followed, whose tale
-alone came to me through the night. I would have fled, for surely
-it was but a fight which should have me!--only where was the use?
-my first step would be a fall! and my foes of either kind could both
-see and scent me in the dark!
-
-All at once I missed the howling, and the caterwauling grew wilder.
-Then came the soft padding, and I knew it meant flight: the cats
-had defeated the wolves! In a moment the sharpest of sharp teeth
-were in my legs; a moment more and the cats were all over me in a
-live cataract, biting wherever they could bite, furiously scratching
-me anywhere and everywhere. A multitude clung to my body; I could
-not flee. Madly I fell on the hateful swarm, every finger instinct
-with destruction. I tore them off me, I throttled at them in vain:
-when I would have flung them from me, they clung to my hands like
-limpets. I trampled them under my feet, thrust my fingers in their
-eyes, caught them in jaws stronger than theirs, but could not rid
-myself of one. Without cease they kept discovering upon me space
-for fresh mouthfuls; they hauled at my skin with the widespread,
-horribly curved pincers of clutching claws; they hissed and spat in
-my face--but never touched it until, in my despair, I threw myself
-on the ground, when they forsook my body, and darted at my face.
-I rose, and immediately they left it, the more to occupy themselves
-with my legs. In an agony I broke from them and ran, careless
-whither, cleaving the solid dark. They accompanied me in a
-surrounding torrent, now rubbing, now leaping up against me, but
-tormenting me no more. When I fell, which was often, they gave me
-time to rise; when from fear of falling I slackened my pace, they
-flew afresh at my legs. All that miserable night they kept me
-running--but they drove me by a comparatively smooth path, for I
-tumbled into no gully, and passing the Evil Wood without seeing it,
-left it behind in the dark. When at length the morning appeared,
-I was beyond the channels, and on the verge of the orchard valley.
-In my joy I would have made friends with my persecutors, but not a
-cat was to be seen. I threw myself on the moss, and fell fast asleep.
-
-I was waked by a kick, to find myself bound hand and foot, once more
-the thrall of the giants!
-
-"What fitter?" I said to myself; "to whom else should I belong?"
-and I laughed in the triumph of self-disgust. A second kick stopped
-my false merriment; and thus recurrently assisted by my captors, I
-succeeded at length in rising to my feet.
-
-Six of them were about me. They undid the rope that tied my legs
-together, attached a rope to each of them, and dragged me away. I
-walked as well as I could, but, as they frequently pulled both ropes
-at once, I fell repeatedly, whereupon they always kicked me up again.
-Straight to my old labour they took me, tied my leg-ropes to a tree,
-undid my arms, and put the hateful flint in my left hand. Then
-they lay down and pelted me with fallen fruit and stones, but seldom
-hit me. If I could have freed my legs, and got hold of a stick I
-spied a couple of yards from me, I would have fallen upon all six
-of them! "But the Little Ones will come at night!" I said to myself,
-and was comforted.
-
-All day I worked hard. When the darkness came, they tied my hands,
-and left me fast to the tree. I slept a good deal, but woke often,
-and every time from a dream of lying in the heart of a heap of
-children. With the morning my enemies reappeared, bringing their
-kicks and their bestial company.
-
-It was about noon, and I was nearly failing from fatigue and hunger,
-when I heard a sudden commotion in the brushwood, followed by a
-burst of the bell-like laughter so dear to my heart. I gave a loud
-cry of delight and welcome. Immediately rose a trumpeting as of baby-elephants, a neighing as of foals, and a bellowing as of calves,
-and through the bushes came a crowd of Little Ones, on diminutive
-horses, on small elephants, on little bears; but the noises came
-from the riders, not the animals. Mingled with the mounted ones
-walked the bigger of the boys and girls, among the latter a woman with
-a baby crowing in her arms. The giants sprang to their lumbering
-feet, but were instantly saluted with a storm of sharp stones; the
-horses charged their legs; the bears rose and hugged them at the
-waist; the elephants threw their trunks round their necks, pulled
-them down, and gave them such a trampling as they had sometimes
-given, but never received before. In a moment my ropes were undone,
-and I was in the arms, seemingly innumerable, of the Little Ones.
-For some time I saw no more of the giants.
-
-They made me sit down, and my Lona came, and without a word began
-to feed me with the loveliest red and yellow fruits. I sat and ate,
-the whole colony mounting guard until I had done. Then they brought
-up two of the largest of their elephants, and having placed them
-side by side, hooked their trunks and tied their tails together.
-The docile creatures could have untied their tails with a single
-shake, and unhooked their trunks by forgetting them; but tails and
-trunks remained as their little masters had arranged them, and it
-was clear the elephants understood that they must keep their bodies
-parallel. I got up, and laid myself in the hollow between their
-two backs; when the wise animals, counteracting the weight that
-pushed them apart, leaned against each other, and made for me a most
-comfortable litter. My feet, it is true, projected beyond their
-tails, but my head lay pillowed on an ear of each. Then some of
-the smaller children, mounting for a bodyguard, ranged themselves
-in a row along the back of each of my bearers; the whole assembly
-formed itself in train; and the procession began to move.
-
-Whither they were carrying me, I did not try to conjecture; I yielded
-myself to their pleasure, almost as happy as they. Chattering and
-laughing and playing glad tricks innumerable at first, the moment
-they saw I was going to sleep, they became still as judges.
-
-I woke: a sudden musical uproar greeted the opening of my eyes.
-
-We were travelling through the forest in which they found the babies,
-and which, as I had suspected, stretched all the way from the valley
-to the hot stream.
-
-A tiny girl sat with her little feet close to my face, and looked
-down at me coaxingly for a while, then spoke, the rest seeming to
-hang on her words.
-
-"We make a petisson to king," she said.
-
-"What is it, my darling?" I asked.
-
-"Sut eyes one minute," she answered.
-
-"Certainly I will! Here goes!" I replied, and shut my eyes close.
-
-"No, no! not fore I tell oo!" she cried.
-
-I opened them again, and we talked and laughed together for quite
-another hour.
-
-"Close eyes!" she said suddenly.
-
-I closed my eyes, and kept them close. The elephants stood still.
-I heard a soft scurry, a little rustle, and then a silence--for in
-that world SOME silences ARE heard.
-
-"Open eyes!" twenty voices a little way off shouted at once; but
-when I obeyed, not a creature was visible except the elephants that
-bore me. I knew the children marvellously quick in getting out of
-the way--the giants had taught them that; but when I raised myself,
-and looking about in the open shrubless forest, could descry neither
-hand nor heel, I stared in "blank astonishment."
-
-The sun was set, and it was fast getting dark, yet presently a
-multitude of birds began to sing. I lay down to listen, pretty
-sure that, if I left them alone, the hiders would soon come out
-again.
-
-The singing grew to a little storm of bird-voices. "Surely the
-children must have something to do with it!--And yet how could they
-set the birds singing?" I said to myself as I lay and listened.
-Soon, however, happening to look up into the tree under which my
-elephants stood, I thought I spied a little motion among the leaves,
-and looked more keenly. Sudden white spots appeared in the dark
-foliage, the music died down, a gale of childish laughter rippled
-the air, and white spots came out in every direction: the trees were
-full of children! In the wildest merriment they began to descend,
-some dropping from bough to bough so rapidly that I could scarce
-believe they had not fallen. I left my litter, and was instantly
-surrounded--a mark for all the artillery of their jubilant fun.
-With stately composure the elephants walked away to bed.
-
-"But," said I, when their uproarious gladness had had scope for a
-while, "how is it that I never before heard you sing like the birds?
-Even when I thought it must be you, I could hardly believe it!"
-
-"Ah," said one of the wildest, "but we were not birds then! We
-were run-creatures, not fly-creatures! We had our hide-places in
-the bushes then; but when we came to no-bushes, only trees, we had
-to build nests! When we built nests, we grew birds, and when we
-were birds, we had to do birds! We asked them to teach us their
-noises, and they taught us, and now we are real birds!--Come and
-see my nest. It's not big enough for king, but it's big enough for
-king to see me in it!"
-
-I told him I could not get up a tree without the sun to show me the
-way; when he came, I would try.
-
-"Kings seldom have wings!" I added.
-
-"King! king!" cried one, "oo knows none of us hasn't no wings--foolis
-feddery tings! Arms and legs is better."
-
-"That is true. I can get up without wings--and carry straws in my
-mouth too, to build my nest with!"
-
-"Oo knows!" he answered, and went away sucking his thumb.
-
-A moment after, I heard him calling out of his nest, a great way
-up a walnut tree of enormous size,
-
-"Up adain, king! Dood night! I seepy!"
-
-And I heard no more of him till he woke me in the morning.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIII
-
-LONA'S NARRATIVE
-
-I lay down by a tree, and one and one or in little groups, the
-children left me and climbed to their nests. They were always so
-tired at night and so rested in the morning, that they were equally
-glad to go to sleep and to get up again. I, although tired also,
-lay awake: Lona had not bid me good night, and I was sure she would
-come.
-
-I had been struck, the moment I saw her again, with her resemblance
-to the princess, and could not doubt her the daughter of whom Adam
-had told me; but in Lona the dazzling beauty of Lilith was softened
-by childlikeness, and deepened by the sense of motherhood. "She is
-occupied probably," I said to myself, "with the child of the woman
-I met fleeing!" who, she had already told me, was not half mother
-enough.
-
-She came at length, sat down beside me, and after a few moments
-of silent delight, expressed mainly by stroking my face and hands,
-began to tell me everything that had befallen since I went. The
-moon appeared as we talked, and now and then, through the leaves,
-lighted for a quivering moment her beautiful face--full of thought,
-and a care whose love redeemed and glorified it. How such a child
-should have been born of such a mother--such a woman of such a
-princess, was hard to understand; but then, happily, she had two
-parents--say rather, three! She drew my heart by what in me was
-likest herself, and I loved her as one who, grow to what perfection
-she might, could only become the more a child. I knew now that I
-loved her when I left her, and that the hope of seeing her again
-had been my main comfort. Every word she spoke seemed to go straight
-to my heart, and, like the truth itself, make it purer.
-
-She told me that after I left the orchard valley, the giants began
-to believe a little more in the actual existence of their neighbours,
-and became in consequence more hostile to them. Sometimes the
-Little Ones would see them trampling furiously, perceiving or
-imagining some indication of their presence, while they indeed
-stood beside, and laughed at their foolish rage. By and by, however,
-their animosity assumed a more practical shape: they began to
-destroy the trees on whose fruit the Little Ones lived. This drove
-the mother of them all to meditate counteraction. Setting the
-sharpest of them to listen at night, she learned that the giants
-thought I was hidden somewhere near, intending, as soon as I
-recovered my strength, to come in the dark and kill them sleeping.
-Thereupon she concluded that the only way to stop the destruction
-was to give them ground for believing that they had abandoned the
-place. The Little Ones must remove into the forest--beyond the
-range of the giants, but within reach of their own trees, which they
-must visit by night! The main objection to the plan was, that the
-forest had little or no undergrowth to shelter--or conceal them if
-necessary.
-
-But she reflected that where birds, there the Little Ones could
-find habitation. They had eager sympathies with all modes of life,
-and could learn of the wildest creatures: why should they not take
-refuge from the cold and their enemies in the tree-tops? why not,
-having lain in the low brushwood, seek now the lofty foliage? why
-not build nests where it would not serve to scoop hollows? All that
-the birds could do, the Little Ones could learn--except, indeed, to
-fly!
-
-She spoke to them on the subject, and they heard with approval.
-They could already climb the trees, and they had often watched the
-birds building their nests! The trees of the forest, although
-large, did not look bad! They went up much nearer the sky than
-those of the giants, and spread out their arms--some even stretched
-them down--as if inviting them to come and live with them! Perhaps,
-in the top of the tallest, they might find that bird that laid the
-baby-eggs, and sat upon them till they were ripe, then tumbled them
-down to let the little ones out! Yes; they would build sleep-houses
-in the trees, where no giant would see them, for never by any chance
-did one throw back his dull head to look up! Then the bad giants
-would be sure they had left the country, and the Little Ones would
-gather their own apples and pears and figs and mesples and peaches
-when they were asleep!
-
-Thus reasoned the Lovers, and eagerly adopted Lona's suggestion--with
-the result that they were soon as much at home in the tree-tops as
-the birds themselves, and that the giants came ere long to the
-conclusion that they had frightened them out of the country--whereupon
-they forgot their trees, and again almost ceased to believe in the
-existence of their small neighbours.
-
-Lona asked me whether I had not observed that many of the children
-were grown. I answered I had not, but could readily believe it.
-She assured me it was so, but said the certain evidence that their
-minds too had grown since their migration upward, had gone far in
-mitigation of the alarm the discovery had occasioned her.
-
-In the last of the short twilight, and later when the moon was
-shining, they went down to the valley, and gathered fruit enough
-to serve them the next day; for the giants never went out in the
-twilight: that to them was darkness; and they hated the moon: had
-they been able, they would have extinguished her. But soon the
-Little Ones found that fruit gathered in the night was not altogether
-good the next day; so the question arose whether it would not be
-better, instead of pretending to have left the country, to make
-the bad giants themselves leave it.
-
-They had already, she said, in exploring the forest, made
-acquaintance with the animals in it, and with most of them
-personally. Knowing therefore how strong as well as wise and
-docile some of them were, and how swift as well as manageable many
-others, they now set themselves to secure their aid against the
-giants, and with loving, playful approaches, had soon made more
-than friends of most of them, from the first addressing horse or
-elephant as Brother or Sister Elephant, Brother or Sister Horse,
-until before long they had an individual name for each. It was
-some little time longer before they said Brother or Sister Bear,
-but that came next, and the other day she had heard one little
-fellow cry, "Ah, Sister Serpent!" to a snake that bit him as he
-played with it too roughly. Most of them would have nothing to do
-with a caterpillar, except watch it through its changes; but when
-at length it came from its retirement with wings, all would
-immediately address it as Sister Butterfly, congratulating it on
-its metamorphosis--for which they used a word that meant something
-like REPENTANCE--and evidently regarding it as something sacred.
-
-One moonlit evening, as they were going to gather their fruit, they
-came upon a woman seated on the ground with a baby in her lap--the
-woman I had met on my way to Bulika. They took her for a giantess
-that had stolen one of their babies, for they regarded all babies as
-their property. Filled with anger they fell upon her multitudinously,
-beating her after a childish, yet sufficiently bewildering fashion.
-She would have fled, but a boy threw himself down and held her by
-the feet. Recovering her wits, she recognised in her assailants
-the children whose hospitality she sought, and at once yielded the
-baby. Lona appeared, and carried it away in her bosom.
-
-But while the woman noted that in striking her they were careful not
-to hurt the child, the Little Ones noted that, as she surrendered
-her, she hugged and kissed her just as they wanted to do, and came
-to the conclusion that she must be a giantess of the same kind as
-the good giant. The moment Lona had the baby, therefore, they
-brought the mother fruit, and began to show her every sort of
-childish attention.
-
-Now the woman had been in perplexity whither to betake herself, not
-daring to go back to the city, because the princess was certain
-to find out who had lamed her leopardess: delighted with the
-friendliness of the little people, she resolved to remain with them
-for the present: she would have no trouble with her infant, and
-might find some way of returning to her husband, who was rich in
-money and gems, and very seldom unkind to her.
-
-Here I must supplement, partly from conjecture, what Lona told me
-about the woman. With the rest of the inhabitants of Bulika, she
-was aware of the tradition that the princess lived in terror of
-the birth of an infant destined to her destruction. They were
-all unacquainted, however, with the frightful means by which she
-preserved her youth and beauty; and her deteriorating physical
-condition requiring a larger use of those means, they took the
-apparent increase of her hostility to children for a sign that she
-saw her doom approaching. This, although no one dreamed of any
-attempt against her, nourished in them hopes of change.
-
-Now arose in the mind of the woman the idea of furthering the
-fulfilment of the shadowy prediction, or of using the myth at least
-for her own restoration to her husband. For what seemed more
-probable than that the fate foretold lay with these very children?
-They were marvellously brave, and the Bulikans cowards, in abject
-terror of animals! If she could rouse in the Little Ones the
-ambition of taking the city, then in the confusion of the attack,
-she would escape from the little army, reach her house unrecognised,
-and there lying hidden, await the result!
-
-Should the children now succeed in expelling the giants, she would
-begin at once, while they were yet flushed with victory, to suggest
-the loftier aim! By disposition, indeed, they were unfit for
-warfare; they hardly ever quarrelled, and never fought; loved every
-live thing, and hated either to hurt or to suffer. Still, they
-were easily influenced, and could certainly be taught any exercise
-within their strength!--At once she set some of the smaller ones
-throwing stones at a mark; and soon they were all engrossed with
-the new game, and growing skilful in it.
-
-The first practical result was their use of stones in my rescue.
-While gathering fruit, they found me asleep, went home, held a
-council, came the next day with their elephants and horses,
-overwhelmed the few giants watching me, and carried me off. Jubilant
-over their victory, the smaller boys were childishly boastful, the
-bigger boys less ostentatious, while the girls, although their eyes
-flashed more, were not so talkative as usual. The woman of Bulika
-no doubt felt encouraged.
-
-We talked the greater part of the night, chiefly about the growth
-of the children, and what it might indicate. With Lona's power
-of recognising truth I had long been familiar; now I began to be
-astonished at her practical wisdom. Probably, had I been more of
-a child myself, I should have wondered less.
-
-It was yet far from morning when I became aware of a slight
-fluttering and scrambling. I rose on my elbow, and looking about
-me, saw many Little Ones descend from their nests. They disappeared,
-and in a few moments all was again still.
-
-"What are they doing?" I asked.
-
-"They think," answered Lona, "that, stupid as they are, the giants
-will search the wood, and they are gone to gather stones with which
-to receive them. Stones are not plentiful in the forest, and they
-have to scatter far to find enow. They will carry them to their
-nests, and from the trees attack the giants as they come within
-reach. Knowing their habits, they do not expect them before the
-morning. If they do come, it will be the opening of a war of
-expulsion: one or the other people must go. The result, however,
-is hardly doubtful. We do not mean to kill them; indeed, their
-skulls are so thick that I do not think we could!--not that killing
-would do them much harm; they are so little alive! If one were
-killed, his giantess would not remember him beyond three days!"
-
-"Do the children then throw so well that the thing MIGHT happen?"
-I asked.
-
-"Wait till you see them!" she answered, with a touch of pride.
-"--But I have not yet told you," she went on, "of a strange thing
-that happened the night before last!--We had come home from gathering
-our fruit, and were asleep in our nests, when we were roused by
-the horrid noises of beasts fighting. The moon was bright, and
-in a moment our trees glittered with staring little eyes, watching
-two huge leopardesses, one perfectly white, the other covered with
-black spots, which worried and tore each other with I do not know
-how many teeth and claws. To judge by her back, the spotted creature
-must have been climbing a tree when the other sprang upon her. When
-first I saw them, they were just under my own tree, rolling over
-and over each other. I got down on the lowest branch, and saw them
-perfectly. The children enjoyed the spectacle, siding some with
-this one, some with that, for we had never seen such beasts before,
-and thought they were only at play. But by degrees their roaring
-and growling almost ceased, and I saw that they were in deadly
-earnest, and heartily wished neither might be left able to climb a
-tree. But when the children saw the blood pouring from their flanks
-and throats, what do you think they did? They scurried down to
-comfort them, and gathering in a great crowd about the terrible
-creatures, began to pat and stroke them. Then I got down as well,
-for they were much too absorbed to heed my calling to them; but
-before I could reach them, the white one stopped fighting, and sprang
-among them with such a hideous yell that they flew up into the trees
-like birds. Before I got back into mine, the wicked beasts were
-at it again tooth and claw. Then Whitey had the best of it; Spotty
-ran away as fast as she could run, and Whitey came and lay down at
-the foot of my tree. But in a minute or two she was up again, and
-walking about as if she thought Spotty might be lurking somewhere.
-I waked often, and every time I looked out, I saw her. In the
-morning she went away."
-
-"I know both the beasts," I said. "Spotty is a bad beast. She
-hates the children, and would kill every one of them. But Whitey
-loves them. She ran at them only to frighten them away, lest Spotty
-should get hold of any of them. No one needs be afraid of Whitey!"
-
-By this time the Little Ones were coming back, and with much noise,
-for they had no care to keep quiet now that they were at open war
-with the giants, and laden with good stones. They mounted to their
-nests again, though with difficulty because of their burdens, and
-in a minute were fast asleep. Lona retired to her tree. I lay
-where I was, and slept the better that I thought most likely the
-white leopardess was still somewhere in the wood.
-
-I woke soon after the sun, and lay pondering. Two hours passed, and
-then in truth the giants began to appear, in straggling companies of
-three and four, until I counted over a hundred of them. The children
-were still asleep, and to call them would draw the attention of
-the giants: I would keep quiet so long as they did not discover me.
-But by and by one came blundering upon me, stumbled, fell, and rose
-again. I thought he would pass heedless, but he began to search
-about. I sprang to my feet, and struck him in the middle of his
-huge body. The roar he gave roused the children, and a storm as
-of hail instantly came on, of which not a stone struck me, and not
-one missed the giant. He fell and lay. Others drew near, and the
-storm extended, each purblind creature becoming, as he entered the
-range of a garrisoned tree, a target for converging stones. In a
-short time almost every giant was prostrate, and a jubilant pæan of
-bird-song rose from the tops of fifty trees.
-
-Many elephants came hurrying up, and the children descending the
-trees like monkeys, in a moment every elephant had three or four of
-them on his back, and thus loaded, began to walk over the giants,
-who lay and roared. Losing patience at length with their noise,
-the elephants gave them a few blows of their trunks, and left them.
-
-Until night the bad giants remained where they had fallen, silent
-and motionless. The next morning they had disappeared every one,
-and the children saw no more of them. They removed to the other end
-of the orchard valley, and never after ventured into the forest.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIV
-
-PREPARATION
-
-Victory thus gained, the woman of Bulika began to speak about the
-city, and talked much of its defenceless condition, of the wickedness
-of its princess, of the cowardice of its inhabitants. In a few
-days the children chattered of nothing but Bulika, although indeed
-they had not the least notion of what a city was. Then first I
-became aware of the design of the woman, although not yet of its
-motive.
-
-The idea of taking possession of the place, recommended itself
-greatly to Lona--and to me also. The children were now so rapidly
-developing faculty, that I could see no serious obstacle to the
-success of the enterprise. For the terrible Lilith--woman or
-leopardess, I knew her one vulnerable point, her doom through her
-daughter, and the influence the ancient prophecy had upon the
-citizens: surely whatever in the enterprise could be called risk, was
-worth taking! Successful,--and who could doubt their success?--must
-not the Little Ones, from a crowd of children, speedily become a
-youthful people, whose government and influence would be all for
-righteousness? Ruling the wicked with a rod of iron, would they
-not be the redemption of the nation?
-
-At the same time, I have to confess that I was not without views
-of personal advantage, not without ambition in the undertaking. It
-was just, it seemed to me, that Lona should take her seat on the
-throne that had been her mother's, and natural that she should make
-of me her consort and minister. For me, I would spend my life in
-her service; and between us, what might we not do, with such a core
-to it as the Little Ones, for the development of a noble state?
-
-I confess also to an altogether foolish dream of opening a commerce
-in gems between the two worlds--happily impossible, for it could
-have done nothing but harm to both.
-
-Calling to mind the appeal of Adam, I suggested to Lona that to
-find them water might perhaps expedite the growth of the Little
-Ones. She judged it prudent, however, to leave that alone for the
-present, as we did not know what its first consequences might be;
-while, in the course of time, it would almost certainly subject
-them to a new necessity.
-
-"They are what they are without it!" she said: "when we have the
-city, we will search for water!"
-
-We began, therefore, and pushed forward our preparations, constantly
-reviewing the merry troops and companies. Lona gave her attention
-chiefly to the commissariat, while I drilled the little soldiers,
-exercised them in stone-throwing, taught them the use of some other
-weapons, and did all I could to make warriors of them. The main
-difficulty was to get them to rally to their flag the instant the
-call was sounded. Most of them were armed with slings, some of the
-bigger boys with bows and arrows. The bigger girls carried
-aloe-spikes, strong as steel and sharp as needles, fitted to longish
-shafts--rather formidable weapons. Their sole duty was the charge
-of such as were too small to fight.
-
-Lona had herself grown a good deal, but did not seem aware of it:
-she had always been, as she still was, the tallest! Her hair was
-much longer, and she was become almost a woman, but not one beauty
-of childhood had she outgrown. When first we met after our long
-separation, she laid down her infant, put her arms round my neck,
-and clung to me silent, her face glowing with gladness: the child
-whimpered; she sprang to him, and had him in her bosom instantly.
-To see her with any thoughtless, obstinate, or irritable little one,
-was to think of a tender grandmother. I seemed to have known her
-for ages--for always--from before time began! I hardly remembered
-my mother, but in my mind's eye she now looked like Lona; and if I
-imagined sister or child, invariably she had the face of Lona! My
-every imagination flew to her; she was my heart's wife! She hardly
-ever sought me, but was almost always within sound of my voice. What
-I did or thought, I referred constantly to her, and rejoiced to
-believe that, while doing her work in absolute independence, she
-was most at home by my side. Never for me did she neglect the
-smallest child, and my love only quickened my sense of duty. To
-love her and to do my duty, seemed, not indeed one, but inseparable.
-She might suggest something I should do; she might ask me what she
-ought to do; but she never seemed to suppose that I, any more than
-she, would like to do, or could care about anything except what must
-be done. Her love overflowed upon me--not in caresses, but in a
-closeness of recognition which I can compare to nothing but the
-devotion of a divine animal.
-
-I never told her anything about her mother.
-
-The wood was full of birds, the splendour of whose plumage, while
-it took nothing from their song, seemed almost to make up for the
-lack of flowers--which, apparently, could not grow without water.
-Their glorious feathers being everywhere about in the forest, it
-came into my heart to make from them a garment for Lona. While I
-gathered, and bound them in overlapping rows, she watched me with
-evident appreciation of my choice and arrangement, never asking
-what I was fashioning, but evidently waiting expectant the result
-of my work. In a week or two it was finished--a long loose mantle,
-to fasten at the throat and waist, with openings for the arms.
-
-I rose and put it on her. She rose, took it off, and laid it at
-my feet--I imagine from a sense of propriety. I put it again on
-her shoulders, and showed her where to put her arms through. She
-smiled, looked at the feathers a little and stroked them--again
-took it off and laid it down, this time by her side. When she left
-me, she carried it with her, and I saw no more of it for some days.
-At length she came to me one morning wearing it, and carrying
-another garment which she had fashioned similarly, but of the dried
-leaves of a tough evergreen. It had the strength almost of leather,
-and the appearance of scale-armour. I put it on at once, and we
-always thereafter wore those garments when on horseback.
-
-For, on the outskirts of the forest, had appeared one day a troop
-of full-grown horses, with which, as they were nowise alarmed at
-creatures of a shape so different from their own, I had soon made
-friends, and two of the finest I had trained for Lona and myself.
-Already accustomed to ride a small one, her delight was great when
-first she looked down from the back of an animal of the giant kind;
-and the horse showed himself proud of the burden he bore. We
-exercised them every day until they had such confidence in us as
-to obey instantly and fear nothing; after which we always rode them
-at parade and on the march.
-
-The undertaking did indeed at times appear to me a foolhardy one,
-but the confidence of the woman of Bulika, real or simulated,
-always overcame my hesitancy. The princess's magic, she insisted,
-would prove powerless against the children; and as to any force she
-might muster, our animal-allies alone would assure our superiority:
-she was herself, she said, ready, with a good stick, to encounter
-any two men of Bulika. She confessed to not a little fear of the
-leopardess, but I was myself ready for her. I shrank, however, from
-carrying ALL the children with us.
-
-"Would it not be better," I said, "that you remained in the forest
-with your baby and the smallest of the Little Ones?"
-
-She answered that she greatly relied on the impression the sight of
-them would make on the women, especially the mothers.
-
-"When they see the darlings," she said, "their hearts will be taken
-by storm; and I must be there encouraging them to make a stand! If
-there be a remnant of hardihood in the place, it will be found among
-the women!"
-
-"YOU must not encumber yourself," I said to Lona, "with any of the
-children; you will be wanted everywhere!"
-
-For there were two babies besides the woman's, and even on horseback
-she had almost always one in her arms.
-
-"I do not remember ever being without a child to take care of," she
-answered; "but when we reach the city, it shall be as you wish!"
-
-Her confidence in one who had failed so unworthily, shamed me. But
-neither had I initiated the movement, nor had I any ground for
-opposing it; I had no choice, but must give it the best help I
-could! For myself, I was ready to live or die with Lona. Her
-humility as well as her trust humbled me, and I gave myself heartily
-to her purposes.
-
-Our way lying across a grassy plain, there was no need to take food
-for the horses, or the two cows which would accompany us for the
-infants; but the elephants had to be provided for. True, the grass
-was as good for them as for those other animals, but it was short,
-and with their one-fingered long noses, they could not pick enough
-for a single meal. We had, therefore, set the whole colony to
-gather grass and make hay, of which the elephants themselves could
-carry a quantity sufficient to last them several days, with the
-supplement of what we would gather fresh every time we halted. For
-the bears we stored nuts, and for ourselves dried plenty of fruits.
-We had caught and tamed several more of the big horses, and now
-having loaded them and the elephants with these provisions, we were
-prepared to set out.
-
-Then Lona and I held a general review, and I made them a little
-speech. I began by telling them that I had learned a good deal
-about them, and knew now where they came from.
-"We did not come from anywhere," they cried, interrupting me; "we
-are here!"
-
-I told them that every one of them had a mother of his own, like
-the mother of the last baby; that I believed they had all been
-brought from Bulika when they were so small that they could not
-now remember it; that the wicked princess there was so afraid of
-babies, and so determined to destroy them, that their mothers had
-to carry them away and leave them where she could not find them;
-and that now we were going to Bulika, to find their mothers, and
-deliver them from the bad giantess.
-
-"But I must tell you," I continued, "that there is danger before us,
-for, as you know, we may have to fight hard to take the city."
-
-"We can fight! we are ready!" cried the boys.
-
-"Yes, you can," I returned, "and I know you will: mothers are worth
-fighting for! Only mind, you must all keep together."
-
-"Yes, yes; we'll take care of each other," they answered. "Nobody
-shall touch one of us but his own mother!"
-
-"You must mind, every one, to do immediately what your officers tell
-you!"
-
-"We will, we will!--Now we're quite ready! Let us go!"
-
-"Another thing you must not forget," I went on: "when you strike,
-be sure you make it a downright swinging blow; when you shoot an
-arrow, draw it to the head; when you sling a stone, sling it strong
-and straight."
-
-"That we will!" they cried with jubilant, fearless shout.
-
-"Perhaps you will be hurt!"
-
-"We don't mind that!--Do we, boys?"
-
-"Not a bit!"
-
-"Some of you may very possibly be killed!" I said.
-
-"I don't mind being killed!" cried one of the finest of the smaller
-boys: he rode a beautiful little bull, which galloped and jumped like
-a horse.
-
-"I don't either! I don't either!" came from all sides.
-
-Then Lona, queen and mother and sister of them all, spoke from her
-big horse by my side:
-
-"I would give my life," she said, "to have my mother! She might
-kill me if she liked! I should just kiss her and die!"
-
-"Come along, boys!" cried a girl. "We're going to our mothers!"
-
-A pang went through my heart.--But I could not draw back; it would
-be moral ruin to the Little Ones!
-
-
-
-
-Chapter XXXV
-
-THE LITTLE ONES IN BULIKA
-
-It was early in the morning when we set out, making, between the
-blue sky and the green grass, a gallant show on the wide plain. We
-would travel all the morning, and rest the afternoon; then go on at
-night, rest the next day, and start again in the short twilight.
-The latter part of our journey we would endeavour so to divide as
-to arrive at the city with the first of the morning, and be already
-inside the gates when discovered.
-
-It seemed as if all the inhabitants of the forest would migrate with
-us. A multitude of birds flew in front, imagining themselves, no
-doubt, the leading division; great companies of butterflies and
-other insects played about our heads; and a crowd of four-footed
-creatures followed us. These last, when night came, left us almost
-all; but the birds and the butterflies, the wasps and the
-dragon-flies, went with us to the very gates of the city.
-
-We halted and slept soundly through the afternoon: it was our first
-real march, but none were tired. In the night we went faster,
-because it was cold. Many fell asleep on the backs of their beasts,
-and woke in the morning quite fresh. None tumbled off. Some rode
-shaggy, shambling bears, which yet made speed enough, going as fast
-as the elephants. Others were mounted on different kinds of deer,
-and would have been racing all the way had I not prevented it.
-Those atop of the hay on the elephants, unable to see the animals
-below them, would keep talking to them as long as they were awake.
-Once, when we had halted to feed, I heard a little fellow, as he
-drew out the hay to give him, commune thus with his "darling beast":
-
-"Nosy dear, I am digging you out of the mountain, and shall soon
-get down to you: be patient; I'm a coming! Very soon now you'll
-send up your nose to look for me, and then we'll kiss like good
-elephants, we will!"
-
-The same night there burst out such a tumult of elephant-trumpeting,
-horse-neighing, and child-imitation, ringing far over the silent
-levels, that, uncertain how near the city might not be, I quickly
-stilled the uproar lest it should give warning of our approach.
-
-Suddenly, one morning, the sun and the city rose, as it seemed,
-together. To the children the walls appeared only a great mass of
-rock, but when I told them the inside was full of nests of stone,
-I saw apprehension and dislike at once invade their hearts: for the
-first time in their lives, I believe--many of them long little
-lives--they knew fear. The place looked to them bad: how were they
-to find mothers in such a place? But they went on bravely, for they
-had confidence in Lona--and in me too, little as I deserved it.
-
-We rode through the sounding archway. Sure never had such a
-drumming of hoofs, such a padding of paws and feet been heard on
-its old pavement! The horses started and looked scared at the echo
-of their own steps; some halted a moment, some plunged wildly and
-wheeled about; but they were soon quieted, and went on. Some of the
-Little Ones shivered, and all were still as death. The three girls
-held closer the infants they carried. All except the bears and
-butterflies manifested fear.
-
-On the countenance of the woman lay a dark anxiety; nor was I myself
-unaffected by the general dread, for the whole army was on my hands
-and on my conscience: I had brought it up to the danger whose shadow
-was now making itself felt! But I was supported by the thought of
-the coming kingdom of the Little Ones, with the bad giants its
-slaves, and the animals its loving, obedient friends! Alas, I who
-dreamed thus, had not myself learned to obey! Untrusting, unfaithful
-obstinacy had set me at the head of that army of innocents! I was
-myself but a slave, like any king in the world I had left who does
-or would do only what pleases him! But Lona rode beside me a child
-indeed, therefore a free woman--calm, silent, watchful, not a whit
-afraid!
-
-We were nearly in the heart of the city before any of its inhabitants
-became aware of our presence. But now windows began to open, and
-sleepy heads to look out. Every face wore at first a dull stare of
-wonderless astonishment, which, as soon as the starers perceived
-the animals, changed to one of consternation. In spite of their
-fear, however, when they saw that their invaders were almost all
-children, the women came running into the streets, and the men
-followed. But for a time all of them kept close to the houses,
-leaving open the middle of the way, for they durst not approach the
-animals.
-
-At length a boy, who looked about five years old, and was full of
-the idea of his mother, spying in the crowd a woman whose face
-attracted him, threw himself upon her from his antelope, and clung
-about her neck; nor was she slow to return his embrace and kisses.
-But the hand of a man came over her shoulder, and seized him by
-the neck. Instantly a girl ran her sharp spear into the fellow's
-arm. He sent forth a savage howl, and immediately stabbed by two
-or three more, fled yelling.
-
-"They are just bad giants!" said Lona, her eyes flashing as she
-drove her horse against one of unusual height who, having stirred
-up the little manhood in him, stood barring her way with a club.
-He dared not abide the shock, but slunk aside, and the next moment
-went down, struck by several stones. Another huge fellow, avoiding
-my charger, stepped suddenly, with a speech whose rudeness alone
-was intelligible, between me and the boy who rode behind me. The
-boy told him to address the king; the giant struck his little horse
-on the head with a hammer, and he fell. Before the brute could
-strike again, however, one of the elephants behind laid him
-prostrate, and trampled on him so that he did not attempt to get
-up until hundreds of feet had walked over him, and the army was
-gone by.
-
-But at sight of the women what a dismay clouded the face of Lona!
-Hardly one of them was even pleasant to look upon! Were her
-darlings to find mothers among such as these?
-
-Hardly had we halted in the central square, when two girls rode up
-in anxious haste, with the tidings that two of the boys had been
-hurried away by some women. We turned at once, and then first
-discovered that the woman we befriended had disappeared with her
-baby.
-
-But at the same moment we descried a white leopardess come bounding
-toward us down a narrow lane that led from the square to the palace.
-The Little Ones had not forgotten the fight of the two leopardesses
-in the forest: some of them looked terrified, and their ranks began
-to waver; but they remembered the order I had just given them, and
-stood fast.
-
-We stopped to see the result; when suddenly a small boy, called Odu,
-remarkable for his speed and courage, who had heard me speak of the
-goodness of the white leopardess, leaped from the back of his bear,
-which went shambling after him, and ran to meet her. The leopardess,
-to avoid knocking him down, pulled herself up so suddenly that she
-went rolling over and over: when she recovered her feet she found
-the child on her back. Who could doubt the subjugation of a people
-which saw an urchin of the enemy bestride an animal of which they
-lived in daily terror? Confident of the effect on the whole army,
-we rode on.
-
-As we stopped at the house to which our guides led us, we heard a
-scream; I sprang down, and thundered at the door. My horse came
-and pushed me away with his nose, turned about, and had begun to
-batter the door with his heels, when up came little Odu on the
-leopardess, and at sight of her he stood still, trembling. But she
-too had heard the cry, and forgetting the child on her back, threw
-herself at the door; the boy was dashed against it, and fell
-senseless. Before I could reach him, Lona had him in her arms, and
-as soon as he came to himself, set him on the back of his bear,
-which had still followed him.
-
-When the leopardess threw herself the third time against the door,
-it gave way, and she darted in. We followed, but she had already
-vanished. We sprang up a stair, and went all over the house, to
-find no one. Darting down again, we spied a door under the stair,
-and got into a labyrinth of excavations. We had not gone far,
-however, when we met the leopardess with the child we sought across
-her back.
-
-He told us that the woman he took for his mother threw him into a
-hole, saying she would give him to the leopardess. But the
-leopardess was a good one, and took him out.
-
-Following in search of the other boy, we got into the next house
-more easily, but to find, alas, that we were too late: one of the
-savages had just killed the little captive! It consoled Lona,
-however, to learn which he was, for she had been expecting him to
-grow a bad giant, from which worst of fates death had saved him.
-The leopardess sprang upon his murderer, took him by the throat,
-dragged him into the street, and followed Lona with him, like a cat
-with a great rat in her jaws.
-
-"Let us leave the horrible place," said Lona; "there are no mothers
-here! This people is not worth delivering."
-
-The leopardess dropped her burden, and charged into the crowd, this
-way and that, wherever it was thickest. The slaves cried out and
-ran, tumbling over each other in heaps.
-
-When we got back to the army, we found it as we had left it, standing
-in order and ready.
-
-But I was far from easy: the princess gave no sign, and what she
-might be plotting we did not know! Watch and ward must be kept the
-night through!
-
-The Little Ones were such hardy creatures that they could repose
-anywhere: we told them to lie down with their animals where they
-were, and sleep till they were called. In one moment they were
-down, and in another lapt in the music of their sleep, a sound as
-of water over grass, or a soft wind among leaves. Their animals
-slept more lightly, ever on the edge of waking. The bigger boys
-and girls walked softly hither and thither among the dreaming
-multitude. All was still; the whole wicked place appeared at rest.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVI
-
-MOTHER AND DAUGHTER
-
-Lona was so disgusted with the people, and especially with the
-women, that she wished to abandon the place as soon as possible; I,
-on the contrary, felt very strongly that to do so would be to fail
-wilfully where success was possible; and, far worse, to weaken the
-hearts of the Little Ones, and so bring them into much greater
-danger. If we retreated, it was certain the princess would not
-leave us unassailed! if we encountered her, the hope of the prophecy
-went with us! Mother and daughter must meet: it might be that
-Lona's loveliness would take Lilith's heart by storm! if she
-threatened violence, I should be there between them! If I found
-that I had no other power over her, I was ready, for the sake of my
-Lona, to strike her pitilessly on the closed hand! I knew she was
-doomed: most likely it was decreed that her doom should now be
-brought to pass through us!
-
-Still without hint of the relation in which she stood to the
-princess, I stated the case to Lona as it appeared to me. At once
-she agreed to accompany me to the palace.
-
->From the top of one of its great towers, the princess had, in the
-early morning, while the city yet slept, descried the approach of the
-army of the Little Ones. The sight awoke in her an over-mastering
-terror: she had failed in her endeavour to destroy them, and they
-were upon her! The prophecy was about to be fulfilled!
-
-When she came to herself, she descended to the black hall, and
-seated herself in the north focus of the ellipse, under the opening
-in the roof.
-
-For she must think! Now what she called THINKING required a clear
-consciousness of herself, not as she was, but as she chose to
-believe herself; and to aid her in the realisation of this
-consciousness, she had suspended, a little way from and above her,
-itself invisible in the darkness of the hall, a mirror to receive
-the full sunlight reflected from her person. For the resulting
-vision of herself in the splendour of her beauty, she sat waiting
-the meridional sun.
-
-Many a shadow moved about her in the darkness, but as often as, with
-a certain inner eye which she had, she caught sight of one, she
-refused to regard it. Close under the mirror stood the Shadow which
-attended her walks, but, self-occupied, him she did not see.
-
-The city was taken; the inhabitants were cowering in terror; the
-Little Ones and their strange cavalry were encamped in the square;
-the sun shone upon the princess, and for a few minutes she saw
-herself glorious. The vision passed, but she sat on. The night was
-now come, and darkness clothed and filled the glass, yet she did not
-move. A gloom that swarmed with shadows, wallowed in the palace;
-the servants shivered and shook, but dared not leave it because of
-the beasts of the Little Ones; all night long the princess sat
-motionless: she must see her beauty again! she must try again to
-think! But courage and will had grown weary of her, and would dwell
-with her no more!
-
-In the morning we chose twelve of the tallest and bravest of the
-boys to go with us to the palace. We rode our great horses, and
-they small horses and elephants.
-
-The princess sat waiting the sun to give her the joy of her own
-presence. The tide of the light was creeping up the shore of the
-sky, but until the sun stood overhead, not a ray could enter the
-black hall.
-
-He rose to our eyes, and swiftly ascended. As we climbed the steep
-way to the palace, he climbed the dome of its great hall. He looked
-in at the eye of it--and with sudden radiance the princess flashed
-upon her own sight. But she sprang to her feet with a cry of
-despair: alas her whiteness! the spot covered half her side, and
-was black as the marble around her! She clutched her robe, and
-fell back in her chair. The Shadow glided out, and she saw him go.
-
-We found the gate open as usual, passed through the paved grove up
-to the palace door, and entered the vestibule. There in her cage
-lay the spotted leopardess, apparently asleep or lifeless. The
-Little Ones paused a moment to look at her. She leaped up rampant
-against the cage. The horses reared and plunged; the elephants
-retreated a step. The next instant she fell supine, writhed in
-quivering spasms, and lay motionless. We rode into the great hall.
-
-The princess yet leaned back in her chair in the shaft of sunlight,
-when from the stones of the court came to her ears the noise of the
-horses' hoofs. She started, listened, and shook: never had such
-sound been heard in her palace! She pressed her hand to her side,
-and gasped. The trampling came nearer and nearer; it entered the
-hall itself; moving figures that were not shadows approached her
-through the darkness!
-
-For us, we saw a splendour, a glorious woman centring the dark.
-Lona sprang from her horse, and bounded to her. I sprang from mine,
-and followed Lona.
-
-"Mother! mother!" she cried, and her clear, lovely voice echoed in
-the dome.
-
-The princess shivered; her face grew almost black with hate, her
-eyebrows met on her forehead. She rose to her feet, and stood.
-
-"Mother! mother!" cried Lona again, as she leaped on the daïs, and
-flung her arms around the princess.
-
-An instant more and I should have reached them!--in that instant
-I saw Lona lifted high, and dashed on the marble floor. Oh, the
-horrible sound of her fall! At my feet she fell, and lay still.
-The princess sat down with the smile of a demoness.
-
-I dropped on my knees beside Lona, raised her from the stones, and
-pressed her to my bosom. With indignant hate I glanced at the
-princess; she answered me with her sweetest smile. I would have
-sprung upon her, taken her by the throat, and strangled her, but
-love of the child was stronger than hate of the mother, and I
-clasped closer my precious burden. Her arms hung helpless; her
-blood trickled over my hands, and fell on the floor with soft, slow
-little plashes.
-
-The horses scented it--mine first, then the small ones. Mine
-reared, shivering and wild-eyed, went about, and thundered blindly
-down the dark hall, with the little horses after him. Lona's stood
-gazing down at his mistress, and trembling all over. The boys flung
-themselves from their horses' backs, and they, not seeing the black
-wall before them, dashed themselves, with mine, to pieces against
-it. The elephants came on to the foot of the daïs, and stopped,
-wildly trumpeting; the Little Ones sprang upon it, and stood
-horrified; the princess lay back in her seat, her face that of a
-corpse, her eyes alone alive, wickedly flaming. She was again
-withered and wasted to what I found in the wood, and her side was
-as if a great branding hand had been laid upon it. But Lona saw
-nothing, and I saw but Lona.
-
-"Mother! mother!" she sighed, and her breathing ceased.
-
-I carried her into the court: the sun shone upon a white face, and
-the pitiful shadow of a ghostly smile. Her head hung back. She was
-"dead as earth."
-
-I forgot the Little Ones, forgot the murdering princess, forgot
-the body in my arms, and wandered away, looking for my Lona. The
-doors and windows were crowded with brute-faces jeering at me, but
-not daring to speak, for they saw the white leopardess behind me,
-hanging her head close at my heel. I spurned her with my foot.
-She held back a moment, and followed me again.
-
-I reached the square: the little army was gone! Its emptiness roused
-me. Where were the Little Ones, HER Little Ones? I had lost her
-children! I stared helpless about me, staggered to the pillar, and
-sank upon its base.
-
-But as I sat gazing on the still countenance, it seemed to smile a
-live momentary smile. I never doubted it an illusion, yet believed
-what it said: I should yet see her alive! It was not she, it was I
-who was lost, and she would find me!
-
-I rose to go after the Little Ones, and instinctively sought the
-gate by which we had entered. I looked around me, but saw nothing
-of the leopardess.
-
-The street was rapidly filling with a fierce crowd. They saw me
-encumbered with my dead, but for a time dared not assail me. Ere
-I reached the gate, however, they had gathered courage. The women
-began to hustle me; I held on heedless. A man pushed against my
-sacred burden: with a kick I sent him away howling. But the crowd
-pressed upon me, and fearing for the dead that was beyond hurt, I
-clasped my treasure closer, and freed my right arm. That instant,
-however, a commotion arose in the street behind me; the crowd broke;
-and through it came the Little Ones I had left in the palace. Ten
-of them were upon four of the elephants; on the two other elephants
-lay the princess, bound hand and foot, and quite still, save that
-her eyes rolled in their ghastly sockets. The two other Little Ones
-rode behind her on Lona's horse. Every now and then the wise
-creatures that bore her threw their trunks behind and felt her
-cords.
-
-I walked on in front, and out of the city. What an end to the
-hopes with which I entered the evil place! We had captured the bad
-princess, and lost our all-beloved queen! My life was bare! my
-heart was empty!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVII
-
-THE SHADOW
-
-A murmur of pleasure from my companions roused me: they had caught
-sight of their fellows in the distance! The two on Lona's horse
-rode on to join them. They were greeted with a wavering shout--which
-immediately died away. As we drew near, the sound of their sobs
-reached us like the breaking of tiny billows.
-
-When I came among them, I saw that something dire had befallen them:
-on their childish faces was the haggard look left by some strange
-terror. No possible grief could have wrought the change. A few of
-them came slowly round me, and held out their arms to take my burden.
-I yielded it; the tender hopelessness of the smile with which they
-received it, made my heart swell with pity in the midst of its own
-desolation. In vain were their sobs over their mother-queen; in
-vain they sought to entice from her some recognition of their love;
-in vain they kissed and fondled her as they bore her away: she would
-not wake! On each side one carried an arm, gently stroking it; as
-many as could get near, put their arms under her body; those who
-could not, crowded around the bearers. On a spot where the grass
-grew thicker and softer they laid her down, and there all the Little
-Ones gathered sobbing.
-
-Outside the crowd stood the elephants, and I near them, gazing at
-my Lona over the many little heads between. Those next me caught
-sight of the princess, and stared trembling. Odu was the first to
-speak.
-
-"I have seen that woman before!" he whispered to his next neighbour.
-"It was she who fought the white leopardess, the night they woke us
-with their yelling!"
-
-"Silly!" returned his companion. "That was a wild beast, with
-spots!"
-
-"Look at her eyes!" insisted Odu. "I know she is a bad giantess,
-but she is a wild beast all the same. I know she is the spotted
-one!"
-
-The other took a step nearer; Odu drew him back with a sharp pull.
-
-"Don't look at her!" he cried, shrinking away, yet fascinated by the
-hate-filled longing in her eyes. "She would eat you up in a moment!
-It was HER shadow! She is the wicked princess!"
-
-"That cannot be! they said she was beautiful!"
-
-"Indeed it is the princess!" I interposed. "Wickedness has made her
-ugly!"
-
-She heard, and what a look was hers!
-
-"It was very wrong of me to run away!" said Odu thoughtfully.
-
-"What made you run away?" I asked. "I expected to find you where I
-left you!"
-
-He did not reply at once.
-
-"I don't know what made me run," answered another. "I was
-frightened!"
-
-"It was a man that came down the hill from the palace," said a third.
-
-"How did he frighten you?"
-
-"I don't know."
-
-"He wasn't a man," said Odu; "he was a shadow; he had no thick to
-him!"
-
-"Tell me more about him."
-
-"He came down the hill very black, walking like a bad giant, but
-spread flat. He was nothing but blackness. We were frightened the
-moment we saw him, but we did not run away; we stood and watched him.
-He came on as if he would walk over us. But before he reached us,
-he began to spread and spread, and grew bigger end bigger, till at
-last he was so big that he went out of our sight, and we saw him no
-more, and then he was upon us!"
-
-"What do you mean by that?"
-
-"He was all black through between us, and we could not see one
-another; and then he was inside us."
-
-"How did you know he was inside you?"
-
-"He did me quite different. I felt like bad. I was not Odu any
-more--not the Odu I knew. I wanted to tear Sozo to pieces--not
-really, but like!"
-
-He turned and hugged Sozo.
-
-"It wasn't me, Sozo," he sobbed. "Really, deep down, it was Odu,
-loving you always! And Odu came up, and knocked Naughty away. I
-grew sick, and thought I must kill myself to get out of the black.
-Then came a horrible laugh that had heard my think, and it set the
-air trembling about me. And then I suppose I ran away, but I did
-not know I had run away until I found myself running, fast as could,
-and all the rest running too. I would have stopped, but I never
-thought of it until I was out of the gate among the grass. Then I
-knew that I had run away from a shadow that wanted to be me and
-wasn't, and that I was the Odu that loved Sozo. It was the shadow
-that got into me, and hated him from inside me; it was not my own
-self me! And now I know that I ought not to have run away! But
-indeed I did not quite know what I was doing until it was done! My
-legs did it, I think: they grew frightened, and forgot me, and ran
-away! Naughty legs! There! and there!"
-
-Thus ended Odu, with a kick to each of his naughty legs.
-
-"What became of the shadow?" I asked.
-
-"I do not know," he answered. "I suppose he went home into the
-night where there is no moon."
-
-I fell a wondering where Lona was gone, and dropping on the grass,
-took the dead thing in my lap, and whispered in its ear, "Where
-are you, Lona? I love you!" But its lips gave no answer. I kissed
-them, not quite cold, laid the body down again, and appointing a
-guard over it, rose to provide for the safety of Lona's people
-during the night.
-
-Before the sun went down, I had set a watch over the princess
-outside the camp, and sentinels round it: intending to walk about
-it myself all night long, I told the rest of the army to go to sleep.
-They threw themselves on the grass and were asleep in a moment.
-
-When the moon rose I caught a glimpse of something white; it was
-the leopardess. She swept silently round the sleeping camp, and I
-saw her pass three times between the princess and the Little Ones.
-Thereupon I made the watch lie down with the others, and stretched
-myself beside the body of Lona.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVIII
-
-TO THE HOUSE OF BITTERNESS
-
-In the morning we set out, and made for the forest as fast as we
-could. I rode Lona's horse, and carried her body. I would take it
-to her father: he would give it a couch in the chamber of his dead!
-or, if he would not, seeing she had not come of herself, I would
-watch it in the desert until it mouldered away! But I believed he
-would, for surely she had died long ago! Alas, how bitterly must
-I not humble myself before him!
-
-To Adam I must take Lilith also. I had no power to make her repent!
-I had hardly a right to slay her--much less a right to let her loose
-in the world! and surely I scarce merited being made for ever her
-gaoler!
-
-Again and again, on the way, I offered her food; but she answered
-only with a look of hungering hate. Her fiery eyes kept rolling to
-and fro, nor ever closed, I believe, until we reached the other side
-of the hot stream. After that they never opened until we came to
-the House of Bitterness.
-
-One evening, as we were camping for the night, I saw a little girl
-go up to her, and ran to prevent mischief. But ere I could reach
-them, the child had put something to the lips of the princess, and
-given a scream of pain.
-
-"Please, king," she whimpered, "suck finger. Bad giantess make hole
-in it!"
-
-I sucked the tiny finger.
-
-"Well now!" she cried, and a minute after was holding a second fruit
-to a mouth greedy of other fare. But this time she snatched her
-hand quickly away, and the fruit fell to the ground. The child's
-name was Luva.
-
-The next day we crossed the hot stream. Again on their own ground,
-the Little Ones were jubilant. But their nests were still at a
-great distance, and that day we went no farther than the ivy-hall,
-where, because of its grapes, I had resolved to spend the night.
-When they saw the great clusters, at once they knew them good,
-rushed upon them, ate eagerly, and in a few minutes were all fast
-asleep on the green floor and in the forest around the hall. Hoping
-again to see the dance, and expecting the Little Ones to sleep
-through it, I had made them leave a wide space in the middle. I
-lay down among them, with Lona by my side, but did not sleep.
-
-The night came, and suddenly the company was there. I was wondering
-with myself whether, night after night, they would thus go on
-dancing to all eternity, and whether I should not one day have to
-join them because of my stiff-neckedness, when the eyes of the
-children came open, and they sprang to their feet, wide awake.
-Immediately every one caught hold of a dancer, and away they went,
-bounding and skipping. The spectres seemed to see and welcome them:
-perhaps they knew all about the Little Ones, for they had themselves
-long been on their way back to childhood! Anyhow, their innocent
-gambols must, I thought, bring refreshment to weary souls who, their
-present taken from them and their future dark, had no life save
-the shadow of their vanished past. Many a merry but never a rude
-prank did the children play; and if they did at times cause a
-momentary jar in the rhythm of the dance, the poor spectres, who
-had nothing to smile withal, at least manifested no annoyance.
-
-Just ere the morning began to break, I started to see the
-skeleton-princess in the doorway, her eyes open and glowing, the
-fearful spot black on her side. She stood for a moment, then came
-gliding in, as if she would join the dance. I sprang to my feet.
-A cry of repugnant fear broke from the children, and the lights
-vanished. But the low moon looked in, and I saw them clinging to
-each other. The ghosts were gone--at least they were no longer
-visible. The princess too had disappeared. I darted to the spot
-where I had left her: she lay with her eyes closed, as if she had
-never moved. I returned to the hall. The Little Ones were already
-on the floor, composing themselves to sleep.
-
-The next morning, as we started, we spied, a little way from us,
-two skeletons moving about in a thicket. The Little Ones broke
-their ranks, and ran to them. I followed; and, although now walking
-at ease, without splint or ligature, I was able to recognise the
-pair I had before seen in that neighbourhood. The children at once
-made friends with them, laying hold of their arms, and stroking
-the bones of their long fingers; and it was plain the poor creatures
-took their attentions kindly. The two seemed on excellent terms
-with each other. Their common deprivation had drawn them together!
-the loss of everything had been the beginning of a new life to them!
-
-Perceiving that they had gathered handfuls of herbs, and were
-looking for more--presumably to rub their bones with, for in what
-other way could nourishment reach their system so rudimentary?--the
-Little Ones, having keenly examined those they held, gathered of
-the same sorts, and filled the hands the skeletons held out to
-receive them. Then they bid them goodbye, promising to come and
-see them again, and resumed their journey, saying to each other they
-had not known there were such nice people living in the same forest.
-
-When we came to the nest-village, I remained there a night with them,
-to see them resettled; for Lona still looked like one just dead, and
-there seemed no need of haste.
-
-The princess had eaten nothing, and her eyes remained shut: fearing
-she might die ere we reached the end of our journey, I went to her
-in the night, and laid my bare arm upon her lips. She bit into it
-so fiercely that I cried out. How I got away from her I do not know,
-but I came to myself lying beyond her reach. It was then morning,
-and immediately I set about our departure.
-
-Choosing twelve Little Ones, not of the biggest and strongest, but
-of the sweetest and merriest, I mounted them on six elephants, and
-took two more of the wise CLUMSIES, as the children called them, to
-bear the princess. I still rode Lona's horse, and carried her body
-wrapt in her cloak before me. As nearly as I could judge I took
-the direct way, across the left branch of the river-bed, to the
-House of Bitterness, where I hoped to learn how best to cross the
-broader and rougher branch, and how to avoid the basin of monsters:
-I dreaded the former for the elephants, the latter for the children.
-
-I had one terrible night on the way--the third, passed in the desert
-between the two branches of the dead river.
-
-We had stopped the elephants in a sheltered place, and there let
-the princess slip down between them, to lie on the sand until the
-morning. She seemed quite dead, but I did not think she was. I
-laid myself a little way from her, with the body of Lona by my other
-side, thus to keep watch at once over the dead and the dangerous.
-The moon was half-way down the west, a pale, thoughtful moon,
-mottling the desert with shadows. Of a sudden she was eclipsed,
-remaining visible, but sending forth no light: a thick, diaphanous
-film covered her patient beauty, and she looked troubled. The film
-swept a little aside, and I saw the edge of it against her
-clearness--the jagged outline of a bat-like wing, torn and hooked.
-Came a cold wind with a burning sting--and Lilith was upon me. Her
-hands were still bound, but with her teeth she pulled from my
-shoulder the cloak Lona made for me, and fixed them in my flesh. I
-lay as one paralysed.
-
-Already the very life seemed flowing from me into her, when I
-remembered, and struck her on the hand. She raised her head with a
-gurgling shriek, and I felt her shiver. I flung her from me, and
-sprang to my feet.
-
-She was on her knees, and rocked herself to and fro. A second blast
-of hot-stinging cold enveloped us; the moon shone out clear, and I
-saw her face--gaunt and ghastly, besmeared with red.
-
-"Down, devil!" I cried.
-
-"Where are you taking me?" she asked, with the voice of a dull echo
-from a sepulchre.
-
-"To your first husband," I answered.
-
-"He will kill me!" she moaned.
-
-"At least he will take you off my hands!"
-
-"Give me my daughter," she suddenly screamed, grinding her teeth.
-
-"Never! Your doom is upon you at last!"
-
-"Loose my hands for pity's sake!" she groaned. "I am in torture.
-The cords are sunk in my flesh."
-
-"I dare not. Lie down!" I said.
-
-She threw herself on the ground like a log.
-
-The rest of the night passed in peace, and in the morning she again
-seemed dead.
-
-Before evening we came in sight of the House of Bitterness, and the
-next moment one of the elephants came alongside of my horse.
-
-"Please, king, you are not going to that place?" whispered the
-Little One who rode on his neck.
-
-"Indeed I am! We are going to stay the night there," I answered.
-
-"Oh, please, don't! That must be where the cat-woman lives!"
-
-"If you had ever seen her, you would not call her by that name!"
-
-"Nobody ever sees her: she has lost her face! Her head is back and
-side all round."
-
-"She hides her face from dull, discontented people!--Who taught you
-to call her the cat-woman?"
-
-"I heard the bad giants call her so."
-
-"What did they say about her?"
-
-"That she had claws to her toes."
-
-"It is not true. I know the lady. I spent a night at her house."
-
-"But she MAY have claws to her toes! You might see her feet, and
-her claws be folded up inside their cushions!"
-
-"Then perhaps you think that I have claws to my toes?"
-
-"Oh, no; that can't be! you are good!"
-
-"The giants might have told you so!" I pursued.
-
-"We shouldn't believe them about you!"
-
-"Are the giants good?"
-
-"No; they love lying."
-
-"Then why do you believe them about her? I know the lady is good;
-she cannot have claws."
-
-"Please how do you know she is good?"
-
-"How do you know I am good?"
-
-I rode on, while he waited for his companions, and told them what
-I had said.
-
-They hastened after me, and when they came up,--
-
-"I would not take you to her house if I did not believe her good,"
-I said.
-
-"We know you would not," they answered.
-
-"If I were to do something that frightened you--what would you say?"
-
-"The beasts frightened us sometimes at first, but they never hurt
-us!" answered one.
-
-"That was before we knew them!" added another.
-
-"Just so!" I answered. "When you see the woman in that cottage, you
-will know that she is good. You may wonder at what she does, but
-she will always be good. I know her better than you know me. She
-will not hurt you,--or if she does,----"
-
-"Ah, you are not sure about it, king dear! You think she MAY hurt
-us!"
-
-"I am sure she will never be unkind to you, even if she do hurt you!"
-
-They were silent for a while.
-
-"I'm not afraid of being hurt--a little!--a good deal!" cried Odu.
-"But I should not like scratches in the dark! The giants say the
-cat-woman has claw-feet all over her house!"
-
-"I am taking the princess to her," I said.
-
-"Why?"
-
-"Because she is her friend."
-
-"How can she be good then?"
-
-"Little Tumbledown is a friend of the princess," I answered; "so is
-Luva: I saw them both, more than once, trying to feed her with
-grapes!"
-
-"Little Tumbledown is good! Luva is very good!"
-
-"That is why they are her friends."
-
-"Will the cat-woman--I mean the woman that isn't the cat-woman, and
-has no claws to her toes--give her grapes?"
-
-"She is more likely to give her scratches!"
-
-"Why?--You say she is her friend!"
-
-"That is just why.--A friend is one who gives us what we need, and
-the princess is sorely in need of a terrible scratching."
-
-They were silent again.
-
-"If any of you are afraid," I said, "you may go home; I shall not
-prevent you. But I cannot take one with me who believes the giants
-rather than me, or one who will call a good lady the cat-woman!"
-
-"Please, king," said one, "I'm so afraid of being afraid!"
-
-"My boy," I answered, "there is no harm in being afraid. The only
-harm is in doing what Fear tells you. Fear is not your master!
-Laugh in his face and he will run away."
-
-"There she is--in the door waiting for us!" cried one, and put his
-hands over his eyes.
-
-"How ugly she is!" cried another, and did the same.
-
-"You do not see her," I said; "her face is covered!"
-
-"She has no face!" they answered.
-
-"She has a very beautiful face. I saw it once.--It is indeed as
-beautiful as Lona's!" I added with a sigh.
-
-"Then what makes her hide it?"
-
-"I think I know:--anyhow, she has some good reason for it!"
-
-"I don't like the cat-woman! she is frightful!"
-
-"You cannot like, and you ought not to dislike what you have never
-seen.--Once more, you must not call her the cat-woman!"
-
-"What are we to call her then, please?"
-
-"Lady Mara."
-
-"That is a pretty name!" said a girl; "I will call her `lady Mara';
-then perhaps she will show me her beautiful face!"
-
-Mara, drest and muffled in white, was indeed standing in the doorway
-to receive us.
-
-"At last!" she said. "Lilith's hour has been long on the way, but it
-is come! Everything comes. Thousands of years have I waited--and
-not in vain!"
-
-She came to me, took my treasure from my arms, carried it into the
-house, and returning, took the princess. Lilith shuddered, but
-made no resistance. The beasts lay down by the door. We followed
-our hostess, the Little Ones looking very grave. She laid the
-princess on a rough settle at one side of the room, unbound her,
-and turned to us.
-
-"Mr. Vane," she said, "and you, Little Ones, I thank you! This
-woman would not yield to gentler measures; harder must have their
-turn. I must do what I can to make her repent!"
-
-The pitiful-hearted Little Ones began to sob sorely.
-
-"Will you hurt her very much, lady Mara?" said the girl I have just
-mentioned, putting her warm little hand in mine.
-
-"Yes; I am afraid I must; I fear she will make me!" answered Mara.
-"It would be cruel to hurt her too little. It would have all to be
-done again, only worse."
-
-"May I stop with her?"
-
-"No, my child. She loves no one, therefore she cannot be WITH any
-one. There is One who will be with her, but she will not be with
-Him."
-
-"Will the shadow that came down the hill be with her?"
-
-"The great Shadow will be in her, I fear, but he cannot be WITH her,
-or with any one. She will know I am beside her, but that will not
-comfort her."
-
-"Will you scratch her very deep?" asked Odu, going near, and putting
-his hand in hers. "Please, don't make the red juice come!"
-
-She caught him up, turned her back to the rest of us, drew the
-muffling down from her face, and held him at arms' length that he
-might see her.
-
-As if his face had been a mirror, I saw in it what he saw. For
-one moment he stared, his little mouth open; then a divine wonder
-arose in his countenance, and swiftly changed to intense delight.
-For a minute he gazed entranced, then she set him down. Yet a
-moment he stood looking up at her, lost in contemplation--then ran
-to us with the face of a prophet that knows a bliss he cannot tell.
-Mara rearranged her mufflings, and turned to the other children.
-
-"You must eat and drink before you go to sleep," she said; "you have
-had a long journey!"
-
-She set the bread of her house before them, and a jug of cold water.
-They had never seen bread before, and this was hard and dry, but
-they ate it without sign of distaste. They had never seen water
-before, but they drank without demur, one after the other looking
-up from the draught with a face of glad astonishment. Then she led
-away the smallest, and the rest went trooping after her. With her
-own gentle hands, they told me, she put them to bed on the floor of
-the garret.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIX
-
-THAT NIGHT
-
-Their night was a troubled one, and they brought a strange report
-of it into the day. Whether the fear of their sleep came out into
-their waking, or their waking fear sank with them into their dreams,
-awake or asleep they were never at rest from it. All night something
-seemed going on in the house--something silent, something terrible,
-something they were not to know. Never a sound awoke; the darkness
-was one with the silence, and the silence was the terror.
-
-Once, a frightful wind filled the house, and shook its inside, they
-said, so that it quivered and trembled like a horse shaking himself;
-but it was a silent wind that made not even a moan in their chamber,
-and passed away like a soundless sob.
-
-They fell asleep. But they woke again with a great start. They
-thought the house was filling with water such as they had been
-drinking. It came from below, and swelled up until the garret was
-full of it to the very roof. But it made no more sound than the
-wind, and when it sank away, they fell asleep dry and warm.
-
-The next time they woke, all the air, they said, inside and out,
-was full of cats. They swarmed--up and down, along and across,
-everywhere about the room. They felt their claws trying to get
-through the night-gowns lady Mara had put on them, but they could
-not; and in the morning not one of them had a scratch. Through
-the dark suddenly, came the only sound they heard the night long--the
-far-off howl of the huge great-grandmother-cat in the desert: she
-must have been calling her little ones, they thought, for that
-instant the cats stopped, and all was still. Once more they fell
-fast asleep, and did not wake till the sun was rising.
-
-Such was the account the children gave of their experiences. But
-I was with the veiled woman and the princess all through the night:
-something of what took place I saw; much I only felt; and there was
-more which eye could not see, and heart only could in a measure
-understand.
-
-As soon as Mara left the room with the children, my eyes fell on
-the white leopardess: I thought we had left her behind us, but there
-she was, cowering in a corner. Apparently she was in mortal terror
-of what she might see. A lamp stood on the high chimney-piece, and
-sometimes the room seemed full of lamp-shadows, sometimes of cloudy
-forms. The princess lay on the settle by the wall, and seemed never
-to have moved hand or foot. It was a fearsome waiting.
-
-When Mara returned, she drew the settle with Lilith upon it to the
-middle of the room, then sat down opposite me, at the other side of
-the hearth. Between us burned a small fire.
-
-Something terrible was on its way! The cloudy presences flickered
-and shook. A silvery creature like a slowworm came crawling out
-from among them, slowly crossed the clay floor, and crept into the
-fire. We sat motionless. The something came nearer.
-
-But the hours passed, midnight drew nigh, and there was no change.
-The night was very still. Not a sound broke the silence, not a
-rustle from the fire, not a crack from board or beam. Now and again
-I felt a sort of heave, but whether in the earth or in the air or
-in the waters under the earth, whether in my own body or in my
-soul--whether it was anywhere, I could not tell. A dread sense of
-judgment was upon me. But I was not afraid, for I had ceased to
-care for aught save the thing that must be done.
-
-Suddenly it was midnight. The muffled woman rose, turned toward
-the settle, and slowly unwound the long swathes that hid her face:
-they dropped on the ground, and she stepped over them. The feet of
-the princess were toward the hearth; Mara went to her head, and
-turning, stood behind it. Then I saw her face. It was lovely
-beyond speech--white and sad, heart-and-soul sad, but not unhappy,
-and I knew it never could be unhappy. Great tears were running down
-her cheeks: she wiped them away with her robe; her countenance grew
-very still, and she wept no more. But for the pity in every line
-of her expression, she would have seemed severe. She laid her hand
-on the head of the princess--on the hair that grew low on the
-forehead, and stooping, breathed on the sallow brow. The body
-shuddered.
-
-"Will you turn away from the wicked things you have been doing so
-long?" said Mara gently.
-
-The princess did not answer. Mara put the question again, in the
-same soft, inviting tone.
-
-Still there was no sign of hearing. She spoke the words a third
-time.
-
-Then the seeming corpse opened its mouth and answered, its words
-appearing to frame themselves of something else than sound.--I
-cannot shape the thing further: sounds they were not, yet they were
-words to me.
-
-"I will not," she said. "I will be myself and not another!"
-
-"Alas, you are another now, not yourself! Will you not be your real
-self?"
-
-"I will be what I mean myself now."
-
-"If you were restored, would you not make what amends you could for
-the misery you have caused?"
-
-"I would do after my nature."
-
-"You do not know it: your nature is good, and you do evil!"
-
-"I will do as my Self pleases--as my Self desires."
-
-"You will do as the Shadow, overshadowing your Self inclines you?"
-
-"I will do what I will to do."
-
-"You have killed your daughter, Lilith!"
-
-"I have killed thousands. She is my own!"
-
-"She was never yours as you are another's."
-
-"I am not another's; I am my own, and my daughter is mine."
-
-"Then, alas, your hour is come!"
-
-"I care not. I am what I am; no one can take from me myself!"
-
-"You are not the Self you imagine."
-
-"So long as I feel myself what it pleases me to think myself, I care
-not. I am content to be to myself what I would be. What I choose
-to seem to myself makes me what I am. My own thought makes me me;
-my own thought of myself is me. Another shall not make me!"
-
-"But another has made you, and can compel you to see what you have
-made yourself. You will not be able much longer to look to yourself
-anything but what he sees you! You will not much longer have
-satisfaction in the thought of yourself. At this moment you are
-aware of the coming change!"
-
-"No one ever made me. I defy that Power to unmake me from a free
-woman! You are his slave, and I defy you! You may be able to
-torture me--I do not know, but you shall not compel me to anything
-against my will!"
-
-"Such a compulsion would be without value. But there is a light
-that goes deeper than the will, a light that lights up the darkness
-behind it: that light can change your will, can make it truly yours
-and not another's--not the Shadow's. Into the created can pour
-itself the creating will, and so redeem it!"
-
-"That light shall not enter me: I hate it!--Begone, slave!"
-
-"I am no slave, for I love that light, and will with the deeper
-will which created mine. There is no slave but the creature that
-wills against its creator. Who is a slave but her who cries, `I am
-free,' yet cannot cease to exist!"
-
-"You speak foolishness from a cowering heart! You imagine me given
-over to you: I defy you! I hold myself against you! What I choose
-to be, you cannot change. I will not be what you think me--what you
-say I am!"
-
-"I am sorry: you must suffer!"
-
-"But be free!"
-
-"She alone is free who would make free; she loves not freedom who
-would enslave: she is herself a slave. Every life, every will,
-every heart that came within your ken, you have sought to subdue:
-you are the slave of every slave you have made--such a slave that
-you do not know it!--See your own self!"
-
-She took her hand from the head of the princess, and went two
-backward paces from her.
-
-A soundless presence as of roaring flame possessed the house--
-the same, I presume, that was to the children a silent wind.
-Involuntarily I turned to the hearth: its fire was a still small
-moveless glow. But I saw the worm-thing come creeping out,
-white-hot, vivid as incandescent silver, the live heart of essential
-fire. Along the floor it crawled toward the settle, going very
-slow. Yet more slowly it crept up on it, and laid itself, as
-unwilling to go further, at the feet of the princess. I rose and
-stole nearer. Mara stood motionless, as one that waits an event
-foreknown. The shining thing crawled on to a bare bony foot: it
-showed no suffering, neither was the settle scorched where the worm
-had lain. Slowly, very slowly, it crept along her robe until it
-reached her bosom, where it disappeared among the folds.
-
-The face of the princess lay stonily calm, the eyelids closed as
-over dead eyes; and for some minutes nothing followed. At length,
-on the dry, parchment-like skin, began to appear drops as of the
-finest dew: in a moment they were as large as seed-pearls, ran
-together, and began to pour down in streams. I darted forward to
-snatch the worm from the poor withered bosom, and crush it with my
-foot. But Mara, Mother of Sorrow, stepped between, and drew aside
-the closed edges of the robe: no serpent was there--no searing trail;
-the creature had passed in by the centre of the black spot, and was
-piercing through the joints and marrow to the thoughts and intents
-of the heart. The princess gave one writhing, contorted shudder,
-and I knew the worm was in her secret chamber.
-
-"She is seeing herself!" said Mara; and laying her hand on my arm,
-she drew me three paces from the settle.
-
-Of a sudden the princess bent her body upward in an arch, then
-sprang to the floor, and stood erect. The horror in her face made
-me tremble lest her eyes should open, and the sight of them overwhelm
-me. Her bosom heaved and sank, but no breath issued. Her hair hung
-and dripped; then it stood out from her head and emitted sparks;
-again hung down, and poured the sweat of her torture on the floor.
-
-I would have thrown my arms about her, but Mara stopped me.
-
-"You cannot go near her," she said. "She is far away from us, afar
-in the hell of her self-consciousness. The central fire of the
-universe is radiating into her the knowledge of good and evil, the
-knowledge of what she is. She sees at last the good she is not,
-the evil she is. She knows that she is herself the fire in which
-she is burning, but she does not know that the Light of Life is the
-heart of that fire. Her torment is that she is what she is. Do
-not fear for her; she is not forsaken. No gentler way to help her
-was left. Wait and watch."
-
-It may have been five minutes or five years that she stood thus--I
-cannot tell; but at last she flung herself on her face.
-
-Mara went to her, and stood looking down upon her. Large tears
-fell from her eyes on the woman who had never wept, and would not
-weep.
-
-"Will you change your way?" she said at length.
-
-"Why did he make me such?" gasped Lilith. "I would have made
-myself--oh, so different! I am glad it was he that made me and not
-I myself! He alone is to blame for what I am! Never would I have
-made such a worthless thing! He meant me such that I might know it
-and be miserable! I will not be made any longer!"
-
-"Unmake yourself, then," said Mara.
-
-"Alas, I cannot! You know it, and mock me! How often have I not
-agonised to cease, but the tyrant keeps me being! I curse him!--Now
-let him kill me!"
-
-The words came in jets as from a dying fountain.
-
-"Had he not made you," said Mara, gently and slowly, "you could not
-even hate him. But he did not make you such. You have made
-yourself what you are.--Be of better cheer: he can remake you."
-
-"I will not be remade!"
-
-"He will not change you; he will only restore you to what you were."
-
-"I will not be aught of his making."
-
-"Are you not willing to have that set right which you have set
-wrong?"
-
-She lay silent; her suffering seemed abated.
-
-"If you are willing, put yourself again on the settle."
-
-"I will not," she answered, forcing the words through her clenched
-teeth.
-
-A wind seemed to wake inside the house, blowing without sound or
-impact; and a water began to rise that had no lap in its ripples,
-no sob in its swell. It was cold, but it did not benumb. Unseen
-and noiseless it came. It smote no sense in me, yet I knew it
-rising. I saw it lift at last and float her. Gently it bore her,
-unable to resist, and left rather than laid her on the settle. Then
-it sank swiftly away.
-
-The strife of thought, accusing and excusing, began afresh, and
-gathered fierceness. The soul of Lilith lay naked to the torture
-of pure interpenetrating inward light. She began to moan, and sigh
-deep sighs, then murmur as holding colloquy with a dividual self:
-her queendom was no longer whole; it was divided against itself.
-One moment she would exult as over her worst enemy, and weep; the
-next she would writhe as in the embrace of a friend whom her soul
-hated, and laugh like a demon. At length she began what seemed a
-tale about herself, in a language so strange, and in forms so
-shadowy, that I could but here and there understand a little. Yet
-the language seemed the primeval shape of one I knew well, and the
-forms to belong to dreams which had once been mine, but refused to
-be recalled. The tale appeared now and then to touch upon things
-that Adam had read from the disparted manuscript, and often to make
-allusion to influences and forces--vices too, I could not help
-suspecting--with which I was unacquainted.
-
-She ceased, and again came the horror in her hair, the sparkling
-and flowing alternate. I sent a beseeching look to Mara.
-
-"Those, alas, are not the tears of repentance!" she said. "The
-true tears gather in the eyes. Those are far more bitter, and not
-so good. Self-loathing is not sorrow. Yet it is good, for it marks
-a step in the way home, and in the father's arms the prodigal
-forgets the self he abominates. Once with his father, he is to
-himself of no more account. It will be so with her."
-
-She went nearer and said,
-
-"Will you restore that which you have wrongfully taken?"
-
-"I have taken nothing," answered the princess, forcing out the words
-in spite of pain, "that I had not the right to take. My power to
-take manifested my right."
-
-Mara left her.
-
-Gradually my soul grew aware of an invisible darkness, a something
-more terrible than aught that had yet made itself felt. A horrible
-Nothingness, a Negation positive infolded her; the border of its
-being that was yet no being, touched me, and for one ghastly instant
-I seemed alone with Death Absolute! It was not the absence of
-everything I felt, but the presence of Nothing. The princess dashed
-herself from the settle to the floor with an exceeding great and
-bitter cry. It was the recoil of Being from Annihilation.
-
-"For pity's sake," she shrieked, "tear my heart out, but let me
-live!"
-
-With that there fell upon her, and upon us also who watched with
-her, the perfect calm as of a summer night. Suffering had all but
-reached the brim of her life's cup, and a hand had emptied it! She
-raised her head, half rose, and looked around her. A moment more,
-and she stood erect, with the air of a conqueror: she had won the
-battle! Dareful she had met her spiritual foes; they had withdrawn
-defeated! She raised her withered arm above her head, a pæan of
-unholy triumph in her throat--when suddenly her eyes fixed in a
-ghastly stare.--What was she seeing?
-
-I looked, and saw: before her, cast from unseen heavenly mirror,
-stood the reflection of herself, and beside it a form of splendent
-beauty, She trembled, and sank again on the floor helpless. She
-knew the one what God had intended her to be, the other what she
-had made herself.
-
-The rest of the night she lay motionless altogether.
-
-With the gray dawn growing in the room, she rose, turned to Mara,
-and said, in prideful humility, "You have conquered. Let me go into
-the wilderness and bewail myself."
-
-Mara saw that her submission was not feigned, neither was it real.
-She looked at her a moment, and returned:
-
-"Begin, then, and set right in the place of wrong."
-
-"I know not how," she replied--with the look of one who foresaw and
-feared the answer.
-
-"Open thy hand, and let that which is in it go."
-
-A fierce refusal seemed to struggle for passage, but she kept it
-prisoned.
-
-"I cannot," she said. "I have no longer the power. Open it for
-me."
-
-She held out the offending hand. It was more a paw than a hand. It
-seemed to me plain that she could not open it.
-
-Mara did not even look at it.
-
-"You must open it yourself," she said quietly.
-
-"I have told you I cannot!"
-
-"You can if you will--not indeed at once, but by persistent effort.
-What you have done, you do not yet wish undone--do not yet intend
-to undo!"
-
-"You think so, I dare say," rejoined the princess with a flash of
-insolence, "but I KNOW that I cannot open my hand!"
-
-"I know you better than you know yourself, and I know you can. You
-have often opened it a little way. Without trouble and pain you
-cannot open it quite, but you CAN open it. At worst you could beat
-it open! I pray you, gather your strength, and open it wide."
-
-"I will not try what I know impossible. It would be the part of a
-fool!"
-
-"Which you have been playing all your life! Oh, you are hard to
-teach!"
-
-Defiance reappeared on the face of the princess. She turned her back
-on Mara, saying, "I know what you have been tormenting me for! You
-have not succeeded, nor shall you succeed! You shall yet find me
-stronger than you think! I will yet be mistress of myself! I am
-still what I have always known myself--queen of Hell, and mistress
-of the worlds!"
-
-Then came the most fearful thing of all. I did not know what it
-was; I knew myself unable to imagine it; I knew only that if it
-came near me I should die of terror! I now know that it was LIFE
-IN DEATH--life dead, yet existent; and I knew that Lilith had had
-glimpses, but only glimpses of it before: it had never been with
-her until now.
-
-She stood as she had turned. Mara went and sat down by the fire.
-Fearing to stand alone with the princess, I went also and sat again
-by the hearth. Something began to depart from me. A sense of cold,
-yet not what we call cold, crept, not into, but out of my being,
-and pervaded it. The lamp of life and the eternal fire seemed dying
-together, and I about to be left with naught but the consciousness
-that I had been alive. Mercifully, bereavement did not go so far,
-and my thought went back to Lilith.
-
-Something was taking place in her which we did not know. We knew
-we did not feel what she felt, but we knew we felt something of the
-misery it caused her. The thing itself was in her, not in us; its
-reflex, her misery, reached us, and was again reflected in us: she
-was in the outer darkness, we present with her who was in it! We
-were not in the outer darkness; had we been, we could not have been
-WITH her; we should have been timelessly, spacelessly, absolutely
-apart. The darkness knows neither the light nor itself; only the
-light knows itself and the darkness also. None but God hates evil
-and understands it.
-
-Something was gone from her, which then first, by its absence, she
-knew to have been with her every moment of her wicked years. The
-source of life had withdrawn itself; all that was left her of
-conscious being was the dregs of her dead and corrupted life.
-
-She stood rigid. Mara buried her head in her hands. I gazed on
-the face of one who knew existence but not love--knew nor life,
-nor joy, nor good; with my eyes I saw the face of a live death!
-She knew life only to know that it was dead, and that, in her,
-death lived. It was not merely that life had ceased in her, but
-that she was consciously a dead thing. She had killed her life,
-and was dead--and knew it. She must DEATH IT for ever and ever!
-She had tried her hardest to unmake herself, and could not! she was
-a dead life! she could not cease! she must BE! In her face I saw
-and read beyond its misery--saw in its dismay that the dismay behind
-it was more than it could manifest. It sent out a livid gloom;
-the light that was in her was darkness, and after its kind it shone.
-She was what God could not have created. She had usurped beyond
-her share in self-creation, and her part had undone His! She saw
-now what she had made, and behold, it was not good! She was as a
-conscious corpse, whose coffin would never come to pieces, never
-set her free! Her bodily eyes stood wide open, as if gazing into
-the heart of horror essential--her own indestructible evil. Her
-right hand also was now clenched--upon existent Nothing--her
-inheritance!
-
-But with God all things are possible: He can save even the rich!
-
-Without change of look, without sign of purpose, Lilith walked
-toward Mara. She felt her coming, and rose to meet her.
-
-"I yield," said the princess. "I cannot hold out. I am defeated.
---Not the less, I cannot open my hand."
-
-"Have you tried?"
-
-"I am trying now with all my might."
-
-"I will take you to my father. You have wronged him worst of the
-created, therefore he best of the created can help you."
-
-"How can HE help me?"
-
-"He will forgive you."
-
-"Ah, if he would but help me to cease! Not even that am I capable
-of! I have no power over myself; I am a slave! I acknowledge it.
-Let me die."
-
-"A slave thou art that shall one day be a child!" answered
-Mara.--"Verily, thou shalt die, but not as thou thinkest. Thou
-shalt die out of death into life. Now is the Life for, that never
-was against thee!"
-
-Like her mother, in whom lay the motherhood of all the world, Mara
-put her arms around Lilith, and kissed her on the forehead. The
-fiery-cold misery went out of her eyes, and their fountains filled.
-She lifted, and bore her to her own bed in a corner of the room,
-laid her softly upon it, and closed her eyes with caressing hands.
-
-Lilith lay and wept. The Lady of Sorrow went to the door and opened
-it.
-
-Morn, with the Spring in her arms, waited outside. Softly they
-stole in at the opened door, with a gentle wind in the skirts of
-their garments. It flowed and flowed about Lilith, rippling the
-unknown, upwaking sea of her life eternal; rippling and to ripple
-it, until at length she who had been but as a weed cast on the
-dry sandy shore to wither, should know herself an inlet of the
-everlasting ocean, henceforth to flow into her for ever, and ebb
-no more. She answered the morning wind with reviving breath,
-and began to listen. For in the skirts of the wind had come the
-rain--the soft rain that heals the mown, the many-wounded
-grass--soothing it with the sweetness of all music, the hush that
-lives between music and silence. It bedewed the desert places
-around the cottage, and the sands of Lilith's heart heard it, and
-drank it in. When Mara returned to sit by her bed, her tears were
-flowing softer than the rain, and soon she was fast asleep.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XL
-
-THE HOUSE OF DEATH
-
-The Mother of Sorrows rose, muffled her face, and went to call the
-Little Ones. They slept as if all the night they had not moved, but
-the moment she spoke they sprang to their feet, fresh as if new-made.
-Merrily down the stair they followed her, and she brought them where
-the princess lay, her tears yet flowing as she slept. Their glad
-faces grew grave. They looked from the princess out on the rain,
-then back at the princess.
-
-"The sky is falling!" said one.
-
-"The white juice is running out of the princess!" cried another,
-with an awed look.
-
-"Is it rivers?" asked Odu, gazing at the little streams that flowed
-adown her hollow cheeks.
-
-"Yes," answered Mara, "--the most wonderful of all rivers."
-
-"I thought rivers was bigger, and rushed, like a lot of Little Ones,
-making loud noises!" he returned, looking at me, from whom alone he
-had heard of rivers.
-
-"Look at the rivers of the sky!" said Mara. "See how they come
-down to wake up the waters under the earth! Soon will the rivers
-be flowing everywhere, merry and loud, like thousands and thousands
-of happy children. Oh, how glad they will make you, Little Ones!
-You have never seen any, and do not know how lovely is the water!"
-
-"That will be the glad of the ground that the princess is grown
-good," said Odu. "See the glad of the sky!"
-
-"Are the rivers the glad of the princess?" asked Luva. "They are
-not her juice, for they are not red!"
-
-"They are the juice inside the juice," answered Mara.
-
-Odu put one finger to his eye, looked at it, and shook his head.
-
-"Princess will not bite now!" said Luva.
-
-"No; she will never do that again," replied Mara. "--But now we
-must take her nearer home."
-
-"Is that a nest?" asked Sozo.
-
-"Yes; a very big nest. But we must take her to another place first."
-
-"What is that?"
-
-"It is the biggest room in all this world.--But I think it is going
-to be pulled down: it will soon be too full of little nests.--Go
-and get your clumsies."
-
-"Please are there any cats in it?"
-
-"Not one. The nests are too full of lovely dreams for one cat to
-get in."
-
-"We shall be ready in a minute," said Odu, and ran out, followed by
-all except Luva.
-
-Lilith was now awake, and listening with a sad smile.
-
-"But her rivers are running so fast!" said Luva, who stood by her
-side and seemed unable to take her eyes from her face. "Her robe
-is all--I don't know what. Clumsies won't like it!"
-
-"They won't mind it," answered Mara. "Those rivers are so clean
-that they make the whole world clean."
-
-I had fallen asleep by the fire, but for some time had been awake
-and listening, and now rose.
-
-"It is time to mount, Mr. Vane," said our hostess.
-
-"Tell me, please," I said, "is there not a way by which to avoid
-the channels and the den of monsters?"
-
-"There is an easy way across the river-bed, which I will show you,"
-she answered; "but you must pass once more through the monsters."
-
-"I fear for the children," I said.
-
-"Fear will not once come nigh them," she rejoined.
-
-We left the cottage. The beasts stood waiting about the door. Odu
-was already on the neck of one of the two that were to carry the
-princess. I mounted Lona's horse; Mara brought her body, and gave
-it me in my arms. When she came out again with the princess, a cry
-of delight arose from the children: she was no longer muffled!
-Gazing at her, and entranced with her loveliness, the boys forgot
-to receive the princess from her; but the elephants took Lilith
-tenderly with their trunks, one round her body and one round her
-knees, and, Mara helping, laid her along between them.
-
-"Why does the princess want to go?" asked a small boy. "She would
-keep good if she staid here!"
-
-"She wants to go, and she does not want to go: we are helping her,"
-answered Mara. "She will not keep good here."
-
-"What are you helping her to do?" he went on.
-
-"To go where she will get more help--help to open her hand, which
-has been closed for a thousand years."
-
-"So long? Then she has learned to do without it: why should she
-open it now?"
-
-"Because it is shut upon something that is not hers."
-
-"Please, lady Mara, may we have some of your very dry bread before
-we go?" said Luva.
-
-Mara smiled, and brought them four loaves and a great jug of water.
-
-"We will eat as we go," they said. But they drank the water with
-delight.
-
-"I think," remarked one of them, "it must be elephant-juice! It
-makes me so strong!"
-
-We set out, the Lady of Sorrow walking with us, more beautiful than
-the sun, and the white leopardess following her. I thought she
-meant but to put us in the path across the channels, but I soon
-found she was going with us all the way. Then I would have
-dismounted that she might ride, but she would not let me.
-
-"I have no burden to carry," she said. "The children and I will
-walk together."
-
-It was the loveliest of mornings; the sun shone his brightest, and
-the wind blew his sweetest, but they did not comfort the desert,
-for it had no water.
-
-We crossed the channels without difficulty, the children gamboling
-about Mara all the way, but did not reach the top of the ridge over
-the bad burrow until the sun was already in the act of disappearing.
-Then I made the Little Ones mount their elephants, for the moon
-might be late, and I could not help some anxiety about them.
-
-The Lady of Sorrow now led the way by my side; the elephants
-followed--the two that bore the princess in the centre; the
-leopardess brought up the rear; and just as we reached the frightful
-margin, the moon looked up and showed the shallow basin lying before
-us untroubled. Mara stepped into it; not a movement answered her
-tread or the feet of my horse. But the moment that the elephants
-carrying the princess touched it, the seemingly solid earth began
-to heave and boil, and the whole dread brood of the hellish nest was
-commoved. Monsters uprose on all sides, every neck at full length,
-every beak and claw outstretched, every mouth agape. Long-billed
-heads, horribly jawed faces, knotty tentacles innumerable, went out
-after Lilith. She lay in an agony of fear, nor dared stir a finger.
-Whether the hideous things even saw the children, I doubt; certainly
-not one of them touched a child; not one loathly member passed the
-live rampart of her body-guard, to lay hold of her.
-
-"Little Ones," I cried, "keep your elephants close about the
-princess. Be brave; they will not touch you."
-
-"What will not touch us? We don't know what to be brave at!" they
-answered; and I perceived they were unaware of one of the deformities
-around them.
-
-"Never mind then," I returned; "only keep close."
-
-They were panoplied in their blindness! Incapacity to see was their
-safety. What they could nowise be aware of, could not hurt them.
-
-But the hideous forms I saw that night! Mara was a few paces in
-front of me when a solitary, bodiless head bounced on the path
-between us. The leopardess came rushing under the elephants from
-behind, and would have seized it, but, with frightful contortions of
-visage and a loathsome howl, it gave itself a rapid rotatory twist,
-sprang from her, and buried itself in the ground. The death in my
-arms assoiling me from fear, I regarded them all unmoved, although
-never, sure, was elsewhere beheld such a crew accursed!
-
-Mara still went in front of me, and the leopardess now walked close
-behind her, shivering often, for it was very cold, when suddenly
-the ground before me to my left began to heave, and a low wave of
-earth came slinking toward us. It rose higher as it drew hear; out
-of it slouched a dreadful head with fleshy tubes for hair, and
-opening a great oval mouth, snapped at me. The leopardess sprang,
-but fell baffled beyond it.
-
-Almost under our feet, shot up the head of an enormous snake, with
-a lamping wallowing glare in its eyes. Again the leopardess rushed
-to the attack, but found nothing. At a third monster she darted
-with like fury, and like failure--then sullenly ceased to heed
-the phantom-horde. But I understood the peril and hastened the
-crossing--the rather that the moon was carrying herself strangely.
-Even as she rose she seemed ready to drop and give up the attempt
-as hopeless; and since, I saw her sink back once fully her own
-breadth. The arc she made was very low, and now she had begun to
-descend rapidly.
-
-We were almost over, when, between us and the border of the basin,
-arose a long neck, on the top of which, like the blossom of some
-Stygian lily, sat what seemed the head of a corpse, its mouth half
-open, and full of canine teeth. I went on; it retreated, then drew
-aside. The lady stepped on the firm land, but the leopardess
-between us, roused once more, turned, and flew at the throat of
-the terror. I remained where I was to see the elephants, with the
-princess and the children, safe on the bank. Then I turned to look
-after the leopardess. That moment the moon went down, For an instant
-I saw the leopardess and the snake-monster convolved in a cloud of
-dust; then darkness hid them. Trembling with fright, my horse
-wheeled, and in three bounds overtook the elephants.
-
-As we came up with them, a shapeless jelly dropped on the princess.
-A white dove dropped immediately on the jelly, stabbing it with its
-beak. It made a squelching, sucking sound, and fell off. Then I
-heard the voice of a woman talking with Mara, and I knew the voice.
-
-"I fear she is dead!" said Mara.
-
-"I will send and find her," answered the mother. "But why, Mara,
-shouldst thou at all fear for her or for any one? Death cannot hurt
-her who dies doing the work given her to do."
-
-"I shall miss her sorely; she is good and wise. Yet I would not
-have her live beyond her hour!"
-
-"She has gone down with the wicked; she will rise with the righteous.
-We shall see her again ere very long."
-
-"Mother," I said, although I did not see her, "we come to you many,
-but most of us are Little Ones. Will you be able to receive us all?"
-
-"You are welcome every one," she answered. "Sooner or later all
-will be little ones, for all must sleep in my house! It is well
-with those that go to sleep young and willing!--My husband is even
-now preparing her couch for Lilith. She is neither young nor quite
-willing, but it is well indeed that she is come."
-
-I heard no more. Mother and daughter had gone away together through
-the dark. But we saw a light in the distance, and toward it we
-went stumbling over the moor.
-
-Adam stood in the door, holding the candle to guide us, and talking
-with his wife, who, behind him, laid bread and wine on the table
-within.
-
-"Happy children," I heard her say, "to have looked already on the
-face of my daughter! Surely it is the loveliest in the great
-world!"
-
-When we reached the door, Adam welcomed us almost merrily. He set
-the candle on the threshold, and going to the elephants, would have
-taken the princess to carry her in; but she repulsed him, and
-pushing her elephants asunder, stood erect between them. They
-walked from beside her, and left her with him who had been her
-husband--ashamed indeed of her gaunt uncomeliness, but unsubmissive.
-He stood with a welcome in his eyes that shone through their
-severity.
-
-"We have long waited for thee, Lilith!" he said.
-
-She returned him no answer.
-
-Eve and her daughter came to the door.
-
-"The mortal foe of my children!" murmured Eve, standing radiant in
-her beauty.
-
-"Your children are no longer in her danger," said Mara; "she has
-turned from evil."
-
-"Trust her not hastily, Mara," answered her mother; "she has deceived
-a multitude!"
-
-"But you will open to her the mirror of the Law of Liberty, mother,
-that she may go into it, and abide in it! She consents to open
-her hand and restore: will not the great Father restore her to
-inheritance with His other children?"
-
-"I do not know Him!" murmured Lilith, in a voice of fear and doubt.
-
-"Therefore it is that thou art miserable," said Adam.
-
-"I will go back whence I came!" she cried, and turned, wringing her
-hands, to depart.
-
-"That is indeed what I would have thee do, where I would have thee
-go--to Him from whom thou camest! In thy agony didst thou not cry
-out for Him?"
-
-"I cried out for Death--to escape Him and thee!"
-
-"Death is even now on his way to lead thee to Him. Thou knowest
-neither Death nor the Life that dwells in Death! Both befriend thee.
-I am dead, and would see thee dead, for I live and love thee. Thou
-art weary and heavy-laden: art thou not ashamed? Is not the being
-thou hast corrupted become to thee at length an evil thing? Wouldst
-thou yet live on in disgrace eternal? Cease thou canst not: wilt
-thou not be restored and BE?"
-
-She stood silent with bowed head.
-
-"Father," said Mara, "take her in thine arms, and carry her to her
-couch. There she will open her hand, and die into life."
-
-"I will walk," said the princess.
-
-Adam turned and led the way. The princess walked feebly after him
-into the cottage.
-
-Then Eve came out to me where I sat with Lona in my bosom. She
-reached up her arms, took her from me, and carried her in. I
-dismounted, and the children also. The horse and the elephants
-stood shivering; Mara patted and stroked them every one; they lay
-down and fell asleep. She led us into the cottage, and gave the
-Little Ones of the bread and wine on the table. Adam and Lilith
-were standing there together, but silent both.
-
-Eve came from the chamber of death, where she had laid Lona down,
-and offered of the bread and wine to the princess.
-
-"Thy beauty slays me! It is death I would have, not food!" said
-Lilith, and turned from her.
-
-"This food will help thee to die," answered Eve.
-
-But Lilith would not taste of it.
-
-"If thou wilt nor eat nor drink, Lilith," said Adam, "come and see
-the place where thou shalt lie in peace."
-
-He led the way through the door of death, and she followed
-submissive. But when her foot crossed the threshold she drew it
-back, and pressed her hand to her bosom, struck through with the
-cold immortal.
-
-A wild blast fell roaring on the roof, and died away in a moan.
-She stood ghastly with terror.
-
-"It is he!" said her voiceless lips: I read their motion.
-
-"Who, princess!" I whispered.
-
-"The great Shadow," she murmured.
-
-"Here he cannot enter," said Adam. "Here he can hurt no one. Over
-him also is power given me."
-
-"Are the children in the house?" asked Lilith, and at the word the
-heart of Eve began to love her.
-
-"He never dared touch a child," she said. "Nor have you either
-ever hurt a child. Your own daughter you have but sent into the
-loveliest sleep, for she was already a long time dead when you slew
-her. And now Death shall be the atonemaker; you shall sleep
-together."
-
-"Wife," said Adam, "let us first put the children to bed, that she
-may see them safe!"
-
-He came back to fetch them. As soon as he was gone, the princess
-knelt to Eve, clasped her knees, and said,
-
-"Beautiful Eve, persuade your husband to kill me: to you he will
-listen! Indeed I would but cannot open my hand."
-
-"You cannot die without opening it. To kill you would not serve
-you," answered Eve. "But indeed he cannot! no one can kill you but
-the Shadow; and whom he kills never knows she is dead, but lives to
-do his will, and thinks she is doing her own."
-
-"Show me then to my grave; I am so weary I can live no longer. I
-must go to the Shadow--yet I would not!"
-
-She did not, could not understand!
-
-She struggled to rise, but fell at the feet of Eve. The Mother
-lifted, and carried her inward.
-
-I followed Adam and Mara and the children into the chamber of death.
-We passed Eve with Lilith in her arms, and went farther in.
-
-"You shall not go to the Shadow," I heard Eve say, as we passed
-them. "Even now is his head under my heel!"
-
-The dim light in Adam's hand glimmered on the sleeping faces, and
-as he went on, the darkness closed over them. The very air seemed
-dead: was it because none of the sleepers breathed it? Profoundest
-sleep filled the wide place. It was as if not one had waked since
-last I was there, for the forms I had then noted lay there still.
-My father was just as I had left him, save that he seemed yet nearer
-to a perfect peace. The woman beside him looked younger.
-
-The darkness, the cold, the silence, the still air, the faces of
-the lovely dead, made the hearts of the children beat softly, but
-their little tongues would talk--with low, hushed voices.
-
-"What a curious place to sleep in!" said one, "I would rather be
-in my nest!"
-"It is SO cold!" said another.
-
-"Yes, it is cold," answered our host; "but you will not be cold in
-your sleep."
-
-"Where are our nests?" asked more than one, looking round and seeing
-no couch unoccupied.
-
-"Find places, and sleep where you choose," replied Adam.
-
-Instantly they scattered, advancing fearlessly beyond the light,
-but we still heard their gentle voices, and it was plain they saw
-where I could not.
-
-"Oh," cried one, "here is such a beautiful lady!--may I sleep beside
-her? I will creep in quietly, and not wake her."
-
-"Yes, you may," answered the voice of Eve behind us; and we came to
-the couch while the little fellow was yet creeping slowly and softly
-under the sheet. He laid his head beside the lady's, looked up at
-us, and was still. His eyelids fell; he was asleep.
-
-We went a little farther, and there was another who had climbed up
-on the couch of a woman.
-
-"Mother! mother!" he cried, kneeling over her, his face close to
-hers. "--She's so cold she can't speak," he said, looking up to us;
-"but I will soon make her warm!"
-
-He lay down, and pressing close to her, put his little arm over her.
-In an instant he too was asleep, smiling an absolute content.
-
-We came to a third Little One; it was Luva. She stood on tiptoe,
-leaning over the edge of a couch.
-
-"My own mother wouldn't have me," she said softly: "will you?"
-
-Receiving no reply, she looked up at Eve. The great mother lifted
-her to the couch, and she got at once under the snowy covering.
-
-Each of the Little Ones had by this time, except three of the boys,
-found at least an unobjecting bedfellow, and lay still and white
-beside a still, white woman. The little orphans had adopted
-mothers! One tiny girl had chosen a father to sleep with, and that
-was mine. A boy lay by the side of the beautiful matron with the
-slow-healing hand. On the middle one of the three couches hitherto
-unoccupied, lay Lona.
-
-Eve set Lilith down beside it. Adam pointed to the vacant couch
-on Lona's right hand, and said,
-
-"There, Lilith, is the bed I have prepared for you!"
-
-She glanced at her daughter lying before her like a statue carved
-in semi-transparent alabaster, and shuddered from head to foot. "How
-cold it is!" she murmured.
-
-"You will soon begin to find comfort in the cold," answered Adam.
-
-"Promises to the dying are easy!" she said.
-
-"But I know it: I too have slept. I am dead!"
-
-"I believed you dead long ago; but I see you alive!"
-
-"More alive than you know, or are able to understand. I was scarce
-alive when first you knew me. Now I have slept, and am awake; I am
-dead, and live indeed!"
-
-"I fear that child," she said, pointing to Lona: "she will rise and
-terrify me!"
-
-"She is dreaming love to you."
-
-"But the Shadow!" she moaned; "I fear the Shadow! he will be wroth
-with me!"
-
-"He at sight of whom the horses of heaven start and rear, dares not
-disturb one dream in this quiet chamber!"
-
-"I shall dream then?"
-
-"You will dream."
-
-"What dreams?"
-
-"That I cannot tell, but none HE can enter into. When the Shadow
-comes here, it will be to lie down and sleep also.--His hour will
-come, and he knows it will."
-
-"How long shall I sleep?"
-
-"You and he will be the last to wake in the morning of the universe."
-
-The princess lay down, drew the sheet over her, stretched herself
-out straight, and lay still with open eyes.
-
-Adam turned to his daughter. She drew near.
-
-"Lilith," said Mara, "you will not sleep, if you lie there a thousand
-years, until you have opened your hand, and yielded that which is
-not yours to give or to withhold."
-
-"I cannot," she answered. "I would if I could, and gladly, for I
-am weary, and the shadows of death are gathering about me."
-
-"They will gather and gather, but they cannot infold you while yet
-your hand remains unopened. You may think you are dead, but it will
-be only a dream; you may think you have come awake, but it will still
-be only a dream. Open your hand, and you will sleep indeed--then
-wake indeed."
-
-"I am trying hard, but the fingers have grown together and into the
-palm."
-
-"I pray you put forth the strength of your will. For the love of
-life, draw together your forces and break its bonds!"
-
-"I have struggled in vain; I can do no more. I am very weary, and
-sleep lies heavy upon my lids."
-
-"The moment you open your hand, you will sleep. Open it, and make
-an end."
-
-A tinge of colour arose in the parchment-like face; the contorted
-hand trembled with agonised effort. Mara took it, and sought to
-aid her.
-
-"Hold, Mara!" cried her father. "There is danger!"
-
-The princess turned her eyes upon Eve, beseechingly.
-
-"There was a sword I once saw in your husband's hands," she murmured.
-"I fled when I saw it. I heard him who bore it say it would divide
-whatever was not one and indivisible!"
-
-"I have the sword," said Adam. "The angel gave it me when he left
-the gate."
-
-"Bring it, Adam," pleaded Lilith, "and cut me off this hand that I
-may sleep."
-
-"I will," he answered.
-
-He gave the candle to Eve, and went. The princess closed her eyes.
-
-In a few minutes Adam returned with an ancient weapon in his hand.
-The scabbard looked like vellum grown dark with years, but the hilt
-shone like gold that nothing could tarnish. He drew out the blade.
-It flashed like a pale blue northern streamer, and the light of it
-made the princess open her eyes. She saw the sword, shuddered, and
-held out her hand. Adam took it. The sword gleamed once, there
-was one little gush of blood, and he laid the severed hand in Mara's
-lap. Lilith had given one moan, and was already fast asleep. Mara
-covered the arm with the sheet, and the three turned away.
-
-"Will you not dress the wound?" I said.
-
-"A wound from that sword," answered Adam, "needs no dressing. It
-is healing and not hurt."
-
-"Poor lady!" I said, "she will wake with but one hand!"
-
-"Where the dead deformity clung," replied Mara, "the true, lovely
-hand is already growing."
-
-We heard a childish voice behind us, and turned again. The candle
-in Eve's hand shone on the sleeping face of Lilith, and the waking
-faces of the three Little Ones, grouped on the other side of her
-couch.
-"How beautiful she is grown!" said one of them.
-
-"Poor princess!" said another; "I will sleep with her. She will
-not bite any more!"
-
-As he spoke he climbed into her bed, and was immediately fast asleep.
-Eve covered him with the sheet.
-
-"I will go on her other side," said the third. "She shall have two
-to kiss her when she wakes!"
-
-"And I am left alone!" said the first mournfully.
-
-"I will put you to bed," said Eve.
-
-She gave the candle to her husband, and led the child away.
-
-We turned once more to go back to the cottage. I was very sad, for
-no one had offered me a place in the house of the dead. Eve joined
-us as we went, and walked on before with her husband. Mara by my
-side carried the hand of Lilith in the lap of her robe.
-
-"Ah, you have found her!" we heard Eve say as we stepped into the
-cottage.
-
-The door stood open; two elephant-trunks came through it out of the
-night beyond.
-
-"I sent them with the lantern," she went on to her husband, "to look
-for Mara's leopardess: they have brought her."
-
-I followed Adam to the door, and between us we took the white
-creature from the elephants, and carried her to the chamber we had
-just left, the women preceding us, Eve with the light, and Mara
-still carrying the hand. There we laid the beauty across the feet
-of the princess, her fore-paws outstretched, and her head couching
-between them.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLI
-
-I AM SENT
-
-Then I turned and said to Eve,
-
-"Mother, one couch next to Lona is empty: I know I am unworthy, but
-may I not sleep this night in your chamber with my dead? Will you
-not pardon both my cowardice and my self-confidence, and take me in?
-I give me up. I am sick of myself, and would fain sleep the sleep!"
-
-"The couch next to Lona is the one already prepared for you," she
-answered; "but something waits to be done ere you sleep."
-
-"I am ready," I replied.
-
-"How do you know you can do it?" she asked with a smile.
-
-"Because you require it," I answered. "What is it?"
-
-She turned to Adam:
-
-"Is he forgiven, husband?"
-
-"From my heart."
-
-"Then tell him what he has to do."
-
-Adam turned to his daughter.
-
-"Give me that hand, Mara, my child."
-
-She held it out to him in her lap. He took it tenderly.
-
-"Let us go to the cottage," he said to me; "there I will instruct
-you."
-
-As we went, again arose a sudden stormful blast, mingled with a
-great flapping on the roof, but it died away as before in a deep
-moan.
-
-When the door of the death-chamber was closed behind us, Adam seated
-himself, and I stood before him.
-
-"You will remember," he said, "how, after leaving my daughter's
-house, you came to a dry rock, bearing the marks of an ancient
-cataract; you climbed that rock, and found a sandy desert: go to
-that rock now, and from its summit walk deep into the desert. But
-go not many steps ere you lie down, and listen with your head on
-the sand. If you hear the murmur of water beneath, go a little
-farther, and listen again. If you still hear the sound, you are
-in the right direction. Every few yards you must stop, lie down,
-and hearken. If, listening thus, at any time you hear no sound of
-water, you are out of the way, and must hearken in every direction
-until you hear it again. Keeping with the sound, and careful not
-to retrace your steps, you will soon hear it louder, and the growing
-sound will lead you to where it is loudest: that is the spot you
-seek. There dig with the spade I will give you, and dig until you
-come to moisture: in it lay the hand, cover it to the level of the
-desert, and come home.--But give good heed, and carry the hand with
-care. Never lay it down, in what place of seeming safety soever;
-let nothing touch it; stop nor turn aside for any attempt to bar
-your way; never look behind you; speak to no one, answer no one,
-walk straight on.--It is yet dark, and the morning is far distant,
-but you must set out at once."
-
-He gave me the hand, and brought me a spade.
-
-"This is my gardening spade," he said; "with it I have brought many
-a lovely thing to the sun."
-
-I took it, and went out into the night.
-
-It was very cold, and pitch-dark. To fall would be a dread thing,
-and the way I had to go was a difficult one even in the broad
-sunlight! But I had not set myself the task, and the minute I
-started I learned that I was left to no chance: a pale light broke
-from the ground at every step, and showed me where next to set my
-foot. Through the heather and the low rocks I walked without once
-even stumbling. I found the bad burrow quite still; not a wave
-arose, not a head appeared as I crossed it.
-
-A moon came, and herself showed me the easy way: toward morning I was
-almost over the dry channels of the first branch of the river-bed,
-and not far, I judged, from Mara's cottage.
-
-The moon was very low, and the sun not yet up, when I saw before me
-in the path, here narrowed by rocks, a figure covered from head to
-foot as with a veil of moonlit mist. I kept on my way as if I saw
-nothing. The figure threw aside its veil.
-
-"Have you forgotten me already?" said the princess--or what seemed
-she.
-
-I neither hesitated nor answered; I walked straight on.
-
-"You meant then to leave me in that horrible sepulchre! Do you not
-yet understand that where I please to be, there I am? Take my hand:
-I am alive as you!"
-
-I was on the point of saying, "Give me your left hand," but bethought
-myself, held my peace, and steadily advanced.
-
-"Give me my hand," she suddenly shrieked, "or I will tear you in
-pieces: you are mine!"
-
-She flung herself upon me. I shuddered, but did not falter. Nothing
-touched me, and I saw her no more.
-
-With measured tread along the path, filling it for some distance,
-came a body of armed men. I walked through them--nor know whether
-they gave way to me, or were bodiless things. But they turned and
-followed me; I heard and felt their march at my very heels; but I
-cast no look behind, and the sound of their steps and the clash of
-their armour died away.
-
-A little farther on, the moon being now close to the horizon and
-the way in deep shadow, I descried, seated where the path was so
-narrow that I could not pass her, a woman with muffled face.
-
-"Ah," she said, "you are come at last! I have waited here for you
-an hour or more! You have done well! Your trial is over. My father
-sent me to meet you that you might have a little rest on the way.
-Give me your charge, and lay your head in my lap; I will take good
-care of both until the sun is well risen. I am not bitterness
-always, neither to all men!"
-
-Her words were terrible with temptation, for I was very weary. And
-what more likely to be true! If I were, through slavish obedience
-to the letter of the command and lack of pure insight, to trample
-under my feet the very person of the Lady of Sorrow! My heart grew
-faint at the thought, then beat as if it would burst my bosom.
-
-Nevertheless my will hardened itself against my heart, and my step
-did not falter. I took my tongue between my teeth lest I should
-unawares answer, and kept on my way. If Adam had sent her, he could
-not complain that I would not heed her! Nor would the Lady of Sorrow
-love me the less that even she had not been able to turn me aside!
-
-Just ere I reached the phantom, she pulled the covering from her
-face: great indeed was her loveliness, but those were not Mara's
-eyes! no lie could truly or for long imitate them! I advanced as if
-the thing were not there, and my foot found empty room.
-
-I had almost reached the other side when a Shadow--I think it was
-The Shadow, barred my way. He seemed to have a helmet upon his head,
-but as I drew closer I perceived it was the head itself I saw--so
-distorted as to bear but a doubtful resemblance to the human. A
-cold wind smote me, dank and sickening--repulsive as the air of a
-charnel-house; firmness forsook my joints, and my limbs trembled as
-if they would drop in a helpless heap. I seemed to pass through
-him, but I think now that he passed through me: for a moment I was
-as one of the damned. Then a soft wind like the first breath of a
-new-born spring greeted me, and before me arose the dawn.
-
-My way now led me past the door of Mara's cottage. It stood wide
-open, and upon the table I saw a loaf of bread and a pitcher of
-water. In or around the cottage was neither howl nor wail.
-
-I came to the precipice that testified to the vanished river. I
-climbed its worn face, and went on into the desert. There at last,
-after much listening to and fro, I determined the spot where the
-hidden water was loudest, hung Lilith's hand about my neck, and began
-to dig. It was a long labour, for I had to make a large hole because
-of the looseness of the sand; but at length I threw up a damp
-spadeful. I flung the sexton-tool on the verge, and laid down the
-hand. A little water was already oozing from under its fingers. I
-sprang out, and made haste to fill the grave. Then, utterly
-fatigued, I dropped beside it, and fell asleep.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLII
-
-I SLEEP THE SLEEP
-
-When I woke, the ground was moist about me, and my track to the
-grave was growing a quicksand. In its ancient course the river was
-swelling, and had begun to shove at its burden. Soon it would be
-roaring down the precipice, and, divided in its fall, rushing with
-one branch to resubmerge the orchard valley, with the other to drown
-perhaps the monster horde, and between them to isle the Evil Wood.
-I set out at once on my return to those who sent me.
-
-When I came to the precipice, I took my way betwixt the branches,
-for I would pass again by the cottage of Mara, lest she should have
-returned: I longed to see her once more ere I went to sleep; and
-now I knew where to cross the channels, even if the river should
-have overtaken me and filled them. But when I reached it, the door
-stood open still; the bread and the water were still on the table;
-and deep silence was within and around it. I stopped and called
-aloud at the door, but no voice replied, and I went my way.
-
-A little farther, I came where sat a grayheaded man on the sand,
-weeping.
-
-"What ails you, sir?" I asked. "Are you forsaken?"
-
-"I weep," he answered, "because they will not let me die. I have
-been to the house of death, and its mistress, notwithstanding my
-years, refuses me. Intercede for me, sir, if you know her, I pray
-you."
-
-"Nay, sir," I replied, "that I cannot; for she refuses none whom it
-is lawful for her to receive."
-
-"How know you this of her? You have never sought death! you are
-much too young to desire it!"
-
-"I fear your words may indicate that, were you young again, neither
-would you desire it."
-
-"Indeed, young sir, I would not! and certain I am that you cannot."
-
-"I may not be old enough to desire to die, but I am young enough to
-desire to live indeed! Therefore I go now to learn if she will at
-length take me in. You wish to die because you do not care to live:
-she will not open her door to you, for no one can die who does not
-long to live."
-
-"It ill becomes your youth to mock a friendless old man. Pray,
-cease your riddles!"
-
-"Did not then the Mother tell you something of the same sort?"
-
-"In truth I believe she did; but I gave little heed to her excuses."
-
-"Ah, then, sir," I rejoined, "it is but too plain you have not yet
-learned to die, and I am heartily grieved for you. Such had I too
-been but for the Lady of Sorrow. I am indeed young, but I have wept
-many tears; pardon me, therefore, if I presume to offer counsel:--Go
-to the Lady of Sorrow, and `take with both hands'* what she will
-give you. Yonder lies her cottage. She is not in it now, but her
-door stands open, and there is bread and water on her table. Go in;
-sit down; eat of the bread; drink of the water; and wait there until
-she appear. Then ask counsel of her, for she is true, and her
-wisdom is great."
-
-He fell to weeping afresh, and I left him weeping. What I said, I
-fear he did not heed. But Mara would find him!
-
-The sun was down, and the moon unrisen, when I reached the abode of
-the monsters, but it was still as a stone till I passed over. Then
-I heard a noise of many waters, and a great cry behind me, but I
-did not turn my head.
-
-Ere I reached the house of death, the cold was bitter and the
-darkness dense; and the cold and the darkness were one, and entered
-into my bones together. But the candle of Eve, shining from the
-window, guided me, and kept both frost and murk from my heart.
-
-The door stood open, and the cottage lay empty. I sat down
-disconsolate.
-
-And as I sat, there grew in me such a sense of loneliness as never
-yet in my wanderings had I felt. Thousands were near me, not one
-was with me! True, it was I who was dead, not they; but, whether
-by their life or by my death, we were divided! They were alive,
-but I was not dead enough even to know them alive: doubt WOULD come.
-They were, at best, far from me, and helpers I had none to lay me
-beside them!
-
-Never before had I known, or truly imagined desolation! In vain I
-took myself to task, saying the solitude was but a seeming: I was
-awake, and they slept--that was all! it was only that they lay so
-still and did not speak! they were with me now, and soon, soon I
-should be with them!
-
-I dropped Adam's old spade, and the dull sound of its fall on the
-clay floor seemed reverberated from the chamber beyond: a childish
-terror seized me; I sat and stared at the coffin-door.--But father
-Adam, mother Eve, sister Mara would soon come to me, and then--
-welcome the cold world and the white neighbours! I forgot my fears,
-lived a little, and loved my dead.
-
-Something did move in the chamber of the dead! There came from it
-what was LIKE a dim, far-off sound, yet was not what I knew as sound.
-My soul sprang into my ears. Was it a mere thrill of the dead air,
-too slight to be heard, but quivering in every spiritual sense? I
-KNEW without hearing, without feeling it!
-
-The something was coming! it drew nearer! In the bosom of my
-desertion awoke an infant hope. The noiseless thrill reached the
-coffin-door--became sound, and smote on my ear.
-
-The door began to move--with a low, soft creaking of its hinges. It
-was opening! I ceased to listen, and stared expectant.
-
-It opened a little way, and a face came into the opening. It was
-Lona's. Its eyes were closed, but the face itself was upon me, and
-seemed to see me. It was white as Eve's, white as Mara's, but did
-not shine like their faces. She spoke, and her voice was like a
-sleepy night-wind in the grass.
-
-"Are you coming, king?" it said. "I cannot rest until you are with
-me, gliding down the river to the great sea, and the beautiful
-dream-land. The sleepiness is full of lovely things: come and see
-them."
-
-"Ah, my darling!" I cried. "Had I but known!--I thought you were
-dead!"
-
-She lay on my bosom--cold as ice frozen to marble. She threw her
-arms, so white, feebly about me, and sighed--
-
-"Carry me back to my bed, king. I want to sleep."
-
-I bore her to the death-chamber, holding her tight lest she should
-dissolve out of my arms. Unaware that I saw, I carried her straight
-to her couch.
-
-"Lay me down," she said, "and cover me from the warm air; it hurts--a
-little. Your bed is there, next to mine. I shall see you when I
-wake."
-
-She was already asleep. I threw myself on my couch--blessed as
-never was man on the eve of his wedding.
-
-"Come, sweet cold," I said, "and still my heart speedily."
-
-But there came instead a glimmer of light in the chamber, and I saw
-the face of Adam approaching. He had not the candle, yet I saw him.
-At the side of Lona's couch, he looked down on her with a questioning
-smile, and then greeted me across it.
-
-"We have been to the top of the hill to hear the waters on their
-way," he said. "They will be in the den of the monsters to-night.--
-But why did you not await our return?"
-
-"My child could not sleep," I answered.
-
-"She is fast asleep!" he rejoined.
-
-"Yes, now!" I said; "but she was awake when I laid her down."
-
-"She was asleep all the time!" he insisted. "She was perhaps
-dreaming about you--and came to you?"
-
-"She did."
-
-"And did you not see that her eyes were closed?"
-
-"Now I think of it, I did."
-
-"If you had looked ere you laid her down, you would have seen her
-asleep on the couch."
-
-"That would have been terrible!"
-
-"You would only have found that she was no longer in your arms."
-
-"That would have been worse!"
-
-"It is, perhaps, to think of; but to see it would not have troubled
-you."
-
-"Dear father," I said, "how is it that I am not sleepy? I thought
-I should go to sleep like the Little Ones the moment I laid my head
-down!"
-
-"Your hour is not quite come. You must have food ere you sleep."
-
-"Ah, I ought not to have lain down without your leave, for I cannot
-sleep without your help! I will get up at once!"
-
-But I found my own weight more than I could move.
-
-"There is no need: we will serve you here," he answered. "--You do
-not feel cold, do you?"
-
-"Not too cold to lie still, but perhaps too cold to eat!"
-
-He came to the side of my couch, bent over me, and breathed on my
-heart. At once I was warm.
-
-As he left me, I heard a voice, and knew it was the Mother's. She
-was singing, and her song was sweet and soft and low, and I thought
-she sat by my bed in the dark; but ere it ceased, her song soared
-aloft, and seemed to come from the throat of a woman-angel, high
-above all the region of larks, higher than man had ever yet lifted
-up his heart. I heard every word she sang, but could keep only
-this:--
-
- "Many a wrong, and its curing song;
- Many a road, and many an inn;
- Room to roam, but only one home
- For all the world to win!"
-
-and I thought I had heard the song before.
-
-Then the three came to my couch together, bringing me bread and wine,
-and I sat up to partake of it. Adam stood on one side of me, Eve
-and Mara on the other.
-
-"You are good indeed, father Adam, mother Eve, sister Mara," I said,
-"to receive me! In my soul I am ashamed and sorry!"
-
-"We knew you would come again!" answered Eve.
-
-"How could you know it?" I returned.
-
-"Because here was I, born to look after my brothers and sisters!"
-answered Mara with a smile.
-
-"Every creature must one night yield himself and lie down," answered
-Adam: "he was made for liberty, and must not be left a slave!"
-
-"It will be late, I fear, ere all have lain down!" I said.
-
-"There is no early or late here," he rejoined. "For him the true
-time then first begins who lays himself down. Men are not coming
-home fast; women are coming faster. A desert, wide and dreary,
-parts him who lies down to die from him who lies down to live. The
-former may well make haste, but here is no haste."
-
-"To our eyes," said Eve, "you were coming all the time: we knew Mara
-would find you, and you must come!"
-
-"How long is it since my father lay down?" I asked.
-
-"I have told you that years are of no consequence in this house,"
-answered Adam; "we do not heed them. Your father will wake when his
-morning comes. Your mother, next to whom you are lying,----"
-
-"Ah, then, it IS my mother!" I exclaimed.
-
-"Yes--she with the wounded hand," he assented; "--she will be up
-and away long ere your morning is ripe."
-
-"I am sorry."
-
-"Rather be glad."
-
-"It must be a sight for God Himself to see such a woman come awake!"
-
-"It is indeed a sight for God, a sight that makes her Maker glad!
-He sees of the travail of His soul, and is satisfied!--Look at her
-once more, and sleep."
-
-He let the rays of his candle fall on her beautiful face.
-
-"She looks much younger!" I said.
-
-"She IS much younger," he replied. "Even Lilith already begins to
-look younger!"
-
-I lay down, blissfully drowsy.
-
-"But when you see your mother again," he continued, "you will not
-at first know her. She will go on steadily growing younger until
-she reaches the perfection of her womanhood--a splendour beyond
-foresight. Then she will open her eyes, behold on one side her
-husband, on the other her son--and rise and leave them to go to a
-father and a brother more to her than they."
-
-I heard as one in a dream. I was very cold, but already the cold
-caused me no suffering. I felt them put on me the white garment of
-the dead. Then I forgot everything. The night about me was pale
-with sleeping faces, but I was asleep also, nor knew that I slept.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIII
-
-THE DREAMS THAT CAME
-
-I grew aware of existence, aware also of the profound, the infinite
-cold. I was intensely blessed--more blessed, I know, than my heart,
-imagining, can now recall. I could not think of warmth with the
-least suggestion of pleasure. I knew that I had enjoyed it, but
-could not remember how. The cold had soothed every care, dissolved
-every pain, comforted every sorrow. COMFORTED? Nay; sorrow was
-swallowed up in the life drawing nigh to restore every good and
-lovely thing a hundredfold! I lay at peace, full of the quietest
-expectation, breathing the damp odours of Earth's bountiful bosom,
-aware of the souls of primroses, daisies and snowdrops, patiently
-waiting in it for the Spring.
-
-How convey the delight of that frozen, yet conscious sleep! I had
-no more to stand up! had only to lie stretched out and still! How
-cold I was, words cannot tell; yet I grew colder and colder--and
-welcomed the cold yet more and more. I grew continuously less
-conscious of myself, continuously more conscious of bliss,
-unimaginable yet felt. I had neither made it nor prayed for it: it
-was mine in virtue of existence! and existence was mine in virtue
-of a Will that dwelt in mine.
-
-Then the dreams began to arrive--and came crowding.--I lay naked on
-a snowy peak. The white mist heaved below me like a billowy sea.
-The cold moon was in the air with me, and above the moon and me
-the colder sky, in which the moon and I dwelt. I was Adam, waiting
-for God to breathe into my nostrils the breath of life.--I was not
-Adam, but a child in the bosom of a mother white with a radiant
-whiteness. I was a youth on a white horse, leaping from cloud to
-cloud of a blue heaven, hasting calmly to some blessed goal. For
-centuries I dreamed--or was it chiliads? or only one long night?--But
-why ask? for time had nothing to do with me; I was in the land of
-thought--farther in, higher up than the seven dimensions, the ten
-senses: I think I was where I am--in the heart of God.--I dreamed
-away dim cycles in the centre of a melting glacier, the spectral
-moon drawing nearer and nearer, the wind and the welter of a torrent
-growing in my ears. I lay and heard them: the wind and the water
-and the moon sang a peaceful waiting for a redemption drawing nigh.
-I dreamed cycles, I say, but, for aught I knew or can tell, they were
-the solemn, æonian march of a second, pregnant with eternity.
-
-Then, of a sudden, but not once troubling my conscious bliss, all
-the wrongs I had ever done, from far beyond my earthly memory down
-to the present moment, were with me. Fully in every wrong lived
-the conscious I, confessing, abjuring, lamenting the dead, making
-atonement with each person I had injured, hurt, or offended. Every
-human soul to which I had caused a troubled thought, was now grown
-unspeakably dear to me, and I humbled myself before it, agonising
-to cast from between us the clinging offence. I wept at the feet
-of the mother whose commands I had slighted; with bitter shame I
-confessed to my father that I had told him two lies, and long
-forgotten them: now for long had remembered them, and kept them in
-memory to crush at last at his feet. I was the eager slave of all
-whom I had thus or anyhow wronged. Countless services I devised to
-render them! For this one I would build such a house as had never
-grown from the ground! for that one I would train such horses as
-had never yet been seen in any world! For a third I would make such
-a garden as had never bloomed, haunted with still pools, and alive
-with running waters! I would write songs to make their hearts
-swell, and tales to make them glow! I would turn the forces of the
-world into such channels of invention as to make them laugh with the
-joy of wonder! Love possessed me! Love was my life! Love was to
-me, as to him that made me, all in all!
-
-Suddenly I found myself in a solid blackness, upon which the ghost
-of light that dwells in the caverns of the eyes could not cast one
-fancied glimmer. But my heart, which feared nothing and hoped
-infinitely, was full of peace. I lay imagining what the light would
-be when it came, and what new creation it would bring with it--when,
-suddenly, without conscious volition, I sat up and stared about me.
-
-The moon was looking in at the lowest, horizontal, crypt-like windows
-of the death-chamber, her long light slanting, I thought, across
-the fallen, but still ripening sheaves of the harvest of the great
-husbandman.--But no; that harvest was gone! Gathered in, or swept
-away by chaotic storm, not a sacred sheaf was there! My dead were
-gone! I was alone!--In desolation dread lay depths yet deeper than
-I had hitherto known!--Had there never been any ripening dead? Had
-I but dreamed them and their loveliness? Why then these walls? why
-the empty couches? No; they were all up! they were all abroad in
-the new eternal day, and had forgotten me! They had left me behind,
-and alone! Tenfold more terrible was the tomb its inhabitants away!
-The quiet ones had made me quiet with their presence--had pervaded
-my mind with their blissful peace; now I had no friend, and my lovers
-were far from me! A moment I sat and stared horror-stricken. I had
-been alone with the moon on a mountain top in the sky; now I was
-alone with her in a huge cenotaph: she too was staring about, seeking
-her dead with ghastly gaze! I sprang to my feet, and staggered from
-the fearful place.
-
-The cottage was empty. I ran out into the night.
-
-No moon was there! Even as I left the chamber, a cloudy rampart
-had risen and covered her. But a broad shimmer came from far over
-the heath, mingled with a ghostly murmuring music, as if the moon
-were raining a light that plashed as it fell. I ran stumbling
-across the moor, and found a lovely lake, margined with reeds and
-rushes: the moon behind the cloud was gazing upon the monsters' den,
-full of clearest, brightest water, and very still.--But the musical
-murmur went on, filling the quiet air, and drawing me after it.
-
-I walked round the border of the little mere, and climbed the range
-of hills. What a sight rose to my eyes! The whole expanse where,
-with hot, aching feet, I had crossed and recrossed the deep-scored
-channels and ravines of the dry river-bed, was alive with streams,
-with torrents, with still pools--"a river deep and wide"! How the
-moon flashed on the water! how the water answered the moon with
-flashes of its own--white flashes breaking everywhere from its
-rock-encountered flow! And a great jubilant song arose from its
-bosom, the song of new-born liberty. I stood a moment gazing, and
-my heart also began to exult: my life was not all a failure! I had
-helped to set this river free!--My dead were not lost! I had but to
-go after and find them! I would follow and follow until I came
-whither they had gone! Our meeting might be thousands of years
-away, but at last--AT LAST I should hold them! Wherefore else did
-the floods clap their hands?
-
-I hurried down the hill: my pilgrimage was begun! In what direction
-to turn my steps I knew not, but I must go and go till I found my
-living dead! A torrent ran swift and wide at the foot of the range:
-I rushed in, it laid no hold upon me; I waded through it. The next
-I sprang across; the third I swam; the next I waded again.
-
-I stopped to gaze on the wondrous loveliness of the ceaseless flash
-and flow, and to hearken to the multitudinous broken music. Every
-now and then some incipient air would seem about to draw itself clear
-of the dulcet confusion, only to merge again in the consorted roar.
-At moments the world of waters would invade as if to overwhelm me--not
-with the force of its seaward rush, or the shouting of its liberated
-throng, but with the greatness of the silence wandering into sound.
-
-As I stood lost in delight, a hand was laid on my shoulder. I
-turned, and saw a man in the prime of strength, beautiful as if
-fresh from the heart of the glad creator, young like him who cannot
-grow old. I looked: it was Adam. He stood large and grand, clothed
-in a white robe, with the moon in his hair.
-
-"Father," I cried, "where is she? Where are the dead? Is the great
-resurrection come and gone? The terror of my loneliness was upon me;
-I could not sleep without my dead; I ran from the desolate chamber.
---Whither shall I go to find them?"
-
-"You mistake, my son," he answered, in a voice whose very breath
-was consolation. "You are still in the chamber of death, still
-upon your couch, asleep and dreaming, with the dead around you."
-
-"Alas! when I but dream how am I to know it? The dream best dreamed
-is the likest to the waking truth!"
-
-"When you are quite dead, you will dream no false dream. The soul
-that is true can generate nothing that is not true, neither can the
-false enter it."
-
-"But, sir," I faltered, "how am I to distinguish betwixt the true
-and the false where both alike seem real?"
-
-"Do you not understand?" he returned, with a smile that might have
-slain all the sorrows of all his children. "You CANNOT perfectly
-distinguish between the true and the false while you are not yet
-quite dead; neither indeed will you when you are quite dead--that
-is, quite alive, for then the false will never present itself. At
-this moment, believe me, you are on your bed in the house of death."
-
-"I am trying hard to believe you, father. I do indeed believe you,
-although I can neither see nor feel the truth of what you say."
-
-"You are not to blame that you cannot. And because even in a dream
-you believe me, I will help you.--Put forth your left hand open,
-and close it gently: it will clasp the hand of your Lona, who lies
-asleep where you lie dreaming you are awake."
-
-I put forth my hand: it closed on the hand of Lona, firm and soft
-and deathless.
-
-"But, father," I cried, "she is warm!"
-
-"Your hand is as warm to hers. Cold is a thing unknown in our
-country. Neither she nor you are yet in the fields of home, but
-each to each is alive and warm and healthful."
-
-Then my heart was glad. But immediately supervened a sharp-stinging
-doubt.
-
-"Father," I said, "forgive me, but how am I to know surely that this
-also is not a part of the lovely dream in which I am now walking
-with thyself?"
-
-"Thou doubtest because thou lovest the truth. Some would willingly
-believe life but a phantasm, if only it might for ever afford them
-a world of pleasant dreams: thou art not of such! Be content for
-a while not to know surely. The hour will come, and that ere long,
-when, being true, thou shalt behold the very truth, and doubt will
-be for ever dead. Scarce, then, wilt thou be able to recall the
-features of the phantom. Thou wilt then know that which thou canst
-not now dream. Thou hast not yet looked the Truth in the face, hast
-as yet at best but seen him through a cloud. That which thou seest
-not, and never didst see save in a glass darkly--that which, indeed,
-never can be known save by its innate splendour shining straight
-into pure eyes--that thou canst not but doubt, and art blameless in
-doubting until thou seest it face to face, when thou wilt no longer
-be able to doubt it. But to him who has once seen even a shadow
-only of the truth, and, even but hoping he has seen it when it is
-present no longer, tries to obey it--to him the real vision, the
-Truth himself, will come, and depart no more, but abide with him
-for ever."
-
-"I think I see, father," I said; "I think I understand."
-
-"Then remember, and recall. Trials yet await thee, heavy, of a
-nature thou knowest not now. Remember the things thou hast seen.
-Truly thou knowest not those things, but thou knowest what they have
-seemed, what they have meant to thee! Remember also the things thou
-shalt yet see. Truth is all in all; and the truth of things lies,
-at once hid and revealed, in their seeming."
-
-"How can that be, father?" I said, and raised my eyes with the
-question; for I had been listening with downbent head, aware of
-nothing but the voice of Adam.
-
-He was gone; in my ears was nought but the sounding silence of the
-swift-flowing waters. I stretched forth my hands to find him, but
-no answering touch met their seeking. I was alone--alone in the
-land of dreams! To myself I seemed wide awake, but I believed I was
-in a dream, because he had told me so.
-
-Even in a dream, however, the dreamer must do something! he cannot
-sit down and refuse to stir until the dream grow weary of him and
-depart: I took up my wandering, and went on.
-
-Many channels I crossed, and came to a wider space of rock; there,
-dreaming I was weary, I laid myself down, and longed to be awake.
-
-I was about to rise and resume my journey, when I discovered that I
-lay beside a pit in the rock, whose mouth was like that of a grave.
-It was deep and dark; I could see no bottom.
-
-Now in the dreams of my childhood I had found that a fall invariably
-woke me, and would, therefore, when desiring to discontinue a dream,
-seek some eminence whence to cast myself down that I might wake:
-with one glance at the peaceful heavens, and one at the rushing
-waters, I rolled myself over the edge of the pit.
-
-For a moment consciousness left me. When it returned, I stood in
-the garret of my own house, in the little wooden chamber of the cowl
-and the mirror.
-
-Unspeakable despair, hopelessness blank and dreary, invaded me with
-the knowledge: between me and my Lona lay an abyss impassable!
-stretched a distance no chain could measure! Space and Time and
-Mode of Being, as with walls of adamant unscalable, impenetrable,
-shut me in from that gulf! True, it might yet be in my power to
-pass again through the door of light, and journey back to the chamber
-of the dead; and if so, I was parted from that chamber only by a
-wide heath, and by the pale, starry night betwixt me and the sun,
-which alone could open for me the mirror-door, and was now far away
-on the other side of the world! but an immeasurably wider gulf sank
-between us in this--that she was asleep and I was awake! that I was
-no longer worthy to share with her that sleep, and could no longer
-hope to awake from it with her! For truly I was much to blame: I
-had fled from my dream! The dream was not of my making, any more
-than was my life: I ought to have seen it to the end! and in fleeing
-from it, I had left the holy sleep itself behind me!--I would go
-back to Adam, tell him the truth, and bow to his decree!
-
-I crept to my chamber, threw myself on my bed, and passed a dreamless
-night.
-
-I rose, and listlessly sought the library. On the way I met no one;
-the house seemed dead. I sat down with a book to await the noontide:
-not a sentence could I understand! The mutilated manuscript offered
-itself from the masked door: the sight of it sickened me; what to me
-was the princess with her devilry!
-
-I rose and looked out of a window. It was a brilliant morning. With
-a great rush the fountain shot high, and fell roaring back. The sun
-sat in its feathery top. Not a bird sang, not a creature was to
-be seen. Raven nor librarian came near me. The world was dead
-about me. I took another book, sat down again, and went on waiting.
-
-Noon was near. I went up the stairs to the dumb, shadowy roof. I
-closed behind me the door into the wooden chamber, and turned to
-open the door out of a dreary world.
-
-I left the chamber with a heart of stone. Do what I might, all was
-fruitless. I pulled the chains; adjusted and re-adjusted the hood;
-arranged and re-arranged the mirrors; no result followed. I waited
-and waited to give the vision time; it would not come; the mirror
-stood blank; nothing lay in its dim old depth but the mirror
-opposite and my haggard face.
-
-I went back to the library. There the books were hateful to me--for
-I had once loved them.
-
-That night I lay awake from down-lying to uprising, and the next
-day renewed my endeavours with the mystic door. But all was yet in
-vain. How the hours went I cannot think. No one came nigh me; not
-a sound from the house below entered my ears. Not once did I feel
-weary--only desolate, drearily desolate.
-
-I passed a second sleepless night. In the morning I went for the
-last time to the chamber in the roof, and for the last time sought
-an open door: there was none. My heart died within me. I had lost
-my Lona!
-
-Was she anywhere? had she ever been, save in the mouldering cells
-of my brain? "I must die one day," I thought, "and then, straight
-from my death-bed, I will set out to find her! If she is not, I
-will go to the Father and say--`Even thou canst not help me: let me
-cease, I pray thee!'"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIV
-
-THE WAKING
-
-The fourth night I seemed to fall asleep, and that night woke indeed.
-I opened my eyes and knew, although all was dark around me, that I
-lay in the house of death, and that every moment since there I fell
-asleep I had been dreaming, and now first was awake. "At last!" I
-said to my heart, and it leaped for joy. I turned my eyes; Lona
-stood by my couch, waiting for me! I had never lost her!--only for
-a little time lost the sight of her! Truly I needed not have
-lamented her so sorely!
-
-It was dark, as I say, but I saw her: SHE was not dark! Her eyes
-shone with the radiance of the Mother's, and the same light issued
-from her face--nor from her face only, for her death-dress, filled
-with the light of her body now tenfold awake in the power of its
-resurrection, was white as snow and glistering. She fell asleep a
-girl; she awoke a woman, ripe with the loveliness of the life
-essential. I folded her in my arms, and knew that I lived indeed.
-
-"I woke first!" she said, with a wondering smile.
-
-"You did, my love, and woke me!"
-
-"I only looked at you and waited," she answered.
-
-The candle came floating toward us through the dark, and in a few
-moments Adam and Eve and Mara were with us. They greeted us with a
-quiet good-morning and a smile: they were used to such wakings!
-
-"I hope you have had a pleasant darkness!" said the Mother.
-
-"Not very," I answered, "but the waking from it is heavenly."
-
-"It is but begun," she rejoined; "you are hardly yet awake!"
-
-"He is at least clothed-upon with Death, which is the radiant garment
-of Life," said Adam.
-
-He embraced Lona his child, put an arm around me, looked a moment
-or two inquiringly at the princess, and patted the head of the
-leopardess.
-
-"I think we shall meet you two again before long," he said, looking
-first at Lona, then at me.
-
-"Have we to die again?" I asked.
-
-"No," he answered, with a smile like the Mother's; "you have died
-into life, and will die no more; you have only to keep dead. Once
-dying as we die here, all the dying is over. Now you have only to
-live, and that you must, with all your blessed might. The more you
-live, the stronger you become to live."
-
-"But shall I not grow weary with living so strong?" I said. "What
-if I cease to live with all my might?"
-
-"It needs but the will, and the strength is there!" said the Mother.
-"Pure life has no weakness to grow weary withal. THE Life keeps
-generating ours.--Those who will not die, die many times, die
-constantly, keep dying deeper, never have done dying; here all is
-upwardness and love and gladness."
-
-She ceased with a smile and a look that seemed to say, "We are
-mother and son; we understand each other! Between us no farewell
-is possible."
-
-Mara kissed me on the forehead, and said, gayly,
-
-"I told you, brother, all would be well!--When next you would
-comfort, say, `What will be well, is even now well.'"
-
-She gave a little sigh, and I thought it meant, "But they will not
-believe you!"
-
-"--You know me now!" she ended, with a smile like her mother's.
-
-"I know you!" I answered: "you are the voice that cried in the
-wilderness before ever the Baptist came! you are the shepherd whose
-wolves hunt the wandering sheep home ere the shadow rise and the
-night grow dark!"
-
-"My work will one day be over," she said, "and then I shall be glad
-with the gladness of the great shepherd who sent me."
-
-"All the night long the morning is at hand," said Adam.
-
-"What is that flapping of wings I hear?" I asked.
-
-"The Shadow is hovering," replied Adam: "there is one here whom he
-counts his own! But ours once, never more can she be his!"
-
-I turned to look on the faces of my father and mother, and kiss them
-ere we went: their couches were empty save of the Little Ones who
-had with love's boldness appropriated their hospitality! For an
-instant that awful dream of desolation overshadowed me, and I turned
-aside.
-
-"What is it, my heart?" said Lona.
-
-"Their empty places frightened me," I answered.
-
-"They are up and away long ago," said Adam. "They kissed you ere
-they went, and whispered, `Come soon.'"
-
-"And I neither to feel nor hear them!" I murmured.
-
-"How could you--far away in your dreary old house! You thought the
-dreadful place had you once more! Now go and find them.--Your
-parents, my child," he added, turning to Lona, "must come and find
-you!"
-
-The hour of our departure was at hand. Lona went to the couch of
-the mother who had slain her, and kissed her tenderly--then laid
-herself in her father's arms.
-
-"That kiss will draw her homeward, my Lona!" said Adam.
-
-"Who were her parents?" asked Lona.
-
-"My father," answered Adam, "is her father also."
-
-She turned and laid her hand in mine.
-
-I kneeled and humbly thanked the three for helping me to die. Lona
-knelt beside me, and they all breathed upon us.
-
-"Hark! I hear the sun," said Adam.
-
-I listened: he was coming with the rush as of a thousand times ten
-thousand far-off wings, with the roar of a molten and flaming world
-millions upon millions of miles away. His approach was a crescendo
-chord of a hundred harmonies.
-
-The three looked at each other and smiled, and that smile went
-floating heavenward a three-petaled flower, the family's morning
-thanksgiving. From their mouths and their faces it spread over
-their bodies and shone through their garments. Ere I could say,
-"Lo, they change!" Adam and Eve stood before me the angels of the
-resurrection, and Mara was the Magdalene with them at the sepulchre.
-The countenance of Adam was like lightning, and Eve held a napkin
-that flung flakes of splendour about the place.
-
-A wind began to moan in pulsing gusts.
-
-"You hear his wings now!" said Adam; and I knew he did not mean the
-wings of the morning.
-
-"It is the great Shadow stirring to depart," he went on. "Wretched
-creature, he has himself within him, and cannot rest!"
-
-"But is there not in him something deeper yet?" I asked.
-
-"Without a substance," he answered, "a shadow cannot be--yea, or
-without a light behind the substance!"
-
-He listened for a moment, then called out, with a glad smile, "Hark
-to the golden cock! Silent and motionless for millions of years has
-he stood on the clock of the universe; now at last he is flapping
-his wings! now will he begin to crow! and at intervals will men hear
-him until the dawn of the day eternal."
-
-I listened. Far away--as in the heart of an æonian silence, I heard
-the clear jubilant outcry of the golden throat. It hurled defiance
-at death and the dark; sang infinite hope, and coming calm. It was
-the "expectation of the creature" finding at last a voice; the cry
-of a chaos that would be a kingdom!
-
-Then I heard a great flapping.
-
-"The black bat is flown!" said Mara.
-
-"Amen, golden cock, bird of God!" cried Adam, and the words rang
-through the house of silence, and went up into the airy regions.
-
-At his AMEN--like doves arising on wings of silver from among the
-potsherds, up sprang the Little Ones to their knees on their beds,
-calling aloud,
-
-"Crow! crow again, golden cock!"--as if they had both seen and heard
-him in their dreams.
-
-Then each turned and looked at the sleeping bedfellow, gazed a
-moment with loving eyes, kissed the silent companion of the night,
-and sprang from the couch. The Little Ones who had lain down beside
-my father and mother gazed blank and sad for a moment at their
-empty places, then slid slowly to the floor. There they fell each
-into the other's arms, as if then first, each by the other's eyes,
-assured they were alive and awake. Suddenly spying Lona, they came
-running, radiant with bliss, to embrace her. Odu, catching sight of
-the leopardess on the feet of the princess, bounded to her next, and
-throwing an arm over the great sleeping head, fondled and kissed it.
-
-"Wake up, wake up, darling!" he cried; "it is time to wake!"
-
-The leopardess did not move.
-
-"She has slept herself cold!" he said to Mara, with an upcast look
-of appealing consternation.
-
-"She is waiting for the princess to wake, my child," said Mara.
-
-Odu looked at the princess, and saw beside her, still asleep, two
-of his companions. He flew at them.
-
-"Wake up! wake up!" he cried, and pushed and pulled, now this one,
-now that.
-
-But soon he began to look troubled, and turned to me with misty eyes.
-
-"They will not wake!" he said. "And why are they so cold?"
-
-"They too are waiting for the princess," I answered.
-
-He stretched across, and laid his hand on her face.
-
-"She is cold too! What is it?" he cried--and looked round in
-wondering dismay.
-
-Adam went to him.
-
-"Her wake is not ripe yet," he said: "she is busy forgetting. When
-she has forgotten enough to remember enough, then she will soon be
-ripe, and wake."
-
-"And remember?"
-
-"Yes--but not too much at once though."
-
-"But the golden cock has crown!" argued the child, and fell again
-upon his companions.
-
-"Peter! Peter! Crispy!" he cried. "Wake up, Peter! wake up, Crispy!
-We are all awake but you two! The gold cock has crown SO loud! The
-sun is awake and coming! Oh, why WON'T you wake?"
-
-But Peter would not wake, neither would Crispy, and Odu wept outright
-at last.
-
-"Let them sleep, darling!" said Adam. "You would not like the
-princess to wake and find nobody? They are quite happy. So is the
-leopardess."
-
-He was comforted, and wiped his eyes as if he had been all his life
-used to weeping and wiping, though now first he had tears wherewith
-to weep--soon to be wiped altogether away.
-
-We followed Eve to the cottage. There she offered us neither bread
-nor wine, but stood radiantly desiring our departure. So, with never
-a word of farewell, we went out. The horse and the elephants were
-at the door, waiting for us. We were too happy to mount them, and
-they followed us.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLV
-
-THE JOURNEY HOME
-
-It had ceased to be dark; we walked in a dim twilight, breathing
-through the dimness the breath of the spring. A wondrous change had
-passed upon the world--or was it not rather that a change more
-marvellous had taken place in us? Without light enough in the sky
-or the air to reveal anything, every heather-bush, every small shrub,
-every blade of grass was perfectly visible--either by light that
-went out from it, as fire from the bush Moses saw in the desert, or
-by light that went out of our eyes. Nothing cast a shadow; all
-things interchanged a little light. Every growing thing showed me,
-by its shape and colour, its indwelling idea--the informing thought,
-that is, which was its being, and sent it out. My bare feet seemed
-to love every plant they trod upon. The world and my being, its
-life and mine, were one. The microcosm and macrocosm were at length
-atoned, at length in harmony! I lived in everything; everything
-entered and lived in me. To be aware of a thing, was to know its
-life at once and mine, to know whence we came, and where we were at
-home--was to know that we are all what we are, because Another is
-what he is! Sense after sense, hitherto asleep, awoke in me--sense
-after sense indescribable, because no correspondent words, no
-likenesses or imaginations exist, wherewithal to describe them.
-Full indeed--yet ever expanding, ever making room to receive--was
-the conscious being where things kept entering by so many open
-doors! When a little breeze brushing a bush of heather set its
-purple bells a ringing, I was myself in the joy of the bells, myself
-in the joy of the breeze to which responded their sweet TIN-TINNING**,
-myself in the joy of the sense, and of the soul that received all
-the joys together. To everything glad I lent the hall of my being
-wherein to revel. I was a peaceful ocean upon which the ground-swell
-of a living joy was continually lifting new waves; yet was the joy
-ever the same joy, the eternal joy, with tens of thousands of
-changing forms. Life was a cosmic holiday.
-
-Now I knew that life and truth were one; that life mere and pure
-is in itself bliss; that where being is not bliss, it is not life,
-but life-in-death. Every inspiration of the dark wind that blew
-where it listed, went out a sigh of thanksgiving. At last I was!
-I lived, and nothing could touch my life! My darling walked beside
-me, and we were on our way home to the Father!
-
-So much was ours ere ever the first sun rose upon our freedom: what
-must not the eternal day bring with it!
-
-We came to the fearful hollow where once had wallowed the monsters
-of the earth: it was indeed, as I had beheld it in my dream, a
-lovely lake. I gazed into its pellucid depths. A whirlpool had
-swept out the soil in which the abortions burrowed, and at the
-bottom lay visible the whole horrid brood: a dim greenish light
-pervaded the crystalline water, and revealed every hideous form
-beneath it. Coiled in spires, folded in layers, knotted on
-themselves, or "extended long and large," they weltered in motionless
-heaps--shapes more fantastic in ghoulish, blasting dismay, than ever
-wine-sodden brain of exhausted poet fevered into misbeing. He who
-dived in the swirling Maelstrom saw none to compare with them in
-horror: tentacular convolutions, tumid bulges, glaring orbs of
-sepian deformity, would have looked to him innocence beside such
-incarnations of hatefulness--every head the wicked flower that,
-bursting from an abominable stalk, perfected its evil significance.
-
-Not one of them moved as we passed. But they were not dead. So
-long as exist men and women of unwholesome mind, that lake will still
-be peopled with loathsomenesses.
-
-But hark the herald of the sun, the auroral wind, softly trumpeting
-his approach! The master-minister of the human tabernacle is at
-hand! Heaping before his prow a huge ripple-fretted wave of crimson
-and gold, he rushes aloft, as if new launched from the urging hand
-of his maker into the upper sea--pauses, and looks down on the
-world. White-raving storm of molten metals, he is but a coal from
-the altar of the Father's never-ending sacrifice to his children.
-See every little flower straighten its stalk, lift up its neck, and
-with outstretched head stand expectant: something more than the sun,
-greater than the light, is coming, is coming--none the less surely
-coming that it is long upon the road! What matters to-day, or
-to-morrow, or ten thousand years to Life himself, to Love himself!
-He is coming, is coming, and the necks of all humanity are stretched
-out to see him come! Every morning will they thus outstretch
-themselves, every evening will they droop and wait--until he comes.
---Is this but an air-drawn vision? When he comes, will he indeed
-find them watching thus?
-
-It was a glorious resurrection-morning. The night had been spent in
-preparing it!
-
-The children went gamboling before, and the beasts came after us.
-Fluttering butterflies, darting dragon-flies hovered or shot hither
-and thither about our heads, a cloud of colours and flashes, now
-descending upon us like a snow-storm of rainbow flakes, now rising
-into the humid air like a rolling vapour of embodied odours. It was
-a summer-day more like itself, that is, more ideal, than ever man
-that had not died found summer-day in any world. I walked on the
-new earth, under the new heaven, and found them the same as the old,
-save that now they opened their minds to me, and I saw into them.
-Now, the soul of everything I met came out to greet me and make
-friends with me, telling me we came from the same, and meant the
-same. I was going to him, they said, with whom they always were,
-and whom they always meant; they were, they said, lightnings that
-took shape as they flashed from him to his. The dark rocks drank
-like sponges the rays that showered upon them; the great world soaked
-up the light, and sent out the living. Two joy-fires were Lona
-and I. Earth breathed heavenward her sweet-savoured smoke; we
-breathed homeward our longing desires. For thanksgiving, our very
-consciousness was that.
-
-We came to the channels, once so dry and wearyful: they ran and
-flashed and foamed with living water that shouted in its gladness!
-Far as the eye could see, all was a rushing, roaring, dashing river
-of water made vocal by its rocks.
-
-We did not cross it, but "walked in glory and in joy" up its right
-bank, until we reached the great cataract at the foot of the sandy
-desert, where, roaring and swirling and dropping sheer, the river
-divided into its two branches. There we climbed the height--and
-found no desert: through grassy plains, between grassy banks, flowed
-the deep, wide, silent river full to the brim. Then first to the
-Little Ones was revealed the glory of God in the limpid flow of
-water. Instinctively they plunged and swam, and the beasts followed
-them.
-
-The desert rejoiced and blossomed as the rose. Wide forests had
-sprung up, their whole undergrowth flowering shrubs peopled with
-song-birds. Every thicket gave birth to a rivulet, and every rivulet
-to its water-song.
-
-The place of the buried hand gave no sign. Beyond and still beyond,
-the river came in full volume from afar. Up and up we went, now
-along grassy margin, and now through forest of gracious trees. The
-grass grew sweeter and its flowers more lovely and various as we
-went; the trees grew larger, and the wind fuller of messages.
-
-We came at length to a forest whose trees were greater, grander, and
-more beautiful than any we had yet seen. Their live pillars upheaved
-a thick embowed roof, betwixt whose leaves and blossoms hardly a
-sunbeam filtered. Into the rafters of this aerial vault the children
-climbed, and through them went scrambling and leaping in a land of
-bloom, shouting to the unseen elephants below, and hearing them
-trumpet their replies. The conversations between them Lona
-understood while I but guessed at them blunderingly. The Little Ones
-chased the squirrels, and the squirrels, frolicking, drew them
-on--always at length allowing themselves to be caught and petted.
-Often would some bird, lovely in plumage and form, light upon one of
-them, sing a song of what was coming, and fly away. Not one monkey
-of any sort could they see.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLVI
-
-THE CITY
-
-Lona and I, who walked below, heard at last a great shout overhead,
-and in a moment or two the Little Ones began to come dropping down
-from the foliage with the news that, climbing to the top of a tree
-yet taller than the rest, they had descried, far across the plain, a
-curious something on the side of a solitary mountain--which mountain,
-they said, rose and rose, until the sky gathered thick to keep it
-down, and knocked its top off.
-
-"It may be a city," they said, "but it is not at all like Bulika."
-
-I went up to look, and saw a great city, ascending into blue clouds,
-where I could not distinguish mountain from sky and cloud, or rocks
-from dwellings. Cloud and mountain and sky, palace and precipice
-mingled in a seeming chaos of broken shadow and shine.
-
-I descended, the Little Ones came with me, and together we sped on
-faster. They grew yet merrier as they went, leading the way, and
-never looking behind them. The river grew lovelier and lovelier,
-until I knew that never before had I seen real water. Nothing in
-this world is more than LIKE it.
-
-By and by we could from the plain see the city among the blue clouds.
-But other clouds were gathering around a lofty tower--or was it a
-rock?--that stood above the city, nearer the crest of the mountain.
-Gray, and dark gray, and purple, they writhed in confused, contrariant
-motions, and tossed up a vaporous foam, while spots in them gyrated
-like whirlpools. At length issued a dazzling flash, which seemed
-for a moment to play about the Little Ones in front of us. Blinding
-darkness followed, but through it we heard their voices, low with
-delight.
-
-"Did you see?"
-
-"I saw."
-
-"What did you see?"
-
-"The beautifullest man."
-
-"I heard him speak!"
-
-"I didn't: what did he say?"
-
-Here answered the smallest and most childish of the voices--that of
-Luva:--
-
-"He said, `'Ou's all mine's, 'ickle ones: come along!'"
-
-I had seen the lightning, but heard no words; Lona saw and heard
-with the children. A second flash came, and my eyes, though not
-my ears, were opened. The great quivering light was compact of
-angel-faces. They lamped themselves visible, and vanished.
-
-A third flash came; its substance and radiance were human.
-
-"I see my mother!" I cried.
-
-"I see lots o' mothers!" said Luva.
-
-Once more the cloud flashed--all kinds of creatures--horses and
-elephants, lions and dogs--oh, such beasts! And such birds!--great
-birds whose wings gleamed singly every colour gathered in sunset
-or rainbow! little birds whose feathers sparkled as with all the
-precious stones of the hoarding earth!--silvery cranes; red
-flamingoes; opal pigeons; peacocks gorgeous in gold and green and
-blue; jewelly humming birds!--great-winged butterflies; lithe-volumed
-creeping things--all in one heavenly flash!
-
-"I see that serpents grow birds here, as caterpillars used to grow
-butterflies!" remarked Lona.
-
-"I saw my white pony, that died when I was a child.--I needn't have
-been so sorry; I should just have waited!" I said.
-
-Thunder, clap or roll, there had been none. And now came a sweet
-rain, filling the atmosphere with a caressing coolness. We breathed
-deep, and stepped out with stronger strides. The falling drops
-flashed the colours of all the waked up gems of the earth, and a
-mighty rainbow spanned the city.
-
-The blue clouds gathered thicker; the rain fell in torrents; the
-children exulted and ran; it was all we could do to keep them in
-sight.
-
-With silent, radiant roll, the river swept onward, filling to the
-margin its smooth, soft, yielding channel. For, instead of rock or
-shingle or sand, it flowed over grass in which grew primroses and
-daisies, crocuses and narcissi, pimpernels and anemones, a starry
-multitude, large and bright through the brilliant water. The river
-had gathered no turbid cloudiness from the rain, not even a tinge
-of yellow or brown; the delicate mass shone with the pale berylline
-gleam that ascended from its deep, dainty bed.
-
-Drawing nearer to the mountain, we saw that the river came from its
-very peak, and rushed in full volume through the main street of the
-city. It descended to the gate by a stair of deep and wide steps,
-mingled of porphyry and serpentine, which continued to the foot of
-the mountain. There arriving we found shallower steps on both banks,
-leading up to the gate, and along the ascending street. Without the
-briefest halt, the Little Ones ran straight up the stair to the
-gate, which stood open.
-
-Outside, on the landing, sat the portress, a woman-angel of dark
-visage, leaning her shadowed brow on her idle hand. The children
-rushed upon her, covering her with caresses, and ere she understood,
-they had taken heaven by surprise, and were already in the city,
-still mounting the stair by the side of the descending torrent. A
-great angel, attended by a company of shining ones, came down to
-meet and receive them, but merrily evading them all, up still they
-ran. In merry dance, however, a group of woman-angels descended
-upon them, and in a moment they were fettered in heavenly arms. The
-radiants carried them away, and I saw them no more.
-
-"Ah!" said the mighty angel, continuing his descent to meet us who
-were now almost at the gate and within hearing of his words, "this
-is well! these are soldiers to take heaven itself by storm!--I hear
-of a horde of black bats on the frontiers: these will make short
-work with such!"
-
-Seeing the horse and the elephants clambering up behind us--
-
-"Take those animals to the royal stables," he added; "there tend
-them; then turn them into the king's forest."
-
-"Welcome home!" he said to us, bending low with the sweetest smile.
-
-Immediately he turned and led the way higher. The scales of his
-armour flashed like flakes of lightning.
-
-Thought cannot form itself to tell what I felt, thus received by
-the officers of heaven***. All I wanted and knew not, must be on
-its way to me!
-
-We stood for a moment at the gate whence issued roaring the radiant
-river. I know not whence came the stones that fashioned it, but
-among them I saw the prototypes of all the gems I had loved on
-earth--far more beautiful than they, for these were living stones
---such in which I saw, not the intent alone, but the intender too;
-not the idea alone, but the imbodier present, the operant outsender:
-nothing in this kingdom was dead; nothing was mere; nothing only a
-thing.
-
-We went up through the city and passed out. There was no wall on
-the upper side, but a huge pile of broken rocks, upsloping like the
-moraine of an eternal glacier; and through the openings between the
-rocks, the river came billowing out. On their top I could dimly
-discern what seemed three or four great steps of a stair,
-disappearing in a cloud white as snow; and above the steps I saw,
-but with my mind's eye only, as it were a grand old chair, the
-throne of the Ancient of Days. Over and under and between those
-steps issued, plenteously, unceasingly new-born, the river of the
-water of life.
-
-The great angel could guide us no farther: those rocks we must ascend
-alone!
-
-My heart beating with hope and desire, I held faster the hand of my
-Lona, and we began to climb; but soon we let each other go, to use
-hands as well as feet in the toilsome ascent of the huge stones.
-At length we drew near the cloud, which hung down the steps like
-the borders of a garment, passed through the fringe, and entered
-the deep folds. A hand, warm and strong, laid hold of mine, and
-drew me to a little door with a golden lock. The door opened; the
-hand let mine go, and pushed me gently through. I turned quickly,
-and saw the board of a large book in the act of closing behind me.
-I stood alone in my library.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLVII
-
-THE "ENDLESS ENDING"
-
-As yet I have not found Lona, but Mara is much with me. She has
-taught me many things, and is teaching me more.
-
-Can it be that that last waking also was in the dream? that I am
-still in the chamber of death, asleep and dreaming, not yet ripe
-enough to wake? Or can it be that I did not go to sleep outright
-and heartily, and so have come awake too soon? If that waking was
-itself but a dream, surely it was a dream of a better waking yet
-to come, and I have not been the sport of a false vision! Such a
-dream must have yet lovelier truth at the heart of its dreaming!
-
-In moments of doubt I cry,
-
-"Could God Himself create such lovely things as I dreamed?"
-
-"Whence then came thy dream?" answers Hope.
-
-"Out of my dark self, into the light of my consciousness."
-
-"But whence first into thy dark self?" rejoins Hope.
-
-"My brain was its mother, and the fever in my blood its father."
-
-"Say rather," suggests Hope, "thy brain was the violin whence it
-issued, and the fever in thy blood the bow that drew it forth.--But
-who made the violin? and who guided the bow across its strings?
-Say rather, again--who set the song birds each on its bough in the
-tree of life, and startled each in its order from its perch? Whence
-came the fantasia? and whence the life that danced thereto? Didst
-THOU say, in the dark of thy own unconscious self, `Let beauty be;
-let truth seem!' and straightway beauty was, and truth but seemed?"
-
-Man dreams and desires; God broods and wills and quickens.
-
-When a man dreams his own dream, he is the sport of his dream; when
-Another gives it him, that Other is able to fulfil it.
-
-I have never again sought the mirror. The hand sent me back: I
-will not go out again by that door! "All the days of my appointed
-time will I wait till my change come."
-
-Now and then, when I look round on my books, they seem to waver as
-if a wind rippled their solid mass, and another world were about to
-break through. Sometimes when I am abroad, a like thing takes place;
-the heavens and the earth, the trees and the grass appear for a
-moment to shake as if about to pass away; then, lo, they have
-settled again into the old familiar face! At times I seem to hear
-whisperings around me, as if some that loved me were talking of me;
-but when I would distinguish the words, they cease, and all is very
-still. I know not whether these things rise in my brain, or enter
-it from without. I do not seek them; they come, and I let them go.
-
-Strange dim memories, which will not abide identification, often,
-through misty windows of the past, look out upon me in the broad
-daylight, but I never dream now. It may be, notwithstanding, that,
-when most awake, I am only dreaming the more! But when I wake at
-last into that life which, as a mother her child, carries this life
-in its bosom, I shall know that I wake, and shall doubt no more.
-
-I wait; asleep or awake, I wait.
-
-Novalis says, "Our life is no dream, but it should and will perhaps
-become one."
-
-
-
-
-*Chapter 42: William Law.
-
-**Chapter 45: Tin tin sonando con sì dolce nota
- Che 'l ben disposto spirito d' amor turge.
- DEL PARADISO, x. 142.
-
-***Chapter 46: Oma' vedrai di sì fatti uficiali.
- Del Purgatorio, ii. 30.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of The Project Gutenberg Etext of Lilith, George MacDonald
-
diff --git a/old/lilth11.zip b/old/lilth11.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 63f4ad6..0000000
--- a/old/lilth11.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ